This is a modern-English version of The Life of Nelson, Volume 1: The Embodiment of the Sea Power of Great Britain, originally written by Mahan, A. T. (Alfred Thayer).
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
THE LIFE OF NELSON
THE EMBODIMENT OF THE SEA POWER OF GREAT BRITAIN
BY
CAPTAIN A. T. MAHAN, D.C.L., LL.D.
U.S. Navy
AUTHOR OF
"THE INFLUENCE OF SEA POWER UPON HISTORY, 1660-1783,"
"THE INFLUENCE OF SEA POWER UPON THE FRENCH REVOLUTION AND
EMPIRE,"
AND OF A "LIFE OF ADMIRAL FARRAGUT"
IN TWO VOLUMES
VOL. I.
LONDON
SAMPSON LOW, MARSTON, & COMPANY,
LIMITED
1897
PREFACE.
The Life of Nelson has been written so often, that an explanation—almost an apology—seems due for any renewal of the attempt; but, not to mention the attractiveness of the theme in itself, it is essential to the completeness and rounding off of the author's discussion of the Influence of Sea Power, that he present a study, from his own point of view, of the one man who in himself summed up and embodied the greatness of the possibilities which Sea Power comprehends,—the man for whom genius and opportunity worked together, to make him the personification of the Navy of Great Britain, the dominant factor in the periods hitherto treated. In the century and a half embraced in those periods, the tide of influence and of power has swelled higher and higher, floating upward before the eyes of mankind many a distinguished name; but it is not until their close that one arises in whom all the promises of the past find their finished realization, their perfect fulfilment. Thenceforward the name of Nelson is enrolled among those few presented to us by History, the simple mention of which suggests, not merely a personality or a career, but a great force or a great era concrete in a single man, who is its standard-bearer before the nations.
The Life of Nelson has been written about so many times that it almost feels necessary to explain—maybe even apologize—for trying again. However, aside from the inherent appeal of the topic, it’s crucial for the author to fully discuss the Influence of Sea Power by presenting a perspective on the one individual who truly represents and embodies the tremendous potential of Sea Power. This is the man for whom talent and opportunity aligned, making him the living symbol of the Royal Navy—the key element in the historical periods previously covered. Over the century and a half represented in those periods, the levels of influence and power have risen significantly, bringing many notable names into the spotlight. But it’s only at the conclusion of this era that we find someone in whom all the promises of the past reach their ultimate realization and fulfillment. From then on, the name of Nelson stands alongside those few recognized by History, which evokes not just a person or a career but a powerful force or significant era encapsulated in one man, who represents it before the world.
Yet, in this process of exaltation, the man himself, even when so very human and so very near our own time as Nelson is, suffers from an association which merges his individuality in the splendor of his surroundings; and it is perhaps pardonable to hope that the subject is not so far exhausted but that a new worker, gleaning after the reapers, may contribute something further towards disengaging the figure of the hero from the glory that cloaks it. The aim of the present writer, while not neglecting other sources of knowledge, has been to make Nelson describe himself, — tell the story of his own inner life as well as of his external actions. To realize this object, it has not seemed the best way to insert numerous letters, because, in the career of a man of action, each one commonly deals with a variety of subjects, which bear to one another little relation, except that, at the moment of writing, they all formed part of the multifold life the writer was then leading. It is true, life in general is passed in that way; but it is not by such distraction of interest among minute details that a particular life is best understood. Few letters, therefore, have been inserted entire; and those which have, have been chosen because of their unity of subject, and of their value as characteristic.
Yet, in this process of exaltation, the man himself, even though he is very human and close to our own time as Nelson is, suffers from being overshadowed by the glory around him; and it's perhaps reasonable to hope that the subject isn't completely exhausted and that a new writer, picking up where others left off, may contribute something further toward separating the image of the hero from the glory that surrounds it. The goal of this writer, while not ignoring other sources of knowledge, has been to let Nelson tell his own story—sharing the tale of his inner life as well as his outward actions. To achieve this, it didn’t seem best to include numerous letters, since in the career of a person of action, each letter usually touches on various subjects, which relate to each other little more than at the time of writing, they were all part of the complex life the writer was living. It’s true that life generally unfolds like that; but a particular life is not best understood through such distractions among minute details. Therefore, few letters have been included in full; and those that have been chosen are included for their cohesion of subject and their significance as representative.
The author's method has been to make a careful study of Nelson's voluminous correspondence, analyzing it, in order to detect the leading features of temperament, traits of thought, and motives of action; and thence to conceive within himself, by gradual familiarity even more than by formal effort, the character therein revealed. The impression thus produced he has sought to convey to others, partly in the form of ordinary narrative,—daily living with his hero,—and partly by such grouping of incidents and utterances, not always, nor even nearly, simultaneous, as shall serve by their joint evidence to emphasize particular traits, or particular opinions, more forcibly than when such testimonies are scattered far apart; as they would be, if recounted in a strict order of time.
The author's approach has been to closely examine Nelson's extensive correspondence, analyzing it to uncover key aspects of his personality, thought patterns, and motivations. Through this process of becoming familiar with the material, arguably more through exposure than conscious effort, he aims to internalize the character revealed in those letters. The impression he creates is shared with others partly through a straightforward narrative—living daily with his hero—and partly by organizing events and statements, which are not always immediate or closely related, in a way that highlights specific traits or opinions more powerfully than if those testimonies were presented in a strict chronological order.
A like method of treatment has been pursued in regard to that purely external part of Nelson's career in which are embraced his military actions, as well as his public and private life. The same aim is kept in view of showing clearly, not only what he did, but the principles which dominated his military thought, and guided his military actions, throughout his life; or, it may be, such changes as must inevitably occur in the development of a man who truly lives. This cannot be done satisfactorily without concentrating the evidence from time to time; and it is therefore a duty a writer owes to his readers, if they wish such acquaintance with his subject as he thinks he has succeeded in acquiring for himself.
A similar approach has been taken regarding the purely external aspects of Nelson's career, which include his military actions as well as his public and private life. The goal is to clearly demonstrate not just what he did, but also the principles that influenced his military thinking and guided his military actions throughout his life; or perhaps, the changes that are bound to happen in the growth of someone who truly lives. This cannot be effectively accomplished without periodically focusing the evidence; hence, it is a responsibility a writer has to his readers if they desire as much understanding of the subject as he believes he has managed to gain for himself.
The author has received individual assistance from several persons. To a general expression of thanks he wishes to add his special acknowledgments to the present Earl Nelson, through whose aid he has obtained information of interest which otherwise probably would have escaped him; and to Lords Radstock and De Saumarez, both of whom have been good enough to place in his hands letters contemporary with Nelson, and touching incidentally matters that throw light on his career. Material of the same kind has also been furnished him by Professor John Knox Laughton, whose knowledge of Nelson and of the Navy of that period is second to none; it is not the least of the writer's advantages that he has had before him, to check possible errors in either fact or conclusions, the admirable, though brief, Life of Nelson published by Mr. Laughton two years since.
The author has received help from several people. Along with a general thank you , he wants to give special recognition to the current Earl Nelson, whose support has given him interesting information that he likely would have missed otherwise; and to Lords Radstock and De Saumarez, both of whom have generously shared letters from Nelson’s time that shed light on his career. He has also received similar material from Professor John Knox Laughton, whose expertise on Nelson and the Navy of that era is unmatched; it is a significant advantage for the writer to have the excellent, albeit brief, Life of Nelson published by Mr. Laughton two years ago to help verify any potential errors in facts or conclusions.
Illustrative anecdotes have also been supplied by Admiral Sir William R. Mends, G.C.B., who has shown his continued interest in the work by the trouble he has taken for it; by Mr. Stuart J. Reid, of Blackwell Cliff, East Grinstead; and by Mr. Edgar Goble, of Fareham, Hants. Mr. B.F. Stevens, of 4 Trafalgar Square, has also kindly exerted himself on several occasions to obtain needed information. To Mrs. F.H.B. Eccles, of Sherwell House, Plymouth, granddaughter of Josiah Nisbet, Nelson's stepson, the author is indebted for reminiscences of Lady Nelson, and for her portrait here published; and his thanks are also due to Lieutenant-Colonel W. Clement D. Esdaile, of Burley Manor, Ringwood, Hants, through whom he was brought into communication with Mrs. Eccles, and who has in other ways helped him.
Illustrative anecdotes have also been provided by Admiral Sir William R. Mends, G.C.B., who has shown his ongoing interest in the work through the effort he has put into it; by Mr. Stuart J. Reid, from Blackwell Cliff, East Grinstead; and by Mr. Edgar Goble, from Fareham, Hants. Mr. B.F. Stevens, from 4 Trafalgar Square, has also generously worked on several occasions to gather necessary information. To Mrs. F.H.B. Eccles, from Sherwell House, Plymouth, granddaughter of Josiah Nisbet, Nelson's stepson, the author owes thanks for her memories of Lady Nelson and for her portrait published here; and his gratitude also goes to Lieutenant-Colonel W. Clement D. Esdaile, from Burley Manor, Ringwood, Hants, through whom he was put in touch with Mrs. Eccles, and who has assisted him in other ways.
Throughout the writing of the book constant assistance has been received from Mr. Robert B. Marston, to whom cordial acknowledgment is made for the untiring pains taken in prosecuting necessary inquiries, which could not have been done without great delay by one not living in England. Suggestions valuable to the completeness of the work have been given also by Mr. Marston.
Throughout the writing of this book, I've received constant help from Mr. Robert B. Marston, to whom I sincerely thank for his tireless efforts in pursuing essential inquiries that would have taken much longer for someone not living in England. Mr. Marston has also provided valuable suggestions that have contributed to the completeness of this work.
For the portrait of Mrs. Philip Ward, the "Horatia" whom Nelson called generally his adopted daughter, but at times spoke of as his daughter simply, and whom, on the last morning of his life, he commended to the care of his Country, the author has to thank Mr. and Mrs. Nelson Ward, of 15 Lancaster Road, Belsize Park, London. Mr. Nelson Ward is her son.
For the portrait of Mrs. Philip Ward, the "Horatia" whom Nelson generally referred to as his adopted daughter and sometimes simply as his daughter, and whom, on the last morning of his life, he entrusted to the care of his Country, the author thanks Mr. and Mrs. Nelson Ward, of 15 Lancaster Road, Belsize Park, London. Mr. Nelson Ward is her son.
To the more usual sources of information already in print, it is not necessary to refer in detail; but it is right to mention especially the collection of Hamilton and Nelson letters, published by Mr. Alfred Morrison, a copy of which by his polite attention was sent the writer, and upon which must necessarily be based such account of Nelson's relations with Lady Hamilton as, unfortunately, cannot be omitted wholly from a life so profoundly affected by them.
To the more common sources of printed information, it’s not necessary to go into detail; however, it’s important to highlight the collection of letters between Hamilton and Nelson, published by Mr. Alfred Morrison. A copy was generously sent to me by him, and it will definitely inform my account of Nelson's relationship with Lady Hamilton, which unfortunately can't be completely excluded from a life so deeply impacted by it.
A.T. MAHAN.
A.T. Mahan.
MARCH, 1897.
March 1897.
CONTENTS OF VOL. I.
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. | |
MAPS AND BATTLE PLANS. | |
CHAPTER I. | |
THE FIRST TWENTY-FIVE YEARS. | |
Distinction of Nelson's career | 1 |
His extensive and varied correspondence | 3 |
Parentage and birth | 4 |
Delicacy of constitution | 5 |
First entry in the Navy | 5 |
Anecdotes of childhood | 7 |
Cared for by his uncle, Captain Maurice Suckling | 9 |
Serves in a West India merchantman | 10 |
Expedition to the Arctic Sea | 12 |
Cruise to the East Indies | 14 |
Acting lieutenant in the Channel Fleet | 15 |
Promoted lieutenant in the "Lowestoffe" | 16 |
Goes to the West Indies | 17 |
Incidents of service | 18 |
Transferred to the flagship "Bristol" | 20 |
Promoted to Commander and to Post-Captain | 21 |
Personal appearance, 1780 | 22 |
Youth when promoted | 23 |
Scanty opportunities for war service | 24 |
The Nicaragua Expedition | 26 |
Health breaks down | 30 |
Returns to England | 31 |
Appointed to the "Albemarle" | 31 |
Short trip to the Baltic | 33 |
Goes to the North American Station | 35 |
At New York, and transferred to the West Indies | 37 |
Personal appearance, 1782 | 39 |
Sentiments concerning honor and money | 40 |
Returns to England and goes on half-pay | 41 |
Visit to France | 42 |
Unsuccessful courtship | 43 |
CHAPTER II. | |
CRUISE OF THE "BOREAS."—CONTROVERSY OVER THE ENFORCEMENT OF THE NAVIGATION ACT.—RETURN TO ENGLAND.—RETIREMENT UNTIL THE OUTBREAK OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION.—APPOINTED TO COMMAND THE "AGAMEMNON." | |
1784-1793. | |
Appointed to command the "Boreas" | 44 |
Sails for the Leeward Islands | 45 |
Traits of character and manners | 46 |
Refuses to recognize a commodore's pendant, of a captain "not in commission" | 49 |
Indications of character in this act | 52 |
Controversy over the Navigation Act | 54 |
Refuses obedience to the Admiral's order, as illegal | 57 |
Persists in seizing vessels violating the Act | 59 |
Consequent legal proceedings | 60 |
Conduct approved by the Home Government | 62 |
Results of his action | 63 |
Characteristics shown by it | 64 |
Meets his future wife, Mrs. Nisbet | 65 |
Contemporary description of him | 66 |
Progress of courtship | 68 |
Reconciliation with the Admiral | 72 |
Characteristics manifested by Nelson in the controversy | 73 |
Left senior officer on the Station | 74 |
Health and marriage | 75 |
The "Boreas" returns to England | 75 |
Employed on the Impress Service | 77 |
Annoyances and dissatisfaction | 78 |
Prejudices against him | 79 |
The "Boreas" paid off | 80 |
Sensitiveness under censure | 81 |
Flattering reception at Court | 82 |
Efforts to suppress frauds in West Indies | 82 |
Breadth and acuteness of intellect | 83 |
Results of his efforts against frauds | 86 |
Prejudices against him at the Admiralty | 86 |
His partisanship for Prince William Henry | 87 |
Insubordinate conduct of the latter | 88 |
Nelson's difference with Lord Hood | 89 |
Out of favor at Court | 89 |
On half-pay, 1788-1792 | 90 |
Progress of the French Revolution | 92 |
Nelson applies for a ship | 94 |
Appointed to the "Agamemnon," 64 | 95 |
France declares war against Great Britain | 95 |
CHAPTER III. | |
NELSON'S DEPARTURE FROM ENGLAND IN THE "AGAMEMNON."—SERVICES IN THE MEDITERRANEAN UNTIL THE RECOVERY OF TOULON BY THE FRENCH.—LORD HOOD IN COMMAND. | |
FEBRUARY-DECEMBER, 1793. | |
Significance of Nelson's career | 96 |
Intimate association of the "Agamemnon" with his name | 97 |
Delay in her equipment | 99 |
Nelson's hatred for the French | 101 |
Sails for Spithead | 101 |
Cruising in the Channel | 102 |
Departure for Mediterranean, and arrival off Toulon | 103 |
Remarks on the Spanish Navy | 104 |
Professional utterances | 105 |
Services off Toulon and at Naples | 106 |
Toulon surrendered to the British and Spaniards | 107 |
Nelson's reconcilement with Hood | 108 |
Hardships of the cruise | 109 |
His intelligence and zeal | 110 |
Rejoins fleet off Toulon | 112 |
Constantly on detached, semi-independent, service | 112 |
Sent to Tunis | 113 |
Action with four French frigates | 113 |
Negotiations at Tunis | 114 |
Nelson's wish to go to the West Indies | 115 |
Ordered to command a division blockading Corsica | 115 |
The allies are forced to quit Toulon | 117 |
CHAPTER IV. | |
REDUCTION OF CORSICA BY THE BRITISH.—DEPARTURE OF LORD HOOD FOR ENGLAND.—THE "AGAMEMNON" REFITTED AT LEGHORN. | |
JANUARY-DECEMBER, 1794. | |
Importance of Corsica | 118 |
Hood orders Nelson to open communications with Paoli | 118 |
Operations begun at San Fiorenzo | 119 |
Bastia blockaded by Nelson | 120 |
Description of Bastia | 121 |
The army refuses to undertake the siege | 121 |
Destitute condition of the "Agamemnon" | 122 |
Quarrel between Hood and General Dundas | 122 |
Nelson's opinions about besieging Bastia | 122 |
Comments | 123 |
Strength of the place | 124 |
Nelson's military character as shown by his opinion | 125 |
Instances in his correspondence | 126 |
Progress of the siege | 127 |
The place capitulates | 129 |
Nelson's part in the operations | 130 |
Inadequate credit from Hood | 131 |
Nelson's dissatisfaction, but continued zeal | 132 |
Loftiness of his motives | 133 |
Arrival of General Stuart to command army in Corsica | 134 |
Preparations for siege of Calvi | 134 |
News of the sailing of French Toulon fleet | 134 |
Hood sails in pursuit | 134 |
Development of Nelson's military opinions | 135 |
"Agamemnon" sent back to Bastia | 136 |
Proceeds thence to San Fiorenzo | 136 |
Nelson's meeting with General Stuart | 136 |
His opinions on a "fleet in being" | 136 |
Arrival off Calvi | 137 |
Nelson lands with the troops | 138 |
Arrival of Lord Hood | 138 |
Nelson's part in the siege of Calvi | 138 |
Defences of Calvi | 139 |
Nelson loses his right eye | 140 |
Friction between Army and Navy | 141 |
Nelson's tact towards both | 142 |
Feeling between Hood and Moore | 143 |
Progress of the siege | 145 |
Calvi capitulates | 146 |
Sickness among the British | 147 |
Condition of "Agamemnon's" crew | 148 |
Repose given at Leghorn | 148 |
Hood is relieved by Hotham and returns to England | 149 |
Nelson's criticisms on naval actions | 150 |
His distress at prolonged continuance in port | 151 |
Broods over Hood's inadequate mention of him | 151 |
Compliment from the Viceroy of Corsica | 154 |
CHAPTER V. | |
NELSON'S SERVICES WITH THE FLEET IN THE MEDITERRANEAN UNDER ADMIRAL HOTHAM.—PARTIAL FLEET ACTIONS OF MARCH 13 AND 14, AND JULY 13.—NELSON ORDERED TO COMMAND A DETACHED SQUADRON CO-OPERATING WITH THE AUSTRIAN ARMY IN THE RIVIERA OF GENOA. | |
JANUARY-JULY, 1795. | |
General military conditions in Europe and Italy | 155 |
Importance of the British conquest of Corsica | 158 |
General character of Nelson's service | 159 |
He rejoins the fleet | 160 |
His speculations as to the French objects | 160 |
The French put to sea | 161 |
Action between "Agamemnon" and "Ça Ira" | 163 |
Characteristics displayed by Nelson | 165 |
Partial fleet action, March 14 | 167 |
Nelson's urgency with Hotham | 168 |
Discussion of Hotham's action | 169 |
Nelson's share in the general result | 172 |
His affectionate correspondence with his wife | 173 |
Anxiety for Corsica | 174 |
Regret at Hood's detachment from command | 175 |
Receives Honorary Colonelcy of Marines | 177 |
Sent on detached service to the Riviera | 177 |
Encounters French fleet | 178 |
Rejoins Hotham at San Fiorenzo | 178 |
Partial fleet action of July 13 | 179 |
Nelson's dissatisfaction with it | 180 |
Discussion of his criticisms | 181 |
Effects of Hotham's inertness | 182 |
CHAPTER VI. | |
NELSON'S COMMAND OF A DETACHED SQUADRON ON THE RIVIERA OF GENOA, UNTIL THE DEFEAT OF THE AUSTRIANS AT THE BATTLE OF LOANO.—SIR JOHN JERVIS APPOINTED COMMANDER-IN-CHIEF IN THE MEDITERRANEAN. | |
JULY-DECEMBER, 1795. | |
Nelson takes command of a squadron on the Riviera | 184 |
Conditions of belligerents and neutrals on the Riviera | 185 |
Nelson's "political courage" | 189 |
Disregards Hotham's orders | 190 |
Hotham approves his action | 191 |
Effect of his action upon the enemy | 192 |
Evasion of his efforts by the coasters | 192 |
He proposes to the Austrians to occupy San Remo | 193 |
Discussion of this proposal | 194 |
The effect in his mind of a "fleet in being" | 196 |
Inactivity of the Austrians and of the fleet | 197 |
Menacing attitude of the French | 199 |
Hotham succeeded by Hyde Parker | 199 |
Battle of Loano.—Defeat of the Austrians | 201 |
Nelson's condemnation of the British admirals | 202 |
Increase of his own reputation | 203 |
Forcible letter repudiating an attack on his integrity | 204 |
Generally congenial character of his service on the Riviera | 206 |
Correspondence with home | 207 |
Passing desire to return to England | 208 |
CHAPTER VII. | |
NELSON'S SERVICES IN THE MEDITERRANEAN DURING THE YEAR 1796.—BONAPARTE'S ITALIAN CAMPAIGN.—THE BRITISH ABANDON CORSICA, AND THE FLEET LEAVES THE MEDITERRANEAN. | |
JANUARY-DECEMBER, 1796. | |
The "Agamemnon" refits at Leghorn | 210 |
Nelson's sensitiveness to censure | 210 |
His vindication of his recent conduct | 212 |
His erroneous conceptions of French military aims | 213 |
Importance of Vado Bay | 214 |
First meeting between Nelson and Jervis | 215 |
Nelson's anxiety to remain on the station | 215 |
Coincidence of views between Nelson and Jervis | 216 |
Nelson sent again to the Riviera | 217 |
Reconnoitres Toulon | 217 |
Expects a French descent in force near Leghorn | 217 |
Analogy between this and Napoleon's plans in 1805 | 218 |
Nelson urges the Austrians to occupy Vado | 218 |
He hoists his broad pendant as Commodore | 220 |
The Austrian general, Beaulieu, advances | 220 |
Nelson accompanies the movement with his ships | 221 |
Premature attack by Austrians | 222 |
Nelson receives news of their defeat by Bonaparte | 223 |
Austrians retreat behind the Apennines | 223 |
Nelson resumes operations against the coasting-traffic | 224 |
His singleness of purpose and resoluteness | 225 |
His activity, difficulties encountered, and plans | 226 |
Transferred from the "Agamemnon" to the "Captain" | 229 |
Subsequent fortunes of the "Agamemnon" | 230 |
Bonaparte's designs upon Corsica | 231 |
The French seize Leghorn | 233 |
Nelson's inferences from that act | 234 |
Nelson and Bonaparte compared | 235 |
British blockade of Leghorn | 236 |
Occupation of Elba by the British | 237 |
The Austrians under Wurmser attack Bonaparte | 238 |
Nelson plans an assault on Leghorn | 238 |
He learns the Austrian defeat at Castiglione | 241 |
His gradual change of opinion as to leaving the Mediterranean | 242 |
His pride in the British fleet | 244 |
Genoa closes her ports against the British | 245 |
The fleet ordered to quit the Mediterranean | 247 |
Effect on Nelson | 247 |
He superintends the evacuation of Bastia | 251 |
The fleet withdraws to Gibraltar | 254 |
Growth of Nelson's reputation | 254 |
His susceptibility to flattery | 256 |
His home relations | 257 |
His inadequate appreciation of the character of the war | 258 |
CHAPTER VIII. | |
THE EVACUATION OF ELBA.—NIGHT COMBAT WITH TWO SPANISH FRIGATES.—BATTLE OF CAPE ST. VINCENT.—NELSON PROMOTED TO REAR-ADMIRAL.—SERVICES BEFORE CADIZ. | |
DECEMBER, 1796-JUNE, 1797. | |
Nelson sent to Elba to remove naval material | 259 |
Combat with Spanish frigates | 259 |
Arrival at Elba | 260 |
Hesitations of the General about evacuating | 261 |
Nelson leaves Elba with the naval vessels | 262 |
Deliberate reconnoissance of the enemy's coast | 263 |
Characteristic action of Nelson throughout this expedition | 264 |
Night encounter with the Spanish fleet | 267 |
Rejoins Jervis off Cape St. Vincent | 268 |
Battle of Cape St. Vincent | 269 |
Nelson's exceptional action | 271 |
His merit in taking it | 272 |
Takes possession of two Spanish ships-of-the-line | 273 |
Characteristics here evinced | 276 |
Controversy with Vice-Admiral William Parker | 277 |
Comments upon this | 280 |
Jervis's neglect to mention special services | 281 |
His sense of Nelson's merit | 283 |
Nelson's preferences in the matter of rewards | 283 |
Made a Knight of the Bath | 284 |
Promoted Rear-Admiral | 285 |
Cruises for treasure-ships from Mexico | 286 |
Anxiety about the Elba troops | 287 |
Sent by Jervis to escort them to Gibraltar | 288 |
Safe return to Gibraltar | 288 |
Provides protection for American merchant-ships against French privateers | 289 |
Rejoins Jervis off Cadiz | 289 |
Operations against Cadiz | 290 |
General good health and happiness | 294 |
Pride in his reputation | 295 |
CHAPTER IX. | |
THE UNSUCCESSFUL ATTEMPT AGAINST TENERIFFE.—NELSON LOSES HIS RIGHT ARM.—RETURN TO ENGLAND.—REJOINS ST. VINCENT'S FLEET, AND SENT INTO THE MEDITERRANEAN TO WATCH THE TOULON ARMAMENT. | |
JULY, 1797-MAY, 1798. | |
Origin of the Teneriffe Expedition | 296 |
Conditions conducive to success | 297 |
Orders to Nelson to undertake it | 299 |
Failure of the first attempt | 300 |
Nelson determines to storm the town | 302 |
The assault and the repulse | 303 |
Nelson loses his right arm | 305 |
Rejoins the Commander-in-Chief off Cadiz | 306 |
Returns to England on sick-leave | 307 |
Painful convalescence | 308 |
Restoration to health | 309 |
His flag hoisted again, on board the "Vanguard" | 310 |
Rejoins St. Vincent off Cadiz | 310 |
Ordered to the Mediterranean to watch the Toulon Armament | 310 |
Close of the first period of his career | 311 |
Contrasts between his career hitherto and subsequently | 311 |
Relations with his wife while in England | 316 |
Quits the fleet to repair off Toulon | 316 |
CHAPTER X. | |
THE CAMPAIGN AND BATTLE OF THE NILE. | |
MAY-SEPTEMBER, 1798. | |
Changed political conditions in Europe, 1798 | 317 |
The British Cabinet decides to take the offensive | 319 |
The quarter in which to strike determined by the Toulon armament | 320 |
Orders issued to St. Vincent | 321 |
Preference for Nelson indicated by Government | 321 |
Nelson's flagship, the "Vanguard," dismasted at sea | 323 |
Indications of character elicited by the accident | 324 |
He is joined by ten ships-of-the-line, raising his squadron to thirteen | 326 |
Pursuit of the expedition under Bonaparte | 327 |
Nelson's fixedness of purpose | 327 |
Attitude of Naples | 329 |
Perplexities of the pursuit | 332 |
The light of the single eye | 335 |
Embarrassment from the want of frigates | 338 |
Squadron reaches Alexandria before the French | 338 |
Renewed perplexity | 339 |
Nelson returns to the westward | 339 |
Anchors at Syracuse | 340 |
Again goes east in search of the French | 342 |
The French fleet discovered at anchor in Aboukir Bay | 343 |
Prompt resolution to attack | 344 |
Disposition of the French fleet for battle | 345 |
Steadiness and caution of Nelson's advance | 347 |
The Battle of the Nile | 348 |
Nelson severely wounded | 351 |
The French flagship blows up | 354 |
Nelson's dissatisfaction with the results | 356 |
His orders after the battle | 358 |
Subsequent measures | 360 |
Effect of the news in Great Britain | 361 |
Nelson's rewards | 361 |
Reception of the news in Europe generally | 363 |
Nelson's concern about Troubridge | 364 |
Immediate effect of the victory upon the French in Egypt | 365 |
Nelson ordered with his fleet to the westward | 366 |
Sails for Naples | 366 |
CHAPTER XI. | |
NELSON'S RETURN FROM EGYPT TO NAPLES.—MEETING WITH LADY HAMILTON.—ASSOCIATION WITH THE COURT OF NAPLES.—WAR BETWEEN NAPLES AND FRANCE.—DEFEAT OF THE NEAPOLITANS.—FLIGHT OF THE COURT TO PALERMO. | |
SEPTEMBER-DECEMBER, 1798. | |
Voyage to Naples | 367 |
Recovery from wound | 368 |
His views as to future operations | 368 |
Change of view after reaching Naples | 369 |
Arrival at Naples | 371 |
Meeting with the Hamiltons | 372 |
Previous career of Lady Hamilton | 373 |
Her political influence in Naples | 383 |
Her characteristics | 384 |
Her influence over Nelson | 386 |
Rapid progress of the intimacy | 387 |
His association with the Court | 388 |
He urges Naples to declare war against France | 389 |
Political situation of Naples relatively to France | 390 |
Nelson goes off Malta | 391 |
Returns to Naples | 392 |
Neapolitans advance against the French in Rome | 393 |
Their overthrow and rout | 394 |
The royal family and Court fly to Palermo | 395 |
Nelson in Palermo | 395 |
Scandals about his residence there | 396 |
Troubridge's remonstrances with him | 398 |
CHAPTER XII. | |
NELSON'S CAREER, AND GENERAL EVENTS IN THE MEDITERRANEAN AND ITALY, FROM THE OVERTHROW OF THE ROYAL GOVERNMENT IN NAPLES TO THE INCURSION OF THE FRENCH FLEET UNDER ADMIRAL BRUIX. | |
JANUARY-MAY, 1799. | |
The French enter Naples | 399 |
Nelson's distress and comments | 400 |
The Sidney Smith mission | 400 |
Nelson's indignation | 401 |
Modification of Smith's orders | 402 |
Nelson's diplomatic capacity | 403 |
Jealousy of Russian progress in the Mediterranean | 404 |
His expectations of Russian assistance | 406 |
Precautions against Russians in Malta | 406 |
His poor opinion of the Neapolitan troops | 408 |
Difficulties with the Barbary States | 409 |
Nelson's dealings with them | 410 |
His hatred of the French | 411 |
Deep depression of spirits | 412 |
Fears for Sicily | 413 |
French reverses in Germany and Italy | 415 |
British and Neapolitan successes about Naples | 415 |
The French evacuate the kingdom of Naples | 416 |
News of the approach of the French fleet under Bruix | 417 |
CHAPTER XIII. | |
FROM THE INCURSION OF THE FRENCH FLEET UNDER BRUIX TO THE RESTORATION OF THE ROYAL AUTHORITY AT NAPLES.—THE CARACCIOLO EXECUTION.—NELSON'S DISOBEDIENCE TO ADMIRAL LORD KEITH. | |
MAY-JULY, 1799. | |
Nelson's measures to meet Bruix's fleet | 418 |
His perplexity and mental distress | 419 |
Concentrates his division off Maritimo | 420 |
His sagacity and resolution | 421 |
Growing infatuation about Lady Hamilton | 422 |
Learns that Bruix has gone to Toulon | 423 |
Takes his squadron to Palermo | 423 |
Distress at St. Vincent's intention to go home | 424 |
Movements of St. Vincent and of Keith with the main fleet | 425 |
Nelson starts from Palermo for Naples | 425 |
News from Keith causes him to return off Maritimo | 426 |
Dissatisfaction with Keith's measures | 427 |
Resolves to go to Naples with the squadron | 428 |
Arrival at Naples | 428 |
State of affairs there | 429 |
Nelson's powers as representative of the King of Naples | 429 |
Annuls the existing armistice | 430 |
Capitulation of the castles Uovo and Nuovo | 432 |
Discussion of Nelson's action at this time | 432 |
Justification of his conduct | 434 |
The Caracciolo incident | 437 |
Execution of Caracciolo | 439 |
Discussion of Nelson's action in this case | 439 |
His profound attachment to the royal family of Naples | 443 |
The King establishes his court on board Nelson's flagship | 443 |
Mutual admiration of Nelson and the Hamiltons | 444 |
Castle of St. Elmo capitulates | 444 |
Troubridge sent against Capua | 444 |
Keith orders Nelson to send ships to Minorca | 445 |
Nelson disobeys | 446 |
Keith repeats his orders | 447 |
Nelson again refuses obedience | 448 |
Discussion of this incident | 449 |
The Admiralty censure Nelson | 451 |
Nelson's discontent | 452 |
His complaints of his health | 453 |
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS.
VOLUME ONE.
Captain Nelson, in 1781, aged
Twenty-two
From the painting by J.F.
Rigaud, in the possession of Earl Nelson.
Captain Nelson, in 1781, aged
Twenty-two
From the painting by J.F. Rigaud, held by Earl Nelson.
Captain Maurice Suckling, R.n.
From an engraving by William
Ridley.
Captain Maurice Suckling, R.n.
From an engraving by William Ridley.
Captain William Locker, R.n.
From an engraving by H.T.
Ryall, after the painting by G. Stuart, at Greenwich
Hospital.
Captain William Locker, R.n.
From an engraving by H.T. Ryall, inspired by the painting by G. Stuart, at Greenwich Hospital.
Admiral, Lord Hood
From the painting by L.F.
Abbott, in the National Portrait Gallery.
Admiral, Lord Hood
From the artwork by L.F. Abbott, located in the National Portrait Gallery.
Admiral, Sir John Jervis, Earl of St.
Vincent
From an engraving by H.
Robinson, after the painting by John Hoppner, in St. James's
Palace.
Admiral, Sir John Jervis, Earl of St.
Vincent
From an engraving by H. Robinson, based on the painting by John Hoppner, at St. James's Palace.
Sir
Thomas Troubridge
From the painting by Sir
William Beechey.
Sir
Thomas Troubridge
From the artwork by Sir William Beechey.
Lady Nelson
From a photograph by Mr. E.
Kelly, of Plymouth, of a miniature in the possession of Mrs.
F.H.B. Eccles, of Sherwell House, Plymouth, a
great-granddaughter of Lady Nelson. Believed to have been
painted about the time of the Battle of the Nile.
Lady Nelson
From a photo by Mr. E. Kelly of Plymouth, showing a miniature owned by Mrs. F.H.B. Eccles of Sherwell House, Plymouth, who is a great-granddaughter of Lady Nelson. It is believed to have been painted around the time of the Battle of the Nile.
Rear Admiral, Sir Horatio Nelson in
1798
From the painting by L.F.
Abbott, in the National Portrait Gallery.
Rear Admiral, Sir Horatio Nelson in
1798
From the painting by L.F. Abbott, located in the National Portrait Gallery.
Emma, Lady Hamilton
After a painting by G.
Romney.
Emma, Lady Hamilton
Based on a painting by G. Romney.
Admiral, Lord Keith
After the painting by John
Hoppner in the possession of the Dowager Marchioness of
Lansdowne.
Admiral, Lord Keith
Based on the painting by John Hoppner, which is owned by the Dowager Marchioness of Lansdowne.
MAPS AND BATTLE PLANS.
VOLUME ONE.
Map of Northern Italy, and
Corsica
The "Agamemnon" and the "Ça
Ira"
Partial Fleet Action, March 14, 1795
Battle of Cape St. Vincent, Figures 1 and
2
Battle of Cape St. Vincent, Figure 3
Map of the Mediterranean
Map of Coast-line, Alexandria to
Rosetta
Map of Aboukir Bay
Battle of the Nile, First Stage
Battle of the Nile, Second Stage
Map of Northern Italy, and
Corsica
The "Agamemnon" and the "Ça
Ira"
Partial Fleet Action, March 14, 1795
Battle of Cape St. Vincent, Figures 1 and
2
Battle of Cape St. Vincent, Figure 3
Map of the Mediterranean
Map of Coast-line, Alexandria to
Rosetta
Map of Aboukir Bay
Battle of the Nile, First Stage
Battle of the Nile, Second Stage
CHAPTER I.
THE FIRST TWENTY-FIVE YEARS.
THE FIRST 25 YEARS.
1758-1783.
1758-1783.
It is the appointed lot of some of History's chosen few to come upon the scene at the moment when a great tendency is nearing its crisis and culmination. Specially gifted with qualities needed to realize the fulness of its possibilities, they so identify themselves with it by their deeds that they thenceforth personify to the world the movement which brought them forth, and of which their own achievements are at once the climax and the most dazzling illustration. Fewer still, but happiest of all, viewed from the standpoint of fame, are those whose departure is as well timed as their appearance, who do not survive the instant of perfected success, to linger on subjected to the searching tests of common life, but pass from our ken in a blaze of glory which thenceforth forever encircles their names. In that evening light break away and vanish the ominous clouds wherewith human frailties or tyrant passions had threatened to darken their renown; and their sun goes down with a lustre which the lapse of time is powerless to dim. Such was the privilege of the stainless Wolfe; such, beyond all others, that of Nelson. Rarely has a man been more favored in the hour of his appearing; never one so fortunate in the moment of his death.
It is the fate of some of History's chosen few to arrive on the scene just as a major trend is reaching its peak. They possess the unique qualities needed to fully realize its potential, and by their actions, they so deeply connect with it that they become the embodiment of the movement that created them. Their achievements are both the pinnacle and the most striking example of this. Even rarer, but the luckiest in terms of fame, are those whose timing of departure matches their arrival perfectly. They don’t outlive the moment of complete success, suffering through the hardships of everyday life, but instead, they leave our sight in a blaze of glory that forever surrounds their names. In that evening light, the dark clouds of human weaknesses or oppressive passions that threatened to overshadow their glory break away and disappear; their sun sets with a brightness that time cannot diminish. Such was the privilege of the untarnished Wolfe; such, above all, was the case for Nelson. Rarely has someone been so blessed at the moment of their emergence; never has anyone been so fortunate at the time of their passing.
Yet, however accidental, or providential, this rarely allotted portion, this crowning incident of an heroic career, it is after all but an incident. It the man has not contrived; but to it he has contributed much, without which his passing hour would have faded to memory, undistinguished among those of the myriads, great and small, who have died as nobly and are forever forgotten. A sun has set; but before its setting it has run a course, be it long or short, and has gathered a radiance which fixes upon its parting beams the rapt attention of beholders. The man's self and the man's works, what he was and what he did, the nature which brought forth such fruits, the thoughts which issued in such acts, hopes, fears, desires, quick intuitions, painful struggles, lofty ambitions, happy opportunities, have blended to form that luminous whole, known and seen of all, but not to be understood except by a patient effort to resolve the great result into its several rays, to separate the strands whose twisting has made so strong a cord.
Yet, whether by chance or fate, this rare moment, this peak event of a heroic life, is still just one moment. The man didn't create it all on his own, but he contributed greatly to it; without his efforts, this fleeting moment would have faded into memory, lost among the countless others, both great and small, who have died nobly and are forever forgotten. A sun has set; but before it set, it completed its journey, however long or short, and gathered a brilliance that captures the attention of those watching in its final rays. The man's essence and his actions, who he was and what he did, the nature that produced such outcomes, the thoughts that led to such actions, hopes, fears, desires, quick insights, painful struggles, high aspirations, and fortunate chances have all come together to create that radiant whole, known and seen by all, but only understood through the patient effort to break down this great result into its individual parts, to untangle the strands that have woven together to form such a strong bond.
Concerning the man's external acts, it will often happen that their true value and significance can best be learned, not from his own personal recital, but from an analytic study of the deeds themselves. Yet into them, too, often enters, not only the subtile working of their author's natural qualities, but also a certain previous history of well-defined opinions, of settled principles firmly held, of trains of thought and reasoning, of intuitions wrought into rational convictions, all of which betray both temperament and character. Of these intellectual antecedents, the existence and development may be gleaned from his writings, confirming the inference reached somewhat mechanically by the scrutiny of his actions. They play to the latter the part of the soul to the body, and thus contribute to the rather anatomical result of the dissecting process a spiritual element it would otherwise lack. But if this is so even of the outward career, it is far more deeply true of the inner history, of that underlying native character, which masterfully moulds and colors every life, yet evades the last analysis except when the obscure workings of heart and mind have been laid bare by their owner's words, recording the feelings of the fleeting hour with no view to future inspection. In these revelations of self, made without thought of the world outside, is to be found, if anywhere, the clue to that complex and often contradictory mingling of qualities which go to form the oneness of the man's personality. This discordance between essential unity and superficial diversities must be harmonized, if a true conception of his being is to be formed. We know the faces of our friends, but we see each as one. The features can, if we will, be separately considered, catalogued, and valued; but who ever thus thinks habitually of one he knows well? Yet to know well must be the aim of biography,—so to present the traits in their totality, without suppression of any, and in their true relative proportions, as to produce, not the blurred or distorted outlines seen through an imperfect lens, but the vivid apprehension which follows long intimacy with its continual, though unconscious, process of correction.
When it comes to a person's outward actions, we often find that their true value and meaning can be better understood not through their own account but through an analysis of the actions themselves. These actions reflect not just the subtle influence of the person’s natural traits, but also a well-defined history of opinions, firmly held principles, logical reasoning, and beliefs shaped into rational convictions, all of which reveal their temperament and character. We can uncover these intellectual backgrounds through their writings, which confirm the conclusions drawn from examining their actions. They function for actions like the soul does for the body, adding a spiritual element to what would otherwise be a purely mechanical analysis. If this is true for external behavior, it is even more accurate for the inner history of one's character, which powerfully shapes every life but often escapes thorough analysis unless the intricate workings of their heart and mind are revealed through their own words, capturing the emotions of the moment without considering future scrutiny. In these self-revelations, made without regard for the outside world, lies, if anywhere, the key to understanding the complex and often contradictory blend of traits that make up the unity of a person's personality. To truly grasp their identity, we must reconcile the essential unity with the superficial differences. We recognize our friends by their faces, but we see each one as a whole. We could, if we wanted, analyze each feature separately, catalog it, and evaluate it; but who really thinks about someone they know well in that way? Yet, the goal of biography should be to present the traits in their entirety, without omitting any, and in their true relative proportions, to create a clear and vivid understanding that comes from long familiarity, continuously refining our perception, even if unconsciously.
For such a treatment of Nelson's character, copious, if imperfect, material is afforded in his extensive and varied correspondence. From it the author aims, first, to draw forth a distinct and living image of the man himself, as sketched therein at random and loosely by his own hand. It is sought to reach the result by keeping the reader in constant contact, as by daily acquaintance, with a personality of mingled weakness and strength, of grave faults as well as of great virtues, but one whose charm was felt in life by all who knew it. The second object, far less ambitious, is to present a clear narrative of the military career, of the mighty deeds of arms, of this first of British seamen, whom the gifts of Nature and the course of History have united to make, in his victories and in their results, the representative figure of the greatest sea-power that the world has known.
For a comprehensive look at Nelson's character, a wealth of material, albeit imperfect, is available in his extensive and varied correspondence. The author aims to create a vivid and realistic portrayal of the man himself, as loosely sketched by his own hand. The goal is to keep the reader consistently engaged, like getting to know someone personally, with a personality that has both weaknesses and strengths, serious flaws alongside remarkable virtues, but whose charm was felt by everyone who knew him. The second objective, much less ambitious, is to provide a clear narrative of his military career, showcasing the incredible feats of arms of this foremost British seaman, whom nature and history have combined to make, through his victories and their consequences, the representative figure of the greatest naval power the world has ever seen.
It will not be thought surprising that we have, of the first thirty years of Nelson's life, no such daily informal record as that which illustrates the comparatively brief but teeming period of his active fighting career, from 1793 to 1805, when he at once, with inevitable directness and singular rapidity, rose to prominence, and established intimate relations with numbers of his contemporaries. A few anecdotes, more or less characteristic, have been preserved concerning his boyhood and youth. In his early manhood we have his own account, both explicit and implied in many casual unpremeditated phrases, of the motives which governed his public conduct in an episode occurring when, scarcely yet more than a youth, he commanded a frigate in the West Indies,—the whole singularly confirmatory, it might better be said prophetic, of the distinguishing qualities afterwards so brilliantly manifested in his maturity. But beyond these, it is only by the closest attention and careful gleaning that can be found, in the defective and discontinuous collection of letters which remains from his first thirty years, the indisputable tokens, in most important particulars, of the man that was to be.
It's not surprising that we don't have a casual daily record of Nelson's first thirty years like we do for the relatively short but eventful period of his active fighting career from 1793 to 1805. During that time, he quickly rose to prominence and built close relationships with many of his peers. A few stories, which capture his character, have been preserved from his childhood and adolescence. In his early adulthood, we have his own accounts—both clear and implied in many offhand comments—about the motivations behind his public actions during an episode when he was still quite young and commanding a frigate in the West Indies. These accounts surprisingly hint at the outstanding qualities he would later exhibit in his maturity. However, beyond this, it takes careful attention and diligent gathering to find clear evidence of the future man he would become within the fragmented and scattered letters from those first thirty years.
The external details of this generally uneventful period can be rapidly summarized. He was born on the 29th of September, 1758, the fifth son and sixth child of Edmund Nelson, then rector of the parish of Burnham Thorpe, in Norfolk, a county which lies along the eastern coast of England, bordering the North Sea. His mother, whose name before marriage was Catherine Suckling, was grandniece to Sir Robert Walpole, the famous prime minister of Great Britain during twenty years of the reigns of the first two Georges. Sir Robert's second brother was called Horatio; and it was from the latter, or from his son, that the future hero took his baptismal name, which, in a more common form, was also that of Sir Robert's younger son, the celebrated letter and memoir writer, Horace Walpole.
The external details of this generally uneventful period can be quickly summarized. He was born on September 29, 1758, the fifth son and sixth child of Edmund Nelson, who was then the rector of the parish of Burnham Thorpe in Norfolk, a county on the eastern coast of England, next to the North Sea. His mother, whose name before marriage was Catherine Suckling, was a grandniece of Sir Robert Walpole, the famous prime minister of Great Britain, who served for twenty years during the reigns of the first two Georges. Sir Robert's second brother was named Horatio; and it was from him, or from his son, that the future hero got his first name, which, in a more common version, was also the name of Sir Robert's younger son, the well-known letter and memoir writer, Horace Walpole.
Of the eleven children borne by Nelson's mother in her eighteen wedded years, only two lived to grow old. She herself died at forty-two; and her brother, Captain Maurice Suckling, of the Royal Navy, was also cut off in the prime of his age. As the earlier Nelsons were unusually long-lived, it seems probable that a certain delicacy of constitution was transmitted through the Sucklings to the generation to which the admiral belonged. He was himself, at various periods through life, a great sufferer, and frequently an invalid; allusions to illness, often of a most prostrating type, and to his susceptibility to the influences of climate or weather, occur repeatedly and at brief intervals throughout his correspondence. This is a factor in his career which should not be lost to mind; for on the one hand it explains in part the fretfulness which at times appears, and on the other brings out with increased force the general kindly sweetness of his temper, which breathed with slight abatement through such depressing conditions. It enhances, too, the strength of purpose that trod bodily weakness under foot, almost unconsciously, at the call of duty or of honor. It is notable, in his letters, that the necessity for exertion, even when involving severe exposure, is apt to be followed, though without apparent recognition of a connection between the two, by the remark that he has not for a long time been so well. He probably experienced, as have others, that it is not the greater hardships of the profession, much less the dangers, but its uncertainties and petty vexations, which tell most severely on a high-strung organization like his own.
Of the eleven children born to Nelson's mother during her eighteen years of marriage, only two lived to old age. She died at forty-two, and her brother, Captain Maurice Suckling of the Royal Navy, also passed away in the prime of his life. Since the earlier Nelsons had unusually long lives, it seems likely that some delicate constitution was passed down through the Sucklings to the generation the admiral belonged to. He himself suffered greatly at various times in his life and was often an invalid; references to serious illnesses and his sensitivity to climate or weather frequently appear throughout his correspondence. This aspect of his life shouldn’t be overlooked; on one hand, it helps explain the irritability that sometimes surfaces, and on the other, it accentuates the general kindness and sweetness of his character, which persisted despite those tough conditions. It also highlights the strength of will that allowed him to rise above physical weakness, almost instinctively, when duty or honor called. Notably, in his letters, he often mentions that the need for exertion, especially when it means being severely exposed, is usually followed, although without any apparent acknowledgment of the link, by the comment that he hasn’t felt this well in a long time. He likely discovered, as others have, that it isn’t the major hardships of the profession, much less the dangers, but the uncertainties and minor frustrations that weigh most heavily on a sensitive person like him.
The immediate occasion of his going to sea was as follows. In 1770 the Falkland Islands, a desolate and then unimportant group, lying in the South Atlantic, to the eastward of Patagonia, were claimed as a possession by both Spain and Great Britain. The latter had upon them a settlement called Port Egmont, before which, in the year named, an overwhelming Spanish squadron suddenly appeared, and compelled the British occupants to lower their flag. The insult aroused public indignation in England to the highest pitch; and while peremptory demands for reparation were despatched to Spain, a number of ships of war were ordered at once into commission. Among these was the "Raisonnable," of sixty-four guns, to the command of which was appointed Nelson's uncle, Captain Maurice Suckling. The latter had some time before promised to provide for one of his sister's children, the family being very poor; and, the custom of the day permitting naval captains, as a kind of patronage, to take into the King's service on board their own ships a certain number of lads, as midshipmen or otherwise, the opportunity of giving a nephew a start in life was now in his hands. The story is that Horatio, though then but twelve years old, realized the burden of pecuniary care that his father was carrying, and himself volunteered the wish that his uncle would take him to sea. However it happened, the suggestion staggered Suckling, who well knew the lad's puny frame and fragile constitution. "What has poor little Horatio done," cried he, "that he, being so weak, should be sent to rough it at sea? But let him come, and if a cannon-ball takes off his head, he will at least be provided for." Under such gloomy foreboding began the most dazzling career that the sea, the mother of so many heroes, has ever seen.[1] Spain, after a short hesitation, yielded the British demands, so that war did not come, and the "Raisonnable," with other ships, was again put out of commission. The incident of the Falkland Islands, however, had served the purpose of introducing Nelson to his profession, for which otherwise the opportunity might not have offered. Being so young when thus embarked, he, in common with many of the most successful seamen of that day, got scanty schooling; nor did he, as some others did, by after application remedy the eccentricities of style, and even of grammar, which are apt to result from such early neglect. His letters, vigorous and direct as they are, present neither the polished diction of Collingwood, nor the usual even correctness of St. Vincent and Saumarez, but are, on the contrary, constantly disfigured by awkward expressions and bad English. There was rarely, however, danger of mistaking his meaning, as was sometimes charged against Lord Howe.
The immediate reason he went to sea was as follows. In 1770, the Falkland Islands, a barren and then unimportant group located in the South Atlantic, east of Patagonia, were claimed by both Spain and Great Britain. The British had a settlement there called Port Egmont, and in that year, a massive Spanish squadron suddenly appeared, forcing the British to lower their flag. This insult sparked intense public outrage in England, and while urgent demands for compensation were sent to Spain, several warships were ordered into service immediately. Among these was the "Raisonnable," a ship with sixty-four guns, commanded by Nelson's uncle, Captain Maurice Suckling. Some time earlier, he had promised to take care of one of his sister's children, as the family was very poor, and since naval captains at the time could bring a certain number of boys on board their ships as midshipmen or in other roles, he saw this as a chance to help his nephew start his life. It's said that Horatio, though only twelve years old at the time, understood the financial struggles his father faced and volunteered to ask his uncle to take him to sea. The suggestion surprised Suckling, who knew the boy was small and fragile. "What has poor little Horatio done," he exclaimed, "that he, being so weak, should be sent to endure the hardships of the sea? But let him come, and if a cannonball takes off his head, at least he'll be taken care of." Under such gloomy predictions began the most remarkable career the sea, which has produced so many heroes, has ever seen. Spain eventually conceded to British demands after a brief hesitation, so war was avoided, and the "Raisonnable," along with other ships, was taken out of service. However, the incident with the Falkland Islands had introduced Nelson to his profession, which he might not have had the chance to pursue otherwise. Starting so young, like many successful sailors of that time, he had limited education, and unlike some others, he didn’t later correct the quirky writing style and grammatical errors that often resulted from early neglect. His letters, while strong and straightforward, lack the polished language of Collingwood and the consistent correctness of St. Vincent and Saumarez, and they often contain awkward phrasing and poor English. However, there was rarely any confusion about his meaning, unlike what was sometimes said about Lord Howe.
Here, before fairly parting with the humble home life, of which the motherless boy had seen, and was throughout his career to see so little, is a fit place to introduce two anecdotes associated with those early days which his biographers have transmitted to us. We of these critical times have learned to look with incredulity, not always unmixed with derision, upon stories relating to the childhood of distinguished men; but it can safely be said that the two now to be given are in entire keeping, not merely with particular traits, but with the great ruling tenor of Nelson's whole life. He and his elder brother were going to school one winter day upon their ponies. Finding the snow so deep as to delay them seriously, they went back, and the elder reported that they could not get on. The father very judiciously replied: "If that be so, I have of course nothing to say; but I wish you to try again, and I leave it to your honour not to turn back, unless necessary." On the second attempt, the elder was more than once for returning; but Horatio stuck it out, repeating continually, "Remember it was left to our honour," and the difficult journey was accomplished.
Here, before we leave behind the simple home life that the motherless boy experienced, and would continue to experience so little of throughout his life, is a good moment to share two stories from those early days that his biographers have passed down to us. In these times, we tend to view stories about the childhoods of famous people with skepticism, often mixed with scorn. However, it can be confidently said that the two stories about to be shared align perfectly with not just specific traits, but with the overall character of Nelson's life. He and his older brother were on their way to school one winter day on their ponies. When they found the snow too deep to make progress, they turned back, and the older brother reported that they couldn’t continue. Their father wisely replied, “If that's the case, I have nothing to say; but I want you to try again, and I trust you to only turn back if it's necessary.” On their second attempt, the older brother wanted to give up more than once, but Horatio persisted, constantly urging, “Remember it was left to our honour,” and they successfully completed the challenging journey.
The children in this instance seem to have felt that there was danger in going on. The other recorded occurrence shows in the lad that indifference to personal benefit, as distinguished from the sense of conspicuous achievement, which was ever a prominent characteristic of the man. The master of his school had a very fine pear-tree, whose fruit the boys coveted, but upon which none dared hazard an attempt. At last Nelson, who did not share their desires, undertook the risk, climbed the tree by night, and carried off the pears, but refused to eat any of them,—saying that he had taken them only because the others were afraid.
The kids in this case seemed to sense there was danger in continuing. The other recorded incident highlights a boy's indifference to personal gain, which was different from the desire for impressive achievement that was always a key trait of the man. The headmaster of their school had a beautiful pear tree that the boys wanted, but none dared to try to take any. Eventually, Nelson, who didn’t share their desire, decided to take the risk, climbed the tree at night, and stole the pears but refused to eat any of them, saying he did it only because the others were too scared.
Trivial though these incidents may seem, they are so merely because they belong to the day of small things. To those accustomed to watch children, they will not appear unworthy of note. Taken together, they illustrate, as really as do his greatest deeds, the two forms assumed at different times by the one incentive which always most powerfully determined Nelson's action through life,—the motive to which an appeal was never made in vain. No material considerations, neither danger on the one hand, nor gain on the other, ever affected him as did that idealized conception which presented itself, now as duty, now as honor, according as it bore for the moment upon his relations to the state or to his own personality. "In my mind's eye," said he to his friend Captain Hardy, who afterwards bent over him as his spirit was parting amid the tumult of his last victory, "I ever saw a radiant orb suspended which beckoned me onward to renown." Nelson did not often verge upon the poetical in words, but to the poetry of lofty aspiration his inmost being always answered true.
Trivial as these incidents may seem, they only appear that way because they’re part of the small things in life. To those who pay attention to children, they won’t seem unworthy of note. Together, they illustrate, just as clearly as his greatest achievements, the two forms taken at different times by the one driving force that always strongly influenced Nelson's actions throughout his life—the motive that was never ignored. No material considerations, neither danger on one hand nor gain on the other, ever affected him as much as that idealized concept that presented itself, sometimes as duty and sometimes as honor, depending on how it related to the state or his own identity. "In my mind's eye," he told his friend Captain Hardy, who later leaned over him as he was passing away amid the chaos of his last victory, "I always saw a shining orb hovering that beckoned me toward glory." Nelson didn’t often use poetic language, but his true self always resonated with the poetry of high aspirations.
To the young naval officer of a century ago, especially if without political or social influence, it was a weighty advantage to be attached to some one commanding officer in active employment, who by favorable opportunity or through professional friendships could push the fortunes of those in whom he was interested. Much of the promotion was then in the hands of the admirals on foreign stations; and this local power to reward distinguished service, though liable to abuse in many ways, conduced greatly to stimulate the zeal and efforts of officers who felt themselves immediately under the eye of one who could make or mar their future. Each naval captain, also, could in his degree affect more or less the prospects of those dependent upon him. Thus Suckling, though not going to sea himself, continued with intelligent solicitude his promised care of the young Nelson. When the "Raisonnable" was paid off, he was transferred to the command of the "Triumph," of seventy-four guns, stationed as guard-ship in the river Medway; and to her also he took with him his nephew, who was borne upon her books for the two following years, which were, however, far from being a period of inactive harbor life. Having considerable professional interest, he saw to the lad's being kept afloat, and obtained for him from time to time such service as seemed most desirable to his enterprising spirit.
To the young naval officer a hundred years ago, especially if he lacked political or social connections, it was a significant advantage to be assigned to a commanding officer in active duty who, through good timing or professional relationships, could help advance the careers of those he cared about. A lot of promotions were in the hands of admirals stationed overseas, and this local authority to reward distinguished service, even if it could be misused in various ways, greatly motivated officers who knew they were directly under the eye of someone who could determine their future. Each naval captain could also influence the prospects of those who depended on him to some extent. For example, Suckling, even though he wasn’t going to sea himself, continued to watch over the young Nelson with great care as promised. When the "Raisonnable" was decommissioned, he was transferred to command the "Triumph," a seventy-four-gun ship stationed as a guard ship in the river Medway, and he brought along his nephew, who was listed on her roster for the next two years, which, however, were far from a period of inactive harbor life. With significant professional interests, he ensured the boy stayed active and secured him opportunities for experiences that aligned with his adventurous spirit.
The distinction between the merchant seaman and the man-of-war's man, or even the naval officer, in those days of sailing ships and simple weapons was much less sharply marked than it has since become. Skill in seamanship, from the use of the marlinespike and the sail-needle up to the full equipping of a ship and the handling of her under canvas, was in either service the prime essential. In both alike, cannon and small arms were carried; and the ship's company, in the peaceful trader as well as in the ship of war, expected to repel force with force, when meeting upon equal terms. With a reduced number of naval vessels in commission, and their quarter-decks consequently over-crowded with young officers, a youth was more likely to find on board them a life of untasked idleness than a call to professional occupation and improvement. Nelson therefore was sent by his careful guardian to a merchant-ship trading to the West Indies, to learn upon her, as a foremast hand, the elements of his profession, under conditions which, from the comparative fewness of the crew and the activity of the life, would tend to develop his powers most rapidly. In this vessel he imbibed, along with nautical knowledge, the prejudice which has usually existed, more or less, in the merchant marine against the naval service, due probably to the more rigorous exactions and longer terms of enlistment in the latter, although the life in other respects is one of less hardship; but in Nelson's day the feeling had been intensified by the practice of impressment, and by the severe, almost brutal discipline that obtained on board some ships of war, through the arbitrary use of their powers by captains, then insufficiently controlled by law. In this cruise he seems to have spent a little over a year; a time, however, that was not lost to him for the accomplishment of the period of service technically required to qualify as a lieutenant, his name continuing throughout on the books of the "Triumph," to which he returned in July, 1772.
The difference between a merchant seaman and a naval sailor, or even a naval officer, back in the days of sailing ships and basic weaponry was not as clearly defined as it has become over time. Being skilled in seamanship—ranging from using a marlinespike and sail needle to fully equipping a ship and managing her sails—was essential in both roles. Both carried cannons and small arms, and the crew on both merchant ships and warships was expected to defend themselves when faced with equal threats. With fewer naval vessels active and their decks crowded with young officers, a young man was more likely to find himself idle on these ships rather than being called to engage in professional duties and growth. Therefore, Nelson was sent by his caring guardian to a merchant ship trading to the West Indies to learn the basics of his profession as a foremast hand, in an environment where the smaller crew and active lifestyle would help him develop his skills quickly. On this ship, he gained not only nautical knowledge but also the bias that often existed in the merchant marine against the naval service, likely due to the harsher demands and longer enlistment periods in the latter. Though life in the navy was less demanding in other ways, during Nelson's time, this sentiment was heightened by practices like impressment and the harsh, almost brutal discipline enforced on some warships by captains who weren't adequately regulated by law. He seems to have spent just over a year on this voyage, a period that wasn't wasted for him regarding the service time required to qualify as a lieutenant; his name remained on the "Triumph" roster, where he returned in July 1772.
Suckling's care next insured for him a continuance of active, semi-detached duty, in the boats of the "Triumph,"—an employment very different from, and more responsible than, that in which he had recently been occupied, and particularly calculated to develop in so apt a nature the fearlessness of responsibility, both professional and personal, that was among the most prominent features of Nelson's character. "The test of a man's courage is responsibility," said that great admiral and shrewd judge of men, the Earl of St. Vincent, after a long and varied experience of naval officers; and none ever shone more brightly under this supreme proof than the lad whose career is now opening before us. It may be interesting, too, to note that this condition of more or less detached service, so early begun, in which, though not in chief command, he held an authority temporarily independent, and was immediately answerable for all that happened on the spot, was the singular characteristic of most of his brilliant course, during which, until 1803, two years before Trafalgar, he was only for brief periods commander-in-chief, yet almost always acted apart from his superior. Many a man, gallant, fearless, and capable, within signal distance of his admiral, has, when out of sight of the flag, succumbed with feeble knees to the burden of independent responsible action, though not beyond his professional powers. This strength, like all Nature's best gifts, is inborn; yet, both for the happy possessor and for the merely average man, it is susceptible of high development only by being early exercised, which was the good fortune of Nelson.
Suckling's support soon ensured that he continued with an active, semi-independent role on the boats of the "Triumph," a job that was quite different from and more responsible than what he had been doing recently. It was particularly suited to developing the natural fearlessness of responsibility, both professional and personal, that stood out in Nelson's character. "The true test of a man’s courage is responsibility," said the great admiral and keen judge of character, the Earl of St. Vincent, based on his extensive experience with naval officers. None demonstrated this trait more brilliantly than the young man whose career we are now exploring. It’s also interesting to note that this kind of semi-independent service, which started early on, had him in a position of temporary authority where he was directly accountable for everything that happened on-site, a notable feature throughout most of his remarkable journey. Until 1803, two years before Trafalgar, he was only briefly commander-in-chief but often operated separately from his superiors. Many brave, fearless, and capable men, close enough to their admiral to receive signals, have crumbled under the pressure of independent responsibility when out of sight of the flag, even when they were fully capable in their duties. This strength, like all of nature’s best qualities, is innate; however, both for those who possess it and for the average individual, it can only develop significantly through early practice, which was fortunate for Nelson.
Of these two years of somewhat irregular service, while nominally attached to the "Triumph," it will be well to give the account in his own words; for, having been written a full quarter of a century later, they record the deepest and most lasting impressions made upon him during that susceptible period when first becoming familiar with the calling he was to adorn:—
Of these two years of somewhat inconsistent service, while officially connected to the "Triumph," it’s best to share the story in his own words; because, written a whole 25 years later, they capture the strongest and most lasting effects on him during that impressionable time when he first got to know the profession he would eventually excel in:—
"The business with Spain being accommodated, I was sent in a West India ship belonging to the house of Hibbert, Purrier, and Horton, with Mr. John Rathbone, who had formerly been in the Navy, in the Dreadnought with Captain Suckling. From this voyage I returned to the Triumph at Chatham in July, 1772; and, if I did not improve in my education, I returned a practical Seaman, with a horror of the Royal Navy, and with a saying, then constant with the Seamen, 'Aft the most honour, forward the better man!' It was many weeks before I got the least reconciled to a Man-of-War, so deep was the prejudice rooted; and what pains were taken to instil this erroneous principle in a young mind! However, as my ambition was to be a Seaman, it was always held out as a reward, that if I attended well to my navigation, I should go in the cutter and decked long-boat, which was attached to the Commanding officer's ship at Chatham. Thus by degrees I became a good pilot, for vessels of that description, from Chatham to the Tower of London, down the Swin, and the North Foreland; and confident of myself amongst rocks and sands, which has many times since been of great comfort to me. In this way I was trained, till the expedition towards the North Pole was fitted out; when, although no boys were allowed to go in the Ships, (as of no use,) yet nothing could prevent my using every interest to go with Captain Lutwidge in the Carcass; and, as I fancied I was to fill a man's place, I begged I might be his cockswain; which, finding my ardent desire for going with him, Captain Lutwidge complied with, and has continued the strictest friendship to this moment. Lord Mulgrave, whom I then first knew, maintained his kindest friendship and regard to the last moment of his life. When the boats were fitting out to quit the two Ships blocked up in the ice, I exerted myself to have the command of a four-oared cutter raised upon, which was given me, with twelve men; and I prided myself in fancying I could navigate her better than any other boat in the Ship."
"The situation with Spain settled, I was sent on a West India ship owned by Hibbert, Purrier, and Horton, alongside Mr. John Rathbone, who had previously served in the Navy on the Dreadnought with Captain Suckling. I returned to the Triumph at Chatham in July, 1772; and while I may not have advanced my education, I came back as a skilled seaman, harboring a strong dislike for the Royal Navy, along with a saying popular among sailors at the time, 'Aft the most honour, forward the better man!' It took me weeks to become even a little accustomed to a Man-of-War, so deeply ingrained was the bias against it; and great efforts were made to instill this misguided belief in young minds! However, since I aspired to be a seaman, it was always presented as a reward that if I paid attention to my navigation, I could go out in the cutter and decked long-boat attached to the commanding officer's ship at Chatham. Gradually, I became a skilled pilot for ships of that type, navigating from Chatham to the Tower of London, down the Swin, and the North Foreland; and I grew confident among rocks and sand, which has been a great comfort to me many times since. I was trained this way until the expedition towards the North Pole was organized; although boys weren't allowed to join the ships as they were considered useless, I spared no effort to use every connection I had to go with Captain Lutwidge on the Carcass; and since I believed I was going to take on a man's role, I asked to be his coxswain. Captain Lutwidge, recognizing my strong desire to accompany him, agreed, and he has maintained a loyal friendship with me ever since. Lord Mulgrave, whom I met then for the first time, remained a dear friend and support until the end of his life. When preparations were underway to leave the two ships trapped in the ice, I worked hard to take command of a four-oared cutter that was being launched, which I was given along with twelve men; I took great pride in believing I could navigate her better than any other boat in the ship."
It will be recognized from this brief yet suggestive and characteristic narrative, that, however valuable and even indispensable may have been his uncle's assistance in forwarding his wishes, it was his own ambition and his own impulse that even at this early day gave direction to his course, and obtained opportunities which would scarcely have been offered spontaneously to one of his physical frailty. In this Arctic expedition he underwent the experiences common to all who tempt those icebound seas. During it occurred an incident illustrative of Nelson's recklessness of personal danger,—a very different thing from official recklessness, which he never showed even in his moments of greatest daring and highest inspiration. The story is so hackneyed by frequent repetition as to make its relation a weariness to the biographer, the more so that the trait of extreme rashness in youth is one by no means so rare as to be specially significant of Nelson's character. It will be given in the words of his first biographers:—
It can be seen from this brief yet revealing narrative that, no matter how valuable and even essential his uncle's support was in helping him achieve his goals, it was his own ambition and drive that, even at this early stage, guided his path and created opportunities that would hardly have been offered to someone with his physical fragility. During this Arctic expedition, he faced the experiences that everyone encounters when challenging those frozen seas. There was an event that highlighted Nelson's disregard for personal safety—a very different matter from the official recklessness he never displayed, even in moments of his greatest bravery and inspiration. The story is so overused through frequent retelling that it has become tedious for the biographer, especially since the trait of extreme impulsiveness in youth isn’t particularly rare or uniquely indicative of Nelson’s character. It will be presented in the words of his first biographers:—
"There is also an anecdote recollected by Admiral Lutwidge, which marked the filial attention of his gallant cockswain. Among the gentlemen on the quarter-deck of the Carcass, who were not rated midshipmen, there was, besides young Nelson, a daring shipmate of his, to whom he had become attached. One night, during the mid-watch, it was concerted between them that they should steal together from the ship, and endeavour to obtain a bear's skin. The clearness of the nights in those high latitudes rendered the accomplishment of this object extremely difficult: they, however, seem to have taken advantage of the haze of an approaching fog, and thus to have escaped unnoticed. Nelson in high spirits led the way over the frightful chasms in the ice, armed with a rusty musket. It was not, however, long before the adventurers were missed by those on board; and, as the fog had come on very thick, the anxiety of Captain Lutwidge and his officers was very great. Between three and four in the morning the mist somewhat dispersed, and the hunters were discovered at a considerable distance, attacking a large bear. The signal was instantly made for their return; but it was in vain that Nelson's companion urged him to obey it. He was at this time divided by a chasm in the ice from his shaggy antagonist, which probably saved his life; for the musket had flashed in the pan, and their ammunition was expended. 'Never mind,' exclaimed Horatio, 'do but let me get a blow at this devil with the but-end of my musket, and we shall have him.' His companion, finding that entreaty was in vain, regained the ship. The captain, seeing the young man's danger, ordered a gun to be fired to terrify the enraged animal. This had the desired effect; but Nelson was obliged to return without his bear, somewhat agitated with the apprehension of the consequence of this adventure. Captain Lutwidge, though he could not but admire so daring a disposition, reprimanded him rather sternly for such rashness, and for conduct so unworthy of the situation he occupied; and desired to know what motive he could have for hunting a bear? Being thought by his captain to have acted in a manner unworthy of his situation, made a deep impression on the high-minded cockswain; who, pouting his lip, as he was wont to do when agitated, replied, 'Sir, I wished to kill the bear, that I might carry its skin to my father.'"
"There’s also a story remembered by Admiral Lutwidge that highlights the devoted nature of his courageous coxswain. Among the men on the quarter-deck of the Carcass, who weren't midshipmen, there was, besides young Nelson, a daring friend of his, with whom he had formed a bond. One night, during the midnight watch, they agreed to sneak off the ship together in an attempt to get a bear's skin. The clarity of the nights in those high latitudes made this goal extremely challenging; however, they seemed to have taken advantage of an approaching fog to slip away unnoticed. Nelson, in high spirits, led the way over the scary cracks in the ice with a rusty musket in hand. It wasn't long before the two adventurers were missed by those on board, and with the fog thickening, Captain Lutwidge and his officers became very anxious. Between three and four in the morning, the mist began to lift, and the hunters were spotted at a great distance, attacking a large bear. A signal was immediately sent for their return, but Nelson's friend pleaded in vain for him to comply. At this moment, Nelson was separated from the furry foe by a gap in the ice, which likely saved his life, as the musket had misfired and their ammunition was gone. 'Never mind,' Horatio exclaimed, 'just let me get a hit on this beast with the butt of my musket, and we’ll get him.' His friend, realizing that pleading was pointless, made his way back to the ship. The captain, recognizing the young man's peril, ordered a cannon to be fired to scare off the angry animal. This had the intended effect, but Nelson had to return without his bear, feeling somewhat anxious about the consequences of the adventure. Captain Lutwidge, though he couldn’t help but admire such a bold spirit, scolded him rather sternly for his recklessness and for behavior unworthy of his position, asking him what could have motivated him to hunt a bear. Being viewed by his captain as having acted below his station deeply affected the proud coxswain, who, pouting as he did when upset, replied, 'Sir, I wanted to kill the bear so I could take its skin to my father.'"
Upon his return to England from the Arctic Seas, Nelson again by his own choice determined his immediate future. Within a fortnight of leaving the "Carcass," he was, through his uncle's influence, received on board by the captain of the "Seahorse," of twenty guns, one of the ships composing a squadron that was just then fitting out for the East Indies. To quote himself, "Nothing less than such a distant voyage could in the least satisfy my desire of maritime knowledge." During an absence of three years he for much of the time, as formerly in his West India cruise, did the duty of a seaman aloft, from which he was afterwards rated midshipman, and placed, this time finally, upon the quarter-deck as an officer. In the ordinary course of cruising in peace times, he visited every part of the station from Bengal to Bussorah; but the climate, trying even to vigorous Europeans, proved too much for his frail health. After a couple of years he broke down and was invalided home, reaching England in September, 1776. His escape from death was attributed by himself to the kind care of Captain Pigot of the "Dolphin," in which ship he came back. At this period we are told that, when well, he was of florid countenance, rather stout and athletic; but, as the result of his illness, he was reduced to a mere skeleton, and for some time entirely lost the use of his limbs,—a distressing symptom, that returned upon him a few years later after his Central American expedition in 1780, and confirms the impression of extreme fragility of constitution, which is frequently indicated in other ways.
Upon his return to England from the Arctic Seas, Nelson again chose his own path for the future. Within two weeks of leaving the "Carcass," he was, thanks to his uncle's influence, taken on board the "Seahorse," a twenty-gun ship that was part of a squadron being prepared for the East Indies. As he put it, "Nothing less than such a distant voyage could possibly satisfy my desire for maritime knowledge." During his three-year absence, he spent much of the time, just like his West Indies cruise, working as a seaman aloft, after which he was promoted to midshipman and finally placed on the quarter-deck as an officer. Normally, during peacetime cruising, he visited every corner of the station from Bengal to Bussorah; however, the challenging climate, even for robust Europeans, took a toll on his weak health. After a couple of years, he broke down and was sent back home, reaching England in September 1776. He attributed his survival to the kind care of Captain Pigot of the "Dolphin," the ship that brought him back. At this time, it’s noted that when he was well, he had a flushed complexion, was somewhat stout and athletic; but after his illness, he was reduced to a mere skeleton and completely lost the use of his limbs for a time—this distressing symptom returned a few years later after his Central American expedition in 1780, reinforcing the notion of his extreme fragility, which was often indicated in other ways.
During this absence in the East Indies Captain Suckling, in April, 1775, had been named Comptroller of the Navy,—a civil position, but one that carried with it power and consequent influence. This probably told for much in obtaining for Nelson, who was but just eighteen, and had not yet passed the examinations for his first promotion, an acting appointment as lieutenant. With this he joined a small ship-of-the-line, the "Worcester," of sixty-four guns, on board which he remained for six months, engaged in convoy duty between the Channel and Gibraltar, seeing from her decks for the first time the waters of the Mediterranean and its approaches, since then indissolubly associated with his name and his glory. He took with him a letter from his uncle to the captain of his new ship; but while such introduction, coming from so influential a quarter, doubtless contributed powerfully to clear from his path the obstacles commonly encountered by young men, Nelson had gained for himself a reputation for professional capacity, which, here as throughout his life, quickly won him the full confidence of his superiors. In later years, when his admiral's flag was flying, he recorded, with evident pride in the recollection, that while on board the "Worcester," notwithstanding his youth, his captain used to say, "He felt as easy when I was upon deck as any officer of the ship." It is doubtful, indeed, whether Nelson ever possessed in a high degree the delicate knack of handling a ship with the utmost dexterity and precision. He certainly had not the reputation for so doing. Codrington,—a thorough Nelsonian, to use his own somewhat factious expression—used to say in later years, "Lord Nelson was no seaman; even in the earlier stages of the profession his genius had soared higher, and all his energies were turned to becoming a great commander." His apprenticeship, before reaching command, was probably too short; and, as captain, his generous disposition to trust others to do work for which he knew them fitted, would naturally lead him to throw the manipulation of the vessel upon his subordinates. But although, absorbed by broader and deeper thoughts of the responsibilities and opportunities of a naval commander, to which he was naturally attracted by both his genius and his temperament, he was excelled in technical skill by many who had no touch of his own inspiration, he nevertheless possessed a thoroughly competent knowledge of his profession as a simple seaman; which, joined to his zeal, energy, and intelligence, would more than justify the confidence expressed by his early commander. Of this knowledge he gave full proof a year later, when, before a board of captains, strangers to him, he successfully passed his examinations for a lieutenancy. His uncle Suckling, as Comptroller of the Navy, was indeed on the Board; but he concealed the fact of relationship until the other members had expressed themselves satisfied.
During his time away in the East Indies, Captain Suckling was appointed Comptroller of the Navy in April 1775. This was a civil role, but it came with power and influence. This likely played a big part in helping Nelson, who was only eighteen and hadn’t yet completed the exams for his first promotion, land an acting appointment as a lieutenant. He joined a small ship of the line, the "Worcester," with sixty-four guns, where he spent six months on convoy duty between the Channel and Gibraltar. From her decks, he saw the Mediterranean and its waters for the first time, which would later be closely tied to his name and legacy. He brought along a letter from his uncle introducing him to the captain of his new ship; although having such an influential introduction surely helped him avoid the usual challenges faced by young men, Nelson had already built a solid reputation for his skills, which quickly earned him the trust of his superiors. In later years, with his admiral's flag flying, he proudly recalled that during his time on the "Worcester," despite his youth, his captain would say, "He felt as easy when I was on deck as any officer of the ship." It’s debatable whether Nelson was especially skilled at handling a ship with great dexterity and precision; he didn’t have that reputation. Codrington, a true admirer of Nelson, would later say, “Lord Nelson was no seaman; even in the earlier stages of his career, his genius was focused on becoming a great commander.” His apprenticeship before taking command was probably too brief, and as a captain, his generous tendency to delegate tasks he trusted others to do naturally led him to let his subordinates manage the vessel. However, while he was focused on the broader responsibilities and opportunities of being a naval commander—drawn to this by his brilliance and temperament—many skilled sailors lacked his unique inspiration. Nevertheless, he had a good grasp of his profession as a basic seaman, and this combined with his zeal, energy, and intelligence justified the confidence his early captain had in him. He demonstrated this knowledge a year later when he successfully passed his lieutenant exams in front of a board of captains who didn’t know him. His uncle Suckling was indeed on the board, but he kept their relationship a secret until the other members expressed their satisfaction.
His examination was held within a week of his leaving the "Worcester," on the 8th of April, 1777; and Suckling once more, but for the last time in his life, was able to exert his influence in behalf of his relative by promptly securing for him, not only his promotion to lieutenant, which many waited for long, but with it his commission, dated April 10, to the "Lowestoffe," a frigate of thirty-two guns. This class of vessel was in the old days considered particularly desirable for young officers, being more active than ships-of-the-line, while at the same time more comfortable, and a better school for the forming of an officer, than were the smaller cruisers; and his uncle probably felt that Nelson, whose service hitherto had been mainly upon the latter, needed yet to perfect the habits and methods distinctive of a ship of war, for he now wrote him a letter upon the proprieties of naval conduct, excellently conceived, yet embracing particulars that should scarcely have been necessary to one who had served his time on board well-ordered ships. The appointment to the "Lowestoffe" was further fortunate, both for him and for us, as in the commander of the vessel, Captain William Locker, he found, not only an admirable officer and gentleman, but a friend for whom he formed a lasting attachment, ending only with Locker's death in 1800, two years after the Battle of the Nile. To this friendship we owe the fullest record, at his own hands, of his early career; for Locker kept the numerous letters written him by Nelson while still an unknown young man. Of sixty-seven which now remain, covering the years from 1777 to 1783, all but thirty were to this one correspondent.
His examination took place within a week after he left the "Worcester," on April 8, 1777. Suckling was once again, but for the last time in his life, able to use his influence for his relative by quickly securing not only his promotion to lieutenant, which many had waited a long time for, but also his commission, dated April 10, to the "Lowestoffe," a thirty-two-gun frigate. This type of ship was considered particularly desirable for young officers in the past, as it was more maneuverable than ships-of-the-line, while also being more comfortable and a better environment for developing an officer's skills than the smaller cruisers. His uncle probably felt that Nelson, whose service so far had mainly been on the latter, still needed to refine the habits and techniques unique to a warship, so he wrote him a letter on proper naval conduct, well thought out but covering details that should hardly have been needed by someone who had served his time on well-managed ships. The appointment to the "Lowestoffe" was also fortunate for him and for us, as in the ship’s captain, William Locker, he found not only an excellent officer and gentleman but also a friend with whom he formed a lasting bond, lasting until Locker's death in 1800, two years after the Battle of the Nile. To this friendship, we owe the most complete record, from his own hand, of his early career; Locker kept the many letters written to him by Nelson while he was still an unknown young man. Out of sixty-seven letters that remain, covering the years from 1777 to 1783, all but thirty were addressed to this one correspondent.
In another respect the appointment to the "Lowestoffe" was fortunate for Nelson. The ship was destined to the West Indies—or, to speak more precisely, to Jamaica, which was a command distinct from that of the eastern Caribbean, or Lesser Antilles, officially styled the Leeward Islands Station. Great Britain was then fully embarked in the war with her North American colonies, which ended in their independence; and the course of events was hastening her to the rupture with France and Spain that followed within a year. In this protracted contest the chief scene of naval hostilities was to be the West Indies; but beyond even the casualties of war, the baneful climate of that region insured numerous vacancies by prostration and death, with consequent chances of promotion for those who escaped the fevers, and found favor in the eyes of their commander-in-chief. The brutal levity of the old toast, "A bloody war and a sickly season," nowhere found surer fulfilment than on those pestilence-stricken coasts. Captain Locker's health soon gave way. Arriving at Jamaica on the 19th of July, 1777, we find Nelson in the following month writing to him from the ship during an absence produced by a serious illness, from which fatal results were feared. The letter, like all those to Locker, was marked by that tone of quick, eager sympathy, of genial inclination always to say the kindest thing, that characterized his correspondence, and, generally, his intercourse with others,—traits that through life made him, beyond most men, acceptable and beloved. He was, from first to last, not merely one of those whose services are forced upon others by sheer weight of ability, because indispensable,—though this, too, he was,—but men wanted him because, although at times irritable, especially after the wounds received in later years, he was an easy yoke-fellow, pleasant to deal with, cordial and ready to support those above him, a tolerant and appreciative master to subordinates. It may even be said that, in matters indifferent to him, he too readily reflected the feelings, views, and wishes of those about him; but when they clashed with his own fixed convictions, he was immovable. As he himself said in such a case, "I feel I am perfectly right, and you know upon those occasions I am not famous for giving up a point."
In another way, getting assigned to the "Lowestoffe" was lucky for Nelson. The ship was headed to the West Indies—or more specifically, to Jamaica, which had a separate command from the eastern Caribbean, or Lesser Antilles, officially known as the Leeward Islands Station. Great Britain was fully engaged in a war with its North American colonies, which would end in their independence; events were quickly leading to a break with France and Spain that would follow within a year. In this long conflict, the primary area of naval battles was to be the West Indies; but beyond the casualties of war, the harsh climate of the region led to many vacancies due to illness and death, increasing the chances for those who survived the fevers and earned the favor of their commander-in-chief. The dark humor of the old saying, "A bloody war and a sickly season," was nowhere more true than on those disease-ridden shores. Captain Locker's health quickly deteriorated. Arriving in Jamaica on July 19, 1777, we find Nelson writing to him from the ship the following month during Locker's absence caused by a serious illness, with fatal outcomes feared. The letter, like all his correspondence with Locker, was filled with quick, eager sympathy and a warm inclination to say the kindest things, traits that made him, throughout his life, particularly likable and beloved. He was never just one of those people whose skills and services are forced upon others by sheer necessity—though he certainly was that too—but people wanted him around because, despite being occasionally irritable, especially after being wounded in later years, he was an easy person to get along with, pleasant to deal with, supportive of those above him, and a tolerant and appreciative leader to his subordinates. It could even be said that, in things that didn't concern him much, he often reflected the feelings, opinions, and wishes of those around him too readily; but when those clashed with his own strong beliefs, he was unyielding. As he himself stated in such instances, "I feel I am perfectly right, and you know, on those occasions, I'm not known for backing down."
Of his connection with the "Lowestoffe" he himself, in the short autobiographical sketch before quoted, mentions two circumstances, which, from the very fact of their remaining so long in his memory, illustrate temperament. "Even a frigate," he says, "was not sufficiently active for my mind, and I got into a schooner, tender to the Lowestoffe. In this vessel I made myself a complete pilot for all the passages through the [Keys] Islands situated on the north side Hispaniola." This kind of service, it will be noted, was in direct sequence, as to training, to his handling of the "Triumph's" long-boat in the lower waters of the Thames, and would naturally contribute to increase that "confidence in himself among rocks and sands," which was afterwards to be so "great a comfort" to him. In his later career he had frequent and pressing need of that particular form of professional judgment and self-reliance for which these early experiences stood him in good stead. As he afterwards wrote to the First Lord of the Admiralty, when pleading the cause of a daring and skilful officer who had run his ship ashore: "If I had been censured every time I have run my ship, or fleets under my command, into great danger, I should long ago have been out of the service, and never in the House of Peers." At the critical instants of the Nile and Copenhagen, as well as in the less conspicuous but more prolonged anxieties of the operations off Corsica and along the Riviera of Genoa, this early habit, grafted upon the singularly steady nerve wherewith he was endowed by nature, sustained him at a height of daring and achievement to which very few have been able to rise.
Of his connection with the "Lowestoffe," he mentions in the short autobiographical sketch previously quoted two events that have stuck with him, highlighting his temperament. "Even a frigate," he says, "was not fast enough for my mind, so I joined a schooner, which was a tender to the Lowestoffe. In this vessel, I became a complete pilot for all the passages through the [Keys] Islands on the north side of Hispaniola." This kind of service was a direct continuation of his training from handling the "Triumph's" long-boat in the lower waters of the Thames, and naturally helped to boost that "confidence in himself among rocks and sands," which would later be such a "great comfort" to him. Throughout his later career, he frequently needed that particular kind of professional judgment and self-reliance that these early experiences provided him. As he later wrote to the First Lord of the Admiralty when advocating for a bold and skilled officer who had run his ship aground: "If I had been criticized every time I ran my ship, or fleets under my command, into serious danger, I would have long ago been out of the service and never in the House of Peers." At the crucial moments of the Nile and Copenhagen, as well as during the less dramatic but more drawn-out worries of operations off Corsica and along the Riviera of Genoa, this early habit—combined with the remarkable steadiness he was naturally gifted with—sustained him to a level of boldness and achievement that very few have reached.
The other incident recorded by him as happening while on board the "Lowestoffe," he himself cites as illustrative of temperament. "Whilst in this frigate, an event happened which presaged my character; and, as it conveys no dishonour to the officer alluded to, I shall insert it. Blowing a gale of wind, and a very heavy sea, the frigate captured an American letter-of-marque. The first Lieutenant was ordered to board her, which he did not do, owing to the very heavy sea. On his return, the Captain said, 'Have I no officer in the ship who can board the prize?' On which the Master ran to the gangway, to get into the boat: when I stopped him, saying, 'It is my turn now; and if I come back, it is yours.' This little incident," he continues, "has often occurred to my mind; and I know it is my disposition, that difficulties and dangers do but increase my desire of attempting them." An action of this sort, in its results unimportant, gives keener satisfaction in the remembrance than do greater deeds, because more purely individual,—entirely one's own. It is upon such as this, rather than upon his victories, that Nelson in his narrative dwells caressingly. His personal daring at St. Vincent, and against the gunboats off Cadiz, ministered more directly to his self-esteem, to that consciousness of high desert which was dear to him, than did the Battle of the Nile, whose honors he, though ungrudgingly, shared with his "band of brothers."
The other incident he recorded while on board the "Lowestoffe" he describes as reflective of his personality. "While serving on this frigate, something happened that revealed my character; and since it doesn't bring any dishonor to the officer in question, I'll share it. During a strong storm and heavy seas, the frigate captured an American letter-of-marque. The first Lieutenant was ordered to board her, but he didn’t do it because of the rough seas. When he came back, the Captain asked, 'Do we have no officer on the ship who can board the prize?' Then the Master rushed to the gangway to get into the boat, but I stopped him, saying, 'It's my turn now; and if I come back, it’s yours.' I've often thought about this little incident, and I know that my nature is such that difficulties and dangers only make me more eager to tackle them." An action like this, though its outcomes are minor, brings a sense of satisfaction in memory that often surpasses greater accomplishments because it is more purely individual—entirely one's own. It is on moments like this, rather than on his victories, that Nelson fondly reflects in his narrative. His personal bravery at St. Vincent and against the gunboats off Cadiz contributed more directly to his self-esteem, to that sense of high merit that meant so much to him, than did the Battle of the Nile, which he, though generously, shared with his "band of brothers."
When the "Lowestoffe" had been a year upon the station, it became very doubtful whether Locker could continue in her, and finally he did go home ill. It was probably due to this uncertainty that he obtained the transfer of Nelson, in whom he had become most affectionately interested, to the "Bristol," flagship of Sir Peter Parker, the commander-in-chief. Here, under the admiral's own eye, warmly recommended by his last captain, and with a singular faculty for enlisting the love and esteem of all with whom he was brought into contact, the young officer's prospects were of the fairest; nor did the event belie them. Joining the "Bristol" as her third lieutenant, not earlier than July, 1778, he had by the end of September risen "by succession"—to use his own phrase—to be first; a promotion by seniority whose rapidity attests the rate at which vacancies occurred. Both Parker and his wife became very fond of him, cared for him in illness, and in later years she wrote to him upon each of the occasions on which he most brilliantly distinguished himself—after St. Vincent, the Nile, and Copenhagen. "Your mother," said she after the first, "could not have heard of your deeds with more affection; nor could she be more rejoiced at your personal escape from all the dangers of that glorious day;" and again, after the Nile, "Sir Peter and I have ever regarded you as a son." The letter following the victory at Copenhagen has not been published; but Nelson, whose heart was never reluctant to gratitude nor to own obligation, wrote in reply: "Believe me when I say that I am as sensible as ever that I owe my present position in life to your and good Sir Peter's partiality for me, and friendly remembrance of Maurice Suckling."
When the "Lowestoffe" had spent a year on the station, it became very uncertain whether Locker could stay on her, and ultimately he returned home ill. This uncertainty likely led him to arrange for Nelson, whom he had grown quite fond of, to be transferred to the "Bristol," flagship of Sir Peter Parker, the commander-in-chief. There, under the admiral's direct supervision, supported by his last captain, and with a remarkable ability to earn the affection and respect of everyone he met, the young officer's prospects looked bright, and events bore that out. Joining the "Bristol" as her third lieutenant no later than July 1778, he had by the end of September risen "by succession"—to use his own words—to first lieutenant; a seniority promotion that highlights how quickly vacancies appeared. Both Parker and his wife grew very fond of him, took care of him when he was sick, and in later years, she wrote to him each time he achieved notable success—after St. Vincent, the Nile, and Copenhagen. "Your mother," she wrote after the first, "could not have learned of your accomplishments with more affection; nor could she be more delighted at your safe return from all the dangers of that glorious day;" and again, after the Nile, "Sir Peter and I have always thought of you as a son." The letter following the victory at Copenhagen has not been published; however, Nelson, whose heart was always open to gratitude and acknowledging his debts, replied: "Believe me when I say that I am as aware as ever that I owe my current position in life to your and good Sir Peter's favor towards me, and to the kind remembrance of Maurice Suckling."
This last allusion indicates some disinterestedness in Parker's patronage, and its vital importance to Nelson at that time. Captain Suckling had died in July, 1778, and with him departed the only powerful support upon which the young lieutenant could then count, apart from his own merits and the friends obtained by them. There was in those days an immense difference in prospects between the nephew of the Comptroller of the Navy and a man unknown at headquarters. By what leading principles, if any, Sir Peter Parker was guided in the distribution of his favors, can scarcely now be ascertained; but that he brought rapidly forward two men of such great yet widely differing merit as Nelson and Collingwood, is a proof that his judgment was sound and the station one where vacancies were frequent. Collingwood, who was then a lieutenant on board a sloop-of-war, went to the "Lowestoffe" in Nelson's place. When the latter, in December, 1778, was made commander into the brig "Badger," the other was transferred to the vacant room in the "Bristol;" and when Nelson, on the 11th of June, 1779, became post-captain in the "Hinchinbrook" frigate, Collingwood again followed him as commander of the "Badger." Finally, when through a death vacancy a better frigate offered for Nelson, Collingwood also was posted into the "Hinchinbrook;" this ship thus having the singular distinction of conferring the highest rank obtainable by selection, and so fixing the final position of the two life-long friends who led the columns at Trafalgar, the crowning achievement of the British Navy as well as of their own illustrious careers. The coincidence at the earlier date may have been partly factitious, due to a fad of the commander-in-chief; but it assumes a different and very impressive aspect viewed in the light of their later close association, especially when it is recalled that Collingwood also succeeded, upon Nelson's death, to the Mediterranean command, and was there worn out, as his predecessor fell, in the discharge of his duty upon that important station, which thus proved fatal to them both. Few historic parallels are so complete. Sir Peter Parker, living until 1811, survived both his illustrious juniors, and at the age of eighty-two followed Nelson's coffin, as chief mourner at the imposing obsequies, where the nation, from the highest to the lowest, mingled the exultation of triumph with weeping for the loss of its best-beloved.
This last reference shows some lack of self-interest in Parker's support, and how crucial it was for Nelson at that time. Captain Suckling had died in July 1778, and with him went the only strong backing that the young lieutenant could rely on, aside from his own skills and the friends he made through them. Back then, there was a huge gap in opportunities between the nephew of the Comptroller of the Navy and someone who was unknown at headquarters. It’s hard to tell now what guiding principles, if any, Sir Peter Parker followed when giving out his support, but the fact that he quickly promoted two men of such great yet very different abilities as Nelson and Collingwood shows that his judgment was solid, and that the position was one where openings were common. Collingwood, who was then a lieutenant on a sloop-of-war, took Nelson's position on the "Lowestoffe." When Nelson became commander of the brig "Badger" in December 1778, Collingwood was transferred to the open position on the "Bristol;" and when Nelson became post-captain of the "Hinchinbrook" frigate on June 11, 1779, Collingwood again followed as commander of the "Badger." Finally, when a better frigate became available for Nelson due to a death vacancy, Collingwood was also assigned to the "Hinchinbrook;" this ship therefore has the unique distinction of bestowing the highest rank obtainable by selection, effectively determining the final positions of the two lifelong friends who led the fleets at Trafalgar, the pinnacle achievement of the British Navy and their own outstanding careers. The earlier coincidence may have been partly artificial, due to a trend of the commander-in-chief; however, it takes on a different and very impressive significance when viewed in the context of their later close partnership, especially considering that Collingwood also succeeded Nelson in command of the Mediterranean following his death, ultimately wearing himself out, just as his predecessor had, in the execution of his duties on that critical station, which proved fatal for both of them. Few historical parallels are as complete. Sir Peter Parker, who lived until 1811, outlived both of his distinguished juniors, and at the age of eighty-two followed Nelson's coffin as the chief mourner at the grand funeral, where the nation, from the highest to the lowest, combined the joy of victory with mourning for its most cherished loss.
Of Nelson's exterior at this time, his early biographers have secured an account which, besides its value as a portrait, possesses the further interest of mentioning explicitly that charm of manner which was one of his best birth-gifts, reflecting, as it did, the generous and kindly temper of his heart. "The personal appearance of Captain Nelson at this period of his life, owing to his delicate health and diminutive figure, was far from expressing the greatness of his intellectual powers. From his earliest years, like Cleomenes, the hero of Sparta, he had been enamoured of glory, and had possessed a greatness of mind. Nelson preserved, also, a similar temperance and simplicity of manners. Nature, as Plutarch adds of the noble Spartan, had given a spur to his mind which rendered him impetuous in the pursuit of whatever he deemed honourable. The demeanour of this extraordinary young man was entirely the demeanour of a British seaman; when the energies of his mind were not called forth by some object of duty, or professional interest, he seemed to retire within himself, and to care but little for the refined courtesies of polished life." No saving sense of humor seems to have suggested that the profane might here ask, "Is this the British seaman?" "In his dress he had all the cleanliness of an Englishman, though his manner of wearing it gave him an air of negligence; and yet his general address and conversation, when he wished to please, possessed a charm that was irresistible."[2]
Of Nelson's appearance during this time, his early biographers provide an account that, besides being a valuable portrait, also highlights the charm of his demeanor, which was one of his greatest natural gifts, reflecting the generous and kind nature of his heart. "Captain Nelson's looks at this stage of his life, due to his fragile health and small stature, did not convey the greatness of his intellectual capabilities. From a young age, much like Cleomenes, the hero of Sparta, he had been captivated by glory and possessed a remarkable mind. Nelson also maintained a similar sense of moderation and simplicity in his behavior. Nature, as Plutarch noted about the noble Spartan, had instilled in him a drive that made him passionate in seeking out anything he considered honorable. The conduct of this extraordinary young man was entirely that of a British sailor; when his mental energies weren't engaged by some duty or professional interest, he seemed to withdraw into himself and showed little concern for the refined niceties of elegant life." There seems to be no saving sense of humor to suggest that the irreverent might ask, "Is this the British sailor?" "In his attire, he had all the cleanliness of an Englishman, although the way he wore it gave him a somewhat careless air; yet his general demeanor and conversation, when he aimed to be pleasing, held an irresistible charm."[2]
In June, 1779, when posted into the "Hinchinbrook," Nelson wanted still three months of being twenty-one. By the custom of the British Navy, then and now, promotions from the grade of Captain to that of Admiral are made by seniority only. Once a captain, therefore, a man's future was assured, so far as concerned the possibility of juniors passing over his head,—neither favor nor merit could procure that; his rank relatively to others was finally fixed. The practical difficulty of getting at a captain of conspicuous ability, to make of him a flag-officer, was met by one of those clumsy yet adequate expedients by which the practical English mind contrives to reconcile respect for precedent with the demands of emergency. There being then no legal limit to the number of admirals, a promotion was in such case made of all captains down to and including the one wanted; and Lord St. Vincent, one of the most thorough-going of naval statesmen, is credited with the declaration that he would promote a hundred down the list of captains, if necessary, to reach the one demanded by the needs of the country. Even with this rough-riding over obstacles,—for the other officers promoted, however useful in their former grade, not being wanted as admirals, remained perforce unemployed,—the advantage of reaching post-rank betimes is evident enough; and to this chiefly Nelson referred in acknowledging his permanent indebtedness to Sir Peter Parker. With this early start, every artificial impediment was cleared from his path; his extraordinary ability was able to assert itself, and could be given due opportunity, without a too violent straining of service methods. He had, indeed, to wait eighteen years for his flag-rank; but even so, he obtained it while still in the very prime of his energies, before he was thirty-nine,—a good fortune equalled by none of his most distinguished contemporaries.[3]
In June 1779, when assigned to the "Hinchinbrook," Nelson was still three months shy of turning twenty-one. According to the customs of the British Navy, both then and now, promotions from Captain to Admiral are based solely on seniority. Therefore, once a man became a captain, his future was essentially secured in terms of not being passed over by junior officers—neither favoritism nor merit could change that; his rank relative to others was permanently established. The practical challenge of selecting a highly skilled captain to promote to flag officer was addressed through one of those awkward yet effective methods by which the practical English mind balances adherence to tradition with the need for quick action. Since there was no legal limit on the number of admirals at that time, promotions were made to all captains below and including the one needed; Lord St. Vincent, one of the most committed naval leaders, is said to have declared that he would promote a hundred captains down the list if it was necessary to get to the one required for the country's needs. Even with this rough approach to overcoming obstacles—because the other officers promoted, although competent in their previous roles, were not needed as admirals and remained inactive—the benefits of achieving flag rank early are clear; this is what Nelson referred to when he acknowledged his lasting gratitude to Sir Peter Parker. With this early opportunity, all artificial barriers were removed from his path; his exceptional talent could emerge and be recognized without too much disruption to service norms. He did have to wait eighteen years for his flag rank, but even so, he received it while still in his prime—before he turned thirty-nine—a stroke of luck unmatched by any of his most notable contemporaries.[3]
A somewhat singular feature of this early promotion of Nelson is that it was accorded without the claim of service in actual battle,—a circumstance that seems yet more remarkable when contrasted with the stormy and incessant warfare of his later career. While he was thus striding ahead, his equals in years, Saumarez and Pellew, were fighting their way up step by step, gaining each as the reward of a distinct meritorious action, only to find themselves outstripped by one who had scarcely seen a gun fired in anger. The result was mainly due to the nature of the station, where sickness made vacancies more rapidly than the deadliest engagement. But while this is true, and must be taken into the account, it was characteristic of Nelson that his value transpired through the simplest intercourse, and amid the commonplace incidents of service. Locker and Parker each in turn felt this. A little later, while he and Collingwood were still unknown captains, the latter, usually measured and formal in his language, wrote to him in these singularly strong words: "My regard for you, my dear Nelson, my respect and veneration for your character, I hope and believe, will never lessen." So, some years afterwards, but before he became renowned or had wrought his more brilliant achievements, an envious brother captain said to him, "You did just as you pleased in Lord Hood's time, the same in Admiral Hotham's, and now again with Sir John Jervis; it makes no difference to you who is Commander-in-chief." This power of winning confidence and inspiring attachment was one of the strongest elements in Nelson's success, alike as a subordinate and when himself in chief command.
A unique aspect of Nelson's early promotion is that it was given without having fought in actual battle—something that seems even more remarkable when compared to the constant and intense warfare of his later career. While he was advancing quickly, his peers in age, Saumarez and Pellew, were climbing the ranks slowly, earning each step through distinct acts of bravery, only to find themselves surpassed by someone who had hardly been in a fight. This was mostly due to the nature of the station, where illness created vacancies faster than the deadliest battle. However, while this is true and must be considered, it was typical of Nelson that his worth became evident through simple interactions and everyday service experiences. Locker and Parker each recognized this. A little later, while he and Collingwood were still lesser-known captains, the latter, who usually spoke in measured and formal terms, wrote to him with unusually strong words: "My regard for you, my dear Nelson, my respect and admiration for your character, I hope and believe, will never fade." Years later, before he was famous or had achieved his more outstanding feats, an envious fellow captain said to him, "You did exactly what you wanted in Lord Hood's time, the same with Admiral Hotham's, and now again with Sir John Jervis; it makes no difference to you who the Commander-in-chief is." This ability to gain trust and inspire loyalty was one of the key factors in Nelson's success, both as a subordinate and when he was in command.
With his mind ever fixed upon glory, or rather upon honor,—the word he himself most often used, and which more accurately expresses his desire for fame; honor, which is to glory what character is to reputation,—the same hard fortune persisted in denying to him, during the War of the American Revolution, the opportunities for distinction which he so ardently coveted. In the "Badger" and in the "Hinchinbrook," during the year 1779, his service was confined to routine cruising about Jamaica and along the Mosquito coast of Central America. A gleam of better things for a moment shone upon him in August of that year, when the French fleet, under Count D'Estaing, appeared in Haiti, numbering twenty-two ships-of-the-line, with transports reported to be carrying twenty thousand troops. All Jamaica was in an uproar of apprehension, believing an attack upon the island to be imminent; for its conquest was known to be one of the great objects of the enemy. Nelson was at the time living on shore, the "Hinchinbrook" seemingly[4] not having returned to the port since his appointment to her, and he eagerly accepted the duty of commanding the land batteries. The odds were great,—"You must not be surprised to hear of my learning to speak French," he wrote, laughingly, to Locker in England,—but if so, the greater the honor attendant, whether upon success or defeat. D'Estaing, however, passed on to America to encounter disaster at Savannah, and Nelson's hopes were again disappointed.
With his mind constantly focused on glory, or rather on honor—the word he used most often, which better represents his desire for fame; honor is to glory what character is to reputation—he faced persistent misfortune during the American Revolution that denied him the chances for distinction that he eagerly wanted. In the "Badger" and the "Hinchinbrook" during 1779, his service was limited to routine patrols around Jamaica and along the Mosquito coast of Central America. A flicker of better prospects appeared for him in August of that year when the French fleet, led by Count D'Estaing, showed up in Haiti, with twenty-two ships-of-the-line and transports reportedly carrying twenty thousand troops. All of Jamaica was in a state of alarm, fearing an imminent attack, as it was known that capturing the island was one of the enemy’s main goals. At the time, Nelson was living onshore, as the "Hinchinbrook" had apparently[4] not returned to port since he was assigned to her, and he eagerly took on the duty of commanding the land batteries. The odds were stacked against him—“You shouldn’t be surprised to hear that I’m learning to speak French,” he jokingly wrote to Locker in England—but if that was the case, the greater the honor that would come from either success or defeat. However, D'Estaing moved on to America and faced disaster at Savannah, leaving Nelson’s hopes once again dashed.
In January, 1780, an opportunity for service offered, which ended in no conspicuous or permanent result, but nevertheless conferred distinction upon one who, to use his own expression, was determined to climb to the top of the tree, and to neglect no chance, however slight, that could help him on. War with Spain had then been about seven months declared, and the British governor of Jamaica had sagaciously determined to master Lake Nicaragua, and the course of the river San Juan, its outlet to the Caribbean Sea. The object of the attempt was twofold, both military and commercial. The route was recognized then, as it is now, as one of the most important, if not the most important, of those affording easy transit from the Pacific to the Atlantic by way of the Isthmus. To a nation of the mercantile aptitudes of Great Britain, such a natural highway was necessarily an object of desire. In her hands it would not only draw to itself the wealth of the surrounding regions, but would likewise promote the development of her trade, both north and south, along the eastern and western coasts of the two Americas. But the pecuniary gain was not all. The military tenure of this short and narrow strip, supported at either end, upon the Pacific and the Atlantic, by naval detachments, all the more easily to be maintained there by the use of the belt itself, would effectually sever the northern and southern colonies of Spain, both by actual interposition, and by depriving them of one of their most vital lines of intercommunication. To seek control of so valuable and central a link in a great network of maritime interests was as natural and inevitable to Great Britain a century ago, as it now is to try to dominate the Mediterranean and the Suez Canal, which fulfil a like function to her Eastern possessions and Eastern commerce.
In January 1780, an opportunity for service arose that didn’t lead to any significant or lasting outcome but still brought recognition to someone who, in his own words, was set on reaching the top and would seize every chance, no matter how small, to help him along the way. The war with Spain had been declared about seven months earlier, and the British governor of Jamaica had smartly decided to take control of Lake Nicaragua and the San Juan River, which flows into the Caribbean Sea. The goal of this effort was twofold: both military and commercial. The route was recognized then, as it is today, as one of the most important, if not the most important, ways to easily travel from the Pacific to the Atlantic through the Isthmus. For a nation like Great Britain, with its focus on trade, such a natural route was a coveted asset. In British hands, it would not only attract wealth from the surrounding areas but also boost trade along both the eastern and western coasts of the Americas. However, the financial benefit wasn’t everything. Military control over this narrow stretch, supported on both ends by naval detachments on the Pacific and Atlantic, would effectively cut off Spain's northern and southern colonies, both by direct presence and by limiting one of their essential communication routes. Seeking to control such a valuable and central part of a vast maritime network was as natural and necessary for Great Britain a century ago as it is now for them to try to dominate the Mediterranean and the Suez Canal, which serve a similar purpose for their eastern territories and trade.
Preoccupied, however, with numerous and more pressing cares in many quarters of the world, and overweighted in a universal struggle with outnumbering foes, Great Britain could spare but scanty forces to her West India Islands, and from them Governor Dalling could muster but five hundred men for his Nicaraguan undertaking. Nelson was directed to convoy these with the "Hinchinbrook" to the mouth of the San Juan del Norte, where was the port now commonly called Greytown, in those days a fine and spacious harbor. There his charge ended; but his mental constitution never allowed him to look upon a military task as well done while anything remained to do. In the spirit of his famous saying, fifteen years later, "Were ten ships out of eleven taken, I would never call it well done if the eleventh escaped, if able to get at her," he determined to go with the troops. With his temperament it was impossible to turn his back upon the little body of soldiers, whose toilsome advance up the tropical stream might be aided and hastened by his ready seamen.
Preoccupied, however, with numerous and more urgent concerns in various parts of the world, and burdened by a universal struggle against overwhelming enemies, Great Britain could spare only a few forces for her West Indian Islands, and from there, Governor Dalling could gather only five hundred men for his Nicaraguan mission. Nelson was assigned to escort these troops with the "Hinchinbrook" to the mouth of the San Juan del Norte, where the port now known as Greytown was a spacious harbor back then. His responsibility ended there; however, his mindset never allowed him to consider a military task complete while anything was left to be done. True to his famous quote fifteen years later, "If ten out of eleven ships were captured, I would never call it done if the eleventh got away, provided she could be reached," he decided to accompany the troops. With his disposition, it was impossible for him to turn his back on the small group of soldiers, whose challenging journey up the tropical river could be supported and sped up by his willing sailors.
The first objective of the expedition was Fort San Juan, a powerful work controlling the river of the same name, and thereby the only natural water transit between the sea and Lake Nicaragua. Upon the possession of this, as a position of vantage and a safe depot for supplies and reinforcements, Dalling based his hopes of future advance, both west and south. Nelson took with him forty-seven seamen and marines from his ship's company; the former, aided by some Indians, doing most of the labor of forcing the boats against the current, through shoal and tortuous channels, under his own constant supervision and encouragement. A small outpost that withstood their progress was by him intrepidly stormed, sword in hand, by sudden assault; and upon reaching Fort San Juan he urgently recommended the same summary method to the officer commanding the troops. The latter, however, was not one of the men who recognize the necessity for exceptional action. Regular approaches, though the slower, were the surer way of reducing a fortified place, and entailed less bloodshed. Professional rule commonly demanded them, and to professional rule he submitted. Nelson argued that through delays, which, however incurred, were now past discussion, the expedition had reached its destination in April, at the end of the healthy, dry season, instead of shortly after its beginning, in January. Consequently, owing to the fall of the water, much additional trouble had been experienced in the advance, the men were proportionately weakened by toil and exposure, and the wet months, with their dire train of tropical diseases, were at hand. Therefore, though more might fall by the enemy's weapons in a direct attack, the ultimate loss would be less than by the protracted and sickly labors of the spade; while with San Juan subdued, the force could receive all the care possible in such a climate, and under the best conditions await the return of good weather for further progress.
The main goal of the expedition was Fort San Juan, a stronghold that controlled the river of the same name, which was the only natural waterway connecting the sea with Lake Nicaragua. Taking control of this fort provided a strategic advantage and a secure base for supplies and reinforcements, which Dalling relied on for future advances both to the west and south. Nelson set out with forty-seven sailors and marines from his crew; the sailors, assisted by some local Indians, handled most of the hard work of moving the boats upstream through shallow and winding channels, which Nelson closely supervised and encouraged. A small outpost that delayed their progress was bravely attacked by him in a surprise assault; upon reaching Fort San Juan, he strongly recommended the same aggressive approach to the officer in charge of the troops. However, this officer was not one to recognize the need for extraordinary measures. He believed that conventional strategies, though slower, would more reliably take a fortified position and result in less bloodshed. He adhered to professional standards, which typically required such methods. Nelson pointed out that due to delays, which were now pointless to discuss, the expedition arrived in April, at the end of the healthy dry season, rather than shortly after it began in January. As a result, due to the drop in water levels, they faced many extra challenges during their advance, and the men were disproportionately weakened by hard labor and exposure, with the rainy season and its associated tropical diseases looming. Therefore, although more men might be lost to the enemy in a direct attack, the overall losses would be less than from the prolonged, exhausting work of digging; with San Juan taken, they could take care of their forces as best as possible in such a climate and wait for better weather conditions for further advancement.
In military enterprises there will frequently arise the question, Is time or life in this case of the greater value? Those regularly ordered and careful procedures which most economize the blood of the soldier may, by their inevitable delays, seriously imperil the objects of the campaign as a whole; or they may even, while less sanguinary, entail indirectly a greater loss of men than do prompter measures. In such doubtful matters Nelson's judgment was usually sound; and his instinct, which ever inclined to instant and vigorous action, was commonly by itself alone an accurate guide, in a profession whose prizes are bestowed upon quick resolve more often than upon deliberate consultation. The same intuition that in his prime dictated his instant, unhesitating onslaught at the Nile, depriving the French of all opportunity for further preparation,—that caused him in the maturity of his renown, before Copenhagen, to write, "every hour's delay makes the enemy stronger; we shall never be so good a match for them as at this moment,"—that induced him at Trafalgar to modify his deliberately prepared plan in favor of one vastly more hazardous, but which seized and held the otherwise fleeting chance,—led him here also at San Juan, unknown, and scarcely more than a boy, to press the policy of immediate attack.
In military operations, there often comes the question: Is time or life more valuable in this situation? Those carefully organized procedures that aim to minimize soldier casualties might, due to their unavoidable delays, put the overall goals of the campaign at serious risk; or they might even, while causing fewer immediate deaths, lead to a greater loss of troops than quicker actions would. In such uncertain situations, Nelson's judgment was typically reliable; his instinct, which always leaned towards immediate and strong action, often served as an accurate guide in a field where rewards go to those who act swiftly rather than those who consult thoroughly. The same intuition that in his youth drove his bold and decisive attack at the Nile, preventing the French from preparing further—prompting him in the height of his fame before Copenhagen to write, "every hour's delay makes the enemy stronger; we will never be in a better position to face them than we are right now,"—that led him at Trafalgar to adjust his carefully crafted plan for a much riskier one that took advantage of a fleeting opportunity—also motivated him here at San Juan, when he was unknown and still quite young, to advocate for an immediate attack.
The decision was not in his hands, and he was overruled; whereupon, with his usual readiness to do his utmost, he accepted the course he disapproved, and, without nursing a grievance, became at once active in erecting batteries and serving the guns. "When unfortunate contentions," says one dispassionate narrator, "had slackened the ardour for public service, Captain Nelson did not suffer any narrow spirit to influence his conduct. He did more than his duty: where anything was to be done, he saw no difficulties." Great as his merits were, he was never insensible to them; and, in the sketch of his career, furnished by him to his chief biographers, he records his exploits with naïve self-satisfaction, resembling the sententious tablets of Eastern conquerors: "I boarded, if I may be allowed the expression, an outpost of the enemy, situated on an island in the river; I made batteries, and afterwards fought them, and was a principal cause of our success." But this simple, almost childlike, delight in his own performances, which continually crops out in his correspondence, did not exaggerate their deserts. Major Polson, commanding the land forces, wrote to Governor Dalling: "I want words to express the obligations I owe to Captain Nelson. He was the first on every service, whether by day or night. There was not a gun fired but was pointed by him, or by Captain Despard, Chief Engineer." Dalling, after some delay, wrote in the same sense to the Minister of War in London, warmly recommending Nelson to the notice of the home Government.
The decision wasn't up to him, and he was overruled; so, with his usual eagerness to do his best, he accepted the path he didn't agree with, and without holding a grudge, immediately got busy building batteries and serving the guns. "When unfortunate conflicts," says one impartial observer, "had dampened the enthusiasm for public service, Captain Nelson didn't let any petty attitudes affect his actions. He went above and beyond his duty: when there was work to be done, he saw no obstacles." Despite his significant contributions, he was never unaware of them; and in the overview of his career that he provided to his main biographers, he recounts his achievements with a straightforward self-satisfaction, similar to the grand inscriptions of Eastern conquerors: "I boarded, if I may be allowed to say, a forward post of the enemy, located on an island in the river; I built batteries, and later fought them, and was a key reason for our success." But this simple, almost childlike joy in his own actions, which frequently appears in his correspondence, didn't exaggerate their worth. Major Polson, commanding the land forces, wrote to Governor Dalling: "I can't find the words to express how grateful I am to Captain Nelson. He was the first to step up for every task, day or night. Not a single gun was fired that wasn't aimed by him or by Captain Despard, Chief Engineer." Dalling, after some time, wrote back in a similar vein to the Minister of War in London, strongly recommending Nelson to the attention of the home Government.
While the siege was in progress, Nelson received word of his appointment to a better ship, the "Janus," of forty-four guns, and it became necessary for him to join her. He left Fort San Juan only the day before it surrendered, and returned to Jamaica; but his health now gave way wholly, and his command of the "Janus," for the most part merely nominal, soon came to an end altogether. Dalling had truly said, "Captain Nelson's constitution is rather too delicate for service in this northern ocean."[5] Before starting on the expedition, he had himself written to his friend Locker: "If my health is not much better than it is at present, I shall certainly come home after this trip, as all the doctors are against my staying so long in this country. You know my old complaint in my breast: it is turned out to be the gout got there. I have twice been given over since you left this country with that cursed disorder, the gout." In such weakness he lived and worked through a month of a short campaign, in which, of the "Hinchinbrook's" crew of two hundred, one hundred and forty-five were buried in his time or that of his successor, Collingwood,—a mortality which he justly cites as a further proof of the necessity for expedition in such climates. But, though he survived, he escaped by the skin of his teeth. Worn out by dysentery and fatigue, he was carried ashore in his cot, and soon after taken to Sir Peter Parker's house, where Lady Parker herself nursed him through. Her kindness to him and his own debility are touchingly shown by a note written from the mountains, where he was carried in his convalescence: "Oh, Mr. Ross, what would I give to be at Port Royal! Lady Parker not here, and the servants letting me lay as if a log, and take no notice." By September, 1780, it was apparent that perfect restoration, without change of climate, was impossible, and in the autumn, having been somewhat over three years on the station, he sailed for home in the "Lion," of sixty-four guns, Captain Cornwallis,[6] to whose careful attention, as formerly to that of Captain Pigot, he gratefully attributed his life. The expedition with which he had been associated ended in failure, for although a part of the force pushed on to Lake Nicaragua, sickness compelled the abandonment of the conquests, which were repossessed by the Spaniards.
While the siege was happening, Nelson got word that he was assigned to a better ship, the "Janus," which had forty-four guns, and he needed to join her. He left Fort San Juan just a day before it surrendered and returned to Jamaica. However, his health completely failed him, and his command of the "Janus" was mostly just in name, soon coming to an end altogether. Dalling had accurately remarked, "Captain Nelson's constitution is rather too delicate for service in this northern ocean." Before starting on the expedition, he had written to his friend Locker: "If my health isn't much better than it is now, I will definitely come home after this trip, as all the doctors say I shouldn’t stay in this country for so long. You know about my old chest issue; it has turned out to be gout. I've nearly been declared dead twice since you left this country because of that wretched ailment, the gout." In such poor condition, he managed to live and work through a month of a short campaign, during which out of the "Hinchinbrook's" crew of two hundred, one hundred and forty-five were buried in his time or that of his successor, Collingwood—an alarming mortality rate that he rightly pointed out as further evidence of the need for rapid action in such climates. Despite surviving, he was on the brink of death. Exhausted from dysentery and fatigue, he was carried ashore in his cot and soon taken to Sir Peter Parker's house, where Lady Parker herself cared for him. Her kindness and his own frailty are poignantly illustrated in a note he wrote from the mountains, where he was taken during his recovery: "Oh, Mr. Ross, what would I give to be at Port Royal! Lady Parker isn't here, and the servants are letting me lie here like a log, and not paying any attention." By September 1780, it was clear that complete recovery without a change of climate was impossible, and in the autumn, after spending just over three years in the station, he set sail for home on the "Lion," which had sixty-four guns, under Captain Cornwallis, to whom, just like Captain Pigot before him, he gratefully credited his survival. The expedition he had been part of ended in failure, as although some of the force moved on to Lake Nicaragua, sickness forced them to abandon their conquests, which were retaken by the Spaniards.
Arriving in England, Nelson went to Bath, and there passed through a period of extreme suffering and tedious recovery. "I have been so ill since I have been here," says one of his letters, "that I was obliged to be carried to and from bed, with the most excruciating tortures." Exact dates are wanting; but he seems to have been under treatment near three months, when, on the 28th of January, 1781, he wrote to Locker, in his often uncouth style: "Although I have not quite recovered the use of my limbs, yet my inside is a new man;" and again, three weeks later, "I have now the perfect use of all my limbs, except my left arm, which I can hardly tell what is the matter with it. From the shoulder to my fingers' ends are as if half dead." He remained in Bath until the middle of March, latterly more for the mild climate than because feeling the necessity of prosecuting his cure; yet that his health was far from securely re-established is evident, for a severe relapse followed his return to London. On the 7th of May, 1781, he writes to his brother: "You will say, why does not he come into Norfolk? I will tell you: I have entirely lost the use of my left arm, and very near of my left leg and thigh." In estimating Nelson's heroism, the sickly fragility of his bodily frame must be kept in memory; not to excuse shortcomings of nerve or enterprise, for there were none, but to exalt duly the extraordinary mental energy which rather mocked at difficulties than triumphed over them.
When Nelson arrived in England, he went to Bath, where he endured a long period of intense suffering and slow recovery. "I've been so sick since I've been here," he wrote in one of his letters, "that I had to be carried to and from bed, in the most excruciating pain." Exact dates are unclear, but he seems to have been under treatment for nearly three months when, on January 28, 1781, he wrote to Locker in his often awkward style: "Even though I haven't fully regained the use of my limbs, my insides feel like a new man;" and again, three weeks later, "I now have full use of all my limbs, except for my left arm, which I can hardly describe what's wrong with it. From my shoulder to the tips of my fingers feels almost numb." He stayed in Bath until mid-March, mostly for the mild climate rather than out of necessity for his recovery; however, it’s clear that his health was far from fully restored, as he suffered a severe relapse after returning to London. On May 7, 1781, he wrote to his brother: "You might wonder why I’m not coming to Norfolk? I’ll tell you: I’ve completely lost the use of my left arm, and almost my left leg and thigh." In assessing Nelson's bravery, it's important to remember the frail condition of his body; not to excuse any lack of courage or ambition—because there was none—but to properly recognize the remarkable mental strength that often faced difficulties with defiance rather than simply overcoming them.
While yet an invalid he had again applied for employment, and, as the war was still raging, was appointed in August, 1781, to the "Albemarle," a small frigate of twenty-eight guns. He was pleased with the ship, the first commissioned by himself at home, with a long cruise in prospect; and, together with his expressions of content with her, there appears that manifestation of complete satisfaction with his officers and crew, with those surrounding him as subordinates, that so singularly characterized his habit of mind. "I have an exceeding good ship's company. Not a man or officer in her I would wish to change.... I am perfectly satisfied with both officers and ship's company." Down to the month before Trafalgar, when, to the bidding of the First Lord of the Admiralty to choose his own officers, he replied, "Choose yourself, my lord; the same spirit actuates the whole profession, you cannot choose wrong," there is rarely, it might almost be said never, anything but praise for those beneath him. With the "Agamemnon," "We are all well; indeed, nobody can be ill with my ship's company, they are so fine a set." At the Nile, "I had the happiness to command a band of brothers; therefore night was to my advantage. Each knew his duty, and I was sure each would feel for a French ship. My friends readily conceived my plan." His ships in the Mediterranean, in 1803, "are the best commanded and the very best manned" in the navy. So his frequent praise of others in his despatches and letters has none of the formal, perfunctory ring of an official paper; it springs evidently from the warmest appreciation and admiration, is heartfelt, showing no deceptive exterior, but the true native fibre of the man, full of the charity which is kind and thinketh no evil. It was not always so toward those above him. Under the timid and dilatory action of Hotham and Hyde Parker, under the somewhat commonplace although exact and energetic movements of Lord Keith, he was restive, and freely showed what he felt. On the other hand, around Hood and Jervis, who commanded his professional respect and esteem, he quickly threw the same halo of excellence, arising from his tendency to idealize, that colored the medium through which he invariably saw the men whom he himself commanded. The disposition to invest those near to him with merits, which must in part at least have been imaginary, is a most noteworthy feature of his character, and goes far to explain the attraction he exerted over others, the enthusiasm which ever followed him, the greatness of his success, and also, unhappily, the otherwise almost inexplicable but enduring infatuation which enslaved his later years, and has left the most serious blot upon his memory.
While still recovering, he applied for a job again, and because the war was still ongoing, he was appointed in August 1781 to the "Albemarle," a small frigate with twenty-eight guns. He was happy with the ship, the first one he commissioned at home, and with a long cruise ahead; he expressed complete satisfaction with his officers and crew, showcasing his characteristic mindset. "I have an excellent crew. Not a single man or officer on board would I want to change.... I'm completely happy with both the officers and the crew." Up until a month before Trafalgar, when the First Lord of the Admiralty asked him to choose his own officers, he replied, "Choose for yourself, my lord; the same spirit drives the whole profession, you can't go wrong," there was rarely, if ever, anything but praise for those under him. With the "Agamemnon," he said, "We are all doing well; in fact, no one can be unwell with such a great crew." At the Nile, he remarked, "I had the joy of commanding a band of brothers; therefore, the night worked to my advantage. Each knew their duty, and I was confident each would care about a French ship. My friends quickly understood my plan." His ships in the Mediterranean in 1803 "are the best commanded and the very best manned" in the navy. His frequent praise of others in his reports and letters lacks the formal, routine tone of official documents; it clearly springs from the warmest appreciation and admiration, is sincere, showing no deceitful exterior, but rather the true essence of the man, full of kindness and a lack of malice. However, it wasn't always the case with those above him. Under the timid and hesitant actions of Hotham and Hyde Parker, and the somewhat ordinary yet precise and energetic movements of Lord Keith, he grew restless and openly expressed his feelings. In contrast, around Hood and Jervis, who commanded his professional respect and esteem, he quickly bestowed the same halo of excellence, resulting from his tendency to idealize, which colored the way he viewed the men he commanded. His tendency to attribute merits to those close to him, which likely included some imaginary traits, is a significant aspect of his character, helping to explain the attraction he had over others, the enthusiasm that consistently followed him, the magnitude of his success, and unfortunately, the otherwise almost inexplicable but enduring infatuation that dominated his later years, which has left a serious stain on his legacy.
Though thus pleased with his surroundings, his own health continued indifferent. He excuses himself for delay in correspondence, because "so ill as to be scarce kept out of bed." In such a state, and for one whose frame had been racked and weakened by three years spent in the damp heat of the tropics, a winter's trip to the Baltic was hardly the best prescription; but thither the "Albemarle" was sent,—"it would almost be supposed," he wrote, "to try my constitution." He was away on this cruise from October to December, 1781, reaching Yarmouth on the 17th of the latter month, with a large convoy of a hundred and ten sail of merchant-ships, all that then remained of two hundred and sixty that had started from Elsinore on the 8th. "They behaved, as all convoys that ever I saw did, shamefully ill; parting company every day." After being several days wind-bound in Yarmouth Roads, he arrived in the Downs on the first day of 1782. The bitter cold of the North had pierced him almost as keenly as it did twenty years later in the Copenhagen expedition. "I believe the Doctor has saved my life since I saw you," he wrote to his brother. The ship was then ordered to Portsmouth to take in eight months' provisions,—a sure indication that she was intended for a distant voyage. Nelson himself surmised that she would join the squadron of Sir Richard Bickerton, then fitting out to reinforce the fleet in the East Indies. Had this happened, he would have been on hand to hear much and perchance see something of one of his own professional forerunners, the great French Admiral Suffren, as well as of the latter's doughty antagonist, Sir Edward Hughes; for Bickerton arrived in time to take part in the last of the five pitched battles between those two hard fighters. Unluckily, a severe accident had befallen the "Albemarle,"—a large East Indiaman having dragged down upon her during a heavy gale in the Downs. The injuries received by this collision were so extensive that the ship was under repairs at Portsmouth for six weeks, during which time Bickerton sailed.
Though he was pleased with his surroundings, his health remained poor. He apologized for the delay in his correspondence, saying he was "so ill that I could barely get out of bed." Given his condition and the fact that his body had been weakened after three years in the humid heat of the tropics, a winter trip to the Baltic was hardly the best idea; yet the "Albemarle" was sent there—he wrote, "it would almost seem to test my constitution." He was on this cruise from October to December 1781, arriving in Yarmouth on the 17th of December with a large convoy of 110 merchant vessels, a fraction of the 260 that had left Elsinore on the 8th. "They behaved, as all convoys I've ever seen, quite poorly; splitting up every day." After being stuck for several days in Yarmouth Roads due to bad weather, he reached the Downs on the first day of 1782. The bitter cold of the North affected him almost as severely as it did twenty years later during the Copenhagen expedition. "I believe the Doctor has saved my life since I last saw you," he wrote to his brother. The ship was then ordered to Portsmouth to load up with eight months' worth of provisions—a clear sign she was set for a long journey. Nelson himself guessed she would join Sir Richard Bickerton's squadron, which was preparing to reinforce the fleet in the East Indies. If this had happened, he would have been able to hear and perhaps see something of his own professional predecessors, the great French Admiral Suffren, along with his determined opponent, Sir Edward Hughes; for Bickerton arrived just in time to take part in the last of five major battles between those two fierce rivals. Unfortunately, a serious accident had occurred with the "Albemarle," as a large East Indiaman had collided with her during a strong gale in the Downs. The damage from this collision was so severe that the ship was in repairs at Portsmouth for six weeks, during which Bickerton set sail.
While thus detained in one of the principal dockyards and naval stations of the kingdom, another large detachment, belonging to the Channel fleet, assembled before Nelson's eyes. It comprised twelve sail-of-the-line, under Admiral Barrington; and among these was the "Foudroyant," the most famous ship of her time, then commanded by Captain John Jervis, with whom, as the Earl of St. Vincent, Nelson was afterwards closely associated; but the young frigate captain did not now come in contact with his stately superior, who in later years so highly valued and loved him. It was for him still the day of small things. Though thus thrown in the midst of the din and bustle of extensive naval preparations, he had not the fortune to be directly connected with them; and consequently no occasion arose for becoming known to admirals who could recognize his worth, and give him the opportunities without which distinction cannot be achieved. It is, however, a significant and instructive fact that, while thus persistently dissociated from the great operations then in progress, and employed wholly in detached service, Nelson's natural genius for war asserted itself, controlling the direction of his thoughts and interests, and fixing them to that broad field of his profession from which he was as yet debarred. "The height of his ambition," an acquaintance of this period tells us, "was to command a line-of-battle ship; as for prize money," for which frigates offered the best chances, "it never entered his thoughts." A few months later, while still in the "Albemarle," it was said of him by Lord Hood, the most original tactician of the day, that he knew as much about naval tactics as any officer in the fleet. When this high encomium was bestowed, Nelson had barely passed his twenty-fourth birthday.
While stuck in one of the main dockyards and naval bases of the kingdom, another large group from the Channel fleet gathered before Nelson. It included twelve battleships, led by Admiral Barrington; among them was the "Foudroyant," the most famous ship of its time, commanded by Captain John Jervis, with whom Nelson would later have a close association as the Earl of St. Vincent. However, the young frigate captain didn’t interact with his esteemed superior, who would come to greatly value and care for him in later years. For now, it was still a time of minor roles for him. Despite being surrounded by the noise and activity of extensive naval preparations, he wasn’t in a position to be directly involved; as a result, he missed the chance to meet admirals who could recognize his talent and provide him the opportunities necessary for achieving distinction. Interestingly, even while being kept away from the major operations taking place and being solely engaged in secondary duties, Nelson's natural talent for warfare came through, shaping his thoughts and interests toward the broad field of his profession from which he was still excluded. "The height of his ambition," noted an acquaintance from this time, "was to command a battleship; as for prize money," which frigates provided the best opportunities for, "it never crossed his mind." A few months later, while still on the "Albemarle," Lord Hood, the most innovative tactician of the day, remarked that Nelson understood naval tactics as well as any officer in the fleet. When this high praise was given, Nelson had just turned twenty-four.
Meanwhile the "Albemarle" was again ordered upon convoy duty, this time to Quebec. This destination also was distasteful on account of the climate. "I want much to get off from this d——d voyage," he wrote. "Mr. Adair," an eminent London surgeon, who the year before had treated him for the paralysis of his limbs, "has told me that if I was sent to a cold damp climate it would make me worse than ever." He himself had scruples about applying for an exchange, and the efforts of some friends who interfered proved useless. The "Albemarle" started with a convoy of thirty-odd vessels on the 10th of April, 1782; and after a short stop at Cork, anchored at St. John's, Newfoundland, on May 27, whence she reached Quebec July 1. Three days later she again sailed on a cruise that lasted over two months, spent chiefly about Boston Bay and Cape Cod. During this time several enemy's vessels were taken or destroyed; but, with the bad luck that so often followed Nelson in the matter of prize-money, none of the captures reached port, and the cruise was pecuniarily unprofitable. It afforded him, however, an opportunity for displaying conduct and gaining deserved reputation, which he valued more highly. On the 14th of August the sudden lifting of a fog showed the "Albemarle" within gunshot of a French squadron, of four ships-of-the-line and a frigate, that had just come out of Boston. A close chase followed, lasting nine or ten hours; but Nelson threw off the heavy ships by running among the shoals of George's Bank, which he ventured to do, trusting to the cool head and aptitude for pilotage acquired in earlier life. The frigate followed warily, watching for a chance to strike at advantage; but when the ships-of-the-line had been dropped far enough to be unable to help their consort, the British vessel hove-to[7] in defiance, and the enemy fell back upon his supports.
Meanwhile, the "Albemarle" was assigned to convoy duty again, this time to Quebec. This destination was also unpleasant because of the climate. "I really want to get out of this damn voyage," he wrote. "Mr. Adair," a well-known London surgeon who had treated him for paralysis the year before, "has told me that if I'm sent to a cold, damp climate, it will make me worse than ever." He had his own doubts about asking for a transfer, and the efforts of some friends to help were pointless. The "Albemarle" set out with a convoy of over thirty vessels on April 10, 1782; after a brief stop in Cork, she arrived in St. John's, Newfoundland, on May 27, then reached Quebec on July 1. Three days later, she sailed again on a cruise that lasted more than two months, mainly around Boston Bay and Cape Cod. During this time, several enemy vessels were captured or destroyed; however, due to the bad luck that often followed Nelson regarding prize money, none of the captures made it to port, making the cruise financially unprofitable. It did, however, give him a chance to show his skills and gain the reputation he valued more highly. On August 14, the sudden lifting of a fog revealed the "Albemarle" within gunshot of a French squadron of four ships-of-the-line and a frigate that had just come out of Boston. A chase ensued, lasting around nine or ten hours; but Nelson lost the heavy ships by navigating through the shoals of George's Bank, trusting in the calmness and piloting skills he had developed in his earlier life. The frigate followed cautiously, looking for an opportunity to strike, but once the ships-of-the-line were far enough behind to be of no help, the British vessel stopped in defiance, and the enemy retreated to regroup.
Shortly after this escape, so many of the ship's company fell ill with scurvy that Nelson decided to go back to Quebec, where he arrived on the 17th of September. "For eight weeks," he wrote, "myself and all the officers lived upon salt beef; nor had the ship's company had a fresh meal since the 7th of April." The fears for his health that he had expressed before sailing from England had happily proved groundless, and a month's stay in port which now followed, at the most delightful and invigorating of the American seasons, wrought wonders for him. His letters to Locker state that the voyage agreed with him better than he had expected; while from the St. Lawrence he wrote to his father, "Health, that greatest of blessings, is what I never truly enjoyed until I saw Fair Canada. The change it has wrought, I am convinced, is truly wonderful." This happy result had been due, in part at least, to surroundings that told favorably upon his sensitive nervous system, and not to the bracing climate alone. He had been actively occupied afloat, and had fallen desperately in love with a fair Canadian, around whom his ardent imagination threw that glamour of exaggerated charm in which he saw all who were dear to him, except his wife. Her he seems from the first to have looked upon with affection indeed, but without rapture or illusion. The Canadian affair came near ending in an imprudent offer, from which he was with difficulty deterred by a cool-headed friend. The story runs that, the ship being ordered to New York and ready for sea, he had bidden her good-bye and gone on board, expecting to sail next day; but that, unable to bear the approaching separation, he returned to the city, and was on his way to the lady's home when his friend met him.
Shortly after this escape, many crew members got sick with scurvy, prompting Nelson to return to Quebec, where he arrived on September 17th. "For eight weeks," he wrote, "myself and all the officers lived on salt beef; nor had the crew had a fresh meal since April 7th." The concerns he had for his health before leaving England turned out to be unfounded, and the month he spent in port during the most pleasant and refreshing time of year in America worked wonders for him. His letters to Locker indicated that the voyage was better for him than he had anticipated; while in St. Lawrence, he wrote to his father, "Health, the greatest of blessings, is something I never truly enjoyed until I saw Fair Canada. The change it has made, I am convinced, is remarkable." This positive outcome was partly due to the surroundings that positively impacted his sensitive nervous system, not just the invigorating climate. He had been actively engaged at sea and had fallen passionately in love with a lovely Canadian, who his enthusiastic imagination enveloped in an exaggerated charm that he saw in everyone dear to him, except for his wife. It seems he viewed his wife with genuine affection but without any excitement or illusion from the start. The Canadian situation almost led to an unwise proposal, which a level-headed friend managed to talk him out of. The story goes that, with the ship ordered to New York and ready to set sail, he had said goodbye to her and gone aboard, expecting to leave the next day; however, unable to handle the impending separation, he returned to the city and was on his way to the woman’s house when his friend encountered him.
Tearing himself away from his mistress by a violent effort, Nelson, on the 20th of October, sailed for New York. Arriving on the 13th of November, he found there a large part of the West India fleet, under Lord Hood, who had been second in command to Rodney on the occasion of the latter's celebrated victory over De Grasse in the previous April. Rodney had since then been recalled to England, while Hood had gone to Boston to look after a division of the beaten French fleet, which was there refitting. He was now on his return to the islands, where the enemy was expected to make a vigorous aggressive campaign the following spring. Extensive preparations were in fact on foot for the reduction of Jamaica, frustrated six months before by De Grasse's mishap. Nelson thus found himself again in tantalizing contact with the stirring circumstance that preludes hostilities, in which he himself had little hope to share; for the "Albemarle" belonged to the North American station, where all active naval operations had ceased with the surrender of Cornwallis the year before. He went, therefore, to Hood, and begged to be transferred to his squadron. In vain did Admiral Digby, his own commander-in-chief, tell him that he was on a good station for prize-money. "Yes," he replied, "but the West Indies is the station for honour."
Tearing himself away from his mistress with great effort, Nelson sailed for New York on October 20th. Arriving on November 13th, he found a large part of the West India fleet under Lord Hood, who had been second in command to Rodney during the latter's famous victory over De Grasse the previous April. Rodney had since been recalled to England, while Hood had gone to Boston to oversee a division of the defeated French fleet that was being refitted there. He was now on his way back to the islands, where the enemy was expected to launch a strong offensive campaign the following spring. Extensive preparations were indeed underway for the capture of Jamaica, which had been thwarted six months earlier by De Grasse's misfortune. Nelson found himself once again tantalizingly close to the exciting situation that precedes hostilities, in which he had little hope of participating; the "Albemarle" was part of the North American station, where all active naval operations had ceased with the surrender of Cornwallis the year before. Therefore, he approached Hood and requested to be transferred to his squadron. In vain did Admiral Digby, his own commander-in-chief, tell him that he was on a good station for prize money. "Yes," he replied, "but the West Indies is the station for honor."
Digby was reluctant to part with a frigate, as all admirals were; but Hood, either from an intuitive faculty for judging men, or from his conversations with Nelson eliciting the latter's singular knowledge of the higher part of his profession, wished to push an officer of so much promise, and succeeded in obtaining the transfer of the "Albemarle" to his squadron. "I am a candidate with Lord Hood for a line-of-battle ship," wrote Nelson to Locker; "he has honoured me highly, by a letter, for wishing to go off this station to a station of service, and has promised me his friendship." A few months later he wrote again: "My situation in Lord Hood's fleet must be in the highest degree flattering to any young man. He treats me as if I were his son, and will, I am convinced, give me anything I can ask of him." This was really the beginning, the outstart, of Nelson's great career; for Hood's interest in him, then aroused, and deepened by experience to the utmost confidence and appreciation, made itself felt the instant the French Revolutionary War began. Nelson then came at once under his orders, went with him to the Mediterranean, and there speedily made his mark, being transferred from admiral to admiral with ever-growing tokens of reliance. Despite the lapse of time, and the long interval of peace, it is no exaggeration to say that there is a direct connection of cause and effect between his transfer to Hood's fleet, in the harbor of New York, and the battle of Cape St. Vincent, in 1797, when he emerged from merely professional distinction to national renown, standing head and shoulders above all competitors. In the four days that followed his arrival in New York, Nelson took the tide at the flood, and was borne on to fortune. Yet in this, as in many other instant and happy decisions, we may not see the mere casting of a die, the chance result of an irreflective impulse. The determination to change into Hood's squadron, with its powerful, far-reaching effect upon his future, was in necessary logical sequence to Nelson's whole habit of thought, and wish, and previous preparation. He was swept into the current that carried him on to fame by the irresistible tendency of his own conscious will and cherished purpose. Opportunity flitted by; he was ready, and grasped it.
Digby was hesitant to part with a frigate, as all admirals tend to be; but Hood, either because of his knack for judging people or from his discussions with Nelson that highlighted the latter's exceptional understanding of the upper levels of his profession, wanted to promote an officer with so much potential and succeeded in transferring the "Albemarle" to his squadron. "I am a candidate with Lord Hood for a line-of-battle ship," Nelson wrote to Locker; "he has honored me greatly with a letter for wanting to leave this station for one of service, and has promised me his support." A few months later, he wrote again: "My position in Lord Hood's fleet must be extremely flattering to any young man. He treats me like I’m his son, and I am convinced he will give me anything I ask." This was truly the start of Nelson's remarkable career; for Hood's interest in him, which was then awakened and later deepened through experience into complete trust and appreciation, became apparent the moment the French Revolutionary War broke out. Nelson immediately fell under his command, joined him in the Mediterranean, and quickly made his mark, being moved from admiral to admiral with increasing signs of reliance. Even with the passage of time and a long stretch of peace, it's not an exaggeration to say there’s a direct link between his transfer to Hood's fleet in the harbor of New York and the battle of Cape St. Vincent in 1797, when he rose from professional distinction to national fame, standing head and shoulders above all his competitors. In the four days that followed his arrival in New York, Nelson seized the moment and was propelled into fortune. Yet in this, as in many other swift and fortunate decisions, we shouldn’t see it merely as a random chance resulting from an impulsive moment. The choice to move to Hood's squadron, with its powerful and far-reaching effect on his future, was a necessary and logical progression of Nelson's entire mindset, desires, and previous preparations. He was carried into the current that led him to fame by the undeniable drive of his own conscious will and aspirations. Opportunity passed by; he was ready, and he seized it.
At this turning-point the commendable diligence of his principal biographers has again secured for us a striking description of the young captain's personal appearance, and of the impression produced by his manner upon an interested acquaintance, who afterwards became a warm friend and admirer as well as a frequent correspondent. The narrator—then Prince William Henry, afterwards King William IV.—gave the following account, apparently at some period between 1805, when Nelson fell, and 1809, when the first edition of Clarke and M'Arthur's Life appeared. "I was then a midshipman on board the Barfleur," Lord Hood's flagship, "lying in the Narrows off Staten Island, and had the watch on deck, when Captain Nelson, of the Albemarle, came in his barge alongside, who appeared to be the merest boy of a captain I ever beheld; and his dress was worthy of attention. He had on a full-laced uniform; his lank unpowdered hair was tied in a stiff Hessian tail, of an extraordinary length; the old-fashioned flaps of his waistcoat added to the general quaintness of his figure, and produced an appearance which particularly attracted my notice; for I had never seen anything like it before, nor could I imagine who he was, nor what he came about. My doubts were, however, removed when Lord Hood introduced me to him. There was something irresistibly pleasing in his address and conversation; and an enthusiasm, when speaking on professional subjects, that showed he was no common being." The Countess of Minto, in her Life of Lord Minto, speaks of Nelson's "shock head" at the time (1794) when he was a frequent visitor at the house of Minto, then Sir Gilbert Elliott, and Viceroy of Corsica; a trivial detail, but confirmatory, so far, of the picture drawn by the prince. The latter continued: "Nelson, after this, went with us to the West Indies, and served under Lord Hood's flag during his indefatigable cruise off Cape François.... I found him warmly attached to my father [King George III.], and singularly humane. He had the honour of the King's service and the independence of the British navy particularly at heart; and his mind glowed with this idea as much when he was simply captain of the Albemarle, and had obtained none of the honours of his Country, as when he was afterwards decorated with so much well-earned distinction."
At this turning point, the admirable dedication of his main biographers has again provided us with a vivid description of the young captain's appearance, as well as the impression he made on someone who became a close friend and admirer, as well as a frequent correspondent. The narrator—then Prince William Henry, later King William IV.—shared the following account, seemingly sometime between 1805, when Nelson suffered his defeat, and 1809, when the first edition of Clarke and M'Arthur's Life was published. "I was a midshipman on board the Barfleur," Lord Hood's flagship, "anchored in the Narrows near Staten Island, and was on deck when Captain Nelson, of the Albemarle, approached in his barge. He struck me as the youngest captain I had ever seen. His outfit caught my attention; he wore a full-laced uniform, and his long, unpowdered hair was tied back in a stiff Hessian tail that was unusually long. The outdated flaps of his waistcoat added to the overall oddness of his appearance, which particularly stood out to me, as I had never seen anything like it before, nor could I guess who he was or why he was there. My uncertainty cleared up when Lord Hood introduced me to him. There was something irresistibly charming about his manner and conversation, along with an enthusiasm for discussing professional matters that indicated he was no ordinary person." The Countess of Minto, in her Life of Lord Minto, mentions Nelson's "shock head" during the time (1794) when he was a regular visitor at the home of Minto, then Sir Gilbert Elliott, and Viceroy of Corsica; a small detail, but it further confirms the prince's description. The prince continued: "After this, Nelson joined us in the West Indies and served under Lord Hood's flag during his tireless mission off Cape François... I found him to be strongly devoted to my father [King George III.] and exceptionally compassionate. He cared deeply about the honor of the King's service and the independence of the British navy; this passion burned in him just as much when he was merely captain of the Albemarle and had not yet received any national honors, as it did when he was later recognized with so many well-deserved accolades."
The war of 1778 was now fast drawing to its close; the preliminaries of peace being signed in January, 1783, though not ratified till the following September. Hood cruised off Cap François, a naval station of the French at the west end of Haiti, to intercept the fleet from Boston, which was understood to be on its way to the Caribbean; but the enemy, learning his whereabouts, went through the Mona Passage, east of the island, thus avoiding a meeting, and was next heard of by the British as being off Curaçao far to the southward. Nelson, therefore, had no opportunity to show his prowess in battle; and as only three letters remain covering this uneventful period, little is known of his movements, except that he made an abortive attempt to recapture Turk's Island from the French with a small force of ships he was able to gather at short notice. An interesting indication of the spirit which animated him transpires in the first of the three letters mentioned. He had received unexpected orders to wait in New York after Hood's leaving. "I was to have sailed with the fleet this day, but for some private reasons, when my ship was under sail from New York to join Lord Hood, at Sandy Hook, I was sent for on shore, and told I was to be kept forty-eight hours after the sailing of the fleet. It is much to my private advantage," allowing more latitude for picking up prizes, without having to share with the other ships, "but I had much rather have sailed with the fleet." "Money," he continues, "is the great object here," on the North American Station, "nothing else is attended to,"—a motive of action which he always rejected with disdain, although by no means insensible to the value of money, nor ever thoroughly at his ease in the matter of income, owing largely to the lavish liberality with which he responded to the calls upon his generosity or benevolence. A year later he wrote in the same strain: "I have closed the war without a fortune; but I trust, and, from the attention that has been paid to me, believe, that there is not a speck in my character. True honour, I hope, predominates in my mind far above riches."
The war of 1778 was now coming to an end; the peace preliminaries were signed in January 1783, but not ratified until the following September. Hood was cruising off Cap François, a French naval base on the west end of Haiti, trying to intercept the fleet from Boston, which was believed to be heading toward the Caribbean. However, the enemy, learning of his position, went through the Mona Passage east of the island, thus avoiding a confrontation, and was next reported by the British as being off Curaçao far to the south. Therefore, Nelson had no chance to display his battle skills; and since only three letters from this uneventful time remain, little is known about his activities, except that he made an unsuccessful attempt to retake Turk's Island from the French with a small fleet he managed to assemble on short notice. An interesting insight into his mindset is revealed in the first of the three letters mentioned. He received unexpected orders to stay in New York after Hood had left. "I was supposed to sail with the fleet today, but for some personal reasons, when my ship was ready to leave New York to join Lord Hood at Sandy Hook, I was called ashore and told I had to stay for forty-eight hours after the fleet departed. It’s definitely better for my personal advantage," allowing more freedom to capture prizes without having to split them with the other ships, "but I would much rather have sailed with the fleet." "Money," he adds, "is the main focus here," on the North American Station, "nothing else is prioritized,"—a motivation he always rejected with contempt, though he wasn't completely indifferent to the value of money, nor was he ever fully comfortable about his income, largely because of his generous responses to requests for help. A year later, he wrote similarly: "I have ended the war without a fortune; but I trust, and from the attention I’ve received, I believe there is nothing wrong with my character. True honor, I hope, is much more important to me than wealth."
When news of the peace reached the West Indies, Hood was ordered to return with his fleet to England. Nelson went home at the same time, being directed first to accompany Prince William Henry in a visit to Havana. The "Albemarle" reached Spithead on the 25th of June, 1783, and was paid off a week later, her captain going on half-pay until the following April. The cruise of nearly two years' duration closed with this characteristic comment: "Not an officer has been changed, except the second lieutenant, since the Albemarle was commissioned; therefore, it is needless to say, I am happy in my ship's company." And again he writes: "My ship was paid off last week, and in such a manner that must flatter any officer, in particular in these turbulent times. The whole ship's company offered, if I could get a ship, to enter for her immediately." Nelson was keenly alive to the impolicy and injury to the service involved in the frequent changes of officers and men from ship to ship. "The disgust of the seamen to the Navy," he wrote immediately after leaving the Albemarle, "is all owing to the infernal plan of turning them over from ship to ship, so that men cannot be attached to their officers, or the officers care twopence about them." This element of personal attachment is never left out of calculation safely.
When news of the peace reached the West Indies, Hood was ordered to return to England with his fleet. Nelson went home at the same time, first being directed to accompany Prince William Henry on a visit to Havana. The "Albemarle" arrived at Spithead on June 25, 1783, and was decommissioned a week later, with her captain going on half-pay until the following April. This nearly two-year cruise ended with this notable remark: "Not a single officer has been changed, except for the second lieutenant, since the Albemarle was commissioned; so, it goes without saying, I’m happy with my crew." He also wrote: "My ship was paid off last week, and in such a way that would make any officer proud, especially in these turbulent times. The entire crew offered to sign up immediately if I could get a ship." Nelson was very aware of the negative impact and harm to the service caused by the frequent rotation of officers and crew between ships. "The sailors' frustration with the Navy," he wrote right after leaving the Albemarle, "is all due to the terrible plan of transferring them from ship to ship, which means that men cannot form attachments to their officers, nor do the officers care at all about them." This aspect of personal connection is always crucial to consider.
Nelson was now nearly twenty-five. In direct achievement he had accomplished little, and to most he was unknown; but he did not deceive himself in believing that his reputation was established, and his promise, as a capable man of action, understood by those who knew him, and especially by the brilliant admiral under whom he had last served. Within a week of his release from the ship Hood carried him to Court, and presented him to the King,—an evident proof of his approbation; and Nelson notes that the sovereign was exceedingly attentive. The next few months were spent in London, or at his old home in Norfolk, to which and to his family he was always fondly attached. Toward the end of October he obtained a leave of absence, in order to visit France and acquire the French language. His impressions of that country, as far as he went,—from Calais to St. Omer,—are given in lively enough style in a few letters; but they differ little from what might be expected from any very young man deeply tinged with insular prejudice. "I hate their country and their manners," he wrote, soon after his return; and his biographers were quite right in saying that he had been brought up in the old anti-Gallican school, with prejudices not to be eradicated by a flying visit. He duly records his disgust with two British naval captains, one of whom was afterwards among his most valued and valuable friends, for wearing epaulettes, at that time confined to the French service. "I hold them a little cheap," he said, "for putting on any part of a Frenchman's uniform."
Nelson was now almost twenty-five. In terms of accomplishments, he had achieved little, and to most people he was unknown; however, he was not under any illusion that his reputation was solidified, and that his potential as an action-oriented individual was recognized by those who knew him, especially by the brilliant admiral he had last served under. Within a week of being released from the ship, Hood took him to Court and introduced him to the King—an obvious sign of his approval; Nelson noted that the sovereign was extremely attentive. He spent the next few months in London or at his old home in Norfolk, to which he always felt a strong attachment along with his family. Toward the end of October, he got a leave of absence to visit France and learn the French language. His impressions of the country, at least from Calais to St. Omer, are expressed in a lively way in a few letters, but they don't differ much from what you’d expect from a young man with a strong sense of insular prejudice. "I hate their country and their manners," he wrote shortly after returning; his biographers were correct in noting that he was raised with old anti-Gallican beliefs that a quick visit wouldn't change. He also noted his disgust with two British naval captains, one of whom later became one of his closest and most valued friends, for wearing epaulettes, which at that time were exclusive to the French army. "I think they're a bit cheap," he remarked, "for putting on any part of a Frenchman's uniform."
It is more interesting to notice that his impressionable fancy was again taken by an attractive young Englishwoman, the daughter of a clergyman named Andrews, living at St. Omer. "Two very beautiful young ladies," he writes to Locker and to his brother; "I must take care of my heart, I assure you." "My heart is quite secured against the French beauties; I almost wish I could say as much for an English young lady, the daughter of a clergyman, with whom I am just going to dine, and spend the day. She has such accomplishments that, had I a million of money, I am sure I should at this moment make her an offer of them." "The most accomplished woman my eyes ever beheld," he repeats, a month later. The sentimental raptures of a young man about a handsome girl have in themselves too much of the commonplace to justify mention. What is remarkable, and suggests an explanation of the deplorable vagary of his later years, is that his attachment to his wife, even in the days of courtship, elicited no such extravagance of admiration as that into which he freely lapses in his earlier fancies, and yet more in his last absorbing passion. Respect and tenderness for her he certainly felt and expressed; but there is no indication that she ever enkindled his ardent imagination, or filled for him the place of an ideal, which his mental constitution imperatively demanded as an object of worship. The present attachment went so far with him that he wrote to his uncle William Suckling, asking for an allowance to enable him to marry. "If nothing can be done for me," said he, gloomily, "I know what I have to trust to. Life is not worth preserving without happiness; and I care not where I may linger out a miserable existence. I am prepared to hear your refusal, and have fixed my resolution if that should happen.... I pray you may never know the pangs which at this instant tear my heart." If, as is said by the gentlemen into whose hands this letter passed, Suckling consented to help him, as he certainly did at the time of his actual marriage, it seems probable that the lady refused him.
It’s interesting to see that his impressionable imagination was again captured by an attractive young Englishwoman, the daughter of a clergyman named Andrews, living in St. Omer. "Two very beautiful young ladies," he writes to Locker and his brother; "I really need to guard my heart, I assure you." "My heart is completely safe from the French beauties; I almost wish I could say the same for an English young lady, the daughter of a clergyman, with whom I’m about to have dinner and spend the day. She has such talents that if I had a million dollars, I’m sure I’d propose to her right now." "The most talented woman I’ve ever seen," he repeats, a month later. The sentimental excitement of a young man over a pretty girl is too common to warrant mention. What stands out, and hints at an explanation for the unfortunate whimsy of his later years, is that his feelings for his wife, even during their courtship, didn’t inspire the same level of admiration as the infatuations he freely indulged in earlier or the passionate obsession he later developed. While he certainly felt and expressed respect and tenderness for her, there’s no sign that she ever ignited his passionate imagination or fulfilled the ideal he desperately needed as an object of devotion. His current feelings went so far that he wrote to his uncle William Suckling, asking for financial support to get married. "If nothing can be done for me," he said gloomily, "I know what I have to rely on. Life isn’t worth living without happiness; and I don’t care where I spend a miserable existence. I’m ready to hear your refusal, and I’ve made up my mind if that happens.... I hope you never experience the pain that’s tearing at my heart right now." If, as the gentlemen who received this letter said, Suckling agreed to help him, as he surely did at the time of his actual marriage, it seems likely that the lady turned him down.
FOOTNOTES:
[1] The precise date of Nelson's entering the Navy, which would be that of his being rated upon the books of the "Raisonnable," is not stated. Accepting the times during which he was borne upon the books of different ships, as given by Sir Harris Nicolas (Letters and Despatches of Lord Nelson, vol. i. p. 4, note), and with them calculating back from October 15, 1773, the day mentioned by Nelson himself as that on which he was paid off from the "Carcass" (Nicolas, p. 5), the date of entry upon the books of the "Raisonnable" would be November 27, 1770; unless, which is unlikely, there were any lost days. The news of the Port Egmont business reached England in October, 1770. Clarke and M'Arthur (Life of Nelson, vol. i. p. 14, note) infer January 1, 1771, for his entry upon the "Raisonnable's" books; but this would not allow the times which Nicolas gives with minute exactness. For his actually joining the "Raisonnable" they give, loosely, the spring of 1771,—March or April. This is very possible, as rating back, for the sake of gaining constructive time needed to qualify for promotion, was tolerated by the practice of the day.
[1] The exact date when Nelson joined the Navy, which would correspond to when he was officially listed on the "Raisonnable," is not specified. By looking at the periods he was recorded on different ships, as noted by Sir Harris Nicolas (Letters and Despatches of Lord Nelson, vol. i. p. 4, note), and calculating back from October 15, 1773, the day Nelson himself mentioned as the date he was paid off from the "Carcass" (Nicolas, p. 5), we find that his entry on the "Raisonnable" books would be November 27, 1770; unless, which seems unlikely, there were any missed days. The news about the Port Egmont affair reached England in October 1770. Clarke and M'Arthur (Life of Nelson, vol. i. p. 14, note) suggest January 1, 1771, as his entry date on the "Raisonnable's" books; however, this doesn’t align with the precise timings Nicolas provides. For his actual joining of the "Raisonnable," they indicate, somewhat vaguely, the spring of 1771—March or April. This is very plausible, as the practice of backdating to accumulate time for promotion qualification was accepted in that era.
[3] Collingwood was nearly fifty when he got his flag. Howe was forty-five, St. Vincent fifty-three, Saumarez forty-four, Exmouth (Pellew) forty-eight.
[3] Collingwood was almost fifty when he received his flag. Howe was forty-five, St. Vincent was fifty-three, Saumarez was forty-four, and Exmouth (Pellew) was forty-eight.
[5] The Caribbean was formerly thus styled in contradistinction to the South Sea, the Pacific, which was so called because its first discoverers saw it to the south from the Isthmus.
[5] The Caribbean was previously referred to this way to distinguish it from the South Sea, or the Pacific, which got its name because the first explorers saw it to the south of the Isthmus.
[6] Cornwallis was an officer of marked gallantry and conduct, who distinguished himself on several occasions, as captain, during the War of 1778, and as admiral during the wars of the French Revolution. He was brother to Lord Cornwallis, who surrendered at Yorktown, in 1781.
[6] Cornwallis was a brave and distinguished officer who made a name for himself several times, first as a captain during the War of 1778 and later as an admiral during the French Revolutionary Wars. He was the brother of Lord Cornwallis, who surrendered at Yorktown in 1781.
[7] That is, stopped.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ That is, paused.
CHAPTER II.
THE CRUISE OF THE "BOREAS."—CONTROVERSY OVER THE ENFORCEMENT OF THE NAVIGATION ACT.—RETURN TO ENGLAND.—RETIREMENT UNTIL THE OUTBREAK OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION.—APPOINTED TO COMMAND THE "AGAMEMNON," 64.
THE CRUISE OF THE "BOREAS."—DEBATE ABOUT THE ENFORCEMENT OF THE NAVIGATION ACT.—RETURN TO ENGLAND.—RETIREMENT UNTIL THE START OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION.—APPOINTED TO COMMAND THE "AGAMEMNON," 64.
1784-1793. AGE, 26-34.
1784-1793. AGE, 26-34.
Whatever the cause, Nelson's visit to France ended prematurely and abruptly. Early in January, 1784, after an absence of two months, he went back to England, announcing to his friends that his coming was only temporary, partly on business, partly for treatment; for his delicate health again occasioned him anxiety. "The frost, thank God, is broke," he wrote; "cold weather is death to me." But even while speaking confidently of his speedy return to the Continent, he dropped a hint that he was disposed to resume the active pursuit of his profession, although on leaving the "Albemarle," six months before, he had said that he could not afford to live afloat, in peace times, in the style then prevalent. "My stay in England will be but very short, without the First Lord in the Admiralty thinks proper to employ me. I shall offer my services." He did see Lord Howe, at that time First Lord, asking him for a ship; and he renewed his cordial relations with Hood, then living in London. On the 18th of March Howe appointed him to the command of the frigate "Boreas." Occupation in peace, with a reduced establishment, was not easy to get, and his brother, an inveterate wirepuller, must needs know to whose favor Nelson owed it. "You ask," replied the hero, "by what interest did I get a ship? I answer, having served with credit was my recommendation to Lord Howe. Anything in reason that I can ask, I am sure of obtaining from his justice." The statement was no more than fair to Howe; but in his knowledge of the merits of Nelson, whose claim lay rather in evident promise than in conspicuous performance, we can probably trace the friendly intervention of Lord Hood.
Whatever the reason, Nelson's trip to France ended suddenly and unexpectedly. Early in January 1784, after being away for two months, he returned to England, telling his friends that his visit was just temporary, partly for business and partly for treatment, as his fragile health was causing him concern. "Thank God the frost is over," he wrote; "cold weather is death to me." But even while confidently talking about his quick return to the Continent, he hinted that he was ready to actively pursue his career again, even though he had said six months earlier when leaving the "Albemarle" that he couldn't afford to live on a ship in peacetime the way it was usually done. "My stay in England will be very short, unless the First Lord of the Admiralty chooses to give me a job. I'll offer my services." He did meet with Lord Howe, who was the First Lord at the time, asking him for a ship, and he reestablished his friendly relationship with Hood, who was living in London then. On March 18, Howe appointed him to command the frigate "Boreas." Finding a position in peaceful times with a smaller crew was tough, and his brother, a seasoned schemer, had to be aware of who got Nelson his opportunity. "You ask," replied the hero, "by what interest did I get a ship? I say, serving with credit was my recommendation to Lord Howe. I’m sure I can get anything reasonable I request from his fairness." The statement was fair to Howe; however, in his understanding of Nelson’s qualities, which were more about potential than notable achievements, we can likely see the supportive influence of Lord Hood.
Nelson's wish was that the "Boreas" should go to the East Indies. To this he inclined, apparently, because the station was to be under the command of Commodore Cornwallis, in whose ship he had returned from Jamaica as an invalid in 1780, and to whom on that occasion he was indebted for the most friendly care. He was not long allowed to indulge this hope, for five days after receiving his appointment he wrote that the ship was bound to the Leeward Islands, and that he had been asked to take as passengers the wife and family of the commander-in-chief, Sir Richard Hughes, who had already gone out. In a small vessel, for such the "Boreas" was, the request, which he could not well refuse, gave Nelson cause of reasonable discontent, entailing crowding and a large outlay of money. "I shall be pretty well filled with lumber," he wrote; and later, on the voyage out, "I shall not be sorry to part with them, although they are very pleasant, good people; but they are an incredible expense." The incident, annoying though it was, was not without compensations. After arriving on the station, he soon became involved in a serious difference with Sir Richard Hughes; and the latter, though a weak man and in the wrong, might have acted more peremptorily, had he not laid himself under such obligations. On the other hand, Lady Hughes, many years later, shortly after Nelson's death, committed to writing some recollections of his personal traits and actions during the passage, so characteristic, even though trivial, that we could ill have spared them.
Nelson wanted the "Boreas" to go to the East Indies. He seemed to prefer this because the station would be under Commodore Cornwallis’s command, on whose ship he had returned from Jamaica as an invalid in 1780, and to whom he owed a lot of friendly care. However, he wasn't allowed to hold on to this hope for long. Just five days after getting his appointment, he wrote that the ship was actually headed to the Leeward Islands and that he had been asked to take the wife and family of the commander-in-chief, Sir Richard Hughes, who had already left. In a small vessel like the "Boreas," this request, which he couldn't really refuse, caused reasonable annoyance for Nelson, leading to overcrowding and considerable expenses. "I shall be pretty well filled with lumber," he wrote; and later, during the voyage, he commented, "I shall not be sorry to part with them, although they are very pleasant, good people; but they are an incredible expense." Although the situation was annoying, it did have its benefits. After arriving at the station, he soon ended up in a serious disagreement with Sir Richard Hughes; and while Hughes was a weak man and in the wrong, he might have acted more decisively had he not felt obligated. On the flip side, Lady Hughes, years later, shortly after Nelson's death, wrote down some memories of his traits and actions during the journey that, though minor, were so characteristic that we would have missed them.
"I was too much affected when we met at Bath," wrote she to Mr. Matcham, Nelson's brother-in-law, "to say every particular in which was always displayed the infinite cleverness and goodness of heart of our dearly beloved Hero. As a woman, I can only be a judge of those things that I could comprehend—such as his attention to the young gentlemen who had the happiness of being on his quarter-deck. It may reasonably be supposed that among the number of thirty, there must be timid as well as bold; the timid he never rebuked, but always wished to show them he desired nothing of them that he would not instantly do himself: and I have known him say, 'Well, Sir, I am going a race to the masthead, and beg I may meet you there.' No denial could be given to such a wish, and the poor fellow instantly began his march. His Lordship never took the least notice with what alacrity it was done, but when he met in the top, instantly began speaking in the most cheerful manner, and saying how much a person was to be pitied that could fancy there was any danger, or even anything disagreeable, in the attempt. After this excellent example, I have seen the timid youth lead another, and rehearse his captain's words. In like manner, he every day went into the school-room, and saw them do their nautical business, and at twelve o'clock he was the first upon deck with his quadrant. No one there could be behindhand in their business when their captain set them so good an example. One other circumstance I must mention which will close the subject, which was the day we landed at Barbadoes. We were to dine at the Governor's. Our dear captain said, 'You must permit me, Lady Hughes, to carry one of my aid-de-camps with me;' and when he presented him to the Governor, he said, 'Your Excellency must excuse me for bringing one of my midshipmen, as I make it a rule to introduce them to all the good company I can, as they have few to look up to besides myself during the time they are at sea.' This kindness and attention made the young people adore him; and even his wishes, could they have been known, would have been instantly complied with."
"I was really touched when we met at Bath," she wrote to Mr. Matcham, Nelson's brother-in-law. "I can't mention every detail that displayed the amazing cleverness and kindness of our beloved Hero. As a woman, I can only judge those things I understand—like his attention to the young men fortunate enough to be on his quarter-deck. It's reasonable to assume that in a group of thirty, there are both shy and bold individuals; he never scolded the shy ones but always tried to show them he expected nothing from them that he wouldn't do himself: I’ve heard him say, 'Well, Sir, I'm racing you to the masthead, and I hope to meet you there.' No one could refuse such a request, and the poor guy would immediately start his climb. His Lordship never acknowledged how eagerly it was done, but when they met at the top, he would instantly start chatting in the most cheerful way, saying how much one should be sympathized with if they thought there was any danger or even anything unpleasant in the effort. After this great example, I’ve seen the shy youth encourage another and repeat their captain's words. Similarly, he would go into the schoolroom every day to see them practice their nautical skills, and at twelve o'clock, he was always the first on deck with his quadrant. No one could fall behind in their tasks when their captain set such a good example. One more thing I must mention, which will wrap this up, is the day we landed in Barbados. We were supposed to dine with the Governor. Our dear captain said, 'You must let me bring one of my aide-de-camps with me,' and when he introduced him to the Governor, he said, 'Your Excellency must excuse me for bringing one of my midshipmen, as I make it a point to introduce them to all the good company I can, since they have few role models besides myself while they're at sea.' This kindness and attention made the young people adore him; even his wishes, if they had been known, would have been instantly granted."
The charm and wisdom of such a bearing is patent; but it was the natural character of the man that thus shone out, and no mere result of conscientious care. To the last, through all his ill-health, anxiety, and sufferings, the same genial sweetness of manner, the outcome of an unaffected, cordial good-will to all, was shown to those who came in contact with him. Captain Duff, who met him for the first time three weeks before Trafalgar, and who fell in the battle, wrote to his wife in almost the same words as Lady Hughes: "You ask me about Lord Nelson, and how I like him. I have already answered that question as every person must do that ever served under him. He is so good and pleasant a man, that we all wish to do what he likes, without any kind of orders. I have been myself very lucky with most of my admirals, but I really think the present the pleasantest I have met with." There do, it is true, occur in Nelson's letters occasional, though very rare, expressions of that passing annoyance with individuals which is inseparable from the close and long-continued contact of ship life. Thus, shortly before leaving the "Boreas," he writes: "I begin to be very strict in my Ship. Whenever I may set off in another, I shall be indifferent whether I ever speak to an Officer in her, but upon duty." One wonders what passing and soon forgotten breeze, was responsible for this most un-Nelson-like outburst. But to the end it remained true that between the officers and crews under Nelson's command and their chief, there was always that cordial regard which can only spring from the hearty sympathy of the commander with those beneath him.
The charm and wisdom of his demeanor are obvious; but it was the man’s natural character that truly shone through, not just the result of careful attention. Even in his last days, amidst all his health issues, worries, and suffering, he maintained a sweet and friendly manner, reflecting his genuine goodwill toward everyone he met. Captain Duff, who first encountered him three weeks before Trafalgar and died in that battle, wrote to his wife almost exactly the same as Lady Hughes: "You asked me about Lord Nelson and how I feel about him. I’ve already answered that question as anyone who served under him would. He is such a kind and pleasant man that we all want to do what he likes, without needing any orders. I’ve been quite fortunate with most of my admirals, but I honestly think he is the most enjoyable I’ve served with." It’s true that there are rare moments in Nelson’s letters where he expresses fleeting annoyance with individuals, a natural result of the close and prolonged life at sea. For instance, just before leaving the "Boreas," he writes: "I’m starting to be very strict on my ship. Whenever I move to another, I won’t care if I ever speak to an officer on board, except when on duty." One wonders what minor annoyance prompted this unusual outburst from him. However, until the end, it remained clear that there was always a genuine respect and connection between Nelson and the officers and crews under his command, stemming from the true empathy he had for those serving under him.
While thoughtful and considerate, even to gentleness, for the weak and dependent, the singular energy that quickened Nelson's frail and puny frame showed itself on occasion in instant resentment of any official slight to himself or his ship, or injury to the interests of the country. During the "Boreas's" stay at Madeira, the British Consul neglected to return his visit, on the plea that the Government allowed him no boat. Nelson declined any further intercourse with him. While lying in the Downs, he learns that sixteen British seamen are detained by force on board a Dutch Indiaman. He requires their delivery to him; and when their effects were withheld, on the alleged ground of their being in debt to the ship, he stops all intercourse between it and the shore, sending an armed cutter to enforce his order. "The Admiralty," he wrote, "have fortunately approved my conduct in the business," and added grimly, "a thing they are not very guilty of where there is a likelihood of a scrape." When entering the harbor of Fort Royal, Martinique, the principal French island in the Lesser Antilles, the officer at the citadel neglected to hoist the colors, a ceremonial observance customary when a ship of war approached. Nelson at once demanded an explanation and received ample amends; the offending party being placed under arrest. To the governor of some of the British West India islands, he wrote making suggestions for the better discharge of certain duties, in which both of them were interested. He received, it is said, a testy message that "old generals were not in the habit of taking advice from young gentlemen." "I have the honour, Sir," replied Nelson, "of being as old as the prime minister of England, and think myself as capable of commanding one of his majesty's ships as that minister is of governing the state;" and throughout he held to the stand he had taken.
While kind and considerate, even gentle towards the weak and dependent, the unique energy that drove Nelson's frail body showed itself on occasion with an immediate anger at any official slight to himself or his ship, or harm to the country's interests. During the "Boreas's" stay in Madeira, the British Consul failed to return his visit, claiming that the Government hadn’t provided him a boat. Nelson refused any further communication with him. While anchored in the Downs, he learned that sixteen British sailors were being forcibly kept on a Dutch Indiaman. He demanded their release, and when their belongings were withheld under the pretense that they owed money to the ship, he halted all communication between it and the shore, sending an armed cutter to enforce his order. "The Admiralty," he wrote, "have fortunately approved my conduct in this matter," adding grimly, "a thing they aren’t often guilty of when there’s a chance of a mess." Upon entering the harbor of Fort Royal, Martinique, the main French island in the Lesser Antilles, the officer at the citadel failed to raise the flag, a customary gesture when a warship approached. Nelson immediately demanded an explanation and received an adequate apology, with the offending officer being placed under arrest. He wrote to the governor of some of the British West Indian islands, suggesting improvements for certain duties they both shared an interest in. He reportedly received a curt message stating that "old generals don’t usually take advice from young gentlemen." "I have the honour, Sir," Nelson replied, "of being as old as the prime minister of England and believe I am as capable of commanding one of His Majesty's ships as that minister is of governing the state;" and throughout, he maintained his position.
The most remarkable instance, however, of this promptness to assert the dignity and rights of his official position, allowing no man to despise his youth, occurred very soon after his arrival upon the station, and brought him to a direct issue with his commander-in-chief,—if not, indeed, with an authoritative precedent set by so great a man as Lord Rodney. Young though he still was in years,—only twenty-six,—Nelson was by date of commission the senior captain in the small squadron, of some half-dozen vessels, to which the economies of the administration had reduced the Leeward Islands station. Being thus next in rank to the admiral, the latter, who made his headquarters at Barbadoes in the southern part of the station, sent him to the northern division, centring about the island of Antigua. Having remained in harbor, as was usual, during the hurricane months, Nelson cruised during the winter and until February, 1785, when some damage received compelled the "Boreas" to put into Antigua for repairs. Here he found a vessel of the squadron, whose own captain was of course junior to him, flying a Commodore's broad pendant, which asserted the official presence of a captain superior to himself in rank and command, and duly qualified to give him orders. He at once asked the meaning of this from the ship's proper commander, and was informed by him that Captain Moutray, an old officer, twenty years his senior on the post list, and then acting as Commissioner of the Navy, a civil office connected with the dockyard at Antigua, had directed it to be hoisted, and claimed to exercise control over all men-of-war in the harbor, during the admiral's absence.
The most remarkable example of his quickness to defend the dignity and rights of his official position, refusing to let anyone underestimate his youth, happened shortly after he arrived at the station. This situation brought him face-to-face with his commander-in-chief, as well as with an authoritative precedent set by a great man like Lord Rodney. Although he was still young—only twenty-six—Nelson was the senior captain by date of commission in a small squadron of about six vessels, which the administration had reduced the Leeward Islands station to. Being next in rank to the admiral, who was based in Barbados in the southern part of the station, he was sent to the northern division around the island of Antigua. After staying in harbor, as was typical during hurricane season, Nelson cruised during the winter and until February 1785, when some damage forced the "Boreas" to seek repairs in Antigua. There, he found a vessel from the squadron, whose own captain was, of course, junior to him, flying a Commodore's broad pendant, indicating the official presence of a captain with a superior rank and authority to give him orders. He immediately asked the ship's proper commander about this and was informed that Captain Moutray, an experienced officer, twenty years older than him on the post list, and then serving as Commissioner of the Navy, a civil position tied to the dockyard at Antigua, had ordered it to be hoisted and claimed authority over all naval ships in the harbor during the admiral's absence.
Nelson was not wholly unprepared for this, for Hughes had notified him and the other captains that Moutray was authorized by himself to take this step. Being then away from the island, he had replied guardedly that if Commissioner Moutray was put into commission, he would have great pleasure in serving under him,—thus reserving his decision to the moment for action. He now took the ground that an officer not commissioned afloat, but holding only a civil appointment, could not exercise naval command,—that an order authorizing him to do so was invalid,—that to entitle him to such command he must be put into military commission by being attached to a ship in commission. He therefore flatly declined to obey Moutray's orders, refusing to admit his claim to be considered a commodore, or entitled to military obedience, unless he produced a commission. This he held to when Moutray gave him a written order to put himself under his command.
Nelson wasn't entirely caught off guard by this, as Hughes had informed him and the other captains that Moutray had been authorized by him to take this action. Being away from the island at the time, he had responded cautiously, stating that if Commissioner Moutray was put into commission, he would be happy to serve under him,—keeping his decision open until action was required. He now argued that an officer not commissioned at sea, but only holding a civil appointment, couldn't exert naval authority,—that an order permitting him to do so was invalid,—and that to qualify for such command he must be put into military commission by being attached to a commissioned ship. As a result, he flatly refused to follow Moutray's orders, denying his claim to be regarded as a commodore or entitled to military obedience unless he presented a commission. He maintained this stance even when Moutray issued him a written order to place himself under his command.
On technical points of this kind Nelson was a clear and accurate thinker, and in the admiral he had to do with a muddle-headed, irresolute superior. Hughes had already been badly worried and prodded, on matters concerning his own neglected duties, by his unquiet young subordinate, who was never satisfied to leave bad enough alone, but kept raising knotty points to harass an easy-going old gentleman, who wanted only to be allowed to shut his eyes to what went on under his nose. He was now exasperated by Nelson's contumacy, but he was also a little afraid of him, and supported his own order by no more decisive action than laying the case before the Admiralty, who informed Nelson that he should have referred his doubts to the admiral, instead of deciding for himself in a matter that concerned "the exercise of the functions of his [the admiral's] appointment." This was rather begging the question, for Nelson expressed no doubts, either to Hughes or in his explanatory letter to the Admiralty. The latter in turn shirked thus the decision of the question,—for, if Nelson was right, Hughes's order was illegal and not entitled to obedience; if he was wrong, he had been guilty of flagrant insubordination, and should have been sharply dealt with. The Government probably thought that the admiral had blundered in undertaking to give military authority to a civil official,—a step so generally disastrous in experience that it is now explicitly forbidden by the regulations of most navies. It is worthy of note that twenty years later, when commander-in-chief in the Mediterranean, Nelson directed the captains of ships cruising in the Straits of Gibraltar to consult on all occasions with the Commissioner of the Navy resident in Gibraltar, as well as to receive his advice, if proffered,—adding that the commissioner's opinion of their conduct would have great weight with himself; but he did not put them under his orders.[8]
On technical matters like this, Nelson was a clear and precise thinker, while his admiral was disorganized and indecisive. Hughes had already been quite stressed and pushed by his restless young subordinate, who was never content to let things slide and kept bringing up tricky issues to bother an easy-going old man who just wanted to ignore what was happening right in front of him. He was now frustrated by Nelson's defiance, but he was also somewhat intimidated by him, and backed up his own command with no more decisive action than bringing the case to the Admiralty, which told Nelson that he should have discussed his concerns with the admiral instead of making his own decision on a matter that dealt with "the exercise of the functions of his [the admiral's] appointment." This was rather dodging the issue since Nelson expressed no doubts, either to Hughes or in his explanatory letter to the Admiralty. The latter also avoided deciding the issue—because if Nelson was right, then Hughes's order was unlawful and not to be followed; if he was wrong, he had seriously disobeyed orders and should have faced consequences. The Government likely believed that the admiral made a mistake by granting military authority to a civilian, a move that has generally led to disaster and is now explicitly forbidden by the rules of most navies. It's worth noting that twenty years later, when he was commander-in-chief in the Mediterranean, Nelson instructed the captains of ships operating in the Straits of Gibraltar to consult at all times with the Navy Commissioner in Gibraltar and to consider his advice if offered—adding that the commissioner's opinion on their actions would carry significant weight with him; however, he did not place them under his command.[8]
Reasoning from Nelson's position, as the pendant was flying without proper authority on board a ship under his immediate command, he should, as senior captain afloat, have gone further and hauled it down. Of his authority to do so he felt no doubt, as is evident from his letter to the Admiralty; but his motive for refraining was characteristic. He was unwilling to wound Moutray; just as, before Trafalgar, in direct disregard of the Admiralty's orders, he allowed an admiral going home under charges to take with him his flagship, a vessel of the first force and likely to be sorely needed in the approaching battle, because he was reluctant to add to the distress the officer was undergoing already. "I did not choose to order the Commissioner's pendant to be struck, as Mr. Moutray is an old officer of high military character; and it might hurt his feelings to be supposed wrong by so young an officer." The question solved itself shortly by the Commissioner's returning to England; but the controversy seems to have made no change in the friendly and even affectionate relations existing between him and his wife and Nelson. For Mrs. Moutray the latter had formed one of those strong idealizing attachments which sprang up from time to time along his path. "You may be certain," he writes to his brother at the very period the discussion was pending, "I never passed English Harbour without a call, but alas! I am not to have much comfort. My dear, sweet friend is going home. I am really an April day; happy on her account, but truly grieved were I only to consider myself. Her equal I never saw in any country or in any situation. If my dear Kate [his sister] goes to Bath next winter she will be known to her, for my dear friend promised to make herself known. What an acquisition to any female to be acquainted with, what an example to take pattern from." "My sweet, amiable friend sails the 20th for England. I took my leave of her three days ago with a heavy heart. What a treasure of a woman." Returning to Antigua a few weeks later, he writes again in a sentimental vein very rare in him: "This country appears now intolerable, my dear friend being absent. It is barren indeed. English Harbour I hate the sight of, and Windsor I detest. I went once up the hill to look at the spot where I spent more happy days than in any one spot in the world. E'en the trees drooped their heads, and the tamarind tree died:—all was melancholy: the road is covered with thistles; let them grow. I shall never pull one of them up." His regard for this attractive woman seems to have lasted through his life; for she survived him, and to her Collingwood addressed a letter after Trafalgar, giving some particulars of Nelson's death. Her only son also died under the latter's immediate command, ten years later, when serving in Corsica.
Reasoning from Nelson's perspective, since the pendant was flying without proper authority on board a ship under his direct command, he should have gone further and taken it down. He had no doubt about his authority to do so, as shown in his letter to the Admiralty; however, his reason for holding back was typical of him. He didn’t want to hurt Moutray’s feelings; just like before Trafalgar, when he ignored the Admiralty's orders and allowed an admiral facing charges to take his flagship, a crucial ship likely to be needed in the upcoming battle, because he didn't want to add to the officer's distress. "I didn’t want to order the Commissioner's pendant to be struck, as Mr. Moutray is an experienced officer of high military standing; and it might hurt his feelings to be thought wrong by such a young officer." The issue resolved itself quickly when the Commissioner returned to England, but the controversy seemed to have no effect on the friendly and even affectionate relationship between him, his wife, and Nelson. Nelson had formed one of those strong, idealized attachments to Mrs. Moutray that occasionally arose in his life. "You can be sure," he wrote to his brother while the discussion was happening, "I never passed English Harbour without stopping by, but alas! I won’t be getting much comfort. My dear, sweet friend is going home. I’m happy for her but truly saddened when I think of myself. I’ve never seen anyone like her, no matter the country or circumstances. If my dear Kate [his sister] goes to Bath next winter, she will meet her, as my dear friend promised to introduce herself. What a gain it is for any woman to know her, what a role model to follow." "My sweet, kind friend sets sail for England on the 20th. I said goodbye to her three days ago with a heavy heart. What a wonderful woman." Returning to Antigua a few weeks later, he wrote again in a rarely sentimental tone: "This place seems unbearable now that my dear friend is gone. It’s truly barren. I hate the sight of English Harbour, and I loathe Windsor. I once went up the hill to see the spot where I spent more happy days than anywhere else in the world. Even the trees seemed to droop, and the tamarind tree has died:—everything felt gloomy: the road is overgrown with thistles; let them be. I will never pull one of them up." His feelings for this captivating woman seem to have lasted his whole life; she survived him, and after Trafalgar, Collingwood wrote her a letter detailing some of what happened during Nelson's death. Her only son also died under Nelson’s command ten years later while serving in Corsica.
The chief interest of the dispute over Moutray's position lies not in the somewhat obscure point involved, but in the illustration it affords of Nelson's singular independence and tenacity in a matter of principle. Under a conviction of right he throughout life feared no responsibility and shrank from no consequences. It is difficult for the non-military mind to realize how great is the moral effort of disobeying a superior, whose order on the one hand covers all responsibility, and on the other entails the most serious personal and professional injury, if violated without due cause; the burden of proving which rests upon the junior. For the latter it is, justly and necessarily, not enough that his own intentions or convictions were honest: he has to show, not that he meant to do right, but that he actually did right, in disobeying in the particular instance. Under no less rigorous exactions can due military subordination be maintained. The whole bent of advantage and life-long training, therefore, draws in one direction, and is withstood by nothing, unless either strong personal character supplies a motive, or established professional standing permits a man to presume upon it, and to exercise a certain right to independence of action. At this time Nelson was practically unknown, and in refusing compliance with an order he took a risk that no other captain on the station would have assumed, as was shown by their failure a few months later to support their convictions in an analogous controversy, upon which Nelson had entered even before the Moutray business. In both cases he staked all upon legal points, considered by him vital to the welfare of the navy and the country. The spirit was identically the same that led him to swing his ship out of the line at Cape St. Vincent without waiting for signals. After that day and the Nile he could afford to take liberties, and sometimes took them with less justification than in his early career.
The main focus of the disagreement over Moutray's position isn't really about the complex issue at hand, but rather it highlights Nelson's unique independence and determination when it comes to principles. Believing he was right, he never shied away from responsibility or avoided the consequences throughout his life. For someone without a military background, it’s hard to grasp how significant the moral challenge is when disobeying a superior. That superior's order removes all responsibility but also leads to serious personal and professional repercussions if it’s disregarded without good reason; the burden to prove this falls on the junior officer. For the junior, it’s simply not enough to have honest intentions or beliefs; they must demonstrate that they actually did the right thing by disobeying in that specific situation. Maintaining proper military discipline requires such stringent expectations. Consequently, everything in terms of rewards and years of training tends to push in one direction, countered only by strong personal character or an established professional reputation that allows someone to act independently. At that moment, Nelson was not well-known, and by refusing to follow an order, he took a risk that no other captain in the area would have taken. This was evident a few months later when they failed to uphold their beliefs in a similar dispute that Nelson had already engaged in before the Moutray incident. In both situations, he put everything on the line over legal matters he deemed crucial to the navy and the nation. The same spirit that drove him to pull his ship out of line at Cape St. Vincent without waiting for signals can be seen here. After the battles of Cape St. Vincent and the Nile, he could afford to take risks, and sometimes he did so with less justification than in his earlier days.
When the Moutray question arose, Nelson was already engaged in a more far-reaching dispute, not only with his commander-in-chief, but with the colonial authorities and the popular sentiment of the West India Islands. Like most men, great and small, he shared the prepossessions of his day and generation; differing, however, from others, in that he held his opinions as principles, from asserting which he was not to be deterred by the ill-will or dislike of those immediately about him. Upon arriving in the West Indies he found nourishing a system of trade extremely beneficial to the islands, but which his education condemned as hurtful to Great Britain, as it certainly was contrary to then existing laws that had for a century previous regulated the commerce of the kingdom. In 1784, a year only had elapsed since the United States had been formally recognized as independent, thereby becoming, in British estimation as well as in their own, a nation foreign to the British flag. By the Navigation Laws, first established by Cromwell, but continued under the restored monarchy without serious modification until 1794, trade with the Colonies was reserved to vessels built in Great Britain or her dependencies, and manned in three-fourths part by British subjects. The chief object and advantage of the law were conceived to be, not merely a monopoly of the trade,—concerning the economical wisdom of which serious doubts began to be felt,—but the fostering of the British merchant service as a nursery of seamen, upon whom, in time of war, the navy could draw. The military strength of the Empire was thought to be involved in the enforcement of the Navigation Act.[9]
When the Moutray issue came up, Nelson was already involved in a bigger conflict, not just with his commander-in-chief, but also with colonial authorities and the general opinion in the West India Islands. Like most people, whether great or small, he shared the beliefs of his time; however, he stood out because he viewed his opinions as principles that he wouldn't back down from, even if he faced resentment or dislike from those around him. Upon arriving in the West Indies, he found a thriving trade system that greatly benefited the islands, but which he believed to be harmful to Great Britain, as it clearly contradicted the laws that had governed the kingdom’s commerce for the previous century. In 1784, it was just a year after the United States had been formally recognized as independent, which made them, in the eyes of the British as well as their own, a nation separate from the British flag. According to the Navigation Laws, initially established by Cromwell and continued with little change under the restored monarchy until 1794, trade with the Colonies was restricted to ships built in Great Britain or its dependencies, staffed mainly by British subjects. The primary goal of this law was not just to secure a monopoly on trade—of which serious doubts about its economic wisdom were starting to arise—but also to support the British merchant service as a training ground for sailors who could be called upon by the navy in times of war. The military strength of the Empire was believed to be tied to the enforcement of the Navigation Act.[9]
Before the United States declared their independence, they, as British colonies, enjoyed the privilege of trading with their fellow-colonists under what was then the common flag; and the nearness of the two regions contributed to the advantage of both in this traffic, in which the continental communities were the chief suppliers of many articles essential to the islands, notably provisions and lumber. This mutual intercourse and dependence promoted a sympathy which was scarcely disguised in the West Indies during the War of Independence; indeed, Nelson wrote that many of the inhabitants were as arrant rebels as those who had renounced their allegiance. Under these conditions, when peace was restored, the old relations were readily resumed; and as there had really been considerable inconvenience and loss to the islanders from the deprivation of American products, the renewal was eagerly promoted by popular sentiment. The local authorities, as usual and natural, yielded to the pressure around them, and in entire disregard of the known policy of the home government permitted American vessels to trade openly under their own colors. In Jamaica the governor had even gone so far as to authorize formally a free trade, during pleasure, with the United States, contrary to the explicit orders of his superiors in Great Britain. Where scruples were felt or hesitation was shown, advantage was taken of the exceptions of the law, which allowed vessels in distress to sell so much of their cargoes as would pay for necessary repairs. With the tendency of commerce to evade restrictions by liberal stretching of the conscience, the merchant captain and the colonial officer found little difficulty in arranging that the damage should be great enough to cover the sale of the whole lading.
Before the United States declared independence, the British colonies enjoyed the benefit of trading with each other under the same flag. The proximity of the two regions enhanced their trade, with the mainland mainly supplying essential goods like food and timber to the islands. This mutual interaction and reliance created a bond that was evident in the West Indies during the War of Independence; in fact, Nelson noted that many islanders were just as much rebels as those who had rejected their allegiance. With the return of peace, the old trading relationships quickly resumed, and since the islanders had experienced significant inconvenience and loss from the lack of American products, the revival was enthusiastically supported by public sentiment. Local authorities, as was typical and natural, succumbed to the surrounding pressure and, ignoring the home government’s established policy, allowed American ships to trade openly under their own flags. In Jamaica, the governor even formally authorized free trade with the United States, despite clear orders from his superiors in Great Britain. Where there were hesitations or concerns, loopholes in the law were exploited, allowing distressed vessels to sell enough of their cargo to cover necessary repairs. With the tendency of commerce to circumvent restrictions by stretching the truth, merchant captains and colonial officials found it easy to agree that the damage would be substantial enough to justify the sale of the entire cargo.
After laying up in Antigua during the hurricane season of 1784, Nelson was summoned to Barbadoes in November, with the other captains, to receive orders for the winter's cruising. These, when issued, were found to direct only the examination of anchorages, and the gathering of information about supplies of wood and water. Nelson's attention had been drawn already to the American traffic; and he, with his friend Collingwood, who was again on the station, went to the admiral, and urged that it was the duty of ships of war to enforce the Navigation Laws. The admiral professed ignorance of these; and Nelson himself remarks that British vessels up to that time had been so much cheaper built than others, that they had, without artificial protection, naturally absorbed their own colonial trade,—the question, therefore, had dropped out of sight till it was revived by American competition. A copy of the Act being then produced, Hughes gave an order requiring his vessels to enforce it; making special mention of the changed relations of the United States to Great Britain, whereby they were "to be considered as foreigners, and excluded from all commerce with the islands in these seas."
After staying in Antigua during the hurricane season of 1784, Nelson was called to Barbados in November, along with the other captains, to receive orders for winter patrols. When the orders came out, they were found to only direct the examination of anchorages and the collection of information about wood and water supplies. Nelson had already noticed the American trade, and he, along with his friend Collingwood, who was back on the station, went to the admiral and argued that it was the responsibility of warships to enforce the Navigation Laws. The admiral claimed he was unaware of these laws; Nelson himself noted that British ships had been built so much cheaper than others up to that point that they had naturally secured their own colonial trade without needing any special protection, so the issue had faded from view until American competition brought it back to attention. When a copy of the Act was presented, Hughes issued an order for his ships to enforce it, specifically noting the new relationship between the United States and Great Britain, which stated they were "to be considered as foreigners, and excluded from all commerce with the islands in these seas."
With these instructions Nelson sailed again for the north, where the Virgin Islands, with those of Montserrat, Nevis, and St. Christopher, were put under his especial charge,—the sloop "Rattler," Captain Wilfred Collingwood, a brother of the well-known admiral, being associated with the "Boreas." At first the two officers confined their action to warning off American vessels, and at times forcing them to leave ports where they had anchored; but they found that either the vessels returned during the absence of the ships of war, or that permissions to land, upon what they thought trivial grounds, were given by the Customs' officials, in virtue of the exceptions to the law above mentioned.
With these instructions, Nelson set sail once more to the north, where the Virgin Islands, along with Montserrat, Nevis, and St. Christopher, were placed under his special command. The sloop "Rattler," captained by Wilfred Collingwood, a brother of the famous admiral, was working alongside the "Boreas." Initially, the two officers focused on warning American vessels away, and at times, forcing them to leave the ports where they had anchored. However, they discovered that either the vessels returned when the warships were absent, or the Customs officials granted permissions to land for what they considered trivial reasons, based on the exceptions to the law mentioned earlier.
There matters stood until the 11th of January, 1785, Nelson acting by the authority of the commander-in-chief, but exercising his own discretion, and with forbearance, in carrying out his instructions. On the day named he received another order from the admiral, modifying the first upon the grounds of a more mature consideration, and of "the opinion of the King's Attorney-General" in the islands. Nelson was now directed, in case of a foreign merchant-ship coming within the limits of his station, to cause her to anchor near his own vessel and to report her arrival, and situation in all respects, to the governor of the colony where he then was; "and if, after such report shall have been made and received, the governor or his representative shall think proper to admit the said foreigner into the port or harbour of the island where you may be, you are on no account to hinder or prevent such foreign vessel from going in accordingly, or to interfere any further in her subsequent proceedings."
There matters stood until January 11, 1785, with Nelson acting on the authority of the commander-in-chief, but using his own judgment and patience in carrying out his orders. On that day, he received another order from the admiral, changing the first one based on more careful consideration and "the opinion of the King's Attorney-General" in the islands. Nelson was now instructed that if a foreign merchant ship entered his station, he was to have her anchor near his own vessel and report her arrival and status in every respect to the governor of the colony where he was at the time; "and if, after such report has been made and received, the governor or his representative thinks it appropriate to allow the said foreign vessel into the port or harbor of the island where you are, you are on no account to hinder or prevent such foreign vessel from going in accordingly, or to interfere any further in her subsequent proceedings."
Here the admiral not only raised, but also decided, the point as to whether the enforcement of the Navigation Act rested with naval officers, or was vested only in the civil authorities of the islands. Nelson was convinced that an essential part of the duty of ships of war, and especially when peace took from them so much of their military function, was to afford to the commerce of the nation proper protection, of which a necessary feature, according to the ideas of the age, was the interdiction of foreign traders. A seaman, he plausibly argued, could decide better than an unprofessional man the questions of injuries and distress upon which the unlawful traffic largely hinged. "In judging of their distress, no person can know better than the sea officers," he wrote to Hughes. "The governors may be imposed upon by false declarations; we, who are on the spot, cannot." He was aware, also, that a petition for relaxing the Act in favor of the American trade with the West Indies had been referred to the home government, by which it had been explicitly rejected. Strengthened by this knowledge, but actuated, after all, chiefly by his invariable resoluteness to assume responsibility where he felt he was right, he replied to the admiral's letter with a clear statement of the facts, concluding with the words: "Whilst I have the honour to command an English man-of-war, I never shall allow myself to be subservient to the will of any Governor, nor coöperate with him in doing illegal acts.... If I rightly understand your order of the 29th of December, it is founded upon an Opinion of the King's Attorney-General, viz.: 'That it is legal for Governors or their representatives to admit foreigners into the ports of their government, if they think fit.' How the King's Attorney-General conceives he has a right to give an illegal opinion, which I assert the above is, he must answer for. I know the Navigation Laws." As he summed up the matter in a letter to his friend Locker: "Sir Richard Hughes was a delicate business. I must either disobey my orders, or disobey Acts of Parliament, which the admiral was disobeying. I determined upon the former, trusting to the uprightness of my intention. In short, I wrote the Admiral that I should decline obeying his orders, till I had an opportunity of seeing and talking to him, at the same time making him an apology."
Here the admiral not only raised but also decided the issue of whether enforcing the Navigation Act was the responsibility of naval officers or solely the civil authorities of the islands. Nelson believed that an essential part of the duty of warships, especially when peace diminished their military role, was to provide proper protection for national commerce, which, according to the ideas of the time, included blocking foreign traders. He reasonably argued that a seaman could better judge issues of injury and distress that were key to the illegal trade than someone untrained. "When it comes to judging their distress, no one knows better than the sea officers," he wrote to Hughes. "The governors may be misled by false statements; we, who are on the scene, cannot." He also knew that a request to ease the Act for American trade with the West Indies had been sent to the home government, which explicitly turned it down. With this knowledge reinforcing him, but primarily driven by his usual determination to take responsibility when he believed he was right, he replied to the admiral's letter with a straightforward account of the facts, ending with: "While I have the honor to command an English warship, I will never allow myself to be subordinate to the will of any governor or cooperate with him in committing illegal acts.... If I understand your order from December 29 correctly, it is based on an opinion from the King's Attorney-General, which states: 'It is legal for governors or their representatives to allow foreigners into the ports under their control, if they choose to do so.' How the King's Attorney-General believes he has the authority to give an illegal opinion, which I assert the above is, he must justify. I understand the Navigation Laws." As he summarized the situation in a letter to his friend Locker: "Sir Richard Hughes was a tricky situation. I had to either disobey my orders or violate Acts of Parliament, which the admiral was ignoring. I chose to disobey orders, trusting in the integrity of my intention. In short, I wrote to the Admiral that I would refuse to follow his orders until I had the chance to see and talk to him, while also apologizing."
Hughes's first impulse was to supersede his recalcitrant subordinate, and bring him to trial. He learned, however, that many of the other captains, of whom the court must be formed, shared his junior's views, although they shrank, with the submissiveness of military men, from the decisive act of disobedience. The result of a trial must therefore be doubtful. He was, moreover, a fiddler, as Nelson continually styled him, shifting back and forth, from opinion to opinion, and to be relied upon for only one thing,—to dodge responsibility, if possible. Consequently, no official action was taken; the commander-in-chief contented himself with washing his hands of all accountability. He had given orders which would clear himself, in case Nelson's conduct was censured in England. If, on the contrary, it was approved, it would redound to the credit of the station.
Hughes's first instinct was to replace his defiant subordinate and put him on trial. However, he found out that many of the other captains, who would form the court, shared his junior's opinions, even though they hesitated, as military personnel often do, from taking the bold step of disobedience. As a result, the outcome of a trial would likely be uncertain. Moreover, he was known as a fiddler, as Nelson often called him, constantly shifting back and forth between opinions and could only be counted on for one thing—dodging responsibility whenever possible. Therefore, no formal action was taken; the commander-in-chief settled for avoiding all accountability. He had given orders that would protect him in case Nelson's actions were criticized in England. On the other hand, if those actions were approved, it would enhance the reputation of the station.
The matter was soon brought to a test. The governors and all the officials, particularly of the Custom House, resented the action of the naval officers; but the vigilance of the latter so seriously interrupted the forbidden traffic under American colors, that recourse was had to giving British registers to the vessels concerned, allowing them to trade under British flags. This, however, was equally contrary to the Navigation Act, which forbade British registry to foreign-built ships, except when prizes taken in war; and the disguise wast too thin to baffle men like Collingwood and Nelson. The latter reported the practice to the home Government, in order that any measures deemed necessary might be taken. Meanwhile he patiently persisted in turning away all vessels, not British built, which he encountered, confining himself for the time to this merely passive prevention; but finding at last that this was not a sufficient deterrent, he gave notice that after the 1st of May, 1785, he would seize all American vessels trading to the islands, "let them be registered by whom they might." Accordingly, on the 2d of May he arrested an American-built schooner, owned in Philadelphia and manned entirely by Americans, but having a British register issued at the island of St. Christopher.
The issue was soon put to the test. The governors and all the officials, especially at the Custom House, were upset by the actions of the naval officers; however, the vigilance of the latter severely disrupted the illegal trade using American flags, leading to the decision to give British registration to the involved vessels, allowing them to trade under British flags. This, however, also violated the Navigation Act, which prohibited British registration for foreign-built ships, except in the case of war prizes; and the ruse was too obvious to fool men like Collingwood and Nelson. The latter reported this practice to the home Government so that any necessary measures could be taken. In the meantime, he patiently continued to turn away all vessels that weren't British-built, limiting himself to this passive prevention for the time being; but eventually realizing that this was not enough of a deterrent, he announced that after May 1, 1785, he would seize all American vessels trading to the islands, "regardless of who registered them." So, on May 2, he captured an American-built schooner, owned in Philadelphia and completely crewed by Americans, but carrying a British registration issued at the island of St. Christopher.
The Crown lawyer was now called upon to prosecute the suit. He expressed grave doubts as to a naval captain's power to act by virtue simply of his commission, the sole authority alleged by the captor; and, although he proceeded with the case, his manner so betrayed his uncertainty that Nelson felt it necessary to plead for himself. To the confusion of all opponents the judge decided in his favor, saying he had an undoubted right to seize vessels transgressing the Navigation Laws. The principle thus established, Nelson on the 23d of the same month, at the island of Nevis, upon the same grounds, seized four vessels,—one of which had been registered at Dominica by Governor Orde, a naval captain senior in rank to himself, and with whom he came into unpleasant contact upon several occasions in his later life.
The Crown lawyer was now tasked with prosecuting the case. He expressed serious doubts about a naval captain's authority to act solely based on his commission, which was the only authority claimed by the captor. Despite his doubts, he moved forward with the case, but his uncertain demeanor prompted Nelson to defend himself. To the surprise of all his opponents, the judge ruled in Nelson's favor, stating that he had an undeniable right to seize vessels that were violating the Navigation Laws. With this principle established, Nelson seized four vessels on the 23rd of that month at the island of Nevis. One of these vessels had been registered in Dominica by Governor Orde, a naval captain who was senior to Nelson and with whom he had several unpleasant encounters later in life.
There was no serious question as to the condemnation of the four last seizures, the facts being clear and the principle settled;[10] but the rage of the inhabitants of Nevis led them to seek revenge upon Nelson for the injury they could no longer prevent. He had summoned the masters of the ships on board the "Boreas," and, after satisfying himself that the vessels were not entitled to British registers, had sent marines to hold them, and to prevent essential witnesses from leaving them, until the cases were tried. Upon these circumstances was based an accusation of assault and imprisonment, the masters swearing that they had made their statements under bodily fear. Writs were issued against Nelson, damages being laid at four thousand pounds, a sum which to him meant ruin. Although he asserted that there was absolutely no truth in the charges, which are certainly in entire contradiction to the general, if not invariable, tenor of his life and conduct, he was advised by the Crown lawyers not to subject himself to trial, as in the state of public feeling he could not expect a fair verdict. To avoid arrest, he was forced to confine himself to the ship for seven weeks, during which the marshal made several attempts to serve the writ, but without success. On the day that the case of the seized ships came up, he was able to be present in court only by the safe conduct of the judge.
There was no serious doubt about the condemnation of the last four seizures, the facts being clear and the principle established; [10] but the anger of the people in Nevis drove them to seek revenge against Nelson for the harm they could no longer prevent. He had called the ship captains on board the "Boreas," and after confirming that the vessels weren't entitled to British registrations, he had sent marines to secure them and prevent key witnesses from leaving until the cases were heard. Based on these circumstances, he was accused of assault and imprisonment, with the captains claiming they made their statements out of fear for their safety. Writs were issued against Nelson, with damages set at four thousand pounds, an amount that would ruin him. Though he insisted there was absolutely no truth to the charges, which were completely at odds with his overall behavior and character, Crown lawyers advised him not to go to trial because, given the public sentiment, he couldn't expect a fair ruling. To avoid arrest, he had to stay on the ship for seven weeks, during which the marshal tried multiple times to serve the writ, but was unsuccessful. On the day the case of the seized ships was scheduled, he could only attend court through the judge's safe conduct.
Two days after the seizure of the four vessels, Sir Richard Hughes, who was making a tour of the station under his command, arrived at Nevis; but he had no support to give his zealous lieutenant. "He did not appear to be pleased with my conduct," wrote Nelson to Locker. "At least he did not approve it, but told me I should get into a scrape. Seven weeks I was kept a close prisoner to my ship; nor did I ever learn that the admiral took any steps for my release. He did not even acquaint the Admiralty Board how cruelly I had been treated; nor of the attempts which had been made to take me out of my ship by force, and that indignity offered under the fly of his flag." "I had the governor, the Customs, all the planters upon me; subscriptions were soon filled to prosecute; and my admiral stood neuter, although his flag was then in the roads." To this lack of countenance on the part of his superior, and direct persecution by those injuriously affected by his action, there was added a general social ostracism, to which he frequently alludes, and which was particularly emphasized by its contrast with the habits of hospitality prevalent among the small and wealthy planter community. One friend, however, stood by him, and offered to become his bail in the sum of ten thousand pounds,—Mr. Herbert, the President of Nevis, and one of the wealthiest men in the island. He had, Nelson said, suffered more than any one else from the interruption of the trade, but he considered that the young captain had done only his duty. Possibly there may have been a warmer feeling underlying this esteem, for he was the uncle of the lady whom Nelson afterwards married, and to whom he seems to have been paying attention already.
Two days after the seizure of the four vessels, Sir Richard Hughes, who was touring the station under his command, arrived at Nevis; but he offered no support to his eager lieutenant. "He didn't seem pleased with my actions," Nelson wrote to Locker. "At the very least, he didn't approve, but warned me I might get into trouble. For seven weeks, I was kept on my ship in confinement; and I never found out that the admiral took any steps for my release. He didn't even inform the Admiralty Board about how harshly I had been treated, nor about the attempts made to forcibly remove me from my ship, a humiliating experience under his flag." "I had the governor, the Customs officials, and all the planters against me; subscriptions quickly filled up to prosecute me; yet my admiral remained neutral, even though his flag was flying in the harbor." On top of the lack of support from his superior and direct harassment from those upset by his actions, he faced a general social exclusion, which he often referenced, particularly in contrast to the hospitality typical among the small, wealthy planter community. However, one friend stood by him and offered to bail him out for ten thousand pounds—Mr. Herbert, the President of Nevis, and one of the richest men on the island. He had, Nelson noted, suffered more than anyone else due to the disruption of trade, but he believed that the young captain was just doing his duty. There may have been a deeper sentiment behind this support, as he was the uncle of the woman Nelson later married, to whom he seems to have been showing interest already.
Despite his indomitable pluck and resolve, the confinement, uncertainty, and contention told heavily on Nelson's health and spirits. His temper was too kindly and social not to feel the general alienation. It could not affect his purpose; but the sense of right-doing, which sustained him in that, did not make his road otherwise easier. It is, indeed, especially to be noticed that there was not in him that hard, unyielding fibre, upon which care, or neglect, or anxiety, makes little impression. He was, on the contrary, extremely sympathetic, even emotional; and although insensible to bodily fear, he was by no means so to censure, or to risk of other misfortune. To this susceptibility to worry, strong witness is borne by an expression of his, used at the very time of which we are now writing. One of his friends—Captain Pole of the Navy—had detained and sent in a neutral vessel for breach of belligerent rights. After long legal proceedings, extending over five years, she was condemned, and proved to be a very valuable prize to the captors. "Our friend Charles Pole," he writes, "has been fortunate in his trial; but the lottery is so very much against an officer, that never will I knowingly involve myself in a doubtful cause. Prize-money is doubtless very acceptable; but my mind would have suffered so much, that no pecuniary compensation, at so late a period, would have made me amends." Contrasting this utterance with the resolution shown by him at this time, in fighting what he considered the cause of his country in the West Indies, it can be seen how much stronger with him was the influence of duty than that exercised by any considerations of merely material advantage. In the one he could find support; in the other not. But in neither case was he insensible to care, nor could he escape the physical consequences of anxiety upon a delicate frame and nervous organization. Of this, his harassment in the pursuit of the French fleet in 1798, during Bonaparte's Egyptian expedition, gave a very conspicuous illustration.
Despite his unwavering courage and determination, the confinement, uncertainty, and conflict took a heavy toll on Nelson's health and spirits. His kind and sociable nature made him acutely aware of the general isolation. While this didn't weaken his resolve, the sense of righteousness that kept him going didn't make his path any easier. It’s particularly noteworthy that he lacked that hard, unyielding quality that allows one to shrug off care, neglect, or anxiety. Instead, he was quite empathetic, even emotional; and although he was immune to physical fear, he was very much affected by criticism or the risk of other troubles. Evidence of his tendency to worry can be seen in a remark he made during this period. One of his friends—Captain Pole of the Navy—had detained and sent a neutral ship for violating belligerent rights. After lengthy legal proceedings lasting five years, the ship was condemned and turned out to be a very valuable prize for the captors. "Our friend Charles Pole," he writes, "has been fortunate in his trial; but the odds are so heavily against an officer that I will never knowingly get involved in a questionable case. Prize money is certainly nice, but my mind would have suffered so much that no financial reward, at this late point, would have made it right." Comparing this statement to his determination to fight for what he believed was his country’s cause in the West Indies, it’s clear that his sense of duty was much stronger than any thoughts of material benefit. He found support in one situation, but not in the other. Yet in both cases, he wasn't indifferent to worry, nor could he avoid the physical effects of anxiety on his sensitive body and nervous system. His distress in chasing the French fleet in 1798, during Bonaparte’s Egyptian campaign, provides a striking example of this.
With such a temperament, being now very much in the position of an individual fighting a corporation, he appealed to the home Government; addressing, on the 29th of June, 1785, a memorial to the King, setting forth the facts of the case, as already given, adding that his health was much impaired, and asking for assistance. He received a reply to this in the following September, informing him that the King had directed that he should be defended by the Crown lawyers. This implied approval of his course was succeeded, in November, by a letter from the Secretary of the Treasury, through the usual official channels of the Admiralty, acquainting him that the Government was "of opinion that the commander-in-chief of the Leeward Islands, and officers under him, have shown a very commendable zeal, in endeavouring to put a stop to the very illicit practices which were carrying on in the islands, in open violation of the law, and to the great detriment of the navigation and trade of his Majesty's dominions." Verily, Hughes had his reward. Here he was commended in express terms for doing that which he had been too prudent to do, for zeal which he had never shown, for maintaining a law which he had given orders not to maintain. "I own I was surprised," wrote Nelson, "that the commander-in-chief should be thanked for an act which he did not order, but which, if I understand the meaning of words, by his order of the 29th December, 1784, he ordered not to be." "To the end of the station,[11] his order of the 29th of December was never repealed, so that I always acted with a rod over me." How heavily the responsibility he assumed was felt by others, is clearly shown in another statement made by him. "The Captains Collingwood were the only officers, with myself, who ever attempted to hinder the illicit trade with America; and I stood singly with respect to seizing, for the other officers were fearful of being brought into scrapes."
With such a temperament, now very much in the position of an individual taking on a corporation, he reached out to the home government; on June 29, 1785, he sent a memorial to the King outlining the facts of the case as previously mentioned, adding that his health was deteriorating and requesting assistance. He got a response in September, informing him that the King had instructed that he should be defended by the Crown lawyers. This implied approval of his actions was followed in November by a letter from the Secretary of the Treasury, delivered through the usual official channels of the Admiralty, informing him that the Government believed "the commander-in-chief of the Leeward Islands, and the officers under him, have shown very commendable zeal in trying to put an end to the illegal activities happening in the islands, in open violation of the law, and to the great detriment of navigation and trade in His Majesty's dominions." Indeed, Hughes had his reward. Here, he was commended in clear terms for doing what he had been too cautious to do, for a zeal he had never displayed, for upholding a law he had instructed not to enforce. "I was surprised," wrote Nelson, "that the commander-in-chief should be thanked for an action he never ordered, but which, if I understand meaning correctly, by his order of December 29, 1784, he instructed not to take place." "Throughout the station, his order of December 29 was never repealed, so I always acted under a shadow of authority." The weight of this responsibility he assumed was clearly felt by others, as shown in another statement he made. "The Captains Collingwood were the only officers, along with me, who ever tried to stop the illegal trade with America; and I was alone in regards to seizing, because the other officers were afraid of being caught up in trouble."
Backed by the royal approval, and with his legal expenses guaranteed, Nelson's course was now smooth. He continued in all parts of the station to suppress the contraband trade, and his unpopularity, of course, also continued; but excitement necessarily subsided as it became clear that submission was unavoidable, and as men adapted themselves to the new conditions. The whole procedure now looks somewhat barbarous and blundering, but in no essential principle differs from the methods of protection to which the world at present seems again tending. It is not for us to throw stones at it. The results, then, were completely successful, judged by the standards of the time. "At this moment," wrote Nelson some few months later, "there are nearly fifty sail employed in the trade between the Islands of St. Kitts, Nevis, and America, which are truly British built, owned, and navigated. Had I been an idle spectator, my firm belief is that not a single vessel would have belonged to those islands in the foreign trade." His own action was further endorsed by the ministry, which now gave captains of ships-of-war much more extensive powers, thereby justifying his contention that it was within their office to enforce the Navigation Act. Nor was this increased activity of the executive branch of the government the only result of Nelson's persistence. His sagacious study of the whole question, under the local conditions of the West Indies, led to his making several suggestions for more surely carrying out the spirit of the Law; and these were embodied the next year in a formal Act of the Legislature.
Backed by royal approval and with his legal expenses covered, Nelson's path was now clear. He continued to crack down on the smuggling trade throughout the station, and unsurprisingly, his unpopularity persisted; however, the excitement waned as it became clear that acceptance was unavoidable and people adjusted to the new circumstances. The whole process now seems somewhat primitive and clumsy, but it doesn’t fundamentally differ from the protectionist methods that the world seems to be gravitating back toward. It’s not our place to criticize it. Ultimately, the results were completely successful by the standards of the time. "At this moment," Nelson wrote a few months later, "there are nearly fifty ships involved in trade between the Islands of St. Kitts, Nevis, and America, which are genuinely British built, owned, and operated. If I had been a passive observer, I firmly believe that not a single vessel would have belonged to those islands in foreign trade." His actions were further supported by the ministry, which now granted captains of warships much broader powers, validating his argument that it was within their responsibility to enforce the Navigation Act. Additionally, Nelson's persistence led to a heightened activity from the executive branch of the government. His insightful study of the entire issue, considering the local conditions in the West Indies, resulted in him proposing several measures for better adhering to the spirit of the Law; these suggestions were incorporated the following year into a formal Act of the Legislature.
With so vivid a career as that of Nelson ahead, the delay imposed by this wrangling episode is somewhat dreary; but it undeniably shows his characteristics in the strongest light. Duty, not ease; honor, not gain; the ideal, not the material,—such, not indeed without frailty and blemish, were ever his motives. And, while he craved his reward in the approval and recognition of those around and above him, he could find consolation for the lack of them in his own sense of right-doing. "That thing called Honour," he writes to a friend soon after the "Boreas" cruise, "is now, alas! thought of no more. My integrity cannot be mended, I hope; but my fortune, God knows, has grown worse for the service; so much for serving my country. But I have invariably laid down, and followed close, a plan of what ought to be uppermost in the breast of an officer: that it is much better to serve an ungrateful Country than to give up his own fame. Posterity will do him justice; a uniform conduct of honour and integrity seldom fails of bringing a man to the goal of fame at last."
With such an impressive career as Nelson's ahead of him, the delay caused by this argument feels a bit depressing; however, it undeniably highlights his traits in the clearest way. His motives were always about duty, not comfort; honor, not profit; ideals, not material rewards—certainly not without flaws and imperfections. While he sought validation from those around him and above him, he could find comfort in his own sense of doing what was right. "That thing called Honour," he writes to a friend soon after the "Boreas" cruise, "is now, unfortunately, no longer considered. I hope my integrity remains intact; but my fortune, God knows, has worsened because of my service; so much for serving my country. However, I have always maintained and closely followed a principle of what should be most important to an officer: that it is far better to serve an ungrateful country than to sacrifice his own reputation. Future generations will recognize his worth; consistent conduct of honor and integrity rarely fails to lead a man to fame in the end."
This struggle with Sir Richard Hughes, in which Nelson took the undesirable, and to a naval officer invidious, step of disobeying orders, showed clearly, not only the loftiness of his motives, but the distinguishing features which constituted the strength of his character, both personal and military. There was an acute perception of the right thing to do, an entire readiness to assume all the responsibility of doing it, and above all an accurate judgment of the best way to do it,—to act with impunity to himself and with most chances of success to his cause. Its analogy to a military situation is striking. There was a wrong condition of things to be righted—a victory to be won. To achieve this a great risk must be taken, and he was willing to take it; but in so doing he made such choice of his ground as to be practically unassailable—to attain his end without lasting harm to himself. That Nelson would have managed better had he been ten years older is very probable. Likely enough he betrayed some of the carelessness of sensibilities which the inexperience of youth is too apt to show towards age; but, upon a careful review of the whole, it appears to the writer that his general course of action was distinctly right, judged by the standards of the time and the well-settled principles of military obedience, and that he pursued an extremely difficult line of conduct with singular resolution, with sound judgment, and, in the main, with an unusual amount of tact, without which he could scarcely have failed, however well purposing, to lay himself open to serious consequences. Certainly he achieved success.
This conflict with Sir Richard Hughes, where Nelson took the undesirable and, for a naval officer, a questionable step of disobeying orders, clearly demonstrated not only the nobility of his intentions but also the unique qualities that defined the strength of his character, both personally and militarily. He had a keen sense of the right action to take, a complete willingness to accept all the responsibility for it, and, most importantly, a sharp judgment on the most effective way to execute it—acting with minimal risk to himself while maximizing the chances of success for his cause. The similarity to a military scenario is striking. There was a wrong situation that needed fixing—a victory to be secured. Achieving this required taking a significant risk, which he was prepared to do; but in doing so, he chose his position wisely to be nearly untouchable—reaching his goal without lasting damage to himself. It's quite likely that Nelson would have handled things better if he had been ten years older. He probably exhibited some of the insensitivity that youth often shows toward age; however, after carefully reviewing the situation, it seems to the writer that his overall course of action was decidedly correct, judged by the standards of the time and the established principles of military obedience. He managed to pursue an extremely challenging course with remarkable determination, sound judgment, and, for the most part, a significant amount of tact, without which he could hardly have avoided serious consequences, no matter how well-intentioned he was. Certainly, he achieved success.
It was in the midst of this legal warfare, and of the preoccupations arising from it, that Nelson first met the lady who became his wife. She was by birth a Miss Frances Woolward, her mother being a sister of the Mr. Herbert already mentioned as President of the Council in Nevis. She was born in the first half of 1758,[12] and was therefore a few months older than Nelson. In 1779 she had married Dr. Josiah Nisbet, of Nevis, and the next year was left a widow with one son, who bore his father's full name. After her husband's death, being apparently portionless, she came to live with Herbert, who looked upon and treated her as his own child, although he also had an only daughter. When Nelson first arrived at Nevis, in January, 1785,[13] she was absent, visiting friends in a neighboring island, so that they did not then meet,—a circumstance somewhat fortunate for us, because it led to a description of him being sent to her in a letter from a lady of Herbert's family, not improbably her cousin, Miss Herbert. Nelson had then become a somewhat conspicuous factor in the contracted interests of the island society, owing to the stand he had already publicly assumed with reference to the contraband trade. People were talking about him, although he had not as yet enforced the extreme measures which made him so unpopular. "We have at last," so ran the letter, "seen the little captain of the Boreas of whom so much has been said. He came up just before dinner, much heated, and was very silent; but seemed, according to the old adage, to think the more. He declined drinking any wine; but after dinner, when the president, as usual, gave the three following toasts, 'the King,' 'the Queen and Royal Family,' and 'Lord Hood,' this strange man regularly filled his glass, and observed that those were always bumper toasts with him; which, having drank, he uniformly passed the bottle, and relapsed into his former taciturnity. It was impossible, during this visit, for any of us to make out his real character; there was such a reserve and sternness in his behaviour, with occasional sallies, though very transient, of a superior mind. Being placed by him, I endeavoured to rouse his attention by showing him all the civilities in my power; but I drew out little more than 'Yes' and 'No.' If you, Fanny, had been there, we think you would have made something of him, for you have been in the habit of attending to these odd sort of people."
It was during this legal battle and the stress that came with it that Nelson first met the woman who would become his wife. She was born Frances Woolward, and her mother was a sister of Mr. Herbert, who was mentioned earlier as the President of the Council in Nevis. She was born in the first half of 1758,[12] making her a few months older than Nelson. In 1779, she married Dr. Josiah Nisbet of Nevis, but the following year, she became a widow with a son who carried his father's full name. After her husband's death, seemingly without any inheritance, she moved in with Herbert, who treated her like his own child, even though he also had a daughter. When Nelson first arrived in Nevis in January 1785,[13] she was away visiting friends on a nearby island, so they didn't meet at that time. This turned out to be somewhat fortunate for us because it prompted a description of him to be sent to her in a letter from a lady in Herbert's family, likely her cousin, Miss Herbert. By then, Nelson had become quite notable in the small social circles on the island due to his public stance against the illegal trade. People were talking about him, even though he hadn't yet resorted to the extreme measures that would eventually make him unpopular. "We have finally," the letter said, "seen the little captain of the Boreas whom everyone has been discussing. He came in just before dinner, looking hot and stayed very quiet; but, as the saying goes, he seemed to think a lot. He refused to drink any wine; however, after dinner, when the president typically proposed the three toasts—'the King,' 'the Queen and Royal Family,' and 'Lord Hood'—this strange man always filled his glass and commented that those were his favorite toasts. After drinking, he consistently passed the bottle and went back to being quiet. It was impossible for any of us to figure out his true character during this visit; he had such an air of reserve and seriousness about him, with moments, albeit brief, showing a sharp intellect. As I was seated near him, I tried to engage him by being as polite as possible, but I got little more than 'Yes' and 'No' from him. If you had been there, Fanny, I think you could have brought something out of him, since you have a knack for engaging unusual people."
Mrs. Nisbet very quickly made something of him. Little direct description has been transmitted to us concerning the looks or characteristics of the woman who now, at the time when marriage was possible to him, had the misfortune to appear in the line of succession of Nelson's early fancies, and to attract the too easily aroused admiration and affection of a man whose attachment she had not the inborn power to bind. That Nelson was naturally inconstant, beyond the volatility inherent in youth, is sufficiently disproved by the strength and endurance of his devotion to the one woman, in whom he either found or imagined the qualities that appealed to the heroic side of his character. How completely she mastered all the approaches to his heart, and retained her supremacy, once established, to the end, is evidenced by the whole tenor of his correspondence with her, by his mention of her in letters to others, by the recorded expressions he used in speaking to or about her. Despite all that he certainly knew of her, and much more that it is unreasonable to doubt he must have known of her history, there is no mistaking the profound emotions she stirred in his spirit, which show themselves continually in spontaneous outbreaks of passionate fondness and extravagant admiration, whose ring is too true and strong for doubt concerning their reality to find a place.
Mrs. Nisbet quickly transformed him. We don’t have much direct information about what she looked like or her personality, but at the time when marriage became a possibility for him, she unfortunately came into the picture, capturing the too easily ignited admiration and affection of a man whose love she didn’t have the innate ability to keep. Nelson’s tendency to be fickle, beyond the usual youthful impulse, is proven wrong by the depth and lasting nature of his devotion to the one woman who either possessed or inspired the qualities that appealed to his heroic side. The way she completely took control of his heart and maintained her dominance, once established, until his last days is shown through his letters to her, how he referred to her in correspondence with others, and the heartfelt words he used when speaking about her. Despite everything he certainly knew about her, and much more that we can reasonably assume he must have known about her past, there’s no doubt about the deep feelings she evoked in him, which repeatedly emerge in his passionate expressions of love and extravagant admiration, sounding too genuine and strong to allow any doubt about their reality.
Many men are swayed by strong and wayward impulses; but to most the fetters imposed by social conventions, by inherited or implanted standards of seemliness and decorum, suffice to steady them in the path of outward propriety. Of how great and absorbing a passion Lord Nelson was capable is shown by the immensity of the sacrifice that he made to it. Principle apart,—and principle wholly failed him,—all else that most appeals to man's self-respect and regard for the esteem of others was powerless to exert control. Loyalty to friendship, the sanctity which man is naturally fain to see in the woman he loves, and, in Nelson's own case, a peculiar reluctance to wound another,—all these were trampled under foot, and ruthlessly piled on the holocaust which he offered to her whom he worshipped. He could fling to the winds, as others cannot, considerations of interest or expediency, as he flung them over and over in his professional career. My motto, he said once and again, is "All or nothing." The same disregard of consequences that hazarded all for all, in battle or for duty, broke through the barriers within which prudence, reputation, decency, or even weakness and cowardice, confine the actions of lesser men. And it must be remembered that the admitted great stain upon Nelson's fame, which it would be wicked to deny, lies not in a general looseness of life, but in the notoriety of one relation,—a notoriety due chiefly to the reckless singleness of heart which was not ashamed to own its love, but rather gloried in the public exhibition of a faith in the worthiness of its object, and a constancy, which never wavered to the hour of his death.[14] The pitifulness of it is to see the incongruity between such faith, such devotion, and the distasteful inadequacy of their object.
Many men are influenced by strong and unpredictable urges; however, for most, the constraints of social norms and the standards of decency they've inherited or learned are enough to keep them on the path of outward respectability. The depth of Lord Nelson's passion is evident in the immense sacrifice he made for it. Setting aside principle—which ultimately failed him—everything else that usually matters to a person's self-respect and how others perceive them had no power to control him. Loyalty to friendship, the respect for the woman he loved, and in Nelson's case, a particular unwillingness to hurt another—all of these were disregarded and ruthlessly cast aside in the fire that he offered to the woman he adored. He could dismiss considerations of interest or practicality, unlike many others, just as he had repeatedly throughout his career. "My motto," he said time and again, "is 'All or nothing.'" The same disregard for consequences that led him to risk everything in battle or for duty broke through the limits that typically restrain the actions of lesser men—limits like prudence, reputation, decency, or even weakness and cowardice. It's important to acknowledge that the notable blemish on Nelson's reputation—something it would be wrong to deny—doesn't stem from a general lack of morality but from the infamy surrounding one relationship. This notoriety is mainly due to the reckless sincerity of his heart, which didn't shy away from declaring its love but instead took pride in publicly displaying its belief in the worth of its object and a loyalty that remained unwavering until his death. The tragedy lies in witnessing the clash between such faith and devotion and the disappointing inadequacy of the one they were directed towards.
To answer the demands of a nature capable of such energetic manifestation—to fulfil the imagination of one who could so cast himself at the feet of an ideal—was beyond the gentle, well-ordered, and somewhat prosaic charms with which alone Mrs. Nisbet was invested by Nelson, even when most loverlike in tone. "My greatest wish," he writes in the first of his letters to her that has been preserved, "is to be united to you; and the foundation of all conjugal happiness, real love and esteem, is, I trust, what you believe I possess in the strongest degree toward you." Fifteen months later, and but a short time before their wedding, he says again: "His Royal Highness often tells me, he believes I am married; for he never saw a lover so easy, or say so little of the object he has a regard for. When I tell him I certainly am not, he says, 'Then he is sure I must have a great esteem for you, and that it is not what is (vulgarly), I do not much like the use of that word, called love.' He is right: my love is founded on esteem, the only foundation that can make the passion last." But general maxims, even when less disputable than this, do not admit of universal application; and if an affection was to hold its own in a nature enthusiastic and imaginative as that of Nelson, it had need to strike root deeper than that surface soil indicated by mere esteem, at least when the latter rests simply upon an assemblage of upright and amiable qualities, and not upon that force of character which compels dependence as well as appreciation. At their last parting he solemnly avowed that his esteem was not lessened; while he was destined also to afford a conspicuous illustration of how enduring a passion may flourish where no just title to esteem exists.
To meet the needs of a person capable of such energetic expression—and to fulfill the imagination of someone who could humbly devote himself to an ideal—was beyond the gentle, orderly, and somewhat mundane qualities that Mrs. Nisbet perceived in Nelson, even when he expressed himself in the most affectionate way. "My greatest wish," he writes in the first of his letters to her that has been preserved, "is to be united to you; and the foundation of all marital happiness, real love and respect, is, I trust, what you believe I possess in the strongest degree toward you." Fifteen months later, just before their wedding, he says again: "His Royal Highness often tells me he thinks I am married, because he never saw a lover so relaxed or say so little about the person he cares for. When I tell him I certainly am not, he says, 'Then he is sure I must have a great respect for you, and that it is not what is (vulgarly), I do not much like the use of that word, called love.' He is right: my love is based on respect, the only foundation that can make passion endure." However, general principles, even when less debatable than this, do not apply universally; and if an affection was to thrive in a nature as enthusiastic and imaginative as Nelson's, it needed to take root deeper than the surface level indicated by mere respect, especially when that respect is based solely on a collection of good and kind qualities, instead of on a strong character that inspires both dependence and appreciation. At their last farewell, he solemnly declared that his respect had not diminished; while he was also destined to provide a clear example of how a lasting passion can flourish even where there is no legitimate claim to respect.
The progress of his wooing was rapid enough. On the 12th of May he mentions their first meeting; on the 28th of June he writes to his brother: "Entre, nous.—Do not be surprised to hear I am a Benedict, for if at all, it will be before a month. Do not tell." On the 11th of September is dated his first letter to her, already quoted, in which he addresses her as "My dear Fanny," and alludes to the understanding existing between them. At the expiration of six months he wrote, formally announcing his engagement, to Mr. William Suckling, his mother's brother. He anticipates the latter's doubts as to the permanence of this fancy: "This Horatio, you will say, is for ever in love;" but he considers that six months without change settles that question. "My present attachment is of pretty long standing; but I was determined to be fixed before I broke this matter to any person." He then explains the situation,—that the lady herself has little or nothing; that Mr. Herbert, though rich, is not likely to help the young couple much, and he asks his uncle's assistance. This Suckling consented to give, and for several years continued liberally to extend. But still, impatient though Nelson always was to complete whatever he had on hand, various causes delayed the wedding for another year. Even with Suckling's help the question of means was pressing; and while, with pardonable self-justification, he gloried to his betrothed that "the world is convinced that I am superior to pecuniary considerations in my public and private life, as in both instances I might have been rich," he nevertheless owned to regretting that he "had not given greater attention to making money." Besides, as he wrote to his brother, "What should I do carrying a wife in a ship, and when I marry I do not mean to part with my wife." The cruising duty of the "Boreas" took her from port to port of the limited area embraced in the Leeward Islands Station, and Nevis was among the least important of the points demanding his attention. He was, therefore, frequently away from his betrothed during this period, and absence rather fanned than cooled the impetuous ardor which he carried into all his undertakings. Whether it were the pursuit of a love affair, or the chase of an enemy's fleet, delays served only to increase the vehemence with which Nelson chafed against difficulties. "Duty," he tells Mrs. Nisbet, "is the great business of a sea officer,—all private considerations must give way to it, however painful it is;" but he owns he wishes "the American vessels at the Devil, and the whole continent of America to boot," because they detain him from her side.
The progress of his courtship was quite swift. On May 12th, he mentions their first meeting; by June 28th, he writes to his brother: "Entre, nous.—Don't be surprised to hear I'm a Benedict, because if it happens, it will be within a month. Keep it to yourself." On September 11th, he sends his first letter to her, previously quoted, where he calls her "My dear Fanny" and hints at the understanding between them. After six months, he formally announced his engagement to Mr. William Suckling, his mother's brother. He anticipates that Suckling might doubt the seriousness of his feelings: "You will say this Horatio is forever in love;" but he feels that six months without change settles that. "My current feelings have been around for a while; I wanted to be sure before I brought this up with anyone." He then explains the situation—she has little or nothing, Mr. Herbert, although wealthy, is not likely to help the young couple much, and he asks his uncle for help. Suckling agreed to assist and continued to do so generously for several years. However, Nelson, always impatient to finish what he started, faced various delays that pushed the wedding back another year. Even with Suckling's support, finances remained a pressing issue; while he proudly told his fiancée that "everyone believes I'm above money concerns in my public and private life, as I could have been wealthy in both," he did admit to regretting that he "hadn't focused more on making money." Additionally, as he wrote to his brother, "What would I do taking a wife on a ship? When I marry, I don't plan to part with her." The "Boreas" had him sailing from port to port around the Leeward Islands Station, and Nevis was among the least significant places needing his attention. Therefore, he spent much time away from his fiancée during this time, and the distance seemed to intensify rather than diminish the passionate energy he brought to all his endeavors. Whether pursuing a romance or chasing an enemy fleet, delays only fueled Nelson's impatience with obstacles. "Duty," he tells Mrs. Nisbet, "is the top priority for a sea officer—personal matters must take a backseat, no matter how hard it is;" yet he admits he wishes "the American ships were in the devil's hands, along with the entire continent of America," because they kept him from her.
There is no singularity in the experience that obstacles tend rather to inflame than to check a lover's eagerness. What is noteworthy in Nelson's letters at this time is the utter absence of any illusions, of any tendency to exaggerate and glorify the qualities of the woman who for the nonce possessed his heart. There is not a sign of the perturbation of feeling, of the stirring of the soul, that was afterwards so painfully elicited by another influence. "The dear object," he writes to his brother, "you must like. Her sense, polite manners, and, to you I may say, beauty, you will much admire. She possesses sense far superior to half the people of our acquaintance, and her manners are Mrs. Moutray's." The same calm, measured tone pervades all his mention of her to others. His letters to herself, on the other hand, are often pleasing in the quiet, simple, and generally unaffected tenderness which inspires them. In a more ordinary man, destined to more commonplace fortunes, they might well be regarded as promising that enduring wedded love which strikes root downward and bears fruit upward, steadily growing in depth and devotion as the years roll by. But Nelson was not an ordinary man, and from that more humble happiness a childless marriage further debarred him. He could rise far higher, and, alas! descend far lower as he followed the radiant vision,—the image of his own mind rather than an external reality,—the ideal, which, whether in fame or in love, beckoned him onward. The calm, even, and wholly matter-of-fact appreciation of his wife's estimable traits can now be seen in the light of his after career, and its doubtful augury descried; for to idealize was an essential attribute of his temperament. Her failure, even in the heyday of courtship, to arouse in him any extravagance of emotion, any illusive exaltation of her merits, left vacant that throne in his mind which could be permanently occupied only by a highly wrought excellence,—even though that were the purely subjective creation of his own enthusiasm. This hold Lady Nelson never gained; and the long absence from 1793 to 1797, during the opening period of the war of the French Revolution, probably did to death an affection which owed what languid life it retained chiefly to propinquity and custom. Both Saumarez and Codrington, who served under him, speak passingly of the lightness with which his family ties sat upon Nelson in the years following his short stay at home in 1797. The house was empty, swept, and garnished, when the simple-minded, if lion-hearted, seaman came under the spell of one whose fascinations had overpowered the resistance of a cool-headed man of the world, leading him in his old age, with open eyes, to do what every prepossession and every reasonable conviction of his life condemned as folly.
There’s no one way to handle experiences that obstacles tend to inflame instead of dampening a lover’s enthusiasm. What stands out in Nelson's letters during this time is the complete lack of any illusions, any tendency to exaggerate or idealize the qualities of the woman who, for the moment, had his heart. There’s no sign of emotional turmoil or the stirring of his soul that would later be painfully stirred by another influence. "The dear object," he writes to his brother, "you must like. You’ll admire her common sense, polite manners, and, I can say, her beauty. She has a level of intelligence far beyond half the people we know, and her manners are like Mrs. Moutray's." The same calm, straightforward tone fills all his mentions of her to others. His letters to her, however, often convey a quiet, simple, and generally sincere tenderness. For an average man with typical fortunes, these might suggest the kind of enduring married love that grows deeper and more devoted as the years go by. But Nelson was not an ordinary man, and a childless marriage further kept him from that simpler happiness. He could rise much higher, and unfortunately, fall much lower as he chased after the radiant vision—the image in his mind rather than an outside reality—the ideal that, whether in fame or love, called him forward. The calm, measured, and entirely straightforward appreciation of his wife's admirable traits can now be viewed in light of his later career, revealing its uncertain promise; for to idealize was a key part of his nature. Her inability, even during the heights of courtship, to stir any extreme emotions in him or any deceptive elevation of her qualities left a void in his mind that could only be filled by a highly refined excellence—even if that was just the purely subjective creation of his own enthusiasm. Lady Nelson never achieved that kind of hold; and the long absence from 1793 to 1797, during the early period of the French Revolutionary War, likely extinguished an affection that owed its lingering life mainly to proximity and routine. Both Saumarez and Codrington, who served under him, casually mentioned how lightly his family ties felt to Nelson in the years following his brief stay at home in 1797. The house was empty, cleaned, and ready when the straightforward, yet brave, sailor fell under the charm of someone whose allure had overwhelmed the defenses of a level-headed man, leading him in his old age, with eyes wide open, to do what every bias and every reasonable belief of his life condemned as foolishness.
In the summer of 1786 Sir Richard Hughes was recalled to England. During the later part of his association with Nelson, the strain which had characterized their earlier relations had not only disappeared, but had been succeeded by feelings approaching cordiality. The Government's approval of his subordinate's action, and of himself as credited with supporting it, had removed that element of apprehension which in timid men induces irritation; and Hughes, who, though irresolute, was naturally kindly, had been still farther placated by the prize-money falling to him from the vessels condemned through the zeal of Nelson. The latter, who never harbored malice, easily forgave the past, and responded to this change of tone. "I have been upon the best terms with the Admiral," he wrote from Barbadoes to his intended wife in April, 1786, "and I declare I think I could ever remain so. He is always remarkably kind and civil to every one;" and again, a few days earlier, "The admiral is highly pleased with my conduct here, as you will believe, by sending me such fine lines with a white hat. I well know I am not of abilities to deserve what he has said of me: but I take it as they are meant, to show his regard for me; and his politeness and attention to me are great: nor shall I forget it. I like the man, although not all his acts." He then directs that the lines shall not be shown to any one, "as the compliment is paid to me at the expense of the officers of the squadron," an injunction thoroughly characteristic of the man's kindly consideration for others. It was creditable to Hughes that, after being so braved, and his instructions set at naught, by his junior, he had candor enough to see and acknowledge his merit; but the fact still remained that in the hour of trial he had failed Nelson, nor did the latter, though he forgave, forget it. As he wrote to Locker in September, 1786, after the admiral's departure, "Instead of being supported by my admiral, I was obliged to keep him up, for he was frightened at this business;" of which business he truly said, emphasizing, but not at all exaggerating, the gravity of the responsibility he had taken in defiance of his superior: "After loss of health and risk of fortune, another is thanked for what I did against his orders. Either I deserved to be sent out of the service,[15] or at least to have had some little notice taken of me."
In the summer of 1786, Sir Richard Hughes was called back to England. As his time with Nelson went on, the tension that had marked their earlier relationship not only vanished but was replaced by a sense of friendliness. The Government's approval of Hughes's subordinate's actions, along with recognition of his support, alleviated the anxiety that often irritates timid individuals. Hughes, although indecisive, was naturally kind and felt even more appeased by the prize money he earned from the ships taken by Nelson's efforts. Nelson, who held no grudges, easily forgave past grievances and responded positively to this new dynamic. "I have been on the best terms with the Admiral," he wrote from Barbados to his future wife in April 1786, "and I honestly think I could always stay that way. He’s always exceptionally kind and polite to everyone.” A few days earlier, he noted, "The Admiral is very pleased with my conduct here, as you can tell by sending me such nice lines with a white hat. I know I don’t deserve what he’s said about me, but I see it as a sign of his appreciation for me; his politeness and attention are significant, and I won’t forget it. I like the guy, even if I don’t agree with all his actions." He then requested that the lines not be shown to anyone, "since the compliment is given to me at the expense of the squadron's officers," demonstrating his thoughtful consideration for others. It was commendable that Hughes, after being undermined by his junior and having his instructions disregarded, had the honesty to recognize and acknowledge Nelson's merit; however, the fact remained that in a moment of crisis, he had let Nelson down, and while Nelson forgave him, he didn’t forget. As he wrote to Locker in September 1786, after the Admiral's departure, "Instead of being supported by my Admiral, I had to hold him up because he was scared about this situation," referring to the matter he genuinely described, emphasizing but not exaggerating the seriousness of the responsibility he had taken despite his superior's orders: "After losing my health and risking my fortune, someone else is thanked for what I did against his orders. Either I deserved to be sent out of the service,[15] or at least to have received a little acknowledgment."
Nelson indeed, in the West Indies, as an unknown captain, had done that which as a junior admiral he did later at Copenhagen, at a moment far more critical to Great Britain. By his own unusual powers of impulse and resolve he had enforced, as far as was possible against the passive, inert lethargy—not to say timidity—of his superior, the course of action which at the moment was essential to the interests of his country. Truly great in his strength to endure, he knew not the perturbations nor the vacillations that fret the temper, and cripple the action, of smaller men; and, however harassed and distressed externally, the calmness of a clear insight and an unshaken purpose guided his footsteps, unwavering, in the path of duty, through all opposition, to the goal of success. It is reported that an officer of the "Boreas," speaking to him of the vexations and odium he had undergone, used the word "pity." Nelson's reply showed the profound confidence which throughout had animated him, keenly as he had undoubtedly felt the temporary anxieties. "Pity, did you say? I shall live, Sir, to be envied; and to that point I shall always direct my course."
Nelson, back in the West Indies as an unknown captain, accomplished what he later did as a junior admiral at Copenhagen, during a time that was far more critical for Great Britain. With his remarkable ability to act on impulse and determination, he managed to push through the passive, slow indifference—not to mention the fear—of his superior, taking the necessary actions that were crucial for his country. Truly resilient, he didn’t experience the anxieties or hesitations that trouble and hinder the actions of lesser individuals; and despite facing external challenges and distress, the clarity of his insight and steadfast purpose kept him firmly on the path of duty, moving steadily toward success. It's reported that an officer from the "Boreas," discussing the frustrations and backlash Nelson had faced, used the word "pity." Nelson's response demonstrated the deep confidence that he maintained throughout, despite undoubtedly feeling the temporary worries. "Pity, did you say? I shall live, Sir, to be envied; and to that point, I will always steer my course."
By the departure of Sir Richard Hughes Nelson was left senior officer upon the station until his own return home, a twelvemonth later. In November he renewed his acquaintance with Prince William Henry, whom he had known as a midshipman in 1782, and who now came to the Leeward Islands a post-captain, in command of the frigate "Pegasus." The two young men were not far apart in age, and an intimacy between them soon arose, which ended only with the death of Nelson. The latter had a profound reverence for royalty, both as an institution and as represented in its members; and to this, in the present case, was added a strong personal esteem, based upon the zeal and efficiency in the discharge of official duties, which he recognized in one whose rank would assure him impunity for any mere indifference. The prince, on the other hand, quickly yielded to the charm of Nelson's intercourse, so vividly felt by most who knew him, and to the contagious enthusiasm which animated his conversation when talking of his profession. This, also, his ardent imagination endowed with possibilities and aspirations, not greater, indeed, than its deserts, but which only the intuitions of a genius like his could realize and vivify, imparting to slower temperaments something of his own fire. To this association the prince afterwards attributed the awakening of that strong interest in maritime affairs which he retained to the day of his death. The two friends dined alternately one with the other, and, in their association of some six months at this time, they together fought over all the naval battles that during the recent war had illustrated the waters through which they were then cruising.
By the time Sir Richard Hughes left, Nelson was the senior officer in the area until he returned home a year later. In November, he reconnected with Prince William Henry, whom he had met as a midshipman in 1782. Now, as a post-captain, the prince was in command of the frigate "Pegasus" and had come to the Leeward Islands. The two young men were close in age, and a friendship developed between them that lasted until Nelson's death. Nelson held a deep respect for royalty, both as an institution and for its members; in this case, he also had a strong personal admiration for the prince due to his dedication and effectiveness in his official duties, which he recognized even though the prince's rank would allow him to be indifferent. On the other hand, the prince quickly became captivated by Nelson's engaging personality, which was felt by everyone who knew him, and by the energetic enthusiasm he displayed when discussing his profession. This passion, fueled by Nelson's vivid imagination, inspired possibilities and aspirations that were well-deserved, yet could only be brought to life by a genius like him, sparking a bit of his own passion in those with slower tempers. The prince later said that this friendship sparked his lifelong interest in maritime affairs, which he kept until he died. The two friends took turns dining with each other, and during their six months together at that time, they reviewed all the naval battles from the recent war that took place in the waters they were cruising.
The incessant energy displayed by Nelson, and the agitations through which he passed during the three years of this stay upon the West Indian station, again produced distressing symptoms in his general health. To use his own words, the activity of the mind was "too much for my puny constitution." "I am worn to a skeleton," he writes to Mr. Suckling in July, 1786; and three months later to Locker, "I have been since June so very ill that I have only a faint recollection of anything which I did. My complaint was in my breast, such a one as I had going out to Jamaica [in 1777]. The Doctor thought I was in a consumption, and quite gave me up." This fear, however, proved unfounded; nor does there appear at any time to have been any serious trouble with his lungs.
The constant energy shown by Nelson and the stress he went through during his three years in the West Indies took a toll on his health. As he said, the activity of his mind was "too much for my weak body." "I am worn to a skeleton," he wrote to Mr. Suckling in July 1786; and three months later to Locker, "I've been so very ill since June that I can barely remember anything I've done. My issue was in my chest, similar to what I experienced going to Jamaica in 1777. The doctor thought I had consumption and completely gave up on me." However, this worry turned out to be misplaced; it doesn't seem there was ever any serious problem with his lungs.
On the 11th[16] of March, 1787, the marriage of Captain Nelson to Mrs. Nisbet took place at Nevis. Prince William Henry, whose rule it was never to visit in any private house, made an exception on this occasion, having exacted from Nelson a promise that the wedding should wait until he could be present; and he gave away the bride. Three months later, on the 7th of June, the "Boreas" sailed for England, and on the 4th of July anchored at Spithead. Whether Mrs. Nelson accompanied him in the ship does not appear certainly; but from several expressions in his letters it seems most probable that she did. Five days after his arrival he sent a message from her to Locker, in terms which indicate that she was with him.
On March 11, 1787, Captain Nelson married Mrs. Nisbet in Nevis. Prince William Henry, who usually never visited private homes, made an exception this time, insisting that Nelson wait for him to be present at the wedding. He gave away the bride. Three months later, on June 7, the "Boreas" set sail for England, and on July 4, it anchored at Spithead. It’s not entirely clear if Mrs. Nelson was on board the ship with him, but his letters suggest that it’s very likely she was. Five days after he arrived, he sent a message from her to Locker, indicating that she was with him.
A newly married man, who had just concluded a full cruise of such arduous and unremitting exertions, might reasonably have wished and expected a period of relaxation; but the return of the "Boreas" coincided with a very disturbed state of European politics. In the neighboring republic of Holland two parties were striving for the mastery; one of which was closely attached to France, the other, that of the Stadtholder, to Great Britain. In 1785 the former had gained the upper hand; and, by a treaty signed on Christmas Day of that year, a decided preponderance in the councils of the United Provinces had been given to France. The enfeebled condition of the latter country, however, had allowed little prospect of permanence to this arrangement; and, in the summer of 1787, an insult offered by the French party to the wife of the Stadtholder led to a forcible intervention by the King of Prussia, whose sister she was. Louis XVI. prepared to support his partisans, and notified his purpose to Great Britain; whereupon the latter, whose traditional policy for over a century had been to resist the progress of French influence in the Low Countries, replied that she could not remain a quiet spectator, and at once began to arm. "The Dutch business," wrote Nelson, "is becoming every day more serious; and I hardly think we can keep from a war, without giving forever the weight of the Dutch to the French, and allowing the Stadtholdership to be abolished,—things which I should suppose hardly possible." Already his eager spirit was panting for the fray. "If we are to have a bustle, I do not want to come on shore; I begin to think I am fonder of the sea than ever." Only five months married!
A newly married man, who had just finished a demanding and relentless cruise, might reasonably have wanted and expected some time to relax; but the return of the "Boreas" coincided with a very turbulent state of European politics. In the nearby republic of Holland, two factions were battling for control; one was closely allied with France, while the other, led by the Stadtholder, was aligned with Great Britain. In 1785, the former had gained the upper hand, and through a treaty signed on Christmas Day that year, France gained significant influence in the governance of the United Provinces. However, the weakened state of France provided little hope for the stability of this agreement, and in the summer of 1787, an insult directed at the Stadtholder's wife by the French faction prompted a military intervention by the King of Prussia, who was her brother. Louis XVI prepared to back his supporters and informed Great Britain of his intentions; in response, Great Britain, which had traditionally worked for over a century to counter French influence in the Low Countries, declared that it could not remain a passive observer and immediately began to mobilize. "The Dutch situation," wrote Nelson, "is becoming more serious every day; and I hardly think we can avoid war without giving total advantage to the French in the Netherlands and allowing the Stadtholdership to be abolished—things that seem hardly possible." Already, his eager spirit was yearning for battle. "If we are going to have a fight, I don’t want to come ashore; I’m starting to think I like the sea more than ever." And he'd only been married for five months!
The threatening aspect of affairs necessitated the "Boreas" being kept in commission,—the more so because the economies introduced by Mr. Pitt into the administration of the two military services had reduced the available naval force below that which France could at once send out. "The Boreas is kept in readiness to go to sea with the squadron at Spithead," wrote Nelson; "but in my poor opinion we shall go no further at present. The French have eight sail in Brest water ready for sea: therefore I think we shall not court the French out of port,"—singular illustration of the unreadiness of Great Britain in the years immediately preceding the French Revolution. He looks for war, however, the following summer. As not only ships, but men also, were urgently needed, the impress service was hastily organized. His friend Locker was summoned from his long retirement to superintend that work in Exeter, and the "Boreas" was ordered to the Thames on the same business, arriving on the 20th of August at the Nore. There her duty was to board passing vessels, and take from them as many of their crew as were above the number barely necessary for the safety of the ship. She herself, besides acting as receiving ship for the men thus pressed, was to be kept in readiness to sail at a moment's warning. Mrs. Nelson had therefore to leave her and go to London. "Here we are," wrote Nelson on the 23d of September, "laying seven miles from the land on the Impress service, and I am as much separated from my wife as if I were in the East Indies;" and he closes the letter with the words, "I am this moment getting under sail after some ships."
The tense situation meant that the "Boreas" had to stay active, especially since the budget cuts made by Mr. Pitt in managing the two military branches had shrunk the available naval force below what France could quickly deploy. "The Boreas is ready to go to sea with the squadron at Spithead," Nelson wrote, "but honestly, I think we won’t be going any further right now. The French have eight ships in Brest ready to set out, so I don’t think we should entice the French to come out of their port,"—a clear example of Great Britain's unpreparedness in the years just before the French Revolution. However, he anticipated war the following summer. With both ships and men in high demand, the impress service was quickly set up. His friend Locker was called out of his long retirement to oversee operations in Exeter, and the "Boreas" was sent to the Thames for the same purpose, arriving on August 20th at the Nore. There, she was tasked with boarding passing vessels and taking as many crew members from them as were above the minimum needed for the ship's safety. Along with serving as a receiving ship for the pressed men, she had to be ready to sail at a moment's notice. Mrs. Nelson, therefore, had to leave her and go to London. "Here we are," Nelson wrote on September 23rd, "seven miles off the coast on impress service, and I feel as far away from my wife as if I were in the East Indies;" he ended the letter with, "I am just about to set sail after some ships."
His early biographers say that Nelson keenly felt and resented the kind of service in which he was then engaged; so much so that, moved also by other causes of irritation, he decided at one time to quit the Navy. No indication of such feeling, however, appears in his letters. On the contrary, one of the surest signs with him of pleasurable, or at least of interested, excitement, was now manifested in his improving health. As he himself said, many years later, "To say the truth, when I am actively employed I am not so bad."[17] A month after reaching England, though then midsummer, he wrote: "It is not kind in one's native air to treat a poor wanderer as it has me since my arrival. The rain and cold at first gave me a sore throat and its accompaniments; the hot weather has given me a slow fever, not absolutely bad enough to keep my bed, yet enough to hinder me from doing anything;" and again, "I have scarcely been able to hold up my head." In blustering October, on the other hand, while in the midst of the detested Impress work, he says: "My health, thank God, was never better, and I am fit for any quarter of the globe;" although "it rains hard, and we have had very bad weather of late." Whatever momentary vexation he may have vented in a hasty expression, it was entirely inconsistent with his general tone to take amiss an employment whose vital importance he would have been the first to admit. Lack of zeal, or haggling about the duty assigned him, was entirely foreign to his character; that the country needed the men who were to be pressed was reason sufficient for one of his temper. If, indeed, there had been an apparent intention to keep him in such inglorious occupation, and out of the expected war, he might have chafed; but his orders to be constantly ready indicated the intention to send him at once to the front, if hostilities began. Doubtless he was disappointed that the application he made for a ship-of-the-line was not granted; but he knew that, being still a very young captain, what he asked was a favor, and its refusal not a grievance, nor does he seem to have looked upon it otherwise.
His early biographers note that Nelson strongly felt and resented the type of service he was involved in at the time; he was so troubled by this, along with other frustrations, that he even considered leaving the Navy. However, there's no indication of such feelings in his letters. On the contrary, one of the clearest signs of pleasure, or at least interest, was reflected in his improving health. As he said many years later, "To tell the truth, when I'm actively engaged, I'm not so bad." A month after arriving in England, despite it being midsummer, he wrote: "It's not kind of my native air to treat a poor wanderer as it has me since my arrival. The rain and cold first gave me a sore throat and its related discomforts; the hot weather has caused me a lingering fever, not quite bad enough to keep me in bed, but enough to prevent me from doing anything," and again, "I can hardly keep my head up." In stormy October, however, while dealing with the disliked Impress work, he stated: "My health, thank God, has never been better, and I’m fit for any part of the globe," even though "it rains heavily, and we've had very bad weather lately." Any momentary frustration he may have expressed in a hasty comment was completely inconsistent with his overall attitude; he would have been the first to acknowledge the critical importance of the duty he was assigned. Lack of enthusiasm or arguing over his duties was completely out of character for him; the fact that the country needed the men who were to be pressed was reason enough for someone with his mindset. If there had been a clear intention to keep him in such an unremarkable role and away from the expected war, he might have been irritated; but his orders to be always ready suggested that he would be sent to the front immediately if hostilities began. He was surely disappointed that his request for a ship-of-the-line was denied; however, he recognized that, as a relatively young captain, what he asked for was a favor, and its denial was not something to be upset about, nor does he seem to have viewed it that way.
There were, however, some annoyances, which, joined to the lack of appreciation for his eminent services to the interests of the nation in the West Indies, must have keenly stung him. Without the slightest necessity, except that laid upon him by his own public spirit, he had fought and struggled, and endured three years of hot water to serve the Government. He might have gone easy, as did the admiral and the other captains; but instead of so doing he had destroyed the contraband trade, and re-established the working of laws upon which the prosperity and security of the kingdom were thought to depend. For this he had received a perfunctory, formal acknowledgment, though none apparently from the Admiralty, the head of his own service. But he soon found that, if slow to thank, they were prompt to blame, and that with no light hand nor disposition to make allowances. He had run his head against various regulations of the bureaucracy; and this let him know, with all the amenities of official censure, that if they could not recognize what he had done well, they were perfectly clear-sighted as to where he had gone wrong.
There were, however, some annoyances that, combined with the lack of appreciation for his outstanding contributions to the interests of the nation in the West Indies, must have really upset him. He had fought and struggled, enduring three years of challenges to serve the Government, motivated only by his own commitment to public service. He could have taken it easy like the admiral and the other captains, but instead, he worked hard to eliminate the illegal trade and restore the enforcement of laws that were believed to be essential for the kingdom's prosperity and security. For this, he received a cursory, formal acknowledgment, though none apparently from the Admiralty, the head of his own service. But he quickly realized that while they were slow to express gratitude, they were quick to dish out criticism, and did so harshly without much willingness to make allowances. He had bumped into various regulations of the bureaucracy, which pointed out, with all the niceties of official reprimands, that while they couldn't recognize his achievements, they were very clear about where he had messed up.
So far from appreciation, there seems even to have been a prejudice against Nelson in high quarters, due not only to the discomposure felt by the routine official, at the rude irregularities of the man who is more concerned to do his work than nice about the formalities surrounding it, but also to misrepresentation by the powerful interests he had offended through his independent course in the West Indies. After Hughes had gone home, Nelson, as senior officer on the station, began to examine the modes of conducting government business, and especially of making purchases. Conceiving that there were serious irregularities in these, he suggested to the Civil Department of the Navy, under whose cognizance the transactions fell, some alterations in the procedure, by which the senior naval officer would have more control over the purchases than simply to certify that so much money was wanted. The Comptroller of the Navy replied that the old forms were sufficient,—"a circumstance which hurt me," wrote Nelson; while all the civil functionaries resented his interference with their methods, and seem to have received the tacit support, if not the direct sympathy, of the Navy Board, as the Civil Department was then called. His disposition to look into matters, however, had become known, and the long struggle over the contraband trade had given him in the islands a reputation for tenacity and success. It was probably in dependence upon these that two merchants came to him, two months before he left the station, and told him of the existence of very extensive frauds, dating back several years, in which were implicated both civil officials of the Navy and private parties on shore. It is possible that the informants themselves had shared in some of these transactions, and they certainly demanded in payment a part of the sums recovered; but, as Nelson truly said, the question was not as to their character, but how to stop the continuance of embezzlements which had then amounted to over two millions sterling.
So far from being appreciated, it seems there was even a prejudice against Nelson in high places, not only due to the discomfort felt by routine officials at the brash irregularities of someone more focused on doing his job than on the formalities surrounding it, but also because of misrepresentation by the powerful interests he had upset with his independent actions in the West Indies. After Hughes returned home, Nelson, as the senior officer at the station, began to look into how government business was conducted, especially regarding purchases. Believing there were serious irregularities in these processes, he suggested some changes to the Civil Department of the Navy, which oversaw these transactions, to give the senior naval officer more control over purchases rather than just approving that a certain amount of money was needed. The Comptroller of the Navy replied that the old methods were sufficient,—"a circumstance which hurt me," wrote Nelson; while all the civil officials resented his interference with their processes and seemed to have the tacit support, if not the outright sympathy, of the Navy Board, as the Civil Department was then known. However, his inclination to investigate matters had become known, and his long struggle over the contraband trade had given him a reputation for determination and success in the islands. It was probably because of this that two merchants approached him, two months before he left the station, and informed him of very extensive frauds that had been happening for several years, implicating both civil officials of the Navy and private parties onshore. It’s possible that the informants themselves had been involved in some of these transactions, and they certainly wanted part of the money recovered as payment; but, as Nelson rightly pointed out, the issue wasn’t about their character, but about how to stop the ongoing embezzlements that had already totaled over two million pounds.
The reports made by him upon this subject reached London about a month before the return of the "Boreas;" but the war scare, and the urgent call upon all departments of the Navy to mobilize the available force, prevented any immediate steps being taken. His letters were acknowledged, and the intention expressed to investigate the matter, but nothing more was then done. October, however, the Prussian troops occupied Amsterdam, reinstating the Stadtholder in all his privileges, and restoring to power the partisans of Great Britain; while France remained passive, her power for external action paralyzed by the dying convulsions of the monarchy. The curtain had just risen upon the opening scene in the great drama of the Revolution,—the first Assembly of Notables. Warlike preparations consequently ceased, and on the 30th of November, 1787, the cruise of the "Boreas" came to an end.
The reports he made on this subject reached London about a month before the return of the "Boreas;" however, the war scare and the urgent demand for all Navy departments to mobilize available forces prevented any immediate actions. His letters were acknowledged, and there was a commitment to investigate the matter, but no further steps were taken at that time. In October, however, the Prussian troops took over Amsterdam, reinstating the Stadtholder with all his privileges and bringing back to power the supporters of Great Britain; meanwhile, France remained inactive, her ability to act externally paralyzed by the final struggles of the monarchy. The curtain had just risen on the opening scene of the great drama of the Revolution—the first Assembly of Notables. Consequently, war preparations came to a halt, and on November 30, 1787, the cruise of the "Boreas" came to an end.
It was during this last month of servitude, and immediately before quitting the ship, that Nelson is said to have used the vehement expressions of discontent with "an ungrateful service," recorded by his biographers, concluding with his resolve to go at once to London and resign his commission. In the absence of the faintest trace, in his letters, of dissatisfaction with the duty to which the ship was assigned, it is reasonable to attribute this exasperation to his soreness under the numerous reprimands he had received,—a feeling which plainly transpires in some of his replies, despite the forms of official respect that he scrupulously observed. Even in much later days, when his distinguished reputation might have enabled him to sustain with indifference this supercilious rudeness, he winced under it with over-sensitiveness. "Do not, my dear lord," he wrote to Earl Spencer a year after the battle of the Nile, "let the Admiralty write harshly to me—my generous soul cannot bear it, being conscious it is entirely unmerited." This freedom of censure, often felt by him to be undeserved, or at least excessive, and its sharp contrast with the scanty recognition of his unwearied efforts,—of whose value he himself was by no means forgetful,—though not unusual in the experience of officers, are quite sufficient to account for the sense of neglect and unjust treatment by which he was then outraged. This feeling was probably accentuated, also, by a renewal of the legal persecution which had been begun in the West Indies; for towards the end of the year he received formal notice of suits being instituted against him for the seizure of the American vessels, and it is likely enough that some intimation of what was coming reached him before leaving the "Boreas." Scanty thanks, liberal blame, and the prospect of an expensive lawsuit based upon his official action, constituted, for a poor man lately married, causes of disturbance which might well have upset his equanimity.
It was during this last month of service, right before leaving the ship, that Nelson reportedly expressed strong dissatisfaction with "an ungrateful service," as noted by his biographers, and decided to go to London immediately to resign his commission. Since there's no hint in his letters of discontent with the ship's duties, it’s reasonable to think this frustration was due to the many reprimands he had received—a sentiment that clearly shows in some of his replies, even though he strictly maintained official decorum. Even later, when his esteemed reputation might have allowed him to brush off such arrogant rudeness, he still reacted sensitively. "Do not, my dear lord," he wrote to Earl Spencer a year after the Battle of the Nile, "let the Admiralty write harshly to me—my generous soul cannot take it, knowing it’s completely unearned." This unchecked criticism, which he often felt was unwarranted or at least excessive, in stark contrast to the little recognition of his tireless efforts—whose worth he was certainly aware of—was enough to explain his feeling of neglect and unfair treatment at that time. This feeling was likely intensified by a revived legal harassment that had started in the West Indies; by the end of the year, he received formal notice of lawsuits against him for seizing American vessels, and it’s quite possible he got wind of this before leaving the "Boreas." A lack of gratitude, an abundance of blame, and the threat of an expensive lawsuit stemming from his official actions created a situation that could easily disturb the peace of mind of a newly married man with limited resources.
Lord Howe, who was then at the head of the Admiralty, though formal and unbending in outward bearing, was a just and kind man, and one fully appreciative of professional worth. A mutual friend acquainted him with Nelson's irritation, and Howe wrote a private letter asking that he would call upon him as soon as he came to town. Though quick to resent, Nelson was easily soothed by attention and pleased by compliment, even when it rose to flattery,—which Howe's was not likely to do. A short interview gave the First Lord a clearer idea than he before had of the extent, value, and wholly voluntary character of the services rendered by the young captain in the West Indies; and he indicated the completeness of his satisfaction by offering to present him to the King, which was accordingly done at the next levee. George III. received him graciously; and the resentment of Nelson, whose loyalty was of the most extreme type, melted away in the sunshine of royal favor.
Lord Howe, who was in charge of the Admiralty at the time, appeared formal and stiff on the outside, but he was a fair and kind man who truly recognized professional excellence. A mutual friend informed him about Nelson's frustration, and Howe wrote a private letter inviting Nelson to meet with him as soon as he arrived in town. Although Nelson could be quick to take offense, he was easily calmed with attention and pleased by compliments, even if they bordered on flattery, which Howe was unlikely to do. A brief meeting gave the First Lord a better understanding than he had before of the significant, valuable, and entirely voluntary services provided by the young captain in the West Indies. He showed his complete satisfaction by offering to introduce Nelson to the King, which happened at the next levee. George III welcomed him warmly, and Nelson’s strong loyalty melted away in the warmth of royal favor.
Thus reconciled to the service, and convinced, as in his less morbid moods he often said, that gratitude and honor, though long deferred, were sure to follow upon steadfast performance of duty, he speedily renewed his efforts to bring to light the frauds practised in the colonies. His letters on the subject to Mr. Pitt, the Prime Minister, had been turned over to the Secretary of the Treasury, Mr. George Rose, and upon the latter Nelson now called. Rose received him at first with that courteous nonchalance which is the defensive armor of the beset official,—the name of his visitor, and the business with which it was connected, had for the moment slipped his mind. Nelson's mastery of his subject, however, and his warmth in it, soon roused the attention of his hearer, who, being then pressed for time, asked to see him again the next day, stipulating only that the interview should be early, before office hours. "It cannot be too early for me," replied Nelson, whose habit, in his career as admiral, was to get through his correspondence before eight o'clock,—"six o'clock, if you please."
Thus accepting his duty, and believing, as he often mentioned in less troubled times, that gratitude and honor, although delayed, would eventually come with dedicated service, he quickly intensified his efforts to expose the frauds happening in the colonies. His letters on the matter to Mr. Pitt, the Prime Minister, had been forwarded to the Secretary of the Treasury, Mr. George Rose, and Nelson now reached out to him. Rose initially greeted him with the polite indifference typical of an official under pressure—the name of his visitor and the purpose of the meeting had briefly escaped him. However, Nelson's expertise on the topic and his passion for it soon captured Rose's attention. As he was pressed for time, Rose requested to meet again the next day, specifying that it should be early, before office hours. "It can't be too early for me," replied Nelson, whose routine as an admiral was to get through his correspondence before eight o'clock—"six o'clock, if you please."
The arrangement was so made, and the consequent meeting lasted from six to nine the next morning. Of its general nature and results we have an authentic outline, given in later years to Nelson's biographers by Rose, who became, and to the last remained, his warm personal friend. The conversation ranged, apparently, over all the chief occurrences in the West Indies during the cruise of the "Boreas," including both the naval frauds and the contraband trade. The breadth and acuteness of Nelson's intellect have been too much overlooked, in the admiration excited by his unusually grand moral endowments of resolution, dash, and fearlessness of responsibility. Though scarcely what could be called an educated man, he was one of close and constant observation, thereby gaining a great deal of information; and to the use of this he brought a practical sagacity, which coped with the civil or political questions placed before it, for action, much as it did with military questions—for, after all, good generalship, on its intellectual side, is simply the application, to the solution of a military problem, of a mind naturally gifted therefor, and stored with experience, either personal or of others. As a strategist and tactician, Nelson made full proof of high native endowments, of wisdom garnered through fruitful study and meditation, and of clear insight into the determining conditions of the various military situations with which he had to deal. To Mr. Rose, the young captain of barely thirty years displayed a precise knowledge of several political subjects, connected with the commerce of the country, that would not naturally come under his notice as an officer, and which therefore the mere seaman would probably not have imbibed. Not only so, but his suggestions for dealing practically with the interests at stake were so judicious, that Rose, a valued associate of Pitt and intimately acquainted with the financial measures of that brilliant administrator, complimented him warmly upon the justice and correctness of his views, the result, as they were, of reflection based upon a mastery of the data involved. With Nelson's consent, he undertook to lay them before the prime minister, as the direct testimony of a singularly competent first-hand observer.
The arrangement was made, and the subsequent meeting lasted from six to nine the next morning. We have an authentic outline of its general nature and results, given in later years to Nelson's biographers by Rose, who became, and remained until the end, his close personal friend. The conversation apparently covered all the major events in the West Indies during the cruise of the "Boreas," including both naval frauds and the contraband trade. The depth and sharpness of Nelson's intellect have often been overlooked because of the admiration for his exceptional moral strengths of resolution, boldness, and readiness to take on responsibility. Though he was hardly what you’d call an educated man, he was someone who observed closely and constantly, acquiring a lot of knowledge; and he applied this knowledge with a practical sharpness that addressed civil or political concerns just as effectively as it did military issues—for, in the end, good military leadership, on an intellectual level, is simply the application of a mind that is naturally gifted for it and filled with experience, either personal or learned from others. As a strategist and tactician, Nelson demonstrated exceptional natural talent, wisdom gained from fruitful study and reflection, and clear insight into the key factors of the various military situations he faced. To Mr. Rose, the young captain, barely thirty, showcased a clear understanding of several political topics related to the country's commerce that wouldn’t typically be on an officer's radar and which a mere sailor probably wouldn’t have picked up. Not only that, but his practical suggestions for managing the interests at stake were so wise that Rose, a valued associate of Pitt and closely familiar with the financial strategies of that brilliant leader, praised him highly for the fairness and accuracy of his views, results of careful thought based on a solid grasp of the facts involved. With Nelson's permission, he went on to present them to the prime minister as direct testimony from a remarkably competent first-hand observer.
It is to be noted, however, of Nelson, that this accuracy of mental perception, this power of penetrating to the root of a matter, disregarding unessential details and fastening solely on decisive features, was largely dependent upon the necessity laid upon him for action; which is probably equivalent to saying that it was usually elicited by a sobering sense of responsibility. In his letters and despatches may be found many wild guesses, inconsistent from week to week, colored by changing moods and humors,—the mere passing comments of a mind off guard,—the records of evanescent impressions as numerous, fickle, and unfounded as those of the most ordinary mortal. It is when urgency presses and danger threatens, when the need for action comes, that his mental energies are aroused, and he begins to speak, as it were, ex cathedrâ. Then the unsubstantial haze rolls away; and the solid features of the scene one by one appear, until, amid all the unavoidable uncertainties of imperfect information, it becomes plain that the man has a firm grasp upon the great landmarks by which he must guide his course. Like the blind, who at first saw men as trees walking, and then saw everything clearly, so his mental illumination gradually reduces confusion to order, and from perplexity evolves correct decision. But what shall be said of those flashes of insight, as at Cape St. Vincent, elicited in a moment, as by the stroke of iron on rock, where all the previous processes of ordered thought and labored reasoning are condensed into one vivid inspiration, and transmuted without a pause into instant heroic action? Is that we call "genius" purely a mystery, of which our only account is to give it a name? Or is it true, as Napoleon said, that "on the field of battle the happiest inspiration is often but a recollection"?
It should be noted, however, regarding Nelson, that this accuracy of mental perception, this ability to get to the heart of a matter by ignoring unimportant details and focusing solely on crucial aspects, was largely driven by his need for action; which probably means it was typically triggered by a clear sense of responsibility. In his letters and dispatches, you can find many wild guesses, inconsistent from week to week, influenced by changing moods and emotions—just passing comments from a distracted mind—the records of fleeting impressions as numerous, fickle, and unfounded as those of any average person. It is when urgency arises and danger looms, when the need for action becomes pressing, that his mental energies kick in, and he begins to speak, so to speak, ex cathedrâ. At that moment, the haze of uncertainty dissipates, and the clear features of the situation gradually emerge, until, amid all the unavoidable uncertainties of imperfect information, it becomes evident that he has a solid grasp on the important markers that will guide his path. Like the blind man who first saw people as trees walking and then saw everything clearly, his mental clarity gradually turns chaos into order, transforming confusion into correct decisions. But what can we say about those flashes of insight, as at Cape St. Vincent, sparked in an instant, as if by the strike of iron on rock, where all the previous processes of focused thought and painstaking reasoning are condensed into one vivid inspiration and seamlessly transformed into immediate heroic action? Is what we call "genius" merely a mystery, of which our only explanation is to label it? Or is it true, as Napoleon said, that "on the field of battle the best inspiration is often just a memory"?
From Rose Nelson went to the Comptroller of the Navy, Sir Charles Middleton, who afterwards, as Lord Barham, sent him forth to Trafalgar. Middleton had replied promptly to the first report of the fraudulent transactions, giving assurance of his readiness to act, and urging that all the information possible should be secured, as he feared that the allegations were substantially true. He now showed the instructions of the Navy Board, under which its colonial employees acted, to Nelson, who said that, if honestly followed, they must prevent the unlawful practices; but that he believed they were habitually violated, and that he himself, though senior officer on the station, had never before seen the instructions. This failure to intrust supervision to the one person upon whom all responsibility should ultimately have rested, practically neutralized the otherwise laudable methods prescribed by the Board. It was simply another instance of the jealousy between the civil and military branches of the naval organization, which, as is well known, resulted in constant strained relations between the Admiralty and the Naval Commissioners, until the latter Board was at last abolished.
From Rose, Nelson went to the Comptroller of the Navy, Sir Charles Middleton, who later, as Lord Barham, sent him to Trafalgar. Middleton quickly responded to the initial report of the fraudulent activities, assuring his readiness to act and stressing the need to gather all possible information, as he feared the allegations were mostly true. He then showed Nelson the Navy Board's instructions that governed its colonial employees, to which Nelson replied that if followed honestly, they should prevent illegal activities; however, he believed they were regularly ignored, and that he, as the senior officer on the station, had never seen the instructions before. This lack of supervision from the one person who should have held ultimate responsibility effectively undermined the otherwise commendable methods set by the Board. It was just another example of the rivalry between the civil and military sectors of the naval organization, which, as is well known, led to ongoing tense relations between the Admiralty and the Naval Commissioners until the latter Board was eventually dissolved.
It is, fortunately, unnecessary to follow farther this dreary record of old-time dishonesty. Nelson continued to interest himself strenuously in the matter for two years after his return to England, both by letter and interview with persons in authority. His own position and influence were too insignificant to effect anything, except by moving the home officials, whose administration was compromised and embarrassed by the malpractices of their representatives. Though uphill work, it was far from fruitless. "His representations," said Mr. Rose, in a memorandum furnished to his biographers, "were all attended to, and every step which he recommended was adopted. He thus put the investigation into a proper course; which ended in the detection and punishment of some of the parties whose conduct was complained of." The broad result appears to have been that the guilty for the most part escaped punishment, unless, indeed, some of them lost their positions, of which no certain information exists; but the corrupt combination was broken up, and measures were adopted to prevent the recurrence of the same iniquities. Upon Nelson himself the effect was twofold. His energy and intelligence could not fail to impress the powerful men with whom he was in this way brought into contact. The affair increased his reputation, and made him more widely known than as a simple captain in the Navy he would otherwise have been. As the various public Boards whose money had been stolen realized the amount of the thefts, and the extent of the conspiracy to rob the Government, they felt their obligations to him, and expressed them in formal, but warm, letters of thanks. On the other hand, the principal culprits had command of both money and influence; and by means of these, as so often happens, they not only impeded inquiry, but, according to Southey, who wrote not very long after the events, "succeeded in raising prejudices against Nelson at the Board of Admiralty which it was many years before he could subdue." Clarke and M'Arthur make the same assertion.
It’s thankfully unnecessary to go on with this depressing account of past dishonesty. Nelson remained deeply involved in the matter for two years after he returned to England, reaching out through letters and meetings with officials. His own status and influence were too minor to make a significant impact, except by persuading the home officials, whose administration was compromised and embarrassed by the wrongful actions of their representatives. Though it was challenging work, it was far from pointless. “His representations,” noted Mr. Rose in a memo provided to his biographers, “were all taken seriously, and every step he suggested was implemented. He thus put the investigation on the right track, which led to the detection and punishment of some of those whose actions were under scrutiny.” The overall result seems to have been that most of the guilty parties escaped punishment, unless some of them lost their positions, though there’s no definitive information on that; however, the corrupt network was dismantled, and measures were put in place to prevent the same wrongdoings from happening again. The effect on Nelson was twofold. His energy and intelligence undoubtedly made an impression on the powerful figures he interacted with during this process. The situation enhanced his reputation and made him more widely recognized than he would have been merely as a captain in the Navy. As the various public Boards that had funds stolen realized the scale of the thefts and the conspiracy to defraud the Government, they felt indebted to him and expressed their gratitude in formal, yet heartfelt, letters. On the flip side, the main offenders had control of both money and influence; and using these resources, as often happens, they not only obstructed the investigation but, according to Southey, who wrote shortly after the events, “managed to create biases against Nelson at the Board of Admiralty that took him many years to overcome.” Clarke and M'Arthur make the same claim.
That these prejudices did at one time exist is beyond doubt, and that they should have been fostered by this means is perfectly in keeping with common experience. Such intrigues, however, work in the dark and by indirection; it is not often easy to trace their course. The independence and single-mindedness with which Nelson followed his convictions, and the outspoken frankness with which he expressed his views and feelings, not improbably gave a handle to malicious misrepresentation. His known intimacy with Prince William Henry, upon whose favor he to some extent relied, was also more likely to do him harm than good; and he entertained for the royal captain prepossessions not far removed from partisanship, at a time when the prince avowed himself not a friend to the present minister. "Amidst that variety of business which demanded his attention on his return to England," say his biographers, "he failed not, by every means in his power, to fulfil the promise which he had made to his Royal Highness Prince William of counteracting whatever had been opposed to the merited reputation of his illustrious pupil, and to the friendship they had invariably preserved for each other." It was a difficult task. Opinionated and headstrong as the King, his father, the young man was an uneasy subordinate to the Admiralty, and made those above him realize that he was full as conscious of his personal rank as of his official position as a captain in the Navy. It was, indeed, this self-assertive temperament that afterwards frustrated his natural ambition to be the active head of the service. Having such an ally, there is something ominous for Nelson's own prospects to find him writing in evident sympathy: "The great folks above now see he will not be a cypher, therefore many of the rising people must submit to act subordinate to him, which is not so palatable; and I think a Lord of the Admiralty is hurt to see him so able, after what he has said about him. He has certainly not taken a leaf out of his book, for he is steady in his command and not violent." Upon this follows, "He has wrote Lord Hood what I cannot but approve,"—a sentence unquestionably vague, but which sounds combative. Nelson had already felt it necessary to caution the prince to be careful in the choice of those to whom he told his mind.
That these prejudices existed at one time is undeniable, and that they were encouraged by these means is perfectly in line with common experience. Such intrigues, however, operate in secrecy and through indirect methods; it’s not often easy to trace their path. The independence and determination with which Nelson followed his beliefs, and the candid way he expressed his opinions and feelings, likely provided an opportunity for malicious misrepresentation. His known closeness to Prince William Henry, whose favor he depended on to some extent, was also more likely to bring him more harm than good; he held somewhat biased views about the royal captain at a time when the prince openly declared that he was not a friend of the current minister. "Amidst the variety of tasks that demanded his attention upon his return to England," say his biographers, "he made every effort possible to fulfill the promise he made to his Royal Highness Prince William to counteract anything that opposed the well-deserved reputation of his distinguished pupil, as well as the friendship they had consistently maintained." It was a tough job. Stubborn and headstrong like his father, the King, the young man was a difficult subordinate to the Admiralty and made those above him acutely aware that he was just as conscious of his personal status as he was of his official role as a captain in the Navy. Indeed, this self-assertive nature later undermined his natural ambition to take on a leadership role in the service. With such an ally, it is concerning for Nelson’s own prospects to find him writing in clear sympathy: "The bigwigs up top now see he won’t be a nobody, so many of the up-and-coming people have to accept being under him, which isn’t exactly pleasant; and I think a Lord of the Admiralty is unhappy to see him so capable, especially after what he has said about him. He has certainly not copied him, as he is steady in his command and not aggressive." Following this, he adds, "He has written to Lord Hood, which I can only approve of,"—a sentence that is undoubtedly vague but comes across as confrontational. Nelson had already felt the need to warn the prince to be careful about whom he confided in.
In fact, at the time when the letter just quoted was written, the conduct of the prince had been such as necessarily, and not wholly unjustly, to prejudice an officer who displayed marked partisanship for him, such as certainly was indicated by Nelson's expressions. He had brought his ship from Newfoundland to Ireland in flat disobedience of orders, issued by the commander of the station, to go to Quebec. When this action became known to the Admiralty by his arrival at Cork, in December, 1787, it was at once reported to the King, who himself directed that the prince should proceed to Plymouth with his ship, should remain within the limits of the port for as many months as he had been absent from his station, and should then be sent back to Halifax. The Prince of Wales, afterwards George IV., who was already at variance with the King, took advantage of this flagrant breach of discipline to flaunt his opposition before the world. In company with his second brother, the Duke of York, he went down to Plymouth, and paid a ceremonious visit to Prince William on board his ship. The round of festivities necessitated by their presence emphasized the disagreement between the sovereign and the heir to the throne, and drew to it public attention. Immediately after this, in January, 1788, Nelson also visited the prince, having been summoned by him from London. He could, indeed, scarcely decline, nor was he at all the man to turn his back on a friend in difficulty; but, in his fight against corruption, the matter could scarcely fail to be represented by his opponents under the worst light to the King, to whom corruption was less odious than insubordination. If, in conversation, Nelson uttered such expressions as he wrote to his friend Locker, he had only himself to blame for the disfavor which followed; for, to a naval officer, the prince's conduct should have appeared absolutely indefensible. In the course of the same year the King became insane, and the famous struggle about the Regency took place. The prince had meantime returned to America, in accordance with his orders, and by the time he again reached England the King had recovered. He could, therefore, have refrained from any indication of his own sympathies; but instead of this he openly associated himself with the party of the Prince of Wales, whose course throughout, when it became known to his father, had bitterly displeased the latter, and accentuated the breach between them. At a banquet given by the Spanish ambassador in celebration of the King's recovery, the three princes sat at a table separate from the rest of the royal family. A formal reconciliation took place in September, 1789; but the Duke of Clarence, as he had then become, continued attached to the Prince of Wales's clique. Those who know how party considerations influenced naval appointments at that time, will in these facts find at least a partial explanation of the cloud which then hung over Nelson.
In fact, at the time when the letter just quoted was written, the prince's behavior was such that it understandably, though not entirely unjustly, caused issues for an officer who showed strong loyalty to him, as definitely indicated by Nelson's comments. He had brought his ship from Newfoundland to Ireland in outright disobedience of orders issued by the commander of the station to go to Quebec. When the Admiralty learned of this upon his arrival at Cork in December 1787, it was promptly reported to the King, who directed that the prince should go to Plymouth with his ship, stay in the port for as many months as he had been away from his station, and then return to Halifax. The Prince of Wales, later known as George IV, was already at odds with the King and took advantage of this blatant act of defiance to publicly show his opposition. Accompanied by his brother, the Duke of York, he visited Plymouth and formally greeted Prince William on his ship. The festivities that accompanied their visit highlighted the rift between the sovereign and the heir to the throne, drawing public attention. Shortly after, in January 1788, Nelson also visited the prince, having been called from London. He could hardly refuse, nor was he the kind of man to abandon a friend in trouble; however, in his battle against corruption, his opponents could hardly miss the chance to portray the situation to the King in the worst possible light, knowing that he found corruption less objectionable than insubordination. If Nelson said things in conversation that mirrored what he wrote to his friend Locker, he had only himself to blame for the negative attention that followed; because, to a naval officer, the prince's actions should have seemed completely unjustifiable. Later that same year, the King became insane, leading to the well-known struggle over the Regency. Meanwhile, the prince had returned to America as per his orders, and by the time he got back to England, the King had recovered. Thus, he could have kept his own feelings to himself; instead, he openly aligned himself with the Prince of Wales's faction, whose actions had greatly angered the King when he learned of them and widened the gap between them. At a banquet hosted by the Spanish ambassador to celebrate the King's recovery, the three princes sat at a table separate from the rest of the royal family. A formal reconciliation happened in September 1789; however, the Duke of Clarence, as he had become, remained close to the Prince of Wales’s group. Those familiar with how party dynamics influenced naval appointments at that time will find at least a partial explanation for the cloud that hung over Nelson.
Lord Chatham, brother of the minister to whom Prince William was not a friend, became head of the Admiralty in July, 1788, and so remained until after the war with France began in 1793. With him was associated Lord Hood, between whom and Nelson there arose what the latter called "a difference of opinion," which led to a cessation of "familiar correspondence." The exact date at which this occurred does not appear, but it was probably before May, 1790; for Hood refused to use his influence to get Nelson a ship, in the armament which was then ordered on account of a difficulty with Spain, whereas eighteen months before he had assured him that in case of hostilities he need not fear not having a good ship. This refusal was the more marked, because "almost the whole service was then called out." On the same occasion, Nelson wrote, "he made a speech never to be effaced from my memory, viz.: that the King was impressed with an unfavourable opinion of me." Knowing Nelson's value as an officer as well as Hood did, there can scarcely remain a doubt that some serious indiscretion, real or imagined, must have caused this alienation; but of what it was there is no trace, unless in his evident siding with the prince, who was then out of favor with both the King and the administration.
Lord Chatham, brother of the minister who wasn't on good terms with Prince William, became head of the Admiralty in July 1788 and held that position until after the war with France started in 1793. He was joined by Lord Hood, and a "difference of opinion," as Nelson called it, developed between them, resulting in a stop to their "familiar correspondence." The exact date of this rift isn't clear, but it likely happened before May 1790, as Hood declined to use his influence to secure Nelson a ship in the armament ordered due to tensions with Spain. Eighteen months earlier, Hood had assured Nelson that he wouldn't have to worry about getting a good ship if hostilities broke out. This refusal was significant since "almost the whole service was then called out." On that occasion, Nelson noted, "he made a speech never to be effaced from my memory, viz.: that the King was impressed with an unfavourable opinion of me." Given how well Hood understood Nelson's worth as an officer, it leaves little doubt that some serious indiscretion, whether real or imagined, must have caused this rift. However, there’s no evidence of what it was, except for Hood's apparent support for the prince, who was then out of favor with both the King and the administration.
The five years—from 1788 to 1792 inclusive—intervening between the cruise of the "Boreas" and the outbreak of war with the French Republic, were thus marked by a variety of unpleasant circumstances, of which the most disagreeable, to a man of Nelson's active temperament, was the apparently fixed resolve of the authorities to deny him employment. He was harassed, indeed, by the recurring threats of prosecution for the West India seizures; but both the Admiralty and the Treasury agreed that he should be defended at the expense of the Crown,—a fact which tends to show that his subsequent disfavor arose from some other cause than disapproval of his official action, however some incidents may have been misrepresented. On its private side, his life during this period seems to have been happy, though uneventful; but in the failure of children he was deprived, both then and afterwards, of that sweetest of interests, continuous yet ever new in its gradual unfolding, which brings to the most monotonous existence its daily tribute of novelty and incident. The fond, almost rapturous, expressions with which he greeted the daughter afterwards born to him out of wedlock, shows the blank in his home,—none the less real because not consciously realized.
The five years—from 1788 to 1792 inclusive—between the cruise of the "Boreas" and the start of the war with the French Republic were filled with a variety of frustrating situations. For someone like Nelson, who was always active, the worst was the apparent determination of the authorities to keep him from being employed. He faced ongoing threats of prosecution for the seizures in the West Indies; however, both the Admiralty and the Treasury decided that he should be defended at the Crown's expense. This suggests that his later unpopularity stemmed from reasons other than disapproval of his official actions, even if some events were mischaracterized. On a personal level, his life during this time seems to have been happy, though unremarkable; yet, due to the lack of children, he was deprived—now and in the future—of the joy that comes from the continuous yet ever-changing interest children provide, which brings a sense of novelty and excitement to even the dullest existence. The deep, almost ecstatic, feelings he expressed when he welcomed the daughter born to him out of wedlock highlight the emptiness in his home life—an absence that was very real, even if he didn't consciously acknowledge it.
The lack of stimulus to his mind from his surroundings at this time is also manifested by the fewness of his letters. But thirty remain to show his occupation during the five years, and seventeen of these are purely official in character. From the year 1791 no record survives. His wife being with him, one line of correspondence was thereby closed; but even to his brother, and to his friend Locker, he finds nothing to write. For the ordinary country amusements and pursuits of the English gentry he had scant liking; and, barring the occasional worry over his neglect by the Admiralty, there was little else to engage his attention. The first few months after his release from the "Boreas" were spent in the West of England, chiefly at Bath, for the recovery of Mrs. Nelson's health as well as his own; but toward the latter part of 1788 the young couple went to live with his father at the parsonage of Burnham Thorpe, and there made their home until he was again called into active service. "It is extremely interesting," say his biographers, "to contemplate this great man, when thus removed from the busy scenes in which he had borne so distinguished a part to the remote village of Burnham Thorpe;" but the interest seems by their account to be limited to the energy with which he dug in the garden, or, from sheer want of something to do, reverted to the bird-nesting of his boyhood. His favorite amusement, we are told, was coursing, and he once shot a partridge; but his habit of carrying his gun at full cock, and firing as soon as a bird rose, without bringing the piece to his shoulder, made him a dangerous companion in a shooting-party. His own account is somewhat different: "Shoot I cannot, therefore I have not taken out a license; but notwithstanding the neglect I have met with I am happy;" and again, to his brother, he says: "It was not my intention to have gone to the coursing meeting, for, to say the truth, I have rarely escaped a wet jacket and a violent cold; besides, to me, even the ride to the Smee is longer than any pleasure I find in the sport will compensate for." The fact is that Nelson cared for none of these things, and the only deduction of real interest from his letters at this time is the absolute failure of his home life and affections to content his aspirations,—the emptiness both of mind and heart, which caused his passionate eagerness for external employment to fill the void. Earnestness appears only when he is brooding over the slight with which he was treated, and the resultant thwarting of his career. For both mind and heart the future held in store for him the most engrossing emotions, but it did not therefore bring him happiness.
The lack of stimulation from his surroundings at this time is also evident in the few letters he wrote. However, thirty letters remain to show his activities over the five years, with seventeen of them being purely official. No records survive from the year 1791. Since his wife was with him, one line of communication was closed off; even to his brother and friend Locker, he has nothing to say. He had little interest in the typical country pastimes of the English upper class, and aside from the occasional concern about his neglect by the Admiralty, there was not much else to keep him occupied. The first few months after his release from the "Boreas" were spent in the West of England, primarily in Bath, focusing on recovering Mrs. Nelson’s health as well as his own; but by late 1788, the young couple moved in with his father at the parsonage in Burnham Thorpe, where they made their home until he was called back to active duty. "It is extremely interesting," say his biographers, "to imagine this great man, far removed from the busy scenes where he had played such a significant role, in the remote village of Burnham Thorpe;" but their account seems to limit the interest to how energetically he gardened, or how, out of sheer boredom, he returned to bird-nesting from his childhood. They mention that his favorite pastime was coursing, and that he once shot a partridge; however, his tendency to carry his gun fully cocked and fire as soon as a bird flew up, without aiming it at his shoulder, made him a dangerous companion on hunting trips. His own perspective is somewhat different: "I can't shoot, so I haven’t taken out a license; but despite the neglect I’ve faced, I’m happy;" and again to his brother, he states: "It wasn't my plan to attend the coursing meeting, because honestly, I often end up with a wet jacket and a nasty cold; plus, even the ride to the Smee feels longer than any fun I get from the sport." The truth is that Nelson didn’t care for any of these activities, and the only truly interesting aspect in his letters during this time is the unmistakable dissatisfaction with his home life and affections and how they failed to satisfy his ambitions—the emptiness of both mind and heart, which drove his intense desire for outside work to fill the gap. He only shows earnestness when reflecting on the slight he received and the resulting setbacks in his career. Though the future promised him deep emotional experiences, it did not bring him happiness.
Of his frames of mind during this period of neglect and disfavor, his biographers give a very strongly colored picture, for which, it is to be presumed, they drew upon contemporary witnesses that were to them still accessible. "With a mortified and dejected spirit, he looked forward to a continuance of inactivity and neglect.... During this interval of disappointment and mortification, his latent ambition would at times burst forth, and despise all restraint. At others, a sudden melancholy seemed to overshadow his noble faculties, and to affect his temper; at those moments the remonstrances of his wife and venerable father alone could calm the tempest of his passions." That Nelson keenly felt the cold indifference he now underwent, is thoroughly in keeping with the sensitiveness to censure, expressed or implied, which his correspondence frequently betrays, while his frail organization and uncertain health would naturally entail periods of depression or nervous exasperation; but the general tenor of his letters, few as they at this time were, shows rather dignified acceptance of a treatment he had not merited, and a steady resolve not to waver in his readiness to serve his country, nor to cease asking an opportunity to do so. Many years later, at a time of still more sickening suspense, he wrote: "I am in truth half dead, but what man can do shall be done,—I am not made to despair;" and now, according to a not improbable story, he closed an application for employment with the words, "If your Lordships should be pleased to appoint me to a cockle boat, I shall feel grateful." Hood, whose pupil he in a sense was, and who shared his genius, said of himself, when under a condition of enforced inactivity: "This proves very strongly the different frames of men's minds; some are full of anxiety, impatience, and apprehension, while others, under similar circumstances, are perfectly cool, tranquil, and indifferent."
Of his state of mind during this time of neglect and disapproval, his biographers paint a very vivid picture, presumably based on contemporary witnesses who were still accessible to them. "With a wounded and downcast spirit, he anticipated ongoing inactivity and neglect... During this period of disappointment and humiliation, his hidden ambition would sometimes burst forth and disregard all restraint. At other times, a sudden sadness seemed to overshadow his noble abilities and affect his temperament; in those moments, only the pleas of his wife and esteemed father could calm the storm of his emotions." That Nelson acutely felt the cold indifference he was experiencing aligns perfectly with the sensitivity to criticism, both direct and implied, that his correspondence often reveals, while his frail constitution and inconsistent health would naturally lead to bouts of depression or nervous frustration; however, the overall tone of his letters, few as they were at this time, indicates a dignified acceptance of a treatment he did not deserve and a firm resolve to remain ready to serve his country and continue seeking the opportunity to do so. Many years later, during an even more agonizing time of uncertainty, he wrote: "I am indeed half dead, but whatever a man can do shall be done — I am not one to despair;" and now, according to a plausible account, he concluded an application for a position with the words, "If your Lordships would be pleased to assign me to a cockle boat, I would be grateful." Hood, in a sense his pupil and sharing a similar genius, remarked about himself during a time of forced idleness: "This strongly illustrates the differing states of mind in men; some are filled with anxiety, impatience, and apprehension, while others, in similar situations, remain perfectly calm, serene, and indifferent."
The latter half of the year 1792 was marked by the rapid progress in France of the political distemper, which was so soon to culminate in the worst excesses of the Revolution. The quick succession of symptoms, each more alarming than the other,—the suspension of the royal power at the tumultuous bidding of a mob, the September massacres, the abolition of royalty, the aggressive character of the National Convention shown by the decrees of November 19 and December 15,—roused the apprehensions of most thoughtful men throughout Europe; and their concern was increased by the growing popular effervescence in other countries than France. The British cabinet, as was natural, shifted more slowly than did the irresponsible members of the community; nor could Pitt lightly surrender his strong instinctive prepossessions in favor of peace, with the continuance of which was identified the exercise of his own best powers.
The latter half of 1792 saw a rapid increase in political unrest in France, which was soon to lead to the worst excesses of the Revolution. The quick succession of alarming events—such as the suspension of royal power due to the demands of a mob, the September massacres, the abolition of royalty, and the aggressive actions of the National Convention as shown by the decrees of November 19 and December 15—raised concerns among many thoughtful people across Europe. Their worries grew as popular unrest began to rise in other countries as well. The British government, as was to be expected, reacted more slowly than the restless members of society; and Pitt couldn’t easily let go of his strong instinctive beliefs in favor of peace, which he believed was crucial for him to effectively exercise his own abilities.
During this stormy and anxious period, Nelson shared the feelings of his day and class. It is noteworthy, however, that, in regarding the perils of the time, he was no mere panic-monger, but showed the same discriminating carefulness of observation that had distinguished him as captain of the "Boreas," and had elicited the admiration of Mr. Rose. Strenuous and even bigoted royalist as he always was, satisfied of the excellence of the British Constitution, and condemning utterly the proceedings of the more or less seditious societies then forming throughout the kingdom, he yet recognized the substantial grievances of the working-men, as evident in the district immediately under his eye. The sympathetic qualities which made him, fortune's own favorite in his profession, keenly alive to the hardships, neglect, and injustice undergone by the common seaman, now engaged him to set forth the sad lot of the ill-paid rural peasantry. In his letters to the Duke of Clarence, he on the one hand strongly blames the weakness and timidity of the justices and country gentlemen, in their attitude towards the abettors of lawlessness; but, on the other, he dwells upon the sufferings of the poor, prepares a careful statement of their earnings and unavoidable expenses, and insists upon the necessity of the living wage. The field laborers, he said, "do not want loyalty, many of their superiors, in many instances, might have imitated their conduct to advantage; but hunger is a sharp thorn, and they are not only in want of food sufficient, but of clothes and firing."
During this stormy and anxious time, Nelson shared the feelings of his peers. However, it's important to note that when considering the dangers of the era, he wasn't just spreading panic; he demonstrated the same careful observation that had set him apart as captain of the "Boreas," earning the admiration of Mr. Rose. A passionate and often narrow-minded royalist, firmly believing in the superiority of the British Constitution and completely condemning the actions of the various seditious societies that were forming across the kingdom, he still recognized the real complaints of the working men, especially in the area he observed closely. The empathy that made him a favorite of fortune in his career made him acutely aware of the struggles, neglect, and injustices faced by common seamen, which now prompted him to highlight the sad situation of the poorly paid rural laborers. In his letters to the Duke of Clarence, he strongly criticizes the weakness and fearfulness of the justices and country gentlemen regarding the supporters of lawlessness; yet, he also focuses on the suffering of the poor, providing a detailed account of their earnings and unavoidable expenses, and emphasizes the need for a living wage. He stated that the field workers "do not seek loyalty; many of their superiors could have benefited from emulating their actions; but hunger is a harsh reality, and they are not just lacking enough food, but also clothing and heat."
Under the threatening outlook, he considers that every individual will soon "be called forth to show himself;" and for his own part, he writes on the 3d of November, he sees no way so proper as asking for a ship. But, even at that late moment, neither Pitt nor his associates had abandoned the hope of peace, and this, as well as other applications of Nelson's, received only a formal acknowledgment without encouragement. Roused, however, by the Convention's decree of November 19, which extended the succor of France to all people who should wish to recover their liberty, and charged the generals of the republic to make good the offer with the forces under their command, the ministry decided to abandon their guarded attitude; and their new resolution was confirmed by the reception, on the 28th of November, of deputations from British revolutionary societies at the bar of the Convention, on which occasion the president of the latter affected to draw a dividing line between the British government and the British nation. On the 1st of December the militia was called out by proclamation, and Parliament summoned to meet on the 15th of the month. On the latter day the Convention put forth another decree, announcing in the most explicit terms its purpose to overthrow all existing governments in countries where the Republican armies could penetrate. Pitt now changed his front with an instantaneousness and absoluteness which gave the highest proof of his capacity as a leader of men. It was not so much that war was then determined, as that the purpose was formed, once for all, to accept the challenge contained in the French decree, unless France would discontinue her avowed course of aggression. Orders were immediately given to increase largely the number of ships of war in commission.
Under the looming threat, he thinks that every person will soon "need to step up;" and for his part, he writes on November 3rd that he sees no better option than asking for a ship. However, even at that late stage, neither Pitt nor his associates had given up on the hope for peace, and like other requests from Nelson, this one only received a formal acknowledgment without any real encouragement. However, spurred by the Convention's decree on November 19, which extended France's support to all people wanting to regain their freedom and instructed the republic's generals to fulfill this offer with their forces, the ministry decided to drop their cautious approach. Their new resolution was solidified on November 28 when they received delegations from British revolutionary societies before the Convention, where the president tried to draw a distinction between the British government and the British people. On December 1, the militia was mobilized by proclamation, and Parliament was called to meet on the 15th of the month. On that day, the Convention issued another decree stating clearly its intention to overthrow all existing governments in countries where Republican armies could reach. Pitt now shifted his position with a speed and decisiveness that demonstrated his exceptional leadership skills. It wasn't so much that war was declared at that moment but that it was decided to accept the challenge presented in the French decree, unless France would cease its stated path of aggression. Orders were quickly given to significantly increase the number of warships in operation.
When danger looms close at hand, the best men, if known, are not left in the cold shade of official disfavor. "Post nubila Phoebus," was the expression of Nelson, astonished for a rarity into Latin by the suddenness with which the sun now burst upon him through the clouds. "The Admiralty so smile upon me, that really I am as much surprised as when they frowned." On the 6th of January, 1793, the First Lord, with many apologies for previous neglect, promised to give him a seventy-four-gun ship as soon as it was in his power to do so, and that meanwhile, if he chose to take a sixty-four, he could have one as soon as she was ready. On the 30th he was appointed to the "Agamemnon," of the latter rate. Within the preceding fortnight Louis XVI. had been beheaded, and the French ambassador ordered to leave England. On February 1, 1793, two days after Nelson's orders were issued, the Republic declared war against Great Britain and Holland.
When danger is nearby, the best people, if recognized, are not left in the cold shadow of official disapproval. "Post nubila Phoebus," was Nelson's expression, astonished into Latin by how suddenly the sun burst through the clouds. "The Admiralty smiles upon me so much that I'm honestly as surprised as when they frowned." On January 6, 1793, the First Lord, with many apologies for previous neglect, promised to give him a seventy-four-gun ship as soon as he could, and that in the meantime, if he wanted a sixty-four, he could have one as soon as it was ready. On the 30th, he was appointed to the "Agamemnon," of the latter type. In the two weeks prior, Louis XVI had been executed, and the French ambassador was ordered to leave England. On February 1, 1793, just two days after Nelson received his orders, the Republic declared war against Great Britain and Holland.
FOOTNOTES:
[8] Nicolas, vol. v. p. 356.
[9] Thus Collingwood, rarely other than sober and restrained in his language, wrote to Hughes: "It is from the idea that the greatness and superiority of the British navy very much depends upon preserving inviolate the Act of Navigation, excluding foreigners from access to the colonies, that I am induced to make this representation to you." Nicolas, vol. i. p. 172.
[9] So Collingwood, who usually spoke in a sober and restrained manner, wrote to Hughes: "I believe that the greatness and superiority of the British navy largely depends on keeping the Act of Navigation intact, which prevents foreigners from accessing the colonies. That's why I'm reaching out to you about this." Nicolas, vol. i. p. 172.
[10] Nelson's letters are contradictory on this point. In a letter to Locker of March 3, 1786, he says, "Before the first vessel was tried I had seized four others;" whereas in the formal and detailed narrative drawn up—without date, but later than the letter to Locker—he says the first vessel was tried and condemned May 17, the other four seized May 23. (Nicolas, vol. i. pp. 177, 178.) The author has followed the latter, because from the particularity of dates it seems to have been compiled from memoranda, that of Locker written from memory,—both nearly a year after the events.
[10] Nelson's letters are conflicting on this matter. In a letter to Locker dated March 3, 1786, he states, "Before the first vessel was tested, I had already seized four others;" however, in the formal and detailed account written later—though undated—he claims that the first vessel was tested and condemned on May 17, and the other four were seized on May 23. (Nicolas, vol. i. pp. 177, 178.) The author has opted to follow the latter version because the specificity of the dates suggests it was compiled from notes, whereas Locker's account was written from memory—both nearly a year after the events.
[11] This word is used by Nelson, apparently, as equivalent to "season,"—the cruising period in the West Indies. "The admiral wishes to remain another station," he writes elsewhere.
[11] Nelson seems to use this word to mean "season," referring to the cruising period in the West Indies. "The admiral wishes to stay at another station," he writes elsewhere.
[12] Lady Nelson's tombstone in Littleham Churchyard, Exmouth, reads that she died May 6, 1831, "aged 73." She would then have been born before May 6, 1758. Nicolas (vol. i. p. 217) says that she died May 4, 1831, aged 68, but does not mention his authority.
[12] Lady Nelson's tombstone in Littleham Churchyard, Exmouth, states that she died on May 6, 1831, "aged 73." This means she would have been born before May 6, 1758. Nicolas (vol. i. p. 217) mentions that she died on May 4, 1831, aged 68, but he doesn’t specify his source.
[13] Prior to May, 1785, the only stops of the "Boreas" at Nevis were January 6-8, February 1-4, and March 11-15. (Boreas's Log in Nicolas's Letters and Despatches of Lord Nelson, vol. vii. Addenda, pp. viii, ix.)
[13] Before May 1785, the only times the "Boreas" stopped at Nevis were January 6-8, February 1-4, and March 11-15. (Boreas's Log in Nicolas's Letters and Dispatches of Lord Nelson, vol. vii. Addenda, pp. viii, ix.)
[14] The author is satisfied, from casual expressions in Nelson's letters to Lady Hamilton, that his famous two years' confinement to the ship, 1803-1805, and, to a less extent, the similar seclusion practised in the Baltic and the Downs, proceeded, in large part at least, from a romantic and chivalrous resolve to leave no room for doubt, in the mind of Lady Hamilton or of the world, that he was entirely faithful to her.
[14] The author believes, based on casual comments in Nelson's letters to Lady Hamilton, that his well-known two years stuck on the ship, from 1803 to 1805, and, to a lesser extent, the similar isolation during his time in the Baltic and the Downs, was largely driven by a romantic and chivalrous determination to ensure that neither Lady Hamilton nor anyone else could question his complete loyalty to her.
[15] The author has italicized these words because they accurately express the just penalty that military law would have required of Nelson, had he not shown adequate grounds for his disobedience. They measure, therefore, the responsibility he shouldered, and the reward he deserved.
[15] The author has italicized these words because they clearly convey the appropriate punishment that military law would have imposed on Nelson, if he hadn't provided sufficient reasons for his disobedience. They reflect the responsibility he accepted and the recognition he earned.
[16] Sir Harris Nicolas (Nelson's Despatches and Letters, vol. i. p. 217) gives March 12 as the day of the wedding, upon the ground of a letter of Lady Nelson's. Her mention of the date is, however, rather casual; and March 11 is given in the parish register of the church in Nevis.
[16] Sir Harris Nicolas (Nelson's Despatches and Letters, vol. i. p. 217) states that the wedding took place on March 12 based on a letter from Lady Nelson. However, her reference to the date is somewhat casual, and the parish register of the church in Nevis records it as March 11.
[17] The same symptom will be noted in the anxious pursuit of Villeneuve to the West Indies in 1805, where he grew better, although for some months he had had in his hands the Admiralty's permission to return home on account of his health.
[17] The same symptom can be seen in Villeneuve's anxious journey to the West Indies in 1805, where he began to recover, even though for a few months he had the Admiralty's permission to go back home due to his health.
CHAPTER III.
NELSON'S DEPARTURE FROM ENGLAND IN THE "AGAMEMNON."—SERVICES IN THE MEDITERRANEAN UNTIL THE RECOVERY OF TOULON BY THE FRENCH.—LORD HOOD IN COMMAND.
NELSON'S DEPARTURE FROM ENGLAND IN THE "AGAMEMNON."—OPERATIONS IN THE MEDITERRANEAN UNTIL THE FRENCH RECOVERY OF TOULON.—LORD HOOD IN COMMAND.
FEBRUARY-DECEMBER, 1793. AGE, 34.
FEBRUARY-DECEMBER, 1793. AGE 34.
Nelson's page in history covers a little more than twelve years, from February, 1793, to October, 1805. Its opening coincides with the moment when the wild passions of the French Revolution, still at fiercest heat, and which had hitherto raged like flame uncontrolled, operative only for destruction, were being rapidly mastered, guided, and regulated for efficient work, by the terrors of the Revolutionary Tribunal and the Committee of Public Safety. In the object to which these tremendous forces were now about to be applied lay the threat to the peace of Europe, which aroused Great Britain to action, and sent into the field her yet unknown champion from the Norfolk parsonage. The representatives of the French people had imparted to the original movement of their nation,—which aimed only at internal reforms, however radical,—a new direction, of avowed purposeful aggression upon all political institutions exterior to, and differing from, their own. This became the one characteristic common to the successive forms of government, which culminated in the pure military despotism of Napoleon.
Nelson's place in history spans a little over twelve years, from February 1793 to October 1805. It begins at a time when the intense emotions of the French Revolution, still raging wildly and destructively, were quickly being controlled and directed for effective use by the fears generated by the Revolutionary Tribunal and the Committee of Public Safety. The aim to which these powerful forces were now being directed posed a threat to the peace of Europe, which prompted Great Britain to take action and introduced her yet-unknown hero from the Norfolk parsonage. The representatives of the French people had given a new direction to their nation's original movement— which sought only radical internal reforms— that openly aimed at aggression against all political systems outside of, and different from, their own. This became the one defining feature of the successive governments, culminating in Napoleon's pure military dictatorship.
To beat back that spirit of aggression was the mission of Nelson. Therein is found the true significance of his career, which mounts higher and higher in strenuous effort and gigantic achievement, as the blast of the Revolution swells fiercer and stronger under the mighty impulse of the great Corsican. At each of the momentous crises, so far removed in time and place,—at the Nile, at Copenhagen, at Trafalgar,—as the unfolding drama of the age reveals to the onlooker the schemes of the arch-planner about to touch success, over against Napoleon rises ever Nelson; and as the latter in the hour of victory drops upon the stage where he has played so chief a part, his task is seen to be accomplished, his triumph secured. In the very act of dying he has dealt the foe a blow from which recovery is impossible. Moscow and Waterloo are the inevitable consequences of Trafalgar; as the glories of that day were but the fit and assured ending of the illustrious course which was begun upon the quarter-deck of the "Agamemnon."
To counter that aggressive spirit was Nelson's mission. This is where we find the true importance of his career, which rises higher and higher through intense effort and remarkable achievements, as the chaos of the Revolution intensifies under the powerful push of the great Corsican. At each critical moment, separated by time and place—at the Nile, at Copenhagen, at Trafalgar—when the unfolding events of the era show the ambitious plans of the mastermind nearing success, Nelson stands in stark contrast to Napoleon; and as Napoleon triumphantly takes the stage where he has played a major role, we see that Nelson has completed his mission, securing his victory. In his final moments, he delivers a blow to the enemy that leaves no chance for recovery. Moscow and Waterloo are the unavoidable results of Trafalgar; just as the victories of that day fittingly conclude the remarkable journey that began on the quarter-deck of the "Agamemnon."
With the exception of the "Victory," under whose flag he fell after two years of arduous, heart-breaking uncertainties, no ship has such intimate association with the career and name of Nelson as has the "Agamemnon." And this is but natural, for to her he was the captain, solely, simply, and entirely; identified with her alone, glorying in her excellences and in her achievements, one in purpose and in spirit with her officers and seamen; sharing their hopes, their dangers, and their triumphs; quickening them with his own ardor, moulding them into his own image, until vessel and crew, as one living organism, reflected in act the heroic and unyielding energy that inspired his feeble frame. Although, for a brief and teeming period, he while in command of her controlled also a number of smaller vessels on detached service, it was not until after he had removed to another ship that he became the squadron-commander, whose relations to the vessel on which he himself dwelt were no longer immediate, nor differed, save in his bodily presence, from those he bore to others of the same division. A personality such as Nelson's makes itself indeed felt throughout its entire sphere of action, be that large or small; but, withal, diffusion contends in vain with the inevitable law that forever couples it with slackening power, nor was it possible even for him to lavish on the various units of a fleet, and on the diverse conflicting claims of a great theatre of war, the same degree of interest and influence that he concentrated upon the "Agamemnon," and upon the brilliant though contracted services through which he carried her. Bonds such as these are not lightly broken, and to the "Agamemnon" Nelson clave for three long years and more, persistently refusing larger ships, until the exhausted hulk could no longer respond to the demands of her masters, and separation became inevitable. When he quitted her, at the moment of her departure for England, it was simply a question whether he would abandon the Mediterranean, and the prospect of a great future there opening before him, or sever a few weeks earlier a companionship which must in any event end upon her arrival home.
With the exception of the "Victory," under whose flag he served after two years of tough, heartbreaking uncertainties, no ship is more closely associated with Nelson's career and name than the "Agamemnon." This makes perfect sense because he was completely, solely, and entirely her captain; he was identified with her, celebrating her qualities and achievements, aligned in purpose and spirit with her officers and crew; sharing their hopes, dangers, and victories; inspiring them with his own passion, shaping them in his image, until the ship and crew functioned as a single, living entity that embodied the heroic and unyielding energy that motivated his frail body. Although he briefly commanded several smaller ships during this time, it was only after transferring to another ship that he became the squadron commander, whose connection to the vessel he inhabited no longer felt immediate, nor did it differ, aside from his physical presence, from his relationships with the other ships in the division. A personality like Nelson’s definitely makes its presence felt throughout its entire area of influence, whether big or small; however, that influence inevitably diminishes over distance, and even he couldn't give the same level of attention and impact to the various parts of a fleet or the many competing claims on a vast battlefield that he devoted to the "Agamemnon," and to the brilliant yet limited duties he carried out there. Bonds like these aren't easily broken, and Nelson remained committed to the "Agamemnon" for over three long years, consistently turning down larger ships until the worn-out vessel could no longer meet the demands of her captains, making separation unavoidable. When he parted with her as she was set to return to England, he faced the choice of either leaving the Mediterranean, with the promise of a great future ahead, or ending a companionship that would ultimately conclude upon her arrival home a few weeks sooner.
There is yet another point of view from which his command of the "Agamemnon" is seen to hold a peculiar relation to Nelson's story. This was the period in which expectation passed into fulfilment, when development, long arrested by unpropitious circumstances, resumed its outward progress under the benign influence of a favoring environment, and the bud, whose rare promise had long been noted by a few discerning eyes, unfolded into the brilliant flower, destined in the magnificence of its maturity to draw the attention of a world. To the fulness of his glorious course these three years were what the days of early manhood are to ripened age; and they are marked by the same elasticity, hopefulness, and sanguine looking to the future that characterize youth, before illusions vanish and even success is found to disappoint. Happiness was his then, as at no other time before or after; for the surrounding conditions of enterprise, of difficulties to be overcome, and dangers to be met, were in complete correspondence with those native powers that had so long struggled painfully for room to exert themselves. His health revived, and his very being seemed to expand in this congenial atmosphere, which to him was as life from the dead. As with untiring steps he sped onward and upward,—counting naught done while aught remained to do, forgetting what was behind as he pressed on to what was before,—the ardor of pursuit, the delight of achievement, the joy of the giant running his course, sustained in him that glow of animation, that gladness in the mere fact of existence, physical or moral, in which, if anywhere, this earth's content is found. Lack of recognition, even, wrung from him only the undaunted words: "Never mind! some day I will have a gazette of my own." Not till his dreams were realized, till aspiration had issued in the completest and most brilliant triumph ever wrought upon the seas, and he had for his gazette the loud homage of every mouth in Europe,—not till six months after the battle of the Nile,—did Nelson write: "There is no true happiness in this life, and in my present state I could quit it with a smile. My only wish is to sink with honour into the grave."
There’s another perspective that shows how his command of the "Agamemnon" connects uniquely to Nelson's story. This was the time when hopes turned into reality, when progress, long stalled by bad circumstances, began to move forward again thanks to a supportive environment. The budding potential that a few keen observers had long noticed blossomed into a stunning flower, destined to capture the world's attention with its mature magnificence. These three years were like the early days of manhood before reaching full maturity; they were filled with the same energy, optimism, and hopeful outlook typical of youth, before illusions fade and even success can be disappointing. His happiness during this time was unmatched; the challenges he faced and the dangers he encountered perfectly matched the strengths that had long struggled for space. His health improved, and he seemed to thrive in this supportive atmosphere, which felt like a rebirth. As he moved forward with relentless determination—considering nothing achieved while there was still more to do, and forgetting the past as he focused on what lay ahead—the passion for the chase, the joy of reaching goals, and the thrill of a champion on his path filled him with an invigorating joy in just being alive, physically and morally, where, if anywhere, life's satisfaction is found. Even a lack of recognition only drew from him the fearless response: "Never mind! One day I’ll have my own platform." It wasn’t until his dreams came true, until his ambitions led to the greatest and most glorious victory ever achieved at sea, and he received widespread admiration across Europe—six months after the Battle of the Nile—that Nelson wrote: "There is no true happiness in this life, and in my present state I could leave it with a smile. My only wish is to sink with honor into the grave."
The preparation of the Mediterranean fleet, to which the "Agamemnon" was assigned, was singularly protracted, and in the face of a well-ordered enemy the delay must have led to disastrous results. Nelson himself joined his ship at Chatham on the 7th of February, a week after his orders were issued; but not until the 16th of March did she leave the dockyard, and then only for Sheerness, where she remained four weeks longer. By that time it seems probable, from remarks in his letters, that the material equipment of the vessel was complete; but until the 14th of April she remained over a hundred men short of her complement. "Yet, I think," wrote Nelson, "that we shall be far from ill-manned, even if the rest be not so good as they ought to be." Mobilization in those days had not been perfected into a science, even in theory, and the difficulty of raising crews on the outbreak of war was experienced by all nations, but by none more than by Great Britain. Her wants were greatest, and for supply depended upon a merchant service scattered in all quarters of the globe. "Men are very hard to be got," Nelson said to his brother, "and without a press I have no idea that our fleet can be manned." It does not appear that this crude and violent, yet unavoidable, method was employed for the "Agamemnon," except so far as her crew was completed from the guard-ship. Dependence was placed upon the ordinary wiles of the recruiting-sergeant, and upon Nelson's own popularity in the adjacent counties of Suffolk and Norfolk, from which the bulk of his ship's company was actually drawn. "I have sent out a lieutenant and four midshipmen," he writes to Locker, "to get men at every seaport in Norfolk, and to forward them to Lynn and Yarmouth; my friends in Yorkshire and the North tell me they will send what men they can lay hands on;" but at the same time he hopes that Locker, then Commander-in-chief at the Nore, will not turn away any who from other districts may present themselves for the "Agamemnon." Coming mainly from the same neighborhood gave to the crew a certain homogeneousness of character, affording ground for appeal to local pride, a most powerful incentive in moments of difficulty and emulation; and this feeling was enhanced by the thought that their captain too was a Norfolk man. To one possessing the sympathetic qualities of Nelson, who so readily shared the emotions and gained the affections of his associates, it was easy to bind into a living whole the units animated by this common sentiment.
The preparation of the Mediterranean fleet, which the "Agamemnon" was assigned to, took an unusually long time, and facing an organized enemy, this delay could have led to serious consequences. Nelson himself joined his ship at Chatham on February 7th, a week after his orders were given; however, she didn't leave the dockyard until March 16th, and then only to go to Sheerness, where she stayed for another four weeks. By that time, it seems likely, based on his letters, that the ship was fully equipped; but until April 14th, she was still over a hundred men short of her crew. "Yet, I think," Nelson wrote, "that we will be far from short-staffed, even if the remaining crew isn't as good as they should be." Mobilization back then had not been perfected into a science, even in theory, and all nations faced challenges in raising crews when war broke out, but none struggled more than Great Britain. Her needs were the greatest, and she relied on a merchant service scattered all over the world. "Men are very hard to come by," Nelson told his brother, "and without a press, I have no idea how our fleet can be manned." It appears that this rough but necessary method was not used for the "Agamemnon," except in the completion of her crew from the guard-ship. They relied on the usual tactics of the recruiting sergeant and on Nelson's popularity in the nearby counties of Suffolk and Norfolk, which provided most of his ship's crew. "I have sent out a lieutenant and four midshipmen," he wrote to Locker, "to recruit men at every seaport in Norfolk and send them to Lynn and Yarmouth; my contacts in Yorkshire and the North assure me they will send any men they can find;" but at the same time, he hopes Locker, who was the Commander-in-chief at the Nore, will not turn away anyone from other areas who may come forward for the "Agamemnon." Having most of the crew from the same area created a sense of unity among them, which appealed to local pride, a powerful motivator in tough times; and this feeling was strengthened by the knowledge that their captain was also from Norfolk. For someone like Nelson, who easily empathized and connected with his crew's feelings, it was simple to unite those individuals driven by this shared sentiment into a cohesive whole.
His stepson, Josiah Nisbet, at this time about thirteen years old, now entered the service as a midshipman, and accompanied him on board the "Agamemnon." The oncoming of a great war naturally roused to a yet higher pitch the impulse towards the sea, which in all generations has stirred the blood of English boys. Of these, Nelson, using his captain's privilege, received a number as midshipmen upon his quarter-deck, among them several from the sons of neighbors and friends, and therefore, like the crew, Norfolk lads. It is told that to one, whose father he knew to be a strong Whig, of the party which in the past few years had sympathized with the general current of the French Revolution, he gave the following pithy counsels for his guidance in professional life: "First, you must always implicitly obey orders, without attempting to form any opinion of your own respecting their propriety; secondly, you must consider every man as your enemy who speaks ill of your king; and thirdly, you must hate a Frenchman as you do the devil." On the last two items Nelson's practice was in full accord with his precept; but to the first, his statement of which, sound enough in the general, is open to criticism as being too absolute, he was certainly not obedient. Not to form an opinion is pushing the principle of subordination to an indefensible extreme, even for a junior officer, though the caution not to express it is wise, as well as becoming to the modesty of youth. Lord Howe's advice to Codrington, to watch carefully all that passed and to form his own conclusions, but to keep them to himself, was in every respect more reasonable and profitable. But in fact this dictum of Nelson's was simply another instance of hating the French as he did the devil. The French were pushing independence and private judgment to one extreme, and he instinctively adopted the other.
His stepson, Josiah Nisbet, who was about thirteen at this time, joined the crew as a midshipman and went aboard the "Agamemnon" with him. The threat of a major war naturally heightened the longstanding desire of English boys to go to sea. Nelson, using his authority as captain, took on several midshipmen on his quarter-deck, including some sons of neighbors and friends from Norfolk. It's said that to one midshipman, whose father was a known supporter of the Whig party—aligned with the beliefs of the recent French Revolution—Nelson offered some straightforward advice for his career: "First, always obey orders without questioning their appropriateness; second, view anyone who speaks badly about your king as your enemy; and third, hate a Frenchman as you would the devil." Nelson's actions matched his advice on the last two points, but he certainly didn’t adhere strictly to the first. Suggesting that one shouldn’t form an opinion is taking the principle of obedience too far, even for a junior officer, although keeping those opinions to oneself is a wise and humble approach for youth. Lord Howe’s guidance to Codrington— to carefully observe everything and draw personal conclusions while keeping them private—was much more sensible and beneficial. In truth, Nelson's words were just another example of his strong dislike for the French, whom he viewed as promoting independence and free thinking to an extreme. He instinctively rejected those views entirely.
It was not till near the end of April that the "Agamemnon" finally left the Thames, anchoring at Spithead on the 28th of that month. Still the fleet which Lord Hood was to command was not ready. While awaiting her consorts, the ship made a short cruise in the Channel, and a few days later sailed as one of a division of five ships-of-the-line under Admiral Hotham, to occupy a station fifty to a hundred miles west of the Channel Islands. Nelson's disposition not to form any opinion of his own respecting the propriety of orders was thus evidenced: "What we have been sent out for is best known to the great folks in London: to us, it appears, only to hum the nation and make tools of us, for where we have been stationed no enemy was likely to be met with, or where we could protect our own trade." There can be no doubt that not only was the practical management of the Navy at this time exceedingly bad, but that no sound ideas even prevailed upon the subject. Hotham's squadron gained from neutral vessels two important pieces of information,—that Nantes, Bordeaux, and L'Orient were filled with English vessels, prizes to French cruisers; and that the enemy kept eight sail-of-the-line, with frigates in proportion, constantly moving in detachments about the Bay of Biscay. Under the dispositions adopted by the British Admiralty, these hostile divisions gave, to the commerce destroying of the smaller depredators, a support that sufficiently accounts for the notorious sufferings of British trade during the opening years of the war. Nelson had no mastery of the terminology of warfare,—he never talked about strategy and little about tactics,—but, though without those valuable aids to precision of thought, he had pondered, studied, and reasoned, and he had, besides, what is given to few,—real genius and insight. Accordingly he at once pierced to the root of the trouble,—the enemy's squadrons, rather than the petty cruisers dependent upon them, to which the damage was commonly attributed. "They are always at sea, and England not willing to send a squadron to interrupt them." But, while instancing this intuitive perception of a man gifted with rare penetration, it is necessary to guard against rash conclusions that might be drawn from it, and to remark that it by no means follows that education is unnecessary to the common run of men, because a genius is in advance of his times. It is well also to note that even in him this flash of insight, though unerring in its indications, lacked the definiteness of conviction which results from ordered thought. However accurate, it is but a glimmer,—not yet a fixed light.
It wasn't until late April that the "Agamemnon" finally left the Thames, anchoring at Spithead on the 28th of that month. However, the fleet that Lord Hood was supposed to command still wasn't ready. While waiting for the other ships, the vessel took a short cruise in the Channel and a few days later set sail as part of a division of five ships-of-the-line under Admiral Hotham to take up a position fifty to a hundred miles west of the Channel Islands. Nelson showed his reluctance to form any personal opinion about the appropriateness of orders with the remark: "What we’ve been sent out for is better known to the important people in London: it seems like they're just using us to humiliate the nation and make us tools, since there was no enemy where we were stationed, nor could we protect our own trade." There's no doubt that the practical management of the Navy at this time was extremely poor, and that there were no solid ideas regarding the issue. Hotham's squadron obtained two crucial pieces of information from neutral vessels: that Nantes, Bordeaux, and L'Orient were crowded with English ships, which were prizes for French cruisers; and that the enemy maintained eight sail-of-the-line, with a corresponding number of frigates, constantly moving in detachments around the Bay of Biscay. Under the strategies adopted by the British Admiralty, these hostile divisions gave the smaller raiders the support they needed, which explains the severe hardships faced by British trade in the early years of the war. Nelson didn't have a firm grasp of military terminology—he rarely discussed strategy and talked little about tactics—but despite lacking these helpful tools for clear thinking, he had thought deeply, studied, and reasoned, plus he had something that few possess—real genius and insight. As a result, he quickly understood the core of the problem—the enemy's squadrons, rather than the smaller cruisers that relied on them, which was where the damage was usually blamed. "They’re always at sea, and England isn’t willing to send a squadron to stop them." However, while highlighting this intuitive insight of a man with exceptional perception, it’s important to be cautious about jumping to conclusions and to note that it doesn’t mean education isn’t necessary for the average person just because a genius is ahead of their time. It's also worth mentioning that even in him, this moment of insight, although reliable in its indications, lacked the certainty of conviction that comes from structured thought. While it was accurate, it was just a flicker—not yet a steady light.
Hotham's division joined the main body under Lord Hood, off the Scilly Islands, on the 23d of May, the total force then consisting of eleven sail-of-the-line, with the usual smaller vessels. It remained cruising in that neighborhood until the 6th of June, keeping the approaches of the Channel open for a homeward-bound convoy of merchantmen, which passed on that day. The fleet then bore up for the Straits, and on the 14th six ships, the "Agamemnon" among them, parted company for Cadiz, there to fill up with water, in order to avoid the delays which would arise if the scanty resources of Gibraltar had to supply all the vessels. On the 23d this division left Cadiz, reaching Gibraltar the same evening; and on the 27th Hood, having now with him fifteen of the line, sailed for Toulon.
Hotham's division joined the main fleet led by Lord Hood near the Scilly Islands on May 23rd, making a total of eleven battleships along with the usual smaller vessels. They stayed in that area until June 6th, keeping the Channel open for a convoy of merchant ships returning home, which passed that day. The fleet then headed for the Straits, and on the 14th, six ships, including the "Agamemnon," separated to go to Cadiz to refill their water supply, avoiding delays that would come from relying solely on the limited resources of Gibraltar. On the 23rd, this division left Cadiz and arrived in Gibraltar that evening; then on the 27th, Hood, now with fifteen battleships, set sail for Toulon.
Nelson's mind was already busy with the prospects of the campaign, and the various naval factors that went to make up the military situation. "Time must discover what we are going after," he writes to his brother; while to Locker he propounds the problem which always has perplexed the British mind, and still does,—how to make the French fight, if they are unwilling. So long as that question remains unsolved, the British government has to bear the uncertainties, exposure, and expense of a difficult and protracted defensive. "We have done nothing," he says, "and the same prospect appears before us: the French cannot come out, and we have no means of getting at them in Toulon." In "cannot come out," he alludes to the presence of a Spanish fleet of twenty-four ships-of-the-line. This, in conjunction with Hood's force, would far exceed the French in Toulon, which the highest estimate then placed at twenty-one of the line. He had, however, already measured the capabilities of the Spanish Navy. They have very fine ships, he admits, but they are shockingly manned,—so much so that if only the barges' crews of the six British vessels that entered Cadiz, numbering at the most seventy-five to a hundred men, but all picked, could have got on board one of their first-rates, he was certain they could have captured her, although her ship's company numbered nearly a thousand. "If those we are to meet in the Mediterranean are no better manned," he continues, "much service cannot be expected of them." The prediction proved true, for no sooner did Hood find the Spanish admiral than the latter informed him he must go to Cartagena, having nineteen hundred sick in his fleet. The officer who brought this message said it was no wonder they were sickly, for they had been sixty days at sea. This excited Nelson's derision—not unjustly. "From the circumstance of having been longer than that time at sea, do we attribute our getting healthy. It has stamped with me the extent of their nautical abilities: long may they remain in their present state." The last sentence reveals his intuitive appreciation of the fact that the Spain of that day could in no true sense be the ally of Great Britain; for, at the moment he penned the wish, the impotence or defection of their allies would leave the British fleet actually inferior to the enemy in those waters. He never forgot these impressions, nor the bungling efforts of the Spaniards to form a line of battle. Up to the end of his life the prospect of a Spanish war involved no military anxieties, but only the prospect of more prize money.
Nelson was already thinking about the upcoming campaign and all the naval elements that were part of the military situation. “Time will reveal what we’re after,” he wrote to his brother; meanwhile, he posed a question to Locker that has long puzzled the British mind, and still does—how to make the French fight if they don't want to. As long as that question remains unanswered, the British government has to deal with the uncertainties, risks, and costs of a tough and extended defense. “We haven’t done anything,” he said, “and the same situation is in front of us: the French can't come out, and we have no way to reach them in Toulon.” When he says “can’t come out,” he’s referring to a Spanish fleet of twenty-four ships-of-the-line. This, combined with Hood’s force, would far surpass the French in Toulon, which at the time was estimated at twenty-one ships. However, he had already assessed the capabilities of the Spanish Navy. He acknowledged that they have very nice ships, but their crews are poorly trained—so much so that if even the crew from the six British boats that entered Cadiz, which numbered at most seventy-five to a hundred men, and all of them handpicked, could get on board one of their first-rates, he was sure they could capture it, even though she had almost a thousand men on board. “If those we’re going to meet in the Mediterranean are no better crewed,” he continued, “we can't expect much from them.” His prediction proved accurate, as soon as Hood encountered the Spanish admiral, the admiral told him he had to go to Cartagena because he had nineteen hundred sick in his fleet. The officer delivering this message remarked that it was no surprise they were so sickly since they had spent sixty days at sea. This made Nelson scoff—not without reason. “Having been at sea longer than that time is what we attribute our good health to. It shows me the limits of their naval skills: may they stay as they are.” The last sentence reveals his instinctive understanding that Spain could not truly be an ally of Great Britain; at the moment he wrote those words, the weakness or betrayal of their allies would leave the British fleet actually outnumbered by the enemy in those waters. He never forgot these impressions or the clumsy attempts of the Spaniards to form a battle line. Throughout his life, the prospect of a war with Spain brought him no military worries, only the possibility of more prize money.
Among the various rumors of that troubled time, there came one that the French were fitting their ships with forges to bring their shot to a red heat, and so set fire to the enemy's vessel in which they might lodge. Nelson was promptly ready with a counter and quite adequate tactical move. "This, if true," he wrote, "I humbly conceive would have been as well kept secret; but as it is known, we must take care to get so close that their red shots may go through both sides, when it will not matter whether they are hot or cold." It is somewhat odd that the extremely diligent and painstaking Sir Harris Nicolas, in his version of this letter, should have dropped the concluding sentence, one of the most important and characteristic occurring in Nelson's correspondence at this time.
Among the various rumors of that troubled time, there came one that the French were equipping their ships with forges to heat their cannonballs red hot, intending to set fire to enemy vessels when they could board them. Nelson was quickly prepared with a counter and a solid tactical move. "If this is true," he wrote, "I honestly believe it would have been better kept a secret; but since it’s known, we must make sure to get so close that their red-hot shots can go through both sides, at which point it won’t make a difference if they are hot or cold." It’s somewhat strange that the very diligent and meticulous Sir Harris Nicolas, in his version of this letter, should have omitted the final sentence, which is one of the most significant and distinctive in Nelson's correspondence during this period.
On the 14th of July Nelson notes that the fleet had received orders to consider Marseilles and Toulon as invested, and to take all vessels of whatever nation bound into those ports. He at once recognized the importance of this step, and the accurate judgment that dictated it. The British could not, as he said, get at the enemy in his fortified harbor; but they might by this means exercise the pressure that would force him to come out. Undoubtedly, whether on a large or on a small scale, whether it concern the whole plan of a war or of a campaign, or merely the question of a single military position, the best way to compel an unwilling foe to action, and to spoil his waiting game which is so onerous to the would-be assailant, is to attack him elsewhere, to cut short his resources, and make his position untenable by exhaustion. "This has pleased us," Nelson wrote; "if we make these red-hot gentlemen hungry, they may be induced to come out."
On July 14th, Nelson noted that the fleet had received orders to treat Marseilles and Toulon as under siege and to seize all ships of any nation headed to those ports. He immediately recognized how crucial this move was and the clear thinking behind it. The British couldn't attack the enemy in his fortified harbor, as he said, but they could apply pressure that would force him to come out. Without a doubt, whether on a large scale or a small one, whether it concerns the overall strategy of a war or a single military position, the best way to compel an unwilling enemy to act and disrupt his waiting game— which is so burdensome for the attacker—is to strike him elsewhere, to cut off his resources, and to make his position impossible through fatigue. "This has pleased us," Nelson wrote; "if we make these hotheaded gentlemen hungry, they may be tempted to come out."
The investment by sea of these two harbors, but especially of Toulon, as being an important dockyard, was accordingly the opening move made by the British admiral. On the 16th of July he approached the latter port, and from that time until August 25 a close blockade was maintained, with the exception of a very few days, during which Hood took the fleet off Nice, and thence to Genoa, to remonstrate with that republic upon its supplying the south of France with grain, and bringing back French property under neutral papers. "Our being here is a farce if this trade is allowed," said Nelson, and rightly; for so far as appearances then went, the only influence the British squadrons could exert was by curtailing the supplies of southern France. That district raised only grain enough for three months' consumption; for the remainder of the year's food it depended almost wholly upon Sicily and Barbary, its communications with the interior being so bad that the more abundant fields of distant French provinces could not send their surplus.
The British admiral's initial move was to invest the two harbors, particularly Toulon, which was a key dockyard. On July 16, he approached Toulon, and from then until August 25, a tight blockade was enforced, except for a few days when Hood took the fleet away from Nice and then to Genoa to protest to that republic about its supply of grain to southern France and the return of French property under neutral papers. "It's a joke that we're here if this trade continues," Nelson said, and he was right; because, as it stood, the British squadrons' only real impact was reducing the supplies to southern France. That area only produced enough grain for three months' worth of consumption, relying almost entirely on Sicily and Barbary for the rest of the year's food, as its connections to the interior were so poor that the more plentiful fields in distant French provinces couldn't send their excess.
In the chaotic state in which France was then plunged, the utmost uncertainty prevailed as to the course events might take, and rumors of all descriptions were current, the wildest scarcely exceeding in improbability the fantastic horrors that actually prevailed throughout the land during these opening days of the Reign of Terror. The expectation that found most favor in the fleet was that Provence would separate from the rest of France, and proclaim itself an independent republic under the protection of Great Britain; but few looked for the amazing result which shortly followed, in the delivery of Toulon by its citizens into the hands of Lord Hood. This Nelson attributed purely to the suffering caused by the strictness of the blockade. "At Marseilles and Toulon," wrote he on the 20th of August, "they are almost starving, yet nothing brings them to their senses. Although the Convention has denounced them as traitors, yet even these people will not declare for anything but Liberty and Equality." Three days later, Commissioners from both cities went on board Hood's flagship to treat for peace, upon the basis of re-establishing the monarchy, and recognizing as king the son of Louis XVI. The admiral accepted the proposal, on condition that the port and arsenal of Toulon should be delivered to him for safe keeping, until the restoration of the young prince was effected. On the 27th of August the city ran up the white flag of the Bourbons, and the British fleet, together with the Spanish, which at this moment arrived on the scene, anchored in the outer port. The allied troops took possession of the forts commanding the harbor, while the dockyards and thirty ships-of-the-line were delivered to the navies.
In the chaotic state that France was in at the time, there was a lot of uncertainty about what might happen next, and all sorts of rumors were circulating, with some being so outrageous that they barely exceeded the bizarre horrors that were actually taking place throughout the country during these early days of the Reign of Terror. The most popular expectation among the fleet was that Provence would break away from the rest of France and declare itself an independent republic under the protection of Great Britain; however, very few anticipated the surprising outcome that soon followed, with the citizens of Toulon delivering the city into the hands of Lord Hood. Nelson attributed this solely to the suffering caused by the strict blockade. "In Marseilles and Toulon," he wrote on August 20th, "they are nearly starving, yet nothing can bring them to their senses. Even though the Convention has labeled them as traitors, these people refuse to support anything but Liberty and Equality." Three days later, commissioners from both cities boarded Hood's flagship to negotiate peace, with the proposal to restore the monarchy and recognize the son of Louis XVI as king. The admiral accepted their offer on the condition that the port and arsenal of Toulon would be handed over to him for safekeeping until the young prince's restoration could be achieved. On August 27th, the city raised the white flag of the Bourbons, and the British fleet, along with the Spanish ships that had just arrived, anchored in the outer port. The allied troops took control of the forts overlooking the harbor, while the dockyards and thirty ships-of-the-line were handed over to the navies.
"The perseverance of our fleet has been great," wrote Nelson, "and to that only can be attributed our unexampled success. Not even a boat could get into Marseilles or Toulon, or on the coast, with provisions; and the old saying, 'that hunger will tame a lion,' was never more strongly exemplified." In this he deceived himself, however natural the illusion. The opposition of Toulon to the Paris Government was part of a general movement of revolt, which spread throughout the provinces in May and June, 1793, upon the violent overthrow of the Girondists in the National Convention. The latter then proclaimed several cities outlawed, Toulon among them; and the bloody severities it exercised were the chief determining cause of the sudden treason, the offspring of fear more than of hunger,—though the latter doubtless contributed,—which precipitated the great southern arsenal into the arms of the Republic's most dangerous foe. Marseilles fell before the Conventional troops, and the resultant panic in the sister city occasioned the hasty step, which in less troubled moments would have been regarded with just horror. But in truth Nelson, despite his acute military perceptions, had not yet developed that keen political sagacity, the fruit of riper judgment grounded on wider information, which he afterwards showed. His ambition was yet limited to the sphere of the "Agamemnon," his horizon bounded by the petty round of the day's events. He rose, as yet, to no apprehension of the mighty crisis hanging over Europe, to no appreciation of the profound meanings of the opening strife. "I hardly think the War can last," he writes to his wife, "for what are we at war about?" and again, "I think we shall be in England in the winter or spring." Even some months later, in December, before Toulon had reverted to the French, he is completely blind to the importance of the Mediterranean in the great struggle, and expresses a wish to exchange to the West Indies, "for I think our Sea War is over in these seas."
"The determination of our fleet has been impressive," wrote Nelson, "and that’s the only reason for our unparalleled success. Not a single boat could make it to Marseilles or Toulon, or along the coast, with supplies; and the old saying, 'hunger will tame a lion,' has never been more clearly illustrated." In this, he was mistaken, despite how natural this belief was. The rebellion in Toulon against the Paris Government was part of a broader uprising that spread across the provinces in May and June 1793, following the violent overthrow of the Girondists in the National Convention. The Convention then declared several cities, including Toulon, as outlaws; and the brutal actions it took were the main reason for the sudden betrayal, driven more by fear than hunger—though hunger certainly played a role—which led the major southern arsenal to ally with the Republic’s most dangerous enemy. Marseilles fell to the Convention’s troops, and the resulting panic in the city prompted a rash decision that would have been met with horror in calmer times. Yet, in truth, Nelson, despite his sharp military insight, had not yet developed the political acumen that comes from greater experience and broader knowledge, which he later demonstrated. His ambitions were still confined to the realm of the "Agamemnon," with his perspective limited to the small cycle of daily events. He had yet to grasp the significant crisis looming over Europe or to understand the deeper implications of the conflict unfolding. "I don’t think the War can last," he writes to his wife, "because what are we even fighting about?" and again, "I believe we’ll be back in England by winter or spring." Even months later, in December, before Toulon had returned to French control, he was entirely unaware of the Mediterranean's significance in the broader conflict, expressing a desire to transfer to the West Indies, "because I think our sea war here is over."
It is probable, indeed, that in his zeal, thoroughness, and fidelity to the least of the duties then falling to him, is to be seen a surer indication of his great future than in any wider speculations about matters as yet too high for his position. The recent coolness between him and Lord Hood had been rapidly disappearing under the admiral's reviving appreciation and his own aptitude to conciliation. "Lord Hood is very civil," he writes on more than one occasion, "I think we may be good friends again;" and the offer of a seventy-four-gun ship in place of his smaller vessel was further proof of his superior's confidence. Nelson refused the proposal. "I cannot give up my officers," he said, in the spirit that so endeared him to his followers; but the compliment was felt, and was enhanced by the admiral's approval of his motives. The prospective occupation of Toulon gave occasion for a yet more nattering evidence of the esteem in which he was held. As soon as the agreement with the city was completed, but the day before taking possession, Hood despatched him in haste to Oneglia, a small port on the Riviera of Genoa, and thence to Naples, to seek from the latter court and that of Turin[18] a reinforcement of ten thousand troops to hold the new acquisition. The "Agamemnon" being a fast sailer undoubtedly contributed much to this selection; but the character of the commanding officer could not but be considered on so important, and in some ways delicate, a mission. "I should have liked to have stayed one day longer with the fleet, when they entered the harbour," he wrote to Mrs. Nelson, "but service could not be neglected for any private gratification,"—a sentiment she had to hear pretty often, as betrothed and as wife, but which was no platitude on the lips of one who gave it constant demonstration in his acts. "Duty is the great business of a sea officer," he told his intended bride in early manhood, to comfort her and himself under a prolonged separation. "Thank God! I have done my duty," was the spoken thought that most solaced his death hour, as his heart yearned towards those at home whom he should see no more.
It’s likely that his dedication, thoroughness, and commitment to even the smallest duties were a stronger sign of his promising future than any broad theories about things that were beyond his current position. The recent tension between him and Lord Hood was quickly fading thanks to the admiral’s renewed appreciation and his own skill in reconciliation. "Lord Hood is being very civil," he wrote on several occasions, "I think we can be friends again," and the offer of a seventy-four-gun ship instead of his smaller vessel further showed his superior’s trust in him. Nelson turned down the proposal. "I can’t give up my officers," he said, with the spirit that endeared him to his followers, but the compliment was appreciated and was bolstered by the admiral's approval of his intentions. The potential occupation of Toulon provided an even more flattering sign of the respect he received. As soon as the agreement with the city was finalized, but the day before taking control, Hood quickly sent him to Oneglia, a small port on the Riviera of Genoa, and then to Naples, to seek a reinforcement of ten thousand troops from both the Neapolitan and Turin courts to secure the new territory. The "Agamemnon," being a fast ship, definitely played a role in this choice, but the character of the commanding officer was also essential for such an important, and in some ways sensitive, mission. "I would have liked to stay one more day with the fleet when they entered the harbor," he wrote to Mrs. Nelson, "but duty couldn’t be neglected for any personal enjoyment,"—a sentiment she heard quite often, both as his fiancée and as his wife, but it wasn’t just empty words from someone who consistently proved it through his actions. "Duty is the main focus of a naval officer," he told his future bride in his youth to comfort both her and himself during a long separation. "Thank God! I have done my duty," were the thoughts that most comforted him in his final moments, as he longed for those at home he would never see again.
About this time he must have felt some touch of sympathy for the effeminate Spaniards, who were made ill by a sixty days' cruise. "All we get here," he writes, "is honour and salt beef. My poor fellows have not had a morsel of fresh meat or vegetables for near nineteen weeks; and in that time I have only had my foot twice on shore at Cadiz. We are absolutely getting sick from fatigue." "I am here [Naples] with news of our most glorious and great success, but, alas! the fatigue of getting it has been so great that the fleet generally, and I am sorry to say, my ship most so, are knocked up. Day after day, week after week, month after month, we have not been two gun shots from Toulon." The evident looseness of this statement, for the ship had only been a little over a month off Toulon, shows the impression the service had made upon his mind, for he was not prone to such exaggerations. "It is hardly possible," he says again, "to conceive the state of my ship; I have little less than one hundred sick." This condition of things is an eloquent testimony to the hardships endured; for Nelson was singularly successful, both before and after these days, in maintaining the health of a ship's company. His biographers say that during the term of three years that he commanded the "Boreas" in the West Indies, not a single officer or man died out of her whole complement,—an achievement almost incredible in that sickly climate;[19] and he himself records that in his two months' chase of Villeneuve, in 1805, no death from sickness occurred among the seven or eight thousand persons in the fleet. He attributed these remarkable results to his attention, not merely to the physical surroundings of the crews, but also to the constant mental stimulus and interest, which he aroused by providing the seamen with occupation, frequent amusements, and change of scene, thus keeping the various faculties in continual play, and avoiding the monotony which most saps health, through its deadening influence on the mind and spirits.
About this time, he must have felt some sympathy for the delicate Spaniards, who were made sick by a sixty-day cruise. "All we get here," he writes, "is honor and salt beef. My poor guys haven't had a bite of fresh meat or vegetables for nearly nineteen weeks; and in that time, I've only had my foot on land twice in Cadiz. We are absolutely getting sick from exhaustion." "I am here [Naples] with news of our glorious and great success, but, unfortunately, the fatigue of achieving it has been so great that the fleet in general, and I'm sorry to say, my ship most of all, are completely worn out. Day after day, week after week, month after month, we haven't been two cannon shots away from Toulon." The clear looseness of this statement, since the ship had only been a little over a month off Toulon, shows the impression that the service had made on his mind, as he was not prone to such exaggerations. "It's hard to conceive the state of my ship," he says again, "I have nearly a hundred sick." This situation is a powerful testament to the hardships endured; for Nelson was particularly successful both before and after these days in maintaining the health of a ship's crew. His biographers say that during the three years he commanded the "Boreas" in the West Indies, not a single officer or man died out of her entire complement—an achievement that's almost unbelievable in that unhealthy climate; [19] and he himself noted that during his two-month chase of Villeneuve in 1805, there were no deaths from sickness among the seven or eight thousand people in the fleet. He attributed these remarkable results to his focus, not only on the physical environment of the crews but also on the constant mental stimulation and interest he created by giving the sailors tasks, frequent entertainment, and changes of scenery, thus keeping their minds engaged and avoiding the monotony that often drains health through its dulling effect on the mind and spirit.
The "Agamemnon" reached Naples on the 12th of September, and remained there four days. Nelson pressed the matter of reinforcements with such diligence, and was so heartily sustained by the British minister, Sir William Hamilton, that he obtained the promise of six thousand troops to sail at once under the convoy of the "Agamemnon." "I have acted for Lord Hood," he wrote, "with a zeal which no one could exceed;" and a few weeks later he says: "The Lord is very much pleased with my conduct about the troops at Naples, which I undertook without any authority whatever from him; and they arrived at Toulon before his requisition reached Naples." It appears, therefore, that his orders were rather those of a despatch-bearer than of a negotiator; but that he, with the quick initiative he always displayed, took upon himself diplomatic action, to further the known wishes of his superior and the common cause of England and Naples. It was upon this occasion that Nelson first met Lady Hamilton, who exercised so marked an influence over his later life; but, though she was still in the prime of her singular loveliness, being yet under thirty, not a ripple stirred the surface of his soul, afterward so powerfully perturbed by this fascinating woman. "Lady Hamilton," he writes to his wife, "has been wonderfully kind and good to Josiah [his stepson]. She is a young woman of amiable manners, and who does honour to the station to which she is raised." His mind was then too full of what was to be done; not as after the Nile, when, unstrung by reaction from the exhausting emotions of the past months, it was for the moment empty of aspiration and cloyed with flattery only.
The "Agamemnon" arrived in Naples on September 12 and stayed for four days. Nelson pushed hard for reinforcements and received strong support from the British minister, Sir William Hamilton, which led to the promise of six thousand troops to set sail immediately under the escort of the "Agamemnon." "I have acted for Lord Hood," he wrote, "with a zeal that no one could match;" and a few weeks later he said, "The Lord is very pleased with my handling of the troops in Naples, which I took on without any official permission from him; and they reached Toulon before his request arrived in Naples." It seems his orders were more about delivering messages than negotiating, but he took the initiative as he always did, stepping into a diplomatic role to further the goals of his superior and the shared interests of England and Naples. It was during this time that Nelson first met Lady Hamilton, who would later have a significant influence on his life; however, even though she was still in the prime of her beauty, being under thirty, it didn't seem to affect him at the time. "Lady Hamilton," he wrote to his wife, "has been wonderfully kind and good to Josiah [his stepson]. She is a young woman with pleasant manners, and she truly honors her position." His mind was too focused on the tasks at hand, unlike after the Nile, when he was emotionally drained from the intense experiences of the previous months and felt empty of ambition and overwhelmed by flattery.
The prospect of sailing with the convoy of troops, as well as of a few days' repose for the wearied ship's company, was cut short by the news that a French ship of war, with some merchant vessels in convoy, had anchored on the Sardinian coast. Although there were at Naples several Neapolitan naval vessels, and one Spaniard, none of them moved; and as the Prime Minister sent the information to Nelson, he felt bound to go, though but four days in port. "Unfit as my ship was, I had nothing left for the honour of our country but to sail, which I did in two hours afterwards. It was necessary to show them what an English man-of-war would do." The expected enemy was not found, and, after stretching along the coast in a vain search, the "Agamemnon" put into Leghorn on the 25th of September, nine days after leaving Naples,—to "absolutely save my poor fellows," wrote her captain to his brother. But even so, he purposed staying at his new anchorage but three days, "for I cannot bear the thought of being absent from the scene of action" at Toulon. In the same letter he mentions that since the 23d of April—five months—the ship had been at anchor only twenty days.
The chance to sail with the troop convoy and enjoy a few days of rest for the tired crew was abruptly interrupted by the news that a French warship, along with some merchant ships, had docked on the Sardinian coast. Even though there were several Neapolitan naval vessels and one Spanish ship in Naples, none of them took action. When the Prime Minister sent the information to Nelson, he felt he had to respond, even after just four days in port. "As unfit as my ship was, I had no choice but to sail for the honor of our country, which I did two hours later. It was important to show them what an English warship could do." They did not encounter the expected enemy, and after a fruitless search along the coast, the "Agamemnon" arrived in Leghorn on September 25th, nine days after leaving Naples, to "absolutely save my poor fellows," the captain wrote to his brother. Despite this, he intended to stay at his new anchorage for only three days because "I cannot bear the thought of being away from the action" at Toulon. In the same letter, he noted that since April 23rd—five months ago—the ship had been anchored for only twenty days.
The unwavering resolution and prompt decision of his character thus crop out at every step. In Leghorn he found a large French frigate, which had been on the point of sailing when his ship came in sight. "I am obliged to keep close watch to take care he does not give me the slip, which he is inclined to do. I shall pursue him, and leave the two Courts [Great Britain and Tuscany] to settle the propriety of the measure, which I think will not be strictly regular. Have been up all night watching him—ready to cut the moment he did." The enemy, however, made no movement, and Nelson was not prepared to violate flagrantly the neutrality of the port. On the 30th of September he sailed, and on the 5th of October rejoined Lord Hood off Toulon, where four thousand of the Neapolitan troops, for which he had negotiated, had already arrived.
The steady determination and quick decision-making of his character are evident at every turn. In Leghorn, he came across a large French frigate that was just about to set sail when his ship came into view. "I have to keep a close eye on him to make sure he doesn’t slip away, which he seems to want to do. I’ll chase him and let the two governments [Great Britain and Tuscany] figure out if that's the right thing to do, even though I think it might not be entirely proper. I’ve been up all night watching him—ready to take action the moment he does." However, the enemy made no moves, and Nelson didn’t want to blatantly violate the port's neutrality. On September 30th, he set sail, and on October 5th, he rejoined Lord Hood off Toulon, where four thousand of the Neapolitan troops he had negotiated for had already arrived.
The high favor in which the admiral had held him ten years before in the West Indies, though slightly overcast by the coolness which arose during the intervening peace, had been rapidly regained in the course of the present campaign; and the customary report of his proceedings during the six weeks' absence could not but confirm Hood in the assurance that he had now to deal with a very exceptional character, especially fitted for separate and responsible service. Accordingly, from this time forward, such is the distinguishing feature of Nelson's career as a subordinate. He is selected from among many competitors, frequently his seniors, for the performance of duty outside the reach of the commander-in-chief, but requiring the attention of one upon whose activity, intelligence, and readiness, the fullest dependence could be placed. Up to the battle of the Nile,—in which, it must always be remembered, he commanded a squadron detached from the main fleet, and was assigned to it in deliberate preference to two older flag-officers,—Nelson's life presents a series of detached commands, independent as regarded the local scene of operations, and his method of attaining the prescribed end with the force allotted to him, but dependent, technically, upon the distant commanders-in-chief, each of whom in succession, with one accord, recognized his singular fitness. The pithy but characteristic expression said to have been used by Earl St. Vincent, when asked for instructions about the Copenhagen expedition,—"D—n it, Nelson, send them to the devil your own way,"—sums up accurately enough the confidence shown him by his superiors. He could not indeed lift them all to the height of his own conceptions, fearlessness, and enterprise; but when they had made up their minds to any particular course, they were, each and all, perfectly willing to intrust the execution to him. Even at Copenhagen he was but second in command, though conspicuously first in achievement. It was not till the opening of the second war of the French Revolution, in May, 1803, that he himself had supreme charge of a station,—his old familiar Mediterranean.
The high regard the admiral held for him ten years earlier in the West Indies, though slightly diminished by the coolness that arose during the peace that followed, was quickly renewed during the current campaign. The standard report of his activities during the six weeks' absence could only reinforce Hood's belief that he was dealing with an exceptionally capable individual, especially suited for independent and responsible duties. From this point on, this unique aspect of Nelson's career as a subordinate becomes clear. He was chosen from many competitors, often those senior to him, for tasks outside the direct oversight of the commander-in-chief, but requiring someone whose energy, intelligence, and readiness could be fully relied upon. Up until the battle of the Nile—in which, it’s important to note, he commanded a squadron detached from the main fleet, being deliberately selected over two older flag officers—Nelson's life is filled with a series of independent commands concerning the local operations and his approach to achieving the assigned goals with the resources given to him; however, he was technically dependent on the distant commanders-in-chief, each of whom, in turn, acknowledged his exceptional suitability. The succinct yet telling remark attributed to Earl St. Vincent, when asked for directions regarding the Copenhagen expedition—"D—n it, Nelson, send them to the devil your own way"—perfectly captures the confidence his superiors had in him. He couldn't quite elevate them to his level of daring, vision, and initiative, but once they decided on a specific plan, they were all entirely willing to entrust its execution to him. Even at Copenhagen, he was only second-in-command, although he clearly stood out in accomplishments. It wasn't until the start of the second war of the French Revolution in May 1803 that he had full command of a station—his well-known Mediterranean.
Being held in such esteem, it was but a short time before Nelson was again sent off from Toulon, to which he did not return during the British occupation. He was now ordered to report to Commodore Linzee, then lying with a detachment of three ships-of-the-line in the harbor of Cagliari, at the south end of Sardinia. On her passage the "Agamemnon" met and engaged a French squadron, of four large frigates and a brig. Though without decisive results, Nelson was satisfied with his own conduct in this affair, as was also Lord Hood when it came to his knowledge; for, one of the frigates being badly crippled, the whole force, which was on its way to Nice, was compelled to take refuge in Corsica, where it was far from secure. Two days later, on the 24th of October, Cagliari was reached, and the "Agamemnon" accompanied the division to Tunis, arriving there on the 1st of November.
Being held in such high regard, it wasn't long before Nelson was sent out again from Toulon, and he didn’t return during the British occupation. He was now ordered to report to Commodore Linzee, who was stationed with a detachment of three ships-of-the-line in the harbor of Cagliari, at the southern tip of Sardinia. On its way, the "Agamemnon" encountered and engaged a French squadron consisting of four large frigates and a brig. Although there were no decisive outcomes, Nelson was pleased with how he handled the situation, and so was Lord Hood when he learned of it; one of the frigates was severely damaged, forcing the entire force, which was heading to Nice, to seek refuge in Corsica, where it was not secure. Two days later, on October 24th, they reached Cagliari, and the "Agamemnon" accompanied the division to Tunis, arriving there on November 1st.
Linzee's mission was to try and detach the Bey from the French interest, and it was hoped he could be induced to allow the seizure of a number of French vessels which had entered the port, under the convoy of a ship-of-the-line and four frigates. When the British entered, the frigates had disappeared, being in fact the same that Nelson had fought ten days before. In accordance with his instructions, Linzee strove to persuade the Bey that the Republican government, because of its revolutionary and bloodthirsty character, should receive no recognition or support from more regular states, not even the protection usually extended by a neutral port, and that in consequence he should be permitted to seize for Great Britain the vessels in Tunis. The Turk may possibly have overlooked the fallacy in this argument, which assumed that the protection extended by neutral governments was rather for the benefit of the belligerent than for the quiet and safety of its own waters; but he was perfectly clear-sighted as to his personal advantage in the situation, for the French owners, in despair of getting to France, were selling their cargoes to him at one third their value. To the argument that the French had beheaded their king, he drily replied that the English had once done the same; and he decisively refused to allow the ships to be molested. Nelson was disgusted that his consent should have been awaited. "The English seldom get much by negotiation except the being laughed at, which we have been; and I don't like it. Had we taken, which in my opinion we ought to have done, the men-of-war and convoy, worth at least £300,000, how much better we could have negotiated:—given the Bey £50,000, he would have been glad to have put up with the insult offered to his dignity;" and he plainly intimates his dissatisfaction with Linzee. This irresponsible and irreflective outburst was, however, only an instance of the impatience his enterprising, energetic spirit always felt when debarred from prompt action, whether by good or bad reasons; for almost on the same day he expresses the sounder judgment: "Had we latterly attempted to take them I am sure the Bey would have declared against us, and done our trade some damage." No advantage could have accrued from the seizure of the French vessels, at all proportioned to the inconvenience of having the hostility of Tunis, flanking as it did the trade routes to the Levant. The British had then quite enough on their hands, without detaching an additional force from the north coast of the Mediterranean, to support a gratuitous quarrel on the south. As a matter of mere policy it would have been ill-judged.
Linzee's goal was to try to separate the Bey from French interests, and there was hope he could be persuaded to allow the seizure of several French ships that had entered the port, escorted by a battleship and four frigates. When the British arrived, the frigates had vanished; they were actually the same ones Nelson had battled ten days earlier. Following his orders, Linzee worked to convince the Bey that the Republican government, due to its revolutionary and violent nature, should not receive recognition or support from more stable nations, not even the protection usually granted by a neutral port. As a result, he argued that the Bey should permit the capture of the vessels in Tunis for Great Britain. The Turk may have missed the flaw in this reasoning, which assumed that neutral governments’ protection was mainly for the benefit of warring parties rather than for the peace and safety of their own waters; however, he was very clear about his personal advantage in this situation, as the French owners, desperate to return to France, were selling their goods to him for one third of their value. In response to the claim that the French had executed their king, he dryly pointed out that the English had done the same at one point. He firmly refused to allow any interference with the ships. Nelson was frustrated that his consent had been expected. "The English rarely gain anything from negotiation except being laughed at, which we have been; and I dislike it. If we had taken, which in my opinion we should have done, the warships and convoy worth at least £300,000, how much better we could have negotiated:—if we had given the Bey £50,000, he would have happily accepted the insult to his dignity;" and he clearly showed his dissatisfaction with Linzee. This impulsive and thoughtless outburst was just an example of the impatience his adventurous, energetic nature always felt when prevented from taking immediate action, whether for good or bad reasons; for almost on the same day he expressed a more reasonable view: "If we had recently attempted to take them, I am sure the Bey would have turned against us and caused some harm to our trade." No advantage would have been gained from seizing the French vessels that would measure up to the trouble of facing Tunisia's hostility, which affected the trade routes to the Levant. The British had quite enough on their plate without diverting an additional force from the north coast of the Mediterranean to support an unnecessary conflict in the south. From a purely strategic standpoint, it would have been a poor decision.
Nelson, however, did not as yet at all realize the wideness of the impending struggle, for it was in these very letters that he expressed a wish to exchange to the West Indies. "You know," he writes to his old friend Locker, "that Pole is gone to the West Indies. I have not seen him since his order, but I know it was a thing he dreaded. Had I been at Toulon I should have been a candidate for that service, for I think our sea war is over in these seas." Perhaps his intrinsic merit would have retrieved even such a mistake as we can now see this would have been, and he would there have come sooner into contact with Sir John Jervis—to whom, if to any one, the name of patron to Nelson may be applied—for Jervis then had the West India command; but it is difficult to imagine Nelson's career apart from the incidents of his Mediterranean service. The Mediterranean seems inseparable from his name, and he in the end felt himself identified with it beyond all other waters.
Nelson, however, didn't yet fully understand the magnitude of the upcoming conflict, as he mentioned in these very letters that he wanted to transfer to the West Indies. "You know," he writes to his old friend Locker, "that Pole has gone to the West Indies. I haven't seen him since he got his orders, but I know it was something he feared. If I had been at Toulon, I would have applied for that position because I believe our naval battles are over in these waters." Maybe his inherent talent could have made even such an error turn out well, and he would have come into contact with Sir John Jervis sooner—who, if anyone, embodies the title of Nelson's patron—since Jervis was in charge of the West Indies at that time. However, it's hard to picture Nelson's career without the events of his time in the Mediterranean. The Mediterranean seems forever linked to his name, and in the end, he felt more connected to it than to any other sea.
His longing for action, which prompted the desire for the West Indies, was quickly gratified, for orders were received from Hood, by Linzee, to detach him from the latter's command. The admiral sent him a very handsome letter upon his single-handed combat with the French frigates, and directed him to go to the north end of Corsica, to take charge of a division of vessels he would there find cruising, and to search for his late enemies along that coast and through the neighboring waters, between the island and the shores of Italy. He was also to warn off neutral vessels bound to Genoa, that port being declared blockaded, and to seize them if they persisted in their voyage thither. "I consider this command as a very high compliment," wrote Nelson to his uncle Suckling, "there being five older captains in the fleet." This it certainly was,—a compliment and a prophecy as well.
His eagerness for action, which fueled his desire for the West Indies, was quickly fulfilled, as orders arrived from Hood, communicated by Linzee, to remove him from the latter's command. The admiral sent him a very nice letter in recognition of his solo fight with the French frigates and instructed him to head to the north end of Corsica to take charge of a group of ships he would find there cruising, and to search for his recent adversaries along that coast and in the nearby waters between the island and the shores of Italy. He was also to turn away neutral ships heading to Genoa, as that port had been declared blockaded, and to seize them if they continued with their journey there. "I see this command as a great honor," Nelson wrote to his uncle Suckling, "as there are five senior captains in the fleet." This was indeed a recognition and a prediction as well.
In pursuance of these orders Nelson left Tunis on the 30th of November, and on the 8th of December discovered the French squadron, protected by shore batteries, in San Fiorenzo Bay, in Corsica. This island, which during the middle ages, and until some twenty years before the beginning of the French Revolution, was a dependency of Genoa, had then by the latter been ceded to France, against the express wishes of the inhabitants, whose resistance was crushed only after a prolonged struggle. Although it was now in open revolt against the Revolutionary government, the troops of the latter still held three or four of the principal seaports, among them the northern one in which the frigates then lay, as well as Bastia upon the east coast of the island, and Calvi on the west. His force being insufficient to engage the works of any of these places, there was nothing for Nelson to do but to blockade them, in hopes of exhausting their resources and at least preventing the escape of the ships of war. In this he was successful, for the latter either were destroyed or fell into the hands of Great Britain, when the ports were reduced.
In line with these orders, Nelson left Tunis on November 30th, and on December 8th, he spotted the French squadron, backed by shore batteries, in San Fiorenzo Bay, Corsica. This island, which had been under Genoa’s control during the Middle Ages and until about twenty years before the French Revolution, was ceded to France by Genoa against the clear wishes of the locals, whose resistance was ultimately subdued after a lengthy struggle. Although the island was now openly rebelling against the Revolutionary government, the troops still controlled three or four major seaports, including the northern one where the frigates were anchored, as well as Bastia on the east coast and Calvi on the west. Since his forces were not enough to attack any of these locations, Nelson had no choice but to impose a blockade, hoping to wear down their supplies and prevent the warships from escaping. He was successful in this effort, as the ships were either destroyed or captured by Great Britain when the ports were taken.
Meanwhile affairs at Toulon were approaching the crisis which ended its tenure by the British and their allies. The garrison had never been sufficient to man properly the very extensive lines, which the peculiar configuration of the surrounding country made it necessary to occupy for the security of the town; and the troops themselves were not only of different nations, but of very varying degrees of efficiency. Under these conditions the key of the position, accurately indicated by Napoleon Bonaparte, then a major and in command of the artillery, was held in insufficient force, and was successfully stormed on the night of December 16, 1793. It was immediately recognized that the ships could no longer remain in the harbor, and that with them the land forces also must depart. After two days of hurried preparations, and an attempt, only partially successful, to destroy the dockyard and French ships of war, the fleets sailed out on the 19th of December, carrying with them, besides the soldiery, as many as possible of the wretched citizens, who were forced to fly in confusion and misery from their homes, in order to escape the sure and fearful vengeance of the Republican government. The "Agamemnon" was in Leghorn, getting provisions, when the fugitives arrived there, and Nelson speaks in vivid terms of the impression made upon him by the tales he heard and the sights he saw. "Fathers are here without families, and families without fathers, the pictures of horror and despair." "In short, all is horror. I cannot write all: my mind is deeply impressed with grief. Each teller makes the scene more horrible." He expressed the opinion that the evacuation was a benefit to England, and it unquestionably was. He had not always thought so; but it must be allowed that the hopes and exultation with which he greeted the acquisition of the place had sufficient foundation, in the reported attitude of the people of Southern France, to justify the first opinion as well as the last. The attempt was worth making, though it proved unsuccessful. As it was, the occupation had resulted in a degree of destruction to the French ships and arsenal in Toulon, which, though then over-estimated, was a real gain to the allies.
Meanwhile, the situation in Toulon was reaching a crisis that would end British and allied control there. The garrison had never been large enough to effectively man the extensive lines necessary for the town's security due to the area's unique geography. The troops stationed there were not only from different nations but also had varying levels of efficiency. Because of this, the key position, identified by Napoleon Bonaparte—then a major in command of the artillery—was held with insufficient forces and was successfully attacked on the night of December 16, 1793. It quickly became clear that the ships could no longer stay in the harbor, and that the land forces would have to leave as well. After two days of rushed preparations, and a partially successful attempt to destroy the dockyard and French warships, the fleets set sail on December 19, taking with them as many distressed citizens as possible who had to flee in confusion and despair to avoid the sure and severe retribution of the Republican government. The "Agamemnon" was in Leghorn resupplying when the refugees arrived, and Nelson vividly described the impact of their stories and the sights he witnessed. "Fathers are here without families, and families without fathers, the images of horror and despair." "In short, all is horror. I cannot write everything: my mind is weighed down with grief. Each storyteller makes the scene seem more dreadful." He believed that the evacuation was in England's best interest, and it undoubtedly was. He hadn't always felt that way; however, it must be acknowledged that his initial hopes and excitement about taking the place were well-founded based on the reported feelings of the people in Southern France, making both his first and last opinions valid. The effort was worth attempting, even though it did not succeed. Ultimately, the occupation caused a level of destruction to the French ships and arsenal in Toulon that, while initially exaggerated, was genuinely beneficial to the allies.
FOOTNOTES:
[19] This statement, which apparently depends upon a memoir supplied many years later by the first lieutenant of the "Boreas," is not strictly accurate, for Nelson himself, in a letter written shortly after her arrival in the West Indies, mentions that several of her ship's company had been carried off by fever (Nicolas, vol. i. p. 111); but it can doubtless be accepted as evidence of an unusually healthy condition.
[19] This statement, which seems to rely on a memoir provided many years later by the first lieutenant of the "Boreas," is not entirely accurate, because Nelson himself, in a letter written shortly after her arrival in the West Indies, mentions that several crew members had been taken by fever (Nicolas, vol. i. p. 111); however, it can certainly be accepted as evidence of an unusually healthy condition.
CHAPTER IV.
REDUCTION OF CORSICA BY THE BRITISH.—DEPARTURE OF LORD HOOD FOR ENGLAND.—THE "AGAMEMNON" REFITTED AT LEGHORN.
REDUCTION OF CORSICA BY THE BRITISH.—DEPARTURE OF LORD HOOD FOR ENGLAND.—THE "AGAMEMNON" REFITTED AT LEGHORN.
JANUARY-DECEMBER, 1794. AGE, 35.
JANUARY-DECEMBER, 1794. AGE 35.
By the loss of Toulon the British fleet in the Mediterranean was left adrift, without any secure harbor to serve as a depot for supplies and a base for extended operations. Hood took his ships to Hyères Bay, a few miles east of Toulon, a spot where they could lie safely at anchor, but which was unsuitable for a permanent establishment,—the shores not being tenable against French attack. He now turned his eyes upon Corsica, whence the celebrated native chieftain, Paoli, who had led the natives in their former struggle against France, had made overtures to him, looking to the union of the island to the British crown. Nelson in person, or, during his brief absence in Leghorn, his division, had so closely invested the shores, that neither troops nor supplies of any kind had been able to enter since the early part of December, nor had the blockaded vessels been able to get out. The thoroughness with which this work was done brought him, on the 6th of January, 1794, yet further compliments from Hood, who wrote him that "he looked upon these frigates as certain, trusting to my zeal and activity, and knows, if it is in the power of man to have them, I will secure them." At the same time he was instructed to enter into communication with Paoli, and settle plans for the landing of the troops. In attending to this commission his intermediary was Lieutenant George Andrews, brother to the lady to whom he had become attached at St. Omer, and who had afterwards been a midshipman with him on board the "Boreas." "This business going through my hands," he wrote with just pride, "is a proof of Lord Hood's confidence in me, and that I shall pledge myself for nothing but what will be acceptable to him." It was indeed evident that Hood was more and more reposing in him a peculiar trust, a feeling which beyond most others tends to increase by its own action. Nelson repaid him with the most unbounded admiration. "The Lord is very good friends with me," he writes; "he is certainly the best officer I ever saw. Everything from him is so clear it is impossible to misunderstand him." "His zeal, his activity for the honour and benefit of his country," he says at another time, "are not abated. Upwards of seventy, he possesses the mind of forty years of age. He has not a thought separated from honour and glory." The flattering proofs of his superior's esteem, and the demand made upon his natural powers to exert themselves freely, had a very beneficial effect upon his health and spirits. It was not effort, however protracted and severe, but the denial of opportunity to act, whether by being left unemployed or through want of information, that wore Nelson down. "I have not been one hour at anchor for pleasure in eight months; but I can assure you I never was better in health."
By losing Toulon, the British fleet in the Mediterranean found itself adrift, lacking a safe harbor to use as a supply depot and base for extended operations. Hood moved his ships to Hyères Bay, a few miles east of Toulon, a place where they could safely anchor, but which was not suitable for a permanent establishment since the shores couldn't withstand a French attack. He then set his sights on Corsica, where the well-known local leader, Paoli, who had previously led the locals in their fight against France, had reached out to him about uniting the island with the British crown. Nelson, or his division during his short absence in Leghorn, had effectively blockaded the shores so thoroughly that no troops or supplies could enter since early December, nor could the ships under blockade escape. The effectiveness of this operation earned him further praise from Hood on January 6, 1794, who wrote that "he considered these frigates as certain, trusting in my zeal and activity, and knows that if it is possible for me to secure them, I will." At the same time, he was instructed to communicate with Paoli to finalize plans for landing the troops. For this task, he worked with Lieutenant George Andrews, brother of the woman he had become attached to in St. Omer, who had formerly been a midshipman with him on the "Boreas." "This task coming through my hands," he wrote with pride, "is proof of Lord Hood's trust in me, and that I will only commit to what will be acceptable to him." It was clear that Hood was increasingly placing his trust in him, a feeling that tends to grow over time. Nelson responded with boundless admiration. "The Lord is very good friends with me," he wrote; "he is definitely the best officer I've ever seen. Everything he does is so clear that it's impossible to misunderstand him." "His zeal and activity for the honor and benefit of his country," he noted at another time, "are undiminished. Although over seventy, he has the mindset of a forty-year-old. He has no thoughts apart from honor and glory." The flattering signs of his superior's esteem, along with the expectation for him to utilize his natural talents fully, had a very positive impact on his health and spirits. It wasn't the effort, however intense and prolonged, but the lack of opportunity to act—whether from being left idle or from a lack of information—that wore Nelson down. "I haven't spent a single hour at anchor for pleasure in eight months; but I can assure you I have never been healthier."
Meanwhile a commission from the fleet arrived in Corsica. Sir Gilbert Elliot, the representative of the British government in the island, was at its head, and with him were associated two army officers, one of whom afterwards became widely celebrated as Sir John Moore. A satisfactory agreement being concluded, Hood sailed from Hyères Bay with the ships and troops, and operations began against San Fiorenzo, terminating in the evacuation of the place by the French, who upon the 19th of February retreated by land to Bastia. Nelson was not immediately connected with this undertaking; but he had the satisfaction of knowing that two of the four frigates, of whose detention in the island he was the immediate cause, were here lost to the enemy. He was during these weeks actively employed harrying the coast—destroying depots of stores on shore, and small vessels laden with supplies. These services were mainly, though not entirely, rendered in the neighborhood of Bastia, a strongly fortified town, which was to become the next object of the British efforts, and the scene of his own exertions. There, also, though on a comparatively small scale, he was to give striking evidence of the characteristics which led him on, step by step, to his great renown.
Meanwhile, a commission from the fleet arrived in Corsica. Sir Gilbert Elliot, the representative of the British government on the island, led the group, along with two army officers, one of whom later became famous as Sir John Moore. After reaching a satisfactory agreement, Hood sailed from Hyères Bay with the ships and troops, and operations began against San Fiorenzo, ending with the French evacuating the place, retreating to Bastia on February 19th. Nelson wasn't directly involved in this operation, but he found satisfaction in knowing that two of the four frigates, which he was responsible for keeping in the island, were lost to the enemy. During these weeks, he was actively involved in harassing the coast—destroying supply depots on land and small vessels carrying supplies. Most of these efforts took place near Bastia, a heavily fortified town that would become the next target of British operations and the scene of his own actions. There, albeit on a smaller scale, he would demonstrate the qualities that would eventually lead him to great fame.
When Hood himself took command at San Fiorenzo, he relieved Nelson from that part of his charge, and sent him on the 7th of February to blockade Bastia,—a strictly detached service, and one of the utmost importance, as upon the intercepting of supplies the issue of the siege largely turned. Three weeks later, on the 1st of March, Nelson wrote: "We are still in the busy scene of war, a situation in which I own I feel pleasure, more especially as my actions have given great satisfaction to my commander-in-chief. The blocking up of Corsica he left to me: it has been accomplished in the most complete manner, not a boat got in, nor a soldier landed, although eight thousand men were embarked at Nice;" and, he might have added, although a vessel was said to sail from Nice every thirty-six hours. Nor was his activity confined to blockading. He continually reconnoitered the town and the works, in doing which on the 23d of February he engaged the batteries at short range, with the "Agamemnon" and two frigates,—the action lasting for nearly two hours. While it was at its height, the heads of the British columns, coming from San Fiorenzo, only twelve miles distant by land, were seen upon the heights overlooking Bastia from the rear. "What a noble sight it must have been" to them! wrote Nelson enthusiastically, in the ardor of his now opening career,—for it must be remembered that this hero of a hundred fights was even then but beginning to taste that rapture of the strife, in which he always breathed most freely, as though in his native element.
When Hood took command at San Fiorenzo, he relieved Nelson of part of his duties and sent him on February 7 to blockade Bastia—this was a completely separate mission and extremely important, as intercepting supplies was key to the siege's outcome. Three weeks later, on March 1, Nelson wrote: "We are still in the thick of the war, and I have to admit I enjoy it, especially since my actions have pleased my commander-in-chief. He entrusted me with blocking Corsica, and I’ve done it thoroughly; not a single boat has gotten in, nor has a soldier been landed, despite eight thousand men being embarked at Nice." He could have also mentioned that a ship was said to leave Nice every thirty-six hours. Nelson's activity wasn’t limited to just blockading. He constantly surveyed the town and its defenses, and on February 23, he engaged the batteries up close with the "Agamemnon" and two frigates—the battle lasted nearly two hours. While this was happening, the British troops coming from San Fiorenzo, just twelve miles away by land, could be seen on the heights overlooking Bastia from the rear. "What a magnificent sight that must have been!" Nelson wrote enthusiastically, filled with excitement for his burgeoning career—it's important to note that this hero of many battles was only beginning to experience the thrill of conflict, which he always felt most alive in, as if it were his natural environment.
Bastia, as he saw it and reported to Lord Hood, was a walled town with central citadel, of some ten thousand inhabitants, on the east coast of Corsica, and twenty miles south of Cape Corso, the northern extremity of the island. The main fortifications were along the sea-front; but there was, besides, a series of detached works on either flank and to the rear. The latter not only guarded the approaches from the interior, but also, being situated on the hills, much above the town, were capable of commanding it, in case of an enemy gaining possession. Nelson, while modestly disclaiming any presumptuous dependence upon his own judgment, expressed a decided opinion, based upon the engagement of the 23d, that the "Agamemnon" and the frigates could silence the fire of the sea-front, batter down the walls, and that then five hundred troops could carry the place by assault. "That the works on the hills would annoy the town afterwards is certain, but the enemy being cut off from all supplies—the provisions in the town being of course in our possession—would think of nothing but making the best terms they could for themselves." To his dismay, however, and to the extreme annoyance of the admiral, General Dundas, commanding the army, refused to move against Bastia, condemning the attempt as visionary and rash. Meantime the French, unmolested except by the desultory efforts of the insurgent Corsicans, were each day strengthening their works, and converting the possibilities Nelson saw into the impossibilities of the cautious general.
Bastia, as he described it to Lord Hood, was a walled town with a central citadel, home to about ten thousand people, located on the east coast of Corsica, twenty miles south of Cape Corso, the northern tip of the island. The main defenses were along the seafront, but there were also several detached fortifications on either side and in the back. These not only protected the town from interior attacks but, being positioned on the hills above, could also overlook the town if the enemy took control. Nelson, while humbly refusing to overly rely on his own judgment, firmly believed, based on the engagement on the 23rd, that the "Agamemnon" and the frigates could silence the seafront defenses and breach the walls, allowing five hundred troops to capture the place by assault. "It's certain the hill defenses would trouble the town later, but with the enemy cut off from all supplies—since we would control the provisions in the town—they would only be focused on negotiating the best terms for themselves." However, to his disappointment and the great frustration of the admiral, General Dundas, who was in charge of the army, refused to attack Bastia, calling the plan unrealistic and reckless. Meanwhile, the French, undisturbed except for sporadic efforts from the rebellious Corsicans, were daily strengthening their defenses, turning the possibilities Nelson envisioned into the impossibilities of the cautious general.
Hood on the 25th of February came round from San Fiorenzo to Bastia; but he purposely brought with him no captain senior to Nelson, in order that the latter might remain in charge of the operations he had begun so well. When Dundas retreated again to San Fiorenzo, Hood on the 3d of March followed him there with the flagship, to urge his co-operation; leaving Nelson with six frigates to conduct the blockade and take such other steps as the opportunities might justify. By the middle of March, nearly three months having elapsed since her last hasty visit to Leghorn, the "Agamemnon" was wholly destitute of supplies. "We are really," wrote Nelson to Hood, "without firing, wine, beef, pork, flour, and almost without water: not a rope, canvas, twine, or nail in the ship. The ship is so light she cannot hold her side to the wind.... We are certainly in a bad plight at present, not a man has slept dry for many months. Yet," he continues, with that indomitable energy which made light of mere difficulties of material, and conveys so impressive a lesson to our modern days, when slight physical defects appear insurmountable, and ships not wholly up to date are counted obsolete,—"yet if your Lordship wishes me to remain off Bastia, I can, by going to Porto Ferrajo, get water and stores, and twenty-four hours in Leghorn will give us provisions; and our refitting, which will take some time, can be put off a little. My wish is to be present at the attack of Bastia."
Hood arrived on February 25th from San Fiorenzo to Bastia; but he made sure not to bring any captain senior to Nelson so that Nelson could stay in charge of the operations he had started so well. When Dundas retreated again to San Fiorenzo, Hood followed him there with the flagship on March 3rd to encourage his cooperation, leaving Nelson with six frigates to carry out the blockade and take any other actions as opportunities arose. By mid-March, nearly three months since her last rushed visit to Leghorn, the "Agamemnon" was completely out of supplies. "We are really," Nelson wrote to Hood, "without firepower, wine, beef, pork, flour, and almost without water: not a single rope, canvas, twine, or nail on the ship. The ship is so light she can’t hold her side to the wind.... We are definitely in a tough situation right now; not a man has slept dry for months. Yet," he continues, with that indomitable energy that downplayed mere material difficulties and offers a powerful lesson to our modern times, when minor physical shortcomings seem insurmountable and outdated ships are disregarded—"yet if your Lordship wants me to stay off Bastia, I can go to Porto Ferrajo to get water and supplies, and twenty-four hours in Leghorn will provide us with provisions; our refitting, which will take some time, can be postponed a bit. My desire is to be present at the attack on Bastia."
On the 18th of March Hood summoned him to San Fiorenzo. The difference between him and Dundas had become a quarrel, and the latter had quitted his command. Hood wished to strengthen the argument with his successor, by a report of the observations made by Nelson; but the latter records that, after expressing his opinion that eight hundred troops with four hundred seamen could reduce the place, it was found that all the army was united against an attack, declaring the impossibility of taking Bastia, even if all the force were united,—and this, notwithstanding that an engineer and an artillery officer had visited the scene, and agreed with Nelson that there was a probability of success. On the north side both they and he considered the place weak, and at the same time found the ground favorable for establishing the siege guns. Moreover, even during the winter gales, he had succeeded in so closing the sea approaches, while the revolted Corsicans intercepted those by land, that a pound of coarse bread was selling for three francs. The spring equinox was now near at hand, and with better weather the blockade would be yet more efficient. Between actual attack and famine, he argued, the place must fall. "Not attacking it I could not but consider as a national disgrace. If the Army will not take it, we must, by some way or other."
On March 18, Hood called him to San Fiorenzo. The disagreement between him and Dundas had escalated into a conflict, leading Dundas to leave his command. Hood wanted to support his case with a report of Nelson's observations; however, Nelson noted that after stating his belief that eight hundred troops and four hundred sailors could capture the place, it became clear that the entire army was united against an attack, declaring it impossible to take Bastia, even if all their forces combined. This was despite an engineer and an artillery officer visiting the site and agreeing with Nelson that there was a chance of success. On the north side, both they and Nelson thought the place was weak and also found the terrain suitable for setting up the siege guns. Furthermore, even during the winter storms, he managed to block the sea routes while the rebel Corsicans cut off land access, resulting in a pound of coarse bread selling for three francs. The spring equinox was approaching, and with better weather, the blockade would become even more effective. He argued that the location must surrender between an actual attack and starvation. "Not attacking it would feel like a national disgrace. If the Army won’t take it, we must find a way to do so."
If every particular operation of war is to be considered by itself alone, and as a purely professional question, to be determined by striking a balance between the arguments pro and con, it is probable that the army officers were right in their present contention. In nothing military was scientific accuracy of prediction so possible as in forecasting the result and duration of a regular siege, where the force brought to bear on either side could be approximately known. But, even in this most methodical and least inspired of processes, the elements of chance, of the unforeseen, or even the improbable, will enter, disturbing the most careful calculations. For this reason, no case must be decided purely on its individual merits, without taking into account the other conditions of the campaign at large. For good and sufficient reasons, the British had undertaken, not to conquer a hostile island, but to effect the deliverance of a people who were already in arms, and had themselves redeemed their country with the exception of two or three fortified seaports, for the reduction of which they possessed neither the materials nor the technical skill. To pause in the movement of advance was, with a half-civilized race of unstable temperament, to risk everything. But besides, for the mere purpose of the blockade, it was imperative to force the enemy as far as possible to contract his lines. Speaking of a new work thrown up north of the town, Nelson said with accurate judgment: "It must be destroyed, or the Corsicans will be obliged to give up a post which the enemy would immediately possess; and of course throw us on that side at a greater distance from Bastia." The result would be, not merely so much more time and labor to be expended, nor yet only the moral effect on either party, but also the uncovering of a greater length of seaboard, by which supplies might be run into the town.
If we consider each military operation on its own and as a purely professional matter, deciding it by weighing the pros and cons, it's likely that the army officers were correct in their current argument. In military matters, predicting the outcome and duration of a regular siege is where scientific accuracy is most achievable, as the forces on either side can be estimated. However, even in this most methodical and least inspiring of processes, chance, unforeseen events, and even the improbable can disrupt the most careful calculations. For this reason, no situation should be evaluated solely on its individual details without considering the broader context of the campaign. The British, for valid reasons, were set to not conquer an enemy island, but to help liberate a people who were already fighting and had largely reclaimed their land, aside from two or three fortified ports that they did not have the resources or skills to capture. Delaying their advance was risky with a half-civilized group known for their unstable tempers. Furthermore, for the sake of the blockade, it was crucial to push the enemy to contract their lines as much as possible. Regarding a new position established north of the town, Nelson wisely noted, "It must be destroyed, or the Corsicans will have to abandon a post that the enemy would immediately take over, which would push us farther away from Bastia." The consequence would not only be additional time and effort but also a significant impact on morale for both sides, along with exposing a longer stretch of coastline through which supplies could be brought into the town.
The strength of the place, in which, when it fell, were found "seventy-seven pieces of ordnance with an incredible amount of stores," was far superior to that estimated by the eye of Nelson, untrained as an engineer. Not only so, but the force within the walls was very much larger than he thought, when he spoke with such confidence. "I never yet told Lord Hood," he wrote nearly a year later, "that after everything was fixed for the attack of Bastia, I had information given me of the enormous number of troops we had to oppose us; but my own honour, Lord Hood's honour, and the honour of our Country must have all been sacrificed, had I mentioned what I knew; therefore you will believe what must have been my feelings during the whole siege, when I had often proposals made to me by men, now rewarded, to write to Lord Hood to raise the siege." "Had this been an English town," he said immediately after the surrender, "I am sure it would not have been taken by them. The more we see of this place, the more we are astonished at their giving it up, but the truth is, the different parties were afraid to trust each other." The last assertion, if correct, conveys just one of those incidents which so frequently concur to insure the success of a step rightly taken, as that of Nelson and Hood in this instance certainly was. "Forty-five hundred men," he continues, "have laid down their arms to under twelve hundred troops and seamen. If proofs were wanting to show that perseverance, unanimity, and gallantry, can accomplish almost incredible things, we are an additional instance."
The strength of the place, which, when it fell, had "seventy-seven pieces of ordnance with an incredible amount of stores," was far greater than what Nelson, untrained as an engineer, estimated. Not only that, but the force inside the walls was much larger than he believed when he spoke with such confidence. "I never told Lord Hood," he wrote nearly a year later, "that after everything was set for the attack on Bastia, I received information about the huge number of troops we were up against; but my own honor, Lord Hood's honor, and the honor of our country would have all been at stake if I had mentioned what I knew; so you can understand what my feelings were throughout the siege when I often had proposals from men, now rewarded, to write to Lord Hood to raise the siege." "If this had been an English town," he said right after the surrender, "I’m sure it wouldn’t have been taken by them. The more we learn about this place, the more we’re amazed that they gave it up, but the truth is, the different parties were too afraid to trust one another." This last statement, if true, highlights one of those events that often play a crucial role in ensuring the success of a well-made decision, as that of Nelson and Hood in this case certainly was. "Four thousand five hundred men," he continues, "have laid down their arms to fewer than twelve hundred troops and seamen. If proof were needed to demonstrate that perseverance, unity, and bravery can achieve nearly unbelievable things, we are one more instance."
"I always was of opinion," he wrote in the exultation of reaction from the weight of responsibility he had assumed by his secrecy,—"I always was of opinion, have ever acted up to it, and never have had any reason to repent it, that one Englishman was equal to three Frenchmen." This curious bit of the gasconade into which Nelson from time to time lapsed, can scarcely be accepted as a sound working theory, or as of itself justifying the risk taken; and yet it undoubtedly, under a grossly distorted form, portrays the temperament which enabled him to capture Bastia, and which made him what he was,—a man strong enough to take great chances for adequate ends. "All naval operations undertaken since I have been at the head of the government," said Napoleon, "have always failed, because the admirals see double, and have learned—where I do not know—that war can be made without running risks." It is not material certainty of success, the ignis fatuus which is the great snare of the mere engineer, or of the merely accomplished soldier, that points the way to heroic achievements. It is the vivid inspiration that enables its happy possessor, at critical moments, to see and follow the bright clear line, which, like a ray of light at midnight, shining among manifold doubtful indications, guides his steps. Whether it leads him to success or to failure, he may not know; but that it is the path of wisdom, of duty, and of honor, he knows full well by the persuasion within,—by conviction, the fortifier of the reason, though not by sight, the assurance of demonstration. Only a man capable of incurring a disaster like that at Teneriffe could rise to the level of daring, which, through hidden perils, sought and wrought the superb triumph of Aboukir Bay. Such is genius, that rare but hazardous gift, which separates a man from his fellows by a chasm not to be bridged by human will. Thus endowed, Nelson before the walls of Bastia showed, though in a smaller sphere, and therefore with a lighter hazard, the same keen perception, the same instant decision, the same unfaltering resolve, the same tenacity of purpose, that, far over and beyond the glamour of mere success, have rendered eternally illustrious the days of St. Vincent, of the Nile, and of Copenhagen.
"I always believed," he wrote in the excitement of relief from the burden of responsibility he'd carried due to his secrecy, "I always believed, have always acted on it, and have never regretted it, that one Englishman is equal to three Frenchmen." This odd boast, which Nelson occasionally indulged in, can't really be seen as a solid working theory, or as enough to justify the risks he took; yet it certainly, albeit in a highly exaggerated way, reflects the mindset that allowed him to capture Bastia, and which defined him—a man brave enough to take significant risks for worthy goals. "All naval operations carried out since I've been in charge of the government," Napoleon said, "have consistently failed because the admirals see double, and have learned—where I do not know—that war can be fought without taking risks." It’s not the material certainty of success, the ignis fatuus that traps the mere engineer or the simply skilled soldier, that leads to heroic accomplishments. It's the vivid inspiration that allows its fortunate bearer, in crucial moments, to see and follow the bright clear path, like a ray of light in the dark, illuminating the many confusing signs and directing his actions. He may not know if it will lead to success or failure; but he knows for sure that it’s the path of wisdom, duty, and honor, by the conviction within him—by belief, which strengthens reason, though not by sight, the proof of demonstration. Only a person who could endure a disaster like the one at Teneriffe could rise to the level of daring that sought and achieved the amazing victory of Aboukir Bay. Such is genius, that rare but risky gift, which sets a person apart from others by a gap that cannot be crossed by human effort. Blessed with this, Nelson at the walls of Bastia demonstrated, though on a smaller scale and therefore with less risk, the same sharp insight, the same quick decision, the same unwavering determination, and the same steadfastness of purpose that have made the days of St. Vincent, of the Nile, and of Copenhagen eternally renowned, far beyond the allure of mere success.
Of the spirit which really actuated him, in his unwavering support of Lord Hood's inclination to try the doubtful issue, many interesting instances are afforded by his correspondence. "I feel for the honour of my Country, and had rather be beat than not make the attack. If we do not try we can never be successful. I own I have no fears for the final issue: it will be conquest, certain we will deserve it. My reputation depends on the opinion I have given; but I feel an honest consciousness that I have done right. We must, we will have it, or some of our heads will be laid low. I glory in the attempt." "What would the immortal Wolfe have done?" he says again, refreshing his own constancy in the recollection of an equal heroism, crowned with success against even greater odds. "As he did, beat the enemy, if he perished in the attempt." Again, a fortnight later: "We are in high health and spirits besieging Bastia; the final event, I feel assured, will be conquest." When the siege had already endured for a month, and with such slight actual progress as to compel him to admit to Hood that the town battery had been "put in such a state, that firing away many shot at it is almost useless till we have a force sufficient to get nearer," his confidence remains unabated. "I have no fears about the final issue," he writes to his wife; "it will be victory, Bastia will be ours; and if so, it must prove an event to which the history of England can hardly boast an equal." Further on in the same letter he makes a prediction, so singularly accurate as to excite curiosity about its source: "I will tell you as a secret, Bastia will be ours between the 20th and 24th of this month"—three weeks after the date of writing—"if succours do not get in." It surrendered actually on the 22d. One is tempted to speculate if there had been any such understanding with the garrison as was afterwards reached with Calvi; but there is no other token of such an arrangement. It is instructive also to compare this high-strung steadfastness of purpose to dare every risk, if success perchance might be won thereby, with his comment upon his own impulses at a somewhat later date. "My disposition cannot bear tame and slow measures. Sure I am, had I commanded our fleet on the 14th, that either the whole French fleet would have graced my triumph, or I should have been in a confounded scrape." Surely the secret of great successes is in these words.
Of the spirit that really drove him in his unwavering support of Lord Hood's inclination to take on the uncertain challenge, many fascinating examples can be found in his letters. "I care about the honor of my country, and I would rather be defeated than not make the attempt. If we don’t try, we can never succeed. I honestly have no fears about the final outcome: it will be victory, and we certainly deserve it. My reputation hinges on the opinion I’ve expressed; but I have a strong sense of having done what’s right. We must, we will achieve this, or some of us will be in serious trouble. I take pride in the effort." "What would the immortal Wolfe have done?" he says again, reminding himself of an equal heroism that succeeded against even greater odds. "Like him, beat the enemy, even if I perish in the attempt." Two weeks later: "We are in great health and spirits besieging Bastia; I’m confident the final outcome will be victory." After the siege had already lasted a month, and with so little actual progress that he had to admit to Hood that the town battery had been "put in such a state that firing at it is almost useless until we have enough forces to get closer," his confidence remains strong. "I have no fears about the final outcome," he writes to his wife; "it will be victory, Bastia will be ours; and if so, it must be an event that the history of England can hardly boast an equal to." Later in the same letter, he makes a prediction so strikingly accurate that it raises curiosity about its source: "I’ll tell you as a secret, Bastia will be ours between the 20th and 24th of this month"—three weeks after writing—"if reinforcements don’t arrive." It actually surrendered on the 22nd. One might wonder if there was any agreement with the garrison like the one that was later made with Calvi; however, there’s no other evidence of such an arrangement. It’s also enlightening to compare this intense determination to face every risk for the chance of success with his reflections on his own impulses at a later time. "My nature can’t stand slow and cautious methods. I’m sure that if I had commanded our fleet on the 14th, either the entire French fleet would have celebrated my victory, or I would have found myself in serious trouble." Surely, the key to great successes lies in these words.
The siege of Bastia was not in its course productive of striking events. Having reasoned in vain with the two successive generals, Hood demanded that there should be sent back to him a contingent of troops, which had originally been detailed to serve as marines in the fleet, but which he had loaned to the army for the operations against San Fiorenzo. Having received these, he returned to Bastia, and on the 4th of April, 1794, the besieging force, twelve hundred troops and two hundred and fifty seamen, landed to the northward of the town. They at once began to throw up batteries, while the Corsicans harassed the landward approaches to the place. Nelson being with the troops, the "Agamemnon" with some frigates was anchored north of the city, Hood with his ships south of it. During the nights, boats from the fleet rowed guard near to the sea-front, with such diligence that few of the craft that attempted to run in or out succeeded in so doing. When darkness covered the waters, British gunboats crept close to the walls, and by an intermitting but frequent fire added much to the distress of the enemy. On the 11th of April the garrison was formally summoned, and, the expected refusal having been received, the British batteries opened. There was not force enough, however, to bring the place to terms as a consequence of direct attack, and after three weeks Nelson, while betraying no apprehension of failure, practically admitted the fact. "Although I have no doubt but even remaining in our present situation, and by strict guard rowing close to the town, and the Corsicans harassing them on the hills, and the gunboats by night, but that the enemy must surrender before any great length of time, yet, if force can be spared, a successful attack on the heights must much facilitate a speedy capture. I own it will give me the highest pleasure to assist in the attack."
The siege of Bastia didn’t produce any major events. After unsuccessfully discussing with two successive generals, Hood requested that a group of troops, originally assigned to serve as marines in the fleet but lent to the army for the operations against San Fiorenzo, be returned to him. Once he received them, he went back to Bastia, and on April 4, 1794, the besieging force, consisting of twelve hundred troops and two hundred fifty sailors, landed to the north of the town. They immediately started building batteries while the Corsicans troubled the land approaches to the place. With Nelson among the troops, the "Agamemnon" and some frigates anchored north of the city, and Hood had his ships south of it. During the nights, boats from the fleet patrolled near the sea front, making it difficult for any ships trying to enter or leave the harbor. When it was dark, British gunboats got close to the walls and frequently fired, adding to the enemy's distress. On April 11 the garrison was formally called on to surrender, and upon receiving the expected refusal, the British batteries opened fire. However, there weren’t enough forces to force the place to capitulate through direct attack, and after three weeks, Nelson, while showing no sign of worry about failure, practically acknowledged the situation. "Although I have no doubt that even staying in our current position, with strict patrols near the town, the Corsicans harassing them on the hills, and the gunboats at night, will make the enemy surrender before long, I believe that if we can spare some forces, a successful attack on the heights would greatly speed up capturing the place. I admit it would give me immense pleasure to assist in the attack."
It was by such an attack, or rather by the fear of it, coming upon the long and exhausting endurance of cannonade and hunger, that Bastia finally fell. "We shall in time accomplish the taking of Bastia," wrote Nelson on the 3d of May. "I have no doubt in the way we proposed to attempt it, by bombardment and cannonading, joined to a close blockade of the harbour." "If not," he adds, "our Country will, I believe, sooner forgive an officer for attacking his enemy than for letting it alone." On the 12th a large boat was captured coming out from the port; and on her were found letters from the governor, Gentili, confessing the annoyance caused by the British fire, and saying that if relief did not arrive by the 29th, the place must be looked upon as lost. Three nights later another boat was caught attempting to enter. On board her was a brother of the Mayor of Bastia. This man, while talking with Hood's secretary, expressed his fears for the result to his relatives, if the town were carried by assault. The secretary replied that Hood could not prevent those evils, if the garrison awaited the attack, and gave the Corsican to understand that it was imminent, troops being expected from San Fiorenzo. At the urgent request of the prisoner, one of the seamen taken with him was permitted to land with a letter, stating the impending danger. By a singular coincidence, or by skilful contrivance, the San Fiorenzo troops appeared on the heights upon the evening, May 19, following this conversation. Flags of truce had already been hoisted, negotiations were opened, and on the 22d the French colors were struck and the British took possession. "When I reflect what we have achieved," confessed the hitherto outwardly unmoved Nelson, "I am all astonishment. The most glorious sight that an Englishman can experience, and which, I believe, none but an Englishman could bring about, was exhibited,—4,500 men laying down their arms to less than 1,000 British soldiers, who were serving as marines." As towards the French this account is perhaps somewhat less than fair; but it does no more than justice to the admirable firmness and enterprise shown by Hood and Nelson. As a question of Bastia only, their attempt might be charged with rashness; but having regard to the political and military conditions, to the instability of the Corsican character, and to the value of the island as a naval station, it was amply justified, for the risks run were out of all proportion less than the advantage to be gained.
It was through such an attack, or rather the fear of it, coming after the long and exhausting struggle of constant cannon fire and hunger, that Bastia finally fell. "We will eventually take Bastia," Nelson wrote on May 3rd. "I have no doubt in the approach we proposed, through bombardment and cannon fire, along with a close blockade of the harbor." "If not," he added, "I believe our country would sooner forgive an officer for attacking the enemy than for holding back." On the 12th, a large boat was captured coming out from the port, carrying letters from the governor, Gentili, admitting the distress caused by the British fire, and stating that if help didn’t arrive by the 29th, the place must be considered lost. Three nights later, another boat was intercepted trying to enter. Onboard was a brother of the Mayor of Bastia. This man, while speaking with Hood's secretary, voiced his concerns for his relatives' fate if the town was taken by assault. The secretary replied that Hood couldn’t prevent those outcomes if the garrison waited for the attack, indicating that it was imminent, as troops were expected from San Fiorenzo. At the prisoner’s urgent request, one of the seamen captured with him was allowed to land with a letter, warning of the impending danger. Interestingly, or perhaps by clever planning, the San Fiorenzo troops appeared on the heights on the evening of May 19, right after this conversation. Flags of truce had already been raised, negotiations began, and on the 22nd, the French colors were lowered and the British took control. "When I think about what we've accomplished," confessed the previously stoic Nelson, "I am completely astonished. It was the most glorious sight an Englishman can witness, and I believe only an Englishman could have made it happen—4,500 men surrendering to less than 1,000 British soldiers acting as marines." While this account might not be entirely fair to the French, it justly highlights the remarkable determination and initiative displayed by Hood and Nelson. In regards to Bastia alone, their attempt could be seen as reckless; however, considering the political and military circumstances, the unpredictability of the Corsican character, and the strategic importance of the island as a naval base, it was more than justified, as the risks taken were vastly outweighed by the potential benefits.
Thus the siege of Bastia ended in triumph, despite the prior pronouncement of the general commanding the troops, that the attempt was "most visionary and rash." These epithets, being used to Hood after his own expressions in favor of the undertaking, had not unnaturally provoked from him a resentful retort; and, as men are rarely conciliated by the success of measures which they have ridiculed, there arose a degree of strained relations between army and navy, that continued even after the arrival of a new commander of the land forces, and indeed throughout Hood's association with the operations in Corsica.
Thus, the siege of Bastia ended in success, despite the earlier comment from the general in charge of the troops, who called the attempt "most visionary and rash." These terms, being directed at Hood after he had previously expressed support for the undertaking, understandably led to a defensive response from him; and since people are rarely won over by the success of actions they have mocked, a level of tension developed between the army and navy that persisted even after a new commander took over the ground forces, and indeed throughout Hood's involvement in the operations in Corsica.
During this busy and laborious period, despite his burden of secret anxiety, Nelson's naturally delicate health showed the favorable reaction, which, as has before been noted, was with him the usual result of the call to exertion. His letters steadily reflect, and occasionally mention, the glow of exultation produced by constant action of a worthy and congenial nature. "We are in high health and spirits besieging Bastia," he writes to his wife soon after landing; and shortly before the fall of the place he says again: "As to my health, it was never better, seldom so well." Yet, although from beginning to end the essential stay of the enterprise, the animating soul, without whose positive convictions and ardent support Lord Hood could scarcely have dared so great a hazard, he was throughout the siege left, apparently purposely, in an anomalous position, and was at the end granted a recognition which, though probably not grudging, was certainly scanty. No definition of his duties was ever given by the commander-in-chief. He appears as it were the latter's unacknowledged representative ashore, a plenipotentiary without credentials. "What my situation is," he writes to a relative, "is not to be described. I am everything, yet nothing ostensible; enjoying the confidence of Lord Hood and Colonel Villettes, and the captains landed with the seamen obeying my orders." A fortnight later he writes to Hood: "Your Lordship knows exactly the situation I am in here. With Colonel Villettes I have no reason but to suppose I am respected in the highest degree; nor have I occasion to complain of want of attention to my wishes from any parties; but yet I am considered as not commanding the seamen landed. My wishes may be, and are, complied with; my orders would possibly be disregarded. Therefore, if we move from hence, I would wish your Lordship to settle that point. Your Lordship will not, I trust, take this request amiss: I have been struggling with it since the first day I landed."
During this busy and challenging time, despite his hidden worries, Nelson's naturally fragile health showed a positive response, which, as mentioned before, was usually the result of his need for action. His letters consistently reflect, and sometimes mention, the thrill of excitement from engaging in meaningful and enjoyable work. "We are in great health and spirits besieging Bastia," he writes to his wife soon after arriving; and shortly before the city falls, he says again: "As for my health, it has never been better, hardly ever this good." Yet, throughout the siege, he remained the essential backbone of the operation, the driving force without whose strong beliefs and support Lord Hood might not have had the courage to take such a big risk. However, he was left in a confusing position, seemingly on purpose, and in the end was given a recognition that, while likely not resentful, was definitely limited. The commander-in-chief never defined his duties. He appears to be the latter's unacknowledged representative on land, a negotiator without authority. "What my situation is," he writes to a relative, "is hard to explain. I am everything, yet nothing official; I have the confidence of Lord Hood and Colonel Villettes, and the captains on land follow my orders." Two weeks later, he writes to Hood: "Your Lordship knows exactly what my situation is here. With Colonel Villettes, I have no reason to think I am not highly respected; nor have I any reason to complain about a lack of attention to my wishes from anyone; but I am still seen as not commanding the sailors who landed. My wishes may be, and are, followed; my orders would likely be ignored. Therefore, if we move from here, I would like your Lordship to clarify that point. I hope you won't take this request the wrong way: I have been struggling with it since the first day I landed."
Hood apparently gave him full satisfaction as regards his own view of the situation. "I am happy," Nelson wrote, when acknowledging his reply, "that my ideas of the situation I am in here so perfectly agree with your Lordship's;" but he did not settle the matter by a decisive order. His object, as he seems to have explained, was to bestow a certain amount of prominence upon a young captain, Hunt, who had recently lost his ship, and who, Hood thought, would be sooner provided with another, if he appeared as in command at the guns. Nelson acceded to this arrangement with his usual generosity. "Your kind intention to Captain Hunt," he wrote, "I had the honour of telling your Lordship, should be furthered by every means in my power; and my regard for him, I assure you, is undiminished. He is a most exceeding good young man, nor is any one more zealous for the service. I don't complain of any one, but an idea has entered into the heads of some under him, that his command was absolutely distinct from me; and that I had no authority over him, except as a request." Unfortunately, Hood, in his desire to serve Hunt, not only unduly but absurdly minimized Nelson's relations to the whole affair. His despatch ran: "Captain Nelson, of his Majesty's ship Agamemnon, who had the command and directions of the seamen in landing the guns, mortars and stores,[20] and Captain Hunt who commanded at the batteries,[20] ... have an equal claim to my gratitude." To limit Nelson's share in the capture of Bastia to the purely subsidiary though important function of landing the guns, was as unjust as it was unnecessary to the interests of Hunt. The latter, being second in command ashore, and afterwards sent home with the despatches, was sure to receive the reward customarily bestowed upon such services.
Hood clearly satisfied Nelson's view of the situation. "I’m happy," Nelson wrote when acknowledging Hood's reply, "that my ideas about my situation here align perfectly with your Lordship's;" but he didn’t finalize the matter with a decisive order. His goal, as he explained, was to give some recognition to a young captain, Hunt, who had recently lost his ship and whom Hood believed would be more likely to get another if he was seen in command at the guns. Nelson agreed to this arrangement with his usual generosity. "Your kind intention towards Captain Hunt," he wrote, "I had the honor to tell your Lordship, should be supported by every means in my power; and my regard for him is unchanged. He is an exceptionally good young man, and no one is more committed to the service. I don’t blame anyone, but some of his subordinates seem to think that his command is completely separate from mine, and that I only have authority over him as a suggestion." Unfortunately, in his eagerness to support Hunt, Hood downplayed Nelson's role in the entire situation. His dispatch stated: "Captain Nelson, of His Majesty’s ship Agamemnon, who had the command and direction of the seamen in landing the guns, mortars, and stores,[20] and Captain Hunt who commanded at the batteries,[20] ... both have an equal claim to my gratitude." To reduce Nelson’s contribution to the capture of Bastia to solely the important but secondary task of landing the guns was both unfair and unnecessary for Hunt's interests. Hunt, as the second in command onshore, and later sent home with the dispatches, was certain to receive the reward typically given for such services.
The incident singularly and aptly illustrates the difference, which in a military service cannot be too carefully kept in mind, between individual expressions of opinion, which may be biassed, and professional reputation, which, like public sentiment, usually settles at last not far from the truth. Despite this curious inversion of the facts by Lord Hood, there probably was no one among the naval forces, nor among the soldiery, who did not thoroughly, if perchance somewhat vaguely, appreciate that Nelson was the moving spirit of the whole operation, even beyond Hood himself. As the Greek commanders after Salamis were said to have voted the award of merit each to himself first, but all to Themistocles second, so at Bastia, whatever value individuals might place on their own services, all probably would have agreed that Nelson came next.
The incident clearly highlights a crucial distinction that should always be remembered in the military: the difference between personal opinions, which can be biased, and professional reputation, which, like public opinion, tends to settle close to the truth in the end. Despite Lord Hood’s strange misrepresentation of the facts, it’s likely that everyone in the naval forces and the army understood, even if somewhat vaguely, that Nelson was the driving force behind the entire operation, even more so than Hood himself. Just as the Greek commanders after Salamis were said to have awarded themselves first place but gave Themistocles second place, at Bastia, regardless of how individuals valued their own contributions, they would probably all agree that Nelson came next.
The latter meantime was happily unconscious of the wrong done him, so that nothing marred the pleasure with which he congratulated the commander-in-chief, and received the latter's brief but hearty general order of thanks, wherein Nelson's own name stood foremost, as was due both to his seniority and to his exertions. When the despatch reached him, he freely expressed his discontent in letters to friends; but being, at the time of its reception, actively engaged in the siege of Calvi, the exhilaration of that congenial employment for the moment took the edge off the keenness of his resentment. "Lord Hood and myself were never better friends—nor, although his Letter does,[21] did he wish to put me where I never was—in the rear. Captain Hunt, who lost his ship, he wanted to push forward for another,—a young man who never was on a battery, or ever rendered any service during the siege; if any person ever says he did, then I submit to the character of a story-teller. Poor Serocold, who fell here,[22] was determined to publish an advertisement, as he commanded a battery under my orders. The whole operations of the siege were carried on through Lord Hood's letters to me. I was the mover of it—I was the cause of its success. Sir Gilbert Elliot will be my evidence, if any is required. I am not a little vexed, but shall not quarrel." "I am well aware," he had written to Mrs. Nelson a few days before, "my poor services will not be noticed: I have no interest; but, however services may be received, it is not right in an officer to slacken his zeal for his Country."
The person in question was blissfully unaware of the injustice done to him, so nothing spoiled the joy with which he congratulated the commander-in-chief and received his brief but heartfelt general order of thanks, in which Nelson’s name was mentioned first, due to his seniority and efforts. When he got the dispatch, he openly shared his dissatisfaction in letters to friends; however, since he was actively involved in the siege of Calvi at the time, the excitement of that engaging work momentarily dulled the intensity of his anger. "Lord Hood and I were never better friends—nor, although his Letter does,[21] he didn’t mean to place me where I never was—in the back. Captain Hunt, who lost his ship, he wanted to promote for another,—a young man who had never been on a battery or contributed anything during the siege; if anyone claims he did, then I accept the title of a storyteller. Poor Serocold, who died here,[22] was determined to publish an ad because he commanded a battery under my order. The entire siege operation was conducted through Lord Hood's letters to me. I was the driving force behind it—I was the reason for its success. Sir Gilbert Elliot will be my evidence, if needed. I am not a little annoyed, but I won't argue." "I am well aware," he had written to Mrs. Nelson a few days earlier, "that my humble services will go unnoticed: I have no connections; but regardless of how services are received, it’s not right for an officer to lose his enthusiasm for his country."
These noble words only voiced a feeling which in Nelson's heart had all the strength of a principle; and this light of the single eye stood him in good stead in the moments of bitterness which followed a few months later, when a lull in the storm of fighting gave the sense of neglect a chance to rankle. "My heart is full," he writes then to his uncle Suckling, speaking not only of Bastia, but of the entire course of operations in Corsica, "when I think of the treatment I have received: every man who had any considerable share in the reduction has got some place or other—I, only I, am without reward.... Nothing but my anxious endeavour to serve my Country makes me bear up against it; but I sometimes am ready to give all up." "Forgive this letter," he adds towards the end: "I have said a great deal too much of myself; but indeed it is all too true." In similar strain he expressed himself to his wife: "It is very true that I have ever served faithfully, and ever has it been my fate to be neglected; but that shall not make me inattentive to my duty. I have pride in doing my duty well, and a self-approbation, which if it is not so lucrative, yet perhaps affords more pleasing sensations." Thus the consciousness of duty done in the past, and the clear recognition of what duty still demanded in the present and future, stood him in full stead, when he failed to receive at the hands of others the honor he felt to be his due, and which, he never wearied in proclaiming, was in his eyes priceless, above all other reward. "Corsica, in respect of prizes," he wrote to Mrs. Nelson, "produces nothing but honour, far above the consideration of wealth: not that I despise riches, quite the contrary, yet I would not sacrifice a good name to obtain them. Had I attended less than I have done to the service of my Country, I might have made some money too: however, I trust my name will stand on record, when the money-makers will be forgot,"—a hope to be abundantly fulfilled.
These noble words expressed a feeling that, in Nelson's heart, held the weight of a principle. This single-minded focus served him well during the bitter moments that followed a few months later when a lull in the fighting allowed feelings of neglect to fester. "My heart is full," he wrote to his uncle Suckling, referring not just to Bastia, but to the entire campaign in Corsica, "when I think of the treatment I've received: everyone who played a significant role in the efforts has been recognized with some sort of position—I, only I, remain without reward.... It's only my strong desire to serve my country that helps me cope with this, but sometimes I feel like giving it all up." "Please forgive this letter," he added towards the end: "I've talked too much about myself; but honestly, it's all too true." He expressed similar sentiments to his wife: "It's true that I've always served faithfully, and it's always been my fate to be overlooked; but that won't make me neglect my duty. I take pride in doing my job well, and the self-satisfaction I get, while it may not be financially rewarding, brings me more joy." Thus, his awareness of past duties fulfilled and his clear understanding of ongoing responsibilities helped him endure when he didn't receive the recognition he felt he deserved—recognition he tirelessly proclaimed was invaluable, above any other reward. "Corsica, in terms of rewards," he wrote to Mrs. Nelson, "offers nothing but honor, which far outweighs wealth: not that I scorn riches—quite the opposite—yet I wouldn't trade a good name for them. Had I paid less attention to serving my country, I might have made some money too; however, I believe my name will be remembered long after the money-makers are forgotten,"—a hope that would be abundantly fulfilled.
At the moment Bastia fell there arrived from England a new commander-in-chief for the land forces, General Stuart, an officer of distinguished ability and enterprise. Cheered by the hope of cordial co-operation, Hood and Nelson resumed without delay their enthusiastic efforts. Within a week, on the 30th of May, the latter wrote that the "Agamemnon" was taking on board ammunition for the siege of Calvi, the last remaining of the hostile strongholds. In the midst of the preparations, at eleven P.M. of June 6, word was received that nine French ships-of-the-line had come out of Toulon, and were believed to be bound for Calvi, with reinforcements for the garrison. At seven the next morning the squadron was under way; the "Agamemnon," which had two hundred tons of ordnance stores to unload, sailing only half an hour after her less encumbered consorts, whom she soon overtook.
At the time Bastia fell, a new commander-in-chief for the land forces arrived from England, General Stuart, an officer known for his exceptional skills and initiative. Encouraged by the prospect of working together, Hood and Nelson quickly resumed their enthusiastic efforts. Within a week, on May 30, Nelson wrote that the "Agamemnon" was loading ammunition for the siege of Calvi, the last remaining enemy stronghold. While preparations were underway, at 11 P.M. on June 6, news came in that nine French ships-of-the-line had left Toulon and were thought to be headed for Calvi with reinforcements for the garrison. By seven the next morning, the squadron was on the move; the "Agamemnon," which had 200 tons of ordnance stores to unload, set sail only half an hour after her less burdened companions, whom she soon caught up with.
Hood shaped his course for Calvi, being constrained thereto, not only by the rumor of the enemy's destination, but also by the military necessity of effecting a junction with the rest of his fleet. Admiral Hotham, who commanded the British division of seven ships in front of Toulon, instead of waiting to verify the report brought to him of the enemy's force,—which was actually the same, numerically, as his own,—bore up hastily for Calvi, intending, so wrote Nelson at the time, to fight them there, rather than that they should throw in succors. Whatever their numbers, thus to surrender touch of them at the beginning was an evident mistake, for which, as for most mistakes, a penalty had in the end to be paid; and in fact, if the relief of Calvi was the object of the sortie, the place to fight was evidently as far from there as possible. Off Toulon, even had Hotham been beaten, his opponents would have been too roughly handled to carry out their mission. As it was, this precipitate retirement lost the British an opportunity for a combat that might have placed their control of the sea beyond peradventure; and a few months later, Nelson, who at first had viewed Hotham's action with the generous sympathy and confident pride which always characterized his attitude towards his brother officers, showed how clearly he was reading in the book of experience the lessons that should afterwards stand himself in good stead. "When 'Victory' is gone," he wrote, "we shall be thirteen sail of the line [to the French fifteen], when the enemy will keep our new Commanding Officer [Hotham] in hot water, who missed, unfortunately, the opportunity of fighting them, last June." Ten years later, in his celebrated chase of Villeneuve's fleet, he said to his captains: "If we meet the enemy we shall find them not less than eighteen, I rather think twenty, sail of the line, and therefore do not be surprised if I should not fall on them immediately [he had but eleven]—we won't part[23] without a battle;" and he expressed with the utmost decision his clear appreciation that even a lost battle, if delivered at the right point or at the right moment, would frustrate the ulterior objects of the enemy, by crippling the force upon which they depended. As will be seen in the sequel, Hotham, throughout his brief command as Hood's successor, suffered the consequences of permitting so important a fraction of the enemy's fleet to escape his grasp, when it was in his power to close with it.
Hood set his course for Calvi, driven not just by the rumors about the enemy's plans, but also by the military need to join up with the rest of his fleet. Admiral Hotham, who led the British division of seven ships in front of Toulon, instead of waiting to confirm the report about the enemy's forces — which were actually equal in number to his own — quickly headed for Calvi. He intended, as Nelson noted at the time, to confront them there, rather than allow them to send reinforcements. No matter their numbers, giving up contact with them at the start was clearly a mistake for which a penalty would eventually have to be paid. In fact, if the goal of the sortie was to relieve Calvi, the best place to fight was obviously as far from there as possible. Even if Hotham had been defeated off Toulon, his opponents would have sustained enough damage to hinder their mission. As it turned out, this rash retreat cost the British a chance for a battle that could have solidified their control of the sea. A few months later, Nelson, who had initially viewed Hotham's actions with the generous support and pride typical of his attitude towards fellow officers, demonstrated how well he was learning from experience — lessons that would later benefit him. "When 'Victory' is gone," he wrote, "we will be thirteen ships of the line [against the French fifteen], and the enemy will keep our new Commanding Officer [Hotham] in a tough spot for missing the chance to fight them last June." Ten years later, during his famous pursuit of Villeneuve's fleet, he told his captains: "If we encounter the enemy, we will face not less than eighteen, or perhaps twenty, ships of the line, so don't be surprised if I don't engage them right away [with only eleven]—we won't leave[23] without a battle;" and he firmly expressed his understanding that even a lost battle, if fought at the right place or moment, could thwart the enemy's ultimate objectives by weakening the forces they relied on. As will be seen later, Hotham, throughout his brief command as Hood's successor, faced the consequences of allowing such a significant part of the enemy's fleet to escape when he had the chance to confront it.
The British divisions met off the threatened port two days after leaving Bastia, and two hours later a lookout frigate brought word that the French fleet had been seen by her the evening before, to the northward and westward, some forty miles off its own coast. Hood at once made sail in pursuit, and in the afternoon of the 10th of June caught sight of the enemy, but so close in with the shore that they succeeded in towing their ships under the protection of the batteries in Golfe Jouan, where, for lack of wind, he was unable to follow them for some days, during which they had time to strengthen their position beyond his powers of offence. Hotham's error was irreparable. The "Agamemnon" was then sent back to Bastia, to resume the work of transportation, which Nelson pushed with the untiring energy that characterized all his movements. Arriving on the 12th, fifteen hundred troops were embarked by eight the next morning, and at four in the afternoon he sailed, having with him two smaller ships of war and twenty-two transports. On the 15th he anchored at San Fiorenzo.
The British divisions met off the threatened port two days after leaving Bastia, and two hours later a lookout frigate reported that the French fleet had been seen by her the evening before, to the north and west, about forty miles off the coast. Hood immediately set sail in pursuit, and on the afternoon of June 10th, he spotted the enemy, but they were so close to the shore that they managed to tow their ships under the protection of the batteries in Golfe Jouan. Due to a lack of wind, he was unable to follow them for several days, during which they had time to strengthen their position beyond his ability to attack. Hotham's mistake was irreversible. The "Agamemnon" was then sent back to Bastia to continue transportation work, which Nelson pushed forward with his usual tireless energy. Arriving on the 12th, fifteen hundred troops were embarked by eight the next morning, and at four in the afternoon, he set sail, accompanied by two smaller warships and twenty-two transports. On the 15th, he anchored at San Fiorenzo.
Here he met General Stuart. The latter was anxious to proceed at once with the siege of Calvi, but asked Nelson whether he thought it proper to take the shipping to that exposed position; alluding to the French fleet that had left Toulon, and which Hood was then seeking. Nelson's reply is interesting, as reflecting the judgment of a warrior at once prudent and enterprising, concerning the influence of a hostile "fleet in being" upon a contemplated detached operation. "I certainly thought it right," he said, "placing the firmest reliance that we should be perfectly safe under Lord Hood's protection, who would take care that the French fleet at Gourjean[24] should not molest us." To Hood he wrote a week later: "I believed ourselves safe under your Lordship's wing." At this moment he thought the French to be nine sail-of-the-line to the British thirteen,—no contemptible inferior force. Yet that he recognized the possible danger from such a detachment is also clear; for, writing two days earlier, under the same belief as to the enemy's strength, and speaking of the expected approach of an important convoy, he says: "I hope they will not venture up till Lord Hood can get off Toulon, or wherever the French fleet are got to." When a particular opinion has received the extreme expression now given to that concerning the "fleet in being," and apparently has undergone equally extreme misconception, it is instructive to recur to the actual effect of such a force, upon the practice of a man with whom moral effect was never in excess of the facts of the case, whose imagination produced to him no paralyzing picture of remote contingencies. Is it probable that, with the great issues of 1690 at stake, Nelson, had he been in Tourville's place, would have deemed the crossing of the Channel by French troops impossible, because of Torrington's "fleet in being"?
Here he met General Stuart. The latter was eager to start the siege of Calvi right away but asked Nelson if he thought it was wise to send the ships to that vulnerable position, referring to the French fleet that had left Toulon, which Hood was then pursuing. Nelson's response is interesting, reflecting the judgment of a warrior who was both cautious and bold regarding the impact of a hostile "fleet in being" on a planned detached operation. "I certainly thought it was right," he said, "placing my full trust in the fact that we would be completely safe under Lord Hood's protection, who would ensure that the French fleet at Gourjean[24] wouldn't bother us." He wrote to Hood a week later: "I believed we were safe under your Lordship's wing." At this moment, he estimated the French to have nine ships of the line compared to the British's thirteen—not an insignificant disadvantage. Yet, he also acknowledged the potential danger from such a detachment; for, writing two days earlier and under the same belief regarding the enemy's strength, he commented on the expected arrival of an important convoy, saying: "I hope they won't try to come up until Lord Hood can get away from Toulon or wherever the French fleet has gone." When a particular opinion has been so strongly expressed regarding the "fleet in being" and apparently has been equally misunderstood, it's revealing to look back at the actual effect of such a force on the actions of a man who never let moral implications outweigh the facts, whose imagination didn’t paralyze him with visions of distant possibilities. Is it likely that, with the significant stakes of 1690 on the line, Nelson, had he been in Tourville's position, would have considered the crossing of the Channel by French troops impossible because of Torrington's "fleet in being"?
Sailing again on June 16, the expedition arrived next day off Calvi. Although it was now summer, the difficulties of the new undertaking were, from the maritime point of view, very great. The town of Calvi, which was walled and had a citadel, lies upon a promontory on the west side of an open gulf of the same name, a semicircular recess, three miles wide by two deep, on the northwest coast of Corsica. The western point of its shore line is Cape Revellata; the eastern, Point Espano. The port being fortified and garrisoned, it was not practicable to take the shipping inside, nor to establish on the inner beach a safe base for disembarking. The "Agamemnon" therefore anchored outside, nearly two miles south of Cape Revellata, and a mile from shore, in the excessive depth of fifty-three fathoms; the transports coming-to off the cape, but farther to seaward. The water being so deep, and the bottom rocky, the position was perilous for sailing-ships, for the prevailing summer wind blows directly on the shore, which is steep-to and affords no shelter. Abreast the "Agamemnon" was a small inlet, Porto Agro, about three miles from Calvi by difficult approaches. Here Nelson landed on the 18th with General Stuart; and, after reconnoitring both the beach and the town, the two officers decided that, though a very bad landing, it was the best available. On the 19th, at 7 A.M., the troops disembarked. That afternoon Nelson himself went ashore to stay, taking with him two hundred and fifty seamen. The next day it came on to blow so hard that most of the ships put to sea, and no intercourse was had from the land with those which remained. The "Agamemnon" did not return till the 24th. Lord Hood was by this time in San Fiorenzo Bay, having abandoned the hope of attacking the French fleet in Golfe Jouan. On the 27th he arrived off Calvi, and thenceforth Nelson was in daily communication with him till the place fell.
Sailing again on June 16, the expedition reached Calvi the next day. Even though it was summer, the challenges of this new mission were still significant from a maritime perspective. The town of Calvi, which is fortified and has a citadel, sits on a promontory on the west side of an open gulf bearing the same name, a semicircular bay three miles wide and two miles deep on the northwest coast of Corsica. The western tip of its shoreline is Cape Revellata, and the eastern tip is Point Espano. Since the port is protected and has a military presence, it wasn’t feasible to bring the ships inside or establish a safe base for unloading on the inner beach. As a result, the "Agamemnon" anchored outside, nearly two miles south of Cape Revellata and a mile from shore, in an alarming depth of fifty-three fathoms; the transports anchored off the cape, but further out to sea. The deep water and rocky bottom made it a dangerous location for sailing ships because the prevailing summer wind blows directly on the steep shore, providing no shelter. Near the "Agamemnon" was a small inlet, Porto Agro, about three miles from Calvi, accessible through challenging approaches. Here, Nelson landed on the 18th with General Stuart; after scouting both the beach and the town, the two officers agreed that, although it was a poor landing spot, it was the best option available. On the 19th, at 7 A.M., the troops disembarked. That afternoon, Nelson himself went ashore to stay, bringing along two hundred and fifty sailors. The next day, the wind picked up significantly, causing most of the ships to head to sea, and there was no communication with those remaining on the land. The "Agamemnon" didn’t return until the 24th. By this time, Lord Hood was in San Fiorenzo Bay, having given up on the idea of attacking the French fleet in Golfe Jouan. On the 27th, he reached Calvi, and from then on, Nelson communicated daily with him until the town fell.
As the army in moderate, though not wholly adequate, force conducted the siege of Calvi, under a general officer of vigorous character, the part taken by Nelson and his seamen, though extremely important, and indeed essential to the ultimate success, was necessarily subordinate. It is well to notice that his journal, and correspondence with Lord Hood, clearly recognize this, his true relation to the siege of Calvi; for it makes it probable that, in attributing to himself a much more important part at Bastia, and in saying that Hood's report had put him unfairly in the background, he was not exaggerating his actual though ill-defined position there. That Nelson loved to dwell in thought upon his own achievements, that distinction in the eyes of his fellows was dear to him, that he craved recognition, and was at times perhaps too insistent in requiring it, is true enough; but there is no indication that he ever coveted the laurels of others, or materially misconceived his own share in particular events. Glory, sweet as it was to him, lost its value, if unaccompanied by the consciousness of desert which stamps it as honor. It is, therefore, not so much for personal achievement as for revelation of character that this siege has interest in his life.
As the army, though not fully equipped, laid siege to Calvi under a strong-willed general, Nelson and his crew played a crucial but secondary role in the overall success. It's important to note that his journal and letters to Lord Hood clearly acknowledge this true position during the siege; it suggests that when he claimed a more significant involvement at Bastia and mentioned that Hood's report unfairly downplayed his role, he wasn't exaggerating his somewhat unclear role there. While it's true that Nelson often reflected on his own accomplishments, valued recognition, and sometimes insisted on it a bit too much, there's no evidence that he envied the successes of others or misunderstood his own contributions in specific situations. Glory, which he cherished, meant little without a sense of deserving it that validates it as honor. Therefore, this siege is more significant for revealing his character than for personal achievement.
Besides the defences of the town proper, Calvi was protected by a series of outworks extending across the neck of land upon which it lay. Of these the outermost was on the left, looking from the place. It flanked the approaches to the others, and commanded the communications with the interior. It was, by Nelson's estimate, about twenty-two hundred yards from the town, and had first to be reduced. By the 3d of July thirteen long guns, besides a number of mortars and howitzers, had been dragged from the beach to the spot by the seamen, who also assisted in placing them in position, and for the most part worked them in battle, an artillerist from the army pointing. Nelson, with Captain Hallowell, already an officer of mark and afterwards one of distinction, took alternate day's duty at the batteries, a third captain, Serocold, having fallen early in the siege. Fearing news might reach his wife that a naval captain had been killed, without the name being mentioned, he wrote to her of this sad event, adding expressively: "I am very busy, yet own I am in all my glory; except with you, I would not be anywhere but where I am, for the world." On July 7th the first outwork fell. The attack upon the others was then steadily and systematically prosecuted, until on the 19th all had been captured, and the besiegers stood face to face with the town walls.
Besides the defenses of the town itself, Calvi was protected by a series of outworks stretching across the neck of land it sits on. The outermost one was on the left when looking from the town. It covered the approaches to the others and controlled communication with the interior. According to Nelson, it was about twenty-two hundred yards from the town and had to be taken first. By July 3rd, thirteen long guns, along with several mortars and howitzers, had been moved from the beach to the site by the sailors, who also helped set them up and mostly operated them in battle, with an artillery officer from the army directing. Nelson, with Captain Hallowell—who was already an accomplished officer and would later gain fame—took turns on duty at the batteries, while a third captain, Serocold, had fallen early in the siege. Concerned that news might reach his wife about a naval captain being killed without mentioning names, he wrote to her about this tragic event, expressing: "I am very busy, yet I admit I am in all my glory; apart from you, I wouldn’t want to be anywhere else but here, for all the world." On July 7th, the first outwork fell. The assault on the others then continued consistently and methodically until the 19th, when all had been taken, and the besiegers faced the town walls.
During this time Nelson, as always, was continually at the front and among the most exposed. Out of six guns in the battery which he calls "ours," five were disabled in six days. On the 12th at daylight, a heavy fire opened from the town, which, he says, "seldom missed our battery;" and at seven o'clock a shot, which on the ricochet cleared his head by a hair's breadth, drove sand into his face and right eye with such violence as to incapacitate him. He spoke lightly and cheerfully of the incident to Lord Hood, "I got a little hurt this morning: not much, as you may judge by my writing," and remained absent from duty only the regular twenty-four hours; but, after some fluctuations of hope, the sight of the eye was permanently lost to him. Of General Stuart's conduct in the operations he frequently speaks with cordial admiration. "He is not sparing of himself on any occasion, he every night sleeps with us in the advanced battery. If I may be allowed to judge, he is an extraordinary good judge of ground. No officer ever deserved success more." At the same time he expresses dissatisfaction with some of the subordinate army officers, to whose inefficiency he attributes the necessity for undue personal exertion on the general's part: "The General is not well. He fatigues himself too much, but I can't help seeing he is obliged to do it. He has not a person to forward his views,—the engineer sick, the artillery captain not fit for active service; therefore every minute thing must be done by himself, or it is not done at all."
During this time, Nelson was, as always, at the front and among the most exposed. Out of six guns in the battery he calls "ours," five were taken out of action in six days. On the 12th at daybreak, heavy fire opened from the town, which, he says, "seldom missed our battery;" and at seven o'clock a shot that ricocheted barely missed his head and blasted sand into his face and right eye with such force that it left him incapacitated. He spoke lightly and cheerfully about the incident to Lord Hood, saying, "I got a little hurt this morning: not much, as you may judge by my writing," and was only absent from duty for the usual twenty-four hours; however, after some fluctuations of hope, he permanently lost sight in that eye. He often praises General Stuart's conduct in the operations with warm admiration. "He doesn’t hold back for himself on any occasion; he sleeps with us every night in the advanced battery. If I can judge, he’s an extraordinary good judge of ground. No officer deserves success more." At the same time, he expresses dissatisfaction with some of the lower-ranking army officers, attributing the need for undue personal effort on the general's part to their inefficiency: "The General is not well. He exhausts himself too much, but I can’t help noticing he has to do it. He doesn’t have anyone to support his plans—the engineer is sick, the artillery captain isn’t fit for active duty; so every little task must be done by him, or it won’t be done at all."
The work was tedious and exhausting, and the malaria of the hot Corsican summer told heavily on men's health and patience. The supply of ammunition, and of material of war generally, for the army seems to have been inadequate; and heavy demands were made upon the fleet, not only for guns, which could be returned, but for powder and shot, the expenditure of which might prove embarrassing before they could be renewed. The troops also were not numerous enough, under the climatic conditions, to do all their own duty. In such circumstances, when two parties are working together to the same end, but under no common control, each is prone to think the other behindhand in his work and exacting in his demands. "Why don't Lord Hood land 500 men to work?" said Colonel Moore, the general's right-hand man. "Our soldiers are tired." Nelson, on the other hand, thought that Moore wanted over-much battering done to the breach of a work, before he led the stormers to it; and Hood, who was receiving frequent reports of the preparations of the French fleet in Toulon, was impatient to have the siege pushed, and thought the army dilatory. "The rapidity with which the French are getting on at Toulon," he wrote confidentially to Nelson, "makes it indispensably necessary for me to put the whole of the fleet under my command in the best possible state for service; and I must soon apply to the general for those parts of the regiments now on shore, ordered by his Majesty to serve in lieu of marines, to be held in readiness to embark at the shortest notice. I shall delay this application as long as possible."
The work was tiresome and draining, and the malaria from the hot Corsican summer took a toll on everyone’s health and patience. The supply of ammunition and war materials for the army seemed insufficient, and there were heavy requests made on the fleet, not just for guns that could be returned, but for powder and shot, the use of which could become problematic before they could be replenished. The troops also weren’t numerous enough, given the climate, to handle all their responsibilities. In such situations, when two groups are collaborating towards the same goal but without any shared oversight, each tends to think the other is slacking off and demanding too much. "Why doesn't Lord Hood land 500 men to help out?" asked Colonel Moore, the general's right-hand man. "Our soldiers are worn out." On the other hand, Nelson felt that Moore was asking for too much bombardment on the breach before he sent in the attackers; and Hood, who was receiving frequent updates about the preparations of the French fleet in Toulon, was eager to advance the siege and thought the army was dragging its feet. "The speed at which the French are advancing in Toulon," he wrote privately to Nelson, "makes it absolutely necessary for me to prepare the entire fleet under my command in the best condition for action; and I will soon need to ask the general for those parts of the regiments currently ashore, designated by His Majesty to serve in lieu of marines, to be kept ready to embark at a moment's notice. I will postpone this request for as long as possible."
Nelson, being a seaman, sympathized of course with his own service, and with Hood, for whom he had most cordial admiration, both personal and professional. But at the same time he was on the spot, a constant eye-witness to the difficulties of the siege, a clear-headed observer, with sound military instincts, and fair-minded when facts were before him. The army, he wrote to Hood, is harassed to death, and he notices that it suffers from sickness far more than do the seamen. He repeats the request for more seamen, and, although he seems to doubt the reasonableness of the demand, evidently thinks that they should be furnished, if possible. Hood accordingly sent an additional detachment of three hundred, raising the number on shore to the five hundred suggested by Moore. "I had much rather," he wrote, "that a hundred seamen should be landed unnecessarily, than that one should be kept back that was judged necessary." On the other hand, when the general, after a work bearing on the bay had been destroyed, suggests that the navy might help, by laying the ships against the walls, Nelson takes "the liberty of observing that the business of laying wood before walls was much altered of late," and adds the common-sense remark, that "the quantity of powder and shot which would be fired away on such an attack could be much better directed from a battery on shore." This conversation took place immediately after all the outworks had been reduced. It was conducted "with the greatest politeness," he writes, and "the General thanked me for my assistance, but it was necessary to come to the point whether the siege should be persevered in or given up. If the former, he must be supplied with the means, which were more troops, more seamen to work, and more ammunition." Nelson replied that, if the requisite means could not be had on the spot, they could at least hold on where they were till supplied from elsewhere.
Nelson, as a sailor, naturally identified with his own service and admired Hood, both personally and professionally. However, he was also right there, constantly observing the challenges of the siege with a clear head, solid military instincts, and a fair perspective on the facts. In a letter to Hood, he mentioned that the army was being pushed to its limits and noted that they were suffering from illness much more than the sailors were. He reiterated the need for more sailors and, despite seeming unsure about the validity of the request, believed they should be provided if possible. In response, Hood sent an additional three hundred sailors, bringing the total on land to the five hundred recommended by Moore. "I would much prefer," he wrote, "that a hundred sailors be landed unnecessarily than to hold back even one deemed necessary." On the flip side, when the general suggested that the navy could assist by positioning ships against the walls after a work in the bay was destroyed, Nelson took “the liberty of noting that the task of placing wood before walls has changed significantly lately,” and added the practical point that “the amount of powder and shot that would be wasted in such an attack could be much better utilized from a battery on shore.” This conversation occurred right after all the outworks had been dismantled. He noted it was conducted “with the utmost politeness,” and “the General thanked me for my help, but it was crucial to determine whether the siege should continue or be abandoned. If it was to continue, he needed more resources, including troops, sailors to operate, and more ammunition.” Nelson responded that, if they couldn’t get the necessary resources right away, they could at least hold their position until they were supplied from elsewhere.
It will be noticed that Nelson was practically the intermediary between the two commanders-in-chief. In fact, there appears to have been between them some constraint, and he was at times asked to transmit a message which he thought had better go direct. In this particularly delicate situation, one cannot but be impressed with the tact he for the most part shows, the diplomatic ability, which was freely attributed to him by his superiors in later and more influential commands. This was greatly helped by his cordial good-will towards others, combined with disinterested zeal for the duty before him; the whole illumined by unusual sagacity and good sense. He sees both sides, and conveys his suggestions to either with a self-restraint and deference which avert resentment; and he preserves both his calmness and candor, although he notices in the camp some jealousy of his confidential communication with his immediate superior, the admiral. Though never backward to demand what he thought the rights of himself or his associates, Nelson was always naturally disposed to reconcile differences, to minimize causes of trouble, and this native temperament had not yet undergone the warping which followed his later wounds—especially that on the head received at the Nile—and the mental conflict into which he was plunged by his unhappy passion for Lady Hamilton. At this time, in the flush of earlier enthusiasm, delighting as few men do in the joy of battle, he strove to promote harmony, to smooth over difficulties by every exertion possible, either by doing whatever was asked of him, or by judicious representations to others. Thus, when Hood, impatient at the disturbing news from Toulon, wishes to hasten the conclusion by summoning the garrison, in the hope that it may yield at once, the general objected, apparently on the ground that the statement of their own advantages, upon which such a summons might be based, would be prejudicial, if, as was most probable, the demand was rejected. Whatever his reason, Nelson, though indirectly, intimates to Hood that in this matter he himself agrees, upon the whole, with the general, and Hood yields the point,—the more so that he learns from Nelson that the outposts are to be stormed the next night; and sorely was the captain, in his judicious efforts thus to keep the peace, tried by the postponement of the promised assault for twenty-four hours. "Such things are," he wrote to Hood, using a favorite expression. "I hope to God the general, who seems a good officer and an amiable man, is not led away; but Colonel Moore is his great friend."
It’s clear that Nelson was basically the go-between for the two commanding officers. There seemed to be some tension between them, and he was occasionally asked to relay a message that he felt should go straight. In this particularly sensitive situation, it’s impressive how much tact he usually displayed and the diplomatic skills that his superiors later credited him with in more high-profile roles. His friendly nature towards others, along with his selfless commitment to his duties, played a big part in this, all bolstered by his notable insight and common sense. He understood both sides and communicated his suggestions to each with a level of self-control and respect that prevented resentment; he maintained his composure and honesty, even though he sensed some jealousy in the camp over his close communication with his direct superior, the admiral. While he never hesitated to assert what he believed were his rights or those of his colleagues, Nelson was always naturally inclined to resolve conflicts and reduce sources of trouble. This innate temperament hadn’t yet been affected by the hardships from his later injuries—especially the one to his head sustained at the Nile—or the mental struggles caused by his unfortunate infatuation with Lady Hamilton. At this moment, during a period of early enthusiasm, relishing the thrill of battle as few do, he worked hard to foster unity and ease difficulties through any means possible, whether by fulfilling requests made of him or making thoughtful suggestions to others. So when Hood, anxious about the unsettling news from Toulon, wanted to rush things by calling up the garrison, hoping they might surrender immediately, the general objected, probably because stating their own advantages might backfire, especially if the request was most likely to be rejected. Whatever his reasoning, Nelson subtly indicated to Hood that he mostly agreed with the general regarding this matter, leading Hood to concede the point—especially after finding out from Nelson that the outposts were scheduled to be stormed the following night; Nelson's patience was tested by the delay of the anticipated assault for another twenty-four hours. "Such things are," he wrote to Hood, using a phrase he often liked. "I hope to God the general, who seems like a good officer and a nice man, doesn’t get misled; but Colonel Moore is his close friend."
The feeling between the land and sea services was emphasized in the relations existing between Lord Hood and Colonel Moore, who afterwards, as Sir John Moore, fell gloriously at Corunna. To these two eminent officers fortune denied the occasion to make full proof of their greatness to the world; but they stand in the first rank of those men of promise whose failure has been due, not to their own shortcomings, but to the lack of opportunity. Sir John Moore has been the happier, in that the enterprise with which his name is chiefly connected, and upon which his title to fame securely rests, was completed, and wrought its full results; fortunate, too, in having received the vindication of that great action at the hands of the most eloquent of military historians. His country and his profession may well mourn a career of such fair opening so soon cut short. But daring and original in the highest degree as was the march from Salamanca to Sahagun, it did not exceed, either in originality or in daring, the purposes nourished by Lord Hood, which he had no opportunity so to execute as to attract attention. Condemned to subordinate positions until he had reached the age of seventy, his genius is known to us only by his letters, and by the frustrated plans at St. Kitts in 1782, and at Golfe Jouan in 1794, in the former of which, less fortunate than Moore, he failed to realize his well-grounded hope of reversing, by a single blow, the issues of a campaign.
The connection between the land and naval forces was highlighted in the relationship between Lord Hood and Colonel Moore, who later became Sir John Moore and fell heroically at Corunna. These two distinguished officers never got the chance to fully demonstrate their greatness to the world; however, they are among those promising individuals whose lack of success stemmed not from their own faults but from missed opportunities. Sir John Moore is somewhat luckier because the mission he is best known for, which earned him his fame, was completed and achieved significant results; he also received recognition for that pivotal action from the most eloquent military historians. His country and profession can rightly mourn a promising career that was cut short too soon. Although the march from Salamanca to Sahagun was incredibly bold and original, it didn’t surpass the ambitions that Lord Hood had, which he never had the chance to carry out in a way that attracted attention. Forced into lesser roles until he was seventy, his brilliance is known to us only through his letters and the unfulfilled plans at St. Kitts in 1782 and Golfe Jouan in 1794. In the former, unlike Moore, he was unable to realize his justified hope of changing the outcome of a campaign with one decisive action.
It is to be regretted that two such men could not understand each other cordially. Hood, we know from his letters, was "of that frame and texture that I cannot be indifferent,"—"full of anxiety, impatience, and apprehension,"—when service seemed to him slothfully done. Moore, we are told by Napier, "maintained the right with vehemence bordering upon fierceness." Had he had the chief command on shore, it is possible that the two, impetuous and self-asserting though they were, might have reached an understanding. But in the most unfortunate disagreement about Bastia,—wherein it is to a naval officer of to-day scarcely possible to do otherwise than blame the sullen lack of enterprise shown by the army,—and afterwards at Calvi, Moore appeared to Hood, and to Nelson also, as the subordinate, the power behind the throne, who was prompting a line of action they both condemned. No position in military life is more provocative of trouble than to feel you are not dealing with the principal, but with an irresponsible inferior; and the situation is worse, because one in which it is almost impossible to come to an issue. Moore's professional talent and force of character naturally made itself felt, even with a man of Stuart's ability. Hood and Nelson recognized this, and they resented, as inspired by a junior, what they might have combated dispassionately, if attributed to the chief. There was friction also between Moore and Elliot, the viceroy of the island. Doubtless, as in all cases where suspicion, not to say jealousy, has been begot, much more and worse was imagined by both parties than actually occurred. The apportionment of blame, or prolonged discussion of the matter, is out of place in a biography of Nelson. To that it is of moment, only because it is proper to state that Nelson, on the spot and in daily contact,—Nelson, upon whose zeal and entire self-devotion at this period no doubt is cast,—agreed in the main with Hood's opinion as to what the latter called the San Fiorenzo leaven, of which Moore was to them the exponent. It is true that Nelson naturally sympathized with his profession and his admiral, whom he heartily admired; but some corrective, at least, to such partiality, was supplied by his soreness about the latter's omission duly to report his services at Bastia, of which he just now became aware. The estrangement between the two commanders-in-chief was doubtless increased by the apparent reluctance, certainly the lack of effort, to see one another frequently.
It’s unfortunate that two such men couldn’t get along well. Hood, as we know from his letters, was "the kind of person who I can’t ignore,"—"filled with anxiety, impatience, and worry,"—when he thought the job was being done lazily. Moore, as Napier tells us, "argued fiercely, almost aggressively," for what he believed was right. If he had been in charge on land, it’s possible that the two, though impulsive and assertive, could have found common ground. But during the unfortunate disagreement over Bastia—where it’s hard for today’s naval officers not to criticize the army’s lack of initiative—and later at Calvi, Moore seemed to Hood, and also to Nelson, like the lesser authority, the one behind the scenes, pushing for a course of action they both disapproved of. There’s no more troublesome position in military life than feeling like you’re not dealing with the main decision-maker, but with an unaccountable subordinate; it’s a situation that makes it nearly impossible to resolve issues. Moore’s professional skill and strong character were evident, even to someone as capable as Stuart. Hood and Nelson recognized this and resented what they saw as influence from a junior officer, which they might have handled more reasonably if it were coming from the commander. There was also tension between Moore and Elliot, the island’s viceroy. As often happens where suspicion, not to mention jealousy, arises, both sides likely imagined much more and much worse than what actually took place. It’s not appropriate to assign blame or discuss the matter in detail in a biography of Nelson. It’s relevant only to note that Nelson, who was present and in daily contact—Nelson, whose dedication and commitment during this time are beyond question—mostly agreed with Hood’s view on what he called the San Fiorenzo influence, which Moore represented for them. It’s true that Nelson naturally aligned with his profession and admired his admiral, but his irritation over the latter’s failure to properly report his actions at Bastia, which he had just learned about, provided some balance to that bias. The distance between the two commanding officers was likely worsened by their clear reluctance, or at least lack of effort, to see each other often.
The principal work, called by Nelson the Mozelle battery, was carried before daylight of July 19, and before dark all the outposts were in the hands of the British. "I could have wished to have had a little part in the storm," wrote Nelson, characteristically covetous of strenuous action, "if it was only to have placed the ladders and pulled away the palisadoes. However, we did the part allotted to us." That day a summons was sent to the garrison, but rejected, and work upon batteries to breach the town walls was then pushed rapidly forward; for it was becoming more and more evident that the siege must be brought to an end, lest the entire force of besiegers should become disabled by sickness. On the 28th the batteries were ready, and General Stuart sent in word that he would not fire upon the hospital positions, where indicated by black flags. The besieged then asked for a truce of twenty-five days, undertaking to lay down their arms, if not by then relieved. The general and admiral refused, but were willing to allow six days. This the garrison in turn rejected; and on the night of the 30th four small vessels succeeded in eluding the blockading frigates and entering supplies, which encouraged the besieged. On the 31st the batteries opened, and after thirty-six hours' heavy cannonade the town held out a flag of truce. An arrangement was made that it should surrender on the 10th of August, if not relieved; the garrison to be transported to France without becoming prisoners of war.
The main operation, which Nelson referred to as the Mozelle battery, started before dawn on July 19, and by nightfall, all the outposts were under British control. "I would have liked to have had a small role in the assault," Nelson wrote, typically eager for action, "even if it was just to set up the ladders and remove the palisades. Still, we did our assigned part." That day, a demand was sent to the garrison, but it was turned down, and work on the batteries to breach the town walls was quickly advanced; it was becoming increasingly clear that the siege needed to end, or the entire besieging force might be incapacitated by illness. By the 28th, the batteries were ready, and General Stuart communicated that he would not target the hospital positions marked by black flags. The defenders then requested a ceasefire of twenty-five days, promising to surrender if not relieved by that time. The general and admiral declined but agreed to a six-day truce. However, the garrison rejected this offer, and on the night of the 30th, four small ships managed to slip past the blockading frigates and deliver supplies, boosting the defenders' morale. On the 31st, the batteries fired, and after thirty-six hours of heavy bombardment, the town displayed a flag of truce. An agreement was reached for it to surrender on August 10 if not relieved, with the garrison to be transported to France without being taken as prisoners of war.
No relief arriving, the place capitulated on the day named. It was high time for the besiegers. "We have upwards of one thousand sick out of two thousand," wrote Nelson, "and the others not much better than so many phantoms. We have lost many men from the season, very few from the enemy." He himself escaped more easily than most. To use his own quaint expression, "All the prevailing disorders have attacked me, but I have not strength enough for them to fasten upon. I am here the reed amongst the oaks: I bow before the storm, while the sturdy oak is laid low." The congenial moral surroundings, in short,—the atmosphere of exertion, of worthy and engrossing occupation,—the consciousness, to him delightful, of distinguished action, of heroic persistence through toil and danger,—prevailed even in his physical frame over discomfort, over the insidious climate, and even over his distressing wound. "This is my ague day," he writes when the batteries opened; "I hope so active a scene will keep off the fit. It has shaken me a good deal; but I have been used to them, and now don't mind them much." "Amongst the wounded, in a slight manner, is myself, my head being a good deal wounded and my right eye cut down; but the surgeons flatter me I shall not entirely lose the sight. It confined me, thank God, only one day, and at a time when nothing particular happened to be doing." "You must not think my hurts confined me," he tells his wife; "no, nothing but the loss of a limb would have kept me from my duty, and I believe my exertions conduced to preserve me in this general mortality." In his cheery letters, now, no trace is perceptible of the fretful, complaining temper, which impaired, though it did not destroy, the self-devotion of his later career. No other mistress at this time contended with honor for the possession of his heart; no other place than the post of duty before Calvi distracted his desires, or appealed to his imagination through his senses. Not even Lord Hood's report of the siege of Bastia, which here came to his knowledge, and by which he thought himself wronged, had bitterness to overcome the joy of action and of self-contentment.
No relief showed up, and the place surrendered on the designated day. It was well past due for the besiegers. "We have over one thousand sick out of two thousand," wrote Nelson, "and the others are hardly better than ghosts. We have lost many men to the season, and very few to the enemy." He himself managed to escape more easily than most. Using his own quirky expression, "All the usual ailments have come after me, but I don't have enough strength for them to take hold. I am like a reed among oaks: I bend before the storm, while the sturdy oak gets knocked down." The favorable moral surroundings, in short—the atmosphere of effort, of meaningful and engaging work—the awareness, which he found delightful, of distinguished action, of heroic perseverance through hardship and danger—overcame even in his physical condition the discomfort, the tricky climate, and even his painful wound. "This is my fever day," he writes when the batteries opened; "I hope such an active scene will keep the fit away. It has shaken me quite a bit; but I'm used to them, and now I don't mind them much." "Among the wounded, in a slight way, is myself, my head being quite injured and my right eye cut; but the surgeons assure me I won't completely lose my sight. It kept me down for just one day, thankfully, at a time when nothing special was happening." "You mustn't think my injuries held me back," he tells his wife; "no, nothing but the loss of a limb would have kept me from my duty, and I believe my efforts contributed to keep me alive in this general mortality." In his cheerful letters now, there’s no sign of the fretful, complaining attitude that had affected, though not destroyed, the self-dedication of his later career. At this time, no other passion contested for his heart's attention; no other place except the duty before Calvi distracted him or appealed to his imagination through his senses. Not even Lord Hood's report of the siege of Bastia, which he learned about here and felt he had been wronged by, could overshadow the joy of action and self-satisfaction.
Not many days were required, after the fall of Calvi, to remove the fleet, and the seamen who had been serving on shore, from the pestilential coast. Nelson seems to have been intrusted with the embarkation of the prisoners in the transports which were to take them to Toulon. He told his wife that he had been four months landed, and felt almost qualified to pass his examination as a besieging general, but that he had no desire to go on with campaigning. On the 11th of August, the day after the delivery of the place, he was again on board the "Agamemnon," from whose crew had been drawn the greatest proportion of the seamen for the batteries. One hundred and fifty of them were now in their beds. "My ship's company are all worn out," he wrote, "as is this whole army, except myself; nothing hurts me,—of two thousand men I am the most healthy. Every other officer is scarcely able to crawl." Among the victims of the deadly climate was Lieutenant Moutray, the son of the lady to whom, ten years before, he had been so warmly attracted in the West Indies. Nelson placed a monument to him in the church at San Fiorenzo.
Not many days after the fall of Calvi, the fleet and the sailors who had been on land were moved away from the unhealthy coast. Nelson seemed to have been given the task of overseeing the embarkation of the prisoners onto the ships that would take them to Toulon. He told his wife that he had been on land for four months and felt almost ready for his exam as a siege general, but he didn’t want to continue campaigning. On August 11th, the day after the surrender of the place, he was back on board the "Agamemnon," from which most of the sailors for the batteries had been taken. One hundred and fifty of them were now in bed. "My crew are all worn out," he wrote, "as is this entire army, except for me; nothing hurts me—of two thousand men, I am the healthiest. Every other officer can barely move." Among the casualties of the deadly climate was Lieutenant Moutray, the son of the woman he had been so drawn to in the West Indies ten years earlier. Nelson placed a monument for him in the church at San Fiorenzo.
On the 10th of August the "Agamemnon" sailed from Calvi, and after a stop at San Fiorenzo, where Hood then was, reached Leghorn on the 18th. Now that the immediate danger of the siege was over, Nelson admitted to his wife the serious character of the injury he had received. The right eye was nearly deprived of sight,—only so far recovered as to enable him to distinguish light from darkness. For all purposes of use it was gone; but the blemish was not to be perceived, unless attention was drawn to it.
On August 10th, the "Agamemnon" set sail from Calvi, and after stopping at San Fiorenzo, where Hood was at the time, arrived in Leghorn on the 18th. With the immediate threat of the siege behind them, Nelson confessed to his wife the seriousness of his injury. He had almost completely lost sight in his right eye; it had only recovered enough for him to tell light from dark. For all practical purposes, it was gone; however, the damage wasn’t noticeable unless someone pointed it out.
At Leghorn the ship lay for a month,—the first period of repose since she went into commission, a year and a half before. While there, the physician to the fleet came on board and surveyed the crew, finding them in a very weak state, and unfit to serve. This condition of things gave Nelson hopes that, upon the approaching departure of Lord Hood for England, the "Agamemnon" might go with him; for he was loath to separate from an admiral whose high esteem he had won, and upon whom he looked as the first sea-officer of Great Britain. Hood was inclined to take her, and to transfer the ship's company bodily to a seventy-four. This he considered no more than due to Nelson's distinguished merit and services, and he had indeed offered him each ship of that rate whose command fell vacant in the Mediterranean; but the strong sense of attachment to those who had shared his toils and dangers, of reluctance that they should see him willing to leave them, after their hard work together,—that combination of sympathy and tact which made so much of Nelson's success as a leader of men,—continued to prevent his accepting promotion that would sever his ties to them.
At Leghorn, the ship stayed for a month—the first break since it was commissioned a year and a half earlier. While there, the fleet's doctor came aboard and examined the crew, finding them in a very weak condition and unfit for duty. This situation gave Nelson hope that, with Lord Hood's upcoming departure for England, the "Agamemnon" might go with him; he was reluctant to part ways with an admiral who held him in high regard and whom he viewed as Britain's top naval officer. Hood was willing to take her and transfer the crew entirely to a seventy-four. He believed this was the least he could do for Nelson’s outstanding merit and contributions, and he had indeed offered him command of every ship of that size that became available in the Mediterranean; however, his strong sense of loyalty to those who shared his hardships, and his reluctance to leave them after all they had been through together—that blend of empathy and understanding that was key to Nelson’s success as a leader—kept him from accepting a promotion that would break those bonds.
The exigencies of the war in the Mediterranean forbade the departure, even of a sixty-four with a disabled crew. A full month later her sick-list was still seventy-seven, out of a total of less than four hundred. "Though certainly unfit for a long cruise," Nelson said, "we are here making a show,"—a military requirement not to be neglected or despised. He accepted the disappointment, as he did all service rubs at this period, with perfect temper and in the best spirit. "We must not repine," he wrote to his wife on the 12th of October, the day after Hood sailed for England. "Lord Hood is very well inclined towards me, but the service must ever supersede all private consideration. I hope you will spend the winter cheerfully. Do not repine at my absence; before spring I hope we shall have peace, when we must look out for some little cottage." She fretted, however, as some women will; and he, to comfort her, wrote more sanguinely about himself than the facts warranted. "Why you should be uneasy about me, so as to make yourself ill, I know not. I feel a confident protection in whatever service I may be employed upon; and as to my health, I don't know that I was ever so truly well. I fancy myself grown quite stout." To his old captain, Locker, he admitted that he could not get the better of the fever.
The demands of the war in the Mediterranean prevented the departure, even of a sixty-four with a disabled crew.
Corsica being now wholly in the power of its inhabitants, allied with and supported by Great Britain, his attention and interest were engrossed by the French fleet centring upon Toulon, the dominant factor of concern to the British in the Mediterranean, where Vice-Admiral Hotham had succeeded Hood as commander-in-chief. Nelson realizes more and more the mistake that was made, when a fraction of it was allowed to escape battle in the previous June. The various reasons by which he had at first excused the neglect to bring it to action no longer weigh with him. He does not directly blame, but he speaks of the omission as an "opportunity lost,"—a phrase than which there are few more ominous, in characterizing the closely balanced, yet weighty, decisions, upon which the issues of war depend. Nothing, he thinks, can prevent the junction of the two fragments,—then in Golfe Jouan and Toulon,—one of which, with more resolution and promptitude on Hotham's part, might have been struck singly at sea a few months before; and if they join, there must follow a fleet action, between forces too nearly equal to insure to Great Britain the decisive results that were needed. The thought he afterwards expressed, "Numbers only can annihilate," was clearly floating in his brain,—inarticulate, perhaps, as yet, but sure to come to the birth. "If we are not completely victorious,—I mean, able to remain at sea whilst the enemy must retire into port,—if we only make a Lord Howe's victory, take a part, and retire into port, Italy is lost." Criticism clearly is going on in his mind; and not mere criticism, (there is enough and to spare of that in the world, and not least in navies), but criticism judicious, well considered, and above all fruitful. The error of opportunity lost he had seen; the error of a partial victory—"a Lord Howe's victory," another opportunity lost—he intuitively anticipated for the Mediterranean, and was soon to see. He was already prepared to pass an accurate judgment instantly, when he saw it. May we not almost hear, thundering back from the clouds that yet veiled the distant future of the Nile, the words, of which his thought was already pregnant, "You may be assured I will bring the French fleet to action the moment I can lay my hands upon them."
Corsica is now totally controlled by its people, supported by Great Britain. Nelson's focus is on the French fleet based in Toulon, which is a major concern for the British in the Mediterranean, where Vice-Admiral Hotham has taken over from Hood as commander-in-chief. Nelson increasingly realizes the mistake made when a part of the fleet was allowed to escape during the previous June's battle. The reasons he initially used to justify this lapse no longer hold weight for him. He doesn’t directly assign blame but refers to the missed opportunity as an "opportunity lost"—a phrase that carries a heavy significance in the crucial decisions that determine the outcome of war. He believes nothing can stop the two French fleet divisions—from Golfe Jouan and Toulon—from joining together. One of these could have been engaged and defeated at sea months earlier with more decisiveness from Hotham. If they unite, a naval battle will inevitably occur, and the forces will be too evenly matched to guarantee the decisive victory that Britain needs. The thought he later voiced, "Only numbers can annihilate," is clearly on his mind—perhaps still unarticulated, but certain to emerge. "If we are not completely victorious—I mean, able to stay at sea while the enemy must retreat to port—if we only achieve a Lord Howe's victory, taking a piece and then retreating, Italy is lost." He is clearly reflecting critically, not just criticizing for the sake of it (there's enough of that in the world, especially in navies), but rather offering well-considered and constructive criticism. He recognizes the mistake of the lost opportunity and anticipates the error of a partial victory—a "Lord Howe's victory," which would be yet another opportunity lost for the Mediterranean, and soon he would see it. He is already ready to make a precise judgment the moment it occurs. Can we almost hear the echoing words from the clouds that conceal the future at the Nile: "You can be sure I will engage the French fleet the moment I can get my hands on them."
The year closed with the British fleet watching, as best it could, the French ships, which, according to Nelson's expectation, had given the blockaders the slip, and had made their junction at Toulon. There was now no great disparity in the nominal force of the two opponents, the British having fourteen ships-of-the-line, the French fifteen; and it was quite in the enemy's power to fulfil his other prediction, by keeping Hotham in hot water during the winter. In the middle of November the "Agamemnon" had to go to Leghorn for extensive repairs, and remained there, shifting her main and mizzen masts, until the 21st of December. Nelson, who had endured with unyielding cheerfulness the dangers, exposure, and sickliness of Calvi, found himself unable to bear patiently the comfort of quiet nights in a friendly port, while hot work might chance outside. "Lying in port is misery to me. My heart is almost broke to find the Agamemnon lying here, little better than a wreck. I own my sincere wish that the enemy would rest quiet until we are ready for sea, and a gleam of hope sometimes crosses me that they will." "I am uneasy enough for fear they will fight, and Agamemnon not present,—it will almost break my heart; but I hope the best,—that they are only boasting at present, and will be quiet until I am ready." "It is misery," he repeats, "for me to be laid up dismantled."
The year ended with the British fleet keeping an eye on the French ships, which, as Nelson expected, had slipped past the blockaders and joined up at Toulon. There was now little difference in the apparent strength of the two sides, with the British having fourteen ships-of-the-line and the French having fifteen; it was entirely within the enemy's power to fulfill Nelson's other prediction by keeping Hotham busy throughout the winter. In mid-November, the "Agamemnon" had to head to Leghorn for major repairs and stayed there, replacing her main and mizzen masts, until December 21. Nelson, who had endured the dangers, exposure, and illness at Calvi with relentless cheerfulness, found it hard to stay patient in the comfort of calm nights in a friendly harbor while intense action might be happening outside. "Being in port is miserable for me. My heart is almost broken seeing the Agamemnon here, barely better than a wreck. I genuinely wish the enemy would stay quiet until we are ready to set sail, and I sometimes catch a glimmer of hope that they will." "I'm anxious enough thinking they might fight without the Agamemnon— that would nearly break my heart; but I remain hopeful—that they're just boasting right now and will hold off until I'm ready." "It's torture," he repeats, "for me to be stuck here in disrepair."
It was during this period of comparative inactivity in port, followed by monotonous though arduous winter cruising off Toulon, which was broken only by equally dreary stays at San Fiorenzo, that Nelson found time to brood over the neglect of which he thought himself the victim, in the omission of Lord Hood to notice more markedly his services in Corsica. It is usually disagreeable to the uninterested bystander to see an excessive desire for praise, even under the guise of just recognition of work done. Words of complaint, whether heard or read, strike a discord to one who himself at the moment is satisfied with his surroundings. We all have an instinctive shrinking from the tones of a grumbler. Nelson's insistence upon his grievances has no exemption from this common experience; yet it must be remembered that these assertions of the importance of his own services, and dissatisfaction with the terms in which they had been mentioned, occur chiefly, if not solely, in letters to closest relations,—to his wife and uncle,—and that they would never have become known but for the after fame, which has caused all his most private correspondence to have interest and to be brought to light. As a revelation of character they have a legitimate interest, and they reveal, or rather they confirm, what is abundantly revealed throughout his life,—that intense longing for distinction, for admiration justly earned, for conspicuous exaltation above the level of his kind, which existed in him to so great a degree, and which is perhaps the most potent—certainly the most universal—factor in military achievement. They reveal this ambition for honor, or glory, on its weak side; on its stronger side of noble emulation, of self-devotion, of heroic action, his correspondence teems with its evidence in words, as does his life in acts. To quote the words of Lord Radstock, who at this period, and until after the battle of Cape St. Vincent, was serving as one of the junior admirals in the Mediterranean, and retained his friendship through life, "a perpetual thirst of glory was ever raging within him." "He has ever showed himself as great a despiser of riches as he is a lover of glory; and I am fully convinced in my own mind that he would sooner defeat the French fleet than capture fifty galleons."
It was during this time of relatively little activity in port, followed by a tedious but challenging winter spent cruising off Toulon, interrupted only by equally dreary periods at San Fiorenzo, that Nelson took the opportunity to reflect on what he felt was neglect regarding the lack of acknowledgment for his services in Corsica from Lord Hood. It’s usually uncomfortable for an outside observer to witness an excessive craving for recognition, even when it’s framed as a reasonable call for acknowledgment of work done. Complaints, whether spoken or written, create a disconnect for someone who is currently content with their situation. We all instinctively pull back from the complaints of a grumbler. Nelson’s focus on his grievances is no exception to this common feeling; however, it’s worth noting that his claims about the significance of his own contributions and his dissatisfaction with how they were addressed mainly show up in letters to his closest family members—his wife and uncle—and would never have been known if not for the posthumous fame that brought his most private correspondence to light. As a display of character, these letters hold legitimate interest and confirm what is clearly present throughout his life: an intense desire for recognition, for praise rightfully earned, and for distinguishing himself above others, which was remarkably strong in him and is perhaps the most powerful—and definitely the most universal—element in military success. They showcase this ambition for honor or glory in its weaker aspects; in its stronger manifestations of noble competition, self-sacrifice, and heroic deeds, his correspondence is filled with evidence, just as his actions throughout life are. To quote Lord Radstock, who was serving as one of the junior admirals in the Mediterranean during this time and maintained his friendship with Nelson throughout his life, "a perpetual thirst for glory was always raging within him." "He has always shown himself to be just as contemptuous of wealth as he is passionate about glory; and I am fully convinced that he would rather defeat the French fleet than capture fifty galleons."
After all allowance made, however, it cannot be denied that there is in these complaints a tone which one regrets in such a man. The repeated "It was I" jars, by the very sharpness of its contrast, with the more generous expressions that abound in his correspondence. "When I reflect that I was the cause of re-attacking Bastia, after our wise generals gave it over, from not knowing the force, fancying it 2,000 men; that it was I, who, landing, joined the Corsicans, and with only my ship's party of marines, drove the French under the walls of Bastia; that it was I, who, knowing the force in Bastia to be upwards of 4,000 men, as I have now only ventured to tell Lord Hood, landed with only 1,200 men, and kept the secret till within this week past;—what I must have felt during the whole siege may be easily conceived. Yet I am scarcely mentioned. I freely forgive, but cannot forget. This and much more ought to have been mentioned. It is known that, for two months, I blockaded Bastia with a squadron; only fifty sacks of flour got into the town. At San Fiorenzo and Calvi, for two months before, nothing got in, and four French frigates could not get out, and are now ours. Yet my diligence is not mentioned; and others, for keeping succours out of Calvi for a few summer months, are handsomely mentioned. Such things are. I have got upon a subject near my heart, which is full when I think of the treatment I have received.... The taking of Corsica, like the taking of St. Juan's, has cost me money. St. Juan's cost near £500; Corsica has cost me £300, an eye, and a cut across my back; and my money, I find, cannot be repaid me."
After everything is considered, however, it's undeniable that there's a tone in these complaints that is disappointing coming from such a man. The repeated "It was I" stands out sharply against the more generous expressions that fill his letters. "When I think that I was the reason we attacked Bastia again, after our wise generals decided to abandon it, because I misjudged the force and thought it was only 2,000 men; that it was I who, after landing, teamed up with the Corsicans and, with just my ship's crew of marines, pushed the French back to the walls of Bastia; that it was I who, knowing the force in Bastia was over 4,000 men, as I've only just dared to tell Lord Hood, landed with only 1,200 men and kept that secret until just this past week;—what I must have felt throughout the entire siege is easy to imagine. Yet I am barely mentioned. I freely forgive but cannot forget. This and much more should have been noted. It's known that, for two months, I blockaded Bastia with a squadron; only fifty sacks of flour got into the town. At San Fiorenzo and Calvi, for two months before that, nothing got in, and four French frigates couldn't get out, and now they're ours. Yet my hard work isn't acknowledged; while others, for keeping supplies out of Calvi for a few summer months, are greatly praised. Such things are. I’ve gotten onto a topic that deeply concerns me, especially when I think about how I've been treated.... Taking Corsica, like taking St. Juan's, has cost me money. St. Juan's cost nearly £500; Corsica has cost me £300, an eye, and a cut across my back; and I've found that my money can't be repaid."
As regards the justice of his complaints, it seems to the author impossible to read carefully Hood's two reports, after the fall of Bastia and that of Calvi, and not admit, either that Nelson played a very unimportant part in the general operations connected with the reduction of Corsica, with which he became associated even before it was effectively undertaken, and so remained throughout; or else that no due recognition was accorded to him in the admiral's despatches. Had he not become otherwise celebrated in his after life, he would from these papers be inferred to stand, in achievement, rather below than above the level of the other captains who from time to time were present. That this was unfair seems certain; and notably at Calvi, where, from the distance of the operations from the anchorage, and the strained relations which kept Hood and Stuart apart, he was practically the one naval man upon whose discretion and zeal success depended. It is probable, however, that the failure to do him justice proceeded as much from awkward literary construction, phrases badly turned, as from reluctance to assign due prominence to one subordinate among several others.
Regarding the fairness of his complaints, the author finds it impossible to read Hood's two reports after the fall of Bastia and Calvi without acknowledging that Nelson either played a very minor role in the overall efforts related to the conquest of Corsica— which he was involved with even before it officially began and continued to be involved—or that he didn’t receive proper credit in the admiral's reports. If he hadn't become famous later in life, one might conclude from these documents that he achieved less than the other captains who were occasionally present. This seems unfair, particularly at Calvi, where, due to the distance between the operations and the anchorage and the tense relations that kept Hood and Stuart apart, he was essentially the only naval officer on whose judgment and dedication the success relied. However, it’s likely that the failure to give him credit stemmed more from poor writing and awkward phrasing than from an unwillingness to highlight one subordinate over several others.
How readily, yet how keenly, he derived satisfaction, even from slight tributes of recognition, is shown by the simplicity and pleasure with which he quoted to Mrs. Nelson the following words of Sir Gilbert Elliot, the Viceroy of Corsica, then and always a warm friend and admirer: "I know that you, who have had such an honourable share in this acquisition, will not be indifferent at the prosperity of the Country which you have so much assisted to place under His Majesty's government." "Whether these are words of course and to be forgotten," wrote Nelson, "I know not; they are pleasant, however, for the time." Certainly his demands for praise, if thus measured, were not extreme.
How easily, yet how intensely, he found satisfaction, even from small signs of recognition, is shown by the straightforwardness and joy with which he quoted to Mrs. Nelson the following words of Sir Gilbert Elliot, the Viceroy of Corsica, who was always a loyal friend and supporter: "I know that you, who played such an honorable role in this achievement, will not be indifferent to the prosperity of the Country that you have helped so much to bring under His Majesty's government." "Whether these are just polite words meant to be forgotten," wrote Nelson, "I do not know; they are, however, pleasant for the moment." Certainly, his expectations for praise, if assessed in this way, were not excessive.
FOOTNOTES:
[20] The italics are the author's.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The italics are the author's.
[21] The italics are Nelson's.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The italics are Nelson's.
[23] Author's italics.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Author's italics.
CHAPTER V.
NELSON'S SERVICES WITH THE FLEET IN THE MEDITERRANEAN UNDER ADMIRAL HOTHAM.—PARTIAL FLEET ACTIONS OF MARCH 13 AND 14, AND JULY 13.—NELSON ORDERED TO COMMAND A DETACHED SQUADRON CO-OPERATING WITH THE AUSTRIAN ARMY IN THE RIVIERA OF GENOA.
NELSON'S SERVICES WITH THE FLEET IN THE MEDITERRANEAN UNDER ADMIRAL HOTHAM.—PARTIAL FLEET ACTIONS OF MARCH 13 AND 14, AND JULY 13.—NELSON ORDERED TO COMMAND A DETACHED SQUADRON COOPERATING WITH THE AUSTRIAN ARMY IN THE RIVIERA OF GENOA.
JANUARY-JULY, 1795. AGE, 36.
JANUARY-JULY 1795. AGE 36.
From the naval point of view, as a strategic measure, the acquisition of Corsica by the British was a matter of great importance. It was, however, only one among several factors, which went to make up the general military and political situation in the Mediterranean at the end of the year 1794. Hitherto the exigencies of the well-nigh universal hostilities in which France had been engaged, and the anarchical internal state of that country, had prevented any decisive operations by her on the side of Italy, although she had, since 1792, been formally at war with the Kingdom of Sardinia, of which Piedmont was a province.
From a naval perspective, acquiring Corsica was a crucial strategic move for the British. However, it was just one of several factors that shaped the overall military and political landscape in the Mediterranean by the end of 1794. Until then, the urgent demands of the widespread conflict France was involved in, along with the chaotic internal situation in the country, had prevented any significant military actions in Italy, even though France had officially been at war with the Kingdom of Sardinia, of which Piedmont was a part, since 1792.
At the close of 1794 the conditions were greatly modified. In the north, the combined forces of Great Britain, Austria, and Holland had been driven out of France and Belgium, and the United Provinces were on the point of submission. On the east, the Austrians and Prussians had retreated to the far bank of the Rhine, and Prussia was about to withdraw from the coalition, which, three years before, she had been so eager to form. On the south, even greater success had attended the French armies, which had crossed the Pyrenees into Spain, driving before them the forces of the enemy, who also was soon to ask for peace. It was therefore probable that operations in Italy would assume greatly increased activity, from the number of French soldiers released elsewhere, as well as from the fact that the Austrians themselves, though they continued the war in Germany, had abandoned other portions of the continent which they had hitherto contested.
At the end of 1794, the situation had changed significantly. In the north, the combined forces of Great Britain, Austria, and Holland had been pushed out of France and Belgium, and the United Provinces were close to surrendering. To the east, the Austrians and Prussians had retreated to the far side of the Rhine, and Prussia was about to leave the coalition it had been so eager to join three years earlier. In the south, the French armies had experienced even greater success, having crossed the Pyrenees into Spain and driving ahead of them, with the enemy soon requesting peace. It was likely that military actions in Italy would become much more intense due to the number of French soldiers becoming available from other areas, and also because the Austrians, while continuing the fight in Germany, had given up on other parts of the continent that they had previously contested.
The political and military conditions in Italy were, briefly, as follows. The region north of the Maritime Alps and in the valley of the Po was, for the most part, in arms against France,—the western province, Piedmont, as part of the Kingdom of Sardinia, whose capital was at Turin, and, to the eastward of it, the duchies of Milan and Mantua, as belonging to Austria. The governments of the numerous small states into which Northern and Central Italy were then divided—Venice, Genoa, Tuscany, the States of the Church, and others—sympathized generally with the opponents of France, but, as far as possible, sought to maintain a formal though difficult neutrality. The position of Genoa was the most embarrassing, because in direct contact with all the principal parties to the war. To the westward, her territory along the Riviera included Vintimiglia, bordering there on the county of Nice, and contained Vado Bay, the best anchorage between Nice and Genoa. To the eastward, it embraced the Gulf of Spezia, continually mentioned by Nelson as Porto Especia.
The political and military situation in Italy was, briefly, as follows. The area north of the Maritime Alps and in the Po Valley was mostly in arms against France—the western province, Piedmont, was part of the Kingdom of Sardinia, with its capital in Turin, and to the east were the duchies of Milan and Mantua, which belonged to Austria. The governments of the many small states that Northern and Central Italy were divided into—Venice, Genoa, Tuscany, the Papal States, and others—generally sympathized with those opposing France but tried to maintain a formal, though challenging, neutrality. Genoa’s position was the most complicated, as it was in direct contact with all the main parties in the war. To the west, its territory along the Riviera included Vintimiglia, which bordered the county of Nice, and had Vado Bay, the best anchorage between Nice and Genoa. To the east, it included the Gulf of Spezia, which Nelson frequently referred to as Porto Especia.
The occupation of the Riviera was of particular moment to the French, for it offered a road by which to enter Italy,—bad, indeed, but better far than those through the passes of the upper Alps. Skirting the sea, it afforded a double line of communications, by land and by water; for the various detachments of their army, posted along it, could in great degree be supplied by the small coasting-vessels of the Mediterranean. So long, also, as it was in their possession, and they held passes of the Maritime Alps and Apennines, as they did in 1794, there was the possibility of their penetrating through them, to turn the left flank of the Sardinian army in Piedmont, which was, in fact, what Bonaparte accomplished two years later. These inducements had led the French to advance into the county of Nice, then belonging to Sardinia, which in the existing state of war it was perfectly proper for them to do; but, not stopping there, they had pushed on past the Sardinian boundary into the neutral Riviera of Genoa, as far as Vado Bay, which they occupied, and where they still were at the end of 1794.
The occupation of the Riviera was especially significant for the French, as it provided a route into Italy—poor, for sure, but much better than those through the high Alpine passes. Following the coastline, it offered two modes of transportation, both by land and by sea; various units of their army stationed along it could largely be supplied by the small coastal vessels of the Mediterranean. As long as it remained in their control and they held the passes of the Maritime Alps and Apennines, as they did in 1794, there was a chance they could move through them to outflank the left side of the Sardinian army in Piedmont, which was exactly what Bonaparte did two years later. These factors led the French to move into the County of Nice, which was then part of Sardinia, and given the current state of war, it was entirely justified for them to do so; however, they didn't stop there—they pushed beyond the Sardinian border into the neutral Riviera of Genoa, reaching Vado Bay, which they occupied and still held by the end of 1794.
Genoa submitted under protest to this breach of her neutrality, as she did both before[25] and after to similar insults from parties to the war. She derived some pecuniary benefit from the condition of affairs,—her ports, as well as those of Tuscany, immediately to the southward, becoming depots of a trade in grain, which supplied both the French army and the southern provinces of France. These food stuffs, absolutely essential to the French, were drawn chiefly from Sicily and the Barbary States, and could not be freely taken into French ports by the larger class of sea-going vessels, in face of the British fleet. They were, therefore, commonly transshipped in Leghorn or Genoa, and carried on by coasters. As so much Genoese sea-coast was occupied by French divisions, it was practically impossible for British cruisers to distinguish between vessels carrying corn for the inhabitants and those laden for the armies, and entirely impossible to know that what was intended for one object would not be diverted to another. If, too, a vessel's papers showed her to be destined for Vintimiglia, near the extreme of the Genoese line, there could be no certainty that, having got so far, she might not quietly slip by into a French port, either Nice or beyond. The tenure of the neutral Riviera of Genoa by the French army was a threat to the allies of Great Britain in Piedmont and Lombardy, as well as to the quasi-neutrals in Genoa, Tuscany, Venice, and the Papal States. Its further advance or successes would imperil the latter, and seriously affect the attitude of Naples, hostile to the Republic, but weak, timid, and unstable of purpose. On the other hand, the retention of its position, and much more any further advance, depended upon continuing to receive supplies by way of the sea. To do so by the shore route alone was not possible. Southern France itself depended upon the sea for grain, and could send nothing, even if the then miserable Corniche road could have sufficed, as the sole line of communications for forty thousand troops.
Genoa protested against this violation of her neutrality, just as she did both before[25] and after similar offenses from parties involved in the war. She gained some financial advantage from the situation—her ports, along with those in Tuscany to the south, became hubs for a grain trade that supplied both the French army and the southern regions of France. These food supplies, which were vital to the French, mainly came from Sicily and the Barbary States, and could not be easily brought into French ports by larger sea vessels due to the British fleet. Therefore, they were usually transferred in Leghorn or Genoa and transported by smaller, coastal ships. Since so much of the Genoese coastline was controlled by French forces, it was practically impossible for British cruisers to tell whether vessels were carrying grain for local residents or for the armies, making it completely uncertain if what was intended for one purpose might not be redirected for another. If a ship's documents indicated it was headed for Vintimiglia, near the edge of the Genoese boundary, there was no guarantee that once it reached that point, it wouldn’t quietly slip into a French port, either in Nice or farther on. The French army's hold on the neutral Riviera of Genoa posed a threat to Great Britain's allies in Piedmont and Lombardy, as well as to the quasi-neutrals in Genoa, Tuscany, Venice, and the Papal States. Any further progress or successes would endanger the latter and significantly impact the stance of Naples, which was hostile to the Republic but weak, timid, and indecisive. On the other hand, maintaining their position—and especially any further advances—depended on continuing to receive supplies by sea. Relying solely on the coastal route was not feasible. Southern France itself relied on the sea for grain and couldn’t send anything, even if the then inadequate Corniche road could suffice as the only communication line for forty thousand troops.
Thus the transfer of Corsica to Great Britain had a very important bearing upon the military and political conditions. At the moment when Italy was about to become the scene of operations which might, and in the event actually did, exercise a decisive influence upon the course of the general war, the British position was solidified by the acquisition of a naval base, unassailable while the sea remained in their control and the Corsicans attached to their cause, and centrally situated with reference to the probable scenes of hostilities, as well as to the points of political interest, on the mainland of Italy. The fleet resting upon it, no longer dependent upon the reluctant hospitality of Genoese or Tuscan ports, or upon the far distant Kingdom of Naples, was secure to keep in its station, whence it menaced the entire seaboard trade of France and the Riviera, as well as the tenure of the French army in the latter, and exerted a strong influence upon the attitude of both Genoa and Tuscany, who yielded only too easily to the nearest or most urgent pressure. The fleet to which Nelson belonged had spent the greater part of the year 1794 in securing for itself, as a base of operations, this position, by far the most suitable among those that could be considered at all. It remained now to utilize the advantage obtained, to make the situation of the French army in Italy untenable, by establishing an indisputable control of the sea. To this the holding of Corsica also contributed, indirectly; for the loss of the island forced the French fleet to go to sea, in order, if possible, to expedite its re-conquest. In all the operations resulting from these various motives, Nelson bore a part as conspicuous and characteristic as he had done in the reduction of Corsica. Almost always on detached service, in positions approaching independent command, he was continually adding to his reputation, and, what was far more important, maturing the professional character, the seeds of which had been so bountifully bestowed upon him by nature. His reputation, won hard and step by step, obtained for him opportunity; but it was to character, ripened by experience and reflection, that he owed his transcendent successes.
Thus, the transfer of Corsica to Great Britain had a significant impact on military and political conditions. At the moment when Italy was about to become the stage for operations that could, and eventually did, influence the direction of the overall war, Britain's position was strengthened by gaining a naval base that was secure as long as they controlled the sea and the Corsicans were aligned with them. This base was centrally located in relation to the likely areas of conflict, as well as key political interests on the Italian mainland. The fleet stationed there was no longer relying on the slow cooperation of Genoese or Tuscan ports, or the distant Kingdom of Naples, allowing it to operate securely and threaten the entire seaboard trade of France and the Riviera. It also impacted the French army's hold in that region and significantly influenced Genoa and Tuscany, who would easily yield to the most immediate pressure. The fleet that included Nelson had spent most of 1794 securing this position as a base of operations, the best option available. It was now essential to take advantage of this gain to make the French army's position in Italy unsustainable by establishing clear control of the sea. Holding Corsica played a part in this, albeit indirectly, as losing the island compelled the French fleet to venture out to sea in hopes of accelerating its recapture. Throughout these various operations, Nelson was as active and prominent as he had been during the reduction of Corsica. Frequently on detached service and approaching independent command, he continuously built his reputation, but more importantly, developed his professional character, which nature had generously equipped him with. His hard-earned reputation opened doors for him, but it was his character—refined by experience and reflection—that led to his remarkable successes.
The scheme for the government of the island as a British dependency, stated broadly, was that it should be administered by the Corsicans themselves, under a viceroy appointed by the British crown. Its military security was provided for by the control of the sea, and by British soldiers holding the fortified ports,—a duty for which the Corsicans themselves had not then the necessary training. Nelson, who did not yet feel the impossibility of sustaining a successful over-sea invasion, when control of the sea was not had, was anxious about the expected attempts of the French against the island, and urged the viceroy, by private letter, to see that Ajaccio, which he regarded as the point most favorable to a descent, was garrisoned sufficiently to keep the gates shut for a few days. This caution did not then proceed from a distrust of the Corsicans' fidelity, without which neither France nor England could hold the island, as was shown by the quickness of its transfer two years later, when the inhabitants again revolted to France. "With this defence," he wrote, "I am confident Ajaccio, and I believe I may say the island of Corsica, would be perfectly safe until our fleet could get to the enemy, when I have no doubt the event would be what every Briton might expect."
The plan for governing the island as a British territory, broadly speaking, was that it would be run by the Corsicans themselves, under a viceroy chosen by the British crown. Its military security would come from controlling the sea and from British troops stationed at the fortified ports—a task for which the Corsicans didn't have the necessary training at that time. Nelson, who still believed it was possible to maintain a successful overseas invasion without sea control, was concerned about the anticipated attempts by the French to take the island. He privately urged the viceroy to ensure that Ajaccio, which he viewed as the most likely landing point, had enough troops to keep the gates shut for a few days. This caution didn't stem from a distrust of the Corsicans' loyalty, without which neither France nor England could hold the island, as demonstrated by its swift transfer back to France two years later when the locals revolted again. "With this defense," he wrote, "I am confident Ajaccio, and I believe I can say the island of Corsica, would be completely safe until our fleet could reach the enemy, when I have no doubt the outcome would be what every Briton would expect."
The repairs of the "Agamemnon" were completed before Nelson's anxious apprehensions of a battle taking place in his absence could be fulfilled. On the 21st of December, 1794, he sailed from Leghorn with the fleet, in company with which he remained from that time until the following July, when he was sent to the Riviera of Genoa on special detached service. He thus shared the severe cruising of that winter, as well as the abortive actions of the spring and early summer, where the admiral again contrived to lose opportunities of settling the sea campaign, and with it, not improbably, that of the land also. There were plain indications in the port of Toulon that a maritime enterprise of some importance was in contemplation. In the outer road lay fifteen sail-of-the-line, the British having then fourteen; but more significant of the enemy's purpose was the presence at Marseilles of fifty large transports, said to be ready. "I have no doubt," wrote Nelson, "but Porto Especia is their object." This was a mistake, interesting as indicating the slight weight that Nelson at that time attributed to the deterrent effect of the British fleet "in being" upon such an enterprise, involving an open-sea passage of over a hundred miles, though he neither expressed nor entertained any uncertainty as to the result of a meeting, if the enemy were encountered. The French Government, not yet appreciating the inefficiency to which its navy had been reduced by many concurrent circumstances, was ready to dispute the control of the Mediterranean, and it contemplated, among other things, a demonstration at Leghorn, similar to that successfully practised at Naples in 1792, which might compel the Court of Tuscany to renounce the formally hostile attitude it had assumed at the bidding of Great Britain; but it does not appear that there was any serious purpose of exposing a large detachment, in the attempt to hold upon the Continent a position, such as Spezia, with which secure communication by land could not be had.
The repairs on the "Agamemnon" were finished before Nelson's worries about a battle happening without him could come true. On December 21, 1794, he set sail from Leghorn with the fleet, which he stayed with until the following July when he was sent to the Riviera of Genoa for special detached service. He thus experienced the tough cruising that winter, as well as the unsuccessful actions in the spring and early summer, where the admiral again managed to miss opportunities to resolve the maritime campaign, possibly affecting the land campaign as well. There were clear signs in the port of Toulon that a significant maritime operation was being planned. In the outer road lay fifteen enemy ships-of-the-line, while the British had fourteen; but what was more telling about the enemy's intentions was the presence at Marseilles of fifty large transports said to be ready. "I have no doubt," Nelson wrote, "that Porto Especia is their target." This was an error, revealing how little importance Nelson attributed at that time to the deterrent effect of the British fleet "in being" regarding such an operation, which involved an open-sea passage of over a hundred miles, though he neither expressed nor doubted the outcome of a confrontation if the enemy were encountered. The French Government, not yet understanding how much its navy had been weakened by various factors, was prepared to challenge control over the Mediterranean, and it was considering, among other things, a show of force at Leghorn, similar to the successful one at Naples in 1792, which could pressure the Court of Tuscany to abandon the openly hostile stance it had taken at the request of Great Britain; however, it does not seem there was a serious intention to deploy a large detachment to maintain a position on the Continent, like Spezia, which would not have secure land communication.
Though none too careful to proportion its projects to the force at its disposal, the Directory sufficiently understood that a detachment at Spezia could not be self-dependent, nor could, with any certainty, combine its operations with those of the army in the Riviera; and also that, to be properly supported at all, there must be reasonably secure and unbroken communication, either by land or water, neither of which was possible until the British fleet was neutralized. The same consideration dictated to it the necessity of a naval victory, before sending out the expedition, of whose assembling the British were now hearing, and which was actually intended for Corsica; although it was known that in the island there had already begun the revulsion against the British rule, which culminated in open revolt the following year. Owing to the dearth of seamen, the crews of the French ships were largely composed of soldiers, and it was thought that, after beating the enemy, four or five thousand of these might be at once thrown on shore at Ajaccio, and that afterwards the main body could be sent across in safety. First of all, however, control of the sea must be established by a battle, more or less decisive.
Although not particularly careful about matching its plans to the resources available, the Directory understood that a unit at Spezia couldn't operate independently, nor could it reliably coordinate its activities with the army in the Riviera. They also knew that to receive proper support, secure and uninterrupted communication—by land or sea—was essential, neither of which was feasible until the British fleet was neutralized. This same rationale led to the need for a naval victory before launching the expedition, which the British were just starting to hear about, and which was actually aimed at Corsica; despite the fact that resistance against British rule had already begun on the island, ultimately leading to open revolt the following year. Due to a shortage of sailors, the crews of the French ships were mostly made up of soldiers, and it was believed that, after defeating the enemy, four or five thousand of these troops could be landed at Ajaccio, with the main force safely transported later. However, establishing control of the sea through a more or less decisive battle was the first priority.
On the 24th of February, 1795, the British fleet arrived at Leghorn, after a very severe cruise of over a fortnight. On the 2d of March Nelson mentioned, in a letter to his wife, that the French were said then to have a hundred and twenty-four transports full of troops, from which he naturally argued that they must mean to attempt something. On the evening of the 8th, an express from Genoa brought Hotham word that they were actually at sea, fifteen ships-of-the-line, with half a dozen or more smaller vessels. He sailed in pursuit early the next morning, having with him thirteen[26] British ships-of-the-line and one Neapolitan seventy-four. Of the former, four were three-decked ships, carrying ninety-eight to one hundred guns, a class of vessel of which the French had but one, the "Sans Culottes," of one hundred and twenty, which, under the more dignified name of "L'Orient," afterwards, met so tragic a fate at the Battle of the Nile; but they had, in compensation, three powerful ships of eighty guns, much superior to the British seventy-fours. As, however, only partial engagements followed, the aggregate of force on either side is a matter of comparatively little importance in a Life of Nelson.
On February 24, 1795, the British fleet arrived at Leghorn after a tough cruise of over two weeks. On March 2, Nelson mentioned in a letter to his wife that the French supposedly had one hundred and twenty-four transports full of troops, which led him to believe they must be planning something. On the evening of the 8th, a messenger from Genoa informed Hotham that the French were actually at sea with fifteen ships of the line, plus around half a dozen smaller vessels. He set sail in pursuit early the next morning, taking with him thirteen British ships of the line and one Neapolitan seventy-four. Of the British ships, four were three-deckers, equipped with ninety-eight to one hundred guns, a type the French only had one of, the "Sans Culottes," which had one hundred and twenty guns and later met a tragic fate at the Battle of the Nile under the more dignified name of "L'Orient." However, the French made up for this with three powerful ships of eighty guns, which were much better than the British seventy-fours. Since only partial engagements followed, the overall force on either side is of relatively little significance in Nelson's life story.
Standing to the northward and westward, with a fresh easterly wind, the British fleet through its lookouts discovered the enemy on the evening of the day of sailing, and by the same means kept touch with them throughout the 10th and 11th; but the baffling airs, frequent in the Mediterranean, prevented the main body seeing them until the morning of the 12th. At daylight, then, they were visible from the "Agamemnon," in company with which were five British ships and the Neapolitan; the remainder of the fleet being so far to the eastward that their hulls were just rising out of the water. The British lying nearly becalmed, the French, who were to windward, bore down to within three miles; but although, in Nelson's judgment, they had a fair opportunity to separate the advanced British ships, with which he was, from the main body, they failed to improve it. Nothing happened that day, and, a fresh breeze from the west springing up at dusk, both fleets stood to the southward with it, the French being to windward. That night one of the latter, a seventy-four, having lost a topmast, was permitted to return to port.
With a cool easterly wind coming from the north and west, the British fleet spotted the enemy on the evening they set sail, and they kept contact with them on the 10th and 11th. However, the tricky winds, common in the Mediterranean, meant the main group couldn't see the enemy until the morning of the 12th. At dawn, they were visible from the "Agamemnon," which was accompanied by five British ships and a Neapolitan vessel; the rest of the fleet was far enough east that their hulls were just peeking out of the water. The British were nearly becalmed while the French, positioned upwind, advanced to within three miles. Despite Nelson believing they had a good chance to split the British ships he was with from the main fleet, they did not take advantage of it. Nothing occurred that day, and as a new breeze from the west picked up in the evening, both fleets sailed south, with the French upwind. That night, one of the French ships, a seventy-four, lost a topmast and was allowed to head back to port.
The next morning the wind was still southwest and squally. Hotham at daylight ordered a general chase, which allowed each ship a certain freedom of movement in endeavoring to close with the French. The "Agamemnon" had been well to the westward, from the start; and being a very handy, quick-working ship, as well as, originally at least, more than commonly fast, was early in the day in a position where she had a fair chance for reaching the enemy. A favorable opportunity soon occurred, one of those which so often show that, if a man only puts himself in the way of good luck, good luck is apt to offer. At 8 A.M. the eighty-gun ship "Ça Ira," third from the rear in the French order, ran on board the vessel next ahead of her, and by the collision lost her fore and main topmasts. These falling overboard on the lee side—in this case the port,[27]—not only deprived her of by far the greater part of her motive power, but acted as a drag on her progress, besides for the time preventing the working of the guns on that side. The "Ça Ira" dropped astern of her fleet. Although this eighty-gun ship was much bigger than his own,—"absolutely large enough to take Agamemnon in her hold," Nelson said,—the latter saw his chance, and instantly seized it with the promptitude characteristic of all his actions. The "Agamemnon," if she was not already on the port tack, opposite to that on which the fleets had been during the night, must have gone about at this time, and probably for this reason. She was able thus to fetch into the wake of the crippled vessel, which a frigate had already gallantly attacked, taking advantage of the uselessness of the Frenchman's lee batteries, encumbered with the wreckage of the masts.
The next morning, the wind was still coming from the southwest and was gusty. Hotham ordered a general chase at daylight, giving each ship some freedom to maneuver and get closer to the French. The "Agamemnon" was well to the west from the start, and being a very agile and quick-responding ship, as well as, at least originally, faster than most, she found herself in a good position early in the day to reach the enemy. A lucky opportunity came up soon, which showed that if you put yourself in the path of good fortune, it’s likely to show up. At 8 A.M., the eighty-gun ship "Ça Ira," which was third from the back in the French formation, collided with the ship right in front of it and lost its fore and main topmasts in the process. These masts fell overboard on the lee side—in this case, the port side,[27]—which not only severely reduced her power but also acted as a drag on her movement, temporarily preventing her guns on that side from being used. The "Ça Ira" fell behind her fleet. Although this eighty-gun ship was much larger than his own—“absolutely large enough to take Agamemnon in her hold,” Nelson remarked—the latter saw his chance and quickly took it with the decisive action that characterized all his efforts. By this time, the "Agamemnon," if she wasn't already on the port tack, the opposite of where the fleets had been during the night, must have turned around for this reason. She managed to get into the wake of the damaged ship, which a frigate had already courageously attacked, taking advantage of the French ship's useless lee batteries, hindered by the wreckage of the masts.
At 10 A.M., the "Ça Ira" and the "Agamemnon" having passed on opposite tacks, the latter again went about and stood in pursuit under all sail, rapidly nearing the enemy, who at this time was taken in tow by a frigate. But although in this position the French ship could not train her broadside guns upon her smaller opponent, she could still work freely the half-dozen stern guns, and did so with much effect. "So true did she fire," noted Nelson, "that not a shot missed some part of the ship, and latterly the masts were struck every shot, which obliged me to open our fire a few minutes sooner than I intended, for it was my intention to have touched his stern before a shot was fired." At quarter before eleven, the "Agamemnon" was within a hundred yards of the "Ça Ira's" stern, and this distance she was able to keep until I P.M. Here, by the use of the helm and of the sails, the ship alternately turned her starboard side to the enemy to fire her batteries, and again resumed her course, to regain the distance necessarily lost at each deviation. This raking fire not only killed and wounded many of the "Ça Ira's" crew, and injured the hull, but, what was tactically of yet greater importance, preventing the replacing of the lost spars. Thus was entailed upon the French that night a crippled ship, which they could not in honor abandon, nor yet could save without fighting for her,—a tactical dilemma which was the direct cause of the next day's battle.
At 10 A.M., the "Ça Ira" and the "Agamemnon," having passed each other on opposite courses, the latter turned around and gave chase under full sail, quickly closing in on the enemy, who was then being towed by a frigate. Although the French ship couldn't aim its broadside guns at the smaller opponent, it could still effectively use its half-dozen stern guns. "She was so accurate," noted Nelson, "that not a shot missed some part of the ship, and eventually every shot hit the masts, which forced me to open our fire a few minutes earlier than I planned, as I intended to reach his stern before firing." At a quarter to eleven, the "Agamemnon" was within a hundred yards of the "Ça Ira's" stern and maintained that distance until 1 P.M. With the aid of the helm and sails, the ship took turns showing its starboard side to the enemy to fire its guns before resuming its course to regain any distance lost during these maneuvers. This relentless fire not only killed and injured many of the "Ça Ira's" crew and damaged the hull, but, more importantly, it prevented the replacement of the lost spars. As a result, the French were left that night with a crippled ship they could not abandon in good faith, nor could they save without fighting for it—a tactical dilemma that directly led to the battle the next day.
Brief and cursory as is the notice of this action of the "Agamemnon" in Hotham's despatches, he mentions no other ship-of-the-line as engaged at this time, and states that she and the frigate were so far detached from the fleet, that they were finally obliged to retire on account of other enemy's vessels approaching. Nelson's journal says that two French ships, one of one hundred and twenty guns and a seventy-four, were at gunshot distance on the bow of the "Ça Ira" when he began to attack her. These, with several others of their fleet, went about some time before one, at which hour the frigate, towing the disabled ship, tacked herself, and also got the latter around. The "Agamemnon" standing on, she and the "Ça Ira" now crossed within half pistol-range; but, the French guns being too much elevated, the shot passed over their antagonist, who lost in this day's work only seven men wounded. Nelson then again tacked to follow, but by this time the French admiral had apparently decided that his crippled vessel must be rescued, and his fleet no longer defied by a foe so inferior in strength. Several of the enemy were approaching, when Hotham made a signal of recall, which Nelson on this occasion at least had no hesitation in obeying, and promptly. There was no pursuit, the hostile commander-in-chief being apparently satisfied to save the "Ça Ira" for the moment, without bringing on a general engagement.
Brief and brief as the notice of the "Agamemnon's" actions in Hotham's reports is, he mentions no other ship of the line being involved at that time, and notes that she and the frigate were so far separated from the fleet that they ultimately had to retreat due to other enemy ships approaching. Nelson's journal states that two French ships, one with one hundred and twenty guns and another with seventy-four, were close enough to fire at the "Ça Ira” when he started to attack her. These, along with several other ships from their fleet, turned away a while before one o'clock, at which time the frigate, towing the damaged ship, changed direction and managed to get the latter around as well. The "Agamemnon" continued on, and she and the "Ça Ira" now passed within half pistol-range; however, with the French guns aimed too high, their shots went over their opponent, who only had seven men wounded in this engagement. Nelson then changed direction again to pursue, but by that time, the French admiral seemed to have decided that his disabled vessel needed to be rescued, as his fleet no longer felt challenged by an enemy so much weaker. Several enemy ships were closing in when Hotham signaled to recall, which Nelson had no hesitation in obeying, and did so quickly. There was no pursuit, as the opposing commander-in-chief seemed satisfied to save the "Ça Ira" for the moment, avoiding a general battle.
In this affair, what is mainly to be noted in Nelson is not the personal courage, nor yet even the professional daring, or the skill which justified the daring. It may be conceded that all these were displayed in a high degree, but they can scarcely be claimed to have exceeded that shown by other officers, not a few, when equally tried. What is rather striking, account for it how we will, is that Nelson, here as always, was on hand when opportunity offered; that after three days of chase he, and he only, was so far to the front as to be able to snatch the fleeting moment. "On looking round," he says at ten o'clock, when about to begin the action, "I saw no ship-of-the-line within several miles to support me; the Captain was the nearest on our lee-quarter." With the looseness and lack of particularity which characterize most logs and despatches remaining from those days, and make the comprehension of naval engagements, other than the greatest, a matter of painful and uncertain inference, it is impossible accurately to realize the entire situation; but it seems difficult to imagine that among all the other thirteen captains, "where emulation was common to all and zeal for his Majesty's service the general description of the fleet," to use Hotham's words, none could have been on the spot to support so promising an attempt, had there been "common" that sort of emulation which takes a man ever to the front, not merely in battle but at all times,—the spirit that will not and cannot rest while anything remains to be done, ever pressing onward to the mark. To this unquestionably must be added the rapid comprehension of a situation, and the exceeding promptitude with which Nelson seized his opportunity, as well as the tenacious intrepidity with which he held to his position of advantage, despite the imminent threat to his safety from the uninjured and gigantic "Sans Culottes," barely out of gunshot to windward. It is right also to note the accessibility to advice, a feature of his genial and kindly temperament, to which he admitted much of the success was due. The trait is not rare in mankind in general, but it is exceptional in men of a character so self-reliant and decided as Nelson. "If the conduct of the Agamemnon on the 13th," he generously wrote, "was by any means the cause of our success on the 14th, Lieutenant Andrews has a principal share in the merit, for a more proper opinion was never given by an officer than the one he gave me on the 13th, in a situation of great difficulty."
In this situation, what stands out in Nelson is not just his personal bravery or even his professional boldness, or the expertise that justified that boldness. While it's true that all these qualities were demonstrated to a high degree, they can't really be said to be greater than what many other officers also showed under similar circumstances. What’s particularly striking is that Nelson, as always, was right there when the opportunity arose; after three days of pursuing, he was the only one far enough ahead to seize that fleeting moment. "Looking around," he noted at ten o'clock, just before the battle began, "I saw no ship of the line within several miles to support me; the Captain was the closest on our lee-quarter." Due to the vague and general nature of most logs and dispatches from that time, understanding naval engagements, except for the most prominent ones, is often a challenging and uncertain task. However, it’s hard to believe that among the other thirteen captains, all of whom shared the same drive for service to the crown, in the words of Hotham, none could have been in a position to support such a promising initiative, had there been a genuine sense of competition that pushed someone to the forefront, not only in battle but at all times—the kind of spirit that can’t rest until everything is done, always striving toward the goal. Additionally, we must recognize his quick grasp of situations and the remarkable speed with which he acted on his opportunity, as well as the unwavering courage with which he maintained his advantage, despite the looming threat from the intact and formidable "Sans Culottes," just out of gun range to windward. It’s also important to mention his openness to advice, which was a result of his friendly and accommodating nature, and he credited much of the success to this trait. While this characteristic is not uncommon among people in general, it is unusual for someone as self-assured and decisive as Nelson. "If the actions of the Agamemnon on the 13th," he generously wrote, "were in any way responsible for our success on the 14th, Lieutenant Andrews deserves significant credit, for no officer ever provided a better opinion than the one he gave me on the 13th, in a challenging situation."
The same hot spirit, the same unwearying energy, made itself still more manifest the next day, when were to be garnered the results of his own partial, yet, in its degree, decisive action of the 13th. "Sure I am," said he afterwards, "had I commanded our fleet on the 14th, that either the whole French fleet would have graced my triumph, or I should have been in a confounded scrape." A confounded scrape he would have been in on the 13th, and on other days also, great and small, had there been a different issue to the risks he dared, and rightly dared, to take. Of what man eminent in war, indeed, is not the like true? It is the price of fame, which he who dare not pay must forfeit; and not fame only, but repute.
The same intense spirit and relentless drive were even more evident the next day when he was set to reap the results of his own partial, yet significant, actions from the 13th. "I'm sure," he later said, "if I had led our fleet on the 14th, either the entire French fleet would have joined my victory, or I would have found myself in a serious mess." He would have been in a serious mess on the 13th and on other days, big and small, if the outcomes of the risks he took—which he rightly took—had turned out differently. Isn't this true for any notable military leader? It’s the cost of glory, which those who aren't willing to pay must give up; and it's not just glory, but also reputation.
During the following night the "Sans Culottes" quitted the French fleet. The wind continued southerly, both fleets standing to the westward, the crippled "Ça Ira" being taken in tow by the "Censeur," of seventy-four guns. At daylight of March 14, being about twenty miles southwest from Genoa, these two were found to be much astern and to leeward, of their main body,—that is, northeast from it. The British lay in the same direction, and were estimated by Nelson to be three and a half miles from the disabled ship and her consort, five miles from the rest of the French. At 5.30 A.M. a smart breeze sprang up from the northwest, which took the British aback, but enabled them afterwards to head for the two separated French ships. Apparently, from Nelson's log, this wind did not reach the main body of the enemy, a circumstance not uncommon in the Mediterranean. Two British seventy-fours, the "Captain" and the "Bedford," in obedience to signals, stood down to attack the "Censeur" and the "Ça Ira;" and, having in this to undergo for twenty minutes a fire to which they could not reply, were then and afterwards pretty roughly handled. They were eventually left behind, crippled, as their own fleet advanced. The rest of the British were meantime forming in line and moving down to sustain them. The French main body, keeping the southerly wind, wore in succession to support their separated ships, and headed to pass between them and their enemies. The latter, having formed, stood also towards these two, which now lay between the contestants as the prize to the victor.
During the next night, the "Sans Culottes" left the French fleet. The wind remained from the south, with both fleets heading west. The damaged "Ça Ira" was being towed by the "Censeur," which had seventy-four guns. At daybreak on March 14, about twenty miles southwest of Genoa, these two ships were found far behind and downwind of their main group—specifically, northeast of it. The British ships were in the same direction, and Nelson estimated they were three and a half miles from the disabled ship and its escort, and five miles from the rest of the French fleet. At 5:30 A.M., a strong breeze picked up from the northwest, catching the British off guard but eventually allowing them to approach the two separated French vessels. According to Nelson's log, this wind didn’t reach the main body of the enemy, which is a common occurrence in the Mediterranean. Two British seventy-fours, the "Captain" and the "Bedford," moved down to engage the "Censeur" and the "Ça Ira," and after enduring twenty minutes of fire without being able to return fire, they were hit pretty hard. They eventually fell behind, damaged, as their own fleet moved forward. Meanwhile, the rest of the British were lining up and advancing to support them. The main body of the French fleet, taking advantage of the southerly wind, maneuvered to back their separated ships and positioned themselves to go between them and their enemies. The British, now formed up, also headed towards these two ships, which lay between them as the prize for the victor.
Apparently, in these manoeuvres, the leading British ships ran again into the belt of southerly wind,—which the French kept throughout,—while part of the centre and rear were left becalmed, and had little or no share in the cannonade that followed. Under these conditions the resolution of the French admiral seems to have faltered, for instead of passing to leeward—north—of his endangered ships, which was quite in his power, and so covering them from the enemy, he allowed the latter to cut them off, thus insuring their surrender. His fleet kept to windward of the British, passing fairly near the two leading ships, the "Illustrious" and the "Courageux," who thus underwent a "concentration by defiling," that took the main and mizzen masts out of both, besides killing and wounding many of their people. The "Princess Royal" and "Agamemnon," which came next, could only engage at long range. "The enemy's fleet kept the southerly wind," wrote Nelson in his journal, "which enabled them to keep their distance, which was very great. At 8 A.M. they began to pass our line to windward, and the Ça Ira and Le Censeur were on our lee side; therefore the Illustrious, Courageux, Princess Royal, and Agamemnon were obliged to fight on both sides of the ship." At five minutes past ten A.M. both the French vessels struck, the "Ça Ira" having lost her three masts, and the "Censeur" her mainmast. It was past one P.M. when firing wholly ceased; and the enemy then crowded all possible sail to the westward, the British fleet lying with their heads to the southeast.
It seems that during these maneuvers, the leading British ships ran into a stretch of southerly wind—which the French maintained—while some ships in the center and rear were left without wind and had little or no involvement in the following cannonade. Given these circumstances, the French admiral's determination appears to have wavered. Instead of moving north to cover his vulnerable ships from the enemy, which he could have easily done, he allowed the enemy to cut them off, ultimately ensuring their surrender. His fleet stayed upwind of the British, passing quite close to the two leading ships, the "Illustrious" and the "Courageux," which experienced a concentrated attack that took out their main and mizzen masts and caused many casualties among their crew. The "Princess Royal" and "Agamemnon," which followed next, could only engage at long range. "The enemy's fleet maintained the southerly wind," wrote Nelson in his journal, "which allowed them to keep a significant distance. At 8 A.M. they began to pass our line to windward, with Ça Ira and Le Censeur on our lee side; therefore, the Illustrious, Courageux, Princess Royal, and Agamemnon were forced to fight on both sides of the ship." At five minutes past ten A.M., both French ships surrendered, with the "Ça Ira" having lost her three masts, and the "Censeur" her mainmast. The firing completely stopped after 1 P.M., and the enemy then set all possible sails to the west, while the British fleet remained with their heads pointed southeast.
When the British line was forming, between seven and eight in the morning, Nelson was directed by Vice-Admiral Goodall, the second in command, to take his station astern of his flagship, the "Princess Royal," of ninety guns. Immediately behind the "Agamemnon" came the "Britannia," carrying Hotham's flag. This position, and the lightness of the wind, serve to explain how Nelson came to take the step he mentions in several letters; going on board the "Britannia," after the two French vessels struck, and urging the commander-in-chief to leave the prizes in charge of the British frigates and crippled ships-of-the-line, and vigorously to pursue the French, who having lost four ships out of their fleet, by casualty or capture, were now reduced to eleven sail. "I went on board Admiral Hotham as soon as our firing grew slack in the van, and the Ça Ira and the Censeur had struck, to propose to him leaving our two crippled ships, the two prizes, and four frigates, to themselves, and to pursue the enemy; but he, much cooler than myself, said, 'We must be contented, we have done very well.' Now, had we taken ten sail, and had allowed the eleventh to escape, when it had been possible to have got at her, I could never have called it well done. Goodall backed me; I got him to write to the admiral, but it would not do: we should have had such a day as I believe the annals of England never produced."
When the British line was forming, between seven and eight in the morning, Nelson was directed by Vice-Admiral Goodall, second in command, to take his position behind his flagship, the "Princess Royal," which had ninety guns. Right behind the "Agamemnon" was the "Britannia," flying Hotham's flag. This position and the lightness of the wind explain why Nelson decided to take the step he mentions in several letters: he went on board the "Britannia" after the two French vessels surrendered and urged the commander-in-chief to leave the prizes in charge of the British frigates and damaged ships-of-the-line and to vigorously pursue the French, who had lost four ships from their fleet due to casualties or capture and were now down to eleven sail. "I went on board Admiral Hotham as soon as our firing was less intense in the front, and the Ça Ira and the Censeur had struck, to suggest that we leave our two damaged ships, the two prizes, and four frigates to look after themselves, and to go after the enemy; but he, much calmer than I was, said, 'We must be content, we have done very well.' Now, had we captured ten sail and allowed the eleventh to escape when we could have gone after her, I could never have called it well done. Goodall supported me; I got him to write to the admiral, but it didn’t work: we could have had a day that I believe the history of England has never seen."
Nelson here evidently assumes that it was possible to have got at the French fleet. After a man's reputation has been established, there is always the danger of giving undue weight to his opinions, expressed at an earlier time, somewhat casually, and not under the sobering sense of responsibility. Hotham may have questioned the possibility of getting at the French effectively, having regard to the fickle lightness of the wind then prevalent, and to the fact that, besides the two ships partially dismasted and for the moment useless, two others, the "Captain" and the "Bedford," had suffered severely in sails and rigging. He would also doubtless consider that the three-decked ships, of which he had four, were notoriously bad sailers, and sure to drop behind if the chase lasted long, leaving to eight ships, including the "Neapolitan," the burden of arresting the enemy, who had shown very fair offensive powers in the morning. Nelson was not blind to these facts, and not infrequently alludes to them. "Had we only a breeze, I have no doubt we should have given a destructive blow to the enemy's fleet." "Sure I am, that had the breeze continued, so as to have allowed us to close with the enemy, we should have destroyed their whole fleet." Whether these remarks apply to the heat of the engagement, or to the proposed chase, which Hotham declined to permit, is not perfectly clear; but inasmuch as the second part of the action of the 14th consisted, actually, in the French filing by the "Courageux" and the "Illustrious," upon whom their fire was thus concentrated, while the rest of the British were becalmed out of gunshot, it is very possible he was thinking of that incident only, which doubtless would have taken a very different turn had the main body been able to come down. His wish to pursue is unquestionable, both from his assertion and from the whole character of his career before and after; and a casual remark, written ten days after the affair, shows his opinion confirmed by time. "Had our good admiral followed the blow, we should probably have done more, but the risk was thought too great."
Nelson clearly believes that it was possible to engage the French fleet. Once someone has built a reputation, there's always a risk of giving too much weight to their earlier, somewhat casual opinions, especially those made without the pressure of responsibility. Hotham might have doubted the feasibility of effectively pursuing the French fleet due to the unpredictable wind conditions at the time and the fact that, besides the two ships that were partially dismasted and temporarily out of action, the "Captain" and the "Bedford" had also suffered significant damage to their sails and rigging. He likely also took into account that the three-decked ships, of which he had four, were known for being poor sailers and would fall behind if the chase went on for too long, leaving the task of stopping the enemy to the eight remaining ships, including the "Neapolitan," who had already demonstrated decent offensive capabilities in the morning. Nelson was aware of these facts and often referred to them. "If only we had a breeze, I have no doubt we would have dealt a crippling blow to the enemy's fleet." "I'm sure that if the breeze had continued and allowed us to close in on the enemy, we would have destroyed their entire fleet." It isn't entirely clear whether these comments refer to the heat of the battle or the proposed chase, which Hotham chose not to allow. However, since the second part of the action on the 14th involved the French vessels passing by the "Courageux" and the "Illustrious," which became the focus of their fire while the rest of the British fleet was stuck out of range, it's very likely he was only thinking about that situation, which could have turned out very differently had the main body been able to engage. His desire to pursue is unmistakable, both from his statements and from the overall course of his career before and after; a casual remark made ten days after the incident confirms his opinion over time. "If our good admiral had followed up on the attack, we probably could have achieved more, but the risk was considered too great."
The question attracts attention, both impersonally, as of military interest, and also as bearing upon Nelson's correctness of judgment, and professional characteristics, at this time. As regards the amount of wind, it is sufficient to say that the French fleet, having borne away to the westward in the afternoon, was next day out of sight.[28] Most of the British might equally have been out of sight from the position in which they remained. As for the risk—of course there was risk; but the whole idea of a general chase rests upon the fact that, for one reason or another, the extreme speed of the ships in each fleet will vary, and that it is always probable that the fastest of the pursuers can overtake the slowest of the pursued. The resulting combats compel the latter either to abandon his ships, or to incur a general action, which, from the fact of his flight, it is evident he has reason to avoid. In this case many of the retreating French were crippled,—some went off towed by frigates, and some without bowsprits. Unquestionably, the pursuers who thus engage may be overpowered before those following them come up; but the balance of chances is generally in their favor, and in the particular instance would have been markedly so, as was shown by the results of the two days' fighting, which had proved the superior quality of the British ships' companies.
The question draws attention, both in an impersonal sense, as a matter of military interest, and also in relation to Nelson's judgment and professional traits at this time. Regarding the wind, it’s enough to say that the French fleet, having moved westward in the afternoon, was out of sight the next day.[28] Most of the British could have easily been out of sight from their position as well. As for the risk—there was definitely some risk; however, the whole idea of a general chase relies on the fact that, for various reasons, the speeds of the ships in each fleet will differ, and it’s always likely that the fastest of the pursuers can catch up with the slowest of the pursued. The resulting battles force the latter to either abandon their ships or face a general engagement, which, due to their flight, it’s clear they want to avoid. In this instance, many of the retreating French ships were damaged—some left being towed by frigates, while others had no bowsprits. Certainly, the pursuers who engage may be overwhelmed before those trailing them catch up; but the odds are generally in their favor, and in this particular case, it would have been especially so, as demonstrated by the results of the two days of fighting, which showed the superior quality of the British crews.
The fact is, neither Hotham nor his opponent, Martin, was willing to hazard a decisive naval action, but wished merely to obtain a temporary advantage,—the moment's safety, no risks. "I have good reason," wrote Hotham in his despatch, "to hope, from the enemy's steering to the westward after having passed our fleet, that whatever might have been their design, their intentions are for the present frustrated." It is scarcely necessary to say that a man who looks no further ahead than this, who fails to realize that the destruction of the enemy's fleet is the one condition of permanent safety to his cause, will not rise to the conception presented to him on his quarter-deck by Nelson. The latter, whether by the sheer intuition of genius, which is most probable, or by the result of well-ordered reasoning, which is less likely, realized fully that to destroy the French fleet was the one thing for which the British fleet was there, and the one thing by doing which it could decisively affect the war. As he wrote four years later to St. Vincent, "Not one moment shall be lost in bringing the enemy to battle; for I consider the best defence for his Sicilian Majesty's dominions is to place myself alongside the French."
The truth is, neither Hotham nor his opponent, Martin, was willing to risk a decisive naval clash. They only wanted to gain a temporary edge—just a moment’s safety, with no risks involved. "I have good reason," Hotham wrote in his report, "to hope that the enemy turning west after passing our fleet means that whatever their plan was, their intentions are currently thwarted." It hardly needs saying that a person who looks no further than this, who doesn’t grasp that defeating the enemy's fleet is the only way to ensure lasting safety for his cause, won’t appreciate the vision Nelson presented to him on his quarter-deck. Nelson, whether through his instinctive genius, which is most likely, or through well-structured reasoning, which is less probable, understood completely that destroying the French fleet was the primary reason the British fleet was there, and the only action that could significantly influence the war. As he wrote four years later to St. Vincent, "Not one moment shall be lost in bringing the enemy to battle; for I believe the best defense for His Sicilian Majesty's territories is to position myself alongside the French."
Yet Nelson was far from unconscious of the difficulties of Hotham's position, or from failing duly to allow for them. "Admiral Hotham has had much to contend with, a fleet half-manned, and in every respect inferior to the enemy; Italy calling him to her defence, our newly acquired kingdom[29] calling might and main, our reinforcements and convoy hourly expected; and all to be done without a force by any means adequate to it." Add to this the protection of British trade, of whose needs Nelson was always duly sensible. Yet, as one scans this list of troubles, with the query how to meet them running in his mind, it is scarcely possible not to see that each and every difficulty would have been solved by a crushing pursuit of the beaten French, preventing their again taking the sea. The British admiral had in his control no means to force them out of port. Therefore, when out, he should by no means have allowed them to get back. It is only just to Hotham, who had been a capable as well as gallant captain, to say that he had objected to take the chief command, on account of his health.
Yet Nelson was well aware of the challenges Hotham faced and took them into account. "Admiral Hotham has had a lot to deal with: a fleet that’s understaffed and weaker than the enemy; Italy calling for his defense; our newly acquired kingdom calling for support; reinforcements and convoy expected any moment; and all of this needing to be accomplished without a force that is remotely adequate." On top of that was the need to protect British trade, something Nelson was always mindful of. However, as one goes through this list of challenges, with the question of how to address them in mind, it’s hard not to see that each issue could have been solved by a determined pursuit of the defeated French, preventing them from returning to the sea. The British admiral had no way to force them out of port, so once they were out, he absolutely should have made sure they couldn’t come back. It’s only fair to Hotham, who was both a capable and brave captain, to mention that he had refused to take the main command because of his health.
Nelson was delighted with his own share in these affairs, and with the praise he received from others for his conduct,—especially that on the 13th. He was satisfied, and justly, that his sustained and daring grapple with the "Ça Ira," in the teeth of her fleet, had been the effective cause of the next day's action and consequent success. It was so, in truth, and it presented an epitome of what the 14th and 15th ought to have witnessed,—a persistent clinging to the crippled ships, in order to force their consorts again into battle. "You will participate," he wrote to his uncle, "in the pleasure I must have felt in being the great cause of our success. Could I have been supported, I would have had Ça Ira on the 13th." Elliot, the Viceroy of Corsica, wrote to him: "I certainly consider the business of the 13th of March as a very capital feature in the late successful contest with the French fleet; and the part which the Agamemnon had in it must be felt by every one to be one of the circumstances that gave lustre to this event, and rendered it not only useful, but peculiarly honourable to the British arms." "So far," added Nelson, in quoting this to his wife, "all hands agree in giving me the praises which cannot but be comfortable to me to the last moment of my life." He adds then a reflection, evincing that he was assimilating some of the philosophy of life as well as of fighting. "The time of my being left out here by Lord Hood," which he had so much regretted, "I may call well spent; had I been absent, how mortified should I now be. What has happened may never happen to any one again, that only one ship-of-the-line out of fourteen should get into action with the French fleet for so long a time as two hours and a half, and with such a ship as the Ça Ira." It may be of interest to mention that the French fleet, upon this occasion, was largely composed of the vessels which three years later were destroyed by him at the Battle of the Nile.
Nelson was thrilled with his part in these events and the praise he received from others for his actions—especially on the 13th. He was rightly proud that his bold confrontation with the "Ça Ira," in the face of her fleet, had been the main reason for the next day's battle and resulting victory. It was true, and it showcased what the 14th and 15th should have demonstrated—a relentless pursuit of the damaged ships to draw their allies back into combat. "You will share," he wrote to his uncle, "in the joy I must have felt in being the key to our success. Had I been supported, I would have captured Ça Ira on the 13th." Elliot, the Viceroy of Corsica, wrote to him: "I truly see the events of March 13th as a crucial aspect of our recent successful struggle against the French fleet; the role that the Agamemnon played can be recognized by everyone as one of the factors that enhanced this event and made it not just beneficial but particularly honorable for the British forces." "So far," Nelson noted when sharing this with his wife, "everyone agrees in giving me praise that I will treasure for the rest of my life." He then reflected, showing he was learning some life lessons alongside strategies for warfare. "The time I felt overlooked here by Lord Hood," which he had greatly lamented, "I can now call well spent; had I been absent, how ashamed would I feel now? What has occurred may never happen to anyone else again, that only one ship-of-the-line out of fourteen engaged with the French fleet for as long as two and a half hours, and against a ship like the Ça Ira." It might be noteworthy to mention that the French fleet at this time largely consisted of the vessels that he would later destroy at the Battle of the Nile.
In all his interests, ambitions, and gratification with success and praise, he at this period writes fully and intimately to his wife, between whom and himself there evidently still existed, after these two years of absence, a tender and affectionate confidence. "It is with an inexpressible pleasure I have received your letters, with our father's. I rejoice that my conduct gives you pleasure, and I trust I shall never do anything which will bring a blush on your face. Rest assured you are never absent from my thoughts." When looking forward to the action of March 14, he tells her: "Whatever may be my fate, I have no doubt in my own mind but that my conduct will be such as will not bring a blush on the face of my friends: the lives of all are in the hands of Him who knows best whether to preserve mine or not; to His will do I resign myself. My character and good name are in my own keeping. Life with disgrace is dreadful. A glorious death is to be envied;" and he signs himself with unwonted tenderness, "Ever your most faithful and affectionate husband." Save of the solemn hours before Trafalgar, when another image occupied his thoughts, this is the only personal record we have of the feelings with which this man, dauntless above his fellows, went into battle. He refrains thoughtfully from any mention of his health that may cause her anxiety, which she had shown herself over weak and worrying to bear; but he speaks freely of all that passes, confiding that with her he need have no reserves, even in a natural self-praise. "This I can say, that all I have obtained I owe to myself, and to no one else, and to you I may add, that my character stands high with almost all Europe. Even the Austrians knew my name perfectly." While silent on the subject of illness, he admits now that his eye had grown worse, and was in almost total darkness, besides being very painful at times; "but never mind," he adds cheeringly, "I can see very well with the other."
In all his interests, ambitions, and enjoyment of success and praise, he writes openly and intimately to his wife during this time. After two years apart, there is clearly still a warm and loving trust between them. "It brings me immense joy to have received your letters, along with our father's. I'm glad my actions make you happy, and I hope to never do anything that would make you embarrassed. You can be sure that you're always on my mind." Looking ahead to the events of March 14, he tells her, "No matter what happens to me, I'm confident that my actions won't bring shame to my friends. Everyone's fate is in the hands of the one who knows best whether to spare mine or not; I submit to His will. My character and reputation are in my own hands. A life filled with disgrace is terrible. A glorious death is something to be envied." He ends with unusual warmth, "Forever your most loyal and loving husband." Aside from the serious moments before Trafalgar, when another thought occupied his mind, this is the only personal account we have of how this fearless man felt going into battle. He thoughtfully avoids discussing any health issues that might worry her, as she had shown herself to be too delicate and anxious about that; but he speaks freely about everything else, sharing that with her he feels no need to hold back, even in self-praise. "I can say this: everything I've achieved is thanks to myself, and also to you, my character is respected by almost all of Europe. Even the Austrians known my name perfectly." While he doesn’t mention illness, he acknowledges that his eyesight has worsened and is almost completely dark, and can be very painful at times; "but don't worry," he adds encouragingly, "I can see just fine with the other eye."
It is instructive to note, in view of some modern debated questions, that, despite the recent success, Nelson was by no means sure that the British fleet could defend Corsica. "I am not even now certain Corsica is safe," he wrote on the 25th of March, "if they undertake the expedition with proper spirit." The threat, never absent while the French fleet remained, was emphasized by the arrival of six ships-of-the-line from Brest, which reached Toulon on the 4th of April, materially altering the complexion of affairs in the Mediterranean, and furnishing an instructive instance of the probable punishment for opportunity imperfectly utilized, as on the 14th of March. Great discontent was felt at the apparent failure of the Admiralty to provide against this chance. "Hotham is very much displeased with them," wrote Nelson, "and certainly with reason;" and doubtless it is satisfactory to believe, rightly or wrongly, that our disadvantages are due to the neglect of others, and not to our own shortcomings.
It’s worth noting, considering some modern debates, that despite recent successes, Nelson wasn't at all sure the British fleet could defend Corsica. "I’m still not sure Corsica is safe," he wrote on March 25, "if they carry out the expedition with the right spirit." The threat, always present while the French fleet was around, was highlighted by the arrival of six ships-of-the-line from Brest, which reached Toulon on April 4, significantly changing the situation in the Mediterranean and providing a clear example of the potential consequences of missed opportunities, like on March 14. There was a lot of discontent over the Admiralty’s apparent failure to prepare for this possibility. "Hotham is very displeased with them," Nelson wrote, "and he’s certainly right to be;" and it’s undoubtedly comforting to think, whether rightly or wrongly, that our disadvantages are due to others’ neglect, not our own failings.
Although the nominal force of the French was thus raised to twenty of the line, the want of seamen, and the absence of discipline, prevented their seizing the opportunity offered by the temporary inferiority of the British, reduced to thirteen besides two Neapolitans, in whose efficiency, whether justly or not, Nelson placed little confidence. At this critical moment, with a large British military convoy expected, and the fleet, to use his impatient expression, "skulking in port," a Jacobin outbreak occurred in Toulon, and the seamen assumed the opéra-bouffe rôle of going ashore to assist in deliberations upon the measures necessary to save the country. Before they were again ready to go to sea, the convoy had arrived. On the 7th of June, however, the French again sailed from Toulon, seventeen ships-of-the-line; and the following day Nelson, writing to his brother, thus gave vent to the bitterness of his feelings: "We have been cruising off Minorca for a long month, every moment in expectation of reinforcements from England. Great good fortune has hitherto saved us, what none in this fleet could have expected for so long a time. Near two months we have been skulking from them. Had they not got so much cut up on the 14th of March, Corsica, Rome, and Naples would, at this moment, have been in their possession, and may yet, if these people [the Admiralty] do not make haste to help us. I am out of spirits, although never better in health."
Although the nominal strength of the French was raised to twenty ships of the line, a lack of sailors and discipline stopped them from taking advantage of the temporary weakness of the British, who were reduced to thirteen ships plus two Neapolitans, in whom, fairly or not, Nelson had little faith. At this crucial moment, with a large British military convoy expected and the fleet, in his impatient words, "hiding in port," a Jacobin uprising happened in Toulon, and the sailors took on the comedic role of going ashore to help discuss what actions were necessary to save the country. Before they were ready to set sail again, the convoy had arrived. On June 7th, however, the French set sail from Toulon again with seventeen ships of the line; the following day, Nelson wrote to his brother, expressing the bitterness he felt: "We’ve been patrolling near Minorca for a long month, always expecting reinforcements from England. Great luck has so far protected us, which none in this fleet could have anticipated for this long. We’ve been avoiding them for nearly two months. If they hadn’t suffered so much on March 14th, Corsica, Rome, and Naples would, at this moment, be in their hands, and they still might be if these people [the Admiralty] don’t hurry up to help us. I’m feeling down, although I’ve never been healthier."
His depression was due less to the inadequacy of the British fleet than to the dismissal of Lord Hood from the command, news of which was at this time received. When about to sail from England, to resume his duty as commander-in-chief, he got into a controversy with the Government about the force necessary in the Mediterranean, and, giving offence by the sharpness of his language, was ordered to haul down his flag. He never again went to sea. Nelson deplored his loss in terms unusually vivacious: "Oh, miserable Board of Admiralty! They have forced the first officer in our service away from his command." In more temperate but well-weighed words, he said: "This fleet must regret the loss of Lord Hood, the best officer, take him altogether, that England has to boast of. Lord Howe is certainly a great officer in the management of a fleet, but that is all. Lord Hood is equally great in all situations which an admiral can be placed in." In the judgment of the present writer, this estimate of Hood is as accurate as it is moderate in expression. It was nothing less than providential for the French that he was not in command on the 14th of March, or in the yet more trivial and discreditable affair of July 13th, when, to use again Nelson's words, "To say how much we wanted Lord Hood at that time, is to say, will you have all the French fleet or no action?"
His depression was less about the British fleet's shortcomings and more about the news of Lord Hood being dismissed from command. Just before he was set to sail from England to take up his role as commander-in-chief, he got into a heated debate with the Government over the necessary force in the Mediterranean. Offended by the bluntness of his words, he was ordered to lower his flag. He never went to sea again. Nelson lamented his loss in unusually vivid terms: "Oh, miserable Board of Admiralty! They have forced the top officer in our service away from his command." In more measured but thoughtfully chosen words, he stated: "This fleet must regret the loss of Lord Hood, the best officer England can claim, overall. Lord Howe is certainly a great officer for managing a fleet, but that’s it. Lord Hood excels in every situation an admiral could face." In my view, this assessment of Hood is both accurate and appropriately tempered. It was nothing short of fortunate for the French that he wasn't in command on March 14th, or in the even more trivial and shameful affair on July 13th, when, to echo Nelson again, "To say how much we needed Lord Hood at that time is to say, would you rather have the entire French fleet or no action?"
On the 14th of June the expected reinforcement from England, nine ships-of-the-line, joined the fleet off Minorca; and a few days later a large convoy also arrived, with which the whole body of ships of war put into San Fiorenzo Bay on the 29th. This concluded for Nelson a period of three months, counting from the action of March 14th, of pretty monotonous cruising with the fleet, the last in which he was to take part until his admiral's flag was hoisted, two years later. Though unmarked by any event of importance, the time was passed not unprofitably to himself, for his correspondence bears marks of fruitful reflection, not merely upon the evident inadequacy of his commander-in-chief to the position he unwillingly occupied, but upon the character of the operations and the line of conduct that ought to be followed. If he does criticise the former's want of head for enterprise, he formulates for himself a general principle which showed its vital influence in his future career. "After all my complaints, I have no doubt but, if we can get close to the enemy, we shall defeat any plan of theirs; but we ought to have our ideas beyond mere defensive measures."
On June 14th, the expected reinforcements from England—nine ships of the line—joined the fleet off Minorca. A few days later, a large convoy also arrived, and on the 29th, the entire fleet of warships docked in San Fiorenzo Bay. This marked the end of a three-month period for Nelson, starting from the battle on March 14th, of somewhat monotonous cruising with the fleet, the last before his admiral's flag was raised two years later. Although uneventful, this time wasn’t wasted; his correspondence reflects productive contemplation, not only on the obvious shortcomings of his commander-in-chief in the role he held reluctantly but also on the nature of the operations and the strategy that should be adopted. While he critiques his commander’s lack of initiative, he also establishes a guiding principle that would greatly impact his future: “After all my complaints, I have no doubt that if we can get close to the enemy, we will thwart any of their plans; but we should have our strategies extend beyond just defensive actions.”
Among other matters for reflection, he had at this time a curious cause of anxiety, lest he should be promoted to flag rank, or rather that, being promoted, he should be obliged to return to England at once, as there would be too many admirals in the Mediterranean to permit his retention. A rumor was current, which proved to be correct, that there would be a large promotion on the 1st of June, the first anniversary of the victory celebrated by that name. Being then forty-six on the list of captains, Nelson feared that it might include him; in which case, if not permitted to hoist his flag where he was, not only would he lose his ardently desired opportunities for distinction,—"not an hour this war will I, if possible, be out of active service,"—but he would be put to much inconvenience and loss. "If they give me my flag, I shall be half ruined: unless I am immediately employed in this country, I should, by the time I landed in England, be a loser, several hundred pounds out of pocket." To be taken "from actual service would distress me much, more especially as I almost believe these people will be mad enough to come out." He escaped this disappointment, however, for the promotion left him still on the post-captains' list, seven from its head; but he received, what was both complimentary and profitable, the honorary rank of Colonel of Marines,—a sinecure appointment, of which there were then four, given to post-captains of distinguished services, and vacated by them upon promotion. These are now discontinued, and replaced, as a matter of emolument, by Good Service Pensions. Nelson heard later that this reward had been conferred upon him, not merely as a favor, but with a full recognition of all his claims to it. "The Marines have been given to me in the handsomest manner. The answer given to many was, the King knew no officer who had served so much for them as myself."
Among other things to think about, he was also anxious about the possibility of being promoted to flag rank. He worried that if he got promoted, he would have to return to England immediately since there would be too many admirals in the Mediterranean allowing him to stay. There was a rumor, which turned out to be true, that there would be a big promotion on June 1st, the anniversary of the victory celebrated on that date. As he was ranked forty-sixth on the list of captains, Nelson feared that he might be included; if so, and if he wasn't allowed to raise his flag where he was, he would not only miss out on the opportunities for distinction that he so eagerly wanted—“I won’t spend an hour out of active service this war, if I can help it”—but he would also face significant inconvenience and financial loss. “If they give me my flag, I’ll be half ruined: unless I’m immediately employed in this country, by the time I get to England, I’d lose several hundred pounds.” Being taken "away from active service would upset me greatly, especially since I almost believe these people will be crazily reckless enough to come out." However, he avoided this disappointment, as the promotion left him still on the post-captains' list, seven spots from the top; but he received what was both an honor and a benefit—the honorary rank of Colonel of Marines—a non-active position that was given to post-captains with distinguished service. These positions are now discontinued and have been replaced with Good Service Pensions. Nelson learned later that this recognition had been given to him not just as a favor, but with full acknowledgment of all his qualifications. "The Marines have been given to me in the most generous way. The response given to many was that the King knew no officer who had served them as much as I have."
These promotions came timely to insure for him an employment particularly suited to his active temperament and fearlessness of responsibility, but which, though the fittest man for it, he might, with less seniority, not have received from Hotham, despite the well-known confidence in him shown by Hood. Since the spring opened, the Austrians and their allies, the Sardinians, had been waiting, ostensibly at least, for assistance from the Navy, to begin a forward movement, the first object of which was the possession of Vado Bay as a safe anchorage for the fleet. Until the arrival of Man and the convoy, Hotham had not felt strong enough to spare the required force; but now, after the ships had filled their wants from the transports, he, on the 4th of July, detached Nelson, with the "Agamemnon" and six smaller vessels, to co-operate with the Austrian commander-in-chief. The latter had begun his movement on the 13th of June, passing through Genoese territory despite the remonstrances of the Republic, whose neutrality could claim but slight regard from one belligerent, when she had already permitted the occupation of so much of her shore line by the other. The French had fallen back, when attacked, abandoning Vado Bay to the enemy, whose headquarters were established at that point.
These promotions came at just the right time to secure him a job that matched his energetic personality and willingness to take on responsibility. However, even though he was the best person for it, he might not have been chosen by Hotham due to his lesser experience, despite Hood’s well-known confidence in him. Since spring started, the Austrians and their allies, the Sardinians, had been waiting, at least on the surface, for help from the Navy to start an offensive, the main goal of which was to secure Vado Bay as a safe port for the fleet. Until Man and the convoy arrived, Hotham hadn’t felt strong enough to allocate the necessary forces. But now, after the ships had replenished their supplies from the transports, he detached Nelson on July 4th with the "Agamemnon" and six smaller vessels to work with the Austrian commander-in-chief. The latter had started his movements on June 13th, moving through Genoese territory despite the Republic's protests, whose neutrality had little weight with one side already allowing the other to occupy so much of its coastline. The French had retreated when attacked, leaving Vado Bay to the enemy, who had set up their headquarters there.
Nelson, having sailed with four of his squadron, fell in with the French fleet of seventeen of the line, off the Riviera, on the 6th of July. He had, of course, to retreat, which he did upon San Fiorenzo, to join the body of the fleet. On the morning of the 7th the "Agamemnon" and her followers, with the French in close pursuit, were sighted from the anchorage, much to the surprise of the admiral, who knew the enemy had come out, but, upon the information of the Austrian general, believed them returned to Toulon. Why he had not more accurate news from lookout frigates is not clear; but, as Nelson said, he took things easy, and he had persuaded himself that they had left harbor only to exercise their men. As it was, the "Agamemnon" was hard pressed, but escaped, chiefly through the enemy's lack of seamanship. The fleet, when she arrived, was in the midst of refitting and watering, but succeeded in getting to sea the following morning in search of the enemy, who meantime had disappeared.
Nelson, after sailing with four of his squadron, encountered the French fleet of seventeen ships off the Riviera on July 6th. He had to retreat, which he did towards San Fiorenzo to rejoin the main fleet. On the morning of July 7th, the "Agamemnon" and her companions were spotted from the anchorage, much to the admiral's surprise. He knew the enemy had come out but, based on information from the Austrian general, believed they had returned to Toulon. It's unclear why he didn't receive more accurate updates from lookout frigates, but as Nelson remarked, he was quite relaxed and had convinced himself they had only left the harbor for training. In the meantime, the "Agamemnon" was under heavy pressure but managed to escape, mainly due to the enemy's poor seamanship. When the fleet arrived, it was in the middle of refitting and resupplying but managed to set sail the next morning to search for the enemy, who had by then vanished.
Precise information of the French whereabouts could not be obtained until the evening of the 12th, when two of the British lookout ships reported that they had been seen a few hours before to the southwest, south of the Hyères Islands. The fleet made sail in that direction. During the night a heavy gale came on from west-northwest, out of the Gulf of Lyons, which split the main-topsails of several British ships. At daybreak the enemy were discovered in the southeast, standing north to close the land. After some elaborate manoeuvring—to reach one of those formal orders, often most useful, but which the irregular Mediterranean winds are prone to disarrange as soon as completed—the admiral at 8 A.M. signalled a general chase. The British being to windward, and the breeze fresh, the half-dozen leading ships had at noon closed the enemy's rear within three-quarters of a mile; but, from their relative positions, as then steering, the guns of neither could be used effectively. At this time a shift of wind to north headed off both fleets, which put their bows to the eastward, throwing the British advanced vessels, to use Nelson's expression, into line abreast, and bringing to bear the broadsides of the ships, of both fleets, that were within range. The action then began, the British fire being directed mainly upon the French rear ship, the "Alcide," which surrendered at about 2 P.M., and soon afterwards blew up. The wind had meanwhile changed again to the eastward, giving the weather-gage to the French, most of whom were considerably nearer the shore than their opponents, and better sailers.
Precise information about the French location couldn't be obtained until the evening of the 12th, when two British lookout ships reported seeing them a few hours earlier to the southwest, south of the Hyères Islands. The fleet headed in that direction. During the night, a heavy gale hit from the west-northwest, coming out of the Gulf of Lyons, which tore the main topsails of several British ships. At daybreak, the enemy was spotted in the southeast, moving north toward the land. After some complicated maneuvering—to execute one of those formal orders, usually very useful, but often disrupted by the unpredictable Mediterranean winds as soon as they’re completed—the admiral signaled a general chase at 8 A.M. Since the British were upwind and the breeze was fresh, the half-dozen leading ships managed to close in on the enemy's rear to within three-quarters of a mile by noon; however, due to their positions and directions, neither side could use their guns effectively. At that point, a shift in wind to the north turned both fleets, pointing their bows eastward and aligning the British advance ships, as Nelson would say, into a line abreast, and allowing the broadsides of both fleets to be within range. The battle then began, with the British focusing their fire mainly on the French rear ship, the "Alcide," which surrendered around 2 P.M. and soon afterwards exploded. Meanwhile, the wind shifted again to the east, giving the weather-gage to the French, many of whom were significantly closer to the shore than their opponents and better sailors.
Up to this time Nelson, who in the forenoon had thought there was every prospect of taking every ship in the French fleet, still felt almost certain that six would be secured; but, to use his own words, it was now "impossible to close." In the space between the ships engaged, and to leeward, the light air seems to have been killed by the cannonading; whereas the French, who were now to windward, still received enough to draw slowly away. Hotham, being in one of the very worst sailers in the fleet, if not in the Navy, had fallen eight miles astern, and not seeing clearly how things were going, made at this time a signal of recall, which was certainly premature. It seems a not improper comment that, in light and baffling weather, such as that of the Mediterranean, the commander-in-chief should have been in a fast and handy ship, able at the least to keep him within eyeshot of the decisive scene. Remaining in the "Britannia" may have been due to the natural unwillingness of an invalid to quit his well-ordered surroundings, by which even St. Vincent was led to take a first-rate ship away with himself at a critical moment; but, if so, it only emphasizes the absolute necessity of physical vigor to a commander-in-chief.
Up to this point, Nelson, who in the morning believed there was a good chance of capturing every ship in the French fleet, still felt almost certain that six would be taken. However, to put it in his own words, it was now "impossible to close." The light wind between the engaged ships and downwind seemed to have died down because of the cannon firing; meanwhile, the French, who were now upwind, still had enough wind to slowly drift away. Hotham, being in one of the worst sailing ships in the fleet, if not the Navy, had fallen eight miles behind and, not clearly seeing how things were progressing, signaled to retreat, which was definitely too soon. It’s worth noting that, in light and tricky weather like that in the Mediterranean, the commander-in-chief should have been in a fast and maneuverable ship, able to at least keep him within sight of the critical action. Staying in the "Britannia" might have been due to an invalid’s natural reluctance to leave his comfortable situation, which even St. Vincent experienced when he took a first-rate ship with him at a crucial time; but if that’s the case, it only highlights the absolute necessity of physical strength for a commander-in-chief.
Nelson had again managed to keep the "Agamemnon" well to the front, for the other ships that succeeded in getting into action were almost wholly from among those which had recently arrived from England with Rear-Admiral Man. These, being fresh from home, should naturally outsail a ship now two and a half years in commission, and which, not long after, had to be wrapped with hawsers to hold her together. In his comments on the action he says comparatively little of the signal of recall, which, though ill-timed, he does not seem to have thought affected the result materially; but he was utterly dissatisfied with the previous management of the business, and into the causes of this dissatisfaction it is desirable to look, as bearing at once upon his natural military characteristics, and the development they received from time and thought. "The scrambling distant fire was a farce," he wrote; "but if one fell by such a fire, what might not have been expected had our whole fleet engaged? Improperly as the part of the fleet which fired got into action, we took one ship; but the subject is unpleasant, and I shall have done with it." The criticism, though far from explicit, evidently bears upon the manner in which the fleet was handled, from the moment the enemy was sighted until the firing began. During the latter, Man was the senior officer on the spot, and Nelson does not blame him; on the contrary, punning on the name, says, "He is a good man in every sense of the word."
Nelson had once again kept the "Agamemnon" toward the front, while the other ships that managed to engage in battle were mostly those that had recently arrived from England with Rear-Admiral Man. Since these ships were fresh from home, they naturally should have outperformed a vessel that had been in service for two and a half years, which had also recently required hawsers to hold it together. In his remarks about the battle, he mentions the recall signal only briefly, acknowledging that although it was poorly timed, he didn’t believe it significantly influenced the outcome. However, he was completely dissatisfied with how things had been managed up to that point, and it’s important to explore the reasons behind this dissatisfaction, as they relate both to his inherent military traits and their evolution over time. "The random distant fire was ridiculous," he wrote; "but if one could be hit by such fire, what could have been expected had our entire fleet been engaged? Even though the part of the fleet that fired was mismanaged, we managed to capture one ship; but this topic is uncomfortable, and I’ll leave it at that." The criticism, while not openly stated, clearly addresses how the fleet was managed from the moment the enemy was spotted until the battle began. During the engagement, Man was the senior officer present, and Nelson doesn’t place blame on him; instead, he jokingly remarks on his name, saying, "He is a good man in every sense of the word."
The precise working of his thought can only be inferred. "The whole fleet" failed to get into action. Why? Because the signal for a general chase was delayed from 4 to 8 A.M., pending certain drill-ground manoeuvres, upon whose results, however well intended, no dependence could be placed in Mediterranean weather. During these four hours the wind was fresh,—the heel of a short summer's gale, invaluable to both sides,—and the enemy were using it to close the shore, where wind, the sole dependence for motive power, baffles most. Had the fastest British ships, under a competent flag-officer, utilized that time and that wind, there was, to put the case most mildly, the chance that they could repeat, upon the French rear, the same part the "Agamemnon" alone had played with the "Ça Ira,"—and such a chance, were it no more, should not have been dawdled with. "Missed the opportunity,"—the fatal words, "it might have been." Is it far-fetched to see in his reflections upon "this miserable action," as it is styled independently by James and himself, the forecast of the opening sentence of his celebrated order before Trafalgar?—"Thinking it almost impossible to bring a fleet of forty sail-of-the-line[30] into a line of battle in variable winds, thick weather, and other circumstances which must occur, without such a loss of time that the opportunity would probably be lost of bringing the enemy to battle in such a manner as to make the business decisive, I have therefore made up my mind—" Or, again, as he saw Man dragged off—with too little remonstrance, it may be—by a superior, who could by no means see what was the state of the action, is there not traceable a source of the feeling, partly inborn, partly reasoned, that found expression in the generous and yet most wise words of the same immortal order?—"The second in command will [in fact command his line and],[31] after my intentions are made known to him, have the entire direction of his line to make the attack upon the enemy, and to follow up the blow until they are captured or destroyed." Whether such words be regarded as the labored result of observation and reflection, or whether as the flashes of intuition, with which genius penetrates at once to the root of a matter, without the antecedent processes to which lesser minds are subjected,—in either case they are instructive when linked with the events of his career here under discussion, as corroborative indications of natural temperament and insight, which banish altogether the thought of mere fortuitous valor as the one explanation of Nelson's successes.
The exact workings of his thoughts can only be guessed. "The whole fleet" failed to get involved. Why? Because the signal for a general chase was postponed from 4 to 8 A.M., waiting on some drill-ground maneuvers, the outcomes of which, no matter how well intended, couldn’t be relied upon in Mediterranean weather. During those four hours, the wind was strong—a brief summer gale that was valuable to both sides—and the enemy was using it to get closer to the shore, where wind, the only source of power, tends to confuse most. If the fastest British ships had taken advantage of that time and wind, there was, to put it mildly, a chance that they could have attacked the French rear just as the "Agamemnon" alone had done with the "Ça Ira,"—and such a chance, even if it were minimal, shouldn't have been wasted. "Missed the opportunity,"—the dire words, "it could have been." Is it too much to infer from his thoughts on "this miserable action," as both James and he described it, the anticipation of the opening line of his famous order before Trafalgar?—"Thinking it almost impossible to arrange a fleet of forty ships of the line into a line of battle in changing winds, thick weather, and other circumstances that might arise, without such a loss of time that the opportunity would probably be lost to engage the enemy in a way that would make the outcome decisive, I have therefore made up my mind—" Or, again, as he witnessed Man being taken away—with possibly too little protest—by a superior who couldn’t see the state of the action, isn’t there a hint of the feeling, partly instinctive, partly reasoned, that found expression in the noble yet wise words of the same famous order?—"The second in command will [actually command his line and],[31] once my intentions are communicated to him, have full control of his line to launch the attack on the enemy and to continue the fight until they are captured or destroyed." Whether these words are seen as the carefully crafted results of observation and contemplation or as flashes of intuition, with which genius instantly understands the essence of a situation, without the preliminary steps that lesser minds go through—either way, they are instructive when connected with the events of his career being discussed here, as confirming signs of his natural temperament and insight, which completely eliminate the idea that mere luck is the sole reason for Nelson's successes.
With this unsatisfactory affair, Nelson's direct connection with the main body of the fleet came to an end for the remainder of Hotham's command. It is scarcely necessary to add that the prime object of the British fleet at all times, and not least in the Mediterranean in 1795,—the control of the sea,—continued as doubtful as it had been at the beginning of the year. The dead weight of the admiral's having upon his mind the Toulon fleet, undiminished in force despite two occasions for decisive action, was to be clearly seen in the ensuing operations. On this, also, Nelson did much thinking, as passing events threw light upon the consequences of missing opportunities. "The British fleet," he wrote, five years later, and no man better knew the facts, "could have prevented the invasion of Italy; and, if our friend Hotham had kept his fleet on that coast, I assert, and you will agree with me, no army from France could have been furnished with stores or provisions; even men could not have marched." But how keep the fleet on the Italian coast, while the French fleet in full vigor remained in Toulon? What a curb it was appeared again in the next campaign, and even more clearly, because the British were then commanded by Sir John Jervis, a man not to be checked by ordinary obstacles. From the decks of his flagship Nelson, in the following April, watched a convoy passing close in shore. "To get at them was impossible before they anchored under such batteries as would have crippled our fleet; and, had such an event happened, in the present state of the enemy's fleet, Tuscany, Naples, Rome, Sicily, &c., would have fallen as fast as their ships could have sailed along the coast. Our fleet is the only saviour at present for those countries."
With this disappointing situation, Nelson's direct link with the main body of the fleet ended for the rest of Hotham's command. It's hardly necessary to point out that the primary goal of the British fleet at all times, and especially in the Mediterranean in 1795—the control of the sea—remained as uncertain as it had at the start of the year. The heavy burden of the admiral's concern over the Toulon fleet, unchanged in strength despite two chances for decisive action, was evident in the subsequent operations. Nelson thought deeply about this as recent events highlighted the consequences of missed opportunities. "The British fleet," he wrote five years later, and no one knew the facts better, "could have prevented the invasion of Italy; and if our friend Hotham had kept his fleet on that coast, I claim, and you’ll agree with me, no army from France could have been supplied with stores or provisions; even troops couldn't have marched." But how could the fleet stay on the Italian coast while the French fleet remained strong in Toulon? The challenge became apparent again in the next campaign, even more so because the British were then led by Sir John Jervis, a man who was not easily deterred by ordinary obstacles. From the decks of his flagship, Nelson, in the following April, watched a convoy passing close to shore. "It was impossible to reach them before they anchored under batteries that would have crippled our fleet; and had this occurred, in the present state of the enemy's fleet, Tuscany, Naples, Rome, Sicily, etc., would have fallen as quickly as their ships could have sailed along the coast. Our fleet is currently the only savior for those countries."
FOOTNOTES:
[26] The "Berwick," seventy-four, had been left in San Fiorenzo for repairs. Putting to sea at this time, she fell in with the French fleet, and was taken.
[26] The "Berwick," a seventy-four, was left in San Fiorenzo for repairs. When she set sail at this time, she encountered the French fleet and was captured.
[29] Corsica.
Corsica.
[31] The words in brackets were erased in the rough draft, but are here inserted, because they emphasize the underlying thought, that the second was to have real command, not wait nor look for signals, nor yet fear them.
[31] The words in brackets were removed in the rough draft, but are included here because they highlight the core idea that the second was meant to take real charge, not to wait or look for signals, nor to fear them.
CHAPTER VI.
NELSON'S COMMAND OF A DETACHED SQUADRON ON THE RIVIERA OF GENOA, UNTIL THE DEFEAT OF THE AUSTRIANS AT THE BATTLE OF LOANO.—SIR JOHN JERVIS APPOINTED COMMANDER-IN-CHIEF IN THE MEDITERRANEAN.
NELSON'S COMMAND OF A SEPARATE SQUADRON ON THE RIVIERA OF GENOA, UNTIL THE DEFEAT OF THE AUSTRIANS AT THE BATTLE OF LOANO.—SIR JOHN JERVIS APPOINTED COMMANDER-IN-CHIEF IN THE MEDITERRANEAN.
JULY-DECEMBER, 1795. AGE, 37.
JULY-DECEMBER 1795. AGE 37.
After the action of July 13, Nelson was again despatched upon his mission to co-operate with the Austrians on the Riviera. His orders, dated July 15, were to confer first with the British minister at Genoa, and thence to proceed with his squadron to the Austrian headquarters at Vado Bay. The seniority he had now attained made his selection for this detached and responsible service less evidently flattering than Hood's preferment of him to such positions when he was junior in rank; but the duty had the distinction of being not only arduous from the purely naval standpoint, but delicate in the diplomatic management and tact required. Although Great Britain at that period was rarely slack in resorting to strong and arbitrary measures in dealing with neutrals, when her interests seemed to demand it, she was always exceedingly desirous to avoid causes of needless offence. The exigencies of Southern France, and of both the opposing armies in the Riviera, had created a busy neutral trade, occupied in supplying all parties to the war, as well as the inhabitants of Genoese towns then in military occupation by the French. Although the latter and the Austrians had both openly disregarded the neutrality of Genoa, it was the policy of Great Britain now to manifest respect for it as far as possible, and at the same time not to raise causes of diplomatic contention over the neutral trade, although this was well known to be supporting the enemy's army.
After the events of July 13, Nelson was sent again on his mission to work with the Austrians on the Riviera. His orders, dated July 15, instructed him to first meet with the British minister in Genoa and then move with his squadron to the Austrian headquarters at Vado Bay. The rank he had achieved made his appointment to this separate and important task less obviously flattering than Hood’s earlier selections when he was less senior; however, the assignment was notable for being not only challenging from a purely naval perspective but also requiring considerable diplomatic management and tact. Although Britain at that time often took strong and decisive actions in dealing with neutral nations when it suited its interests, it was always very keen to avoid unnecessary offense. The situations in Southern France and both opposing armies in the Riviera had created a busy neutral trade, engaged in supplying all sides in the conflict, as well as the residents of Genoese towns that were under military occupation by the French. Even though both the French and the Austrians had openly ignored Genoa's neutrality, Britain’s current strategy was to show respect for it as much as possible and at the same time to avoid causing diplomatic disputes over neutral trade, despite it being well known that this trade was supporting the enemy's army.
When Nelson left the fleet, he had, besides his special orders for his own mission, a circular letter from the admiral to all vessels under his command, framed upon instructions received from England a month before, directing special care "not to give any just cause of offence to the foreign powers in amity with his Majesty, and whenever any ships or vessels belonging to the subjects of those powers shall be detained, or brought by you into port, you are to transmit to the Secretary of the Admiralty a complete specification of their cargoes, and not to institute any legal process against such ships or vessels until their lordships' further pleasure shall be known."
When Nelson left the fleet, he had, in addition to his special orders for his own mission, a circular letter from the admiral to all ships under his command. This letter was based on instructions received from England a month earlier, directing them to take special care "not to give any just cause of offense to the foreign powers friendly with his Majesty, and whenever any ships or vessels belonging to the subjects of those powers are detained or brought into port by you, you need to send a complete specification of their cargoes to the Secretary of the Admiralty, and you must not take any legal action against such ships or vessels until their lordships' further instructions are provided."
To the naval officers on the spot this order was calculated to increase vastly the perplexities, which necessarily arose from the occupation of the Genoese coast by French troops. But, besides questions of trade, the weaker States, Genoa and Tuscany,—the latter of which had recently made peace with France,—were driven to manifold shifts and compromises, in order to maintain in their ports such semblance of impartial neutrality as would save them from reprisals by either party. These measures, while insuring to some extent the end in view, gave rise also to a good deal of friction and recrimination between the neutral and the belligerents. The vessels of the latter were admitted, under certain limitations as to number, into the neutral port, where they lay nearly side by side, jealously watching each other, and taking note of every swerving, real or presumed, from an exact and even balance. Each sailed from the neutral port to carry on war, but it is obvious that the shelter of such a port was far more useful to the belligerent who did not control the water, who moved upon it only by evasion and stealth, and who was therefore tempted, in order to improve such advantages, to stretch to the verge of abuse the privileges permitted to him by the neutral. "The Genoese allow the French," wrote Nelson, "to have some small vessels in the port of Genoa, that I have seen towed out of the port, and board vessels coming in, and afterwards return into the mole; the conduct of the English is very different." He elsewhere allows, however, that, "in the opinion of the Genoese, my squadron is constantly offending; so that it almost appears a trial between us, who shall first be tired, they of complaining, or me of answering them."
To the naval officers present, this order was likely to greatly increase the difficulties that arose from the French occupation of the Genoese coast. Additionally, aside from trade issues, the weaker states of Genoa and Tuscany— the latter having recently made peace with France—were forced to adopt various strategies and compromises to maintain a facade of neutrality in their ports, so they wouldn’t face retaliation from either side. While these actions somewhat achieved their intended goal, they also caused significant tension and blame between the neutrals and the warring parties. The ships of the warring sides were allowed into the neutral port, but only in limited numbers, and they were positioned almost side by side, closely monitoring one another and noting every perceived deviation from a fair balance. Each ship that left the neutral port did so to engage in warfare, but it was clear that the refuge of such a port was far more advantageous for the side that didn’t control the waters, which could only navigate through avoidance and stealth. This situation tempted them to push the boundaries of the privileges granted to them by the neutral. "The Genoese allow the French," Nelson wrote, "to have some small vessels in the port of Genoa, that I have seen towed out of the port, board vessels coming in, and then return to the mole; the conduct of the English is very different." He also notes, however, that "in the opinion of the Genoese, my squadron is constantly offending; so it almost seems like a contest between us to see who will tire first, them from complaining or me from responding."
After the first successes of the Austrians and Sardinians, in the previous June, the French commander-in-chief, Kellerman, feeling his inferiority to be such as compelled him to a defensive attitude, had carefully selected the most advanced line that he thought could be held. His right rested upon the sea, near the village of Borghetto, some fifty or sixty miles east of Nice, extending thence to and across the mountains, to Ormea. The Austrian front was parallel, in a general sense, to that of the enemy, and a couple of leagues to the eastward; thus securing for the British Vado Bay, considered the best anchorage between Genoa and Nice. In rear of Vado, to the eastward, and on the coast road, lay the fortress of Savona, esteemed by Bonaparte of the first importance to an army operating in the Riviera and dependent upon the control of the road. The town was occupied by the Austrians, but they were excluded from the citadel by Genoese troops,—a condition of weakness in case of sudden retreat. It ought, said Bonaparte, to be the object of all the enemy's efforts. In these positions, both armies depended for supplies partly upon the sea, partly upon the land road along the Riviera. Across the mountains, in Piedmont, lay the Sardinian forces, extending perpendicularly to the main front of the French operations, and, so far as position went, threatening their communications by the narrow land road. The character of the ground intervening between the French and Austrians rendered an attack upon either line, once fairly established, very difficult; and it was doubtless a fault in the Austrian commander, De Vins, while superior in force, to allow the enemy to strengthen himself in a position which at the first had its weak points; the more so as the plainly approaching peace between Spain and France foretold that the Army of Italy would soon be reinforced. Having, however, made this mistake, the Austrian settled himself in his works, shrugged the responsibility off his own shoulders, and awaited that either the Sardinians by land, or the British by sea, should, by choking the communications of the French, compel them to abandon their lines.
After the initial successes of the Austrians and Sardinians in the previous June, the French commander-in-chief, Kellerman, realizing he was at a disadvantage, took a defensive stance and carefully chose the most advanced line he believed could be held. His right flank was by the sea, near the village of Borghetto, about fifty or sixty miles east of Nice, stretching from there across the mountains to Ormea. The Austrian front was generally parallel to that of the enemy and a couple of leagues to the east, securing Vado Bay for the British, which was considered the best anchorage between Genoa and Nice. Behind Vado, to the east along the coastal road, was the fortress of Savona, which Bonaparte regarded as critically important for an army operating in the Riviera and relying on control of the road. The town was occupied by the Austrians, but they were barred from the citadel by Genoese troops, creating a vulnerability in case of a sudden retreat. Bonaparte claimed it should be the main focus of all enemy efforts. Both armies relied on supplies from the sea and the land road along the Riviera. Across the mountains in Piedmont were the Sardinian forces, positioned to threaten the French's narrow land communications. The terrain between the French and the Austrians made it very difficult to attack either line once it was established. It was certainly a mistake by the Austrian commander, De Vins, to allow the enemy to reinforce their position, which initially had weak points, especially since the clear approach of peace between Spain and France indicated that the Army of Italy would soon be strengthened. After making this error, the Austrian settled into his defenses, shrugged off responsibility, and waited for either the Sardinians by land or the British by sea to disrupt the French's communications and force them to abandon their lines.
Such was the situation when Nelson, on the 21st of July, had his first interview with De Vins; on the 22d peace between Spain and France was formally concluded. Within a month, Bonaparte, who then occupied a prominent position in Paris, as military adviser to the Government, was writing: "Peace with Spain makes offensive war in Piedmont certain; my plan is being discussed; Vado will soon be taken;" and a few days later, on the 25th of August, "Troops from Spain are marching to Italy." It was incumbent upon the French to repossess Vado, for, by affording safe anchorage to small hostile cruisers, it effectually stopped the trade with Genoa. De Vins had there equipped several privateers, under the Austrian flag. Of it Bonaparte said: "By intercepting the coasters from Italy, it has suspended our commerce, stopped the arrival of provisions, and obliged us to supply Toulon from the interior of the Republic. It is recognized that our commerce and subsistence require that communication with Genoa be promptly opened." Having in view Bonaparte's remarkable campaign of the following year, and the fact that Vado was now held in force by the Austrians, the importance of British co-operation by the fleet, at this critical moment, becomes strikingly apparent. The future thus throws back a ray of illuminating significance upon the otherwise paltry and obscure campaign of 1795, dragging out into broad daylight the full meaning of lost opportunities in the early year, and of Nelson's strenuous efforts in his detached command.
Such was the situation when Nelson, on July 21st, had his first meeting with De Vins; on the 22nd, peace between Spain and France was officially signed. Within a month, Bonaparte, who then held a key position in Paris as a military adviser to the Government, was writing: "Peace with Spain makes offensive war in Piedmont inevitable; my plan is under discussion; Vado will be captured soon;" and a few days later, on August 25th, "Troops from Spain are heading to Italy." It was essential for the French to take back Vado, as it provided safe harbor for small enemy ships, effectively halting trade with Genoa. De Vins had set up several privateers there under the Austrian flag. Bonaparte noted: "By intercepting the coasters from Italy, it has disrupted our trade, stopped the arrival of supplies, and forced us to resupply Toulon from within the Republic. It is clear that our trade and food supply require that communication with Genoa be reopened without delay." Considering Bonaparte's impressive campaign the following year and the fact that Vado was currently held strongly by the Austrians, the importance of British support from the fleet at this crucial moment becomes very clear. The future thus casts a revealing light on the otherwise insignificant and obscure campaign of 1795, bringing into focus the full implications of lost opportunities during that early year and of Nelson's determined efforts in his separate command.
Immediately upon his arrival in Genoa, on July 17, the effect of the neutral trade, if unchecked, upon the operations of both armies, was brought before him by the British minister. Unless the supplies thus received by the French could be stopped, the Austrian general would not only be unable to advance, but feared he could not hold his present position. If, on the other hand, the forage and grain thus brought to them could be intercepted, they would be forced to retreat, and there were hopes that the Austrians might reach Nice before winter, thus covering the excellent and advanced harbor of Villefranche as an anchorage for their British allies. Nelson readily understood the situation, and admitted the necessity of the service demanded of his squadron, which was simply a blow at the enemy's communications; but he pointed out to the minister that the circular instructions, before quoted, tied his hands. Not only would the ordinary difficulties of proving the ownership and destination of a cargo give rise to the usual vexatious disputes, and irritate neutrals, contrary to the spirit of the order; but there was a particular complication in this instance, arising from the occupation of Genoese towns by French troops, and from the close proximity of the neutral and hostile seaboards. These embarrassments might be met, were it permissible to sell the cargoes, and hold the money value, subject to the decision of an admiralty court upon the propriety of the seizure; but this the circular explicitly forbade, until the case was referred to England. If the decision there was adverse to the captors, the other party would look to the responsible naval officer for pecuniary redress, and as, during the delay, the cargo would be spoiled, costs could come only out of the captor's pocket. Nelson's experiences in the West Indies, ten years before, naturally made him cautious about further legal annoyances.
As soon as he arrived in Genoa on July 17, the British minister informed him about the impact of neutral trade on both armies' operations, if left uncontrolled. If the French could continue receiving supplies, the Austrian general would struggle not only to advance but might also be unable to maintain his current position. Conversely, if the forage and grain being delivered to the French could be intercepted, they would have to retreat, and there was hope that the Austrians could reach Nice before winter, securing the prime harbor of Villefranche for their British allies. Nelson understood the situation and recognized the need for his squadron to disrupt the enemy's supply lines; however, he pointed out to the minister that the previously mentioned circular instructions were limiting his actions. The usual challenges of proving cargo ownership and destination would lead to annoying disputes and frustrate neutral parties, which went against the spirit of the order. Additionally, this situation was complicated by the presence of French troops in Genoese towns and the close proximity of neutral and enemy coastlines. These issues could be managed if it were allowed to sell the cargoes and keep the money value until an admiralty court decided on the legitimacy of the seizure, but the circular explicitly forbade this until the case was sent to England. If the ruling there was against the captors, the other party would seek financial compensation from the responsible naval officer, and since the cargo would spoil during the wait, the costs would have to come out of the captor's pocket. Nelson's experiences in the West Indies ten years earlier understandably made him wary of further legal troubles.
All this he stated with his usual lucidity; but the case was one in which his course could have been safely predicted by a person familiar with his character. The need for the proposed action was evident. "The whole of the necessity of stopping all the vessels is comprised in a very few words: that, if we will not stop supplies of corn, etc., going to France, the armies will return from whence they came, and the failure of this campaign, from which so much is expected, will be laid to our want of energy; for the only use of the naval co-operation is the keeping out a supply of provisions." He therefore, after a night's reflection, told the minister that if he would tell him, officially, that it was for the benefit of his Majesty's service that he should stop all trade between the neutral towns and France, and places occupied by the armies of France, he would give the proper directions for that purpose. It would have been possible for him, though with some delay, to refer the matter to Hotham, but he knew the latter's temperament, and distrusted it. "Our admiral has no political courage whatever," he wrote to Collingwood, "and is alarmed at the mention of any strong measure; but, in other respects, he is as good a man as can possibly be." With a superior so little decided, it was better, by his own independent initiative, to create a situation, which the former would be as backward to reverse as he would have been to change the previous and wholly different state of things. Like the American frontiersman, whose motto was, "Be sure you're right, then go ahead," Nelson, when convinced, knew no hesitations; but further, he unquestionably derived keen enjoyment from the sense that the thing done involved risk to himself, appealed to and brought into play his physical or moral courage, in the conscious exercise of which he delighted. "I am acting, not only without the orders of my commander-in-chief, but in some measure contrary to them. However, I have not only the support of his Majesty's ministers, both at Turin and Genoa, but a consciousness that I am doing what is right and proper for the service of our King and Country. Political courage in an officer abroad is as highly necessary as military courage." "The orders I have given are strong, and I know not how my admiral will approve of them, for they are, in a great measure, contrary to those he gave me; but the service requires strong and vigorous measures to bring the war to a conclusion."
All of this he said with his usual clarity; but the situation was one that someone who knew his character could have easily predicted. The need for the proposed action was clear. "The entire necessity of stopping all the ships can be summed up in a few words: if we don't stop the supply of grain, etc., going to France, the armies will go back to where they came from, and the failure of this campaign, which has so much expected from it, will be blamed on our lack of energy; because the only purpose of the naval cooperation is to keep out a supply of provisions." After thinking it over for a night, he told the minister that if he would officially say it was for the benefit of the King’s service that he should stop all trade between the neutral towns and France, and the areas occupied by the French armies, he would give the necessary orders for that purpose. He could have referred the matter to Hotham, although it would have taken some time, but he knew Hotham’s temperament and didn’t trust it. "Our admiral has no political courage at all," he wrote to Collingwood, "and gets scared at the thought of any strong measures; but otherwise, he is as good a man as can be." With a superior who was so indecisive, it was better, by taking his own initiative, to create a situation that the admiral would be just as hesitant to undo as he would have been to change the previous and entirely different circumstances. Like the American frontiersman whose motto was, "Make sure you're right, then go ahead," Nelson, when convinced, had no hesitations; furthermore, he definitely found great enjoyment in knowing that what he was doing involved a personal risk, engaged both his physical and moral courage, in the conscious exercise of which he took great pleasure. "I am acting not only without the orders of my commander-in-chief but somewhat against them. However, I have the backing of his Majesty's ministers in both Turin and Genoa, and I am aware that I am doing what is right and proper for the service of our King and Country. Political courage in an officer abroad is just as essential as military courage." "The orders I have given are strong, and I don’t know how my admiral will receive them, because they largely go against the ones he gave me; but the service needs strong and decisive measures to bring the war to an end."
The case bore some resemblance to that in which he had disobeyed Hughes in the West Indies; but the disregard of the superior's orders on the earlier occasion was more direct, and the necessity for it less urgent. In both he disobeyed first, and referred afterwards, and in both his action was practically sustained; for, whatever the technical fault, the course taken was the one demanded by the needs of the situation. It is possible to recognize the sound policy, the moral courage, and the correctness of such a step in the particular instance, without at all sanctioning the idea that an officer may be justified in violating orders, because he thinks it right. The justification rests not upon what he thinks, but upon the attendant circumstances which prove that he is right; and, if he is mistaken, if the conditions have not warranted the infraction of the fundamental principle of military efficiency,—obedience,—he must take the full consequences of his error, however honest he may have been. Nor can the justification of disobedience fairly rest upon any happy consequences that follow upon it, though it is a commonplace to say that the result is very apt to determine the question of reward or blame. There is a certain confusion of thought prevalent on this matter, most holding the rule of obedience too absolutely, others tending to the disorganizing view that the integrity of the intention is sufficient; the practical result, and for the average man the better result, being to shun the grave responsibility of departing from the letter of the order. But all this only shows more clearly the great professional courage and professional sagacity of Nelson, that he so often assumed such a responsibility, and so generally—with, perhaps, but a single exception—was demonstrably correct in his action.
The case was somewhat similar to when he had ignored Hughes in the West Indies; however, his disregard for orders back then was more straightforward, and the urgency of the situation was less compelling. In both instances, he disobeyed first and reported afterward, and in both cases, his actions were largely supported; despite any technical faults, the approach he took was what the situation required. One can recognize the sound strategy, moral courage, and validity of his decision in this particular instance without endorsing the idea that an officer can justifiably ignore orders simply because he believes it’s the right thing to do. Justification doesn’t come from his beliefs but from the circumstances that prove he is right; if he’s wrong and the conditions don’t support breaking the essential principle of military efficiency—obedience—he must face the complete consequences of his mistake, no matter how honest he was. Justification for disobedience can’t rely on any positive outcomes that arise from it, even though it’s common to say that the result often influences how one is rewarded or blamed. There’s a lot of confusion on this issue; most people take the rule of obedience too strictly, while others lean towards the disorganized idea that good intentions are enough. The practical outcome, and generally the better outcome for the average person, is to avoid the serious responsibility that comes with straying from the exact wording of the order. But all this highlights the considerable professional courage and insight of Nelson, who frequently took on such responsibilities and, with maybe one exception, was usually correct in his actions.
Hotham in this case very heartily approved what had been done, and issued, to the fleet in general, orders similar to those given by Nelson; but he did not like the difficulties that surrounded the question of co-operation, and left the conduct of affairs on the spot wholly to his eager and enterprising subordinate. The latter directed the seizure of all vessels laden with corn for France or the French armies, an order that was construed to apply to the Genoese towns occupied by them. The cargoes appear to have been sold and the money held. The cruisers in his command were stationed along the Riviera, east and west of Genoa itself. Those to the eastward, in the neighborhood of Spezia, where no French were, gave great offence to the Government of the Republic, which claimed that their chief city was blockaded; but Nelson refused to remove them. They are not blockading Genoa, he said, but simply occupying the station best suited to intercept a contraband trade. The various British vessels displayed the full activity that might have been expected from the character of their leader, and the pressure was speedily felt by the enemy, and by the neutrals whose lucrative trade was summarily interrupted. The traffic in vessels of any considerable size, sea-going vessels, soon ceased, and Nelson entertained at first great hopes of decisive results from the course adopted by him. "We have much power here at present to do great things, if we know how to apply it," he wrote, after being ten days on the ground; and at the end of a month, "The strong orders which I judged it proper to give on my first arrival, have had an extraordinary good effect; the French army is now supplied with almost daily bread from Marseilles; not a single boat has passed with corn." The enemy themselves admitted the stringency of their situation. But Nelson had yet to learn how ingenuity and enterprise could find a way of eluding his care. The coasting-trade soon began to take on a large development. The Spaniards, now at peace with France, supplied Marseilles, and from both that port and Genoa grain was carried by small boats, that could be moved by oar as well as sail, could hug closely the rocky shore, and run readily under the batteries with which the French had covered the small bays of the western Riviera, whither the cruisers could not follow. The operations of the latter, dependent only upon their canvas, could not always be extended to within easy gunshot of the beach, along which the blockade-runners kept, usually under cover of night.
Hotham wholeheartedly approved of what had been done and issued orders to the fleet that were similar to those given by Nelson. However, he was uneasy about the challenges surrounding cooperation and left the management of the situation entirely to his eager and enterprising subordinate. The latter ordered the seizure of all vessels carrying grain for France or the French armies, which was interpreted to include the Genoese towns they occupied. The cargoes seemed to have been sold, and the money was held. The cruisers under his command were positioned along the Riviera, both east and west of Genoa. Those stationed to the east, near Spezia, where there were no French forces, caused significant offense to the Republic's government, which claimed that its main city was blockaded; but Nelson refused to move them. "They are not blockading Genoa," he said, "but simply occupying the spot most suitable for intercepting contraband trade." The various British vessels showed the kind of activity expected from their leader, and the pressure was quickly felt by the enemy and the neutrals whose profitable trade was suddenly halted. The trade involving sizable, sea-worthy vessels soon stopped, and initially, Nelson had high hopes for decisive results from his approach. "We have a lot of power here right now to accomplish great things if we know how to use it," he wrote after being on the ground for ten days; and by the end of a month, he noted, "The strong orders I deemed necessary to give upon my arrival have had an extraordinarily good effect; the French army is now getting almost daily bread from Marseilles; not a single boat has passed with corn." The enemy themselves acknowledged the severity of their situation. But Nelson had yet to discover how ingenuity and resourcefulness could find ways to bypass his vigilance. The coastal trade soon began to grow significantly. The Spaniards, now at peace with France, supplied Marseilles, and from both that port and Genoa, grain was transported by small boats that could be rowed as well as sailed, hugging the rocky shore and easily slipping under the batteries that the French had set up along the small bays of the western Riviera, where the cruisers could not pursue. The operations of these cruisers, reliant solely on their sails, could not always be brought within easy range of the beach, which the blockade-runners typically skirted under the cover of night.
Hence, although seriously inconvenienced, the French did not find their position untenable. There were two ways by which the pressure might be increased. A flotilla of small vessels, similar to the coasters themselves, but armed and heavily manned, might keep close in with the points which the latter had to round, and prevent their passage; but the British had no such vessels at their disposal, and, even if they had, the operations would be exposed to danger from the weather upon a hostile, iron-bound coast, whose shelter was forbidden them by the enemy's guns. The Neapolitans had such a flotilla, and it seems probable that its co-operation was asked, for Nelson speaks of it as a desirable aid on the 23d of August; but it did not actually join him until the 15th of September, when the season for its acting was almost past. "Had I the flotilla," wrote he, "nothing should be on this coast. A few weeks more and they will not stay a night at sea to save an empire." Prior to its arrival the British attempted to harass the traffic with their ships' boats, but these were undecked, and of limited capacity compared to those against which they were to act. They were occasionally successful, but the results were too uncertain and hazardous to warrant perseverance, although Bonaparte had to admit that "The audacity of the English boats and the indolence of the Genoese, who allow their own vessels to be taken in their own roads, make it necessary to erect a battery for hot shot at a proper point, which you will exact shall be done by the governor of San Remo."
Thus, while the French were seriously inconvenienced, they didn't consider their position impossible to maintain. There were two ways to increase pressure. A fleet of small vessels, like the coasters themselves but armed and crewed heavily, could stay close to the points the coasters needed to navigate and block their passage. However, the British didn't have such vessels available, and even if they did, the operations would be at risk from the weather along a hostile, rocky coast, where the enemy’s guns prevented them from seeking shelter. The Neapolitans had such a fleet, and it's likely that their assistance was requested, as Nelson mentioned it as a valuable support on August 23rd; but they didn't actually join him until September 15th, when the opportunity for action was nearly over. "If I had the fleet," he wrote, "nothing would remain on this coast. In a few more weeks, they won't stay out at sea to protect an empire." Before their arrival, the British tried to disrupt the traffic with their boats, but these were open and less capable compared to those they faced. They were sometimes successful, but the outcomes were too unpredictable and risky to continue. Bonaparte had to concede that "The boldness of the English boats and the laziness of the Genoese, who let their own ships be captured in their own waters, make it necessary to build a battery for hot shot at a suitable point, which you will demand that the governor of San Remo must do."
Nelson's active mind, clinging with its usual accurate insight to the decisive factor in the situation, now fixed upon the idea of seizing a suitable point upon the Riviera to the westward of the French, upon their line of communication with Nice. A body of troops there, strong enough to hold the position, would stop the passage of supplies by land, and, if they controlled an anchorage, a condition indispensable to their support,—and to their retreat, if necessary to retire,—the small vessels based upon that could better interrupt the coasting business. In pursuance of this plan, he in the first week of September made a cruise with the "Agamemnon" as far to the westward as Nice, reconnoitring carefully all recesses of the shore line that seemed available for the purpose. Upon his return, he wrote to De Vins what he had done, and described San Remo as the only available spot. He mentioned its disadvantages as well as its advantages, but undertook positively to land there five thousand men with field-guns, and provisions for a few days, to maintain their supplies by sea, and to cover their embarkation in case retreat became imperative. In short, he guaranteed to land such a force safely, and to be responsible for its communications; for both which he practically pledged his professional reputation. He added, what was indisputable, that the French army must abandon its present lines for want of supplies, if San Remo were held for some time.
Nelson's sharp mind, as usual, focused keenly on the key factor in the situation. He settled on the idea of taking a strategic position on the Riviera to the west of the French, targeting their supply line to Nice. If he could establish a strong troop presence there, it would cut off land supplies and, if they controlled a docking area—which was essential for support and a potential retreat—the small vessels based there could disrupt coastal trade more effectively. To implement this plan, he took the "Agamemnon" on a cruise in the first week of September, all the way to Nice, carefully scouting all the shoreline areas that seemed suitable. Upon returning, he informed De Vins about his actions and identified San Remo as the only viable location. He pointed out both its pros and cons but confidently assured that he could land five thousand troops with field guns and a few days' worth of supplies there, maintaining their support by sea and ensuring a safe evacuation if necessary. In short, he promised to securely land that force and guarantee its supply line, putting his professional reputation on the line for both. He also noted, quite rightly, that the French army would have to abandon its current positions due to a lack of supplies if San Remo were held for an extended period.
De Vins replied on the 14th of September, expressing his interest in the matter thus broached to him, but carefully evading the issue. He addressed his remarks to the comparative merits of Vado and San Remo as anchorages, upon which Nelson had touched barely, and only incidentally, for the gist of his proposal was simply to intercept the enemy's communications; if this were feasible, all other considerations were subsidiary and matters of detail. San Remo was admitted to be the poorer anchorage, unfit for the fleet, but open to small vessels, which could carry the supplies to the Austrian detachment, and stop those of the enemy. The move proposed was intended to effect by sea, substantially, the object which De Vins himself had told Nelson, three weeks before, that he was trying to secure through the co-operation of the Sardinian land forces. "He has been long expecting," wrote Nelson on the 13th of August, "an attack by General Colli with the Piedmontese near Ormea, directly back from Vintimiglia. This is the great point to be carried, as the Piedmontese army would then get Vintimiglia, and ... probably, unless the enemy are very active, their retreat to Nice will be cut off. De Vins says he has flattered and abused the Piedmontese and Neapolitans, but nothing will induce them to act." Colli was a good soldier, but his relations with the Austrian were very strained, and coalitions rarely act cordially. This plan, however, becoming known to the French, was commended by Bonaparte as well conceived. "We have examined attentively the project attributed to the enemy in the enclosed note. We have found it conformable to his real interests, and to the present distribution of his troops. The heights of Briga are in truth the key to the Department of the Maritime Alps, since from there the high-road may be intercepted and we be obliged to evacuate Tende. We charge you to pay serious attention to this matter."[32] Disappointed in Sardinian support, Nelson and De Vins had then discussed a plan, of which the former's present proposal was the very clear and practical outcome. Some risk must be run, he said; but De Vins, when it came to the point, saw the dangers too plainly. He did not distinctly refuse, but talked only, and instead of San Remo proposed to land west of Nice, between it and the Var. Nothing, however, was done, or even attempted, and Hotham refused co-operation.
De Vins responded on September 14th, showing his interest in the matter presented to him, but skillfully avoiding the main issue. He focused his comments on comparing Vado and San Remo as anchorages, which Nelson had barely mentioned. The core of Nelson's proposal was simply to cut off the enemy's communications; if that could be achieved, all other factors were secondary and merely details. San Remo was acknowledged as a worse anchorage, unsuitable for the fleet, but accessible to smaller vessels that could deliver supplies to the Austrian forces and disrupt the enemy's logistics. The move suggested was meant to accomplish by sea what De Vins had previously told Nelson he was attempting to secure through the collaboration of the Sardinian ground troops. "He has long been expecting," Nelson wrote on August 13th, "an attack by General Colli with the Piedmontese near Ormea, coming back from Vintimiglia. This is the crucial point to capture, as the Piedmontese army would then take Vintimiglia, and... probably, unless the enemy acts quickly, their retreat to Nice will be blocked. De Vins claims he has sweet-talked and criticized the Piedmontese and Neapolitans, but nothing will motivate them to act." Colli was a competent soldier, but his relationship with the Austrians was very tense, and alliances rarely function smoothly. However, this plan was discovered by the French and praised by Bonaparte as well thought out. "We have closely examined the project attributed to the enemy in the attached note. We find it aligned with his real interests and the current distribution of his troops. The heights of Briga are indeed the key to the Maritime Alps region since controlling them would allow us to intercept the main road and force us to abandon Tende. We urge you to give this matter serious consideration." Disappointed by the lack of Sardinian support, Nelson and De Vins then discussed a plan, of which Nelson's current proposal was a clear and practical result. Some risks were necessary, he said; but when it came down to it, De Vins recognized the dangers too vividly. He didn't outright refuse but only spoke, and instead of San Remo, he suggested landing west of Nice, between Nice and the Var. However, nothing was done or even attempted, and Hotham declined to collaborate.
Having regard to the decisive effect exercised upon any strategic position, or movement, by a valid threat against the communications,—considering, for example, the vital influence which the French occupation of Genoa in 1800 had upon the campaign which terminated at Marengo,—it is impossible to speak otherwise than with respect of this proposal of Nelson's. Nevertheless, serious reflection can scarcely fail to affirm that it was not really practicable. There is an immeasurable difference between the holding of a strongly fortified city with an army corps, and the mere seizure of a comparatively open position by a detachment, which, if it means to remain, must have time to fortify itself, in order to withstand the overwhelming numbers that the enemy must at once throw upon it. The time element, too, is of the utmost importance. It is one thing to grasp a strong position with a few men, expecting to hold it for some hours, to delay an advance or a retreat until other forces can come into play, and quite another to attempt to remain permanently and unsupported in such a situation. In the case before us, De Vins would have landed five thousand men in a comparatively exposed position; for, although the town of San Remo was in possession of the French, who might be driven out for the moment, the only strong point, the citadel, was occupied—as in the case of Savona, to the eastward of the Austrians—by the Genoese, who would doubtless have refused admission. Before his main body would still lie the works which the French had been diligently strengthening for more than two months, and which, with his whole force in hand, he did not care to assail. The enemy, knowing him thus weakened, could well afford to spare a number greatly superior to the detachment he had adventured, certain that, while they were dislodging it, he could make no serious impression upon their lines. As for retreat and embarkation under cover of the guns of a squadron, when pressed by an enemy, the operation is too critical to be hazarded for less than the greatest ends, and with at least a fair possibility of success for the undertaking whose failure would entail it.
Given the significant impact that a valid threat to communications can have on any strategic position or movement—consider, for example, the crucial effect that the French occupation of Genoa in 1800 had on the campaign that ended at Marengo—it's hard to discuss Nelson's proposal without respect. However, serious thought makes it clear that it wasn't really feasible. There's a vast difference between holding a heavily fortified city with a corps of soldiers and simply taking a relatively open position with a small detachment that must take time to fortify in order to withstand the overwhelming numbers the enemy would quickly send against it. Timing is crucial, too. It's one thing to seize a strong position with a few troops, hoping to hold it for a few hours to delay an advance or retreat until more forces can arrive; it's quite another to try to remain there permanently and unsupported. In this situation, De Vins would have landed five thousand men in a relatively vulnerable position; although the French held the town of San Remo—which they could potentially be driven out of temporarily—the only strong point, the citadel, was occupied by the Genoese, who would likely refuse entry. Before his main force lay the fortifications that the French had been reinforcing for over two months, and which, even with all his forces, he wasn’t willing to attack. The enemy, aware of his weakened state, could easily send a much larger number than the detachment he had put in danger, assured that while they were pushing him out, he couldn't make any serious impact on their lines. As for retreating and boarding under the cover of a squadron’s guns when faced with an enemy, that operation is too risky to attempt without significant reasons and at least a reasonable chance of success given the stakes at hand.
Nelson's confidence in himself and in his profession, and his accurate instinct that war cannot be made without running risks, combined with his lack of experience in the difficulties of land operations to mislead his judgment in the particular instance. In a converse sense, there may be applied to him the remark of the French naval critic, that Napoleon lacked "le sentiment exact des difficultés de la marine." It was not only to British seamen, and to the assured control of the sea, that Nelson thought such an attempt offered reasonable prospect of success. He feared a like thing might be effected by the French,—by evasion. "If the enemy's squadron comes on this coast, and lands from three to four thousand men between Genoa and Savona, I am confident that either the whole Austrian army will be defeated, or must inevitably retreat into Piedmont, and abandon their artillery and stores." These words, the substance of which he frequently repeats, though written immediately before the disastrous Battle of Loano, do not apply to the purpose entertained by the French on that occasion, of endeavoring, by a small detachment at Voltri, to check the Austrian retreat till their pursuers came up. He is contemplating a much more considerable and sustained effort, strategic in character, and identical in aim with his own proposal to De Vins about San Remo. It is clear that Nelson, in his day, did not attach absolute deterrent effect to a fleet in being, even to such an one as the British then had in the Mediterranean. Important a factor as it was, it might conceivably be disregarded, by a leader who recognized that the end in view justified the risk.
Nelson's self-assurance and confidence in his profession, along with his accurate sense that war involves taking risks, combined with his lack of experience in land operations, led him to misjudge the situation in this instance. Similarly, we can apply the observation from a French naval critic that Napoleon lacked "the exact sense of the challenges of the navy" to Nelson. He believed that the attempt to land troops had a reasonable chance of success not just because of the British sailors and their strong control of the sea, but also because he feared the French could do something similar through evasion. "If the enemy's squadron comes to this coast and lands three to four thousand men between Genoa and Savona, I am confident that either the entire Austrian army will be defeated or will have to retreat into Piedmont, abandoning their artillery and supplies." He often repeated these words, which were written just before the disastrous Battle of Loano, but they don't refer to the French's actual plan at that time, which was to use a small detachment at Voltri to delay the Austrian retreat until their main forces arrived. He was thinking about a much larger and sustained strategic effort, similar in intent to his proposal to De Vins regarding San Remo. It's clear that during his time, Nelson did not see a fleet in existence, even one like the British had in the Mediterranean, as an absolute deterrent. While it was an important factor, a leader could decide to overlook it if they believed the objective justified the risk.
There was yet another motive actuating Nelson in his present proposals. Justly impatient of the delays and colorless policy of both De Vins and the British leaders, he foresaw that the latter would be made to take the blame, if the campaign proved abortive or disastrous. The Austrians had at least something to show. They had advanced, and they had seized Vado Bay, cutting off the intercourse between Genoa and France, which Bonaparte deemed so important, and at the same time securing an anchorage for the fleet. The latter had done nothing, although its co-operation had been promised; except Nelson's little squadron, in which was but one small ship-of-the-line out of the twenty-three under Hotham's command, it had not been seen.[33] Nelson was determined, as far as in him lay, to remove all grounds for reproach. He urged the admiral to send him more ships, and abounded in willingness towards De Vins. For the latter he had at first felt the esteem and confidence which he almost invariably showed, even to the point of weakness, towards those associated with him; but he now became distrustful, and devoted himself to stopping every loophole of excuse which might afterwards be converted into reproaches to the navy.
There was another reason driving Nelson in his current proposals. Frustrated by the delays and bland strategies of both De Vins and the British leaders, he realized that they would likely be blamed if the campaign turned out to be unsuccessful or disastrous. The Austrians at least had something to show for their efforts. They had made progress and captured Vado Bay, cutting off communication between Genoa and France, which Bonaparte considered crucial, while also securing a harbor for the fleet. The British fleet had done nothing, despite promises of cooperation; aside from Nelson's small squadron, which included only one small ship-of-the-line out of the twenty-three under Hotham's command, it hadn’t been seen. Nelson was determined to eliminate any grounds for criticism. He urged the admiral to send him more ships and expressed his willingness to cooperate with De Vins. Initially, he had felt the esteem and trust that he typically showed, even to the point of being overly lenient, towards those around him; but now he had become skeptical and focused on closing every possible excuse that could later be turned into blame for the navy.
The cause for the inadequacy of the force left under his command, of which he often complains, is not apparent. The question was put direct to the admiral whether he would co-operate with the fleet in the proposed descent of the Austrians. He said that he could not, owing to the nature of his instructions from home; but that he would answer for it that the French navy should not interfere. Six weeks later the question was repeated; but the admiral replied that, after a consultation with the flag-officers under his command, he refused co-operation in what he considered a wild scheme. In this opinion he was probably right, though Nelson possibly was reminded of Dundas's objections to besieging Bastia. Nelson then went in person to Leghorn, and saw Hotham. He asked to be given two seventy-fours and the transports, to make the attempt himself. Hotham again refused a single ship; but not only so, reduced Nelson's squadron, and ordered him, in addition to his present duties, to reconnoitre Toulon continually, "whilst he," said Nelson, scornfully, "lies quiet in Leghorn Roads." It would almost seem as if the admiral thought that the time had come for a little judicious snubbing, and repression of ardor in the uncomfortable subordinate, whose restless energy conflicted so much with his repose of mind. The fleet spent its time chiefly in San Fiorenzo Bay or in Leghorn, making occasional cruises off Toulon to observe the French navy in that port. The latter was undoubtedly its principal care; but, being distinctly inferior to the British, it is impossible to say why Nelson should not have been reinforced. If it was due to the wish to continue so largely superior in numbers, it certainly illustrates with singular appositeness the deterrent effect of an inferior "fleet in being," and that that effect lies less in the nature of things than in the character of the officer upon whom it is produced. Moreover, the employment of adequate force upon the Riviera, in active aggressive work under Nelson during the summer, when it was practicable to do so, would have compelled the French fleet to come out and fight, or the French army to fall back.
The reason for the lack of proper forces left under his command, which he often complains about, isn’t clear. The admiral was directly asked if he would work with the fleet on the planned attack against the Austrians. He said he couldn’t, due to the nature of his orders from home, but he assured that the French navy wouldn’t interfere. Six weeks later, the question was asked again, but the admiral responded that after discussing it with the flag-officers under him, he refused to cooperate in what he considered a reckless plan. In this regard, he was likely justified, although Nelson may have recalled Dundas's concerns about laying siege to Bastia. Nelson then went to Leghorn to meet Hotham. He requested two seventy-four-gun ships and the transports to carry out the attempt himself. Hotham again denied him a single ship; not only that, he reduced Nelson's squadron and ordered him, in addition to his current duties, to keep a constant watch on Toulon, "while he," Nelson said contemptuously, "sits comfortably in Leghorn Roads." It almost seemed like the admiral thought it was time for a bit of strategic discouragement and to rein in the enthusiastic subordinate, whose restless energy clashed with his own tranquility. The fleet mostly spent its time in San Fiorenzo Bay or Leghorn, making occasional cruises off Toulon to observe the French navy in that port. This was undoubtedly their main concern; however, since their navy was obviously inferior to the British, it’s hard to understand why Nelson wasn't reinforced. If it was to maintain a significant numerical advantage, it certainly highlights the interesting impact of having an inferior "fleet in being," and that impact is often more about the character of the officer involved than the situation itself. Additionally, the deployment of adequate forces along the Riviera, actively engaging under Nelson during the summer when it was feasible, would have forced the French fleet to confront them or the French army to retreat.
On the 1st of November Hotham struck his flag in Genoa, and departed, bequeathing to his successors a military estate encumbered by the old mortgage of the French fleet, still in being, which he might have cleared off, and by a new one in the numerous and powerful batteries of the Riviera, built and controlled by troops whose presence to erect them might have been prevented by a timely action on his part. The harm, being done, was thenceforth irreparable. As time passed, the situation became more and more favorable to the French. The reinforcements from Spain arrived, and gunboats and flatboats, fitted out at Toulon, began to come upon the scene. Their appearance revived, in Nelson the apprehension, so consonant to his military ideas at this time, of an attempt upon the coast road in rear of the Austrians. He even feared for Genoa itself, and for the "Agamemnon," while she lay there, as the result of such a dash. The recurrence of this prepossession is illustrative of his view of possibilities. The true and primary object of the French was to consolidate their communications; nor, with Bonaparte in the influential position he then occupied, was any such ex-centric movement likely. For useful purposes, Genoa was already at his disposal; the French subsistence department was, by his plans, to collect there rations of corn for sixty thousand men for three months, preparatory to an advance. For the same object the coasting activity redoubled along the Riviera, from Toulon to the French front. By November 1st a hundred sail—transports and small ships of war—had assembled fifteen miles behind Borghetto, in Alassio Bay, whither Nelson had chased them. Depots and supplies were collecting there for the prospective movement. Nelson offered to enter the bay with three ships-of-the-line, specified by name, and to destroy them; but this was declined by Sir Hyde Parker, who had temporarily succeeded Hotham in command, and who at a later day, in the Baltic, was to check some of Nelson's finest inspirations. "I pretend not to say," wrote the latter, a month afterwards, when the Austrians had been driven from their lines, "that the Austrians would not have been beat had not the gunboats harassed them, for, on my conscience, I believe they would; but I believe the French would not have attacked had we destroyed all the vessels of war, transports, etc." As to the practicability of destroying them, Nelson's judgment can safely be accepted, subject only to the chances which are inseparable from war.
On November 1st, Hotham lowered his flag in Genoa and left, passing on to his successors a military situation burdened by the lingering issue of the French fleet, which he could have resolved. Instead, he added a new problem with the numerous and powerful batteries along the Riviera, constructed and managed by troops whose presence could have been avoided with timely action on his part. The damage was done and became irreparable from that point forward. As time went on, the situation increasingly favored the French. Reinforcements from Spain arrived, and gunboats and flatboats outfitted at Toulon began to appear. Their arrival renewed in Nelson the concern, consistent with his military views at that time, about an attempt on the coastal road behind the Austrians. He even worried for Genoa itself and for the "Agamemnon," while she was docked there, as a result of such a move. This recurring worry reflects his perspective on possibilities. The primary objective of the French was to strengthen their communications; and with Bonaparte in a powerful position, any eccentric movement seemed improbable. Genoa was already available for his purposes; according to his plans, the French supply department was to gather rations of corn for sixty thousand men for three months there, in preparation for an advance. For this same reason, coastal activity intensified along the Riviera, from Toulon to the French front. By November 1st, a hundred ships—transports and smaller warships—had gathered fifteen miles behind Borghetto, in Alassio Bay, where Nelson had pursued them. Depots and supplies were assembling there for the expected movement. Nelson offered to enter the bay with three named ships-of-the-line to destroy them; however, this was rejected by Sir Hyde Parker, who had temporarily taken over command from Hotham and who, later in the Baltic, would curtail some of Nelson's best ideas. "I cannot claim," wrote Nelson a month later, after the Austrians had been pushed back from their lines, "that the Austrians wouldn't have been defeated if not for the gunboats bothering them; honestly, I believe they would have been; but I believe the French would not have attacked if we had destroyed all the warships, transports, etc." As for the feasibility of destroying them, Nelson's judgment can generally be trusted, considering the inherent uncertainties of war.
So far from reinforcing the squadron on the Riviera, Sir Hyde Parker first reduced it, and then took away the frigates at this critical moment, when the indications of the French moving were becoming apparent in an increase of boldness. Their gunboats, no longer confining themselves to the convoy of coasters, crept forward at times to molest the Austrians, where they rested on the sea. Nelson had no similar force to oppose to them, except the Neapolitans, whom he ordered to act, but with what result is not clear. At the same time the French partisans in Genoa became very threatening. On the 10th of November a party of three hundred, drawn from the ships in the port, landed at Voltri, about nine miles from Genoa, seized a magazine of corn, and an Austrian commissary with £10,000 in his charge. The place was quickly retaken, but the effrontery of the attempt from a neutral port showed the insecurity of the conditions. At the same time a rumor spread that a force of between one and two thousand men, partly carried from Genoa in the French ships of war then lying there, partly stealing along shore in coasters from Borghetto, was to seize a post near Voltri, and hold it. Nelson was informed that men were absolutely being recruited on the Exchange of Genoa for this expedition. When the attack at Voltri was made, the "Agamemnon" was lying in Vado Bay. Leaving a frigate there, Nelson started immediately for Genoa, in order, by the presence of a superior naval force and the fear of retaliation, both to compel the Republic to have its neutrality observed, and to check similar undertakings in the future. The "Agamemnon" was laid across the harbor's mouth, and no French vessel was allowed to sail. Urgent representations were made to Nelson by the Austrian minister and commander-in-chief, that, if the ship were withdrawn, the consequences to the army would be most serious. Contrary, therefore, to his personal inclinations, which were always to be at the front, he remained, although the demonstrations of the gunboats continued, and it was evident that they would at least annoy the Austrian flank in case of an assault. The latter evil, however, was much less disquieting than a descent on the army's line of retreat, at the same moment that it was assailed in front in force; and it was evident that the Austrian general was feeling an uneasiness, the full extent of which he did not betray. De Vins had by this time quitted his command, ill, and had been succeeded by General Wallis.
Instead of strengthening the squadron in the Riviera, Sir Hyde Parker initially downsized it and then removed the frigates during a crucial moment when the French were showing more boldness. Their gunboats, no longer just escorting coasters, started moving forward to harass the Austrians resting on the sea. Nelson had no real force to counter them, except for the Neapolitans, whom he instructed to act, but the results were unclear. At the same time, the French supporters in Genoa became increasingly aggressive. On November 10th, a group of three hundred men, taken from the ships in the port, landed at Voltri, about nine miles from Genoa, seized a grain store, and captured an Austrian official with £10,000. The area was quickly retaken, but the audacity of the attack from a neutral port revealed the instability of the situation. Meanwhile, rumors circulated that a force of one to two thousand men, partly brought from Genoa on French warships and partly sneaking along the coast on coasters from Borghetto, planned to take and hold a position near Voltri. Nelson received word that men were actively being recruited on the Genoa Exchange for this mission. When the attack on Voltri occurred, the "Agamemnon" was stationed in Vado Bay. Leaving a frigate there, Nelson immediately headed for Genoa, intending to use the threat of a superior naval presence to force the Republic to respect its neutrality and deter similar actions in the future. The "Agamemnon" was positioned across the harbor's entrance, preventing any French vessel from departing. The Austrian minister and commander-in-chief urgently urged Nelson that withdrawing the ship would have serious consequences for the army. Therefore, against his personal preference to be at the front, he stayed, even as the gunboats continued their provocations, which clearly posed a potential nuisance to the Austrian flank if an assault occurred. However, this concern was far less alarming than a sudden attack on the army's retreat line while it faced a strong frontal assault; it was evident that the Austrian general was anxious, though he didn’t fully reveal the extent of his worry. By this time, De Vins had left his command due to illness, and General Wallis had taken over.
In this condition of affairs, a general attack upon the Austrian positions was made by the French on the morning of November 24. As had been feared, the gunboats took part, in the absence of any British ships,—the frigate having been removed, Nelson asserts, without his knowledge; but the matter was of very secondary importance, for the weight of the enemy's attack fell upon the positions in the mountains, the centre and right, which were routed and driven back. Swinging round to their own right, towards the sea, the victorious French pushed after the disordered enemy, seeking to intercept their retreat by the coast. Had there then been established, in a well-chosen point of that narrow road, a resolute body of men, even though small, they might well have delayed the fliers until the main body of the pursuers came up; but the presence of the "Agamemnon" controlled the departure of the intended expedition from Genoa, upon which alone, as an organized effort, the projected obstruction depended. Thus she was the efficient cause, as Nelson claimed, that many thousands of Austrians escaped capture. As it was, they lost in this affair, known as the Battle of Loano, seven thousand men, killed, wounded, or prisoners. The entire Riviera was abandoned, and they retreated across the Apennines into Piedmont.
In this situation, the French launched a full-scale attack on the Austrian positions on the morning of November 24. As feared, the gunboats joined in since there were no British ships available—the frigate had been removed, as Nelson claims, without his knowledge. However, this was of little consequence because the brunt of the enemy's assault was aimed at the mountain positions, particularly the center and right, which were overwhelmed and pushed back. The victorious French shifted towards the sea, pursuing the disorganized enemy, hoping to cut off their retreat along the coast. If a determined group, even a small one, had been set up at a strategic point along that narrow path, they might have delayed the fleeing troops until the main force of pursuers arrived. Unfortunately, the presence of the "Agamemnon" affected the departure of the planned expedition from Genoa, which was the only organized effort that could have created the intended blockade. Therefore, as Nelson stated, it was the reason that many thousands of Austrians managed to escape capture. In the end, they lost about seven thousand men in this engagement, known as the Battle of Loano, including those killed, wounded, or taken prisoner. The entire Riviera was abandoned, and they retreated over the Apennines into Piedmont.
When things go wrong, there is always a disposition on the part of each one concerned to shift the blame. The Austrians had complained before the action, and still more afterwards, of the failure of the fleet to aid them. Nelson thought their complaint well founded. "They say, and true, they were brought on the coast at the express desire of the English, to co-operate with the fleet, which fleet nor admiral they never saw." On his own part he said: "Our admirals will have, I believe, much to answer for in not giving me that force which I so repeatedly called for, and for at last leaving me with Agamemnon alone. Admiral Hotham kept my squadron too small for its duty; and the moment Sir Hyde took the command of the fleet he reduced it to nothing,—only one frigate and a brig; whereas I demanded two seventy-four-gun ships and eight or ten frigates and sloops to insure safety to the army."
When things go wrong, everyone involved tends to shift the blame. The Austrians had complained before the battle, and even more afterward, about the fleet's failure to assist them. Nelson believed their complaint was justified. "They say, and it's true, they were brought to the coast at the English's request to work with the fleet, which neither they nor the admiral ever saw." For his part, he stated: "Our admirals will have, I think, a lot to answer for in not providing me with the force I repeatedly asked for and for ultimately leaving me with just the Agamemnon. Admiral Hotham kept my squadron too small for its responsibilities; and the moment Sir Hyde took command of the fleet, he reduced it to almost nothing—only one frigate and a brig; whereas I requested two seventy-four-gun ships and eight or ten frigates and sloops to ensure the army's safety."
It is unnecessary to inquire into the motives of the two admirals for the distribution of their force. Unquestionably, the first thing for them to do was to destroy or neutralize the French fleet; and next to destroy, or at least impede, the communications of the French army. That it was possible to do this almost wholly may be rested upon the authority of Nelson, whose matured opinion, given five years later, has already been quoted. Two opportunities to cripple the Toulon fleet were lost; but even so, after the junction of Man, in June, the superiority over it was so great that much might have been spared to the Riviera squadron. The coast was not at this time so extensively fortified that coasting could not, in Nelson's active hands, have been made a very insufficient means of supply. As an illustration of the operations then possible, on the 26th of August, six weeks after the naval battle of July 13, the "Agamemnon," with her little squadron, anchored in the Bay of Alassio, three cables' length from the fort in the centre of the town, and with her boats took possession of all the French vessels in the harbor. Two months later, so much had the place been strengthened, he could not vouch for success with less than three ships-of-the-line; but had the pressure been consistently applied during those months, the French position would long before have become untenable. That a shore line, by great and systematic effort, could be rendered secure throughout for coasters, was proved by Napoleon's measures to cover the concentration of the Boulogne flotilla in 1803-5; but such conditions did not obtain between Nice and Vado in 1795.
It’s not necessary to question the reasons behind the two admirals' decisions on how to allocate their forces. Clearly, their top priority was to destroy or neutralize the French fleet, and then to disrupt, or at least hinder, the communications of the French army. According to Nelson, who expressed his well-considered opinion five years later, it was indeed possible to achieve this almost completely. Two chances to weaken the Toulon fleet were missed; however, even after Man's arrival in June, their advantage was so significant that they could have dedicated more resources to the Riviera squadron. At that time, the coastline wasn’t so heavily fortified that coastal operations couldn’t have been made an inadequate means of supply in Nelson’s capable hands. As an example of what could have been done, on August 26, six weeks after the naval battle on July 13, the "Agamemnon," along with her small squadron, anchored in the Bay of Alassio, just a short distance from the main fort in town, and with her boats, captured all the French vessels in the harbor. Two months later, the fortifications had been strengthened to the point where he couldn’t guarantee success with fewer than three ships of the line; but had pressure been consistently maintained during those months, the French position would have already become unsustainable. Napoleon’s efforts to secure the shore for coasters during the concentration of the Boulogne flotilla from 1803 to 1805 demonstrate that a coastline could be made safe through extensive and organized effort; however, such conditions were not in place between Nice and Vado in 1795.
Despite the abortive and ignominious ending to the campaign, Nelson's own reputation issued from it not only unscathed, but heightened; and this is saying much, for, although due public recognition of his services had scarcely been extended,—except in conferring the Marines upon him,—he had already, before its beginning, made upon all who were brought into contact with him that impression of unusual efficiency, zeal, and sound judgment, to which subsequent employment and opportunity apply a sure and searching test. As he entered upon his detached duties, the Viceroy of Corsica, who had necessarily seen and known much of his past conduct, wrote to him thus: "Give me leave, my dear Sir, to congratulate you on the Agamemnon's supporting uniformly, on all occasions, the same reputation which has always distinguished that ship since I have been in the Mediterranean. It gives me great pleasure also to see you employed in your present important service, which requires zeal, activity, and a spirit of accommodation and co-operation, qualities which will not be wanting in the Commodore of your squadron. I consider the business you are about, I mean the expulsion of the enemy from the Genoese and Piedmontese territories, as the most important feature in the southern campaign." These anticipations of worthy service and exceptional merit were confirmed, after all the misfortunes and disappointments of the campaign, by the singularly competent judgment of the new commander-in-chief, Sir John Jervis. The latter at his first interview with Nelson, nearly two months after his arrival on the station, so that time enough had elapsed to mature his opinion, asked him to remain under his command, as a junior admiral, when he received his promotion. Having regard to Jervis's own high endowments, it was not then in the power of the British Navy to pay an officer of Nelson's rank a higher compliment.
Despite the unsuccessful and embarrassing end to the campaign, Nelson's reputation emerged not only intact but even enhanced. This is significant because, although public acknowledgment of his contributions was limited—except for promoting him within the Marines—he had already made a strong impression on everyone around him with his exceptional efficiency, enthusiasm, and sound judgment. These qualities were further validated by later experiences and opportunities. As he began his new responsibilities, the Viceroy of Corsica, who had seen much of his previous actions, wrote to him, saying: "Allow me, my dear Sir, to congratulate you on the Agamemnon consistently upholding the same distinguished reputation it has had since I’ve been in the Mediterranean. I am also very pleased to see you engaged in such an important role, which requires dedication, energy, and a collaborative spirit—all qualities you possess as the Commodore of your squadron. I believe the task at hand, the expulsion of the enemy from the Genoese and Piedmontese territories, is the most crucial aspect of the southern campaign." These expectations of valuable service and outstanding ability were confirmed, despite all the setbacks and disappointments of the campaign, by the notably capable judgment of the new commander-in-chief, Sir John Jervis. When he first met Nelson, nearly two months after arriving at the station—giving him enough time to form an opinion—he asked Nelson to stay under his command as a junior admiral upon his promotion. Considering Jervis’s own high qualifications, it was not possible for the British Navy to offer an officer of Nelson's rank a higher compliment.
During these months of service upon the Riviera, there occurred an incident, which, from the reflection made upon Nelson's integrity, drew from him a letter, struck off at such white heat, and so transparently characteristic of his temperament, aspirations, and habit of thought, as to merit quotation. A report had been spread that the commanders of the British ships of war connived at the entry of supply-vessels into the ports held by the French, and a statement to that effect was forwarded to the Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs. The latter sent the paper, for investigation, to the Minister to Genoa, who mentioned its tenor to Nelson. The latter, justly stigmatizing the conduct imputed to him and his officers as "scandalous and infamous," requested a copy of the accusation, in order that by his refutation he might convince the King, that he was "an officer who had ever pursued the road of honour, very different from that to wealth." Having received the copy, he wrote to the Secretary as follows:—
During these months of service on the Riviera, an incident occurred that reflected on Nelson's integrity, prompting him to write a letter that was so passionately composed and clearly representative of his character, aspirations, and way of thinking that it deserves to be quoted. A rumor had circulated that the commanders of the British warships were allowing supply vessels to enter ports held by the French, and this claim was sent to the Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs. The Secretary forwarded the document for review to the Minister in Genoa, who informed Nelson of its contents. Nelson, rightly condemning the behavior attributed to him and his officers as "scandalous and infamous," requested a copy of the accusation so he could refute it and demonstrate to the King that he was "an officer who had always followed the path of honor, very different from that to wealth." Once he received the copy, he wrote to the Secretary as follows:—
AGAMEMNON, GENOA ROAD, 23d November, 1795.
AGAMEMNON, GENOA ROAD, November 23, 1795.
MY LORD,—Having received, from Mr. Drake, a copy of your Lordship's letter to him of October, enclosing a paper highly reflecting on the honour of myself and other of His Majesty's Officers employed on this Coast under my Orders, it well becomes me, as far as in my power lies, to wipe away this ignominious stain on our characters. I do, therefore, in behalf of myself, and much injured Brethren, demand, that the person, whoever he may be, that wrote, or gave that paper to your Lordship, do fully, and expressly bring home his charge; which, as he states that this agreement is made by numbers of people on both sides, there can be no difficulty in doing. We dare him, my Lord, to the proof. If he cannot, I do most humbly implore, that His Majesty will be most graciously pleased to direct his Attorney-General to prosecute this infamous libeller in His Courts of Law; and I likewise feel, that, without impropriety, I may on behalf of my brother Officers, demand the support of His Majesty's Ministers: for as, if true, no punishment can be too great for the traitors; so, if false, none can be too heavy for the villain, who has dared to allow his pen to write such a paper. Perhaps I ought to stop my letter here; but I feel too much to rest easy for a moment, when the honour of the Navy, and our Country, is struck at through us; for if nine [ten] Captains, whom chance has thrown together, can instantly join in such a traitorous measure, it is fair to conclude we are all bad.
MY LORD,—Having received a copy of your Lordship's letter to Mr. Drake from October, which includes a document that unfairly tarnishes the reputation of myself and other officers serving under my command on this Coast, I feel it is my duty to do everything in my power to clear this disgrace from our names. Therefore, on behalf of myself and my wronged colleagues, I demand that the individual, no matter who they are, who wrote or provided this document to your Lordship, fully and directly substantiates their claims. Since they assert that this agreement involves numerous people on both sides, there should be no difficulty in doing so. We challenge him, my Lord, to prove it. If he cannot, I respectfully request that His Majesty graciously instruct his Attorney-General to prosecute this infamous libeler in His Courts of Law. Additionally, I believe it is appropriate to solicit the support of His Majesty's Ministers on behalf of my fellow officers; because, if the accusations are true, no punishment could be too severe for the traitors; and if they are false, no penalty could be too harsh for the scoundrel who dared to write such a document. Perhaps I should end my letter here, but I cannot rest easy knowing that the honor of the Navy and our Country is being attacked through us; for if nine [ten] Captains, brought together by chance, can swiftly unite in such a treacherous action, it suggests that we are all complicit.
As this traitorous agreement could not be carried on but by concert of all the Captains, if they were on the Stations allotted them, and as they could only be drawn from those Stations by orders from me, I do most fully acquit all my brother Captains from such a combination, and have to request, that I may be considered as the only responsible person for what is done under my command, if I approve of the conduct of those under my orders, which in this most public manner I beg leave to do: for Officers more alert, and more anxious for the good, and honour, of their King and Country, can scarcely ever fall to the lot of any Commanding Officer: their Names I place at the bottom of this letter.
As this betrayal could only happen with the agreement of all the Captains, provided they were at their assigned stations, and since they could only be moved from those stations by my orders, I completely clear all my fellow Captains of any wrongdoing in this situation. I ask that I be seen as the only one responsible for what happens under my command, as long as I approve of the actions of those following my orders, which I would like to publicly acknowledge: it would be hard for any Commanding Officer to have Officers more dedicated and concerned for the good and honor of their King and Country. I list their names at the end of this letter.
For myself, from my earliest youth I have been in the Naval Service; and in two Wars, have been in more than one hundred and forty Skirmishes and Battles, at Sea and on shore; have lost an eye, and otherwise blood, in fighting the Enemies of my King and Country; and, God knows, instead of riches, my little fortune has been diminished in the Service: but I shall not trouble your Lordship further at present, than just to say—that at the close of this Campaign, where I have had the pleasure to receive the approbation of the Generals of the Allied Powers; of his Excellency Mr. Drake, who has always been on the spot; of Mr. Trevor, who has been at a distance; when I expected and hoped, from the representation of His Majesty's Ministers, that His Majesty would have most graciously condescended to have favourably noticed my earnest desire to serve Him, and when, instead of all my fancied approbation, to receive an accusation of a most traitorous nature—it has almost been too much for me to bear. Conscious innocence, I hope, will support me.
Since my early youth, I have served in the Navy; during two wars, I've participated in over one hundred and forty skirmishes and battles, both at sea and on land. I've lost an eye and shed blood fighting for my King and Country. And, believe me, instead of gaining wealth, my small fortune has actually decreased because of my service. But I won’t trouble you further for now, other than to mention that at the end of this campaign, where I've had the pleasure of receiving approval from the generals of the Allied Powers, from His Excellency Mr. Drake, who has always been on-site, and from Mr. Trevor, who has been at a distance—I had hoped that, based on what His Majesty's Ministers indicated, the King would graciously acknowledge my sincere desire to serve Him. Instead, rather than the recognition I anticipated, I've received a very serious accusation of treachery—it’s almost more than I can bear. I hope that my innocence will sustain me.
I have the honour to be,
I'm honored to be,
My Lord,
My Lord,
Your Lordship's most obedient, humble servant,
Your Lordship's most obedient and humble servant,
HORATIO NELSON.
Horatio Nelson.
Except this vexatious but passing cloud, his service upon the Riviera, despite the procrastinations and final failure of his associates in the campaign, was pleasant both personally and officially. He earned the warm esteem of all with whom he acted, notably the British ministers at Turin and Genoa; and though necessarily in constant collision with the Genoese authorities upon international questions, he upheld the interests and policy of his own government, without entailing upon it serious cause of future reclamations and disputes.[34] Hotham's very indifference and lethargy, while crippling his enterprise, increased his independence. "I cannot get Hotham on the coast," he said, "for he hates this co-operation;" but he owns to the fear that the admiral, if he came, might overrule his projects. The necessity for exertion delighted him. "My command here is so far pleasant," he wrote to his friend Collingwood, "as it relieves me from the inactivity of our fleet, which is great indeed, as you will soon see." "At present," he tells his wife, "I do not write less than from ten to twenty letters every day; which, with the Austrian general, and aide-de-camps, and my own little squadron, fully employ my time: this I like; active service or none." As usual, when given room for the exercise of his powers, he was, for him, well. He had a severe attack of illness very soon after assuming the duty—"a complaint in the breast"—the precursor perhaps of the similar trouble from which he suffered so much in later years; but it wore off after an acute attack of a fortnight, and he wrote later that, except being at home, he knew no country so pleasant to serve in, nor where his health was so good. This well-grounded preference for the Mediterranean, as best suited to his naturally frail constitution, remained with him to the end.
Except for this annoying but temporary issue, his time on the Riviera, despite the delays and eventual failures of his campaign partners, was enjoyable both personally and officially. He gained the warm respect of everyone he worked with, especially the British ministers in Turin and Genoa; and even though he often clashed with the Genoese authorities over international matters, he managed to support the interests and policies of his government without causing serious future complaints or disputes. Hotham's indifference and sluggishness, while hindering his efforts, also gave him more independence. "I can’t get Hotham on the coast," he said, "because he hates cooperating," but he admitted he feared that if the admiral came, he might override his plans. The need to be active was something he enjoyed. "My command here is quite pleasant," he wrote to his friend Collingwood, "because it keeps me from the inactivity of our fleet, which is really significant, as you will soon see." "Right now," he told his wife, "I write no less than ten to twenty letters every day; this, along with the Austrian general, aides-de-camp, and my small squadron, keeps me completely busy: I like this; it’s either active service or nothing." As usual, when given the opportunity to use his abilities, he felt good. He did have a serious illness soon after taking on the role—"a chest complaint"—which might have been the start of similar issues he experienced later in life; however, it passed after an intense two-week bout, and he later wrote that, aside from being home, he couldn’t think of anywhere more enjoyable to serve or where his health was better. This well-founded preference for the Mediterranean, which suited his naturally delicate health, stayed with him until the end.
Besides his official correspondence, he wrote freely and fully to those at home, unburdening to them the thoughts, cares, and disappointments of his career, as well as the commendations he received, so dear to himself as well as to them. Mrs. Nelson and his father lived together, and to her most of his home letters were addressed. "I have been very negligent," he admits to her, "in writing to my father, but I rest assured he knows I would have done it long ago, had you not been under the same roof.... Pray draw on me," he continues, "for £200, my father and myself can settle our accounts when we meet; at present, I believe I am the richer man, therefore I desire you will give my dear father that money." One wonders whether, in the slightly peremptory tone of the last sentence, is to be seen a trace of the feeling she is said, by one biographer, to have shown, that he was too liberal to his relatives; an indication of that lack of sympathy, which, manifested towards other traits of his, no less marked than openhandedness, struck a jarring note within him, and possibly paved the way to an indifference which ended so unfortunately for both. An absent husband, however, very possibly failed to realize what his extreme generosity might mean, to one who had to meet household expenses with narrow means.
Besides his official correspondence, he wrote openly and in detail to those back home, sharing the thoughts, worries, and disappointments of his career, along with the praise he received, which meant a lot to both him and them. Mrs. Nelson and his father lived together, and most of his letters were addressed to her. "I have been really negligent," he admits to her, "in writing to my father, but I'm sure he knows I would have done it long ago if you weren't under the same roof... Please draw on me," he adds, "for £200; my father and I can settle our accounts when we meet; for now, I believe I'm the one with more money, so I want you to give my dear father that money." One wonders if the slightly commanding tone of the last sentence reflects a hint of the feeling she is said, by one biographer, to have had, that he was too generous to his relatives; a sign of that lack of understanding, which, along with other aspects of his character, as noticeable as his generosity, created a conflict within him and possibly led to an indifference that ended so sadly for both. An absent husband, however, might not have realized what his extreme generosity meant to someone who had to manage household expenses on a tight budget.
The political surmises with which his correspondence at this period abounds were often crude, though not infrequently also characterized by the native sagacity of his intellect, as yet undisciplined, and to some extent deficient in data for accurate forecasts. The erroneous military conception which colored much of his thought, the propositions for ex-centric movements in an enemy's rear, by bodies comparatively small, out of supporting distance from the rest of the army, and resting upon no impregnable base, contributed greatly to the faulty anticipations entertained and expressed by him from time to time. When applied to operations directed by the consummate and highly trained genius of Bonaparte, speculations so swayed naturally flew wide of the mark. His sanguine disposition to think the best of all persons and all things—except Frenchmen—made him also a ready prey to the flattering rumors of which war is ever fertile. These immaturities will be found to disappear, as his sphere widens and his responsibilities increase.
The political guesses in his correspondence during this time were often rough, but they also showed the natural insight of his mind, which was still untrained and somewhat lacking in solid information for accurate predictions. The flawed military ideas that influenced much of his thinking, such as suggesting unconventional movements behind enemy lines with relatively small forces, far from the rest of the army and without a solid foundation, greatly contributed to the incorrect expectations he sometimes expressed. When these ideas were applied to the operations of the brilliant and highly skilled strategist Bonaparte, it was no surprise that they missed the mark. His tendency to assume the best about everyone and everything—except for the French—also made him an easy target for the flattering rumors that tend to circulate during war. These shortcomings will fade away as his experience grows and his responsibilities increase.
After the close of the campaign, Nelson made a short cruise from Genoa to the westward, seeing the French on November 29 in full possession of Vado Bay. He then went to Leghorn, where he arrived on the 6th of December and remained till the middle of January, repairing, to make the "Agamemnon" "as fit for sea as a rotten ship can be." The longing for rest and for home, after nearly three years' absence, was again strong upon him in this moment of relaxation. "I fear our new admiral is willing to keep me with him," he wrote to his brother. "He has wrote me, I am sorry to say, a most nattering letter, and I hear I am to be offered St. George or Zealous [much larger ships], but, in my present mind, I shall take neither. My wish is to see England once more, and I want a few weeks' rest." But here again, having regard to that fame which was to him most dear, he was mistaken, as he now owned he had been in the wish, a year before, to accompany Lord Hood on his return. In Sir John Jervis he was to meet, not only one of the most accomplished and resolute officers of the British Navy, closely akin to himself in enterprise and fearlessness, though without his exceptional genius, but also a man capable of appreciating perfectly the extraordinary powers of his subordinate, and of disregarding every obstacle and all clamor, in the determination to utilize his qualities to the full, for the good of the nation.
After the campaign ended, Nelson took a short cruise from Genoa to the west, noticing the French fully occupying Vado Bay on November 29. He then headed to Leghorn, arriving on December 6, and stayed there until mid-January, making repairs to ensure the "Agamemnon" was "as fit for sea as a rotten ship can be." The desire for rest and to return home, after nearly three years away, was strong during this downtime. "I fear our new admiral is willing to keep me with him," he wrote to his brother. "He has sent me, unfortunately, a very flattering letter, and I hear I am to be offered St. George or Zealous [much larger ships], but, at the moment, I don’t want either. My wish is to see England once more, and I need a few weeks' rest." However, in considering the fame that mattered most to him, he recognized he was mistaken, as he now acknowledged he had been a year earlier when he wished to join Lord Hood on his return. With Sir John Jervis, he would meet not only one of the most skilled and determined officers of the British Navy—similar to him in daring and boldness, though lacking his unique genius—but also a man who could fully appreciate the extraordinary abilities of his subordinate and brush aside any obstacles or criticism to make the most of his skills for the nation's benefit.
FOOTNOTES:
[33] The fleet passed once, August 14, in sight of Vado Bay. Nelson went on board, and tried to induce Hotham to go in and meet De Vins. He refused, saying he must go to Leghorn, but would return, and water the fleet in Vado; but he never came.
[33] The fleet sailed by on August 14, close to Vado Bay. Nelson boarded the ship and urged Hotham to enter and meet De Vins. He declined, stating that he had to go to Leghorn but would come back to refuel the fleet in Vado; however, he never returned.
[34] A year later, when all his transactions with Genoa as an independent republic were concluded, Nelson received from the British Minister of Foreign Affairs, through the Admiralty, the following strong and comprehensive endorsement of his political conduct:—
[34] A year later, once all his dealings with Genoa as an independent republic were wrapped up, Nelson received from the British Minister of Foreign Affairs, via the Admiralty, a strong and thorough endorsement of his political actions:—
"I esteem it an act of justice due to that officer, to inform your lordships that His Majesty has been graciously pleased entirely to approve of the conduct of Commodore Nelson in all his transactions with the Republic of Genoa. I have the honour to be, &c, &c. GRENVILLE."
"I consider it just to inform you that His Majesty has fully approved of Commodore Nelson's actions in all his dealings with the Republic of Genoa. I have the honor to be, &c, &c. GRENVILLE."
The First Lord of the Admiralty about the same time expressed "the great satisfaction derived here from the very spirited, and at the same time dignified and temperate manner, in which your conduct has been marked both at Leghorn and Genoa."
The First Lord of the Admiralty around that time expressed "the great satisfaction felt here from the very spirited, yet dignified and measured way your conduct has been noted at both Leghorn and Genoa."
CHAPTER VII.
NELSON'S SERVICES IN THE MEDITERRANEAN DURING THE YEAR 1796.—BONAPARTE'S ITALIAN CAMPAIGN.—THE BRITISH ABANDON CORSICA, AND THE FLEET LEAVES THE MEDITERRANEAN.
NELSON'S SERVICES IN THE MEDITERRANEAN DURING THE YEAR 1796.—BONAPARTE'S ITALIAN CAMPAIGN.—THE BRITISH ABANDON CORSICA, AND THE FLEET LEAVES THE MEDITERRANEAN.
JANUARY-DECEMBER, 1796. AGE, 38.
JANUARY-DECEMBER, 1796. AGE 38.
While the "Agamemnon" was refitting in Leghorn, the sensitive mind of her captain, no longer preoccupied with the cares of campaigning and negotiations, dwelt with restless anxiety upon the reflections to which the British Navy was liable, for its alleged failure to support the Austrians throughout the operations, and especially at the critical moment of the Battle of Loano, when the left flank of their army was harassed with impunity by the French gunboats. Nelson felt rightly that, with the British superiority at sea, this should have been impossible; and he feared that his own name might be unpleasantly involved, from the fact that the "Agamemnon" had remained throughout at Genoa, instead of being where the fighting was. He was by nature, and at all times, over-forward to self-vindication,—an infirmity springing from the innate nobility of his temperament, which was impatient of the faintest suspicion of backwardness or negligence, and at the same time resolved that for any shortcoming or blunder, occurring by his order or sanction, no other than himself should bear blame, directly or indirectly.
While the "Agamemnon" was being repaired in Leghorn, the concerned mind of her captain, no longer burdened by the stresses of campaigning and negotiations, was anxiously preoccupied with the reflections regarding the British Navy and its alleged failure to support the Austrians throughout the operations, especially at the crucial moment of the Battle of Loano, when the left flank of their army was relentlessly attacked by the French gunboats. Nelson rightly felt that, given British superiority at sea, this should have been impossible; and he worried that his own name might be unfairly implicated, since the "Agamemnon" had stayed in Genoa instead of being where the fighting was. He was inherently quick to defend himself—an issue rooted in the nobility of his character, which could not tolerate even the slightest hint of being perceived as unresponsive or negligent. At the same time, he was determined that for any mistake or oversight occurring by his command or approval, no one but himself should take the blame, whether directly or indirectly.
After the first unsuccessful pursuit of Bonaparte's expedition to Egypt, in 1798, in the keenness of his emotions over a failure that might by some be charged to a precipitate error of judgment, he drew up for Lord St. Vincent a clear and able statement of all the reasons which had determined his action, arraigning himself, as it were, at the bar of his lordship's opinion and that of the nation, and assuming entire responsibility for the apparent mistake, while at the same time justifying the step by a review of the various considerations which at the time had occasioned it. His judicious friend and subordinate, Captain Ball, whom he consulted, strongly advised him not to send the paper. "I was particularly struck," he wrote, "with the clear and accurate style, as well as with the candour of the statement in your letter, but I should recommend a friend never to begin a defence of his conduct before he is accused of error." Nevertheless, in February, 1805, when he once more went to Alexandria in search of Villeneuve, this time really misled by the elaborate mystifications of Napoleon, he again brought himself before the Admiralty. "I am entirely responsible to my King and Country for the whole of my conduct ... I have consulted no man, therefore the whole blame of ignorance in forming my judgment must rest with me. I would allow no man to take from me an atom of my glory, had I fallen in with the French fleet, nor do I desire any man to partake any of the responsibility—all is mine, right or wrong."
After the first unsuccessful attempt of Bonaparte's expedition to Egypt in 1798, overwhelmed by emotions from a failure that some might blame on a hasty error in judgment, he prepared a clear and competent statement for Lord St. Vincent outlining all the reasons behind his actions. He essentially held himself accountable to his lordship and the nation, taking full responsibility for the apparent mistake while justifying his decision by reviewing the various factors that influenced it at the time. His wise friend and subordinate, Captain Ball, whom he consulted, strongly advised against sending the document. "I was particularly impressed," he wrote, "by the clarity and precision of your letter, as well as the honesty of your statement, but I would advise a friend never to defend his actions before he is accused of wrongdoing." Nonetheless, in February 1805, when he once again went to Alexandria in search of Villeneuve—this time genuinely misled by Napoleon's elaborate deceptions—he again presented himself to the Admiralty. "I am completely accountable to my King and Country for all my actions ... I have consulted no one, so all the blame for any mistakes in my judgment rests solely with me. I would not let anyone take away an ounce of my glory had I encountered the French fleet, nor do I want anyone to share in any responsibility—it's all mine, right or wrong."
In 1795, being a much younger man, of less experience of the world, and with a reputation, already brilliant indeed, but still awaiting the stamp of solidity which the lapse of time alone can give, Nelson felt strongly, and not improperly, that it was necessary to be vigilant against any possible imputations upon his action. This was the more true, because blame certainly did attach to the service of which he was the representative on the spot, and the course he had been obliged to follow kept him to the rear instead of at the front. There would have been no greater personal danger to a man on board the "Agamemnon" in one place than in the other; but current rumor, seeking a victim, does not pause to analyze conditions. Not only, therefore, did he draw up for Sir John Jervis a succinct synopsis of occurrences subsequent to his taking command of the operations along the Riviera, in which he combined a justification of his own conduct with the general information necessary for a new commander-in-chief, but to all his principal correspondents he carefully imparted the facts necessary to clear him from blame, and to show just what the Navy had effected, and where it had fallen short through inadequate force.
In 1795, being a much younger man with less experience in the world and already a brilliant reputation that was still awaiting the solidifying touch of time, Nelson felt strongly—and rightly—about the need to be cautious against any possible accusations regarding his actions. This was especially true since there was blame associated with the service he represented on the ground, and the path he had to take kept him in the background instead of at the forefront. There was no greater personal risk for someone on board the "Agamemnon" in one location compared to another; however, popular gossip, eager for a victim, doesn’t stop to examine the details. Therefore, he not only prepared a concise summary for Sir John Jervis of the events that occurred after he took command of the operations along the Riviera, which included a defense of his actions along with essential information for a new commander-in-chief, but he also made sure to communicate the necessary facts to all his key correspondents to clear himself of any blame and to clarify what the Navy had accomplished and where it had fallen short due to insufficient force.
To the British minister to Genoa, who was constantly at the Austrian headquarters, he wrote with clear emphasis, as to one cognizant of all the truth, and so a witness most important to himself. Having first asked certain certificates, essential to be presented in the Admiralty Courts when Genoese prizes came to be adjudicated, he continued characteristically: "The next request much more concerns my honour, than the other does my interest—it is to prove to the world, to my own admiral, or to whoever may have a right to ask the question, why I remained at Genoa. I have therefore to desire that you will have the goodness to express, in writing, what you told me, that the Imperial minister and yourself were assured, if I left the port of Genoa unguarded, not only the Imperial troops at St. Pierre d'Arena and Voltri would be lost, but that the French plan for taking post between Voltri and Savona would certainly succeed; and also, that if the Austrians should be worsted in the advanced posts, the retreat by the Bocchetta would be cut off: to which you added, that if this happened, the loss of the Army would be laid to my leaving Genoa, and recommended me most strongly not to think of it. I am anxious, as you will believe, to have proofs in my possession, that I employed to the last the Agamemnon as was judged most beneficial to the common cause."
To the British minister in Genoa, who was always at the Austrian headquarters, he wrote clearly, knowing he was a crucial witness to the truth. After requesting some certificates needed for the Admiralty Courts when Genoese prizes were being judged, he went on to say: "My next request is more about my honor than the first is about my interests—it's to show the world, my admiral, or anyone else who has the right to ask, why I stayed in Genoa. Therefore, I kindly ask that you put in writing what you told me: that both the Imperial minister and you were sure that if I left the port of Genoa unguarded, not only would the Imperial troops at St. Pierre d'Arena and Voltri be lost, but also that the French plan to position themselves between Voltri and Savona would definitely succeed; and that if the Austrians were defeated in the forward positions, the retreat via the Bocchetta would be blocked: you also added that if this occurred, the loss of the Army would be blamed on my departure from Genoa and strongly advised me not to consider it. I am eager, as you can imagine, to have proof that I used the Agamemnon to the fullest for the benefit of our shared cause."
A week later he wrote again, having heard that the Austrian commander-in-chief, General Wallis, had declared that the defeat was due to the failure of the British to co-operate. Nelson thought that they had a strong hold on Wallis, and he therefore enclosed a letter to him, which he asked might be forwarded by the minister. The experience and training of the latter, however, here interposed to prevent his sensitive uneasiness leading to a false step, and one that might involve him farther than he foresaw. While bearing the clearest and strongest witness to the facts which Nelson had asked him to establish, he hinted to him, tactfully and with deference, that, it was scarcely becoming a public servant to justify his conduct to a foreign official, he being accountable only to his own government. Nelson accepted the suggestion, and in so doing characterized aptly enough the temperament which then and at other times carried him farther than discretion warranted. "My feelings ever alive, perhaps, to too nice a sense of honour, are a little cooled."
A week later, he wrote again after hearing that the Austrian commander-in-chief, General Wallis, had claimed the defeat was due to the British not cooperating. Nelson believed they had a strong influence over Wallis, so he included a letter to him and asked for it to be forwarded by the minister. However, the minister's experience and training prevented his sensitive unease from leading to a misstep that could complicate matters more than he anticipated. While clearly supporting the facts Nelson wanted him to present, he tactfully hinted that it wasn’t appropriate for a public servant to justify his actions to a foreign official since he was only accountable to his own government. Nelson accepted the suggestion, which aptly reflected his temperament that often took him further than discretion allowed. "My feelings, always alive, perhaps to too fine a sense of honor, are somewhat subdued."
Along with this care for the stainless record of the past, there went on in his mind a continual reasoning upon the probable course of the next year's operations. In his forecasts it is singular to notice how, starting from the accurate premise that it is necessary for the French to get into the plains of Italy,—"the gold mine,"—he is continually misled by his old prepossession in favor of landing in rear of the enemy a body of troops, supported neither by sure communication with their main army, nor by a position in itself of great strength. The mistake, if mistake it was, illustrates aptly the errors into which a man of great genius for war, of quick insight, such as Nelson indisputably had, can fall, from want of antecedent study, of familiarity with those leading principles, deduced from the experience of the past, which are perhaps even more serviceable in warning against error than in prompting to right. Everything assures him that the French will carry some twenty thousand men to Italy by sea. "If they mean to carry on the war, they must penetrate into Italy. I am convinced in my own mind, that I know their very landing-place." This, it appears afterwards, he believed would be between Spezia and Leghorn, in the districts of Massa and Carrara, whence also they would doubtless turn upon Leghorn, though neutral, as a valuable and fortified seaport. "The prevention," he continues, "requires great foresight; for, if once landed, our fleet is of no use."
Along with his attention to the flawless record of the past, he was constantly thinking about the likely direction of the next year's operations. It’s interesting to note that while he correctly realized that the French need to move into the plains of Italy—"the gold mine"—he often got sidetracked by his existing bias in favor of landing troops behind enemy lines, without solid communication with their main army or a strong position. This mistake, if it can be called that, perfectly illustrates how a person with great military genius and quick insight, like Nelson undoubtedly had, can make errors due to a lack of prior study and familiarity with essential principles drawn from past experiences. These principles can be even more helpful in warning against mistakes than in guiding the right course. Everything indicated to him that the French would send about twenty thousand men to Italy by sea. "If they plan to continue the war, they need to penetrate into Italy. I'm confident I've figured out exactly where they're landing." He later believed it would be between Spezia and Leghorn, in the areas of Massa and Carrara, from where they would likely target Leghorn, despite it being neutral, as a valuable and fortified port. "Preventing this," he adds, "requires significant foresight; because once they are landed, our fleet becomes useless."
The importance of Vado Bay, so discreditably lost the year before, strikes him from this point of view, as it did also Bonaparte from his more closely coherent plan of operations. Nelson reasoned that, if Vado were possessed by the allies, the French, in their attempt to reach the Tuscan coast, would be compelled to put to sea, where they would be exposed to the British fleet, while such an anchorage would enable the latter, when necessary, to keep the coast close aboard, or would provide a refuge to a small squadron, if threatened by the sudden appearance of a superior force. Bonaparte thought Vado important, because, on the one hand, essential to uninterrupted coasting-trade with Genoa, and on the other as advancing his water line of communications—that by land being impassable for heavy articles, such as siege-guns and carriages—to Savona, from which point the mountains could be crossed at their lowest elevation, and by their most practicable passes.
The significance of Vado Bay, which was disgracefully lost the year before, strikes him from this perspective, just as it did Bonaparte in his more coherent plan of action. Nelson figured that if the allies controlled Vado, the French would have to go out to sea in their attempt to reach the Tuscan coast, making them vulnerable to the British fleet. This anchorage would also allow the British to stay close to the coast when needed or provide a safe haven for a smaller squadron if faced with a sudden stronger force. Bonaparte saw Vado as crucial, as it was vital for continuous trade with Genoa and also enhanced his maritime communication line—since land routes were impassable for heavy items like siege guns and carriages—to Savona, from where the mountains could be crossed at their lowest points and via the most accessible paths.
Nelson's analysis of the conditions, in other respects than the one mentioned, was not unworthy of his great natural aptitudes. There are three things to be guarded against, he says. One is that pet scheme of his imagination, the transport of a corps by sea to Tuscany; the other two are an invasion of Piedmont, and the entrance into Italy by the pass of the Bocchetta, behind Genoa. "If three are to be attended to, depend upon it one will fall, and the Emperor, very possibly, may be more attentive to the Milanese than to Piedmont." Upon this divergence of interests in a coalition Bonaparte also explicitly counted; and his plan, in its first inception, as laid before the Directory in the summer of 1795, looked primarily to the subjugation of Piedmont, by separating it from the support of the Austrian Army. The bearing of Vado Bay upon this project is not definitely recognized by Nelson. He sees in the possession of it only the frustration of both the enemy's supposed alternatives,—invasion of Italy by the Bocchetta, and of Tuscany by sea.
Nelson's analysis of the conditions, aside from the one mentioned, was worthy of his great natural talents. He points out three things to watch out for. One is his pet idea of transporting a corps by sea to Tuscany; the other two are an invasion of Piedmont and entering Italy through the Bocchetta pass, behind Genoa. "If we have to focus on three things, one will undoubtedly fail, and the Emperor may pay more attention to Milan than to Piedmont." Bonaparte was also counting on this split of interests in a coalition; his plan, at its initial conception presented to the Directory in the summer of 1795, primarily aimed to conquer Piedmont by cutting it off from the support of the Austrian Army. Nelson doesn't fully recognize the significance of Vado Bay in this project. He views its possession only as a way to thwart both of the enemy's supposed options—an invasion of Italy through the Bocchetta and Tuscany by sea.
With these views Nelson arrived, at San Fiorenzo, on the 19th of January, and had his first interview with Jervis. His reception by the latter, whom he never before had met, was not only cordial but flattering. He was at once offered the choice of two larger ships, which were declined, "but with that respect and sense of obligation on my part which such handsome conduct demanded of me." The admiral then asked him if he would have any objection to remain on the station, when promoted, as he soon must be. Nelson's longing to go home had worn off with his disgust, occasioned by the impotent conclusions of last year's work. Then he was experiencing the feeling voiced by the great Frenchman, Suffren, some dozen years before: "It was clear that, though we had the means to impose the law, all would be lost. I heartily pray you may permit me to leave. War alone can make bearable the weariness of certain things." Now his keen enjoyment of active service revived as the hour of opening hostilities drew near. With these dispositions, the graciousness of his reception easily turned the scale, and before long he was not only willing to remain, but fearful lest he should be disappointed, despite the application for his retention which the admiral hastened to make.
With these thoughts in mind, Nelson arrived in San Fiorenzo on January 19th and had his first meeting with Jervis. His welcome from Jervis, whom he hadn’t met before, was both warm and flattering. He was immediately offered a choice between two larger ships, which he declined, “but with the respect and sense of obligation that such generous treatment deserved.” The admiral then asked if he would mind staying in his position once promoted, which was likely to happen soon. Nelson's desire to return home had faded, replaced by frustration over the ineffective outcomes of last year's efforts. He was now feeling what the great Frenchman Suffren had expressed a dozen years earlier: “It was clear that, even though we had the means to enforce the law, all would be lost. I sincerely hope you will allow me to leave. War alone can make the weariness of certain things bearable.” Now, as the prospect of battle approached, his excitement for active service reignited. With this mindset, the kindness of his welcome tipped the balance, and soon he was not only willing to stay but also anxious about possibly being disappointed, despite the admiral’s quick application to keep him.
"The credit I derive from all these compliments," he wrote to his wife, "must be satisfactory to you; and, should I remain until peace, which cannot be very long, you will, I sincerely hope, make your mind easy." But more grateful than open flattery, to one so interested in, and proud of, his military activities, was the respect paid by Jervis to his views and suggestions relative to the approaching operations. "He was so well satisfied with my opinion of what is likely to happen, and the means of prevention to be taken, that he had no reserve with me respecting his information and ideas of what is likely to be done;" or, as he wrote a month later, "he seems at present to consider me more as an associate than a subordinate officer; for I am acting without any orders. This may have its difficulties at a future day; but I make none, knowing the uprightness of my intentions. 'You must have a larger ship,' continued the admiral, 'for we cannot spare you, either as captain or admiral.'" Such were the opening relations between these two distinguished officers, who were in the future to exert great influence upon each other's career.
"The compliments I’m getting must be satisfying for you," he wrote to his wife, "and if I’m still around when peace comes, which shouldn’t be too long, I really hope you can relax.” But more meaningful than mere flattery, for someone so invested in and proud of his military work, was the respect Jervis showed for his opinions and suggestions regarding the upcoming operations. “He was so confident in my take on what’s likely to happen and the ways to prevent it that he had no hesitations with me about his information and ideas on what might be done,” or as he wrote a month later, “he currently seems to view me more as a partner than a lower-ranked officer; I’m acting without any orders. This might cause some challenges down the road, but I have none, given the honesty of my intentions. 'You need a bigger ship,' the admiral added, 'because we can’t afford to lose you, whether as captain or admiral.'" These were the initial dynamics between these two notable officers, who were destined to significantly impact each other’s careers.
It is far from improbable that the ready coincidence of Jervis's views with those of Nelson, as to future possibilities, arose, partly indeed from professional bias and prepossession as to the potency of navies, but still more from the false reports, of which Bonaparte was an apt promoter, and which a commission of the allies in Genoa greedily swallowed and transmitted. The deterrent effect of their own fleet, "in being," seems not to have prevented either of them from believing that the attempt upon Tuscany by sea was seriously intended. True, Nelson does at times speak of the French as being so unreasonable that one may expect anything from them; but this scheme, which probably had not even a paper existence in France, was accepted by him as imminent, because he thought it suitable. As he cogently remarked to Beaulieu, it is likely that your enemy will not do the thing which you wish him to do; and conversely, in this case, what to him appeared most threatening to his own cause was just what he expected to occur. Jervis, sharing his views, and already knowing his man, despatched him again to the Gulf of Genoa, within forty-eight hours of his arrival in San Fiorenzo, somewhat to the disgust of the other captains, weary of being ever under the eye of an observant and exacting admiral. "You did as you pleased in Lord Hood's time," said one grumbler, "the same in Admiral Hotham's, and now again with Sir John Jervis; it makes no difference to you who is commander-in-chief." The tone of these words, which in the reading are almost flattering, is evident from Nelson's comment: "I returned a pretty strong answer to this speech."
It's not unlikely that the alignment of Jervis's views with Nelson's about future possibilities came, in part, from their professional bias and belief in the power of navies, but even more so from the misleading reports, which Bonaparte was quick to promote, and that a group of allies in Genoa eagerly accepted and passed on. The intimidating presence of their own fleet didn’t seem to stop either of them from thinking that a sea attack on Tuscany was seriously planned. True, Nelson sometimes noted that the French were so unpredictable that anything could happen; however, he viewed this plan, which likely didn’t even exist on paper in France, as imminent because he thought it was reasonable. As he wisely pointed out to Beaulieu, the enemy is probably not going to do what you expect them to do; on the flip side, what seemed most threatening to him was precisely what he thought would happen. Jervis, who shared this outlook and already knew his man, sent him back to the Gulf of Genoa within forty-eight hours of his arrival in San Fiorenzo, much to the annoyance of the other captains, who were tired of being under the watchful eye of a demanding admiral. "You did whatever you wanted during Lord Hood's time," grumbled one officer, "just like under Admiral Hotham, and now again with Sir John Jervis; it doesn’t matter who the commander-in-chief is." The tone of these words, which almost sounds flattering in reading, is clear from Nelson's response: "I gave a rather strong reply to that comment."
The object of his present mission was to ascertain what preparations for the expected descent were being made along the Riviera, and to frustrate them as far as lay in the power of his squadron. He soon reported to Jervis that there was as yet no collection of vessels between Nice and Genoa. He then went on to reconnoitre Toulon, where he saw thirteen sail-of-the-line and five frigates lying in the outer roads, ready for sea, while five more of the line he learned were fitting at the arsenal. During the six days he remained off the port he noted that continual progress was being made in the enemy's preparations. At the end of this time, on the 23d of February, 1796, the admiral joined with the fleet, and the same afternoon the "Agamemnon" again parted company for Genoa, where she anchored on the 2d of March.
The goal of his current mission was to find out what preparations were being made for the anticipated landing along the Riviera and to disrupt them as much as his squadron could. He quickly reported to Jervis that there weren't any ships gathered between Nice and Genoa yet. He then went on to scout Toulon, where he spotted thirteen battleships and five frigates anchored in the outer harbor, ready for sea, while he learned that five more battleships were being outfitted at the shipyard. During the six days he stayed off the port, he observed that the enemy's preparations were steadily progressing. At the end of this period, on February 23, 1796, the admiral joined the fleet, and later that afternoon, the "Agamemnon" set off again for Genoa, where it anchored on March 2.
The bustle on board the French ships confirmed Nelson's belief in the descent upon Tuscany; and it is interesting here to quote his words upon the possibilities of the operation, regarded from the naval point of view by one of the ablest of sea-generals. His opinion throws light upon the vexed question of the chances for and against Napoleon's projected invasion of England in 1805,—so far, that is, as the purely naval part of the latter project is concerned. He imagines as perfectly feasible ("I firmly believe," are his words) a combination at Toulon, of the fleet already there with divisions arriving from Cadiz and Brest, giving a total much superior to that actually with Jervis. This anticipates Napoleon's projected concentration under Villeneuve in the Channel. Nelson then continues: "One week's very superior fleet will effect a landing between Port Especia and Leghorn, I mean on that coast of Italy.... We may fight their fleet, but unless we can destroy them [i.e. the transports], their transports will push on and effect their landing. What will the French care for the loss of a few men-of-war? It is nothing if they can get into Italy." "Make us masters of the channel for three days, and we are masters of the world," wrote Napoleon to his admirals, with preparations far more complete than those Nelson was considering in 1796, and the distance across the Channel is less than from Vado to Spezia.[35]
The activity on board the French ships confirmed Nelson's belief in the attack on Tuscany; it's worth quoting his thoughts on the operation from the naval perspective of one of the best sea generals. His opinion sheds light on the complicated debate about the prospects for and against Napoleon's planned invasion of England in 1805—at least regarding the purely naval aspects of the latter plan. He sees as completely doable ("I firmly believe," were his words) a strategy at Toulon, combining the fleet already there with divisions coming from Cadiz and Brest, which would result in a force much stronger than what Jervis currently has. This anticipates Napoleon's planned gathering under Villeneuve in the Channel. Nelson goes on: "A fleet that is significantly superior for one week will land between Port Especia and Leghorn, I mean on that coast of Italy.... We may engage their fleet, but unless we can take out their transports, they will keep going and land successfully. The French won't care about losing a few warships; it means nothing if they can get into Italy." "Control the Channel for three days, and we control the world," Napoleon wrote to his admirals, with preparations much more advanced than what Nelson was considering in 1796, and the distance across the Channel is less than from Vado to Spezia.[35]
With these convictions, Nelson immediately began to urge the necessity of again occupying Vado upon the Austrian commander-in-chief, through the medium of the British ministers to Genoa and Turin, with whom he was in frequent correspondence. If this were not done, he assured them, the enemy's fleet could with ease convoy a body of troops in transports to Italy, which they could not do with their present force unless they held Vado. It was also the only means, he added, by which the French could be prevented from receiving plenty of provisions from Genoa. "Unless the Austrians get possession of a point of land, we cannot stop the coasting-trade." The latter argument, at any rate, was incontestable; and it was also true that only by an advance to Vado could communication between the army and the British fleet be restored and maintained. Beaulieu, who had lately acquired a high reputation on the battle-fields of Belgium, had now succeeded De Vins in the command. He was averse to opening the campaign by an advance to the sea, a feeling shared by the Austrians generally. He wished rather to await the enemy in the plains of Lombardy, and to follow up by a decisive blow the victory which he confidently expected there. It was in this connection that Nelson warned him, that he must not reckon upon the French following the line of action which he himself would prefer.
With these beliefs, Nelson quickly started to stress the need to reoccupy Vado to the Austrian commander-in-chief, using the British ministers in Genoa and Turin, with whom he often communicated. He assured them that if this wasn’t done, the enemy’s fleet could easily transport troops to Italy, which they couldn’t do with their current force unless they held Vado. He also added that this was the only way to prevent the French from getting plenty of supplies from Genoa. “Unless the Austrians secure a piece of land, we can’t stop the coastal trade.” This last point was undeniable; it was also true that only by moving to Vado could communication between the army and the British fleet be re-established and kept. Beaulieu, who had recently gained a strong reputation on the battlefields of Belgium, had now taken over command from De Vins. He was opposed to starting the campaign with an advance to the sea, a sentiment shared by the Austrians in general. He preferred to wait for the enemy in the plains of Lombardy and to follow up with a decisive strike after the victory he confidently expected there. In this context, Nelson warned him that he shouldn’t count on the French taking the same approach he would prefer.
The time for hostilities had now arrived; from February to August being the period that Bonaparte, who knew the wars of Italy historically, considered the most proper for operations in the field, because the least sickly. But for the backwardness of the spring,—for snow that year lay upon the mountains late into March,—the campaign doubtless would have been begun before. At the same time came fresh reports, probably set afloat by the French, of large reinforcements of seamen for the fleet and transports, in Toulon and Marseilles; and Nelson furthermore received precise information that the enemy's movement would be in three columns,—one upon Ceva, which was Bonaparte's original scheme, one by the Bocchetta, and the third either to march through Genoese territory to Spezia, or to be carried thither by sea. Nelson felt no doubt that the last was the real plan, aiming at the occupation of Leghorn and entrance into the plains of Italy. The others he considered to be feints. There will in this opinion be recognized the persistency of his old ideas. In fact, he a month later revived his proposal of the previous year, to occupy San Remo,—this time with British troops.
The time for conflict had now arrived; from February to August was the period that Bonaparte, who historically understood the wars of Italy, considered the best for battlefield operations because it was the least prone to illness. If it hadn't been for the delayed spring—since snow lingered in the mountains until late March that year—the campaign would likely have started earlier. At the same time, new reports, probably spread by the French, mentioned large reinforcements of sailors for the fleet and transports in Toulon and Marseilles; Nelson also received specific information that the enemy's movements would occur in three columns—one towards Ceva, which was Bonaparte's original plan, another by the Bocchetta, and the third either to march through Genoese territory to Spezia or to be transported there by sea. Nelson was certain that the last was the actual plan, aimed at taking over Leghorn and entering the plains of Italy. He viewed the other movements as distractions. This opinion reflects his persistent old ideas. In fact, a month later he revisited his proposal from the previous year to occupy San Remo—this time with British troops.
The urgency of the British, aided, perhaps, by the reports of the French designs, prevailed at last upon Beaulieu to advance as requested; nor can it be denied that the taking of Vado was in itself a most proper and desirable accessory object of the campaign. Unfortunately, the Austrian general, as is well known, fastening his eyes too exclusively upon the ulterior object of his movement, neglected to provide for the immediate close combination and mutual support of the organized forces,—his own and the Piedmontese,—upon which final success would turn. Manoeuvring chiefly by his own left, towards the Riviera, and drawing in that direction the efforts of the centre and right, he weakened the allied line at the point where the Austrian right touched the Sardinian left. Through this thin curtain Bonaparte broke, dividing the one from the other, and, after a series of combats which extended over several days, rendering final that division, both political and military, for the remainder of the war.
The urgency of the British, possibly influenced by reports of the French plans, eventually pushed Beaulieu to move forward as requested; it can't be denied that the capture of Vado was a very appropriate and desirable goal of the campaign. Unfortunately, the Austrian general, as is well known, focused too much on the long-term goal of his movement and failed to ensure the immediate coordination and mutual support of the organized forces—his own and the Piedmontese—upon which ultimate success depended. By mainly maneuvering his left flank towards the Riviera and pulling the efforts of the center and right in that direction, he weakened the allied line at the point where the Austrian right met the Sardinian left. Through this weak spot, Bonaparte broke through, separating the two sides, and after a series of battles that lasted several days, solidified that division, both politically and militarily, for the rest of the war.
To one who has accustomed himself to see in Nelson the exponent of the chief obstacle Napoleon had to meet,—who has recognized in the Nile, in Copenhagen, and in Trafalgar, the most significant and characteristic incident attending the failure of each of three great and widely separated schemes,—there is something impressive in noting the fact, generally disregarded, that Nelson was also present and assisting at the very opening scene of the famous campaign in Italy. This was not, certainly, the beginning of Napoleon's career any more than it was of Nelson's, who at the same moment hoisted for the first time his broad pendant as commodore; but it was now that, upon the horizon of the future, toward which the world was fast turning, began to shoot upward the rays of the great captain's coming glory, and the sky to redden with the glare from the watchfires of the unseen armies which, at his command, were to revolutionize the face of Europe, causing old things to pass away, never to be restored.
To someone who has become used to seeing Nelson as the main obstacle Napoleon faced—who recognizes in the Nile, Copenhagen, and Trafalgar the most significant events that contributed to the failure of three major and distant plans—there's something striking about the often-overlooked fact that Nelson was also involved in the very beginning of the famous campaign in Italy. This was not, of course, the start of either Napoleon's or Nelson's careers, as at this same time Nelson was raising his flag for the first time as commodore; but it was at this moment that the future began to brighten with the rays of the great captain's impending glory, and the sky started to glow with the light from the unseen armies that, at his command, were set to change the face of Europe, causing old realities to fade away, never to return.
The Austrians had asked for a clear assurance that their movement to the seashore should receive the support of the fleet, whether on the Riviera or at Spezia, upon the possession of which also Nelson had laid stress, as a precaution against the invasion of Tuscany. These engagements he readily made. He would support any movement, and provide for the safety of any convoys by water. He told the aid-de-camp whom Beaulieu sent to him that, whenever the general came down to the sea-coast, he would be sure to find the ships; and to the question whether his squadron would not be risked thereby, he replied that it would be risked at all times to assist their allies, and, if lost, the admiral would find another. "If I find the French convoy in any place where there is a probability of attacking them," he wrote about this time, "you may depend they shall either be taken or destroyed at the risk of my squadron, ... which is built to be risked on proper occasions." Here was indeed a spirit from which much might be expected. The fleet, doubtless, must be husbanded in coastwise work so long as the French fleet remained, the legacy of past errors,—this Nelson clearly maintained; but such vessels as it could spare for co-operation were not to be deterred from doing their work by fear of harm befalling them. Warned by the recriminations of the last campaign, he had minutes taken of his interview with the Austrian officer, of the questions he himself put, as well as of the undertakings to which he pledged himself; and these he caused to be witnessed by the British consul at Genoa, who was present.
The Austrians had requested a clear assurance that their move to the seashore would have the backing of the fleet, whether at the Riviera or Spezia, which Nelson had also emphasized as a precaution against an invasion of Tuscany. He readily agreed to these commitments. He would support any initiative and ensure the safety of any convoys by water. He told the aide-de-camp that Beaulieu sent him that, whenever the general came to the coast, he could be certain the ships would be there; and when asked if his squadron would be at risk, he answered that it would always be risked to assist their allies, and if lost, the admiral would find another. "If I find the French convoy in any location where there’s a chance to attack them," he wrote around this time, "you can count on them either being captured or destroyed at the risk of my squadron, ... which is meant to be risked on appropriate occasions." This indeed showed a spirit from which a lot could be expected. The fleet, undoubtedly, had to be preserved for coastal operations as long as the French fleet existed, a consequence of past mistakes—this was clearly stated by Nelson; but any ships it could spare for cooperation were not to be held back from fulfilling their duty due to fear of damage. Having learned from the criticisms of the previous campaign, he had minutes taken during his meeting with the Austrian officer, noting the questions he asked and the promises he made; these were witnessed by the British consul in Genoa, who was present.
On the 8th of April the "Agamemnon," having shortly before left the fleet in San Fiorenzo Bay, anchored at Genoa; and the following morning the port saluted the broad pendant of the new commodore. The next day, April 10, Beaulieu attacked the French at Voltri. The "Agamemnon," with another sixty-four-gun ship, the "Diadem," and two frigates, sailed in the evening, and stood along the shore, by preconcerted arrangement, to cover the advance and harass the enemy. At 11 P.M. the ships anchored abreast the positions of the Austrians, whose lights were visible from their decks—the sails hanging in the clewlines, ready for instant movement. They again got under way the following day, and continued to the westward, seeing the French troops in retreat upon Savona. The attack, Nelson said, anticipated the hour fixed for it, which was daylight; so that, although the ships had again started at 4 A.M. of the 11th, and reached betimes a point from which they commanded every foot of the road, the enemy had already passed. "Yesterday afternoon I received, at five o'clock, a note from the Baron de Malcamp [an aid-de-camp], to tell me that the general had resolved to attack the French at daylight this morning, and on the right of Voltri. Yet by the Austrians getting too forward in the afternoon, a slight action took place; and, in the night, the French retreated. They were aware of their perilous situation, and passed our ships in the night. Had the Austrians kept back, very few of the French could have escaped." Whether this opinion was wholly accurate may be doubted; certain it is, however, that the corps which then passed reinforced betimes the positions in the mountains, which steadfastly, yet barely, checked the Austrian attack there the following day. Beaulieu wrote that the well-timed co-operation of the squadron had saved a number of fine troops, which must have been lost in the attack. This was so far satisfactory; but the economizing of one's own force was not in Nelson's eyes any consolation for the escape of the enemy, whose number he estimated at four thousand. "I beg you will endeavour to impress on those about the general," he wrote to the British minister, "the necessity of punctuality in a joint operation, for its success to be complete."
On April 8th, the "Agamemnon," after recently departing from the fleet in San Fiorenzo Bay, anchored at Genoa; the next morning, the port saluted the new commodore's flag. The following day, April 10th, Beaulieu attacked the French at Voltri. The "Agamemnon," along with another sixty-four-gun ship, the "Diadem," and two frigates, sailed in the evening and moved along the shore, as planned, to support the advance and harass the enemy. By 11 PM, the ships anchored near the positions of the Austrians, whose lights were visible from their decks—the sails ready for immediate action. They set sail again the next day and continued westward, witnessing the retreat of the French troops towards Savona. Nelson noted that the attack happened earlier than scheduled, which was at daylight; even though the ships had set out again at 4 AM on the 11th and reached a position from which they could see the entire road, the enemy had already passed. "Yesterday afternoon at five o'clock, I received a note from Baron de Malcamp [an aide-de-camp], informing me that the general had decided to attack the French at daylight this morning, to the right of Voltri. However, since the Austrians advanced too soon in the afternoon, a minor skirmish occurred; and during the night, the French retreated. They were aware of their dangerous situation and passed our ships in the dark. If the Austrians had held back, very few of the French would have escaped." Whether this assessment was entirely correct is debatable; nonetheless, it is certain that the forces that passed through reinforced their positions in the mountains, which barely held off the Austrian attack the following day. Beaulieu noted that the timely cooperation of the squadron saved many valuable troops that would have been lost in the assault. This was somewhat satisfactory; however, for Nelson, reducing his own force was no consolation for the enemy's escape, which he estimated at four thousand. "I urge you to stress to those around the general," he wrote to the British minister, "the importance of punctuality in a joint operation for its success to be complete."
There was, however, to be no more co-operation that year on the Riviera. For a few days Nelson remained in suspense, hoping for good news, and still very far from imagining the hail-storm of ruinous blows which a master hand, as yet unrecognized, was even then dealing to the allied cause. On the 15th only he heard from Beaulieu, through the minister, that the Austrians had been repulsed at Montenotte; and on the 16th he wrote to Collingwood that this reverse had been inflicted by the aid of those who slipped by his ships. On the 18th news had reached him of the affairs at Millesimo and Dego, as well as of further disasters; for on that day he wrote to the Duke of Clarence that the Austrians had taken position between Novi and Alessandria, with headquarters at Acqui. Their loss he gave as ten thousand. "Had the general's concerted time and plan been attended to," he repeats, "I again assert, none of the enemy could have escaped on the night of the 10th. By what has followed, the disasters commenced from the retreat of those troops."
There wasn't going to be any more cooperation that year on the Riviera. For a few days, Nelson was on edge, hoping for good news, completely unaware of the devastating blows that a master strategist, still unrecognized, was already inflicting on the allied cause. On the 15th, he finally heard from Beaulieu, through the minister, that the Austrians had been pushed back at Montenotte; and on the 16th, he wrote to Collingwood that this setback was caused by the help of those who managed to slip past his ships. By the 18th, he had received news about the situations at Millesimo and Dego, along with further setbacks; that day, he wrote to the Duke of Clarence that the Austrians had taken up positions between Novi and Alessandria, with their headquarters at Acqui. He reported their losses as ten thousand. "If the general's planned timing and strategy had been followed," he insisted, "I again state, none of the enemy could have escaped on the night of the 10th. From what has happened, the troubles began with the retreat of those troops."
There now remained, not the stirring employment of accompanying and supporting a victorious advance, but only the subordinate, though most essential, duty of impeding the communications of the enemy, upon which to a great extent must depend the issues on unseen and distant fields of war. To this Nelson's attention had already been turned, as one of the most important functions intrusted to him, even were the allies successful, and its difficulties had been impressed upon him by the experience of the previous year. But since then the conditions had become far more onerous. The defeat of the Austrians not only left Vado Bay definitively in the power of the French, but enabled the latter to push their control up to the very walls of Genoa, where they shortly established a battery and depot on the shore, at St. Pierre d' Arena, within three hundred yards of the mole. Thus the whole western Riviera, from the French border, was in possession of the enemy, who had also throughout the previous year so multiplied and strengthened the local defences, that, to use Nelson's own words, "they have batteries from one end of the coast to the other, within shot of each other." Such were the means, also, by which Napoleon, the true originator of this scheme for securing these communications, insured the concentration of the flotilla at Boulogne, eight or ten years later, without serious molestation from the British Navy.
There now remained not the exciting task of joining and supporting a victorious advance, but only the lesser, though still crucial, duty of disrupting the enemy’s communications, which would heavily influence the outcomes of unseen and distant battlefields. Nelson had already focused on this as one of his most important roles, even if the allies were successful, and he had learned about its challenges from the previous year's experiences. However, conditions had since become much more challenging. The defeat of the Austrians not only secured Vado Bay for the French but also allowed them to extend their control right up to the walls of Genoa, where they soon set up a battery and depot on the shore at St. Pierre d' Arena, just three hundred yards from the mole. As a result, the entire western Riviera, from the French border, was under enemy control, and throughout the past year, they had significantly increased and fortified the local defenses so much that, in Nelson's own words, "they have batteries from one end of the coast to the other, within shot of each other." This was also how Napoleon, the true architect of the plan to secure these communications, ensured the concentration of the flotilla at Boulogne, eight or ten years later, without serious interference from the British Navy.
It may not unnaturally cause some surprise that, with the urgent need Nelson had felt the year before for small armed vessels, to control the coastwise movements of the enemy, upon which so much then depended, no serious effort had been made to attach a flotilla of that kind to the fleet. The reply, however, to this very obvious criticism is, that the British could not supply the crews for them without crippling the efficiency of the cruising fleet; and it was justly felt then, as it was some years later at the time of the Boulogne flotilla, that the prime duty of Great Britain was to secure the sea against the heavy fleets of the enemy. If, indeed, the Italian States, whose immediate interests were at stake, had supplied seamen, as they might have done, these could quickly have been formed to the comparatively easy standard of discipline and training needed for such guerilla warfare, and, supported by the cruising fleet, might have rendered invaluable service, so long as the system of coast defence was defective. How far the rulers of those States, trained heretofore to the narrowest considerations of personal policy, could have been induced to extend this assistance, is doubtful. They did nothing, or little.
It might come as a surprise that, despite the urgent need Nelson felt the previous year for small armed vessels to manage the enemy's coastal movements—on which so much depended—no serious attempts were made to add such a flotilla to the fleet. The obvious response to this criticism is that the British couldn’t provide crews for them without undermining the efficiency of the cruising fleet. At that time, as was also recognized years later during the Boulogne flotilla, it was generally accepted that Britain’s primary responsibility was to dominate the seas against the enemy’s large fleets. If the Italian States, whose immediate interests were at stake, had provided sailors, as they could have, these crews could have quickly been trained to meet the relatively simple standards of discipline required for such guerrilla warfare, and with support from the cruising fleet, they could have offered invaluable assistance while the coastal defense system remained weak. However, it’s questionable whether the leaders of those states, who were used to focusing solely on their own narrow interests, would have been willing to provide this help. They did nothing, or very little.
Nelson measured the odds against him accurately, and saw that the situation was well-nigh hopeless. Nevertheless, there was a chance that by vigorous and sustained action the enemy might be not only impeded, but intimidated. He sought earnestly to obtain the co-operation of the Sardinians and Neapolitans in manning a flotilla, with which to grapple the convoys as they passed in shore. By this means, and the close scouring of the coast by the vessels of his squadron, something might be effected. He contemplated also using the crews of the British vessels themselves in gunboats and light-armed feluccas; but he said frankly that, important as was the duty of intercepting communications, the efficiency of the fleet was more important still, and that to divert their crews over-much to such objects would hazard the vessels themselves, and neutralize their proper work. The resort, therefore, could only be occasional. The general political complexion of affairs in the Mediterranean depended greatly upon the presence and readiness of the British fleet, and its efficiency therefore could not be risked, to any serious extent, except for the object of destroying the enemy's naval forces, to which it was then the counterpoise.
Nelson accurately assessed the odds against him and recognized that the situation was nearly hopeless. However, there remained a chance that with determined and sustained action, the enemy could be not only slowed down but also intimidated. He earnestly sought the cooperation of the Sardinians and Neapolitans to man a flotilla to tackle the convoys as they passed along the shore. Through this approach, along with closely patrolling the coast with his squadron’s vessels, some progress could be made. He also considered using the crews of British ships in gunboats and light-armed feluccas, but he openly acknowledged that while intercepting communications was important, maintaining the fleet's efficiency was even more crucial. Diverting their crews too much for such tasks could endanger the ships themselves and undermine their main mission. Therefore, such actions would necessarily be infrequent. The overall political landscape in the Mediterranean was significantly influenced by the presence and readiness of the British fleet, and its effectiveness could not be put at serious risk, except for the goal of neutralizing the enemy's naval forces, which it was then meant to counter.
Acting, however, on his determination to co-operate effectively, at whatever risk to his own squadron,—to the detachment, that is, which the commander-in-chief thought could safely be spared from his main force for the secondary object,—Nelson applied all his intelligence and all his resolution to the task before him. In words of admirable force and clearness, he manifests that exclusiveness of purpose, which Napoleon justly characterized as the secret of great operations and of great successes. "I have not a thought," he writes to the minister at Genoa, "on any subject separated from the immediate object of my command, nor a wish to be employed on any other service. So far the allies," he continues, with no unbecoming self-assertion, "are fortunate, if I may be allowed the expression, in having an officer of this character." He felt this singleness of mind, which is so rare a gift, to be the more important, from his very consciousness that the difficulty of his task approached the border of impossibility. "I cannot command winds and weather. A sea-officer cannot, like a land-officer, form plans; his object is to embrace the happy moment which now and then offers,—it may be this day, not for a month, and perhaps never." Nothing can be more suggestive of his greatest characteristics than this remark, which is perhaps less applicable to naval officers to-day than it was then. In it we may fairly see one of those clearly held principles which serve a man so well in moments of doubt and perplexity. At the Nile and at Trafalgar, and scarcely less at St. Vincent and Copenhagen, the seizure of opportunity, the unfaltering resolve "to embrace the happy moment," is perhaps even more notable and decisive than the sagacity which so accurately chose the proper method of action.
Acting on his determination to cooperate effectively, no matter the risks to his own squadron—the portion that the commander-in-chief believed could be safely detached from the main force for the secondary objective—Nelson dedicated all his intelligence and resolve to the task at hand. With impressive clarity and strength, he shows a focused purpose, which Napoleon rightly identified as the key to major operations and successes. "I have no thoughts," he writes to the minister in Genoa, "on any topic apart from the immediate goal of my command, nor do I wish to be assigned to any other duty. So far, the allies," he continues, without any unwarranted self-promotion, "are fortunate, if I may use that word, to have an officer like me." He understood that this singular focus, which is such a rare talent, was all the more crucial given that he was acutely aware of how daunting his task was, approaching the brink of impossibility. "I cannot control the winds and weather. A sea officer, unlike a land officer, can't make plans; their aim is to seize the favorable moment that occasionally arises—it might be today, not for another month, or perhaps never." Nothing can illustrate his greatest traits better than this statement, which may be less relevant to naval officers today than it was then. In it, we can clearly see a principle that serves a person well in times of doubt and confusion. At the Nile and at Trafalgar, and just as much at St. Vincent and Copenhagen, the ability to seize opportunity and the unwavering commitment "to embrace the happy moment" is arguably even more significant and impactful than the wisdom that precisely determined the right course of action.
Nelson's deeds did not belie his words. Immediately after definite news of Beaulieu's retreat to the Po was received, Sir John Jervis appeared off Genoa with the fleet. The "Agamemnon" joined him, and remained in company until the 23d of April, when by Nelson's request she sailed on a cruise to the westward. From that time until the 4th of June she was actively employed between Nice and Genoa, engaging the batteries, and from time to time cutting out vessels from the anchorages. His attempts were more or less successful; on one occasion he captured a considerable portion of the French siege-train going forward for the siege of Mantua; but upon the whole, the futility of the attempt became apparent. "Although I will do my utmost, I do not believe it is in my power to prevent troops or stores from passing along shore. Heavy swells, light breezes, and the near approach to the shore which these vessels go are our obstacles.... You may perceive I am distressed. Do you really think we are of any use here? If not, we may serve our country much more by being in other places. The Levant and coast of Spain call aloud for ships, and they are, I fancy, employed to no purpose here." The position was almost hopelessly complicated by the Genoese coasters, which plied their trade close to the beach, between the mother city and the little towns occupied by the French, and which Nelson felt unable to touch. "There are no vessels of any consequence in any bay from Monaco to Vado," he wrote to Jervis; "but not less than a hundred Genoese are every day passing, which may or may not have stores for the French." "The French have no occasion to send provisions from France. The coasts are covered with Genoese vessels with corn, wine, hay, &c., for places on the coast; and they know I have no power to stop the trade with the towns. I saw this day not less than forty-five Genoese vessels, all laden, passing along the coast. What can I do?"
Nelson's actions matched his words. As soon as they got confirmed news of Beaulieu's retreat to the Po, Sir John Jervis showed up off Genoa with the fleet. The "Agamemnon" joined him and stayed together until April 23rd, when, at Nelson's request, she set out on a cruise to the west. From that point until June 4th, she was actively working between Nice and Genoa, attacking batteries and occasionally capturing vessels from their anchorages. His efforts were hit or miss; once, he seized a significant part of the French siege train going to Mantua, but overall, the attempt seemed futile. "Even though I will do my best, I don't think I can stop troops or supplies from coming along the shore. The heavy swells, light winds, and the close proximity of the shore that these vessels go to are our challenges... You can see I'm worried. Do you really think we're doing any good here? If not, we could be more useful elsewhere. The Levant and the coast of Spain urgently need ships, and I think we’re wasting our time here." The situation was nearly hopelessly complicated by the Genoese coasters, which operated close to the beach, moving between the main city and the small towns occupied by the French, and which Nelson felt he couldn't touch. "There are no significant vessels in any bay from Monaco to Vado," he wrote to Jervis; "but there are at least a hundred Genoese vessels passing every day, which may or may not be carrying supplies for the French." "The French don't need to send provisions from France. The coasts are filled with Genoese ships carrying corn, wine, hay, etc., for places along the coast; and they know I have no way to stop the trade with the towns. Today, I saw at least forty-five Genoese vessels, all loaded, passing along the coast. What can I do?"
Although not definitely so stated, it is shown, by an allusion, that Nelson at this time entertained, among other ideas, the project of keeping afloat in transports a body of three thousand troops, which should hover upon the coast, and by frequent descents impose a constant insecurity upon the long line of communications from Nice to Genoa. The same plan was advocated by him against the Spanish peninsula in later years.[36] Of this conception it may be said that it is sound in principle, but in practice depends largely upon the distance from the centre of the enemy's power at which its execution is attempted. Upon the Spanish coast, in 1808, in the hands of Lord Cochrane, it was undoubtedly a most effective secondary operation; but when that distinguished officer proposed to apply a like method, even though on a much greater scale, to the western coast of France, against the high-road south of Bordeaux, it can scarcely be doubted that he would have met a severe disappointment, such as attended similar actions upon the Channel in the Seven Years' War. On the Riviera, in 1795, this means might have been decisive; in 1796, in the face of Bonaparte's fortified coast, it could scarcely have been more than an annoyance. At all events, the advocacy of it testifies to the acuteness and energy with which Nelson threw himself into the operations especially intrusted to him.
Although it's not explicitly stated, it implies that Nelson was considering, among other ideas, the plan of keeping around three thousand troops on transports ready to land along the coast, creating constant insecurity for the long supply line from Nice to Genoa. He later supported a similar strategy against the Spanish peninsula. This idea can be considered sound in theory, but its effectiveness relies heavily on how far it is from the enemy's main power base. On the Spanish coast in 1808, under Lord Cochrane's command, it was certainly an effective secondary operation; however, when that notable officer suggested applying a similar approach on a much larger scale to the western coast of France, near the main road south of Bordeaux, it’s likely he would have faced significant disappointment, similar to what occurred in the Channel during the Seven Years' War. In the Riviera in 1795, this strategy might have been decisive; in 1796, against Bonaparte's fortified coast, it would likely only have been a nuisance. Regardless, advocating for it shows the sharpness and energy with which Nelson engaged in the operations especially assigned to him.
His letters during this period reflect the varying phases of hope and of discouragement; but, upon the whole, the latter prevails. There is no longer the feeling of neglect by his superior, of opportunity slipping away through the inadequate force which timid counsels and apathetic indolence allowed him. He sees that the chance which was permitted to pass unimproved has now gone forever. "As the French cannot want supplies to be brought into the Gulf of Genoa, for their grand army," he writes to the admiral, "I am still of opinion that if our frigates are wanted for other services, they may very well be spared from the Gulf." And again, "As the service for which my distinguishing pendant was intended to be useful, is nearly if not quite at an end, I assure you I shall have no regret in striking it." Sir John Jervis, he asserts with pride, has cruised with the fleet in the Gulf of Genoa, close to shore, "where I will venture to say no fleet ever cruised before—no officer can be more zealous or able to render any service in our profession to England;" yet from the decks of the flagship he and Nelson had helplessly watched a convoy passing close in shore, and directly to windward, but wholly out of reach of their powers of offence. At times, indeed, somewhat can be accomplished. For several days the "Agamemnon" "has kept close to shore, and harassed the enemy's troops very much. Field pieces are drawn out on our standing in shore. You must defend me if any Genoese towns are knocked down by firing at enemy's batteries. I will not fire first." Six weeks later he writes again: "Our conduct has so completely alarmed the French that all their coasting trade is at an end; even the corvette, gunboats, &c., which were moored under the fortress of Vado, have not thought themselves in security, but are all gone into Savona Mole, and unbent their sails."
His letters during this time show a mix of hope and discouragement, but overall, discouragement wins out. He no longer feels neglected by his superior or that opportunities are slipping away due to weak advice and lazy indifference. He realizes that the chance he missed has now disappeared for good. "Since the French don’t need supplies brought into the Gulf of Genoa for their main army," he writes to the admiral, "I still think that if our frigates are needed for other missions, they can easily be pulled from the Gulf." He adds, "Since the service for which my distinguishing pendant was meant is nearly over, I assure you I won’t regret striking it." Sir John Jervis, he proudly states, has been cruising with the fleet in the Gulf of Genoa, close to shore, "where I dare say no fleet has ever cruised before—no officer can be more eager or capable of serving England in our profession." Yet, from the deck of the flagship, he and Nelson have helplessly watched a convoy pass close to shore and right to windward, completely out of reach of their offensive capabilities. Occasionally, some progress can be made. For several days, the "Agamemnon" has stayed close to shore and troubled the enemy's troops considerably. Field pieces are drawn out as we stand close to shore. You must defend me if any Genoese towns are hit while firing at enemy batteries. I won’t fire first." Six weeks later, he writes again: "Our actions have so thoroughly alarmed the French that all their coastal trade has come to a halt; even the corvette, gunboats, etc., moored under the fortress of Vado, no longer feel safe and have all retreated to Savona Mole and taken down their sails."
This movement, however, which he notes under the date of June 23, proceeded probably less from fear than from the growing indifference of the French concerning their communications by water, now that their occupation of the line of the Adige River had solidified their control over the ample resources of Piedmont and Lombardy. At the very hour when Nelson was thus writing, he learned also the critical condition of Leghorn through the approach of a French division, the mere sending of which showed Bonaparte's sense of his present security of tenure.
This move, noted under the date of June 23, probably came less from fear and more from the increasing indifference of the French about their water communications, now that their control over the Adige River had strengthened their hold on the abundant resources of Piedmont and Lombardy. At the same time Nelson was writing this, he also found out about the serious situation in Leghorn with the approach of a French division, the mere dispatch of which indicated Bonaparte's confidence in his current position.
Nelson had severed by this time his long and affectionate connection with the battered "Agamemnon." On the 4th of June the old ship anchored at San Fiorenzo, having a few days before, with the assistance of the squadron, cut out from under the French batteries the vessels carrying Bonaparte's siege-train, as well as the gunboats which convoyed them. There was then in the bay the "Egmont," seventy-four, whose commander had expressed to the admiral his wish to return to England. Jervis, therefore, had ordered Nelson to the spot, to make the exchange, and the latter thought the matter settled; but to his surprise he found the captain did not wish to leave the station unless the ship went also. This did away with the vacancy he looked to fill; and, as the "Agamemnon," from her condition, must be the first of the fleet to go home, it seemed for the moment likely that he would have to go in her with a convoy then expected in the bay. "I remained in a state of uncertainty for a week," he wrote to his wife; "and had the corn ships, which were momentarily expected from Naples, arrived, I should have sailed for England." The dilemma caused him great anxiety; for the longing for home, which he had felt in the early part of the winter, had given away entirely before the pride and confidence he felt in the new admiral, and the keen delight in active service he was now enjoying. "I feel full of gratitude for your good wishes towards me," he wrote to Jervis in the first moment of disappointment, "and highly flattered by your desire to have me continue to serve under your command, which I own would afford me infinite satisfaction." The following day he is still more restless. "I am not less anxious than yesterday for having slept since my last letter. Indeed, Sir, I cannot bear the thoughts of leaving your command." He then proposed several ways out of the difficulty, which reduced themselves, in short, to a readiness to hoist his pendant in anything, if only he could remain.
Nelson had by now cut ties with the battered "Agamemnon." On June 4th, the old ship anchored at San Fiorenzo, having recently, with the squadron's help, retrieved vessels carrying Bonaparte's siege equipment and the gunboats that were escorting them from under the French batteries. In the bay was the "Egmont," a seventy-four, whose commander had expressed to the admiral his desire to return to England. Therefore, Jervis ordered Nelson to the location to facilitate the exchange, and Nelson thought the situation was settled. To his surprise, he discovered the captain did not want to leave the station unless the ship left too. This eliminated the opportunity he hoped to fill, and since the "Agamemnon" was in such condition, it would have to be the first ship to head home, making it likely that he would have to go with a convoy expected in the bay. "I remained uncertain for a week," he wrote to his wife; "and had the corn ships, which were anticipated from Naples, arrived, I would have sailed for England." This dilemma caused him considerable anxiety, as the longing for home he had felt earlier in the winter was completely overshadowed by the pride and confidence he had in the new admiral and the excitement of his current active service. "I truly appreciate your good wishes for me," he wrote to Jervis in his initial moment of disappointment, "and I’m flattered by your desire for me to continue serving under your command, which I must admit would give me immense satisfaction." The following day, he felt even more restless. "I am just as anxious today as I was yesterday, despite having slept since my last letter. Indeed, Sir, I cannot stand the thought of leaving your command." He then suggested various solutions to the problem, which ultimately boiled down to his willingness to serve on any ship, as long as he could stay.
No violent solution was needed, as several applicants came forward when Nelson's wish was known. On the 11th of June, 1796, he shifted his broad pendant to the "Captain," of seventy-four guns, taking with him most of his officers. Soon afterwards the "Agamemnon" sailed for England. Up to the last day of his stay on board, Nelson, although a commodore, was also her captain; it was not until two months after joining his new ship that another captain was appointed to her, leaving to himself the duties of commodore only. In later years the "Agamemnon" more than once bore a share in his career. She was present at Copenhagen and at Trafalgar, being in this final scene under the command of an officer who had served in her as his first lieutenant, and was afterwards his flag-captain at the Nile. In 1809 she was totally lost in the river La Plata, having run aground, and then settled on one of her anchors, which, upon the sudden shoaling of the water, had been let go to bring her up.[37] It is said that there were then on board several seamen who had been with her during Nelson's command.
No violent solution was needed, as several applicants came forward when Nelson's wish was known. On June 11, 1796, he transferred his broad pendant to the "Captain," a ship with seventy-four guns, taking most of his officers with him. Soon after, the "Agamemnon" set sail for England. Up until the last day of his time on board, Nelson, although a commodore, was also her captain; it wasn’t until two months after joining his new ship that another captain was appointed, leaving him with the responsibilities of commodore only. In later years, the "Agamemnon" played a significant role in his career. She was present at Copenhagen and Trafalgar, and during the final battle, she was under the command of an officer who had served as her first lieutenant and later became his flag captain at the Nile. In 1809, she was completely lost in the river La Plata after running aground and settling on one of her anchors, which had been let go to stop her. [37] It’s said that several sailors who had served with her during Nelson's command were still on board at that time.
On the 13th of June the "Captain" sailed from San Fiorenzo Bay, and on the 17th joined the fleet off Cape Sicie, near Toulon, where Jervis, six weeks before, had established the first of those continuous close blockades which afterwards, off Brest, became associated with his name, and proved so potent a factor in the embarrassments that drove Napoleon to his ruin. There were then twelve British ships off the port, while inside the enemy had eleven ready for sea, and four or five more fitting. The following day Nelson again left the fleet, and on the 21st of June arrived at Genoa, where very serious news was to be received.
On June 13th, the "Captain" set sail from San Fiorenzo Bay, and on June 17th, it joined the fleet off Cape Sicie, near Toulon. Jervis had established the first of those ongoing close blockades six weeks earlier, which later became known by his name off Brest and played a significant role in the challenges that ultimately led to Napoleon's downfall. At that time, there were twelve British ships off the port, while inside, the enemy had eleven ready for sea and four or five more getting prepared. The next day, Nelson left the fleet again, and on June 21st, he arrived in Genoa, where very serious news awaited.
The triumphant and hitherto unchecked advance of Bonaparte had greatly encouraged the French party in Corsica, which had been increased by a number of malcontents, dissatisfied with their foreign rulers. Owing to the disturbed condition of the interior, the British troops had been drawn down to the sea-coast. Bonaparte, from the beginning of his successes, had kept in view the deliverance of his native island, which he expected to effect by the exertions of her own people, stimulated and supported by the arrival upon the spot of Corsican officers and soldiers from the French armies. These refugees, proceeding in parties of from ten to twenty each, in small boats, movable by sail or oars, and under cover of night, could seldom be stopped, or even detected, by the British cruisers, while making the short trip, of little more than a hundred miles, from Genoa, Nice, and Leghorn. The latter port, from its nearness, was particularly favorable to these enterprises; but, although neutral, and freely permitting the ingress and egress of vessels belonging to both belligerents, its facilities for supporting a Corsican uprising were not so great as they would be if the place were held for the French. For this reason, partly, Bonaparte had decided to seize it; and he was still more moved to do so by the fact that it was a centre of British trade, that it contributed much to the supply and repair of the British fleet, and that the presence of vessels from the latter enabled an eye to be kept upon the movements of the Corsicans, and measures to be taken for impeding them.
The victorious and previously unopposed progress of Bonaparte had significantly motivated the French supporters in Corsica, which had grown with many dissatisfied individuals unhappy with their foreign leaders. Due to the unstable situation inland, the British troops had been pulled back to the coastline. From the very start of his victories, Bonaparte aimed to liberate his home island, which he hoped to achieve through the efforts of the local population, bolstered by the arrival of Corsican officers and soldiers from the French armies. These refugees traveled in groups of ten to twenty in small boats, powered by sails or oars, usually under the cover of night, making it difficult for British ships to stop or even detect them on the short journey of just over a hundred miles from Genoa, Nice, and Leghorn. The latter port, being close, was particularly advantageous for these missions; however, even though it was neutral and allowed vessels from both sides to enter and leave freely, its ability to support a Corsican uprising wasn't as strong as it would be if the port were controlled by the French. For this reason, among others, Bonaparte chose to take it, and he was additionally motivated by the fact that it was a hub of British trade, significantly contributing to the supply and maintenance of the British fleet, and that the presence of British vessels allowed them to monitor Corsican activities and take measures to obstruct them.
"The enemy possessing themselves of Leghorn," Nelson had written in the middle of March, when expecting them to do so by a coastwise expedition, "cuts off all our supplies, such as fresh meat, fuel, and various other most essential necessaries; and, of course, our fleet cannot always [in that case] be looked for on the northern coast of Italy." Bonaparte had not, indeed, at that time, contemplated any such ex-centric movement, which, as things then were, would have risked so large a part of his army out of his own control and his own support; but in the middle of June, having driven the Austrians for the moment into the Tyrol, consolidated his position upon the Adige, established the siege of Mantua, and enforced order and submission throughout the fertile valley of the Po, which lay in rear of his army and amply supplied it with the necessaries of subsistence, he felt not only able to spare the force required, but that for the security of the right flank and rear of his army it had become essential to do so. The Papacy and Naples, although they had contributed little to the active campaigning of the allies, were still nominally at war with France, and might possibly display more energy now that operations were approaching their own frontiers. Should the British take possession of Leghorn with a body of troops,—their own or Neapolitan,—the port would remain a constant menace to the operations and communications of the French, and especially at the critical moments when the Austrians advanced to the relief of Mantua, as they must be expected to do, and actually did on four several occasions during the succeeding six months.
"The enemy taking control of Leghorn," Nelson had written in mid-March, when he expected them to do so through a coastal operation, "cuts off all our supplies, like fresh meat, fuel, and various other essential necessities; and, of course, our fleet can't always be relied upon on the northern coast of Italy." Bonaparte had not, in fact, considered any such unusual move at that time, which would have put a large portion of his army out of his control and support; but by mid-June, after pushing the Austrians temporarily into the Tyrol, consolidating his position on the Adige, laying siege to Mantua, and maintaining order and submission throughout the fertile Po Valley that supplied his army, he felt not only able to allocate the necessary troops, but that it was essential for the security of his army's right flank and rear. The Papacy and Naples, although they had contributed little to the active campaigning of the allies, were still officially at war with France and might show more determination now that operations were nearing their borders. If the British took control of Leghorn with a contingent of troops—whether their own or Neapolitan—the port would pose a constant threat to French operations and communications, especially during critical moments when the Austrians advanced to relieve Mantua, as they were expected to do, and actually did on four different occasions over the next six months.
Bonaparte, as he was ever wont, diligently improved the opportunity permitted to him by the need of the Austrians to reorganize and reinforce Beaulieu's beaten army before again taking the field. Threatened, as often again in later years, by enemies in divergent directions, he with the utmost promptitude and by the most summary measures struck down the foe on one side, before the other could stir. Occupying Verona in the first days of June, he immediately afterwards detached to the southward a corps under Augereau to enter the Papal States; and at the same time another small division, commanded by General Vaubois, started from the upper valley of the Po, ostensibly destined to proceed against Rome by passing through Tuscany. The effect of Augereau's movement, which was closely followed by the commander-in-chief in person, was to bring both Naples and the Pope speedily to terms. An armistice was signed by the former on the 5th, and by the latter on the 24th of June. Vaubois, on the other hand, after passing the Arno below Florence, instead of continuing on to Siena, as the Grand Duke had been assured that he would, turned sharp to the westward, and on the 28th of June entered Leghorn, which was thenceforth held by the French. Thus within a brief month were the British deprived of two allies, lethargic, it is true, in actual performance, but possessed of a degree of potential strength that could not but enter largely into Bonaparte's anxieties; while at the same time they lost the use of a seaport that had heretofore been considered essential to their support.
Bonaparte, as he usually did, quickly took advantage of the time the Austrians needed to reorganize and reinforce Beaulieu's defeated army before going back to battle. With threats coming from different directions, he swiftly dealt with one enemy before the other could react. After taking Verona in early June, he sent a corps under Augereau southward into the Papal States; at the same time, another small division led by General Vaubois set out from the upper valley of the Po, supposedly headed for Rome by way of Tuscany. Augereau's move, closely monitored by the commander-in-chief himself, quickly forced both Naples and the Pope to come to terms. An armistice was signed by Naples on the 5th and by the Pope on the 24th of June. Meanwhile, Vaubois, after crossing the Arno below Florence, instead of continuing to Siena as the Grand Duke had been promised, suddenly turned west and entered Leghorn on the 28th of June, which was then occupied by the French. In just a month, the British lost two allies, who were indeed slow to act but had enough potential strength to be a concern for Bonaparte; at the same time, they lost access to a seaport that had been crucial for their support.
Rumors of Vaubois' movement reached Nelson in Genoa at noon of June 23, but somewhat vaguely. "Reports are all we have here," he wrote to Jervis the same day, "nothing official from the armies;" but he thought the situation critical, and started without delay for Leghorn. Arriving there on the morning of June 27, after a passage rendered tedious by light airs and calms, he found the British merchant vessels that had been in the harbor, to the number of nearly forty sail, already under way, laden with British merchants and their property, and standing out under convoy of several ships of war; while in pursuit of them—a singular indication of the neutrality possible to small States like Tuscany and Genoa at that time—were a dozen French privateers, which had been lying beside them within the mole. One or two of the departing vessels were thus taken.
Rumors of Vaubois' movement reached Nelson in Genoa around noon on June 23, but they were somewhat unclear. "Reports are all we have here," he wrote to Jervis the same day, "nothing official from the armies;" however, he believed the situation was critical and left immediately for Leghorn. When he arrived on the morning of June 27, after a journey made slow by light winds and calm seas, he found nearly forty British merchant vessels that had been in the harbor already underway, loaded with British merchants and their goods, and setting out under the protection of several warships. Chasing after them—an unusual sign of the neutrality that small states like Tuscany and Genoa could maintain at that time—were about a dozen French privateers that had been anchored next to them within the mole. One or two of the departing vessels were captured in this manner.
The first impression upon Nelson's mind was that the occupation of Leghorn was only the prelude to an invasion of Corsica in force. "I have no doubt," he wrote to the Viceroy, "but the destination of the French army was Corsica, and it is natural to suppose their fleet was to amuse ours whilst they cross from Leghorn." Thus reasoning, he announced his purpose of rejoining the admiral as soon as possible, so as not to lose his share in the expected battle. "My heart would break," he says to Jervis, "to be absent at such a glorious time;" but it is difficult to understand why he imagined that the French would transfer their army into the destitution of the Corsican mountains from the fertile plains of Lombardy, abandoning the latter to their enemy, and exchanging their assured communications with France for the uncertainties and irregularities of a water transit over seas commanded by the British fleet. The tenure of the island, as he well knew, depended upon the willing support of the Corsicans themselves; in the equal balance of the existing war, neither belligerent could maintain its control against the opposition of the natives.
The first impression on Nelson’s mind was that the occupation of Leghorn was just the beginning of a full-scale invasion of Corsica. "I'm sure," he wrote to the Viceroy, "that the French army's destination was Corsica, and it makes sense to think their fleet was meant to distract ours while they crossed from Leghorn." With this reasoning, he declared his intention to rejoin the admiral as soon as possible, so he wouldn't miss out on the expected battle. "My heart would break," he told Jervis, "if I were absent at such a glorious time;" but it’s hard to understand why he thought the French would send their army from the fertile plains of Lombardy into the barren Corsican mountains, leaving the latter to their enemy and trading their reliable supply lines with France for the uncertainties of a sea crossing under the British fleet’s control. He knew well that holding the island depended on the Corsicans' willing support; in the ongoing war, neither side could maintain control against the locals' resistance.
This anticipation, in its disregard of the perfectly obvious conditions, was scarcely worthy of Nelson's real native sagacity, and shows clearly how much a man, even of genius, is hampered in the conclusions of actual life by the lack of that systematic ordering and training of the ideas which it is the part of education to supply. Genius is one thing, the acquirements of an accomplished—instructed—officer are another, yet there is between the two nothing incompatible, rather the reverse; and when to the former, which nature alone can give,—and to Nelson did give,—is added the conscious recognition of principles, the practised habit of viewing, under their clear light, all the circumstances of a situation, assigning to each its due weight and relative importance, then, and then only, is the highest plane of military greatness attained. Whether in natural insight Nelson fell short of Napoleon's measure need not here be considered; that he was at this time far inferior, in the powers of a trained intellect, to his younger competitor in the race for fame, is manifest by the readiness with which he accepted such widely ex-centric conjectures as that of an attempt by sea upon Leghorn at the opening of the campaign, and now upon Corsica by a great part, if not the whole, of the army of Italy.
This anticipation, ignoring the obvious conditions, was hardly worthy of Nelson's true native wisdom. It clearly demonstrates how much a person, even someone with genius, is limited in their real-life conclusions due to a lack of systematic organization and training of ideas that education should provide. Genius is one thing, while the skills of a well-rounded—educated—officer are another; however, there’s nothing incompatible between the two—in fact, the reverse is true. When nature provides the former, as it did for Nelson, and it's paired with an awareness of principles and the practiced ability to view all circumstances in their clear light, weighing each one's significance and importance, then and only then is the highest level of military greatness achieved. Whether Nelson's natural insight fell short of Napoleon's isn't the focus here; it's evident that at this time he was significantly inferior in the abilities of a trained intellect compared to his younger rival in the race for fame, as shown by his acceptance of such far-fetched ideas as launching a sea attempt on Leghorn at the start of the campaign, and now on Corsica by a large part, if not the entirety, of the Italian army.
"On the side of the French," says Jomini, speaking of Bonaparte at this very period, "was to be seen a young warrior, trained in the best schools, endowed with an ardent imagination, brought up upon the examples of antiquity, greedy of glory and of power, knowing thoroughly the Apennines, in which he had distinguished himself in 1794, and already measuring with a practised eye the distances he must overpass before becoming master of Italy. To these advantages for a war of invasion, Bonaparte united an inborn genius, and clearly established principles, the fruits of an enlightened theory."
"On the side of the French," Jomini says, referring to Bonaparte during this time, "there was a young warrior, educated in the best institutions, with a passionate imagination, raised on the examples of ancient history, eager for glory and power, thoroughly familiar with the Apennines, where he had made a name for himself in 1794, and already sizing up the distances he needed to cover to become master of Italy. Along with these advantages for an invasion, Bonaparte possessed a natural genius and clear principles, the results of an informed theory."
Jomini doubtless may be considered somewhat too absolute and pedantic in his insistence upon definite formulation of principles; but in these words is nevertheless to be recognized the fundamental difference between these two great warriors, a difference by which the seaman was heavily handicapped in the opening of his career. As time passed on, responsibility, the best of educators, took under her firm and steady guidance the training of his yet undeveloped genius, gleams of which from time to time, but fitfully and erratically, illumine his earlier correspondence. The material was there from the first, but inchoate, ill-ordered, confused, and therefore not readily available to correct passing impressions, wild rumors, or even to prevent the radically false conceptions of an enemy's possible movements, such as we have had before us. Bonaparte, furthermore, whose career began amid the troubled scenes of a revolution which had shattered all the fetters of established custom,—so strong in England to impede a man's natural progress,—had enjoyed already for some time the singular advantage of being military adviser to the Directory, a duty which compelled him to take a broad view of all current conditions, to consider them in their mutual relations, and not narrowly to look to one sphere of operations, without due reference to its effects upon others.
Jomini can definitely come across as overly rigid and pedantic in his insistence on clearly defined principles; however, his words highlight the fundamental difference between these two great leaders, a difference that put the seaman at a significant disadvantage at the start of his career. As time went on, responsibility—perhaps the best teacher—guided the development of his yet-untapped talent, which occasionally flickered through in his earlier letters, though inconsistently and erratically. The potential was present from the beginning, but it was unrefined, disorganized, and confusing, making it difficult to counter fleeting impressions, wild rumors, or even to stop completely inaccurate ideas about an enemy’s possible movements, as we have seen. Bonaparte, on the other hand, whose career started amid the chaotic events of a revolution that had broken all the constraints of established norms—so strong in England, hindering a person's natural progression—had for a while already enjoyed the unique advantage of being a military adviser to the Directory. This role required him to take a comprehensive view of all current conditions, considering their interconnections, rather than focusing narrowly on one area of operation without acknowledging its impact on others.
As to the invasion of Corsica after the manner he had imagined, Nelson was soon undeceived. Bonaparte himself, after a hurried visit to Leghorn, again departed to press the siege of Mantua, having assured himself that for a measurable time he had nothing to apprehend from movements on his flank and rear. Orders were received from Jervis on the 2d of July to institute a commercial blockade of Leghorn, permitting no vessels to enter or depart. The conduct of this business, as well as the protection of British trade in that district, and the support of the Viceroy in securing Corsica against the attempts of French partisans, were especially intrusted to Nelson, whose movements during the following months, until the first of October, were consequently confined to the waters between Corsica and Tuscany, while the Riviera west of Genoa saw him no more. Leghorn became the chief centre of his activities. These redoubled with the demands made upon him; his energy rose equal to every call. A few weeks before, he had made a conditional application to the admiral, though with evident reluctance, for a short leave of absence on account of his health. "I don't much like what I have written," he confessed at the end of his diffident request, and some days later he again alludes to the subject. "My complaint is as if a girth was buckled taut over my breast, and my endeavours, in the night, is to get it loose. To say the truth, when I am actively employed, I am not so bad. If the Service will admit of it, perhaps I shall at a future day take your leave." The service now scarcely admitted it, and the active duty apparently restored his health; at all events we now hear no more of it. Everything yielded to the requirements of the war. "The Captain has wants, but I intend she shall last till the autumn: for I know, when once we begin, our wants are innumerable."
As for the invasion of Corsica the way he had imagined, Nelson soon realized he was mistaken. Bonaparte himself, after a quick trip to Leghorn, left again to focus on the siege of Mantua, feeling secure that he wouldn’t face any threats to his sides or rear for a while. On July 2nd, orders came from Jervis to establish a commercial blockade of Leghorn, allowing no ships to come in or go out. Nelson was specifically tasked with managing this blockade, protecting British trade in the area, and supporting the Viceroy in defending Corsica against French partisans. Consequently, for the next few months until October 1st, his movements were limited to the waters between Corsica and Tuscany, while he did not return to the Riviera west of Genoa. Leghorn became the main focus of his efforts. His activities increased with the demands placed on him; his energy matched every call for action. A few weeks earlier, he had reluctantly made a conditional request to the admiral for a short leave of absence due to his health. "I don't really like what I've written," he admitted at the end of his hesitant request, and a few days later he mentioned it again. "My issue feels like a tight strap over my chest, and at night I struggle to loosen it. Honestly, when I’m busy, it doesn’t bother me as much. If the Service allows it, maybe I’ll take your leave at some point." The service now hardly left room for that, and being actively engaged seemed to improve his health; at least we don’t hear about it anymore. Everything gave way to the requirements of the war. "The Captain has needs, but I plan to keep her going until the autumn: because I know, once we start, our needs are endless."
In his still limited sphere, and on all matters directly connected with it and his professional duties, his judgment was sound and acute, as his activity, energy, and zeal were untiring. The menace to Corsica from the fall of Leghorn was accurately weighed and considered. Midway between the two lay the since famous island of Elba, a dependence of Tuscany, so small as to be held readily by a few good troops, and having a port large enough, in Nelson's judgment, to harbor the British fleet with a little management. "The way to Corsica," he wrote to the Viceroy, "if our fleet is at hand, is through Elba; for if they once set foot on that island, it is not all our fleet can stop their passage to Corsica." The Viceroy took upon himself to direct that the island be occupied by the British. Nelson complied without waiting for Jervis's orders, and on the 10th of July a detachment of troops, convoyed by his squadron, were landed in the island, and took charge, without serious opposition, of the town of Porto Ferrajo and the works for the defence of the harbor. The measure was justified upon the ground that the seizure of Leghorn by the French showed that Tuscany was unable to assure Elba against a similar step, prejudicial to the British tenure in Corsica. The administration remained in the hands of the Tuscan officials, the British occupation being purely military, and confined to the places necessary for that purpose.
In his still limited role, and on all matters directly related to it and his job, his judgment was sharp and insightful, just as his energy and commitment were tireless. The threat to Corsica from the fall of Leghorn was carefully assessed. In between the two lay the now famous island of Elba, a dependency of Tuscany, so small that it could be easily held by a few good troops, and having a port large enough, in Nelson's view, to shelter the British fleet with a bit of planning. "The way to Corsica," he wrote to the Viceroy, "if our fleet is available, is through Elba; for if they set foot on that island, not even our entire fleet can prevent their passage to Corsica." The Viceroy decided to have the island occupied by the British. Nelson acted without waiting for Jervis's orders, and on July 10th, a group of troops, escorted by his squadron, landed on the island and took control, without serious resistance, of the town of Porto Ferrajo and the defenses of the harbor. This action was justified on the basis that the French taking Leghorn demonstrated that Tuscany could not protect Elba from a similar move, which would harm British interests in Corsica. The administration remained in the hands of Tuscan officials, with the British occupation being purely military and limited to necessary locations for that purpose.
The blockade of Leghorn was enforced with the utmost rigor and great effectiveness. For a long time no vessels were allowed to go either out or in. Afterwards the rule was gradually relaxed, so far as to permit neutrals to leave the port in ballast; but none entered. The trade of the place was destroyed. Nelson hoped, and for a time expected, that the populace, accustomed to a thriving commerce, and drawing their livelihood from its employments, would rise against the feeble garrison, whose presence entailed upon them such calamities; but herein, of course, he underestimated the coercive power of a few resolute men, organized for mutual support, over a mob of individuals, incapable of combined action and each uncertain of the constancy of his fellows.
The blockade of Leghorn was enforced with the highest degree of strictness and great effectiveness. For a long time, no ships were allowed to enter or leave. Eventually, the rule was gradually relaxed enough to let neutral vessels leave the port empty; however, none came in. The local trade was completely destroyed. Nelson hoped, and for a time expected, that the people, used to a booming commerce and relying on it for their livelihood, would rise up against the weak garrison, whose presence brought them such suffering; but he underestimated the power of a few determined individuals, organized for mutual support, over a crowd of people unable to act together and each unsure of the loyalty of their neighbors.
The Austrian preparations in the Tyrol gradually matured as the month of July wore on. Towards its end Marshal Wurmser, the successor of Beaulieu, advanced for the relief of Mantua and the discomfiture of Bonaparte, whose numbers were much inferior to his opponents. The projected movement was of course known to the British, and its first results in raising the siege of Mantua, and throwing reinforcements into the place, gave them great hopes. Amid the conflicting rumors of the succeeding days, the wonderful skill and success of Bonaparte, who overthrew in detail forces greatly superior in the aggregate to his own, escaped notice for the time; the superficial incidents of his abandoning his previous positions alone received attention, and nothing less than his retreat in confusion was confidently expected. Nelson, justly estimating the importance of Leghorn, and over-sanguine of the support he might hope from the inhabitants, projected a sudden assault upon the town, by troops to be drawn from the garrisons in Corsica, supported by seamen of the squadron. Speaking of the steady intercourse between, that island and the mainland by way of Leghorn, he says: "The only way is to cut at the root, for whilst Leghorn is open, this communication must constantly be going on. This moment brings to my eyes a body of about 200 men, with the Corsican flag carrying before them; they are partly from Nice, and joined by Genoese, &c., on the road. The time approaches," he rightly forecasts, "when we shall either have to fight them in Corsica or Leghorn." The imminence of the danger was evident. "Our affairs in Corsica are gloomy," he had already written to the Duke of Clarence. "There is a very strong republican party in that island, and they are well supported from France; the first favourable moment, they will certainly act against us."
The Austrian preparations in the Tyrol gradually came together as July went on. Towards the end of the month, Marshal Wurmser, Beaulieu's successor, advanced to relieve Mantua and disrupt Bonaparte, whose forces were significantly outnumbered. The British were aware of the planned movement, and its initial success in lifting the siege of Mantua and sending reinforcements there gave them great optimism. Amid the conflicting rumors of the following days, Bonaparte's remarkable skill and success, as he systematically defeated forces much larger than his own, went unnoticed; only his withdrawal from previous positions was highlighted, and many expected nothing less than a retreat in disarray. Nelson, rightly recognizing the strategic importance of Leghorn and overly optimistic about the support he could get from the locals, planned a surprise attack on the town using troops from the garrisons in Corsica, backed by sailors from the squadron. Discussing the constant communication between the island and the mainland via Leghorn, he said: "The only way is to cut at the root, because while Leghorn is open, this communication will keep happening. I see a group of about 200 men with a Corsican flag leading them; they are partly from Nice, joined by Genoese, etc., on the road. The time is coming," he correctly predicted, "when we will have to fight them in Corsica or Leghorn." The danger was clearly imminent. "Our situation in Corsica is bleak," he had already informed the Duke of Clarence. "There is a very strong republican faction on that island, well-supported from France; at the first opportunity, they will definitely take action against us."
The details of the intended assault upon Leghorn do not appear, and it is probable that they never passed beyond the stage of discussion to that of acceptance, although he alludes to the plans as "laid." Clear-sighted for the key of a situation, and ardent to strike "at the root," as five years later in the Baltic he was eager to cut away the Russian root of the Armed Neutrality, instead of hewing off the Danish branch, Nelson urged the speedy adoption of the measure, and pressed his own fitness to harmonize the land and sea forces under one command, in virtue of his rank as Colonel of Marines. "Leghorn is in such a state," he writes to Elliot on the 5th of August, "that a respectable force landed, would, I have every reason to suppose, insure the immediate possession of the town. Not less than a thousand troops should be sent, to which I will add every soldier in my squadron, and a party of seamen to make a show. In every way, pray consider this as private, and excuse my opinions. I well know the difficulty of getting a proper person to command this party. Firmness, and that the people of Leghorn should know the person commanding, will most assuredly have a great effect. A cordial co-operation with me (for vanity apart, no one is so much feared or respected in Leghorn as myself) is absolutely necessary. I am going further: we know the jealousy of the army against the navy, but I am by the King's commission a Colonel in the army from June 1st, 1795." After discussing this difficult question of professional susceptibilities, he concludes: "You will consider, Sir, all these points, and form a much better judgment than I can, only give me credit that the nearest wish of my heart is to serve my King and my Country, at every personal risk and consideration. It has ever pleased God to prosper all my undertakings, and I feel confident of His blessing on this occasion. I ever consider my motto, Fides et Opera."[38]
The details of the planned attack on Leghorn aren’t clear, and it’s likely that they never went beyond talks to actual plans, even though he refers to them as "laid." Keenly aware of the key situation, and eager to tackle "at the root," just like he later wanted to eliminate the Russian influence of the Armed Neutrality in the Baltic instead of just dealing with the Danish side, Nelson pushed for quick action and emphasized his ability to unify land and sea forces under one command due to his rank as Colonel of Marines. "Leghorn is in such a state," he wrote to Elliot on August 5th, "that a respectable force landing would, I believe, ensure immediate control of the town. At least a thousand troops should be sent, and I will add every soldier in my squadron, along with some seamen to make it look good. In every way, consider this private, and please excuse my opinions. I understand the difficulty of finding a suitable leader for this group. It’s essential that the people of Leghorn know who is in charge, as that will definitely have a significant impact. A strong collaboration with me (setting aside vanity, no one is feared or respected in Leghorn as much as I am) is absolutely necessary. I’ll go even further: we know how the army feels about the navy, but I hold a commission from the King as a Colonel in the army since June 1, 1795." After discussing this tricky issue regarding professional sensitivities, he concludes: "You will consider, Sir, all these points and make a much better judgment than I could; just know that my greatest wish is to serve my King and my Country, at every personal risk and consideration. It has always pleased God to help me in my endeavors, and I feel confident of His blessing on this occasion. I always keep in mind my motto, Fides et Opera."[38]
Having, with true strategic insight, chosen the place where the blow ought to be struck for the preservation of Corsica, he pressed, with characteristic fervor, the necessity of taking risks. He discusses details indeed; he proposes no mere adventure, real as was his personal enjoyment of danger and action. What man can do, shall be done; but being done, still "something must be left to chance. Our only consideration, is the honour and benefit to our Country worth the risk? If it is (and I think so), in God's name let us get to work, and hope for His blessing on our endeavours to liberate a people who have been our sincere friends." Hearing at the same time that an army officer of general rank will have the command instead of himself, he adds: "Pray assure him there is nothing I feel greater pleasure in than hearing he is to command. Assure him of my most sincere wishes for his speedy success, and that he shall have every support and assistance from me." Truly, in generosity as in ardor, Nelson was, to use the fine old phrase, "all for the service."
Having, with genuine strategic insight, identified the best place to take action for the preservation of Corsica, he emphasized, with his usual passion, the need to take risks. He dives into the details; he doesn’t just propose an adventure, even though he personally enjoys danger and action. Whatever can be done, will be done; but once done, “something must be left to chance. The only question is, is the honor and benefit to our country worth the risk? If it is (and I believe so), then let’s get to work and hope for God’s blessing on our efforts to liberate a people who have been our true friends.” At the same time, learning that a general will be taking command instead of him, he adds: “Please assure him that nothing brings me greater pleasure than knowing he will be in charge. Convey my sincerest wishes for his swift success, and that he will have all my support and assistance.” Truly, in generosity as in enthusiasm, Nelson was, to use the classic phrase, “all for the service.”
The project upon Leghorn had the approval of the Viceroy and of Jervis; but the latter, while expressing perfect reliance upon "the promptitude of Commodore Nelson," was clear that the attempt must depend upon the contimied advance of the Austrians. This was also Nelson's own view. "All will be well, I am satisfied, provided Wurmser is victorious; upon this ground only have I adopted the measure." This qualification redeems the plan from the reproach of rashness, which otherwise might have been applied to the somewhat desperate undertaking of carrying a fortified town by such a feat of hardihood. It loses thus the color of recklessness, and falls into place as one part of a great common action, to harass the retreat of a beaten enemy, and to insure the security of one's own positions.
The project for Leghorn had the backing of the Viceroy and Jervis; however, Jervis, while expressing complete trust in "the quick action of Commodore Nelson," made it clear that the attempt had to rely on the continued advancement of the Austrians. This was also Nelson's perspective. "Everything will be fine, I'm confident, as long as Wurmser wins; that's the only reason I’ve taken this step." This condition saves the plan from being seen as reckless, which could otherwise have been claimed about the somewhat desperate task of taking a fortified town through such a daring act. It thus loses the impression of recklessness and fits into place as part of a larger coordinated action, aimed at harassing the retreat of a defeated enemy and ensuring the safety of one's own positions.
On the 15th of August, when the above words were written, Nelson was still ignorant of the Austrian defeats at Lonato and Castiglione, nearly two weeks before, and of their subsequent retreat to the Tyrol. A rumor of the reverse had reached him through Florence, but he gave it little attention, as the French in Leghorn were not claiming a victory. On the 19th he knew it definitely, and had to abandon the expectation, confided to his brother, that the next letter seen from him would be in the "Public Gazette." "An expedition is thought of, and of course I shall be there, for most of these services fall to my lot." "One day or other," he had written to his wife, apparently with this very enterprise in mind, "I will have a long Gazette to myself; I feel that such an opportunity will be given me. I cannot," he continued with prophetic self-reliance, "if I am in the field of glory, be kept out of sight."
On August 15th, when these words were written, Nelson was still unaware of the Austrian defeats at Lonato and Castiglione, which had happened nearly two weeks earlier, and their subsequent retreat to the Tyrol. A rumor about the loss had made its way to him through Florence, but he didn’t pay much attention to it since the French in Leghorn weren’t claiming victory. By the 19th, he knew for sure and had to give up the hope, which he had shared with his brother, that the next letter from him would appear in the "Public Gazette." "An expedition is being considered, and of course I’ll be there, since most of these missions fall on me." "One day," he had written to his wife, apparently with this very mission in mind, "I will have a long Gazette to myself; I feel an opportunity like that will come my way. I cannot," he continued with confident foresight, "if I’m in the field of glory, be kept in the shadows."
During the remainder of the month he continued to be amused with those unfounded reports of victories, which are among the invariable concomitants of all wars, and which his sanguine temperament and peculiar readiness to trust others made him especially ready to accept. He was not wholly unaware of this tendency in himself, though he continued to repeat with apparent belief reports of the most startling and erroneous character, and never seems to have appreciated, up to the time of his leaving the Mediterranean, the astonishing quickness and sagacity with which Bonaparte frustrated the overwhelming combinations against him. "We hear what we wish," he says on one occasion. "The Toulon information is, as I always thought it, pleasant to know but never to be depended upon; all is guess. I have long had reason to suspect great part is fabricated in Genoa;" but he was continually deceived by it.
During the rest of the month, he kept being entertained by those unfounded reports of victories, which are a common feature of all wars, and his optimistic nature and tendency to trust others made him especially prone to believe them. He wasn’t completely unaware of this tendency in himself, though he continued to share with apparent confidence reports that were both shocking and incorrect, and he never seemed to realize, until he left the Mediterranean, how quickly and cleverly Bonaparte countered the enormous coalitions against him. "We hear what we want," he says at one point. "The Toulon information is, as I always thought, nice to know but not something to rely on; it's all speculation. I’ve long suspected much of it is made up in Genoa;" yet he was repeatedly misled by it.
Throughout the discomfitures of the Austrians on shore, the purely naval part of the war continued to be successfully maintained. Jervis, with unrelaxing grip, kept his position before Toulon, effectually checking every attempt of the French fleet to escape unobserved into the open, while Nelson shut up Leghorn so rigorously that the enemy lost even the partial advantage, as a port of supply, which they had before drawn from its neutrality. But, during this pregnant summer, grave causes for anxiety were rolling up in the western basin of the Mediterranean. The attitude of Spain had long been doubtful, so much so that before Sir John Jervis left England, in the previous autumn, the ministry had deliberated upon the contingency of her declaring war, and a conditional decision had been reached to evacuate Corsica, if that event occurred. During the spring of 1796 reports of coming hostilities were current in the fleet. Nelson's first opinion was that, if they ensued, there was no object in remaining in the Mediterranean, except to preserve Corsica from the French. This, he thought, was not a sufficient motive, nor had the conduct of the natives entitled them to protection. With all the powers making peace with France, he hoped Great Britain would leave the Mediterranean. This, however, was but a passing expression of discouragement, whence he soon rallied, and, with a spirit worthy of his race, which was soon to face all Europe undismayed, his courage mounted continually as the storm drew nearer.
Throughout the struggles of the Austrians on land, the naval aspect of the war continued to be effectively managed. Jervis, with a firm grip, maintained his position off Toulon, successfully preventing the French fleet from slipping away into open waters unnoticed, while Nelson tightly blocked Leghorn, ensuring the enemy lost the limited advantage they had gained from its neutrality as a supply port. However, during that critical summer, serious concerns were building in the western Mediterranean. Spain's stance had been uncertain for a while, to the extent that before Sir John Jervis left England the previous autumn, the government had considered the possibility of her declaring war and had tentatively decided to evacuate Corsica if that happened. In the spring of 1796, rumors of impending hostilities circulated among the fleet. Nelson initially believed that if hostilities did break out, there was no point in staying in the Mediterranean except to protect Corsica from the French. He felt this wasn’t a strong enough reason, nor did the actions of the locals warrant protection. With all the powers negotiating peace with France, he hoped that Great Britain would withdraw from the Mediterranean. However, this was merely a fleeting moment of discouragement, and he soon recovered; with a spirit befitting his lineage, which was about to confront all of Europe fearlessly, his resolve grew stronger as the storm approached.
The summer of 1796 was in truth the period of transition, when the victories of Bonaparte, by bringing near a cessation of warfare upon the land, were sweeping from the scene the accessories that confused the view of the future, removing conditions and details which perplexed men's attention, and bringing into clear relief the one field upon which the contest was finally to be fought out, and the one foe, the British sea-power, upon whose strength and constancy would hinge the issues of the struggle. The British Navy, in the slight person of its indomitable champion, was gradually rising to the appreciation of its own might, and gathering together its energies to endure single-handed the gigantic strife, with a spirit unequalled in its past history, glorious as that had often been. From 1796 began the rapid ascent to that short noontide of unparalleled brilliancy, in which Nelson's fame outshone all others, and which may be said to have begun with the Spanish declaration of war, succeeded though that was by the retreat in apparent discomfiture from the Mediterranean, now at hand.
The summer of 1796 was truly a time of change. Bonaparte's victories were leading to a halt in land warfare, clearing away the distractions that clouded people's views of the future. It removed conditions and details that confused everyone, highlighting the one battlefield where the final contest would take place, and the one enemy, British sea power, upon which the outcome of the struggle depended. The British Navy, represented by its relentless champion, was slowly recognizing its own strength and rallying its energies to face this massive conflict alone, with a spirit unmatched in its remarkable history. Starting in 1796, there began a rapid rise to a brief period of extraordinary brilliance, during which Nelson's fame eclipsed all others, a phase that arguably began with Spain's declaration of war, even though it was followed by a seemingly embarrassing retreat from the Mediterranean, which was now approaching.
The approach of this extraordinary outburst of maritime vigor is aptly foretokened in the complete change, gradual yet rapid, that passed over Nelson's opinions, from the time when rumors of a Spanish war first assumed probability, up to the moment when the fact became tangible by the appearance of the Spanish fleet in the waters of Corsica. Accentuated thus in a man of singular perceptions and heroic instincts, it further affords an interesting illustration of the manner in which a combative race—for Nelson was through and through a child of his people—however at first averse to war, from motives of well-understood interest, gradually warms to the idea, and finally grows even to welcome the fierce joy which warriors feel, as the clash of arms draws near. "If all the states of Italy make peace," he writes on the 20th of May, "we have nothing to look to but Corsica; which in the present state of the inhabitants, is not, in my opinion, an object to keep us in the Mediterranean: we shall, I hope, quit it, and employ our fleet more to our advantage." "Reports here," on the 20th of June, "are full of a Spanish war. If that should be the case, we shall probably draw towards Gibraltar and receive large reinforcements."
The approach of this incredible surge of naval strength is clearly hinted at in the complete shift, both gradual and rapid, that occurred in Nelson's views, from the moment rumors of a possible Spanish war began to circulate, up to the point when the presence of the Spanish fleet in the waters near Corsica made it undeniable. This change, highlighted in a man of unique insights and courageous instincts, also provides an interesting example of how a combative culture—since Nelson was truly a product of his people—can go from being initially reluctant to engage in war, for reasons that are well understood, to gradually embracing the idea, and ultimately even welcoming the fierce joy that warriors experience as the battle approaches. "If all the states of Italy make peace," he writes on May 20th, "we have nothing to look forward to except Corsica; which in the current state of the inhabitants isn’t, in my view, a reason to keep us in the Mediterranean: I hope we can leave it and use our fleet more effectively." "Reports here," on June 20th, "are full of news about a Spanish war. If that's true, we'll probably head towards Gibraltar and receive significant reinforcements."
On the 15th of August, however, he writes to Jervis, betraying the incipient revulsion, as yet not realized, against abandoning the Mediterranean, which was already affecting the current of his thoughts. "I hope we shall have settled Leghorn before the Dons, if they intend it, arrive. I have still my doubts as to a Spanish war; and if there should be one, with your management I have no fears. Should the Dons come, I shall then hope I may be spared,[39] in my own person, to help to make you at least a Viscount." A few days later, having meantime heard of Wurmser's disasters at Castiglione: "Austria, I suppose, must make peace, and we shall, as usual, be left to fight it out: however, at the worst, we only give up Corsica, an acquisition which I believe we cannot keep, and our fleet will draw down the Mediterranean;" but at the same time, August 19, he writes to the Duke of Clarence with glowing hopes and rising pride: "I hope Government will not be alarmed for our safety—I mean more than is proper. Under such a commander-in-chief as Sir John Jervis nobody has any fears. We are now twenty-two sail of the line; the combined fleet will not be above thirty-five sail of the line. I will venture my life Sir John Jervis defeats them. This country is the most favourable possible for skill with an inferior fleet; for the winds are so variable, that some one time in twenty-four hours you must be able to attack a part of a large fleet, and the other will be becalmed, or have a contrary wind." That the Duke trembled and demurred to such odds is not wonderful; but the words have singular interest, both as showing the clear tactical apprehensions that held sway in Nelson's mind, and still more, at the moment then present, as marking unmistakably his gradual conversion to the policy of remaining in the Mediterranean, and pursuing the most vigorous aggressive measures.
On August 15th, however, he writes to Jervis, revealing the growing unease, still not fully recognized, about leaving the Mediterranean, which was already influencing his thoughts. "I hope we get Leghorn settled before the Spaniards arrive, if they plan to. I still have my doubts about a war with Spain; and if there is one, I have no worries with your leadership. If the Spaniards come, I hope I can be there in person to help make you at least a Viscount." A few days later, after hearing about Wurmser's defeat at Castiglione: "Austria, I guess, will have to make peace, and we will, as usual, be left to fight it out: however, at worst, we only lose Corsica, which I don't think we can hold onto, and our fleet will control the Mediterranean;" but at the same time, on August 19, he writes to the Duke of Clarence with high hopes and growing pride: "I hope the Government won't be overly worried about our safety—I mean more than necessary. Under such a commander as Sir John Jervis, no one has any fears. We are now at twenty-two ships of the line; the combined fleet won’t number more than thirty-five ships of the line. I would stake my life on Sir John Jervis defeating them. This country is extremely favorable for skill against a larger fleet; the winds are so unpredictable that at some point in every twenty-four hours, you can attack part of a large fleet while the others will be stuck without wind or facing a headwind." It's not surprising that the Duke was nervous and hesitated about such odds, but the words hold particular interest, as they reveal the clear tactical understanding that dominated Nelson's thoughts, and even more, at that moment, they clearly indicate his gradual shift towards the strategy of staying in the Mediterranean and pursuing the most aggressive actions.
A fortnight after this letter was written, Genoa, under pressure from Bonaparte, closed her ports against British ships, interdicting even the embarkation of a drove of cattle, already purchased, and ready for shipment to the fleet off Toulon. Nelson immediately went there to make inquiries, and induce a revocation of the orders. While the "Captain" lay at anchor in the roads, three of the crew deserted, and when her boats were sent to search for them they were fired upon by a French battery, established near the town. Nelson, in retaliation, seized a French supply ship from under the guns of the battery, whereupon the Genoese forts opened against the "Captain," which had meantime got under way and was lying-to off the city. Nelson did not return the fire of the latter, which was kept up for two hours, but threw three shot into the French battery, "to mark," as he said, the power of the English to bombard the town, and their humanity in not destroying the houses and innocent Genoese inhabitants. In the communications which followed under a flag of truce, Nelson was informed, verbally, that all the ports of the Republic were closed against Great Britain. This stand, and the firing on the ship, being considered acts of hostility, the little island of Capraia, between Corsica and Genoa, and belonging to the latter, was seized by Nelson, acting under the counsel of the Viceroy of Corsica. This was done both as a retaliatory measure, and to put a stop to the use which French privateers and parties of Corsicans had hitherto made of it, under cover of Genoese neutrality.
A fortnight after this letter was written, Genoa, under pressure from Bonaparte, closed her ports to British ships, even stopping the shipment of a herd of cattle that had already been purchased and was ready to be sent to the fleet off Toulon. Nelson immediately went there to ask questions and try to get the orders reversed. While the "Captain" was anchored in the harbor, three crew members deserted, and when boats were sent to search for them, they were fired on by a French battery set up near the town. In retaliation, Nelson seized a French supply ship under the guns of the battery, causing the Genoese forts to open fire on the "Captain," which had meanwhile gotten underway and was positioned off the city. Nelson did not return the fire from the forts, which continued for two hours, but fired three shots into the French battery, "to mark," as he said, the power of the English to bombard the town and their humanity in sparing the houses and innocent Genoese residents. In the communications that followed under a flag of truce, Nelson was told verbally that all ports of the Republic were closed to Great Britain. This stance, along with the firing on the ship, was seen as acts of hostility, so Nelson, acting on the advice of the Viceroy of Corsica, seized the small island of Capraia, located between Corsica and Genoa and belonging to the latter. This action was both a retaliatory move and a way to stop the French privateers and groups of Corsicans from using it under the guise of Genoese neutrality.
As Jervis was already under apprehension of an outbreak of scurvy in the fleet, consequent upon the failure of supplies of live cattle following the French occupation of Leghorn, the closure of the Genoese ports was a severe blow. It was, however, but one among several incidents, occurring nearly simultaneously, which increased his embarrassments, and indicated the close approach of the long-muttering storm. To use his own words, "The lowering aspect of Spain, with the advanced state of the equipment of the French fleet in Toulon," impelled him to concentrate his force. Rear-Admiral Man, who had been blockading Cadiz since his detachment there by Hotham, in October, 1795, was ordered up to the main fleet. Swayed by fears very unlike to Nelson's proud confidence in his admiral and his service, he acted with such precipitation as to leave Gibraltar without filling with provisions, and arrived so destitute that Jervis had to send him back at once, with orders to replenish with stores and then to rejoin without delay. Under the influence of the panic which prevailed at Gibraltar, Man had also sent such advices to the coast of Portugal as caused the commander-in-chief to fear that expected supplies might be arrested. "Oh, our convoy!" cried Nelson; "Admiral Man, how could you quit Gibraltar?" Yet, as he wrote to Jervis, he had expected some such step, from what he had already seen "under his hand to you."
As Jervis was already worried about a potential outbreak of scurvy in the fleet due to the lack of fresh livestock supplies after the French took over Leghorn, the closing of the Genoese ports was a big setback. However, it was just one of several incidents happening around the same time that added to his problems and signaled the impending crisis. In his own words, "The gloomy aspect of Spain, along with the advanced state of the French fleet in Toulon," pushed him to gather his forces. Rear-Admiral Man, who had been blockading Cadiz since Hotham appointed him there in October 1795, was ordered to join the main fleet. Unlike Nelson's confident faith in his admiral and service, Man acted so hastily that he left Gibraltar without taking on provisions and arrived in such dire straits that Jervis had to send him back immediately to stock up before rejoining. Influenced by the panic at Gibraltar, Man also sent reports to the coast of Portugal that led the commander-in-chief to worry that the expected supplies might be delayed. "Oh, our convoy!" exclaimed Nelson; "Admiral Man, how could you leave Gibraltar?" Still, in his letter to Jervis, he mentioned he had anticipated some action like this based on what he had already observed "under his hand to you."
Thus, for the time at least, there were lost to the British seven of the ships-of-the-line upon which Nelson had reckoned in his letter to the Duke of Clarence. It was possibly on this account that Jervis wrote him to shift his commodore's pendant to a frigate, and send the "Captain" to the fleet. Nelson obeyed, of course, and at once; but taking advantage of the fact that no captain had yet joined his ship, he thought it "advisable to go in her myself." In this he doubtless was influenced chiefly by his unwillingness to miss a battle, especially against such great numerical odds. "I take for granted," he admitted to the Viceroy, "that the admiral will send me back in a cutter, but I shall give him a good ordered seventy-four, and take my chance of helping to thrash Don Langara, than which few things, I assure you, would give me more real pleasure." The particular emergency seems, however, soon to have passed; for after two days with the fleet he returned off Leghorn in the "Captain," somewhat comforted as to the apprehensions of the British Cabinet. "Whatever fears we may have for Corsica, it is certain Government at home have none, by taking so very respectable a part of your force away." A regiment had been transferred to Gibraltar with Man's squadron, when the latter returned there.
Thus, for the time being, the British lost seven of the ships-of-the-line that Nelson had counted on in his letter to the Duke of Clarence. This might be why Jervis told him to shift his commodore's pendant to a frigate and send the "Captain" to the fleet. Nelson obeyed, of course, and immediately; but since no captain had yet joined his ship, he thought it "advisable to go in her myself." He was likely motivated mainly by his desire not to miss a battle, especially with such significant numerical disadvantages. "I assume," he told the Viceroy, "that the admiral will send me back in a cutter, but I’ll give him a well-prepared seventy-four and take my chances helping to defeat Don Langara, which would truly give me great pleasure." However, it seems that the specific emergency soon passed; after two days with the fleet, he returned to Leghorn in the "Captain," feeling somewhat reassured about the concerns of the British Cabinet. "Whatever fears we may have for Corsica, it is clear that the Government at home has none, judging by the significant portion of your force they took away." A regiment had been transferred to Gibraltar with Man's squadron when the latter returned there.
These rising hopes and stirring expectations of brilliant service were speedily dashed. On the 25th of September Jervis received orders from the Admiralty to abandon Corsica, to retreat from the Mediterranean, and to proceed with the fleet to England. In pursuance of these instructions Nelson was directed to superintend the evacuation of Bastia, the "most secret" letter to that effect reaching him at that port on the 29th of September,—his birthday. The purpose of the ministry filled him with shame and indignation. Confronted abruptly with the course which four months before had seemed to him natural and proper, the shock brought out the fulness of the change through which he had passed meantime. He has no illusions about Corsica. The inhabitants had disappointed all the expectations of the British,—"At a peace I should rejoice at having given up the island." But the days passing over his head had brought wider and maturer views of the general policy of Great Britain, as well as increasing faith in the powers of the fleet, vigorously used in aggressive warfare. "Whilst we can keep the combined fleet in the Mediterranean [by our own presence], so much the more advantageous to us; and the moment we retire, the whole of Italy is given to the French. If the Dons detach their fleet out of the Mediterranean, we can do the same—however, that is distant. Be the successes of the Austrians on the other hand what they may, their whole supply of stores and provisions comes from Trieste, across the Adriatic to the Po, and when this is cut off [as by our uncovering the sea it must be], they must retire." Above all he grieves for Naples. If a weak and vacillating ally, there was no doubt her heart was with them. "I feel more than all for Naples. The King of Naples is a greater sacrifice than Corsica. If he has been induced to keep off the peace, and perhaps engaged in the war again by the expectation of the continuance of the fleet in the Mediterranean, hard indeed is his fate; his kingdom must inevitably be ruined." In the impression now made upon him, may perhaps be seen one cause of Nelson's somewhat extravagant affection in after days for the royal family of Naples, independent of any influence exerted upon him by Lady Hamilton.
These rising hopes and exciting expectations for great service were quickly crushed. On September 25th, Jervis got orders from the Admiralty to abandon Corsica, retreat from the Mediterranean, and take the fleet back to England. Following these instructions, Nelson was told to oversee the evacuation of Bastia, with the "most secret" letter regarding this reaching him at that port on September 29th—his birthday. The ministry’s decision filled him with shame and anger. Faced with a situation that had seemed natural and right to him just four months earlier, the shock highlighted the significant change he had gone through since then. He had no illusions about Corsica. The inhabitants had let down all the British expectations—"In a peace I would be glad to have given up the island." But the days that had passed had brought him broader and more mature insights into Great Britain's overall strategy, as well as growing confidence in the fleet's power when used aggressively in warfare. "As long as we can keep the combined fleet in the Mediterranean [by our own presence], it benefits us even more; and the moment we withdraw, all of Italy is handed over to the French. If the Dons take their fleet out of the Mediterranean, we can do the same—though that seems far off. Regardless of the Austrians' successes on the other hand, all their supplies and provisions come from Trieste, across the Adriatic to the Po, and when this is cut off [as it must be with our presence at sea], they will have to retreat." Above all, he worries for Naples. While a weak and indecisive ally, there’s no doubt her loyalty lies with them. "I feel more than anything for Naples. The King of Naples is a bigger loss than Corsica. If he has been coaxed into avoiding peace, and perhaps drawn into war again by the hope of the fleet remaining in the Mediterranean, his fate is truly hard; his kingdom will surely be destroyed." In his current state of mind, we may see one reason for Nelson's later somewhat extreme affection for the royal family of Naples, independent of any influence from Lady Hamilton.
With these broad views of the general strategic situation, which are unquestionably far in advance of the comparatively narrow and vague conceptions of a year, or even six months before, and doubtless indicate the results of independent command and responsibility, acting upon powers of a high order, he at the same time shows his keen appreciation of the value of the organized force, whose movements, properly handled, should dominate the other conditions. "When Man arrives, who is ordered to come up, we shall be twenty-two sail of such ships as England hardly ever produced, and commanded by an admiral who will not fail to look the enemy in the face, be their force what it may: I suppose it will not be more than thirty-four of the line. There is not a seaman in the fleet who does not feel confident of success." "The fleets of England," he says again, "are equal to meet the world in arms; and of all fleets I ever saw, I never beheld one in point of officers and men equal to Sir John Jervis's, who is a commander-in-chief able to lead them to glory."
With these wide-ranging insights into the overall strategic situation, which are clearly ahead of the more limited and vague ideas from a year or even just six months ago, and likely reflect the outcomes of independent command and responsibility exercising significant powers, he also demonstrates his strong understanding of the importance of organized forces. When the man arrives, as ordered, we will have twenty-two ships that England rarely produces, led by an admiral who will not hesitate to face the enemy, no matter their numbers: I assume it won’t be more than thirty-four ships of the line. Every sailor in the fleet feels assured of success. "The fleets of England," he states again, "are capable of taking on the world in battle; and out of all the fleets I’ve seen, I’ve never encountered one with officers and men as exceptional as Sir John Jervis's, who is a commander-in-chief ready to lead them to victory."
Reasoning so clearly and accurately upon the importance to Great Britain's interests and honor, at that time, of maintaining her position in the Mediterranean, and upon the power of her fleet in battle, it is not strange that Nelson, writing in intimate confidence to his wife, summed up in bitter words his feelings upon the occasion; unconscious, apparently, of the great change they indicated, not merely in his opinions, but in his power of grasping, in well-ordered and rational sequence, the great outlines of the conditions amid which he, as an officer, was acting. "We are all preparing to leave the Mediterranean, a measure which I cannot approve. They at home do not know what this fleet is capable of performing; anything, and everything. Much as I shall rejoice to see England, I lament our present orders in sackcloth and ashes, so dishonourable to the dignity of England." To the British minister at Naples his words were even stronger: "Till this time it has been usual for the allies of England to fall from her, but till now she never was known to desert her friends whilst she had the power of supporting them. I yet hope the Cabinet may, on more information, change their opinion; it is not all we gain elsewhere which can compensate for our loss of honour. The whole face of affairs is totally different to what it was when the Cabinet formed their opinion."
Reasoning clearly and accurately about the importance to Great Britain's interests and honor at that time of maintaining her position in the Mediterranean, and the strength of her fleet in battle, it’s not surprising that Nelson, writing in close confidence to his wife, expressed his feelings in harsh terms; seemingly unaware of the significant change they signified, not merely in his views, but in his ability to understand, in a clear and logical way, the major circumstances under which he, as an officer, was operating. "We are all getting ready to leave the Mediterranean, a decision I cannot support. Those back home don’t realize what this fleet is capable of doing; anything, and everything. While I will be glad to see England, I regret our current orders, which are disgraceful to England’s dignity." To the British minister in Naples, his words were even stronger: "Until now, it has been common for England’s allies to abandon her, but until now she has never been known to abandon her friends while she still had the ability to help them. I still hope the Cabinet may reconsider their stance with more information; what we gain elsewhere cannot make up for our loss of honor. The entire situation is completely different from what it was when the Cabinet made their decision."
Nevertheless, although Nelson's perceptions and reasoning were accurate as far as they went, they erred in leaving out of the calculation a most important consideration,—the maintenance of the communications with England, which had assumed vital importance since the general defection of the Italian States, caused by Bonaparte's successes and his imperious demands. It would be more true to say that he underestimated this factor than that he overlooked it; for he had himself observed, six weeks earlier, when the approach of a Spanish war first became certain: "I really think they would do us more damage by getting off Cape Finisterre;[40] it is there I fear them," and the reason for that fear is shown by his reproach against Man, already quoted, for his neglect of the convoy. The position of the Spanish Navy in its home ports was in fact intermediate—interior—as regarded the British fleet and the source of its most essential supplies. So long as its future direction remained uncertain, it lay upon the flank of the principal British line of communications. Nelson did not use, perhaps did not know, the now familiar terms of the military art; and, with all his insight and comprehensive sagacity, he suffered from the want of proper tools with which to transmute his acute intuitions into precise thought, as well as of clearly enunciated principles, which serve to guide a man's conclusions, and would assuredly have qualified his in the present instance. Upon the supposition that the Spanish Navy, practically in its entirety, entered the Mediterranean and appeared off Corsica,—as it did,—Nelson's reasoning was correct, and his chagrin at a retreat justified; but, as he himself had wisely remarked to Beaulieu, it is not safe to count upon your enemy pursuing the course you wish. Had the Spanish Government chosen the other alternative open to it, and struck at the communications, such a blow, or even such a threat, must have compelled the withdrawal of the fleet, unless some other base of supplies could be found. The straitness of the situation is shown by the fact that Jervis, after he had held on to the last moment in San Fiorenzo Bay, sailed for Gibraltar with such scanty provisions that the crews' daily rations were reduced to one-third the ordinary amount; in fact, as early as the first of October they had been cut down to two-thirds. Whether, therefore, the Government was right in ordering the withdrawal, or Nelson in his condemnation of it, may be left to the decision of those fortunate persons who can be cocksure of the true solution of other people's perplexities.
Nevertheless, even though Nelson's insights and reasoning were accurate as far as they went, they missed a crucial factor—the need to maintain communication with England, which had become vital since the overall defection of the Italian States due to Bonaparte's successes and his demanding wishes. It would be fairer to say that he underestimated this factor rather than overlooked it; he had himself noted, six weeks earlier, when the onset of a Spanish war first became certain: "I really think they would do us more damage by getting off Cape Finisterre; it's there I fear them," and the reason for that fear is illustrated by his criticism of Man, mentioned earlier, for ignoring the convoy. The position of the Spanish Navy in its home ports was actually intermediate—interior—related to the British fleet and the source of its most crucial supplies. As long as its future direction was uncertain, it posed a threat to the main British line of communications. Nelson didn't use, and perhaps wasn't aware of, the now common military terms; despite his insight and deep understanding, he struggled with the lack of proper tools to translate his sharp intuitions into clear thoughts, as well as clearly defined principles that guide one's conclusions, which would have certainly informed his judgments in this case. Assuming that the Spanish Navy, nearly in its entirety, entered the Mediterranean and appeared off Corsica—as it did—Nelson's reasoning was correct, and his disappointment at their retreat was justified; however, as he wisely pointed out to Beaulieu, it's not safe to assume your enemy will take the path you want. If the Spanish Government had chosen the alternative option and attacked the communications, such an action, or even the mere threat, would have forced the fleet to withdraw, unless another supply base could be found. The tightness of the situation is highlighted by the fact that Jervis, after clinging on to the last moment in San Fiorenzo Bay, set sail for Gibraltar with such meager supplies that the crews' daily rations were cut down to one-third of the usual amount; in fact, as early as the first of October, they had already been reduced to two-thirds. So, whether the Government was right in ordering the withdrawal, or Nelson was correct in condemning it, can be left to the judgment of those fortunate individuals who are absolutely sure about the true answers to other people's dilemmas.
In evacuating the Mediterranean, Jervis determined, upon his own responsibility, to retain Elba, if the troops, which were not under his command, would remain there. This was accordingly done; a strong garrison, adequately provisioned, thus keeping for Great Britain a foothold within the sea, at a time when she had lost Minorca and did not yet possess Malta. Nelson hoped that this step would encourage the Two Sicilies to stand firm against the French; but, however valuable Elba would be to the fleet as a base, if held until its return, it was useless to protect Naples in the absence of the fleet, and upon the news of the latter's proposed retirement that Kingdom at once made peace.
In evacuating the Mediterranean, Jervis decided, on his own authority, to keep Elba, if the troops that weren’t under his command would stay there. This was done; a strong garrison, well-stocked with supplies, thus gave Great Britain a foothold in the sea, at a time when she had lost Minorca and didn’t yet control Malta. Nelson hoped this move would encourage the Two Sicilies to resist the French; however valuable Elba might be to the fleet as a base, if it was held until the fleet's return, it was useless for protecting Naples without the fleet, and upon hearing of the fleet's planned withdrawal, that Kingdom quickly made peace.
After the receipt of his orders for the evacuation of Bastia, and pending the assembling of the transports, Nelson was despatched by the admiral to Genoa, to present reclamations for injuries alleged to have been done to Great Britain, and to propose terms of accommodation. The little Republic, however, under the coercive influence of Bonaparte's continued success, was no longer in doubt as to the side which policy dictated her to take, between the two belligerents who vexed her borders. During this visit of Nelson's, on the 9th of October, she signed a treaty with France, stipulating, besides the closure of the ports against Great Britain, the payment of a sum of money, and free passage to troops and supplies for the army of Italy. Thus was Genoa converted formally, as she for some time had been actually, into a French base of operations. Returning from this fruitless mission, Nelson rejoined the commander-in-chief on the 13th of October, at San Fiorenzo, and the same afternoon left again for Bastia, where he arrived the following day.
After receiving his orders to evacuate Bastia, and while waiting for the transports to gather, Nelson was sent by the admiral to Genoa to lodge complaints about damages said to have been inflicted on Great Britain and to propose terms for negotiation. However, the small Republic, under the pressure of Bonaparte's ongoing success, was no longer uncertain about which side its policy directed it to choose between the two warring factions troubling its borders. During Nelson's visit on October 9th, Genoa signed a treaty with France, which included the closure of its ports to Great Britain, the payment of a monetary sum, and the allowance of free passage for troops and supplies to the army in Italy. This officially turned Genoa into a French base of operations, although it had already been functioning as one for some time. After this unsuccessful mission, Nelson rejoined the commander-in-chief on October 13th at San Fiorenzo, and that same afternoon left again for Bastia, where he arrived the next day.
During the fortnight intervening since he left the place, the fact that the Spanish fleet was on its way to Corsica had become known, and the French partisans in the island were proportionately active. It was impossible for the British to go into the interior; their friends, if not in a minority, were effectually awed by the preponderance of their enemies, on land and sea. Nelson, wishing to cross overland to San Fiorenzo to visit Jervis, was assured he could not do so with safety. In Bastia itself the municipality had wrested the authority from the Viceroy, and consigned the administration to a Committee of Thirty. The ships of war and transports being blown to sea, the inhabitants became still more aggressive; for, foreseeing the return of the French, they were naturally eager to propitiate their future masters by a display of zeal. British property was sequestered, and shipping not permitted to leave the mole.
During the two weeks since he left, word had spread that the Spanish fleet was heading to Corsica, and the French supporters on the island were getting more active. The British couldn't go inland; their allies, if not outnumbered, were effectively intimidated by the stronger presence of their enemies, both on land and at sea. Nelson wanted to travel overland to San Fiorenzo to see Jervis, but he was told it wouldn't be safe. In Bastia, the local government had taken control from the Viceroy and handed the administration over to a Committee of Thirty. With warships and transports blown out to sea, the locals became even more aggressive, eager to win favor with their likely future rulers by showing their enthusiasm. British property was seized, and shipping was not allowed to leave the harbor.
Nelson was persuaded that only the arrival of the ships accompanying him saved the place. Except a guard at the Viceroy's house, the British troops had been withdrawn to the citadel. Even there, at the gates of the citadel, and within it, Corsican guards were present in numbers equal to the British, while the posts in the towns were all held by them. Arriving at early dawn of the 14th, Nelson at once visited the general and the Viceroy. The former saw no hope, under the conditions, of saving either stores, cannon, or provisions. "The Army," said Nelson in a private letter to Jervis, with something of the prejudiced chaff of a seaman of that day, "is, as usual, well dressed and powdered. I hope the general will join me cordially, but, as you well know, great exertions belong exclusively to the Navy." After the evacuation, however, he admitted handsomely that it was impossible to "do justice to the good dispositions of the general."
Nelson was convinced that the arrival of the ships with him saved the place. Apart from a guard at the Viceroy's house, the British troops had all been pulled back to the citadel. Even there, at the citadel gates and inside, there were Corsican guards equal in number to the British, while all the posts in the towns were held by them. Arriving at early dawn on the 14th, Nelson immediately visited the general and the Viceroy. The general had little hope, given the situation, of saving any stores, cannons, or provisions. "The Army," Nelson wrote in a private letter to Jervis, using a bit of the typical attitude of a sailor from that time, "is, as usual, well dressed and powdered. I hope the general will support me fully, but, as you know well, significant efforts belong solely to the Navy." However, after the evacuation, he graciously admitted that it was impossible to "do justice to the good intentions of the general."
Between the heads of the two services such arrangements were perfected as enabled almost everything in the way of British property—public and private—to be brought away. By midday the ships, of which three were of the line, were anchored close to the mole-head, abreast the town, and the municipality was notified that any opposition to the removal of the vessels and stores would be followed by instant bombardment. Everything yielded to the threat, made by a man whose determined character left no doubt that it would be carried into execution. "Nothing shall be left undone that ought to be done," he wrote to Jervis, "even should it be necessary to knock down Bastia." From time to time interference was attempted, but the demand for immediate desistence, made, watch in hand, by the naval officer on the spot, enforced submission. "The firm tone held by Commodore Nelson," wrote Jervis to the Admiralty, "soon reduced these gentlemen to order, and quiet submission to the embarkation." Owing to the anarchy prevailing, the Viceroy was persuaded to go on board before nightfall, he being too valuable as a hostage to be exposed to possible kidnappers.
Between the leaders of the two services, arrangements were made that allowed almost all British property—both public and private—to be taken away. By midday, the ships, three of which were warships, were anchored close to the mole-head, directly in front of the town, and the local government was informed that any resistance to the removal of the vessels and supplies would result in immediate bombardment. Everything capitulated to the threat, made by a man whose determined nature left no doubt that it would be carried out. "Nothing shall be left undone that ought to be done," he wrote to Jervis, "even if it means demolishing Bastia." Occasionally, there were attempts to interfere, but the order for immediate cessation, given with a watch in hand by the naval officer present, ensured compliance. "The firm stance held by Commodore Nelson," Jervis wrote to the Admiralty, "quickly brought these gentlemen to order and ensured quiet compliance to the embarkation." Due to the chaos prevailing, the Viceroy was convinced to board before nightfall, as he was too valuable as a hostage to be left vulnerable to potential kidnappers.
On the 18th of October a large number of armed French landed at Cape Corso, and approached the town. On the 19th they sent to the municipality a demand that the British should not be permitted to embark. Under these circumstances even Nelson felt that nothing more could be saved. The work of removal was continued actively until sunset, by which time two hundred thousand pounds worth of cannon, stores, and provisions had been taken on board. At midnight the troops evacuated the citadel, and marched to the north end of the town, where they embarked—twenty-four hours ahead of the time upon which Nelson had reckoned four days before. It was then blowing a strong gale of wind. Last of all, about six o'clock on the morning of the 20th, Nelson and the general entered a barge, every other man being by that time afloat, and were pulled off to the ships, taking with them two field-guns, until then kept ashore to repel a possible attack at the last moment. The French, who "were in one end of Bastia before we quitted the other," had occupied the citadel since one in the morning, and the Spanish fleet, of over twenty sail-of-the-line, which had already arrived, was even then off Cape Corso, about sixty miles distant; but the little British squadron, sailing promptly with a fair wind, in a few hours reached Elba, where every vessel was safely at anchor before night. On the 24th Nelson joined the commander-in-chief in Martello Bay, the outer anchorage of San Fiorenzo. Everything was then afloat, and ready for a start as soon as the transports, still at Elba, should arrive. The evacuation of Corsica was complete, though the ships remained another week in its waters.
On October 18th, a large group of armed French troops landed at Cape Corso and moved towards the town. On the 19th, they sent a request to the local government demanding that the British not be allowed to leave. Given the situation, even Nelson felt that nothing more could be done to save it. The removal effort continued actively until sunset, by which time two hundred thousand pounds worth of cannons, supplies, and provisions had been loaded onto ships. At midnight, the troops left the citadel and marched to the north end of the town, where they boarded—twenty-four hours earlier than Nelson had estimated four days prior. A strong gale was blowing at that time. Lastly, around six o'clock in the morning on the 20th, Nelson and the general got into a barge, as everyone else was already at sea, and were taken out to the ships, bringing along two field guns that had been kept on land to defend against a potential last-minute attack. The French, who "were in one end of Bastia before we left the other," had taken over the citadel since one in the morning, and the Spanish fleet, consisting of over twenty ships of the line, was already off Cape Corso, about sixty miles away; however, the small British squadron, sailing quickly with favorable winds, reached Elba in just a few hours, where every vessel was safely anchored before nightfall. On the 24th, Nelson joined the commander-in-chief in Martello Bay, the outer anchorage of San Fiorenzo. Everything was then ready to go as soon as the transports, still in Elba, arrived. The evacuation of Corsica was complete, although the ships stayed in the waters for another week.
The Spanish fleet continued cruising to the northward of the island, and was every day sighted by the British lookout frigates. Jervis held grimly on, expecting the appearance of the seven ships of Admiral Man, who had been ordered to rejoin him. That officer, however, acting on his own responsibility, weakly buttressed by the opinion of a council of his captains, had returned to England contrary to his instructions. The commander-in-chief, ignorant of this step, was left in the sorely perplexing situation of having his fleet divided into two parts, each distinctly inferior to the Spanish force alone, of twenty-six ships, not to speak of the French in Toulon. Under the conditions, the only thing that could be done was to await his subordinate, in the appointed spot, until the last moment. By the 2d of November further delay had become impossible, from the approaching failure of provisions. On that day, therefore, the fleet weighed, and after a tedious passage anchored on the first of December at Gibraltar. There Nelson remained until the 10th of the month, when he temporarily quitted the "Captain," hoisted his broad pendant on board the frigate "Minerve," and, taking with him one frigate besides, returned into the Mediterranean upon a detached mission of importance.
The Spanish fleet kept sailing north of the island and was spotted daily by the British lookout frigates. Jervis held on, waiting for the arrival of the seven ships under Admiral Man, who had been ordered to rejoin him. However, that officer, acting on his own initiative and supported by the opinions of his captains, had returned to England against his orders. The commander-in-chief, unaware of this decision, found himself in a frustrating situation with his fleet split into two parts, each significantly weaker than the Spanish fleet of twenty-six ships, not to mention the French in Toulon. Given the circumstances, the only option was to wait for his subordinate at the designated location until the last possible moment. By November 2nd, further delay was no longer possible due to dwindling provisions. On that day, the fleet set sail and, after a long journey, anchored on December 1st at Gibraltar. Nelson stayed there until the 10th of the month, when he temporarily left the "Captain," hoisted his broad pendant on the frigate "Minerve," and took one additional frigate with him as he returned to the Mediterranean for an important mission.
Nelson's last services in Corsica were associated with the momentary general collapse of the British operations and influence in the Mediterranean; and his final duty, by a curious coincidence, was to abandon the position which he more than any other man had been instrumental in securing. Yet, amid these discouraging circumstances, his renown had been steadily growing throughout the year 1796, which may justly be looked upon as closing the first stage in the history of British Sea Power during the wars of the French Revolution, and as clearing the way for his own great career, which in the repossession of the Mediterranean reached its highest plane, and there continued in unabated glory till the hour of his death. It was not merely the exceptional brilliancy of his deeds at Cape St. Vincent, now soon to follow, great and distinguished as those were, which designated him to men in power as beyond dispute the coming chief of the British Navy; it was the long antecedent period of unswerving continuance in strenuous action, allowing no flagging of earnestness for a moment to appear, no chance for service, however small or distant, to pass unimproved. It was the same unremitting pressing forward, which had brought him so vividly to the front in the abortive fleet actions of the previous year,—an impulse born, partly, of native eagerness for fame, partly of zeal for the interests of his country and his profession. "Mine is all honour; so much for the Navy!" as he wrote, somewhat incoherently, to his brother, alluding to a disappointment about prize money.
Nelson's final efforts in Corsica coincided with the brief collapse of British operations and influence in the Mediterranean. Ironically, his last task was to leave the position he had played a crucial role in securing. Yet, despite these discouraging circumstances, his reputation had been steadily rising throughout 1796, which may rightfully be seen as the end of the first chapter in the story of British Sea Power during the wars of the French Revolution, paving the way for his remarkable career. This career reached its peak in the reclaiming of the Mediterranean and continued to shine brightly until his death. It wasn't just the remarkable brilliance of his actions at Cape St. Vincent, which were soon to come and were impressive, that made him stand out to those in power as undoubtedly the future leader of the British Navy; it was his long history of dedication to intense action, never showing any signs of slowing down and always seizing any opportunity for service, no matter how small or far away. It was this relentless drive that had brought him prominently to the forefront in the unsuccessful fleet actions of the previous year—a motivation rooted, in part, in his innate desire for recognition and, in part, in his commitment to his country and his profession. "Mine is all honour; so much for the Navy!" he wrote, somewhat disjointedly, to his brother, referring to his disappointment over prize money.
Nelson himself had an abundant, but not an exaggerated, consciousness of this increase of reputation; and he knew, too, that he was but reaping as he had diligently sowed. "If credit and honour in the service are desirable," he tells his brother, "I have my full share. I have never lost an opportunity of distinguishing myself, not only as a gallant man, but as having a head; for, of the numerous plans I have laid, not one has failed." "You will be informed from my late letters," he writes to his wife, "that Sir John Jervis has such an opinion of my conduct, that he is using every influence, both public and private, with Lord Spencer, for my continuance on this station; and I am certain you must feel the superior pleasure of knowing, that my integrity and plainness of conduct are the cause of my being kept from you, to the receiving me as a person whom no commander-in-chief would wish to keep under his flag. Sir John was a perfect stranger to me, therefore I feel the more flattered; and when I reflect that I have had the unbounded confidence of three commanders-in-chief, I cannot but feel a conscious pride, and that I possess abilities." "If my character is known," he writes to the Genoese Government, which knew it well, "it will be credited that this blockade [of Leghorn] will be attended to with a degree of rigour unexampled in the present war." "It has pleased God this war," he tells the Duke of Clarence, "not only to give me frequent opportunities of showing myself an officer worthy of trust, but also to prosper all my undertakings in the highest degree. I have had the extreme good fortune, not only to be noticed in my immediate line of duty, but also to obtain the repeated approbation of His Majesty's Ministers at Turin, Genoa, and Naples, as well as of the Viceroy of Corsica, for my conduct in the various opinions I have been called upon to give; and my judgment being formed from common sense, I have never yet been mistaken."
Nelson had a strong but not an overblown awareness of his growing reputation, and he recognized that he was simply reaping the rewards of his hard work. "If getting credit and respect in this service is desirable," he tells his brother, "I have my share. I've never missed an opportunity to stand out, not just as a brave man, but as someone with a good mind; all the plans I've made have succeeded." "You'll see from my recent letters," he writes to his wife, "that Sir John Jervis thinks highly of my actions and is using all his influence, both public and private, with Lord Spencer to keep me in this position. I know you must appreciate the greater pleasure of knowing that my integrity and straightforwardness are why I’m being kept from you, as someone no commander-in-chief would want to have under his flag. Sir John didn’t know me at all, so I feel even more flattered; and when I think about having the complete confidence of three commanders-in-chief, I can’t help but feel proud and acknowledge my abilities." "If my reputation is known," he writes to the Genoese Government, which was well aware, "it will be recognized that this blockade [of Leghorn] will be enforced with an unprecedented level of strictness in this war." "It has pleased God during this war," he tells the Duke of Clarence, "to not only give me many chances to prove myself a trustworthy officer but also to make all my efforts successful. I’ve been extremely fortunate, not only to receive attention in my direct duties but also to gain the repeated approval of His Majesty's Ministers in Turin, Genoa, and Naples, along with the Viceroy of Corsica, for my decisions in various matters I've been asked to address; and since my judgment comes from common sense, I have never been wrong."
Already at times his consciousness of distinction among men betrays something of that childlike, delighted vanity, half unwitting, which was afterward forced into exuberant growth and distasteful prominence, by the tawdry flatteries of Lady Hamilton and the Court of Naples. Now, expressed to one who had a right to all his confidence and to share all his honors, it challenges rather the sympathy than the criticism of the reader. "I will relate another anecdote, all vanity to myself, but you will partake of it: A person sent me a letter, and directed as follows, 'Horatio Nelson, Genoa.' On being asked how he could direct in such a manner, his answer, in a large party, was, 'Sir, there is but one Horatio Nelson in the world.' I am known throughout Italy," he continues; "not a Kingdom, or State, where my name will be forgotten. This is my Gazette. Probably my services may be forgotten by the great, by the time I get home; but my mind will not forget, nor cease to feel, a degree of consolation and of applause superior to undeserved rewards. Wherever there is anything to be done, there Providence is sure to direct my steps. Credit must be given me in spite of envy. Had all my actions been gazetted, not one fortnight would have passed during the whole war without a letter from me. Even the French respect me." After the conclusion of the campaign, when on the way to Gibraltar, he tells her again: "Do not flatter yourself that I shall be rewarded; I expect nothing, and therefore shall not be disappointed: the pleasure of my own mind will be my reward. I am more interested, and feel a greater satisfaction, in obtaining yours and my father's applause than that of all the world besides." The wholesome balance between self-respect and a laudable desire for the esteem of men was plainly unimpaired.
Already at times, his awareness of being different from others shows a bit of that childlike, joyful vanity, partly unintentional, which later grew excessively and became unpleasant, due to Lady Hamilton’s cheap flattery and the Court of Naples. Now, when shared with someone he trusts completely and who deserves to share in his honors, it invites more sympathy than criticism from the reader. "Let me share another story, all about my own vanity, but you will appreciate it: Someone sent me a letter addressed simply as 'Horatio Nelson, Genoa.' When asked how he could write that way, he replied, in a big group, 'Sir, there is only one Horatio Nelson in the world.' I am recognized throughout Italy," he goes on; "not a kingdom or state will forget my name. This is my Gazette. Maybe the great will forget my services by the time I get home; but my mind won’t forget that I’ve felt a level of comfort and recognition that surpasses any undeserved rewards. Wherever there’s work to be done, Providence will guide my steps. I will be acknowledged despite any envy. If all my deeds had been reported, not a single fortnight of the entire war would have gone by without a letter from me. Even the French respect me." After the campaign ends, while heading to Gibraltar, he tells her again: "Don't think that I will be rewarded; I expect nothing, so I won’t be disappointed: the joy of my own mind will be my reward. I care more about gaining your approval and my father’s than that of anyone else in the world." The healthy balance between self-respect and a commendable wish for others’ esteem was clearly intact.
Though devoid of conspicuous events, the year 1796, from the opening of the campaign, early in April, up to the evacuation of the Mediterranean, had been to Nelson one of constant and engrossing occupation. There is therefore little mention by him of his private affairs and feelings. In the home correspondence there is no diminution in the calm tenderness of affection always shown by him towards his wife and father, who continued to live together; rather, perhaps, the expressions to Mrs. Nelson are more demonstrative than before, possibly because letters were less frequent. But there is nothing thrilling in the "assurance of my unabated and steady affection, which, if possible, is increasing by that propriety of conduct which you pursue." He is clearly satisfied to remain away; the path of honor has no rival in his heart; there is no suggestion of an inward struggle between two masters, no feeling of aloneness, no petulant discontent with uneasy surroundings, or longing for the presence of an absent mistress. The quiet English home, the "little but neat cottage," attracts, indeed, with its sense of repose,—"I shall not be very sorry to see England again. I am grown old and battered to pieces, and require some repairs "—but the magnet fails to deflect the needle; not even a perceptible vibration of the will is produced.
Though it didn’t have any major events, the year 1796, from the start of the campaign in early April until the evacuation from the Mediterranean, was a time of constant and intense focus for Nelson. Because of this, he rarely mentions his personal life and emotions. In his letters home, he continues to express a calm tenderness towards his wife and father, who were still living together; in fact, his expressions to Mrs. Nelson may be even more affectionate than before, possibly because he wrote less frequently. However, there’s nothing exciting about his "assurance of my unwavering and steady affection, which, if anything, is growing thanks to the proper conduct you maintain." He seems completely content to be away; the path of honor holds no competition in his heart; there’s no hint of an internal conflict between two loyalties, no sense of loneliness, no childish dissatisfaction with his situation, or yearning for the company of an absent beloved. The tranquil English home, the "small but tidy cottage," certainly has its appeal with its sense of peace—"I won’t be too upset to see England again. I’ve grown old and worn out, and need some repairs"—but that pull doesn’t distract him; there’s not even a slight hesitation in his determination.
Yet, while thus engrossed in the war, eager for personal distinction and for the military honor of his country, he apparently sees in it little object beyond a mere struggle for superiority, and has no conception of the broader and deeper issues at stake, the recognition of which intensified and sustained the resolution of the peace-loving minister, who then directed the policy of Great Britain. Of this he himself gives the proof in a curious anecdote. An Algerine official visiting the "Captain" off Leghorn, Nelson asked him why the Dey would not make peace with the Genoese and Neapolitans, for they would pay well for immunity, as the Americans at that period always did. His answer was: "If we make peace with every one, what is the Dey to do with his ships?" "What a reason for carrying on a naval war!" said Nelson, when writing the story to Jervis; "but has our minister a better one for the present?" Jervis, a traditional Whig, and opposed in Parliament to the war, probably sympathized with this view, and in any case the incident shows the close confidence existing between the two officers; but it also indicates how narrowly Nelson's genius and unquestionable acuteness c£ intellect confined themselves, at that time, to the sphere in which he was visibly acting. In this he presents a marked contrast to Bonaparte, whose restless intelligence and impetuous imagination reached out in many directions, and surveyed from a lofty height the bearing of all things, far and near, upon the destinies of France.
Yet, while fully engaged in the war, eager for personal recognition and the military honor of his country, he seems to see little more than a basic struggle for dominance and has no understanding of the larger and more significant issues at stake. The acknowledgment of these issues fueled and maintained the determination of the peace-loving minister who was then guiding Britain’s policy. He himself provides evidence of this in a curious story. When an Algerian official visited the "Captain" near Leghorn, Nelson asked why the Dey wouldn’t make peace with the Genoese and Neapolitans since they would pay well for safety, just like the Americans did at that time. The official replied, “If we make peace with everyone, what will the Dey do with his ships?” Nelson remarked, when telling the story to Jervis, “What a reason for continuing a naval war! But does our minister have a better one for now?” Jervis, a traditional Whig who opposed the war in Parliament, probably agreed with this perspective, and in any case, the incident highlights the close trust between the two officers. However, it also shows how narrowly Nelson's brilliance and sharp intelligence focused on the immediate situation he was involved in. This sharply contrasts with Bonaparte, whose restless intellect and passionate imagination reached out in many directions, examining from a high vantage point the impact of everything, near and far, on France's future.
FOOTNOTES:
[35] This indicates no opinion as to the fortune of the military operations in England, a landing once effected. It has, however, seemed to the author singular that men fail to consider that Napoleon would not have hesitated to abandon an army in England, as he did in Egypt and in Russia. A few hours' fog or calm, and a quick-pulling boat, would have landed himself again in France; while the loss of 150,000 men, if it came to that, would have been cheaply bought with the damage such an organized force could have done London and the dockyards, not to speak of the moral effect.
[35] This indicates no opinion on the outcome of military operations in England, once a landing is made. It has, however, struck the author as strange that people do not consider that Napoleon would not have hesitated to leave an army in England, just as he did in Egypt and in Russia. A few hours of fog or calm weather, and a fast boat, could have taken him back to France; while the loss of 150,000 men, if it came to that, would have been a small price to pay compared to the damage such a well-organized force could have inflicted on London and the dockyards, not to mention the psychological impact.
[40] On the northwest coast of Spain, at the entrance of the Bay of Biscay, and therefore right in the track of vessels from the Channel to the Straits of Gibraltar.
[40] On the northwest coast of Spain, at the entrance of the Bay of Biscay, and therefore directly in the path of ships traveling from the Channel to the Straits of Gibraltar.
CHAPTER VIII.
THE EVACUATION OF ELBA.—NIGHT COMBAT WITH TWO SPANISH FRIGATES.—BATTLE OF CAPE ST. VINCENT.—NELSON PROMOTED TO REAR-ADMIRAL.—SERVICES BEFORE CADIZ.
THE EVACUATION OF ELBA.—NIGHT FIGHT WITH TWO SPANISH FRIGATES.—BATTLE OF CAPE ST. VINCENT.—NELSON PROMOTED TO REAR-ADMIRAL.—SERVICES BEFORE CADIZ.
DECEMBER, 1796-JUNE, 1797. AGE, 38.
DECEMBER 1796 - JUNE 1797. AGE 38.
"When we quitted Toulon," wrote Nelson to his old captain, Locker, while on the passage to Gibraltar, "I remember we endeavoured to reconcile ourselves to Corsica; now we are content with Elba—such things are." Even this small foothold was next to be resigned. Upon reaching Gibraltar, Jervis received orders from the Admiralty to evacuate the island.
"When we left Toulon," Nelson wrote to his old captain, Locker, during the trip to Gibraltar, "I remember we tried to get used to Corsica; now we are okay with Elba—such is life." Even this small piece of land was about to be given up. Upon arriving in Gibraltar, Jervis got orders from the Admiralty to evacuate the island.
This was the duty upon which Nelson was so soon despatched again to the Mediterranean. Though "most important," wrote he to his wife, "it is not a fighting mission, therefore be not uneasy." The assurance was doubtless honestly given, but scarcely to be implicitly accepted in view of his past career. Leaving the admiral on the evening of December 14, with the frigates "Blanche" and "Minerve," his commodore's pendant flying in the latter, the two vessels, about 11 p.m. of the 19th, encountered two Spanish frigates close to Cartagena. The enemies pairing off, a double action ensued, which, in the case of the "Minerve," ended in the surrender of her opponent, "La Sabina," at half-past one in the morning. Throwing a prize-crew on board, the British ship took her late antagonist in tow and stood away to the southeast. At half-past three another Spanish frigate came up, and, in order to meet this fresh enemy on fairly equal terms, the "Minerve" had to drop her prize. The second fight began at 4.30, and lasted half an hour, when the Spaniard hauled off. With daylight appeared also two hostile ships-of-the-line, which had been chasing towards the sound of the guns. These had already been seen by the "Blanche," which was by them prevented from taking possession of her antagonist, after the latter struck. The pursuit lasted through the day, the "Minerve" being hard pressed in consequence of the injuries received by all her masts during the engagement; but both British frigates succeeded in shaking off their pursuers. "La Sabina" was recaptured; she had already lost one mast, and the remaining two were seen to go over the side as she was bringing-to, when the enemy overtook her. It is interesting to note that her captain, Don Jacobo Stuart, was descended from the British royal house of Stuart. He, with many of his crew, had been transferred to the "Minerve," and remained prisoners.
This was the assignment that quickly sent Nelson back to the Mediterranean. Although he wrote to his wife that it was "most important," he reassured her, "it's not a fighting mission, so don't worry." He likely meant this sincerely, but given his history, it was hard to take it at face value. After leaving the admiral on the evening of December 14, with the frigates "Blanche" and "Minerve" (his commodore's pendant flying on the latter), the two ships encountered two Spanish frigates near Cartagena around 11 p.m. on the 19th. The opponents paired off, leading to a double action, and "Minerve" ended up capturing her adversary, "La Sabina," at 1:30 a.m. They put a prize crew on board and began towing the captured ship southeast. At 3:30 a.m., another Spanish frigate appeared, so to face this new enemy on more even ground, "Minerve" had to release her prize. The second battle started at 4:30 and lasted for half an hour before the Spaniard pulled back. With dawn came two enemy ships of the line that had been racing toward the sound of the gunfire. The "Blanche" had already spotted them, preventing her from seizing her opponent after it struck. The chase continued throughout the day, with "Minerve" struggling due to damage sustained to all her masts during the fight, but both British frigates managed to evade their pursuers. "La Sabina" was retaken; she had already lost one mast, and the other two went overboard as she surrendered when the enemy caught up. Interestingly, her captain, Don Jacobo Stuart, was descended from the British royal house of Stuart. He, along with many of his crew, was transferred to the "Minerve," where they remained prisoners.
Nelson reached Porto Ferrajo a week later, on the 26th of December. "On my arrival here," wrote he to his brother, "it was a ball night, and being attended by the captains, I was received in due form by the General, and one particular tune was played:[41] the second was 'Rule Britannia.' From Italy I am loaded with compliments." Having regard to comparative strength, the action was in all respects most creditable, but it received additional lustre from being fought close to the enemy's coast, and in full view of a force so superior as that from which escape had been handsomely made, under conditions requiring both steadiness and skill. Though on a small scale, no such fair stand-up fight had been won in the Mediterranean during the war, and the resultant exultation was heightened by its contrast with the general depression then weighing upon the British cause. Especially keen and warmly expressed was the satisfaction of the veteran commander-in-chief at Lisbon, who first learned the success of his valued subordinate through Spanish sources. "I cannot express to you, and Captain Cockburn, the feelings I underwent on the receipt of the enclosed bulletin, the truth of which I cannot doubt, as far as relates to your glorious achievement in the capture of the Sabina, and dignified retreat from the line-of-battle ship, which deprived you of your well-earned trophy; your laurels were not then within their grasp, and can never fade."
Nelson arrived in Porto Ferrajo a week later, on December 26th. "When I got here," he wrote to his brother, "it was a ball night, and since I was accompanied by the captains, the General formally welcomed me, and one particular tune was played:[41] the second was 'Rule Britannia.' From Italy, I've received a lot of compliments." Considering the relative strength, the battle was quite impressive, but it became even more notable because it was fought close to the enemy's coast and in full view of a much larger force from which they had skillfully escaped, under conditions that required both composure and skill. Although it was on a small scale, no other fair stand-up fight had been won in the Mediterranean during the war, and the resulting joy was intensified by its contrast with the general gloom that was hanging over the British cause. The satisfaction of the veteran commander-in-chief in Lisbon was especially strong and warmly conveyed when he first learned of his valued subordinate's success from Spanish sources. "I can't express to you and Captain Cockburn the feelings I had when I received the enclosed bulletin, the accuracy of which I have no doubt regarding your glorious achievement in capturing the Sabina and your dignified retreat from the battleship, which prevented you from taking your well-deserved trophy; your achievements were not within their reach at that time and can never fade."
General De Burgh, who commanded the troops in Elba, had received no instructions to quit the island, and felt uncertain about his course, in view of the navy's approaching departure. Nelson's orders were perfectly clear, but applied only to the naval establishment. He recognized the general's difficulty, though he seems to have thought that, under all the circumstances, he might very well have acted upon his own expressed opinion, that "the signing of a Neapolitan peace with France ought to be our signal for departure." "The army," wrote Nelson to the First Lord of the Admiralty, "are not so often called upon to exercise their judgment in political measures as we are; therefore the general feels a certain diffidence." He told De Burgh that, the King of Naples having made peace, Jervis considered his business with the courts of Italy as terminated; that the Admiralty's orders were to concentrate the effort of the fleet upon preventing the allied fleets from quitting the Mediterranean, and upon the defence of Portugal, invaluable to the British as a base of naval operations. For these reasons, even if he had to leave the land forces in Elba, he should have no hesitation in following his instructions, which were to withdraw all naval belongings. "I have sent to collect my squadron, and as soon as they arrive, I shall offer myself for embarking the troops, stores, &c.; and should you decline quitting this post, I shall proceed down the Mediterranean with such ships of war as are not absolutely wanted for keeping open the communication of Elba with the Continent."
General De Burgh, who was in charge of the troops in Elba, hadn't received any orders to leave the island and felt unsure about what to do with the navy getting ready to depart. Nelson's orders were clear but only applied to the naval side. He understood the general's predicament, although he seemed to believe that given the circumstances, De Burgh could have acted on his own opinion that “the signing of a Neapolitan peace with France should signal our departure.” “The army,” Nelson wrote to the First Lord of the Admiralty, “doesn't often have to rely on their judgment regarding political matters like we do; therefore, the general feels a bit uncertain.” He informed De Burgh that since the King of Naples had made peace, Jervis viewed his dealings with the courts of Italy as finished; that the Admiralty's orders were to focus the fleet's efforts on preventing the allied fleets from leaving the Mediterranean and defending Portugal, which was crucial for the British as a base for naval operations. For these reasons, even if he had to leave the land forces in Elba, he should not hesitate to follow his instructions, which were to withdraw all naval assets. “I have sent to gather my squadron, and as soon as they arrive, I will be ready to help embark the troops, supplies, etc.; and if you decide not to leave this position, I will head down the Mediterranean with any warships that aren’t needed to maintain communication between Elba and the Continent.”
The necessary preparations went on apace. Vessels were sent out to summon the scattered cruisers to the port. A frigate was despatched to Naples to bring back Sir Gilbert Elliot, the late Viceroy of Corsica, who, since the abandonment of the latter island, had been on a diplomatic visit to Rome and Naples. It is to this incident that we owe the fullest account transmitted of the Battle of Cape St. Vincent; the narrator, Colonel Drinkwater, being then a member of the Viceroy's suite, and attending him upon his return with Nelson's squadron. The Spanish prisoners were sent to Cartagena in a cartel, Nelson restoring to the captain of the "Sabina" the sword which he had surrendered. "I felt this consonant to the dignity of my Country, and I always act as I feel right, without regard to custom." By the 16th of January all the naval establishment was embarked, ready for departure, though some of the ships of war had not yet returned, nor had the Viceroy arrived. The delay allowed the "Minerve" to be completely refitted, two of her masts and most of her rigging having to be renewed.
The necessary preparations were moving quickly. Ships were sent out to gather the scattered cruisers to the port. A frigate was dispatched to Naples to bring back Sir Gilbert Elliot, the former Viceroy of Corsica, who had been on a diplomatic trip to Rome and Naples since the abandonment of the island. We owe the most detailed account of the Battle of Cape St. Vincent to this event; the narrator, Colonel Drinkwater, was then part of the Viceroy's entourage and accompanied him on his return with Nelson's squadron. The Spanish prisoners were sent to Cartagena on a cartel, and Nelson returned the sword to the captain of the "Sabina," which he had surrendered. "I believed this was in line with the dignity of my country, and I always act according to what I feel is right, regardless of custom." By January 16th, all the naval establishment was on board and ready to leave, although some warships had not yet come back, and the Viceroy had not arrived. The delay allowed the "Minerve" to be completely refitted, as two of her masts and most of her rigging needed to be replaced.
When Elliot came, it was decided in a consultation between him, Nelson, and De Burgh, that the troops should remain. The transports had been completely victualled, and so prepared that every soldier could be embarked in three days. With them were left two frigates and a few smaller ships of war. On the 29th of January, Nelson sailed with the rest of his force and the convoy, divided into three sections, which proceeded for the Straits by different routes, to diminish the chances of total loss by capture. Nelson himself, with another frigate, the "Romulus," in company, intended to make a round of the enemy's ports, in order to bring the admiral the latest information of the number of ships in each, and their state of preparation. "I hope to arrive safe in Lisbon with my charge," he wrote to his wife on the eve of sailing, "but in war much is left to Providence: however, as I have hitherto been most successful, confidence tells me I shall not fail: and as nothing will be left undone by me, should I not always succeed, my mind will not suffer; nor will the world, I trust, be willing to attach blame, where my heart tells me none would be due." The habit of taking risks had wrought its beneficial influence upon mind and temper, when he thus calmly and simply reasoned from the experience of the past to the prospective fortnight, to be passed in sight of a hostile coast, and in waters where he could meet no friendly sail. "It has ever pleased Almighty God to give his blessing to my endeavours," was his New Year greeting to his father at this time.
When Elliot arrived, it was agreed during a meeting between him, Nelson, and De Burgh that the troops would stay put. The transports had been fully stocked with supplies, making it possible for every soldier to be onboard within three days. Two frigates and a few smaller warships remained with them. On January 29th, Nelson set sail with the rest of his forces and the convoy, which was split into three groups taking different routes to the Straits to reduce the chances of losing everything to capture. Nelson himself, accompanied by another frigate, the "Romulus," planned to visit the enemy's ports to gather the latest intel on how many ships were there and their readiness. "I hope to arrive safely in Lisbon with my charge," he wrote to his wife on the eve of his departure, "but in war, much is left to fate: however, since I have been quite successful so far, I feel confident that I won't fail. And as I will do everything possible, if I don't always succeed, I won't be troubled, nor do I think the world will want to place blame where my heart tells me none should be given." His tendency to take risks had positively influenced his mindset and temperament, as he calmly and simply drew from past experiences to consider the upcoming fortnight, which would be spent by a hostile coast and in waters without friendly ships. "It has always pleased Almighty God to bless my efforts," was his New Year greeting to his father at that time.
During this month in Elba a slight political reference shows how his views and purpose were changing with the rapidly shifting political scene. In this hour of deepening adversity he no longer looks for peace, nor seeks the reason for the current war, which a few months before he had failed to find. "As to peace, I do not expect it; Lord Malmesbury will come back as he went. But the people of England will, I trust, be more vigorous for the prosecution of the war, which can alone insure an honourable peace."
During this month in Elba, a subtle political remark indicates how his views and intentions were evolving with the fast-changing political environment. In this time of increasing hardship, he no longer seeks peace or tries to understand the reasons behind the current war, which he couldn't make sense of a few months ago. "As for peace, I don't expect it; Lord Malmesbury will return just as he left. But I hope the people of England will be more determined to continue the war, which is the only way to secure an honorable peace."
The "Minerve" and the "Romulus" looked first into the old British anchorage in San Fiorenzo Bay, which was found deserted. Standing thence to Toulon, they remained forty-eight hours off that port, in which were to be seen no ships in condition for sailing. From there they passed off Barcelona, showing French colors, but without succeeding in drawing out any vessel there lying. The wind not being fair for Minorca, where Nelson had purposed to reconnoitre Port Mahon, the frigates next went to Cartagena, and ascertained that the great Spanish fleet was certainly not there. As Toulon also had been found empty, it seemed clear that it had gone to the westward, the more so as the most probable information indicated that the naval enterprises of the French and their allies at that time were to be outside of the Mediterranean. Nelson therefore pushed ahead, and on the 9th of February the "Minerve" and "Romulus" anchored in Gibraltar. All three divisions from Elba passed the Straits within the same forty-eight hours.
The "Minerve" and the "Romulus" first checked the old British anchorage in San Fiorenzo Bay, which was found empty. They then headed to Toulon, where they stayed for forty-eight hours but saw no ships ready to sail. After that, they moved past Barcelona, flying French colors, but didn’t manage to catch any vessels there. With the wind not favorable for Minorca, where Nelson intended to scout Port Mahon, the frigates next went to Cartagena and confirmed that the large Spanish fleet was definitely not there. Since Toulon was also empty, it seemed clear that the fleet had moved west, especially since reliable information suggested that the French and their allies were focused on naval operations outside of the Mediterranean. Nelson then moved forward, and on February 9th, the "Minerve" and "Romulus" anchored in Gibraltar. All three groups from Elba passed through the Straits within the same forty-eight hours.
The Spanish grand fleet had been seen from the Rock, four days before, standing to the westward into the Atlantic. Two ships-of-the-line and a frigate had been detached from it, with supplies for the Spanish lines before Gibraltar, and had anchored at the head of the bay, where they still were when Nelson arrived. On board them had also been sent the two British lieutenants and the seamen, who became prisoners when the "Sabina" was recaptured. Their exchange was effected, for which alone Nelson was willing to wait. The fact that the Spanish fleet had gone towards Jervis's rendezvous, and the continuance of easterly winds, which would tend to drive them still farther in the same direction, gave him uneasy premonitions of that coming battle which it would "break his heart" to miss. It was, besides, part of his ingrained military philosophy, never absent from his careful mind, that a fair wind may fall or shift. "The object of a sea-officer is to embrace the happy moment which now and then offers,—it may be to-day, it may be never." Regretting at this moment the loss even of a tide, entailed by the engagements of the Viceroy, whom he had to carry to Jervis, and therefore could not leave, he wrote, "I fear a westerly wind." The Providence in which he so often expresses his reliance, now as on many other occasions, did not forsake the favored son, who never by sluggishness or presumption lost his opportunities. The wind held fair until the 13th of February, when Nelson rejoined the commander-in-chief. That night it shifted to the westward, and the following day was fought the Battle of Cape St. Vincent.
The Spanish grand fleet had been spotted from the Rock four days earlier, heading west into the Atlantic. Two ships of the line and a frigate had been separated from it, carrying supplies for the Spanish forces near Gibraltar, and were anchored at the head of the bay, where they remained when Nelson arrived. Onboard were also the two British lieutenants and the sailors who became prisoners when the "Sabina" was recaptured. Their exchange was arranged, and that was the only reason Nelson was willing to wait. The fact that the Spanish fleet had moved towards Jervis's meeting point, combined with the ongoing easterly winds that would push them even further in that direction, made him uneasy about the upcoming battle he hoped to be part of, as it would "break his heart" to miss it. Additionally, it was part of his ingrained military philosophy, which was always on his mind, that a favorable wind could change or disappear. "The goal of a sea officer is to seize the fortunate moment that occasionally presents itself— it could be today, or it might never come." Regretting at this moment the loss of even a tide, due to the commitments of the Viceroy, whom he had to transport to Jervis and therefore couldn’t leave, he wrote, "I fear a westerly wind." The Providence he frequently relied on, just as he had on many other occasions, did not abandon the favored son, who never let opportunities slip away due to laziness or arrogance. The wind remained favorable until February 13th, when Nelson rejoined the commander-in-chief. That night it shifted to the west, and the following day the Battle of Cape St. Vincent was fought.
Taken in its entirety, the episode of this nearly forgotten mission to Elba is singularly characteristic, not only of Nelson's own qualities, but also of those concurrences which, whatever the origin attributed to them by this or that person, impress upon a man's career the stamp of "fortunate." An errand purely of evasion, not in itself of prime importance, but for an object essentially secondary, it results in a night combat of unusual brilliancy, which would probably not have been fought at all could the British have seen the overwhelming force ready to descend upon conqueror and conquered alike. With every spar wounded, and a hostile fleet in sight, the "Minerve" nevertheless makes good her retreat. Solitary, in an enemy's sea, she roams it with premeditated deliberateness, escaping molestation, and, except in the first instance, even detection. She carries the fortunes of a Caesar yet unknown, who is ready to stake them at any moment for adequate cause; but everything works together, not merely for his preservation, but to bring him up just in time for the exceptional action, which showed there was more to him than even his untiring energy and fearlessness had so far demonstrated. As when, in later years, burning anxiety pressed him to hasten after Villeneuve, yet failed so to discompose him as to cause the neglect of any preparation essential to due provision for the abandoned Mediterranean; so now, with every power at highest tension to rejoin the admiral, eager not to waste a moment, he mars his diligence by no precipitancy, he grudges no hour necessary to the rounded completion of the present task,—to see, and know, and do, all that can be seen and done. He might almost have used again, literally, the expression before quoted: "I have not a thought on any subject separated from the immediate object of my command."
When you look at the whole situation, this almost forgotten mission to Elba is really representative, not just of Nelson's own traits, but also of those circumstances that, no matter who attributes them, leave a mark of "good fortune" on a person's career. It was a mission mainly to avoid confrontation—not hugely important in itself—but it led to an unusually brilliant night battle that probably wouldn't have happened if the British had been aware of the large force ready to attack both the victor and the vanquished. Despite every spar being damaged and a hostile fleet in sight, the "Minerve" successfully retreats. Alone in enemy waters, she moves with calculated purpose, avoiding not just attack, but even detection, except at the start. She carries the fate of an unknown Caesar, who is prepared to risk everything at any moment for a good reason. But everything comes together, not just for his survival, but to bring him into the spotlight just in time for a standout action that showed he was more than just his relentless energy and bravery had revealed. Just like in later years, when intense anxiety pushed him to chase after Villeneuve but didn't lead him to overlook any preparations essential for the Mediterranean, now he is eager to rejoin the admiral, maximizing every second without rushing. He makes sure to take whatever time is necessary to thoroughly complete the current task—to see, understand, and do everything possible. He could have almost repeated the earlier phrase: "I have not a thought on any subject separated from the immediate object of my command."
Leaving the "Romulus" in Gibraltar, the "Minerve" sailed again on the 11th. The Spanish ships-of-the-line followed her at once. The east wind blows in wild and irregular puffs upon the anchorages immediately under the lofty Rock, where the frigate lay. Farther up, where the Spaniards were, it crosses the low neck joining the peninsula to the mainland, and is there more equable and more constant. The "Minerve" was consequently at a disadvantage until she got fairly from under its lee, and the chase through the Straits became close enough to draw the idlers of the town and garrison in crowds to the hillsides. It soon became evident that the leading ship-of-the-line was gaining upon the frigate, and the latter cleared for action. Nelson had but a poor opinion of the Spanish navy of his day, and doubtless chose, before surrendering, to take his chance of one of those risks which in war often give strange results. He said to Drinkwater that he thought an engagement probable, but added, "Before the Dons get hold of that bit of bunting I will have a struggle with them, and sooner than give up the frigate, I'll run her ashore."
Leaving the "Romulus" in Gibraltar, the "Minerve" set sail again on the 11th. The Spanish ships-of-the-line immediately followed her. The east wind blows in wild and irregular gusts at the anchorages right under the towering Rock, where the frigate was. Further up, where the Spaniards were, it crosses the low strip connecting the peninsula to the mainland, and it's more steady and consistent there. Therefore, the "Minerve" was at a disadvantage until she moved out from under its protection, and the chase through the Straits got close enough to draw in crowds of spectators from the town and garrison to the hillsides. It quickly became clear that the leading ship-of-the-line was gaining on the frigate, prompting the latter to prepare for battle. Nelson had a low opinion of the Spanish navy of his time and likely preferred to take his chances with one of the unpredictable risks that often arise in war instead of surrendering. He told Drinkwater that he thought an engagement was likely, but added, "Before the Dons get hold of that flag, I will have a fight with them, and sooner than give up the frigate, I’ll run her aground."
About this time the officers' dinner was announced. Drinkwater went below, and was just congratulating Lieutenant Hardy, who had been captured in the "Sabina," upon his exchange, when the cry "Man overboard!" was heard. The party dispersed hurriedly, in sympathy with the impulse which invariably causes a rush under such circumstances; and Drinkwater, running to the stern windows, saw a boat already lowering with Hardy in it, to recover the man, who, however, could not be found. The boat therefore, making signal to that effect, soon turned to pull to the ship. The situation was extremely embarrassing, not to say critical; on the one hand, the natural reluctance to abandon any one or anything to the enemy, on the other, the imminent risk of sacrificing the ship and all concerned by any delay,—for the leading Spaniard, by himself far superior in force, was nearly within gunshot. Temperament and habit decide, in questions where reason has little time and less certainty upon which to act; by nature and experience Nelson was inclined to take risks. It was evident the boat could not overtake the frigate unless the latter's way was lessened, and each moment that passed made this step more perilous, as the pursuer was already overhauling the "Minerve." "By God, I'll not lose Hardy!" he exclaimed; "back the mizzen-topsail." The ship's speed being thus checked, the boat came alongside, and the party scrambled on board. Singularly enough, the enemy, disconcerted by Nelson's action, stopped also, to allow his consort to come up,—a measure wholly inexcusable, and only to be accounted for by that singular moral effect produced in many men by a sudden and unexpected occurrence. The daring deed had therefore the happiest results of a stratagem, and the frigate was troubled no further.
About this time, the officers' dinner was announced. Drinkwater went below and was just congratulating Lieutenant Hardy, who had been captured on the "Sabina," on his release, when the shout of "Man overboard!" rang out. The group quickly scattered, driven by the instinct that always leads to a rush in situations like this; and Drinkwater, rushing to the stern windows, saw a boat being lowered with Hardy in it, ready to rescue the man, who, unfortunately, could not be found. The boat signaled this and soon turned back toward the ship. The situation was incredibly awkward, if not critical; on one hand, there was the natural hesitance to leave anyone behind for the enemy, and on the other, the urgent risk of endangering the ship and everyone on board due to any delay—especially since the leading Spaniard, who was greatly outnumbering them, was almost within gunshot range. Temperament and habit often dictate decisions when there’s little time or certainty to reason things out; by nature and experience, Nelson was inclined to take risks. It was clear that the boat couldn’t catch up to the frigate unless the latter slowed down, and each passing moment made this more dangerous, as the pursuer was already closing in on the "Minerve." "By God, I won’t lose Hardy!" he shouted; "back the mizzen-topsail." With the ship's speed reduced, the boat came alongside, and the party scrambled aboard. Strangely, the enemy, thrown off by Nelson’s move, also stopped to let his ship catch up—a completely unjustifiable action, which can only be explained by the unique psychological effect unexpected events can have on many people. This bold move ended up having the best possible outcome, and the frigate was no longer pursued.
Steering that night to the southward, to throw off her pursuers, the "Minerve" found herself unexpectedly in the midst of a fleet, which, from the signals made, was evidently not that of Jervis, and therefore must be hostile. The hazy atmosphere veiled the British frigate from close observation, and, by conforming her movements to those of the strangers, she escaped suspicion. Nelson was uncertain whether it was the Spanish grand fleet, or, possibly, a detached body proceeding to the West Indies. He had heard a rumor of such an expedition, and the impression was probably confirmed by these ships being met when steering southerly from the Straits; Cadiz, the known destination of the grand fleet, being north. As the British commercial interests in the Caribbean were of the first importance, and would be much endangered, he told Drinkwater, who lay awake in his cot, that, if he became convinced the ships in sight were bound there, he should give up the attempt to join the commander-in-chief, and should start at once for the Islands, to forewarn them of the approaching danger. The colonel was naturally startled at the prospect of an involuntary trip across the Atlantic, and represented the equally urgent necessity—as he thought—of Jervis and the British Cabinet getting the information, which Elliot was bringing, of the views and intentions of the Italian governments. This Nelson admitted, but replied that he thought the other consideration greater, and that—the condition arising—he must do as he had said. The incident illustrates the activity of his mind, in comprehending instantly the singular opportunity thrust unexpectedly upon him, as well as the readiness to accept responsibility and to follow his own judgment, which he showed on so many other occasions, both before and after this.
Steering south that night to shake off her pursuers, the "Minerve" found herself unexpectedly in the middle of a fleet, which, based on the signals, clearly wasn’t Jervis's and therefore had to be hostile. The hazy atmosphere concealed the British frigate from close observation, and by matching her movements to those of the strangers, she avoided suspicion. Nelson was unsure if it was the Spanish grand fleet or possibly a detached group heading to the West Indies. He had heard rumors of such an expedition, and this impression was likely reinforced by encountering these ships while heading south from the Straits, with Cadiz, the known destination of the grand fleet, to the north. Since British commercial interests in the Caribbean were extremely important and would be seriously threatened, he told Drinkwater, who was awake in his cot, that if he became convinced the ships in sight were heading there, he would abandon the attempt to join the commander-in-chief and set off immediately for the Islands to warn them of the impending danger. The colonel was understandably startled at the idea of an unexpected trip across the Atlantic and emphasized the equally urgent need—for what he believed—of Jervis and the British Cabinet to receive the information that Elliot was bringing regarding the views and intentions of the Italian governments. Nelson acknowledged this, but responded that he believed the other consideration was more important and that, given the circumstances, he had to act as he had stated. This incident highlights his quick thinking in recognizing the unique opportunity that had unexpectedly presented itself to him, as well as his readiness to take on responsibility and follow his own judgment, which he demonstrated on many other occasions, both before and after this.
Later in the night the hostile ships went about, evidencing thereby a desire to keep to windward, which pointed much more toward Cadiz than to any western destination. The "Minerve" imitated them, but altered her course so as to edge away gradually from her dangerous neighbors. Nelson, some time after, again entered the cabin, and told Drinkwater and Elliot, the latter having also waked, that he had got clear of the enemy, but that at daylight the course would be altered so as to sight them once more, if they were really going west. Should it prove to be so, they must make up their minds to visit the West Indies. Nothing, however, being seen during the 12th, the commodore, satisfied at last that he had been in the midst of the grand fleet, hastened on, and towards noon of the 13th joined the admiral. Before doing so, some of the Spaniards were again sighted. They had been seen also by the regular British lookouts, one at least of which had kept touch with them through the preceding days of hazy weather. Nelson, after an interview with Jervis, went on board the "Captain," where his broad pendant was again hoisted at 6 P.M.
Later that night, the enemy ships changed direction, showing they wanted to stay upwind, which pointed them more toward Cadiz than any western destination. The "Minerve" followed suit but adjusted her course to gradually move away from her dangerous neighbors. After a while, Nelson went back into the cabin and informed Drinkwater and Elliot, who had also woken up, that he had successfully gotten away from the enemy. He mentioned that at dawn, they would change course to check if the enemy was indeed heading west. If that turned out to be the case, they needed to prepare for a trip to the West Indies. However, since nothing was spotted on the 12th, the commodore, finally convinced that he had been in the presence of the grand fleet, moved on and joined the admiral around noon on the 13th. Before doing this, some of the Spanish ships were spotted again. They had also been seen by the regular British lookouts, at least one of whom had kept track of them during the previous days of foggy weather. After a meeting with Jervis, Nelson boarded the "Captain," where his broad pendant was hoisted again at 6 PM.
At daybreak, the position of the two fleets was twenty-five miles west of Cape St. Vincent, a headland on the Portuguese coast, a hundred and fifty miles northwest of Cadiz. During the night the wind had shifted from the eastward to west by south, and, being now fair, the Spaniards were running for their port, heading about east-southeast; but they were in disorder, and were divided into two principal fragments, of which the headmost, and therefore leewardmost, numbered six ships. It was separated from the other division of twenty-one by a space of six or eight miles. In the whole force, of twenty-seven ships, there were seven of three decks, the least of which carried one hundred and twelve guns; the remainder were principally seventy-fours, there being, however, one of eighty-four guns. Jervis's fleet consisted of fifteen ships-of-the-line,—two of one hundred guns, four of ninety-eight or ninety, eight seventy-fours, and one sixty-four. From the intelligence received the previous day of the enemy's proximity, the admiral kept the command throughout the night in two columns, in close order, a formation suited by its compactness to a hazy night, and at the same time manageable in case of encountering an enemy suddenly. The course was south by west, almost perpendicular to that of the Spaniards. The two fleets were thus running, one from the westward, and the other from the northward, to a common crossing.[42]
At daybreak, the two fleets were located twenty-five miles west of Cape St. Vincent, a headland on the Portuguese coast, and about a hundred and fifty miles northwest of Cadiz. During the night, the wind had shifted from east to west by south, which was now favorable for the Spaniards, who were making their way back to port, heading roughly east-southeast. However, they were disorganized and divided into two main groups; the front group, which was also downwind, had six ships. This group was separated from the other division of twenty-one ships by a distance of six to eight miles. In total, there were twenty-seven ships, seven of which had three decks, with the smallest carrying one hundred and twelve guns; most of the rest were seventy-fours, with one ship armed with eighty-four guns. Jervis's fleet had fifteen ships-of-the-line—two with one hundred guns, four with ninety-eight or ninety, eight seventy-fours, and one sixty-four. Based on intelligence received the previous day about the enemy's proximity, the admiral maintained command throughout the night in two columns, arranged closely together, which was suitable for a hazy night and manageable if they encountered the enemy suddenly. Their course was south by west, almost perpendicular to that of the Spaniards. Therefore, the two fleets were moving towards a common crossing, one coming from the west and the other from the north.
At daylight the enemy's fleet was partly visible to the leading ships of the British columns. As the morning advanced, and the situation developed, it was seen that the Spanish line was long and straggling, and the gap began to show. As the British were heading directly towards it, Jervis ordered a half-dozen of his ships, which were all still under moderate canvas, to press on and interpose between the enemy's divisions. An hour or so later he made the signal to form the single column, which was the usual fighting order of those days. The fleet being already properly disposed for manoeuvres, this change of order was effected, to use his own words, "with the utmost celerity." Nelson's ship was thirteenth in the new order, therefore nearly the last. Next after him came the sixty-four, the "Diadem," while Collingwood, in the "Excellent," brought up the rear. Immediately ahead of Nelson was the "Barfleur," carrying the flag of one of the junior admirals, to whom naturally fell the command in that part of the line.
At daylight, the enemy's fleet was partially visible to the leading ships of the British columns. As the morning went on and the situation developed, it became apparent that the Spanish line was long and scattered, and a gap started to appear. Since the British were heading straight towards it, Jervis ordered about six of his ships, which were still under moderate sails, to move forward and position themselves between the enemy's divisions. About an hour later, he signaled to form a single column, which was the standard fighting order of the time. The fleet was already properly arranged for maneuvers, so this change of formation was carried out, in his own words, "with the utmost speed." Nelson's ship was thirteenth in the new order, which meant it was nearly last. Next to him was the sixty-four, the "Diadem," while Collingwood, in the "Excellent," brought up the rear. Just ahead of Nelson was the "Barfleur," carrying the flag of one of the junior admirals, who naturally had command in that part of the line.
Three of the larger Spanish body succeeded in crossing ahead of the British column and joining the lee group, thus raised to nine ships. No others were able to effect this, the headmost British ships anticipating them in the gap. Jervis's plan was to pass between their two divisions with his one column, protracting this separation, then to go about in succession and attack the eighteen to windward, because their comrades to leeward could not help them in any short time. This was done. The lee ships did attempt to join those to windward by breaking through the British order, but were so roughly handled that they gave it up and continued to the south-southwest, hoping to gain a better opportunity. The weather ships, on the other hand, finding they could not pass, steered to the northward,—nearly parallel, but opposite, to the course which both the British and their own lee group were then following.
Three of the larger Spanish ships managed to cross ahead of the British column and join the leeward group, raising their total to nine ships. No others were able to do this because the leading British ships anticipated their move in the gap. Jervis's plan was to navigate between the two Spanish divisions with his single column, extending this separation, and then go about in succession to attack the eighteen ships to windward, since their mates to leeward wouldn’t be able to assist them quickly. This was executed. The leeward ships tried to join those to windward by breaking through the British formation, but they were handled so roughly that they gave up and continued to the south-southwest, hoping for a better chance. Meanwhile, the windward ships, realizing they couldn’t pass, steered to the north, nearly parallel but opposite to the direction both the British and their own leeward group were heading.
A heavy cannonade now ensued, each British ship engaging as its batteries came to bear, through the advance of the column to the south-southwest. After an hour of this, the admiral made the signal to tack in succession. This was instantly obeyed by the leader, the "Culloden," which was expecting it, and each following ship tacked also as it reached the same point. But as the Spaniards were continually receding from this point, which the British rear was approaching, it was evident that in time the latter would leave uncovered the ground that had so far separated the two hostile divisions. This the Spanish admiral expected to be his opportunity; it proved to be Nelson's.
A heavy barrage of cannon fire erupted, with each British ship firing as its guns could target the advancing column to the south-southwest. After an hour of this, the admiral signaled for the ships to change direction in order. The leader, the "Culloden," quickly followed the order, and each subsequent ship adjusted course as it reached the same point. However, since the Spanish ships were consistently moving away from this point, which the British rear was closing in on, it became clear that eventually, the British would leave the area that had previously separated the two opposing forces. The Spanish admiral believed this would be his chance; instead, it turned out to be Nelson's.
At 1 P.M.,[43] by Nelson's journal, the "Captain," standing south by west, had come abreast the rearmost of the eighteen weather ships, having passed the others. He then noticed that the leaders of that body were bearing up before the wind, to the eastward, to cross behind the British column. If this were carried out unmolested, they could join the lee ships, which heretofore had been separated from them by the centre and rear of the British line, and at this moment were not very far distant, being still engaged with the British centre; or else, so Nelson thought, they might fly before the wind, making ineffective all that had been done so far. "To prevent either of their schemes from taking effect, I ordered the ship to be wore, and passing between the Diadem and Excellent, at a quarter past one o'clock, was engaged with the headmost, and of course leewardmost of the Spanish division. The ships which I know were, the Santissima Trinidad, 126; San Josef, 112;[1] Salvador del Mundo, 112;[1] San Nicolas, 80;[44] another first-rate, and seventy-four, names not known. I was immediately joined and most nobly supported by the Culloden, Captain Troubridge. The Spanish fleet,[45] from not wishing (I suppose) to have a decisive battle, hauled to the wind [again] on the larboard tack, which brought the ships afore-mentioned to be the leewardmost and sternmost ships in their fleet."
At 1 P.M.,[43] according to Nelson's journal, the "Captain," heading south by west, had positioned itself next to the rearmost of the eighteen weather ships, having passed by the others. He then observed that the leaders of that group were adjusting their course to the east, trying to slip behind the British column. If successful, they could meet up with the lee ships, which had previously been separated from them by the center and rear of the British line, and were not very far away, still engaged with the British center; or, as Nelson thought, they might escape before the wind, nullifying all the progress made so far. "To stop either of their plans from working, I ordered the ship to turn, and at a quarter past one o'clock, passed between the Diadem and Excellent, engaging with the leading, and therefore leewardmost, ship of the Spanish division. The ships I recognized were the Santissima Trinidad, 126; San Josef, 112;[1] Salvador del Mundo, 112;[1] San Nicolas, 80;[44] another first-rate, and seventy-four, names unknown. I was soon joined and greatly supported by the Culloden, Captain Troubridge. The Spanish fleet,[45] likely wanting to avoid a decisive battle, turned back into the wind on the larboard tack, which positioned the aforementioned ships as the leewardmost and rearmost in their fleet."
By this spontaneous and sudden act, for which he had no authority, by signal or otherwise, except his own judgment and quick perceptions, Nelson entirely defeated the Spanish movement. Devoting his own ship to a most unequal contest, he gained time for the approaching British van to come up, and carry on the work they had already begun when first passing these ships—before the moment of tacking. The British column being then in a V shape,—part on one tack, part on the other, the point of the V being that of tacking,—he hastened across, by a short cut, from the rear of one arm of the V to a position on the other side, toward which the van was advancing, but which it, being more distant, could not reach as soon as he, and therefore not to as good effect. To quote Jervis's words concerning this incident, "Commodore Nelson, who was in the rear on the starboard tack, took the lead on the larboard, and contributed very much to the fortune of the day." On the intellectual side, the side of skill, this is what he did; on the side of valor, it is to be said that he did it for the moment single-handed. The "Culloden," the actual leader, came up shortly, followed afterwards by the "Blenheim;" and the "Excellent" was ordered by Jervis to imitate Nelson's movement, and strengthen the operation which he had initiated. It was the concentration of these ships at the point which Nelson seized, and for a moment held alone, that decided the day; and it was there that the fruits of victory were chiefly reaped.
By this spontaneous and sudden act, for which he had no authority, by signal or otherwise, except his own judgment and quick instincts, Nelson completely disrupted the Spanish maneuver. He committed his own ship to a highly unequal battle, buying time for the approaching British frontline to catch up and continue the work they had started earlier when they first passed these ships—right before the moment of turning. The British fleet then formed a V shape—part on one tack, part on the other, with the point of the V being the turning point—he quickly crossed over from the back of one arm of the V to a position on the other side, towards which the frontline was advancing, but which, being farther away, couldn't get there as quickly as he could, and therefore not as effectively. To quote Jervis's words regarding this incident, "Commodore Nelson, who was in the rear on the starboard tack, took the lead on the larboard, and contributed greatly to the success of the day." From a tactical perspective, this is what he accomplished; from a brave perspective, it's noted that he did it almost entirely on his own at that moment. The "Culloden," the actual leading ship, soon arrived, followed shortly by the "Blenheim;" and Jervis directed the "Excellent" to replicate Nelson's maneuver and bolster the operation he had initiated. It was the gathering of these ships at the point that Nelson captured, and briefly held alone, that determined the outcome of the day; and it was there that the main rewards of victory were gathered.
It must not be understood, of course, that all the honors of the day are to be claimed for Nelson, even conjointly with those present with him at the crucial moment. Much was done, both before and after, which contributed materially to the aggregate results, some of which were missed by the very reluctance of men of solid military qualities to desist from seeking enemies still valid, in order to enjoy what Nelson called the "parade of taking possession of beaten enemies." It seems probable that more Spanish ships might have been secured, had it not been for the eagerness of some British vessels to push on to new combats. But, while fully allowing the merits of many others, from the commander-in-chief down, it is true of St. Vincent, as of most battles, that there was a particular moment on which success or failure hinged, and that upon the action then taken depended the chief outcome,—a decisive moment, in short. That moment was when the enemy attempted, with good prospect, to effect the junction which Nelson foiled. As Collingwood afterwards summed up the matter: "The highest rewards are due to you and Culloden; you formed the plan of attack,—we were only accessories to the Dons' ruin; for had they got on the other tack, they would have been sooner joined, and the business would have been less complete."
It should not be assumed, of course, that all the honors of the day belong solely to Nelson, even alongside those who were with him at the critical moment. A lot was done, both before and after, that significantly contributed to the overall results, some of which were missed due to the reluctance of capable military men to stop looking for still-valid enemies in order to enjoy what Nelson referred to as the "parade of taking possession of beaten enemies." It's likely that more Spanish ships could have been captured if some British vessels hadn't been eager to pursue new battles. However, while recognizing the contributions of many others, from the commander-in-chief down, it's true for St. Vincent, as in most battles, that there was a specific moment on which success or failure depended, and the action taken at that time determined the main outcome—a decisive moment, in short. That moment was when the enemy attempted, with good prospects, to achieve the junction that Nelson thwarted. As Collingwood later summarized it: "The highest rewards are owed to you and Culloden; you devised the plan of attack—we were just sidelines to the Dons' downfall; had they gone on the other tack, they would have joined sooner, and the outcome would have been less complete."
When Collingwood came up with the "Excellent," the "Captain" was practically disabled for further movement, had lost heavily in men, and was without immediate support. The "Culloden" had dropped astern, crippled, as had two of the Spanish vessels; the "Blenheim," after passing the "Culloden" and the "Captain," between them and the enemy, had drawn ahead. The "Excellent," steering between the two Spanish ships that had fallen behind, fired into both of them, and Nelson thought both then struck; but Collingwood did not stop to secure them. "Captain Collingwood," says Nelson, in his account, "disdaining the parade of taking possession of beaten enemies, most gallantly pushed up, with every sail set, to save his old friend and messmate, who was to appearance in a critical state. The Excellent ranged up within ten feet of the San Nicolas, giving a most tremendous fire. The San Nicolas luffing up, the San Josef fell on board her, and the Excellent passing on for the Santissima Trinidad, the Captain resumed[46] her situation abreast of them, and close alongside. At this time the Captain having lost her fore-topmast, not a sail, shroud,[47] or rope left, her wheel shot away, and incapable of further service in the line, or in chase, I directed Captain Miller to put the helm a-starboard, and calling for the boarders, ordered them to board."[48]
When Collingwood arrived on the "Excellent," the "Captain" was pretty much disabled and couldn’t move, had suffered significant losses in crew, and had no immediate backup. The "Culloden" had fallen behind, damaged, just like two of the Spanish ships; the "Blenheim," after going past the "Culloden" and the "Captain," had moved ahead. The "Excellent," navigating between the two lagging Spanish ships, fired at both, and Nelson thought they had both struck; however, Collingwood didn’t stop to secure them. "Captain Collingwood," Nelson noted in his report, "disdaining the show of claiming defeated enemies, boldly pressed on, with all sails up, to assist his old friend and messmate, who appeared to be in a tough spot. The Excellent came within ten feet of the San Nicolas, delivering a powerful barrage. As the San Nicolas adjusted her position, the San Josef collided with her, and the Excellent continued toward the Santissima Trinidad, bringing the Captain back into position right next to them. At that moment, the Captain had lost her fore-topmast, with no sails, shrouds, or ropes left, her wheel shot away, and she was unable to continue fighting in formation or pursue; I instructed Captain Miller to steer to starboard, and calling for the boarders, ordered them to board."
The "Captain" fetched alongside of the "San Nicolas," her bow touching the lee (starboard) quarter of the Spanish vessel, her spritsail yard hooking in the other's mizzen shrouds. Commander Berry, a very young man, who had lately been first lieutenant of the "Captain," leaped actively into the mizzen chains, the first on board the enemy; he was quickly supported by others, who passed over by the spritsail yard. The captain of the ship was in the act of following, at the head of his men, when Nelson stopped him. "No, Miller," he said, "I must have that honour;" and he directed him to remain. One of the soldiers of the Sixty-ninth Regiment, who were serving on board as marines, broke open the upper quarter-gallery window of the "San Nicolas," and through this Nelson entered, with a crowd of followers, to find himself in the cabin of the enemy's ship. The doors being fastened, they were held there a few moments, while Spanish officers from the quarter-deck discharged their pistols at them; but the doors were soon broken down, and the party, after firing a volley, sallied on the spar deck, which the enemy yielded to them,—a Spanish commodore falling by the wheel as he retreated. Berry had by this time reached the poop, where he hauled down the colors, while Nelson passed to the forward part of the ship, meeting on his way several Spanish officers, who, being by this time in the hands of British seamen, gave up to him their swords. The Spanish guns on the lower decks still continued firing for some moments, apparently at the "Prince George," which had passed to leeward of the "Captain," and now kept her batteries playing upon the hull of the "San Nicolas" forward of the part where the "Captain" touched her.
The "Captain" pulled up alongside the "San Nicolas," her bow making contact with the starboard quarter of the Spanish vessel, her spritsail yard getting caught in the other's mizzen shrouds. Commander Berry, a young man who had recently served as the first lieutenant on the "Captain," quickly jumped into the mizzen chains, being the first to board the enemy ship; he was soon joined by others who crossed over using the spritsail yard. The captain of the ship was in the middle of following, leading his men, when Nelson stopped him. "No, Miller," he said, "I must have that honor;" and he instructed him to stay back. A soldier from the Sixty-ninth Regiment, serving as a marine, broke open the upper quarter-gallery window of the "San Nicolas," and through this Nelson entered, followed by a crowd, finding himself in the enemy's cabin. With the doors locked, they were trapped there for a few moments while Spanish officers on the quarter-deck fired their pistols at them; but the doors were soon broken down, and after firing a volley, they rushed out onto the spar deck, which the enemy surrendered—one Spanish commodore falling by the wheel as he retreated. By this time, Berry had made it to the poop, where he lowered the colors, while Nelson moved to the front of the ship, encountering several Spanish officers along the way, who, now in the custody of British sailors, surrendered their swords to him. The Spanish guns on the lower decks continued firing for a little while longer, seemingly aimed at the "Prince George," which had passed to leeward of the "Captain" and was now targeting the hull of the "San Nicolas" forward of where the "Captain" made contact.
At this moment a small-arm fire was opened from the stern galleries of the "San Josef" upon the British party in the "San Nicolas." Nelson caused the soldiers to reply to it, and ordered reinforcements sent to him from the "Captain." Parties were stationed at the hatchways of the "San Nicolas" to control the enemy and keep them below decks, and then the boarders charged again for the Spanish three-decker. Nelson was helped by Berry into her main chains; but he had got no farther before a Spanish officer put his head over the rail and said they surrendered. "From this most welcome information," continues Nelson, in his narrative, "it was not long before I was on the quarter-deck, when the Spanish captain, with a bow, presented me his sword, and said the admiral was dying of his wounds below. I asked him, on his honour, if the ship were surrendered? he declared she was; on which I gave him my hand, and desired him to call to his officers and ship's company, and tell them of it—which he did; and on the quarter-deck of a Spanish First-rate, extravagant as the story may seem, did I receive the swords of vanquished Spaniards; which, as I received, I gave to William Fearney, one of my bargemen, who put them with the greatest sangfroid under his arm. I was surrounded by Captain Berry, Lieutenant Pierson, 69th Regiment, John Sykes, John Thomson, Francis Cook, all old Agamemnons, and several other brave men, seamen and soldiers: thus fell these ships." The firing from the lower deck of the "San Nicolas" was by this time stopped, and the "Prince George" was hailed that both the enemy's vessels were in possession of the British. The "Victory," Jervis's flagship, passed a few moments later and cheered, as did every ship in the fleet.
At that moment, gunfire was opened from the back of the "San Josef" at the British party on the "San Nicolas." Nelson ordered the soldiers to respond and requested reinforcements from the "Captain." Teams were stationed at the hatchways of the "San Nicolas" to keep the enemy at bay and below decks, and then the boarders charged again at the Spanish three-decker. Nelson was helped by Berry to get onto her main chains; but before he could go further, a Spanish officer leaned over the rail and announced their surrender. "From this most welcome information," Nelson writes in his account, "it wasn't long before I was on the quarter-deck, when the Spanish captain, with a bow, presented me his sword and said the admiral was dying from his wounds below. I asked him, on his honor, if the ship was surrendered? He confirmed that it was; so I shook his hand and asked him to call his officers and crew and inform them— which he did; and on the quarter-deck of a Spanish First-rate, as unbelievable as it may sound, I received the swords of the defeated Spaniards; which, as I received them, I handed to William Fearney, one of my bargemen, who casually tucked them under his arm. I was surrounded by Captain Berry, Lieutenant Pierson of the 69th Regiment, John Sykes, John Thomson, Francis Cook, all veteran Agamemnons, and several other brave men, both seamen and soldiers: thus fell these ships." The firing from the lower deck of the "San Nicolas" had by then ceased, and the "Prince George" was hailed, confirming that both enemy vessels were now under British control. Shortly after, the "Victory," Jervis's flagship, passed by and cheered, along with every ship in the fleet.
The dramatic and picturesque surroundings which colored the seizure of these two Spanish ships have doubtless given an exaggerated idea of the danger and difficulty attending the exploit. The impression made upon a sympathetic and enthusiastic eye-witness, Sir Gilbert Elliot, who saw the affair from the decks of the frigate "Lively," has been transmitted to posterity with little diminution. "Nothing in the world was ever more noble than the transaction of the Captain from beginning to end, and the glorious group of your ship and her two prizes, fast in your gripe, was never surpassed, and I dare say never will." Yet it may better be looked upon as another of those "fortunate" occurrences which attend—and in Nelson's career repeatedly attended—the happy meeting of opportunity and readiness. Doubtless they were beaten ships, but other beaten ships have escaped in general actions—did at St. Vincent. "I pretend not to say," wrote Nelson a week later, "that these ships might not have fell, had I not boarded them; but truly it was far from impossible but they might have forged into the Spanish fleet as the other two ships did." He was there, he could do nothing else, he saw with his rapid glance that he might do this, and he did it. And, after all, it was a big thing,—this boarding a first-rate ship over the decks of another hostile ship, not inaptly characterized in the fleet as "Nelson's patent bridge." We must mark, too, or we shall miss significant indications of character, that the same qualities which led him to the quarter-deck of the "San Josef" had led him but an hour before from the rear of the fleet to the van to save the fight,—the same quickness to see opportunity, the same promptness to seize it, the same audacity to control it. The brilliant crowning of the day may be but an ornament, but it sits well and fitly upon the knightly deed that rolled back the tide of battle in the hour of need.
The dramatic and picturesque setting that surrounded the capture of these two Spanish ships likely created an exaggerated sense of the danger and difficulty involved in the operation. The impression left by a sympathetic and enthusiastic eyewitness, Sir Gilbert Elliot, who observed the event from the decks of the frigate "Lively," has been passed down through history largely unchanged. "Nothing in the world was ever more noble than the actions of the Captain from start to finish, and the glorious sight of your ship and her two prizes securely in your grasp was unmatched, and I dare say it never will be." However, it may be better understood as just another one of those "fortunate" incidents that occur—and frequently occurred in Nelson's career—when opportunity meets preparation. They were certainly defeated ships, but other defeated ships have generally escaped in similar situations—like at St. Vincent. "I don’t claim," Nelson wrote a week later, "that these ships might not have escaped had I not boarded them; but it was certainly not impossible for them to join the Spanish fleet like the other two ships did." He was there, he had no other choice, he saw quickly that he could do this, and he went for it. And, after all, it was a significant act—boarding a first-rate ship from the decks of another enemy ship, aptly described in the fleet as "Nelson's patent bridge." We should also note, or we will miss important signs of character, that the same qualities that led him to the quarter-deck of the "San Josef" had also prompted him just an hour earlier to move from the back of the fleet to the front to save the battle—the same quickness to identify an opportunity, the same readiness to grasp it, and the same boldness to control it. The brilliant culmination of the day may merely be an embellishment, but it fits well and appropriately with the knightly deed that turned the tide of battle in the moment of need.
Those Spanish ships of the weather division which were first encountered by Nelson, after he wore out of the line, bore the brunt of the fighting. As the whole division continued to stand on close to the wind, these ships, becoming crippled, dropped astern of their consorts, and so first received the broadsides of the British van as that arrived. Being also the leaders in the movement frustrated by Nelson, they became the most leewardly; and, as the British van on coming up passed to leeward, this contributed farther to concentrate fire upon the same vessels. Among them was the "Santisima Trinidad," of four decks and one hundred and thirty guns, then the largest ship of war in the world. When Collingwood passed ahead of Nelson, he engaged her, but not as near as he wished, and could have done, had not the "Excellent's" rigging been so cut as to prevent her hauling close to the wind. She was also brought to action by Sir James Saumarez, in the "Orion," and towards the close of her contest with the latter ship showed a British Union Jack,—a token of submission possibly unauthorized, as it was almost immediately hauled in again. Besides those boarded by Nelson, two other enemy's ships had already struck.
Those Spanish ships in the weather division that Nelson first encountered after he moved out of the line took the brunt of the fighting. As the whole division kept sailing close to the wind, these ships became damaged and fell behind their companions, receiving the British van's broadsides first as it arrived. Being the leaders in the movement that Nelson disrupted, they ended up further to leeward; and when the British van passed by, it focused more fire on those same vessels. Among them was the "Santisima Trinidad," with four decks and one hundred and thirty guns, the largest warship in the world at that time. When Collingwood sailed ahead of Nelson, he engaged her, but not as closely as he wanted to, partly because the "Excellent" had been so damaged that she couldn't sail close to the wind. She was also engaged by Sir James Saumarez in the "Orion," and near the end of her fight with that ship, she displayed a British Union Jack—a sign of surrender that may not have been authorized, as it was taken down almost immediately. In addition to those boarded by Nelson, two other enemy ships had already surrendered.
It was now after four o'clock, and the other Spanish division, of eight ships, was heading for the scene and near at hand. Although effectually blocked in their first attempt to pierce the British line, these had not received such injury as to detract seriously from their efficiency. Continuing to stand south-southwest, after the British began tacking, they at last gained ground sufficiently to come up to windward, the side on which their other division was. In view of the now inevitable junction of a great number of comparatively fresh ships, and of the casualties in his own vessels, Jervis decided to discontinue the action. He ordered his fleet to form on the starboard tack, covering the four prizes and the "Captain;" and with this done the firing soon ceased. The Spanish divisions united, and carried off their other disabled ships.
It was now after four o'clock, and the other Spanish division of eight ships was heading for the scene and was close by. Although they had been effectively blocked in their first attempt to break through the British line, they hadn’t been damaged enough to significantly reduce their efficiency. Continuing to head south-southwest after the British began changing direction, they finally gained enough ground to come up to windward, where their other division was positioned. Considering the now unavoidable merger of a large number of relatively fresh ships and the losses in his own vessels, Jervis decided to end the engagement. He ordered his fleet to align on the starboard tack, protecting the four prizes and the "Captain;" and once this was done, the firing soon stopped. The Spanish divisions came together and took away their other damaged ships.
Nelson's account of the proceedings of the "Captain" on the 14th of February, having been published not long afterwards, apparently by his authority, was challenged as incorrect by Vice-Admiral William Parker, commanding the van, whose flag was on board the third British ship, the "Prince George." Parker claimed that the latter, with the "Blenheim" and "Orion," had been much closer to the "Captain" and "Culloden" than was implied in Nelson's narrative by the words, "For near an hour, I believe, (but do not pretend to be correct as to time,) did the Culloden and Captain support this apparently, but not really, unequal contest; when the Blenheim, passing between us and the enemy, gave us a respite." Parker labored under the misfortune of a singularly involved and obscure style, while in two separate papers he contradicted himself more than once on points of detail; but the tone of his letter to Nelson was temperate and dignified, and he asserted that, "so different to your statement, very soon after you commenced your fire, you had four ships pressing on [Culloden, Blenheim, Prince George, and Orion], almost on board of each other, close in your rear; but"—and the admission following must be noted as well as the charge—"ships thus pressing upon each other, and the two latter not far enough ahead to fire with proper effect,[49] besides having none of the enemy's ships left in the rear for our succeeding ships, at forty-three[50] minutes past one I made the signal to fill and stand on." Parker had also stated, in his log of the action, that the brunt fell upon the "Captain," the "Culloden," and the "Blenheim," but more particularly the two former, "from their being more in the van."
Nelson's account of the events involving the "Captain" on February 14, published shortly after, seemingly with his permission, was disputed by Vice-Admiral William Parker, who led the front line and whose flagship was on the third British ship, the "Prince George." Parker argued that his ship, along with the "Blenheim" and "Orion," were much closer to the "Captain" and "Culloden" than Nelson suggested in his description stating, "For nearly an hour, I believe, (though I don’t claim to be exact on the timing,) the Culloden and Captain seemingly, but not actually, supported this unequal contest; when the Blenheim, passing between us and the enemy, gave us a break." Parker struggled with a particularly convoluted and unclear writing style, and in two different documents, he contradicted himself multiple times on details; however, the tone of his letter to Nelson was calm and respectful, asserting that, "contrary to your statement, shortly after you started firing, you had four ships right behind you [Culloden, Blenheim, Prince George, and Orion], nearly on top of each other; but"—the acknowledgment that followed is as important as the accusation—"ships that close together and the two latter not far enough ahead to fire effectively,[49] along with none of the enemy's ships left behind for our trailing ships, at forty-three[50] minutes past one, I signaled to fill the sails and continue on." Parker also noted in his log about the engagement that the main fighting fell on the "Captain," the "Culloden," and the "Blenheim," particularly the first two, "because they were more at the front."
It appears to the writer probable that Nelson over-estimated the period that he and Troubridge remained unsupported; time would seem long to the bravest man, when opposed to such heavy odds. Parker seems to have reckoned it to be about fifteen minutes, and he admits that it was impossible for him to open fire with proper effect for some time, although close on the heels of the "Captain" and the "Culloden," because he could not get abreast of the enemy. All the ships—Spanish and British—were moving ahead, probably at not very different rates of speed. The "Prince George" certainly became in the end actively and closely engaged, much of the time with the "San Josef," a ship of force superior to her own.
The writer believes that Nelson likely overestimated how long he and Troubridge went without support; time can feel lengthy to even the bravest person when facing such overwhelming odds. Parker seems to have estimated it to be around fifteen minutes, and he acknowledges that it was impossible for him to fire effectively for some time, even though he was closely following the "Captain" and the "Culloden," because he couldn't get alongside the enemy. All the ships—both Spanish and British—were moving forward, probably at similar speeds. The "Prince George" ultimately became actively and closely engaged, often with the "San Josef," a ship that was stronger than she was.
Nelson's account is a simple, if somewhat exultant, narrative of the facts as they passed under his observation; and, except in the statement to which Parker objected, they do not even inferentially carry an imputation upon any one else. There was a reflection, though scarcely intended, upon the van ships, which should have been, and Parker says were, close behind the "Culloden;" but the attack was upon the extreme rear of the enemy, and Nelson probably forgot that readers might not understand, as he did, that the ships behind him must need some time to get up, and that his own position, abreast the enemy's rear, was in itself an obstacle to their reaching a place whence their batteries could bear, with the limited train of broadside guns in those days.
Nelson's account is a straightforward, though somewhat triumphant, narrative of the events he witnessed. Aside from the statement that Parker challenged, it doesn't imply any wrongdoing on the part of anyone else. There was an unintentional implication regarding the van ships, which should have been, and Parker claims were, just behind the "Culloden." However, the attack was aimed at the very back of the enemy's fleet, and Nelson probably overlooked that readers might not realize, as he did, that the ships following him would need time to catch up, and that his own position, alongside the enemy's rear, was itself a barrier to their ability to get into a spot where their guns could engage, given the limited firepower of broadside guns in that era.
Another and interesting illustration of the injustice a man may thus unintentionally do, through inadvertence, is afforded by Nelson's accounts of St. Vincent. There were two drawn up on board the "Captain,"—one by himself in his own hand; the second simply signed by him, Miller, and Berry. It is quite evident that the latter is based upon the former, much of the phraseology being identical; but the whole is toned down in many points. The instance of unintentional injustice is this. In his autograph account, Nelson, thinking only of himself,[51] speaks of his going with the boarders, and makes no mention of the captain of the ship, Miller, whose proper business it would be rather than his. In the revision, Miller would naturally feel that his failure to board should be accounted for, and it contains accordingly the statement, "Captain Miller was in the very act of going also, but I directed him to remain." Berry's hand also appears; for whereas Nelson's own account of boarding the "San Josef" simply says, "I got into her main-chains," the published copy reads, "Captain Berry assisting me into the main-chains."
Another interesting example of the unintentional injustice a person can cause through carelessness is found in Nelson's accounts of St. Vincent. He prepared two accounts on board the "Captain"—one written by himself and the other simply signed by him, Miller, and Berry. It’s clear that the second account is based on the first, with much of the wording being the same, but it’s toned down in several ways. The instance of unintentional injustice is this: in his handwritten account, Nelson, only thinking of himself, mentions going with the boarders and doesn’t mention the ship's captain, Miller, who should have been the one involved. In the revised version, Miller would understandably want his absence to be explained, so it includes the statement, "Captain Miller was in the very act of going also, but I directed him to remain." Berry’s input is also noted; while Nelson's own account of boarding the "San Josef" simply states, "I got into her main-chains," the published version reads, "Captain Berry assisting me into the main-chains."
So too with reference to Parker's controversy. In the first draft there occurs the unqualified statement: "For an hour the Culloden and Captain supported this apparently unequal contest." The revision reads: "For near an hour, I believe, (but do not pretend to be correct as to time,)[52] did Culloden and Captain," etc. Parker quotes from the revision, which was therefore the one published, but does not quote the words italicized. Probably, if the "Blenheim" and the "St. George" had had a hand in this revision, there would have been more modification; but Nelson did not realize where he was hurting them, any more than he did in Miller's case.
So it is with Parker's controversy. In the first draft, there’s the outright statement: "For an hour the Culloden and Captain supported this seemingly unfair battle." The revised version says: "For about an hour, I believe, (but I’m not claiming to be accurate with the timing,)[52] did Culloden and Captain," etc. Parker refers to the revision, which was the version that got published, but he leaves out the italicized words. If the "Blenheim" and the "St. George" had been involved in this revision, there likely would have been more changes; however, Nelson didn’t realize where he was causing them pain, just as he didn’t with Miller’s situation.
The love of glory, the ardent desire for honorable distinction by honorable deeds, is among the most potent and elevating of military motives, which in no breast has burned with a purer flame than in that of Nelson; but it is better that officers leave the public telling of their own exploits to others, and it is evident that Nelson, when taken to task, realized uncomfortably that he had not exercised due thoughtfulness. Parker refrained from addressing him till he had received the printed account. This was not till July, and his remonstrance reached Nelson shortly after the loss of his arm at Teneriffe, when on his way home for what proved to be a tedious and painful recovery. He was then suffering, not only from pain and weakness, but also from discouragement about his professional future, which he thought threatened by disability, and for these conditions allowance must be made; but for all this his reply did not compare favorably with Parker's letter, which had been explicit in its complaint as well as moderate in expression. He wrote curtly: "I must acknowledge the receipt of your letter of the 25th of July; and, after declaring that I know nothing of the Prince George till she was hailed from the forecastle of the San Nicolas,[53] it is impossible I can enter into the subject of your letter."
The desire for glory and the strong wish for honorable recognition through commendable actions is one of the strongest and most inspiring motives in the military, and no one has felt this more intensely than Nelson. However, it's better for officers to let others share their achievements, and it’s clear that Nelson, when challenged, felt uncomfortable realizing he had not been thoughtful enough. Parker waited to speak to him until he received the printed account. This didn’t happen until July, and his concerns reached Nelson shortly after he lost his arm at Teneriffe, while he was on his way home for what turned out to be a long and painful recovery. At that time, he was dealing not only with pain and weakness but also with discouragement about his professional future, which he feared was threatened by his injury. These factors need to be considered; however, his response didn’t measure up to Parker’s letter, which was clear in its complaint and moderate in tone. He replied curtly: "I must acknowledge the receipt of your letter of the 25th of July; and, after stating that I know nothing of the Prince George until she was called from the forecastle of the San Nicolas,[53] it is impossible I can engage in the subject of your letter."
This course was the more ungenerous, because no explanation, or even admission of involuntary wrong done, could have detracted in the least from the abounding credit due and accorded to Nelson for his conduct at St. Vincent, which indeed did not depend upon the length of time he remained unsupported, but upon the rapidity and fearlessness with which he had acted aright at a very critical juncture. This had been done so openly, under the eyes of all men, that it could by no means be hid. Collingwood had borne witness to it, in words which have been quoted. Drinkwater and Elliot had watched the whole from the deck of their frigate. The latter had written to him: "To have had any share in yesterday's glory is honour enough for one man's life, but to have been foremost on such a day could fall to your share alone." The commander-in-chief had come out to greet him upon the quarter-deck of the flagship,—a compliment naval officers can appreciate,—had there embraced him, saying he could not sufficiently thank him, and "used every kind expression which could not fail to make me happy." Jervis had also insisted upon his keeping the sword of the Spanish rear-admiral who fell on board the "San Josef."
This course was more selfish, because no explanation or even acknowledgment of any unintentional wrong done could have taken away from the immense credit given to Nelson for his actions at St. Vincent. His reputation wasn't based on how long he stayed unsupported, but on the speed and bravery with which he acted correctly during a critical moment. What he did was so public, right in front of everyone, that it couldn't be hidden. Collingwood attested to this in his famous words. Drinkwater and Elliot witnessed the entire event from their frigate. Elliot even wrote to him: "To have played any part in yesterday's glory is honor enough for one man's life, but to have been at the forefront on such a day is something only you could achieve." The commander-in-chief came out to welcome him on the flagship's quarter-deck—a compliment that naval officers value—embraced him, expressing that he couldn't thank him enough, and "said everything that could possibly make me happy." Jervis also insisted that he keep the sword of the Spanish rear-admiral who fell aboard the "San Josef."
Before dropping this subject, which has the unpleasantness that attends all contentions between individuals about their personal deserts, it is right to say that Nelson had held from the first that Collingwood, Troubridge, and himself were the only ones "who made great exertions on that glorious day: the others did their duty, and some not exactly to my satisfaction." "Sir John Jervis," he continued, "is not quite contented, but says nothing publicly." He then quotes an anecdote which, if he had it from Jervis, confirms his own opinion about the support given. "Calder [the Chief of Staff] said, 'Sir, the Captain and Culloden are separated from the fleet, and unsupported: shall we recall them?' 'I will not have them recalled. I put my faith in those ships: it is a disgrace that they are not supported and [are] separated.'"
Before moving on from this topic, which can be uncomfortable given the debates between people about their personal contributions, it's important to mention that Nelson believed from the start that Collingwood, Troubridge, and himself were the only ones "who really put in great effort on that glorious day: the others did their duty, though not always to my satisfaction." "Sir John Jervis," he added, "is not entirely happy, but he keeps quiet about it." He then shares a story that, if it came from Jervis, backs up his own views on the support provided. "Calder [the Chief of Staff] said, 'Sir, the Captain and Culloden are cut off from the fleet and without support: should we call them back?' 'I won't have them recalled. I trust those ships: it’s shameful that they’re not being supported and are separated.'"
In his public letter Jervis refrained alike from praise and from blame. He mentions but one name, that of Calder, as bearer of despatches, and only incidentally says that he has been useful to him at all times. In a private letter to the First Lord he was more explicit, yet scarcely adequately so. Whatever momentary expression of impatience escaped him, when anxious about the "Culloden" and "Captain," he knew that his own flagship could not get to them in time for efficient support, and he gives as the reason for reticence in his public letter that all had behaved well, and that he was "confident that had those who were least in action been in the situation of the fortunate few, their conduct would not have been less meritorious." He then mentions by name Troubridge,—who led the fleet,—Nelson, and Collingwood, and five ships (without the names of the captains), "Blenheim," "Prince George," "Orion," "Irresistible," and "Colossus," which "gallantly supported" Troubridge, though just where or when is not specified. "The ships' returns of killed and wounded," he says explicitly, "although not always the criterion of their being more or less in action, is, in this instance, correctly so." This would include the "Blenheim," whose casualties were in excess of any except the "Captain," and Parker's ship, the "Prince George," which lost not many less than Collingwood. The "Captain's" loss in killed, twenty-four, was double that of any other ship, and in killed and wounded nearly one-third that of the whole fleet.
In his public letter, Jervis avoided both praise and blame. He mentions only one name, Calder, as the messenger, and only briefly notes that Calder has always been helpful to him. In a private letter to the First Lord, he was more specific, though still not very detailed. Despite any momentary frustration he expressed while worrying about the "Culloden" and "Captain," he recognized that his flagship couldn't reach them in time for effective support. He explains in his public letter that everyone performed well, and he feels "confident that had those who were least involved been in the position of the fortunate few, their actions would have been just as commendable." He then names Troubridge, who led the fleet, along with Nelson and Collingwood, and mentions five ships— "Blenheim," "Prince George," "Orion," "Irresistible," and "Colossus"— that "gallantly supported" Troubridge, though he doesn’t specify when or where this support occurred. He states clearly, "The ships' returns of killed and wounded," even if not always a measure of their level of engagement, are accurate in this case. This includes the "Blenheim," which had more casualties than all but the "Captain," and Parker's ship, the "Prince George," which had nearly as many as Collingwood. The "Captain" suffered twenty-four killed, double that of any other ship, and nearly one-third of the total casualties for the entire fleet.
An interesting anecdote of Jervis shows the importance conceded by him to Nelson's action. It rests on good authority, and is eminently characteristic of one who valued beyond most traits in an officer the power to assume responsibility. "The test of a man's courage," he used to say, "is responsibility." In the evening, while talking over the events of the day, Calder spoke of Nelson's wearing out of the line as an unauthorized departure from the method of attack prescribed by the admiral. "It certainly was so," replied Jervis, "and if ever you commit such a breach of your orders, I will forgive you also." Success covers many faults, yet it is difficult to believe that had Nelson been overwhelmed, the soundness of his judgment and his resolution would not equally have had the applause of a man, who had just fought twenty-seven ships with fifteen, because "a victory was essential to England at that moment." The justification of departure from orders lies not in success, but in the conditions of the case; and Jervis was not one to overlook these, nor hereafter to forget that only one man in his fleet had both seen the thing to do and dared the responsibility of doing it.
An interesting story about Jervis highlights how much he valued Nelson's actions. It's well-sourced and reflects the qualities Jervis admired most in an officer: the ability to take responsibility. "The true test of a man's courage," he would say, "is responsibility." One evening, while discussing the day's events, Calder mentioned that Nelson's decision to break from the formation was an unauthorized shift from the attack plan set by the admiral. "That’s true," Jervis replied, "and if you ever make such a breach of your orders, I’ll forgive you too." Success can hide many mistakes, but it's hard to believe that if Nelson had lost, his judgment and determination wouldn't have received praise from a man who had just faced twenty-seven ships with fifteen, because "a victory was crucial for England at that moment." The reason for deviating from orders isn't just about success, but the situation at hand; and Jervis was not someone to ignore these factors, nor would he forget that only one man in his fleet both recognized what needed to be done and had the courage to act on it.
A victory so signal entailed, as a matter of course, a number of those rewards and titles with which Great Britain judiciously fostered the spirit of emulation in her Navy. These were to a considerable extent affairs of routine and precedent, and Nelson, knowing that junior flag-officers had on several previous occasions been made baronets, wished to avoid this hereditary dignity because inconsistent with his means. His love of distinction also prompted him to desire one of those Orders which carry with them the outward token of merit. Meeting Drinkwater the day after the battle, he expressed his reluctance to the baronetage, and upon the other's asking him whether he would prefer to be a Knight of the Bath, he replied, "Yes; if my services have been of any value, let them be noticed in a way that the public may know them." To Elliot, who was about to return at once to England, he wrote, asking him to make known his wishes to the Admiralty. "If you can be instrumental in keeping back what I expect will happen, it will be an additional obligation. I conceive to take hereditary honours without a fortune to support the dignity, is to lower that honour it would be my pride to support in proper splendour. There are other honours which die with the possessor, and I should be proud to accept, if my efforts are thought worthy of the favour of my King."
A significant victory naturally came with a number of rewards and titles that Great Britain wisely used to encourage competition in her Navy. These were largely routine and based on precedent, and Nelson, aware that junior flag officers had been made baronets on several occasions before, wanted to avoid this hereditary title since it didn’t match his circumstances. His desire for distinction also led him to want one of those Orders that come with a visible sign of merit. The day after the battle, when he met Drinkwater, he shared his reluctance about becoming a baronet, and when Drinkwater asked if he would prefer to be a Knight of the Bath, he replied, "Yes; if my services have been valuable, I want them recognized in a way that the public will know." He wrote to Elliot, who was about to head back to England, asking him to communicate his wishes to the Admiralty. "If you can help hold back what I expect will happen, I would be even more grateful. I believe that taking hereditary honors without the wealth to support that dignity diminishes the very honor I would want to uphold with pride. There are other honors that expire with the person, and I would be honored to accept those, if my efforts are deemed worthy of my King’s favor."
Elliot started for England a few days afterwards, and reached London at a time when the whole country was ringing with the news of the victory. Arriving at such a propitious moment, there could have been for Nelson no better advocate than this man, placed high in political councils, and having to give to the Ministry a long account of his career in the Mediterranean, throughout the whole of which the two had been in intimate contact and constant correspondence. Himself an eye-witness, and filled with enthusiasm for Nelson's latest exploit, Elliot knew better than any one that it was no sporadic outburst, but only a signal manifestation of the intuitive sagacity, the flashing promptness, and the sustained energy, whose steady fires he had known to burn, without slackening of force or change of motive, through two years of close personal association in public action to a common end. The government thus learned more of him than can easily transpire under ordinary service conditions, or be shown even by an incident like that at St. Vincent; and Elliot's admiration, free from all bias of professional partiality or professional jealousy, doubtless was more useful to Nelson than any narrative of his own could have been. Even the royal favor was conciliated, despite the obstinate temper which yielded prejudices with difficulty. "I must rejoice," wrote Nelson to the Duke of Clarence, who had mentioned to him the King's approval, "in having gained the good opinion of my Sovereign, which I once was given to understand I had no likelihood of enjoying."[54] It was to the honor of the monarch that he was thus as pliant to admit merit in an officer as yet only rising to distinction, as he was firm at a later day to stamp with the marks of his displeasure the flagrant moral aberration of the then world-renowned admiral.
Elliot left for England a few days later and arrived in London just as the whole country was buzzing with news of the victory. Arriving at such a perfect time, there could be no better supporter for Nelson than Elliot, who was highly placed in political circles and had to provide the Ministry with a detailed account of his time in the Mediterranean, during which the two had been in close contact and constant communication. As an eyewitness, filled with enthusiasm for Nelson's latest achievement, Elliot understood better than anyone that it wasn't just a random event, but a clear display of the intuitive insight, quick decision-making, and sustained energy that he had seen consistently for two years during their close collaboration toward a shared goal. The government thus learned more about him than would typically be possible under ordinary service conditions, or even through an incident like what happened at St. Vincent; and Elliot’s admiration, free from any bias of professional favoritism or jealousy, was undoubtedly more beneficial to Nelson than any personal narrative could have been. Even the royal favor was gained, despite the stubborn disposition that took time to change its prejudices. "I must rejoice," Nelson wrote to the Duke of Clarence, who had told him about the King’s approval, "in having gained the good opinion of my Sovereign, which I once was led to believe I had no chance of having."[54] It reflects well on the king that he was willing to acknowledge the merit of an officer still rising to fame, just as he was later firm in showing his disapproval toward the glaring moral failings of the then-famous admiral.
The coveted Knighthood of the Bath was accorded on the 17th of March, "in order," wrote the First Lord, "to mark the Royal approbation of your successful and gallant exertions on several occasions during the course of the present war in the Mediterranean, and more particularly of your very distinguished conduct in the glorious and brilliant victory obtained over the fleet of Spain by His Majesty's fleet, on the 14th of February last." Nelson's delight was great and characteristic. Material rewards were not in his eyes the most real or the richest. "Chains and Medals," he wrote to his brother, "are what no fortune or connexion in England can obtain; and I shall feel prouder of those than all the titles in the King's power to bestow." To his wife he said: "Though we can afford no more than a cottage—yet, with a contented mind, my chains, medals, and ribbons are all sufficient." To receive honor was second to no possession, except that of knowing he had deserved it.
The highly sought-after Knighthood of the Bath was granted on March 17th, “to,” wrote the First Lord, “mark the Royal approval of your successful and brave efforts on several occasions during the current war in the Mediterranean, and especially your outstanding conduct in the glorious and brilliant victory achieved over the Spanish fleet by His Majesty's fleet on February 14th.” Nelson was immensely pleased, and this was typical of him. Material rewards weren't the most significant or valuable in his eyes. “Chains and Medals,” he wrote to his brother, “are what no amount of wealth or connections in England can get; and I will feel prouder of those than all the titles the King could give.” He told his wife: “Even though we can afford no more than a cottage—yet, with a contented mind, my chains, medals, and ribbons are all I need.” Receiving honor was more important than any possession, except knowing he had earned it.
On the evening of the Battle of St. Vincent, soon after the firing ceased, Nelson shifted his commodore's pendant to the "Irresistible," of seventy-four guns, the "Captain" being unmanageable from the damage done to her spars and rigging. Her hull also had been so battered, that he wrote a few days later she would never be able to receive him again, which proved to be true; for although, after she had been patched up, he returned to her temporarily, a newly fitted ship, the "Theseus," seventy-four, was assigned to his flag, as soon as a reinforcement arrived from England.
On the evening of the Battle of St. Vincent, shortly after the fighting stopped, Nelson transferred his commodore's pendant to the "Irresistible," a ship with seventy-four guns, since the "Captain" was unmanageable due to the damage to her spars and rigging. Her hull had also been so badly damaged that he wrote a few days later that she would never be able to take him back, which turned out to be true; because even though he returned to her temporarily after she was patched up, a newly fitted ship, the "Theseus," also with seventy-four guns, was assigned to his flag as soon as reinforcements arrived from England.
After a vain effort to reach the Tagus against contrary winds, with disabled ships, Jervis decided to take his fleet into Lagos Bay, an open roadstead on the southern coast of Portugal, and there to refit sufficiently to make the passage to Lisbon. While lying at Lagos Nelson became a Rear-Admiral of the Blue, by a flag-promotion dated on the 20th of February, although his flag was not hoisted until the first of April, when the official notification of his advancement was received by him. He was then thirty-eight and a half years of age. In this rank he remained until after the Battle of the Nile was fought, but it mattered comparatively little where he stood on the list of flag-officers, while Jervis commanded; that he was an admiral at all made it possible to commit to him undertakings for which he was pre-eminently qualified, but which could scarcely have been intrusted to a simple captain by any stretching of service methods, always—and not improperly—conservative.
After a futile attempt to reach the Tagus against strong winds, with damaged ships, Jervis decided to bring his fleet into Lagos Bay, an open anchorage on the southern coast of Portugal, to make the necessary repairs for the journey to Lisbon. While at Lagos, Nelson was promoted to Rear-Admiral of the Blue, with an official promotion dated February 20th, although his flag wasn't raised until April 1st when he received the official notification of his advancement. He was then thirty-eight and a half years old. He held this rank until after the Battle of the Nile, but it mattered relatively little where he stood on the list of flag-officers while Jervis was in command; being an admiral allowed him to take on important tasks that he was exceptionally qualified for, which probably wouldn’t have been assigned to a simple captain under the traditionally conservative service methods.
On the 23d of February the fleet sailed again, and on the 28th anchored in the Tagus. The same day Nelson wrote to his wife that he was to go to sea on the 2d of March, with three ships-of-the-line, to look out for the Viceroy of Mexico, who was reported to be on his way to Cadiz, also with three ships-of-the-line, laden with treasure. "Two are first-rates," said he, "but the larger the ships the better the mark, and who will not fight for dollars?" Foul winds prevented his getting away until the 5th. From that date until the 12th of April he remained cruising between Cape St. Vincent and the coast of Africa, covering the approaches to Cadiz; frigates and smaller vessels being spread out to the westward, to gain timely notice of the approach of the specie ships, upon whose safe arrival Spain depended both for her commercial affairs and her naval preparations.
On February 23rd, the fleet set sail again, and by the 28th, they anchored in the Tagus. That same day, Nelson wrote to his wife that he would go to sea on March 2nd with three ships of the line to watch for the Viceroy of Mexico, who was reportedly heading to Cadiz with three ships of the line full of treasure. "Two are first rates," he mentioned, "but the bigger the ships, the better the target, and who wouldn't fight for dollars?" Rough winds kept him from leaving until the 5th. From that date until April 12th, he stayed patrolling between Cape St. Vincent and the coast of Africa, guarding the routes to Cadiz; frigates and smaller vessels were spread out to the west to get early warning of the treasure ships' arrival, which Spain relied on for both its trade and naval preparations.
But while thus actively employed, and not insensible to the charm of dollars, the immediate business on board was not in itself so engrossing, nor to him so attractive, as to obtain that exclusiveness of attention which he prided himself upon giving to matters more military in character, and more critical in importance. "The Spaniards threaten us they will come out, and take their revenge," he writes to an occasional correspondent. "The sooner the better; but I will not believe it till I see it; and if they do, what will the mines of Mexico and Peru signify, compared with the honour I doubt not we shall gain by fighting an angry Don? They will have thirty sail of the line, we twenty or twenty-two; but fear we shall have a peace before they are ready to come out. What a sad thing that will be!" His mind reverts to the troops in Elba, which had been left in a most exposed position, and were now about to withdraw under the protection of some frigates, passing through a thousand miles of hostile sea open to the line-of-battle ships at Toulon. He is more concerned about them than about his possible prize-money in the rich ships from Vera Cruz and Havana, whose danger from his own squadron was agitating all Spain. "Respecting myself," he writes to Jervis, "I wish to stay at sea, and I beg, if line-of-battle ships are left out,[55] either on this side the Gut, or to the eastward of Gibraltar, that I may be the man. This brings forward a subject which I own is uppermost in my mind,—that of the safety of our troops, should they embark from Elba. The French have a number of ships at Toulon. They may get two, three, or four ready, with a number of frigates, and make a push for our convoy. I am ready, you know, to go eastward to cover them, even to Porto Ferrajo, or off Toulon, or Minorca, as you may judge proper."
But while he was busy and not immune to the allure of money, the work aboard wasn’t so captivating or appealing to him that it took his full attention away from the military matters he was proud to focus on, which were more critical. "The Spaniards threaten to come out and take their revenge," he writes to a occasional correspondent. "The sooner, the better; but I won’t believe it until I see it; and if they do, what will the riches of Mexico and Peru matter compared to the honor I have no doubt we’ll gain from fighting an angry Spaniard? They’ll have thirty ships of the line, we’ll have twenty or twenty-two; but I fear we might have peace before they’re ready to come out. What a pity that would be!" His thoughts return to the troops in Elba, who were left in a very vulnerable position and were now about to withdraw under the protection of some frigates, crossing a thousand miles of hostile sea open to the battleships in Toulon. He cares more about them than about his potential prize money from the valuable ships coming from Vera Cruz and Havana, whose peril from his own squadron was causing panic all over Spain. "As for myself," he writes to Jervis, "I want to stay at sea, and I ask that if there are battleships left out, either this side of the Gut or east of Gibraltar, that I could be the one. This brings up a topic that’s been on my mind—the safety of our troops if they embark from Elba. The French have quite a few ships at Toulon. They might get two, three, or four ready, along with some frigates, and make a move for our convoy. I’m ready to go eastward to cover them, even to Porto Ferrajo, or off Toulon, or Minorca, as you see fit."
This exposed detachment continued to occupy his thoughts. A month later, on the 11th of April, he again writes: "I own, Sir, my feelings are alive for the safety of our army from Elba. If the French get out two sail of the line, which I am confident they may do, our troops are lost, and what a triumph that would be to them! I know you have many difficulties to contend with, but I am anxious that nothing should miscarry under your orders. If you think a detachment can be spared, I am ready to go and do my best for their protection." In both letters he apologizes for this freedom of urgency with his superior: "I have said much, but you have spoiled me by allowing me to speak and write freely. I trust you will not imagine that my taking the great liberty of thus mentioning my thoughts, arises from any other motive than affection towards you."
This feeling of detachment kept bothering him. A month later, on April 11th, he wrote again: "I admit, Sir, I’m really concerned about the safety of our army from Elba. If the French manage to get two ships out, which I believe they can, our troops are doomed, and what a victory that would be for them! I know you’re facing many challenges, but I’m really anxious that nothing goes wrong under your command. If you think a detachment can be spared, I’m ready to go and do my best to protect them." In both letters, he apologizes for being so straightforward with his superior: "I've said a lot, but you’ve spoiled me by letting me speak and write freely. I hope you won't think that my boldness in sharing my thoughts comes from any motive other than my affection for you."
Jervis had already joined him on the 1st of April, before the second letter was written. His hesitation about sending the detachment suggested by Nelson had arisen, not from doubt as to the danger of the troops, but from the imminent expectation of the Spanish fleet coming out. The British force was already too inferior, numerically, to risk any diminution, in view of such a contingency. Confronted with divergent objects, Jervis would not be drawn into the snare of dividing his force; but after reconnoitring the port, he was satisfied that the Spaniards could not sail before Nelson had time to fulfil the proposed mission, and on the 12th of April he gave him the necessary orders. The latter transferred his own squadron to the command of Sir James Saumarez, and started at once. He had now returned to the "Captain," which had doubtless come down with Jervis. "She is little better than a wreck," he wrote to a friend; but the cripples had to be kept to the front, pending the arrival of fresh ships. Besides her, he had the "Colossus," seventy-four, and "Leander," fifty, with a suitable number of smaller cruisers. Passing within gunshot of Port Mahon in Minorca, he heard from several passing vessels that a French squadron of four ships-of-the-line was at sea, as he had anticipated; and these, he afterwards learned, were seen off Minorca only twenty-two hours before he passed. Fortunately a fresh northwest gale had carried them to the southward, and on the 21st of April, sixty miles west of Corsica, he joined the convoy, which carried over three thousand soldiers. He reached Gibraltar with it in safety in the early days of May, without adventures of any kind. "I observed a man-of-war brig evidently looking at us; but my charge was too important to separate one ship in chase of her, especially as three frigates had parted company; for until this garrison is safe down, I do not think our business is well finished." Its arrival completed the evacuation of the Mediterranean.
Jervis had already joined him on April 1st, before the second letter was written. His hesitation about sending the detachment suggested by Nelson didn't come from doubt about the danger to the troops, but from the strong expectation of the Spanish fleet coming out. The British force was already too small in numbers to risk any decrease, given such a possibility. Faced with conflicting objectives, Jervis wouldn't fall into the trap of splitting his force; but after surveying the port, he was convinced that the Spaniards couldn't sail before Nelson had time to complete the planned mission, and on April 12th he gave him the necessary orders. Nelson transferred his own squadron to the command of Sir James Saumarez and set off immediately. He had now returned to the "Captain," which had surely come down with Jervis. "She is barely better than a wreck," he wrote to a friend; but the damaged ships had to stay in action until fresh ones arrived. Besides her, he had the "Colossus," seventy-four, and "Leander," fifty, along with a suitable number of smaller cruisers. As he passed within gunshot of Port Mahon in Minorca, he heard from several passing vessels that a French squadron of four ships-of-the-line was at sea, just as he had expected; and he later learned they were seen off Minorca only twenty-two hours before he passed. Fortunately, a fresh northwest gale had pushed them south, and on April 21st, sixty miles west of Corsica, he joined the convoy, which carried over three thousand soldiers. He reached Gibraltar safely with it in early May, without any adventures. "I noticed a warship brig clearly watching us; but my cargo was too important to chase after her with one ship, especially since three frigates had split from the group; for until this garrison is safely in, I don’t think our mission is complete." Its arrival marked the end of the evacuation of the Mediterranean.
At Gibraltar several days were spent, evidently crowded with administrative details concerning the coming and going of convoys, for there is here an almost total cessation of Nelson's usually copious letter-writing. An interesting and instructive incident is, however, made known to us by one of the three letters dated during these ten days. The Consul of the United States of America had to apply to him for the protection of twelve American merchant ships, then at Malaga, against the probable depredations of French privateers lying in that port, which, under the edicts of the government of the French Republic, with whom the United States was at peace, were expected to overhaul and capture them when they sailed. Nelson at once complied, ordering a British frigate to go to Malaga and escort the vessels to the Barbary coast, and even out of the Straits, if necessary. In doing this, he wrote courteously to the Consul: "I am sure of fulfilling the wishes of my Sovereign, and I hope of strengthening the harmony which at present so happily subsists between the two nations."
At Gibraltar, several days were spent clearly filled with administrative tasks regarding the arrival and departure of convoys, as there is almost no sign of Nelson's usual extensive letter-writing during this time. However, one of the three letters from these ten days reveals an interesting and informative incident. The Consul of the United States had to reach out to him for protection of twelve American merchant ships that were in Malaga, against potential attacks from French privateers that were in that port. According to the decrees of the government of the French Republic, with whom the United States was at peace, these privateers were expected to capture the ships when they set sail. Nelson immediately agreed, ordering a British frigate to head to Malaga and escort the vessels to the Barbary coast, and even out of the Straits if needed. In doing so, he wrote politely to the Consul: "I am sure of fulfilling the wishes of my Sovereign, and I hope of strengthening the harmony which at present so happily subsists between the two nations."
On the 24th of May Nelson rejoined the admiral off Cadiz, and on the 27th shifted his own flag into the "Theseus." The day before he left the fleet, April 11th, Jervis had decided to institute a strict commercial blockade of Cadiz, with the object of distressing Spanish trade, preventing the entrance of supplies, upon which depended the operations of Spain against Portugal, as well as her naval preparations, and so forcing the Spanish fleet out to fight, in order to rid itself of such embarrassment. Nelson, as commander of the inshore squadron, had then issued the necessary notices to neutrals in the port, and to this charge he now returned. Under Jervis's intelligent partiality, he, the junior flag-officer, was thus intrusted with a command, which in the conduct of details, great and small, and in emergencies, was practically independent. Jervis, knowing his man, was content to have it so, reserving of course to himself the decision of the broad outlines of military exertion. The inshore squadron was gradually increased till it numbered ten sail-of-the-line. The boats of the fleet, which had been rowing guard off the harbor's mouth under the general supervision of the two senior flag-officers, were ordered, shortly after Nelson's arrival, to report to him; and upon him, indeed, devolved pretty nearly all the active enterprises of the fleet. It was his practice to visit the line of boats every night in his barge, to see by personal inspection of these outposts that his instructions were fully observed. "Our inferiority," he wrote about this time, "is greater than before. I am barely out of shot of a Spanish rear-admiral. The Dons hope for peace, but must soon fight us, if the war goes on."
On May 24, Nelson rejoined the admiral off Cadiz, and on the 27th, he transferred his flag to the "Theseus." The day before he left the fleet, on April 11, Jervis decided to enforce a strict commercial blockade of Cadiz to disrupt Spanish trade, block the entry of supplies that were essential for Spain's operations against Portugal, and hinder its naval preparations, ultimately forcing the Spanish fleet to engage in battle to alleviate the situation. As the commander of the inshore squadron, Nelson had already issued the necessary notifications to neutral ships in the port, and he was returning to this responsibility. With Jervis's strategic favoritism, he, as the junior flag officer, was entrusted with a command that allowed him to operate independently in managing both major and minor details and in emergencies. Jervis, understanding Nelson's capabilities, was comfortable with this arrangement, while still retaining control over the overall military strategy. The inshore squadron gradually expanded to ten ships of the line. The fleet's boats, which had been patrolling the harbor entrance under the supervision of the two senior flag officers, were ordered shortly after Nelson's arrival to report to him; thus, he took on nearly all the active operations of the fleet. He made it a habit to visit the line of boats every night in his barge to personally inspect these outposts and ensure his instructions were followed. "Our inferiority," he wrote around this time, "is greater than before. I am barely out of range of a Spanish rear-admiral. The Spanish expect peace, but soon they must confront us if the war continues."
Another motive, perhaps even more imperative than the wish to force the Dons out, now compelled Jervis to seek by all means to increase the activity of his fleet, and to intrust the management of such activities to his most zealous and capable subordinate. These were the months of the great mutinies of the British Navy, in which the seamen of the Channel fleet, and of the North Sea fleet, at the Nore, had taken the ships out of the hands of their officers. The details of Jervis's management, which was distinguished as much by keen judgment and foresight as by iron-handed severity, that knew neither fear nor ruth when it struck, belong to his biography, not to Nelson's; but it is necessary to note the attitude of the latter, a man more sympathetic, and in common life gentler, than his stern superior. Always solicitous for everything that increased the well-being and happiness of his crew,—as indeed was eminently the case with Jervis also,—he did not withhold his candid sympathy from the grievances alleged by the Channel fleet; grievances which, when temperately presented to the authorities, had been ignored. "I am entirely with the seamen in their first complaint. We are a neglected set, and, when peace comes, are shamefully treated; but for the Nore scoundrels," passing on to those who had rebelled after substantial redress had been given, and had made unreasonable demands when the nation was in deadly peril, "I should be happy to command a ship against them." Jervis's measures received full support from him, clear-headed as ever to see the essentials of a situation. The senior vice-admiral, for instance, went so far as to criticise the commander-in-chief for hanging a convicted mutineer on Sunday. "Had it been Christmas Day instead of Sunday," wrote Nelson, "I would have executed them. We know not what might have been hatched by a Sunday's grog: now your discipline is safe." His glorious reputation and his known kindly character, supported by that of his captain, made mutiny impossible under his flag. It had not been up a month on board the "Theseus," which was lately from the Channel and infected with the prevalent insubordination, when a paper was dropped on the quarter-deck, expressing the devotion of the ship's company to their commander, and pledging that the name of the "Theseus" should yet be as renowned as that of the "Captain."
Another reason, maybe even stronger than wanting to push the Dons out, drove Jervis to find every way possible to ramp up his fleet's activity and to hand over the management of those efforts to his most dedicated and capable subordinate. These were the months when the British Navy faced major mutinies, with sailors from the Channel fleet and the North Sea fleet at the Nore taking control of their ships away from their officers. The details of Jervis's management were marked by sharp judgment and foresight as much as by a tough, unyielding approach that showed no fear or mercy when it was time to act, but those details belong to his biography, not Nelson's. However, it's important to point out Nelson's stance, as he was a more understanding and generally gentler person than his strict superior. Always concerned about what could improve his crew's welfare and happiness—something that was definitely true for Jervis too—he freely showed sympathy for the complaints from the Channel fleet; grievances that had been ignored when presented calmly to the authorities. "I totally support the sailors in their initial complaint. We are a neglected group and, once peace arrives, are treated shamefully; but for the Nore rebels," he added, referring to those who mutinied after receiving significant reparations and made unreasonable demands during a time of national crisis, "I would gladly command a ship against them." Jervis's actions received full backing from him, always clear-headed about the essentials of a situation. For example, the senior vice-admiral even criticized the commander-in-chief for executing a convicted mutineer on a Sunday. "If it had been Christmas Day instead of Sunday," Nelson wrote, "I would have carried out the execution. We don't know what might have brewed from a day's grog: now your discipline is secure." His esteemed reputation and known kind nature, along with that of his captain, made mutiny impossible under his command. It hadn't even been a month on the "Theseus," which had recently returned from the Channel and was affected by the current insubordination, when a message was found on the quarter-deck, expressing the crew's loyalty to their commander and promising that the name of the "Theseus" would be just as famous as that of the "Captain."
The stringent blockade, and the fears for the specie ships, weighed heavily on the Spaniards, who were not as a nation hearty in support of a war into which they had been coerced by France. Their authorities were petitioned to compel the fleet to go out. Whatever the event, the British would at least have to retire for repairs; while if the Lima and Havana ships—to look for which the Cadiz people every morning flocked to the walls, fearing they might be already in the enemy's hands—should be captured, the merchants of Spain would be ruined. Better lose ten ships-of-the-line, if need be, than this convoy. With rumors of this sort daily reaching him, Nelson's faculties were in a constant state of pleasing tension. He was in his very element of joyous excitement and expectation. "We are in the advance day and night, prepared for battle; bulkheads down, ready to weigh, cut, or slip,[56] as the occasion may require. I have given out a line of battle—myself to lead; and you may rest assured that I will make a vigorous attack upon them, the moment their noses are outside the Diamond. Pray do not send me another ship," he implores; "if you send any more, they may believe we are prepared, and know of their intention." "If they come out," he writes later to a naval friend, when he had ten sail under him, "there will be no fighting beyond my squadron."
The strict blockade and the worries about the treasure ships weighed heavily on the Spaniards, who, as a nation, weren’t really behind a war they had been forced into by France. Their leaders were urged to make sure the fleet set sail. Whatever happened, the British would at least have to pull back for repairs; but if the ships from Lima and Havana—which the people of Cadiz anxiously watched for each morning, fearing they might already have fallen into enemy hands—were captured, Spain's merchants would be ruined. Better to lose ten warships if necessary than this convoy. With rumors like this reaching him daily, Nelson was constantly in a state of thrilling anticipation. He was filled with excitement and expectation. "We’re always on alert, ready for battle; bulkheads down, prepared to weigh anchor, cut cables, or slip away,[56] depending on what’s needed. I’ve laid out a battle plan—I’ll be leading it myself; you can be sure I’ll launch a strong attack as soon as they show themselves outside the Diamond. Please don’t send me another ship,” he pleaded; “if you send more, they might think we’re ready and know what they’re planning.” "If they come out," he later wrote to a naval friend when he had ten ships under his command, "there won’t be any fighting beyond my squadron."
To increase yet further the pressure upon the Spanish fleet to come out, a bombardment was planned against the town and the shipping, the superintendence of which also was intrusted to the commander of the inshore squadron. Only one bomb-vessel was provided, so that very extensive results could scarcely have been anticipated; but Nelson saw, with evident glee, that the enemy's gunboats had taken advanced positions, and intended to have a hand in the night's work. "So much the better," wrote he to Jervis; "I wish to make it a warm night in Cadiz. If they venture from their walls, I shall give Johnny[57] his full scope for fighting. It will serve to talk of better than mischief." "It is good," he writes to another, "at these times to keep the devil out of their heads. I had rather see fifty shot by the enemy, than one hanged by us."
To increase the pressure on the Spanish fleet to come out, a bombardment was planned against the town and the shipping, which was also overseen by the commander of the inshore squadron. Only one bomb vessel was provided, so very extensive results couldn't be expected; but Nelson saw, with clear delight, that the enemy's gunboats had taken up advanced positions and planned to get involved in the night’s activities. "So much the better," he wrote to Jervis; "I want to make it a hot night in Cadiz. If they come out from their walls, I’ll give Johnny[57] plenty of opportunities to fight. It’ll be better to talk about than trouble." "It’s good," he wrote to another, "at these times to keep the devil out of their heads. I’d rather see fifty shot by the enemy than one hanged by us."
The bombardment, which was continued upon two successive nights, did little direct harm; but it led to a sharp hand-to-hand contest between the British and Spanish boats, in which Nelson personally bore a part, and upon which he seems afterwards to have dwelt with even greater pride and self-satisfaction than upon the magnificent victories with which his name is associated. "It was during this period that perhaps my personal courage was more conspicuous than at any other part of my life." On the first night the Spaniards sent out a great number of mortar gunboats and armed launches. Upon these he directed a vigorous attack to be made, which resulted in their being driven back under the walls of Cadiz; the British, who pursued them, capturing two boats and a launch. In the affray, he says, "I was boarded in my barge with its common crew of ten men, coxswain, Captain Freemantle, and myself, by the commander of the gunboats; the Spanish barge rowed twenty-six oars, besides officers,—thirty men in the whole. This was a service hand-to-hand with swords, in which my coxswain, John Sykes, now no more, twice saved my life. Eighteen of the Spaniards being killed and several wounded, we succeeded in taking their commander." In his report he complimented this Spanish officer, Don Miguel Tyrason, upon his gallantry. Near a hundred Spaniards were made prisoners in this sharp skirmish.
The bombardment continued for two nights and didn’t cause much direct damage; however, it led to a fierce close-quarters fight between the British and Spanish boats, where Nelson played a significant role. He seems to have looked back on this with even more pride and satisfaction than on the glorious victories tied to his name. "During this time, my personal courage was probably more evident than at any other point in my life." On the first night, the Spaniards launched many mortar gunboats and armed launches. He ordered a strong attack against them, which forced them back under the walls of Cadiz, with the British pursuing and capturing two boats and a launch. In the fight, he recounted, "I was boarded in my barge, which had a regular crew of ten men, including my coxswain, Captain Freemantle, and me, by the commander of the gunboats; the Spanish barge had twenty-six oars, plus officers—thirty men in total. It turned into a hand-to-hand fight with swords, where my coxswain, John Sykes, now deceased, saved my life twice. Eighteen Spaniards were killed and several were wounded, and we managed to capture their commander." In his report, he praised this Spanish officer, Don Miguel Tyrason, for his bravery. Almost a hundred Spaniards were taken prisoner in this intense skirmish.
Not even the insult of bombardment was sufficient to attain the designed end of forcing the enemy's fleet out to fight. The Spaniards confined themselves to a passive defence by their shore batteries, which proved indeed sufficient to protect the town and shipping, for on the second night they got the range of the bomb-vessel so accurately that the British were forced to withdraw her; but this did not relieve the vital pressure of the blockade, which could only be removed by the mobile naval force coming out and fighting. So far from doing this, the Spanish ships of war shifted their berth inside to get out of the range of bombs. Nelson cast longing eyes upon the smaller vessels which lay near the harbor's mouth, forming a barricade against boat attack, and threatening the offensive measures to which they rarely resorted. "At present the brigs lie too close to each other to hope for a dash at them, but soon I expect to find one off her guard, and then—" For the rest, his sanguine resolve to persist in annoyance until it becomes unbearable, and insures the desired object, finds vent in the words: "if Mazaredo will not come out, down comes Cadiz; and not only Cadiz, but their fleet."
Not even the bombardment was enough to achieve the goal of forcing the enemy's fleet into battle. The Spaniards stuck to a defensive strategy with their coastal batteries, which effectively protected the town and shipping. On the second night, they became so accurate with their fire that they forced the British to pull back their bomb vessel. However, this didn’t ease the critical strain of the blockade, which could only be lifted by the enemy's naval forces coming out to fight. Instead of doing this, the Spanish warships moved further inside to avoid the bombardment. Nelson eyed the smaller vessels near the harbor’s entrance, which created a barrier against boat attacks and posed a threat to the offensive tactics they rarely used. "Right now, the brigs are too close together for us to make a move against them, but I expect to catch one off guard soon, and then—" Meanwhile, his optimistic determination to keep up the pressure until it becomes unbearable, ensuring the outcome he wanted, is expressed in the words: "if Mazaredo doesn’t come out, down goes Cadiz; and not just Cadiz, but their fleet as well."
This close succession of varied and exciting active service, unbroken between the day of his leaving Lisbon, March 5th, and the date of the last bombardment, July 5th, had its usual effect upon his spirits. His correspondence is all animation, full of vitality and energy, betraying throughout the happiness of an existence absorbed in congenial work, at peace with itself, conscious of power adequate to the highest demands upon it, and rejoicing in the strong admiration and confidence felt and expressed towards him on all sides, especially by those whose esteem he most valued. He complains of his health, indeed, from time to time; he cannot last another winter; he is suffering for the want of a few months' rest, which he must ask for in the coming October, and trusts that, "after four years and nine months' service, without one moment's repose for body or mind, credit will be given me that I do not sham."
This close succession of varied and exciting active service, unbroken from the day he left Lisbon on March 5th to the date of the last bombardment on July 5th, had its usual effect on his mood. His letters are full of energy and enthusiasm, showing the happiness of a life dedicated to fulfilling work, at peace with itself, feeling capable of meeting the highest expectations, and taking joy in the strong admiration and confidence shown toward him, especially by those whose respect he valued most. He does mention his health occasionally; he can't survive another winter; he's suffering from the lack of a few months' rest, which he intends to request in the coming October, and hopes that, "after four years and nine months of service, without a single moment's rest for body or mind, people will believe that I am not pretending."
Bodily suffering was his constant attendant, to which he always remained subject, but at this time it was powerless to depress the moral energies which, under less stimulating conditions, at times lost something of their elastic force. They never, indeed, failed to rise equal to imminent emergency, however obscured in hours of gloom, or perplexity, or mental conflict; but now, supported by the concurrence of every favoring influence, they carried him along in the full flow of prosperity and exhilaration. Thanking Earl Spencer, the First Lord of the Admiralty, for a complimentary letter, he says: "The unbounded praises Sir John Jervis has ever heaped, and continues to heap on me, are a noble reward for any services which an officer under his command could perform. Nor is your Lordship less profuse in them." To his wife he writes: "I assure you I never was better, and rich in the praises of every man, from the highest to the lowest in the fleet." "The imperious call of honour to serve my country, is the only thing that keeps me a moment from you, and a hope, that by staying a little longer, it may enable you to enjoy those little luxuries which you so highly merit." "My late affair here[58] will not, I believe, lower me in the opinion of the world. I have had flattery enough to make me vain, and success enough to make me confident."
Bodily pain was always with him, and he was always affected by it, but at this moment, it couldn’t shake his moral strength, which sometimes lost its bounce under less motivating circumstances. They always rose to meet any urgent challenge, no matter how dim things felt during tough times or mental struggles. But now, supported by all the positive influences around him, he was carried along in a wave of success and excitement. Thanking Earl Spencer, the First Lord of the Admiralty, for a kind letter, he says: "The endless praise Sir John Jervis has always given and continues to give me is a great reward for any service an officer under his command could do. Your Lordship is no less generous with your praise." To his wife, he writes: "I promise I’ve never felt better and I’m receiving compliments from everyone, from the highest to the lowest in the fleet." "The urgent call of duty to serve my country is the only thing that keeps me away from you for even a moment, and I hope that staying a bit longer will allow you to enjoy those little luxuries that you truly deserve." "My recent situation here[58] won't, I believe, diminish my standing in the eyes of the world. I've received enough flattery to make me proud and enough success to make me confident."
FOOTNOTES:
[42] See Plate, Figure 1.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Plate, Fig. 1.
[43] See Plate, Figure 2.
[44] Captured.
Captured.
[46] That is, was left in.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ That is, was left in.
[48] See Plate, Figure 3.
[49] The italics are the author's.
The italics are the author's.
[51] Both papers are headed: "A few remarks relative to myself in the Captain," etc. It is unfortunate that Nicolas, in giving these two papers, puts first the one which, from internal indications, is (in the author's judgment) the later in date.
[51] Both papers are titled: "A few remarks about myself in the Captain," etc. It's a shame that Nicolas, in presenting these two papers, places the one that appears to be more recent first, according to the author's assessment.
[52] Author's italics.
[54] See ante, page 89.
See ante, page 89.
[57] The British seamen.
The British sailors.
CHAPTER IX.
THE UNSUCCESSFUL ATTEMPT AGAINST TENERIFFE.—NELSON LOSES HIS RIGHT ARM.—RETURN TO ENGLAND.—REJOINS ST. VINCENT'S FLEET, AND SENT INTO THE MEDITERRANEAN TO WATCH THE TOULON ARMAMENT.
THE FAILED ATTEMPT AGAINST TENERIFE.—NELSON LOSSES HIS RIGHT ARM.—RETURN TO ENGLAND.—JOINS ST. VINCENT'S FLEET AGAIN AND SENT INTO THE MEDITERRANEAN TO MONITOR THE TOULON ARMAMENT.
JULY, 1797-APRIL, 1798. AGE, 39.
JULY 1797 - APRIL 1798. AGE 39.
Too much success is not wholly desirable; an occasional beating is good for men—and nations. When Nelson wrote the words with which the preceding chapter ends, he was on the eve of a sharp reverse, met in attempting an enterprise that had occupied his thoughts for more than three months. While cruising for the Viceroy of Mexico, before Jervis left Lisbon with the fleet, he had considered the possibility of the enemy's treasure-ships, warned of their danger, taking refuge in the Canary Islands, which belong to Spain. Meditating upon the contingency, he had formed a project of seizing them there, and probably had already suggested the matter to Jervis, taking advantage of the freedom permitted him by the latter in advancing opinions. However that be, immediately before he started to meet the Elba convoy, the commander-in-chief asked for his plan, which he submitted in writing, after talking it over with Troubridge, his intimate friend, upon whose judgment Jervis also greatly relied. Regarded as a purely naval expedition, Nelson pointed out that it was subject to great uncertainties, because, the land being very high, the wind could not be depended on. It might blow in from the sea, but if so it would be by daylight, which would deprive the attack of the benefits of a surprise; while at night the land wind was too fitful and unreliable to assure the ships reaching their anchorage before the enemy could discover them, and have time for adequate preparation against assault.
Too much success isn't entirely good; a setback now and then can be beneficial for individuals—and countries. When Nelson wrote the closing words of the previous chapter, he was about to face a significant defeat while attempting a mission that had occupied his mind for over three months. While searching for the Viceroy of Mexico, before Jervis departed Lisbon with the fleet, he had contemplated the chance that the enemy’s treasure ships, having been warned of their peril, might seek refuge in the Canary Islands, which are part of Spain. Considering this possibility, he devised a plan to capture them there and likely had already discussed it with Jervis, taking advantage of the leeway Jervis gave him to express his views. Regardless, just before he set out to meet the Elba convoy, the commander-in-chief asked for his plan, which he presented in writing after discussing it with Troubridge, his close friend, whose judgment Jervis also greatly valued. Viewed as a purely naval operation, Nelson indicated that it was fraught with uncertainties, as the land was very elevated, making the wind unpredictable. It could blow in from the sea, but if it did, it would only be during the day, which would eliminate the element of surprise from the attack; while at night, the land wind was too erratic and unreliable to guarantee that the ships would reach their anchorage before the enemy noticed them and had time to prepare effectively for an assault.
For these reasons, certainty of success would depend upon co-operation by the army, and for that Nelson suggested that the Elba troops, over three thousand strong, already in transports and on their way, would provide a force at once available and sufficient. Save a naval dash by Blake, more than a century before, Teneriffe had never been seriously attacked. Probably, therefore, the heights commanding the town of Santa Cruz had not been fortified, and could be easily seized by the detachment designated; besides which, the water supply was exposed to interruption by an outside enemy. If only General De Burgh could be persuaded, Nelson was sure of success, and offered himself to command the naval contingent. Failing the consent of De Burgh, whom he and Jervis both thought deficient in moral courage to undertake responsibility, could not the admiral get assistance from O'Hara, the governor of Gibraltar, who would have at his disposal one thousand to fifteen hundred men? More would be better, but still with that number success would be probable. "Soldiers," regretted Nelson characteristically, "have not the same boldness in undertaking a political measure that we have; we look to the benefit of our Country and risk our own fame [not life merely] every day to serve her: a soldier obeys his orders and no more." But he thought O'Hara an exception, and then—could not the substantial advantages move him? The public treasure of Spain that might be seized would be six or seven millions sterling. Think what that sum would be, "thrown into circulation in England!" where specie payments had just been suspended. It was nearly a year's value of the subsidies which Great Britain was lavishing on the general war. Whatever the merits of Nelson's judgment upon the soldiers of his day, this avowal of readiness, for the nation's sake, to risk fame—reputation—which was in his eyes the dearest of possessions, should not be overlooked. It was the best he had to give; to hazard life was but a vulgar thing compared to it. His career, both before and after, fully bore out the boast.
For these reasons, the certainty of success would rely on cooperation from the army. Nelson proposed that the Elba troops, which numbered over three thousand and were already en route on transports, would provide a force that was both available and adequate. Other than Blake's naval assault over a century ago, Teneriffe had never been seriously attacked. Therefore, it was likely that the heights overlooking the town of Santa Cruz had not been fortified and could be easily taken by the designated detachment. Additionally, the water supply was vulnerable to disruption by an outside enemy. If only General De Burgh could be convinced, Nelson was confident of success and offered to lead the naval contingent. If De Burgh refused, whom both he and Jervis believed lacked the moral courage to take responsibility, could the admiral seek help from O'Hara, the governor of Gibraltar, who had between one thousand and fifteen hundred men at his disposal? More troops would be better, but with that number, success was still likely. "Soldiers," Nelson lamented in his usual manner, "don't have the same boldness to undertake political measures as we do; we look out for our country’s benefit and risk our own reputation—not just our lives—every day to serve it: a soldier follows orders and nothing more." However, he considered O'Hara an exception, and he wondered if the significant advantages could sway him. The public treasure of Spain that could be seized would amount to six or seven million pounds. Just think of that amount being "pumped into circulation in England!" where cash payments had just been suspended. That was nearly a year's worth of the subsidies Great Britain was spending on the ongoing war. Whatever the merits of Nelson's judgment regarding the soldiers of his time, this admission of willingness to risk his reputation for his country's sake—something he valued most—should not be overlooked. It was the best he had to offer; risking his life was trivial compared to it. His career, both before and after, fully supported this claim.
While on the return with the Elba troops, in a despatch sent ahead of the convoy, he jogs Jervis's memory about O'Hara, having doubtless ascertained that De Burgh, as they expected, would not deviate from his orders to proceed to Lisbon. "I hope you will press General O'Hara about Teneriffe. What a strike it would be!" In a copy of this letter forwarded to the Admiralty, presumably by Jervis for its general information, these words were omitted. Possibly he had already sounded O'Hara, and found him unwilling, for he was not optimistic; possibly Jervis himself thought that the fitting conditions had not yet obtained, and did not care to let the idea get abroad before the hour for execution arrived. For the time, the commander-in-chief preferred to keep his fleet concentrated before Cadiz, and to try to worry the enemy out to battle; for which object, indisputably the most advantageous to be pursued, he also naturally wished to use his most active and efficient subordinate. Both blockade and bombardment having failed to provoke the enemy to action, and intelligence having been received that a treasure-ship from Manila had put into Teneriffe, it was decided in July to make the attempt, which had only been postponed—never abandoned. In words written by Nelson on the 18th of June, the conditions determining Jervis's course are clearly indicated. "I wish these fellows would come out, and then, with the good ships we have left [after a general engagement], we might be a little at liberty to make dashes. I hope your design about Teneriffe will not get wind, by making inquiries at the present moment. Whenever I see it," he added characteristically, "ten hours shall decide its fate." Although unable to obtain the troops upon which he considered certainty to depend, he felt little fear for the result. Two hundred additional marines must be given, and certain specified artillery and ammunition in excess of what he had. With these, "I have no doubt of doing the job as it ought to be, the moment the ships come in sight." "Under General Troubridge ashore, and myself afloat, I am confident of success."
While returning with the Elba troops, in a message sent ahead of the convoy, he reminds Jervis about O'Hara, having likely confirmed that De Burgh, as they expected, wouldn’t stray from his orders to head to Lisbon. "I hope you'll push General O'Hara about Teneriffe. What a blow it would be!" In a copy of this letter sent to the Admiralty, presumably by Jervis for general information, these words were left out. He might have already checked with O'Hara and found him hesitant, as he wasn’t optimistic; maybe Jervis thought the timing wasn’t right yet and didn’t want to let the idea spread before it was time to act. For now, the commander-in-chief preferred to keep his fleet gathered in front of Cadiz and try to provoke the enemy into battle; for this goal, he naturally wanted to use his most active and capable subordinate. Since both the blockade and bombardment had failed to entice the enemy, and news had come that a treasure ship from Manila had arrived in Teneriffe, they decided in July to make the attempt, which had only been postponed—not abandoned. In words written by Nelson on June 18, the reasons for Jervis's actions are clearly stated. "I wish these fellows would come out, and then, with the good ships we have left [after a general engagement], we might be a bit free to make moves. I hope your plan about Teneriffe won’t get out, especially if you're making inquiries right now. Whenever I see it," he added, "ten hours shall determine its outcome." Although he couldn't secure the troops he believed were necessary for success, he felt little concern about the result. Two hundred more marines must be provided, along with specific artillery and ammunition beyond what he already had. With these, "I have no doubt I can handle it properly the moment the ships come into view." "With General Troubridge on land and myself at sea, I'm confident of victory."
On the 14th of July he received his orders, which were to seize Santa Cruz, the chief town, and hold the island to ransom, unless all public treasure were surrendered to his squadron, in which case the contribution on the inhabitants should not be levied. "God bless and prosper you," wrote Jervis, who, although he considered the enterprise promising, was less sanguine than his junior. "I am sure you will deserve success. To mortals is not given the power of commanding it." On the 15th Nelson sailed, having under his command three seventy-fours, a fifty-gun ship, three frigates, and a cutter. Towards sundown of the 20th the Peak of Teneriffe was sighted, distant fifty or sixty miles. The following morning the landing-party, a thousand strong, under the command of Captain Troubridge, was transferred to the frigates. The intention was to keep the line-of-battle-ships out of sight, while the frigates, whose apparent force would carry no impression of menace, approached near enough to make a dash during the night. It was hoped that thus the assault might be so far a surprise as to enable the British to storm from the rear a fort on the heights, to the northeast of the town, and commanding it. Santa Cruz was then to be summoned. In the meantime the ships-of-the-line would be coming in from the sea, and upon arrival would support the shore movement by bringing their broadsides to bear upon the walls.
On July 14th, he received his orders, which were to seize Santa Cruz, the main town, and hold the island for ransom, unless all public treasure was handed over to his squadron; in that case, the contribution from the inhabitants wouldn’t be collected. "God bless and prosper you," wrote Jervis, who, while he thought the mission was promising, was less optimistic than his junior. "I’m sure you will earn success. Mortals don’t have the power to command it." On the 15th, Nelson set sail, commanding three seventy-fours, a fifty-gun ship, three frigates, and a cutter. By sunset on the 20th, they sighted the Peak of Teneriffe, about fifty or sixty miles away. The next morning, the landing party, a thousand strong, under Captain Troubridge, was transferred to the frigates. The plan was to keep the line-of-battle ships out of sight while the frigates, whose visible force wouldn’t seem threatening, got close enough to make a surprise attack during the night. The hope was that this would allow the British to storm from the rear a fort on the heights northeast of the town that overlooked it. Santa Cruz would then be summoned. Meanwhile, the ships-of-the-line would arrive from the sea and, upon arrival, would support the land movement by targeting their broadsides at the walls.
By midnight the frigates were within three miles of the landing-place; but there strong wind and contrary current delayed them, and before they could get within a mile the day dawned. Thus discovered, the hope of surprise was lost. At 6 A.M., when the squadron approached, Troubridge went on board the "Theseus" and told Nelson that he thought, if the heights over the fort, in its rear, could be seized, he could yet compel it to surrender. The landing-party was therefore put on shore at nine, but could not dispossess the enemy, who had recognized the importance of the position indicated by Troubridge, and had occupied it in force. The ships-of-the-line endeavored to get within range of the fort, to batter it, but could not come nearer than three miles. They were unable even to reach anchoring-ground, and, as it was blowing very fresh, they struck their topgallantmasts and stood off and on. At night Troubridge re-embarked his men on board the frigates, which had remained where they were. The following morning, July 23d, Nelson abandoned the attempt upon the fort, recalling the frigates; and, as the wind did not yet serve to approach the shore, he continued under sail during that day and the next. The members of the landing-party rejoined their proper ships.
By midnight, the frigates were three miles from the landing spot, but a strong wind and opposing current held them back, and by the time they got within a mile, dawn had arrived. With that, the chance for surprise was gone. At 6 A.M., as the squadron got closer, Troubridge boarded the "Theseus" and informed Nelson that he thought if they could take the heights behind the fort, they could still force a surrender. So, the landing party was sent ashore at nine, but they couldn’t displace the enemy, who had already seen the importance of the position Troubridge had pointed out and fortified it with a substantial force. The ships of the line tried to get closer to the fort to bombard it, but they couldn’t get any nearer than three miles. They couldn’t even find a place to anchor, and with strong winds blowing, they lowered their topgallant masts and moved back and forth. That night, Troubridge brought his men back on board the frigates, which had stayed where they were. The next morning, July 23rd, Nelson gave up on the assault on the fort and recalled the frigates. Since the wind still wasn’t favorable for reaching the shore, he kept sailing through that day and the next. The members of the landing party returned to their respective ships.
Troubridge's failure to act at once upon his own judgment, and seize the heights above the fort, instead of waiting until he could communicate with the admiral, whereby were lost more than three invaluable hours, excites surprise, in view of the extremely high value set upon him as an officer by St. Vincent and Nelson; and is the more singular because the latter, in certain "Recommendations," dated July 17, had indicated the heights, as well as the fort, among the objects to be secured. It is, of course, possible that these Recommendations were not given out; but even so, the formal orders issued gave ample discretion. This hesitation was wholly contrary to Nelson's own readiness to assume responsibility, and probably accounts for his subsequent remark, in a private letter, that had he himself been present this first attempt would not have failed. Occurring in an officer of Troubridge's high standing, and contrasted with Nelson's action at St. Vincent, as well as on many other occasions, the incident serves to bring out forcibly the characteristic eminence of the latter,—the distinction between a really great captain and the best type of a simply accomplished and gallant officer. It may safely be said that had Nelson been in the frigates that morning, and thought as Troubridge thought, he would either have had the heights without waiting for orders, or, to use his own words on a former occasion, would have "been in a confounded scrape."
Troubridge's failure to act immediately on his own judgment and take control of the heights above the fort, instead of waiting to communicate with the admiral, which resulted in losing over three precious hours, raises eyebrows, especially considering the very high regard St. Vincent and Nelson had for him as an officer. This is even more surprising because Nelson, in certain "Recommendations," dated July 17, had clearly pointed out the heights, along with the fort, as key targets to secure. It's possible these Recommendations weren’t distributed, but even then, the official orders provided ample room for discretion. This hesitance was completely opposite to Nelson's own willingness to take responsibility, which likely explains his later comment in a private letter that if he had been there, this first attempt wouldn't have failed. Given Troubridge's high rank and in contrast to Nelson's decisive actions at St. Vincent and in many other situations, this incident highlights the significant difference between a truly great captain and a competent and brave officer. It's safe to say that if Nelson had been on those frigates that morning and thought like Troubridge, he would have either secured the heights without waiting for orders or, as he put it on another occasion, would have "been in a confounded scrape."
His first plan having miscarried, Nelson was nevertheless unwilling to forsake the enterprise wholly, without attempting a direct assault upon the town itself. Meantime the enemy was not idle, but employed the delay caused by the wind to collect a greater force, and to develop further the preparations to repel attack. At half-past five in the evening of July 24 the squadron reached an anchorage two or three miles north of Santa Cruz, and all boats were ordered prepared for a night expedition. Captain Freemantle, of the frigate "Seahorse," had with him his wife, whom he had lately married; and with them Nelson, who intended to lead the attack in person, supped that evening. He was conscious of the imminent danger to which he was about to expose himself and his followers; it is indeed scarcely possible that he could, in undertaking the adventure, have expected to succeed, except through some happy accident skilfully improved,—the deserved good fortune which had so often attended him. It was not so much the hope of victory that moved him, as the feeling that to retreat baffled, without a further effort, would be worse than defeat. This in fact was the reason which he afterwards gave. "Although I felt the second attack a forlorn hope, yet the honour of our Country called for the attack, and that I should command it. I never expected to return." "Your partiality will give me credit," he wrote to Jervis, "that all has hitherto been done which was possible, but without effect: this night I, humble as I am, command the whole, destined to land under the batteries of the town, and to-morrow my head will probably be crowned with either laurel or cypress. I have only to recommend Josiah Nisbet [his stepson] to you and my Country." He urged Nisbet not to go in the boats, on the ground that his mother should not run the risk of losing both husband and son in one night, and that in the absence of Captain Miller, who was going in charge of a division of men, Nisbet's duties with the ship demanded his remaining. Nisbet steadily refused, and his presence was the immediate means of saving the admiral's life.
His first plan having failed, Nelson was still unwilling to completely abandon the mission without trying a direct attack on the town itself. Meanwhile, the enemy wasn’t idle; they used the delay caused by the wind to gather a stronger force and to further prepare to defend against an attack. At 5:30 PM on July 24, the squadron reached an anchorage two or three miles north of Santa Cruz, and orders were given to prepare all boats for a night expedition. Captain Freemantle of the frigate "Seahorse" was with his wife, whom he had recently married; Nelson, who planned to lead the attack himself, had dinner with them that evening. He was aware of the imminent danger he was about to face, as well as the danger to his followers; he likely couldn’t have expected to succeed in this venture without some fortunate turn of events that he could skillfully leverage—the well-deserved good fortune that had often come his way. It wasn’t so much the hope of victory that motivated him, but the sense that retreating without making another effort would be worse than defeat. This was, in fact, the reason he later gave. "Even though I felt the second attack was a lost cause, the honor of our country required the attack, and I should lead it. I never expected to return." "Your bias will give me credit," he wrote to Jervis, "that everything possible has been done so far, but without success: tonight, I, humble as I am, command the whole force, destined to land under the town's batteries, and tomorrow my head will likely be crowned with either laurel or cypress. I only have to ask you to take care of Josiah Nisbet [his stepson] for me and my country." He urged Nisbet not to join the boats, reasoning that his mother shouldn’t risk losing both her husband and son in one night, and since Captain Miller, who was in charge of a group of men, was absent, Nisbet's responsibilities with the ship required him to stay. Nisbet persistently refused, and his presence ultimately saved the admiral's life.
At eleven P.M. the boats shoved off, carrying a thousand men. The orders were for all to land at the mole, the intention being to storm it, and the batteries covering it, in a body, and to fight their way, thus massed, to the great square, which was designated as the place for rallying. A considerable sea was running and the night dark, so that the Spaniards did not discover the assailants till they were within half gunshot. The bells of the place then began to ring, and a heavy fire opened, amid which the British pushed vigorously forward. Many, however, missed the mole. Nelson's own boat reached it with four or five besides, and the parties from these succeeded in carrying the mole itself, advancing to its head and spiking the guns; but there they were met with such a sustained fire of musketry and grape from the citadel and the neighboring houses, that they could get no farther. Many were killed and wounded, and the rest after a struggle had to retreat.
At 11 P.M., the boats set off, carrying a thousand men. The orders were to land at the mole with the plan to attack it and the nearby batteries in a group and fight their way to the large square, which was designated as the rallying point. The sea was rough, and it was dark, so the Spaniards didn’t realize the attackers were there until they were within half a cannon shot. The bells of the town began to ring, and heavy gunfire erupted as the British pressed forward. However, many missed the mole. Nelson’s boat reached it with four or five others, and the teams from these boats managed to take the mole itself, moving to its head and spiking the guns. But they faced such intense fire from the citadel and surrounding buildings that they couldn’t advance any further. Many were killed or wounded, and the rest had to retreat after a struggle.
Troubridge, with a number of others who missed the mole, landed amid a heavy surf, which stove the boats on a rocky beach and tumbled the men into the water, whereby most of the ammunition was spoiled. In the midst of the turmoil the cutter "Fox" was struck by a shot under water, and went down, taking with her her commander and ninety-seven men. Although the scaling-ladders had all been lost in the general upset, those who here got on shore succeeded in climbing over the walls, and forced their way to the place of rendezvous in the great square. There Troubridge, having assembled between three and four hundred men, held his ground, awaiting Nelson and the party that might have entered by way of the mole.
Troubridge, along with several others who missed the mole, landed in heavy surf that smashed the boats against a rocky beach and tossed the men into the water, ruining most of the ammunition. Amidst the chaos, the cutter "Fox" was hit by a submerged shot and sank, taking down her commander and ninety-seven men. Although all the scaling-ladders were lost in the commotion, those who made it ashore managed to climb over the walls and push their way to the meeting point in the main square. There, Troubridge gathered between three and four hundred men and held his position, waiting for Nelson and the group that might have come through the mole.
It was in vain. Nelson had been struck by a grapeshot in the right elbow, as, with sword drawn, he was stepping from the boat to the landing. Bleeding profusely and faint, but clinging with his left hand to the sword, which had belonged to his uncle Maurice Suckling, he fell back into the arms of Josiah Nisbet, who managed with considerable presence of mind to bind up the shattered limb and stop the flowing of the blood. A few men being got together, the boat pushed off to take the admiral back to the ship. At this moment occurred the sinking of the "Fox;" upon which much delay ensued, because Nelson refused to abandon the men struggling in the water, and insisted upon looking personally to their being saved. At last the "Seahorse" was reached; but here again he would not go on board, saying that he would not have Mrs. Freemantle alarmed by seeing him in such a condition and without any news of her husband, who had accompanied the landing. When he got to the "Theseus," he declined assistance to climb to the deck. "At two in the morning," wrote Hoste, one of her midshipmen, who had been with him continuously since the "Agamemnon" left England, "Admiral Nelson returned on board, being dreadfully wounded in the right arm. I leave you to judge of my situation, when I beheld our boat approach with him, who I may say has been a second father to me, his right arm dangling by his side, while with the other he helped himself to jump up the ship's side, and with a spirit that astonished every one, told the surgeon to get his instruments ready, for he knew he must lose his arm, and that the sooner it was off the better."
It was pointless. Nelson had been hit by grapeshot in the right elbow while stepping from the boat to the landing with his sword drawn. He was bleeding heavily and feeling faint, but he clung with his left hand to the sword that had belonged to his uncle, Maurice Suckling, as he fell back into the arms of Josiah Nisbet. Josiah managed to stay calm and dressed the injured arm to stop the bleeding. A few men gathered, and the boat set off to take the admiral back to the ship. At that moment, the "Fox" sank, causing a delay because Nelson refused to leave the men struggling in the water and insisted on overseeing their rescue himself. Eventually, they reached the "Seahorse," but again he wouldn’t board, saying he didn’t want Mrs. Freemantle to be alarmed by his condition or to hear there was no news about her husband, who had gone ashore with him. When he got to the "Theseus," he turned down help climbing to the deck. "At two in the morning," wrote Hoste, one of the midshipmen who had been with him since the "Agamemnon" left England, "Admiral Nelson returned on board, severely wounded in the right arm. I’ll let you imagine my feelings when I saw our boat approaching with him, who I can say has been like a second father to me, his right arm hanging at his side while he used his left to pull himself up the ship's side. With a spirit that amazed everyone, he told the surgeon to prepare his instruments, knowing he would lose his arm, and that the sooner it was removed, the better."
At daylight Troubridge, who had collected some ammunition from Spanish prisoners, started from the square to try what could be done without ladders against the citadel; but, finding every approach blocked by overwhelming force, he had to retreat. Having neither powder nor provisions, and no boats with which to return to the ship, he sent a flag of truce to the governor to say that he was prepared to burn the place down with means at his disposal, but, being most reluctant to do so, was willing to treat, upon condition of the whole party being permitted to return to the ships, free and with their arms. One scarcely knows which most to admire, Troubridge's cool audacity in making such a demand, or the chivalrous readiness with which these honorable terms were at once granted to a man whose gallant bearing compelled the esteem of his enemies. Don Juan Gutierrez had repulsed the various attempts with such steadiness and watchfulness, had managed his business so well, that he could afford to be liberal. He agreed that Troubridge's men should withdraw, carrying off with them all British equipments, even to such boats as had been taken by the Spaniards, but could still swim. On the other hand, it was stipulated that no further attempt upon the town should be made by Nelson's squadron. Prisoners on both sides were to be given up. This arrangement having been concluded, the governor directed that the British wounded should be at once received into the hospitals, while the rest of the party, with their colors flying, marched to the mole, and there embarked.
At dawn, Troubridge, who had gathered some ammunition from Spanish prisoners, left the square to see what he could do against the citadel without ladders. However, after finding every route blocked by a massive force, he had to retreat. Lacking both gunpowder and supplies, and with no boats to take him back to the ship, he sent a flag of truce to the governor to say that he was ready to set the place on fire with the resources he had but, being very unwilling to do so, was open to negotiation on the condition that his entire party could return to their ships unharmed and with their weapons. One can hardly decide which is more impressive: Troubridge’s boldness in making such a request or the honorable way in which these fair terms were quickly granted to a man whose courageous demeanor won the respect of his enemies. Don Juan Gutierrez had fended off numerous attempts with such determination and vigilance, managing his defenses so well that he could afford to be generous. He agreed that Troubridge's men could withdraw, taking with them all British equipment, even the boats that had been captured by the Spaniards but could still float. In exchange, it was agreed that Nelson’s squadron would not make any further attempts on the town. Prisoners from both sides were to be exchanged. Once this agreement was reached, the governor ordered that the British wounded be immediately taken into hospitals, while the rest of the party, colors flying, marched to the mole to board their ships.
Troubridge dwelt with evident pride upon his part in this night's work,—a pride that was shared then by his superiors, and will be justified in the eyes of military men now. "The Spanish officers assure me they expected us, and were perfectly prepared with all the batteries, and the number of men I have before mentioned [8,000], under arms: with the great disadvantage of a rocky coast, high surf, and in the face of forty pieces of cannon, though we were not successful, will show what an Englishman is equal to." His conduct affords for all time an example of superb courage in the face of extraordinary and unexpected difficulty and danger, and especially of single-minded energy in carrying through one's own share of an enterprise, without misplaced concern about consequences, or worry as to whether the other parties were prospering or not. Had Nelson reached the square he would have found Troubridge there, and that was the one thing about which the latter needed to care. Nelson's own words recur to mind: "I have not a thought on any subject separated from the immediate object of my command,"—a maxim eminently suited to the field and to the subordinate, though not necessarily so to the council chamber or to the general officer. Troubridge that night proved himself invaluable as a subordinate, though the conduct of the previous attempt seems to show a lack of that capacity to seize a favorable moment, although in the presence of a superior, of which Nelson himself had given so brilliant an example at Cape St. Vincent.
Troubridge took great pride in his role in this night’s mission—a pride that was shared by his superiors at the time and which military leaders now also acknowledge. "The Spanish officers assured me they anticipated our arrival and were fully prepared with all the batteries, and the 8,000 men I mentioned earlier: despite the challenges of a rocky coastline, high surf, and facing forty cannons, although we weren't successful, it demonstrates what an Englishman is capable of." His actions serve as a lasting example of remarkable bravery in the face of extraordinary and unexpected challenges and dangers, particularly showcasing focused determination in fulfilling one's part of a mission, without stressing over the possible consequences or worrying about whether others were succeeding. If Nelson had reached the square, he would have found Troubridge there, and that was the only thing Troubridge needed to focus on. Nelson's words echo: "I have not a thought on any subject separate from the immediate objective of my command,"—a principle that is essential for the field and for subordinates, though not always applicable in a council chamber or for a general officer. That night, Troubridge proved himself invaluable as a subordinate, even if the previous attempt indicated a failure to seize a favorable moment, despite having a superior present, which Nelson had exemplified brilliantly at Cape St. Vincent.
The squadron remained off Teneriffe for three days after the assault, intercourse with the shore for the purpose of obtaining fresh provisions being permitted by the governor, between whom and the admiral were exchanged complimentary letters and presents of courtesy. On the 27th Nelson sailed for Cadiz, and on the 16th of August rejoined the commander-in-chief, now become Earl St. Vincent. The latter received him with generous sympathy and appreciation, which leave little doubt as to what his verdict would have been, had the gallant initiative taken by his junior at St. Vincent ended in disaster, instead of in brilliant success. Nelson's letters, sent ahead of the squadron by a frigate, had shown the despondency produced by suffering and failure, which had reversed so sharply the good fortune upon which he had begun to pride himself. "I am become a burthen to my friends and useless to my Country. When I leave your command, I become dead to the world; I go hence and am no more seen." "Mortals cannot command success," replied St. Vincent. "You and your companions have certainly deserved it, by the greatest degree of heroism and perseverance that ever was exhibited." Nelson had asked for his stepson's promotion, implying that he himself would not hereafter be in a position of influence to help the boy—for he was little more. "He is under obligations to me, but he repaid me by bringing me from the mole of Santa Cruz." "He saved my life," he said more than once afterwards. St. Vincent immediately made him a commander into the vacancy caused by the death of Captain Bowen, who had fallen in the assault. "Pretty quick promotion," wrote his messmate Hoste, who probably knew, from close association, that Nisbet had not the promising qualities with which he was then credited by his stepfather, from whom in later years he became wholly estranged.
The squadron stayed off Teneriffe for three days after the attack, with permission from the governor to interact with the shore to get fresh supplies. He and the admiral exchanged friendly letters and gifts. On the 27th, Nelson set sail for Cadiz, and on August 16th, he rejoined the commander-in-chief, now Earl St. Vincent. St. Vincent welcomed him with generosity and understanding, leaving little doubt about what his judgment would have been if the brave actions taken by his junior at St. Vincent had ended in failure instead of remarkable success. Nelson's letters, sent ahead by a frigate, showed the despair caused by suffering and setbacks, which had sharply turned the good fortune he had begun to take pride in. "I have become a burden to my friends and useless to my country. When I leave your command, I will be forgotten; I will go away and not be seen anymore." "No one can guarantee success," replied St. Vincent. "You and your crew have truly earned it, through the highest level of bravery and persistence ever shown." Nelson had asked for his stepson's promotion, suggesting that he wouldn’t be in a position to help the boy anymore—who was hardly more than that. "He owes me, but he repaid me by rescuing me from the mole of Santa Cruz." "He saved my life," he mentioned more than once later. St. Vincent promptly promoted him to commander to fill the vacancy left by Captain Bowen's death during the assault. "Pretty quick promotion," wrote his messmate Hoste, who likely knew, from close association, that Nisbet didn't have the promising qualities he was credited with by his stepfather, from whom he eventually became completely estranged.
On the 20th Nelson received formal leave to return to England in the "Seahorse," and on the 3d of September his flag was hauled down at Spithead. On the way home he suffered much. After amputation the ligature had been awkwardly applied to the humeral artery. As he would not allow the surgeon to examine the stump during the passage, this was not then discovered, but the intense spasms of pain kept him irritable and depressed. It is likely, too, that his discouragement was increased by brooding over the failure of his enterprise; believing, as he did, that had he been with the landing-party, the first attempt would have succeeded. He could scarcely fail now to see that, although it was strictly in accordance with service methods for the senior to remain with the ships, the decisive point in the plan, as first formed, was the seizure of the heights, and that there, consequently, was the true place for the one in chief command. Any captain, Troubridge especially, could have placed the ships as well as Nelson. It is self-accusation, and not fault-finding merely, that breathes in the words: "Had I been with the first party, I have reason to believe complete success would have crowned our efforts. My pride suffered."
On the 20th, Nelson officially received leave to return to England on the "Seahorse," and on September 3rd, his flag was lowered at Spithead. During the journey home, he endured a lot. After his amputation, the ligature had been poorly applied to the humeral artery. Since he wouldn't let the surgeon examine the stump during the trip, this issue wasn't identified at the time, but the severe pain kept him irritable and down. It's likely that his discouragement was worsened by his thoughts about the failure of his mission, as he believed that if he had joined the landing party, the first attempt would have succeeded. He must have realized that, although it was standard for the senior officer to stay with the ships, the key part of the plan was to capture the heights, which was, therefore, the true place for the commander in charge. Any captain, especially Troubridge, could have positioned the ships as well as Nelson. There is a sense of self-blame, rather than just criticism, in the words: "Had I been with the first party, I have reason to believe complete success would have crowned our efforts. My pride suffered."
Whatever his mental distress, however, he always, from the time of receiving the wound, wrote to his wife with careful cheerfulness. "As to my health, it never was better; and now I hope soon to return to you; and my Country, I trust, will not allow me any longer to linger in want of that pecuniary assistance which I have been fighting the whole war to preserve to her. But I shall not be surprised to be neglected and forgot, as probably I shall no longer be considered as useful. However, I shall feel rich if I continue to enjoy your affection. I am fortunate in having a good surgeon on board; in short, I am much more recovered than I could have expected. I beg neither you or my father will think much of this mishap: my mind has long been made up to such an event."
Whatever his mental distress, he always, since receiving the wound, wrote to his wife with careful cheerfulness. "As for my health, it’s never been better; and now I hope to return to you soon. I trust my country won't let me linger in need of the financial support I've been fighting all this time to preserve for her. But I won't be surprised if I'm neglected and forgotten, as I probably won't be seen as useful anymore. However, I’ll feel wealthy if I can keep enjoying your love. I’m lucky to have a good surgeon on board; in short, I’m recovering much better than I could have expected. I ask that neither you nor my father worry too much about this mishap: my mind has been made up to expect such an event for quite some time."
Immediately after quitting the "Seahorse" he joined his wife and father at Bath. For a time the wound seemed to be progressing favorably, but the unlucky complication of the ligature threw him back. "Much pain and some fever," he wrote to a friend soon after his arrival; and while he kept up fairly before his wife, who spoke of his spirits as very good, he confessed to St. Vincent, on the 18th of September, that he was then not the least better than when he left the fleet. "I have suffered great misery." This letter was dated in London, whither he had gone a few days before to be invested with the Order of the Bath, which was formally done by George III. in person on the 27th of September. He was graciously received by the King, who conversed with him after the ceremony, and by his manner throughout made a lasting impression upon the mind of Nelson, whose loyalty was intense. The Order of the Bath remained the most highly prized among his many decorations. At the same time was awarded him a pension of £1,000 a year.
Immediately after leaving the "Seahorse," he joined his wife and father in Bath. For a while, it seemed like his recovery was going well, but an unfortunate complication with the ligature set him back. "Much pain and some fever," he wrote to a friend not long after his arrival; while he managed to keep up appearances in front of his wife, who said his spirits were quite good, he admitted to St. Vincent on September 18th that he was no better than when he left the fleet. "I have suffered great misery." This letter was dated in London, where he had gone a few days earlier to receive the Order of the Bath, which was formally presented by George III. himself on September 27th. The King graciously welcomed him and chatted with him after the ceremony, leaving a lasting impression on Nelson, whose loyalty was deep. The Order of the Bath became the most highly valued among his many awards. At the same time, he was granted a pension of £1,000 a year.
He remained in London till near Christmas. Sir Gilbert Elliot, the late Viceroy of Corsica, who about this time became Lord Minto, saw him not long after his arrival there, as did also Colonel Drinkwater. Elliot found him looking better and fresher than he ever remembered him, although the continued pain prevented sleep, except by use of opium. He was already impatient to go to sea again, and chafed under the delay of healing, concerning the duration of which the surgeons could give him no assurance. The ligature must be left to slough away, for it was two inches up the wound, and if, in attempting to cut it, the artery should be cut, another amputation would be necessary higher up, which would not be easy, for the stump was already very short. There was consequently nothing for it but endurance. To his suffering at this time an accomplished surgeon, who sailed with him shortly before Trafalgar, attributed a neuralgic predisposition under which he then labored, and which produced serious effects upon his general health.
He stayed in London until just before Christmas. Sir Gilbert Elliot, the former Viceroy of Corsica, who around this time became Lord Minto, saw him not long after he got there, as did Colonel Drinkwater. Elliot noticed that he looked better and fresher than he ever remembered, even though the ongoing pain kept him from sleeping, except with the help of opium. He was already eager to go back to sea and was frustrated by the slow healing process, about which the surgeons could not provide any guarantees. The ligature needed to slough away because it was two inches up the wound, and if they tried to cut it, there was a risk of cutting the artery, which would require another amputation higher up—a tricky situation since the stump was already very short. So, he had no choice but to endure. An experienced surgeon who sailed with him shortly before Trafalgar noted that his suffering at this time contributed to a neuralgic predisposition that affected his overall health.
A singular exhibition of his characteristic animation and temperament was elicited by Drinkwater's visit. The colonel saw him shortly before the naval battle of Camperdown, fought on the 11th of October. "One of the first questions which Nelson put to me was whether I had been at the Admiralty. I told him there was a rumour that the British fleet had been seen engaged with that of Holland. He started up in his peculiar energetic manner, notwithstanding Lady Nelson's attempts to quiet him, and stretching out his unwounded arm,—'Drinkwater, said he, 'I would give this other arm to be with Duncan[59] at this moment;' so unconquerable was the spirit of the man, and so intense his eagerness to give every instant of his life to the service."
A unique display of his typical energy and personality was sparked by Drinkwater's visit. The Colonel met with him shortly before the naval battle of Camperdown, which took place on October 11th. "One of the first questions Nelson asked me was whether I had been to the Admiralty. I told him there was a rumor that the British fleet had been seen engaged with the Dutch fleet. He jumped up in his usual energetic way, despite Lady Nelson's attempts to calm him, and extending his uninjured arm, he said, 'Drinkwater, I would give this other arm to be with Duncan[59] at this moment;' so unstoppable was his spirit, and so strong his desire to devote every moment of his life to the service."
Until the 4th of December his agony continued. On that day the ligature came away, giving instant and entire relief. In a letter to a friend, apologizing for delay in replying, he said: "Truly, till last Monday, I have suffered so much, I hope for your forgiveness. I am now perfectly recovered, and on the eve of being employed." On Friday, the 8th, he wrote to Captain Berry, who had led the boarders to the "San Nicolas" at Cape St. Vincent, and was designated to command the ship in which the admiral's flag should next be hoisted, saying that he was well; and the same day, with that profound recognition of a personal Providence which was with him as instinctive as his courage, he sent to a London clergyman the following request: "An officer desires to return thanks to Almighty God for his perfect recovery from a severe wound, and also for the many mercies bestowed upon him. (For next Sunday.)"
Until December 4th, his suffering went on. On that day, the bandage came off, bringing instant and complete relief. In a letter to a friend, apologizing for the delay in responding, he wrote: "Honestly, until last Monday, I endured so much; I hope you can forgive me. I'm now fully recovered and about to start working again." On Friday, the 8th, he wrote to Captain Berry, who had taken the boarders to the "San Nicolas" at Cape St. Vincent and was set to command the ship where the admiral's flag would next be raised, saying that he was doing well; and that same day, with a deep sense of personal gratitude that felt as natural to him as his bravery, he sent a request to a London clergyman: "An officer wants to thank Almighty God for his full recovery from a serious wound, and also for the many blessings he has received. (For next Sunday.)"
As the close attention of the skilled surgeons in whose hands he had been was now no longer needed, he returned to Bath to await the time when his flagship should be completely equipped. St. Vincent had asked that the "Foudroyant," of eighty guns, should be prepared for him; but, after his sudden recovery, as she was not yet ready, there was substituted for her the "Vanguard," seventy-four, which was commissioned by Berry at Chatham on the 19th of December. In March she had reached Portsmouth, and Nelson then went up to London, where he attended a levee on the 14th of the month and took leave of the King. On the 29th his flag was hoisted, and on the 10th of April, after a week's detention at St. Helen's by head winds, he sailed for Lisbon. There he remained for four days, and on the 30th of the month, off Cadiz, rejoined St. Vincent, by whom he was received with open arms. The veteran seaman, stern and resolved as was his bearing in the face of danger, was unhopeful about the results of the war, which from the first he had not favored, and for whose ending he was eager. Now, at sixty-four, his health was failing, and the difficulties and dangers of the British cause in the Mediterranean weighed upon him, with a discouragement very alien from the sanguine joy with which his ardent junior looked forward to coming battles. His request to be relieved from command, on the score of ill health, was already on file at the Admiralty. "I do assure your Lordship," he wrote to Earl Spencer, "that the arrival of Admiral Nelson has given me new life; you could not have gratified me more than in sending him; his presence in the Mediterranean is so very essential, that I mean to put the "Orion" and "Alexander" under his command, with the addition of three or four frigates, and send him away, to endeavour to ascertain the real object of the preparations making by the French." These preparations for a maritime expedition were being made at Toulon and the neighboring ports, on a scale which justly aroused the anxiety of the British Cabinet, as no certain information about their object had been obtained.
As the skilled surgeons who had been caring for him no longer needed to keep such close watch, he returned to Bath to wait until his flagship was fully equipped. St. Vincent had requested that the "Foudroyant," with eighty guns, be readied for him; however, after his sudden recovery, since she was not yet prepared, he was given the "Vanguard," which had seventy-four guns and was commissioned by Berry at Chatham on December 19. By March, she had arrived in Portsmouth, and Nelson then went up to London, where he attended a levee on the 14th of the month and took his leave from the King. On the 29th, his flag was raised, and on April 10, after being held up for a week at St. Helen's due to headwinds, he set sail for Lisbon. He stayed there for four days, and on the 30th of the month, off Cadiz, he rejoined St. Vincent, who welcomed him warmly. The veteran sailor, despite his stern demeanor in the face of danger, felt doubtful about the war's outcome, which he had not supported from the beginning, and was eager for it to end. Now, at sixty-four, his health was declining, and the challenges and risks faced by the British cause in the Mediterranean burdened him with a discouragement that was a stark contrast to the hopeful excitement that his younger counterpart felt about upcoming battles. His request for relief from command due to ill health was already submitted to the Admiralty. "I assure you, my Lord," he wrote to Earl Spencer, "that Admiral Nelson's arrival has revitalized me; you couldn't have pleased me more than by sending him; his presence in the Mediterranean is so crucial that I intend to put the 'Orion' and 'Alexander' under his command, along with three or four frigates, and send him out to try to find out the real purpose behind the preparations being made by the French." These preparations for a naval expedition were occurring at Toulon and nearby ports on such a scale that it rightly raised concerns within the British Cabinet, as there was no reliable information about their purpose.
Nelson's departure from England on this occasion closes the first of the two periods into which his career naturally divides. From his youth until now, wherever situated, the development has been consecutive and homogeneous, external influences and internal characteristics have worked harmoniously together, nature and ambition have responded gladly to opportunity, and the course upon which they have combined to urge him has conformed to his inherited and acquired standards of right and wrong. Doubt, uncertainty, inward friction, double motives, have been unknown to him; he has moved freely in accordance with the laws of his being, and, despite the anxieties of his profession and the frailty of his health, there is no mistaking the tone of happiness and contentment which sounds without a jarring note throughout his correspondence. A change was now at hand. As the sails of the "Vanguard" dip below the horizon of England, a brief interlude begins, and when the curtain rises again, the scene is shifted,—surroundings have changed. We see again the same man, but standing at the opening of a new career, whose greatness exceeds by far even the high anticipations that had been formed for him. Before leaving England he is a man of distinction only; prominent, possibly, among the many distinguished men of his own profession, but the steady upward course has as yet been gradual, the shining of the light, if it has latterly shot forth flashes suggestive of hidden fires, is still characterized by sustained growth in intensity rather than by rapid increase. No present sign so far foretells the sudden ascent to fame, the burst of meridian splendor with which the sun of his renown was soon to rise upon men's eyes, and in which it ran its course to the cloudless finish of his day.
Nelson's departure from England at this time marks the end of the first of the two stages in his career. From his youth until now, wherever he has been, his development has been continuous and consistent. External influences and internal traits have worked together harmoniously; nature and ambition have eagerly responded to opportunities, and the direction in which they’ve pushed him aligns with his inherited and learned principles of right and wrong. He has never struggled with doubt, uncertainty, internal conflict, or mixed motives; he has moved freely in line with his true nature. Despite the stress of his profession and his fragile health, there's no mistaking the tone of happiness and satisfaction that resonates throughout his correspondence. Change is on the horizon. As the sails of the "Vanguard" disappear below the horizon of England, a brief interlude begins, and when the scene shifts, everything has changed. We see the same man once more, but he is now at the start of a new career, one that far surpasses even the high hopes that were set for him. Before leaving England, he is simply a distinguished man; notable among many other distinguished individuals in his field, but his steady rise has been gradual. The recent flashes of brilliance suggest hidden potential, yet it’s still marked more by steady growth in intensity rather than a rapid spike. There are no current signs pointing to the sudden rise to fame, the burst of bright glory with which the sun of his renown was about to greet the world, shining until the end of his day.
Not that there is in that course—in its achievements—any disproportion with the previous promise. The magnitude of the development we are about to witness is due, not to a change in him, but to the increased greatness of the opportunities. A man of like record in the past, but less gifted, might, it is true, have failed to fill the new sphere which the future was to present. Nelson proved fully equal to it, because he possessed genius for war, intellectual faculties, which, though not unsuspected, had not hitherto been allowed scope for their full exercise. Before him was now about to open a field of possibilities hitherto unexampled in naval warfare; and for the appreciation of them was needed just those perceptions, intuitive in origin, yet resting firmly on well-ordered rational processes, which, on the intellectual side, distinguished him above all other British seamen. He had already, in casual comment upon the military conditions surrounding the former Mediterranean campaigns, given indications of these perceptions, which it has been the aim of previous chapters to elicit from his correspondence, and to marshal in such order as may illustrate his mental characteristics. But, for success in war, the indispensable complement of intellectual grasp and insight is a moral power, which enables a man to trust the inner light,—to have faith,—a power which dominates hesitation, and sustains action, in the most tremendous emergencies, and which, from the formidable character of the difficulties it is called to confront, is in no men so conspicuously prominent as in those who are entitled to rank among great captains. The two elements—mental and moral power—are often found separately, rarely in due combination. In Nelson they met, and their coincidence with the exceptional opportunities afforded him constituted his good fortune and his greatness.
Not that in that journey—in its achievements—there's any mismatch with what was previously promised. The extent of the progress we're about to witness isn’t because he changed, but due to the greater opportunities available. A person with a similar history but less talent might have struggled to thrive in the new environment the future was to present. Nelson proved to be fully capable of it because he had a talent for warfare and intellectual abilities that, although not entirely unrecognized, hadn't been fully utilized until now. Before him lay a field of possibilities previously unseen in naval warfare; understanding them required those insights, which were instinctive yet based on logical thought, that set him apart from all other British sailors. He had already hinted at these insights through casual remarks about the military conditions in earlier Mediterranean campaigns, which the previous chapters aimed to draw from his correspondence and arrange to highlight his intellectual traits. However, for success in warfare, the critical complement to intellectual understanding is a moral strength that allows a person to trust their intuition—to have faith—a power that overcomes doubt and drives action in critical situations. This strength is especially prominent in those who deserve to be called great leaders. The two aspects—mental and moral strength—are often found separately, but rarely combined effectively. In Nelson, they came together, and their alignment with the exceptional opportunities he had constituted both his fortune and his greatness.
The intellectual endowment of genius was Nelson's from the first; but from the circumstances of his life it was denied the privilege of early manifestation, such as was permitted to Napoleon. It is, consequently, not so much this as the constant exhibition of moral power, force of character, which gives continuity to his professional career, and brings the successive stages of his advance, in achievement and reputation, from first to last, into the close relation of steady development, subject to no variation save that of healthy and vigorous growth, till he stood unique—above all competition. This it was—not, doubtless, to the exclusion of that reputation for having a head, upon which he justly prided himself—which had already fixed the eyes of his superiors upon him as the one officer, not yet indeed fully tested, most likely to cope with the difficulties of any emergency. In the display of this, in its many self-revelations,—in concentration of purpose, untiring energy, fearlessness of responsibility, judgment sound and instant, boundless audacity, promptness, intrepidity, and endurance beyond all proof,—the restricted field of Corsica and the Riviera, the subordinate position at Cape St. Vincent, the failure of Teneriffe, had in their measure been as fruitful as the Nile was soon to be, and fell naught behind the bloody harvests of Copenhagen and Trafalgar. Men have been disposed, therefore, to reckon this moral energy—call it courage, dash, resolution, what you will—as Nelson's one and only great quality. It was the greatest, as it is in all successful men of action; but to ignore that this mighty motive force was guided by singularly clear and accurate perceptions, upon which also it consciously rested with a firmness of faith that constituted much of its power, is to rob him of a great part of his due renown.
From the very beginning, Nelson had a natural intellectual gift that marked him as a genius; however, due to his life circumstances, he wasn’t able to showcase it early on like Napoleon. Therefore, it’s not just his genius but rather the consistent display of moral strength and character that provided continuity in his career, connecting each phase of his achievements and reputation into a steady progression, with no fluctuations except for healthy and vigorous growth, until he stood apart, above all competition. This, along with his well-deserved reputation for being sharp, earned him the attention of his superiors, who saw him as the best officer likely to handle any challenges that came his way, even though he hadn’t been fully tested yet. His many qualities—focused determination, tireless energy, fearlessness in bearing responsibility, quick and sound judgment, boundless bravery, promptness, courage, and exceptional endurance—made his experiences in Corsica, the Riviera, his lesser role at Cape St. Vincent, and the setback at Teneriffe as valuable as the significant battles of Copenhagen and Trafalgar. Therefore, people have tended to regard this moral strength—whether you call it courage, flair, or resolve—as Nelson’s defining trait. It is indeed the most significant characteristic, as is typical for all successful individuals in action. However, to overlook the fact that this powerful driving force was backed by remarkably clear and accurate insights, which it depended on with a firm faith that contributed greatly to its strength, is to deny him a significant portion of the recognition he deserves.
But it was not only in the greatness of the opportunities offered to Nelson that external conditions now changed. The glory of the hero brought a temptation which wrecked the happiness of the man. The loss of serenity, the dark evidences of inward conflict, of yielding against conviction, of consequent dissatisfaction with self and gradual deterioration, make between his past and future a break as clear, and far sharper than, the startling increase of radiancy that attends the Battle of the Nile, and thenceforth shines with undiminished intensity to the end. The lustre of his well-deserved and world-wide renown, the consistency and ever-rising merit of his professional conduct, contrast painfully with the shadows of reprobation, the swerving, and the declension, which begin to attend a life heretofore conformed, in the general, to healthy normal standards of right and wrong, but now allowed to violate, not merely ideal Christian rectitude, but the simple, natural dictates of upright dealing between man and man. It had been the proud boast of early years: "There is no action in my whole life but what is honourable." The attainment of glory exceeding even his own great aspirations coincides with dereliction from the plain rules of honor between friends, and with public humiliation to his wife, which he allowed himself to inflict, notwithstanding that he admitted her claims to his deferential consideration to be unbroken. In this contrast, of the exaltation of the hero and the patriot with the degradation of the man, lie the tragedy and the misery of Nelson's story. And this, too, was incurred on behalf of a woman whose reputation and conduct were such that no shred of dignity could attach to an infatuation as doting as it was blamable. The pitiful inadequacy of the temptation to the ruin it caused invests with a kind of prophecy the words he had written to his betrothed in the heyday of courtship: "These I trust will ever be my sentiments; if they are not, I do verily believe it will be my folly that occasions it."
But it wasn’t just the great opportunities given to Nelson that changed the outside circumstances. The hero's glory came with a temptation that destroyed the happiness of the man. The loss of peace, the clear signs of internal struggle, of going against his beliefs, of feeling dissatisfied with himself, and the gradual decline create a divide between his past and future that is as clear and sharp as the shocking brightness that follows the Battle of the Nile and continues to shine with full intensity until the end. The shine of his well-earned and global fame, along with the consistency and increasing merit of his professional behavior, sharply contrasts with the shadows of disapproval, the deviations, and the downward spiral that begin to mark a life that was previously aligned with healthy standards of right and wrong, but now allowed transgressions against not just ideal Christian morality, but also the basic, natural principles of fair dealing between people. He had confidently claimed in his early years, “There’s not one action in my entire life that isn’t honorable.” The achievement of glory beyond his own expectations coincides with the abandonment of the straightforward rules of honor between friends and with publicly humiliating his wife, which he let happen even though he acknowledged her right to his respectful consideration was undiminished. In this contrast between the elevation of the hero and patriot and the degradation of the man lies the tragedy and misery of Nelson’s story. This was also at the expense of a woman whose reputation and behavior were such that no bit of dignity could be associated with an obsession as loving as it was blameworthy. The glaring inadequacy of the temptation compared to the destruction it caused gives a prophetic quality to the words he wrote to his fiancée during the peak of their courtship: “I hope these will always be my feelings; if they aren’t, I truly believe it will be my folly that causes it.”
The inward struggle, though severe, was short and decisive. Once determined on his course, he choked down scruples and hesitations, and cast them from him with the same single-minded resolution that distinguished his public acts. "Fixed as fate," were the remorseless words with which he characterized his firm purpose to trample conscience under foot, and to reject his wife in favor of his mistress. But although ease may be obtained by silencing self-reproach, safety scarcely can. One cannot get the salt out of his life, and not be the worse for it. Much that made Nelson so lovable remained to the end; but into his heart, as betrayed by his correspondence, and into his life, from the occasional glimpses afforded by letters or journals of associates, there thenceforth entered much that is unlovely, and which to no appreciable extent was seen before. The simple bonhomie, the absence of conventional reticence, the superficial lack of polish, noted by his early biographers, and which he had had no opportunity to acquire, the childlike vanity that transpires so innocently in his confidential home letters, and was only the weak side of his noble longing for heroic action, degenerated rapidly into loss of dignity of life, into an unseemly susceptibility to extravagant adulation, as he succumbed to surroundings, the corruptness of which none at first realized more clearly, and where one woman was the sole detaining fascination. And withal, as the poison worked, discontent with self bred discontent with others, and with his own conditions. Petulance and querulousness too often supplanted the mental elasticity, which had counted for naught the roughnesses on the road to fame. The mind not worthily occupied, and therefore ill at ease, became embittered, prone to censure and to resent, suspicious at times and harsh in judgment, gradually tending towards alienation, not from his wife only, but from his best and earliest friends.
The internal struggle, while intense, was brief and conclusive. Once he made up his mind, he pushed aside any doubts and hesitations, and cast them away with the same determination that marked his public actions. He described his firm decision to ignore his conscience and choose his mistress over his wife with the ruthless phrase, "Fixed as fate." However, while silencing self-reproach may bring some relief, true safety is harder to achieve. You can't remove the salt from your life without suffering consequences. Much of what made Nelson so endearing remained until the end; yet, as revealed in his letters, a lot of unattractive traits crept into his heart and life, which hadn’t been as evident before. The simple friendliness, the lack of social restraint, the surface-level roughness noted by his early biographers—traits he hadn’t had the chance to refine—the childlike vanity displayed in his intimate home letters, which was just the vulnerable side of his noble desire for heroic deeds, quickly deteriorated into a loss of dignity and an uncomfortable susceptibility to excessive praise, as he gave in to an environment that no one initially recognized as corrupt, where one woman was his only compelling distraction. As the negativity took hold, his discontent with himself grew into discontent with others and his circumstances. Irritability and complaining often replaced the mental flexibility that allowed him to overlook the difficulties on his path to fame. His mind, not properly engaged and, therefore, restless, became resentful, inclined to criticize and bear a grudge, at times suspicious and harsh in judgment, gradually leading to a rift not just with his wife but also with his closest and oldest friends.
During the short stay of seven months in England, which ended with the sailing of the "Vanguard," the record of his correspondence is necessarily very imperfect, both from the loss of his arm, and from the fact of his being with his family. Such indications as there are point to unbroken relations of tenderness with his wife. "I found my domestic happiness perfect," he wrote to Lord St. Vincent, shortly after his arrival home; and some months later, in a letter from Bath to a friend, he says jestingly: "Tell—that I possess his place in Mr. Palmer's box; but he did not tell me all its charms, that generally some of the handsomest ladies in Bath are partakers in the box, and was I a bachelor I would not answer for being tempted; but as I am possessed of everything which is valuable in a wife, I have no occasion to think beyond a pretty face." Lady Nelson attended personally to the dressing of his arm; she accompanied him in his journeys between Bath and London, and they separated only when he left town to hoist his flag at Portsmouth. The letters of Lady Saumarez, the wife of one of his brother captains then serving with Lord St. Vincent, mention frequent meetings with the two together in the streets of Bath; and upon the 1st of May, the day before leaving the fleet off Cadiz for the Mediterranean, on the expedition which was to result in the Nile, and all the consequences so fatal to the happiness of both, he concludes his letter, "with every kind wish that a fond heart can frame, believe me, as ever, your most affectionate husband."
During his short stay of seven months in England, which ended with the sailing of the "Vanguard," his correspondence records are necessarily very incomplete, both because he lost his arm and because he was with his family. The few indications suggest he maintained a close and loving relationship with his wife. "I found my domestic happiness perfect," he wrote to Lord St. Vincent shortly after getting home; and a few months later, in a letter from Bath to a friend, he jokingly says: "Tell— that I have his spot in Mr. Palmer's box; but he didn’t inform me of all its charms— that some of the most beautiful ladies in Bath share the box, and if I were a bachelor I can’t guarantee I wouldn’t be tempted; but since I have everything valuable in a wife, I have no need to think beyond a pretty face." Lady Nelson took care of his arm dressing personally; she traveled with him between Bath and London, and they only parted when he left to raise his flag in Portsmouth. The letters from Lady Saumarez, the wife of one of his captain colleagues serving with Lord St. Vincent, mention their frequent encounters together in the streets of Bath; and on May 1st, the day before he left the fleet off Cadiz for the Mediterranean, on the expedition that would lead to the Nile and all the unfortunate consequences for both of their happiness, he ends his letter, "with every kind wish that a loving heart can frame, believe me, as ever, your most affectionate husband."
On the 2d of May the "Vanguard" quitted the fleet for Gibraltar, where she arrived on the 4th. On the 7th Nelson issued orders to Sir James Saumarez, commanding the "Orion," and to Captain Alexander Ball, commanding the "Alexander," both seventy-fours, to place themselves under his command; and the following day the "Vanguard" sailed, in company with these ships and five smaller vessels, to begin the memorable campaign, of which the Battle of the Nile was the most conspicuous incident.
On May 2nd, the "Vanguard" left the fleet for Gibraltar, arriving on the 4th. On the 7th, Nelson gave orders to Sir James Saumarez, who commanded the "Orion," and Captain Alexander Ball, who commanded the "Alexander," both seventy-fours, to place themselves under his command. The next day, the "Vanguard" set sail with these ships and five smaller vessels to kick off the memorable campaign, with the Battle of the Nile being the most notable event.
FOOTNOTES:
CHAPTER X.
THE CAMPAIGN AND BATTLE OF THE NILE.
THE CAMPAIGN AND BATTLE OF THE NILE.
MAY-SEPTEMBER, 1798. AGE, 39.
May-September 1798. Age 39.
Between the time that Nelson was wounded at Teneriffe, July 24, 1797, and his return to active service in April, 1798, important and ominous changes had been occurring in the political conditions of Europe. These must be taken briefly into account, because the greatness of the issues thence arising, as understood by the British Government, measures the importance in its eyes of the enterprise which it was about to intrust, by deliberate selection, to one of the youngest flag-officers upon the list. The fact of the choice shows the estimation to which Nelson had already attained in the eyes of the Admiralty.
Between the time Nelson was injured at Teneriffe on July 24, 1797, and his return to active service in April 1798, significant and alarming changes were taking place in Europe's political landscape. These changes need to be briefly considered, as the magnitude of the resulting issues, as recognized by the British Government, reflects how important the upcoming mission was deemed, especially as it was assigned to one of the youngest flag officers on the list. The choice itself indicates the high regard in which Nelson was already held by the Admiralty.
In July, 1797, Great Britain alone was at war with France, and so continued for over a year longer. Portugal, though nominally an ally, contributed to the common cause nothing but the use of the Tagus by the British Navy. Austria, it is true, had not yet finally made peace with France, but preliminaries had been signed in April, and the definitive treaty of Campo Formio was concluded in October. By it Belgium became incorporated in the territory of France, to which was conceded also the frontier of the Rhine. The base of her power was thus advanced to the river, over which the possession of the fortified city of Mayence gave her an easy passage, constituting a permanent threat of invasion to Germany. Venice, as a separate power, disappeared. Part of her former domains upon the mainland, with the city itself, went to Austria, but part was taken to constitute the Cisalpine Republic,—a new state in Northern Italy, nominally independent, but really under the control of France, to whom it owed its existence. Corfu, and the neighboring islands at the mouth of the Adriatic, till then belonging to Venice, were transferred to France. The choice of these distant and isolated maritime positions, coupled with the retention of a large army in the valley of the Po, showed, if any evidence were needed, a determination to assure control over the Italian peninsula and the Mediterranean Sea.
In July 1797, Great Britain was at war with France, and that conflict continued for over a year. Portugal, while technically an ally, contributed nothing to the shared effort except for allowing the British Navy to use the Tagus River. Austria hadn’t finalized peace with France yet, but preliminary agreements were signed in April, and the definitive treaty of Campo Formio was completed in October. As a result, Belgium was integrated into French territory, which also included control of the Rhine border. This expanded France's power base to the river, and with the fortified city of Mainz under its control, Germany faced a constant threat of invasion. Venice ceased to exist as an independent power. Some of its former territories on the mainland, including the city itself, went to Austria, while others were established as the Cisalpine Republic—a new state in Northern Italy that was nominally independent but really under French influence, which had helped create it. Corfu and nearby islands at the mouth of the Adriatic, previously part of Venice, were handed over to France. The selection of these remote and isolated maritime positions, along with a large army retained in the Po Valley, clearly indicated France's intention to secure control over the Italian peninsula and the Mediterranean Sea.
The formal acquisitions by treaty, even, did not measure the full menace of the conditions. The Revolutionary ferment, which had partially subsided, received fresh impetus from the victories of Bonaparte and the cessation of Continental war; and the diplomacy of France continued as active and as aggressive as the movement of her armies had previously been. By constant interference, overt and secret, not always stopping short of violence, French influence and French ideas were propagated among the weaker adjoining states. Holland, Switzerland, and the Italian Republics became outposts of France, occupied by French troops, and upon them were forced governments conformed to the existing French pattern. In short, the aggrandizement of France, not merely in moral influence but in physical control, was being pushed forward as decisively in peace as in war, and by means which threatened the political equilibrium of Europe. But, while all states were threatened, Great Britain remained the one chief enemy against which ultimately the efforts of France must be, and were, concentrated. "Either our government must destroy the English monarchy," wrote Bonaparte at this time, "or must expect itself to be destroyed by the corruption and intrigue of those active islanders." The British ministry on its part also realized that the sea-power of their country was the one force from which, because so manifold in its activities, and so readily exerted in many quarters by reason of its mobility, France had most reason to fear the arrest of its revolutionary advance and the renewal of the Continental war. It was, therefore, the one opponent against which the efforts of the French must necessarily be directed. For the same reason it was the one centre around whose action, wisely guided, the elements of discontent, already stirring, might gather, upon the occurrence of a favorable moment, and constitute a body of resistance capable of stopping aggressions which threatened the general well-being.
The official acquisitions by treaty didn't fully capture the threat of the situation. The revolutionary unrest, which had calmed down somewhat, got a new boost from Bonaparte's victories and the end of the Continental war; French diplomacy remained as active and aggressive as the movement of its armies had been. Through constant interference, both open and covert, sometimes crossing into violence, French influence and ideas spread among the weaker neighboring states. Holland, Switzerland, and the Italian Republics became French outposts occupied by French troops, and governments that mimicked the French model were imposed on them. In short, France's expansion, not just in moral influence but in physical control, was advancing as decisively in peace as in war, using methods that threatened Europe's political balance. However, while all states were at risk, Great Britain stood out as the main enemy against whom France's efforts were ultimately focused. "Either our government must destroy the English monarchy," Bonaparte wrote at this time, "or we should expect to be destroyed by the corruption and scheming of those active islanders." The British government also recognized that their sea power was the one force France had the most reason to fear, as it was so versatile and could be deployed in many areas due to its mobility, threatening to halt France's revolutionary momentum and restart the Continental war. Thus, it was the main adversary against which France’s efforts had to be directed. For the same reason, it became the focal point around which discontented elements, already restless, could gather, and when an opportunity arose, form a resistance capable of stopping aggressions that jeopardized the overall welfare.
When the British Government found that the overtures for peace which it had made in the summer of 1797 could have no result, except on terms too humiliating to be considered, it at once turned its attention to the question of waging a distinctively offensive war, for effect in which co-operation was needed. The North of Europe was hopeless. Prussia persisted in the policy of isolation, adopted in 1795 by herself and a number of the northern German states. Russia was quietly hostile to France, but the interference contemplated by the Empress Catherine had been averted by her death in 1796, and her successor, Paul, had shown no intention of undertaking it. There remained, therefore, the Mediterranean. In Italy, France stood face to face with Austria and Naples, and both these were dissatisfied with the action taken by her in the Peninsula itself and in Switzerland, besides sharing the apprehension of most other governments from the disquiet attending her political course. An advance into the Mediterranean was therefore resolved by the British Cabinet.
When the British Government realized that the peace proposals it had made in the summer of 1797 would lead to nothing but terms too humiliating to consider, it quickly shifted its focus to the idea of launching a distinctly offensive war, which would require cooperation. The situation in Northern Europe was bleak. Prussia continued its policy of isolation, which it had adopted in 1795 along with several northern German states. Russia was quietly unfriendly toward France, but the intervention planned by Empress Catherine was blocked by her death in 1796, and her successor, Paul, showed no interest in pursuing it. This left the Mediterranean as the only option. In Italy, France was directly confronted by Austria and Naples, both of which were unhappy with France's actions in the Peninsula and Switzerland, in addition to sharing the concerns of most other governments regarding her political maneuvers. As a result, the British Cabinet decided to move forward into the Mediterranean.
This purpose disconcerted St. Vincent, who, besides his aversion from the war in general, was distinguished rather by tenacity and resolution in meeting difficulties and dangers, when forced upon him, than by the sanguine and enterprising initiative in offensive measures which characterized Nelson. Writing to the latter on the 8th of January, 1798, he says: "I am much at a loss to reconcile the plans in contemplation to augment this fleet and extend its operations, with the peace which Portugal seems determined to make with France, upon any terms the latter may please to impose; because Gibraltar is an unsafe depot for either stores or provisions, which the Spaniards have always in their power to destroy, and the French keep such an army in Italy, that Tuscany and Naples would fall a sacrifice to any the smallest assistance rendered to our fleet." In other words, the old question of supplies still dominated the situation, in the apprehension of this experienced officer. Yet, in view of the serious condition of things, and the probable defection of Portugal under the threats of France and Spain, to which he alludes, it seems probable that the ministry were better advised, in their determination to abandon a passive defence against an enemy unrelentingly bent upon their destruction. As Nelson said of a contingency not more serious: "Desperate affairs require desperate remedies."
This situation troubled St. Vincent, who, besides his general dislike for war, was more known for his determination and ability to handle challenges when they arose, rather than the bold and proactive approach to offensive actions that defined Nelson. In a letter to Nelson dated January 8, 1798, he wrote: "I'm quite unsure how to align the plans to strengthen this fleet and expand its operations with the peace that Portugal seems ready to make with France, on whatever terms France wants; because Gibraltar is an unreliable place for storing supplies, which the Spaniards can easily destroy, and the French have such a strong army in Italy that Tuscany and Naples would pay the price for even the slightest help given to our fleet." In other words, the old issue of supplies still overshadowed the situation, according to this seasoned officer. However, given the serious circumstances and the likely betrayal of Portugal due to the threats from France and Spain, as he mentioned, it seems that the government was wiser in their choice to move away from a passive defense against an enemy determined to eradicate them. As Nelson remarked about a less dire situation: "Desperate times call for desperate measures."
However determined the British Government might be to act in the Mediterranean, some temporary perplexity must at first have been felt as to where to strike, until a movement of the enemy solved the doubt. In the early months of 1798 the Directory decided upon the Egyptian expedition under General Bonaparte, and, although its destination was guarded with admirable secrecy until long after the armament sailed, the fact necessarily transpired that preparations were being made on a most extensive scale for a maritime enterprise. The news soon reached England, as it did also Jervis at his station off Cadiz. Troops and transports were assembling in large numbers at the southern ports of France, in Genoa, Civita Vecchia, and Corsica, while a fleet of at least a dozen ships-of-the-line was fitting out at Toulon. Various surmises were afloat as to the object, but all at this time were wide of the mark.
However determined the British Government might be to act in the Mediterranean, there must have initially been some confusion about where to strike until a movement from the enemy clarified the situation. In the early months of 1798, the Directory decided on the Egyptian expedition led by General Bonaparte, and although the destination was kept under impressive secrecy until well after the armada set sail, it was clear that extensive preparations were underway for a maritime venture. News quickly reached England, as it did Jervis at his post off Cadiz. Troops and transports were gathering in large numbers at the southern ports of France, in Genoa, Civita Vecchia, and Corsica, while a fleet of at least a dozen ships-of-the-line was being outfitted at Toulon. Various theories were circulating about the objective, but at that time, they were all off the mark.
On the 29th of April, less than three weeks after Nelson left England, but before he joined the fleet, the Cabinet issued orders to St. Vincent to take such measures as he deemed necessary to thwart the projects of the Toulon squadron. It was left to his judgment whether to go in person with his whole fleet, or to send a detachment of not less than nine or ten ships-of-the-line under a competent flag-officer. If possible, the government wished him to maintain the blockade of Cadiz as it had been established since the Battle of St. Vincent; but everything was to yield to the necessity of checking the sailing of the Toulon expedition, or of defeating it, if it had already started. A speedy reinforcement was promised, to supply the places of the ships that might be detached.
On April 29th, less than three weeks after Nelson left England but before he joined the fleet, the Cabinet ordered St. Vincent to take any measures he thought necessary to disrupt the plans of the Toulon squadron. It was up to him to decide whether to go personally with his entire fleet or to send a detachment of at least nine or ten ships of the line under a capable flag officer. If possible, the government wanted him to keep the blockade of Cadiz in place as it had been since the Battle of St. Vincent; however, everything else was secondary to the need to stop the Toulon expedition from leaving or to defeat it if it was already underway. A quick reinforcement was promised to replace any ships that might be sent out.
Accompanying the public letter was a private one from the First Lord of the Admiralty, reflecting the views and anxieties of the Government. "The circumstances in which we now find ourselves oblige us to take a measure of a more decided and hazardous complexion than we should otherwise have thought ourselves justified in taking; but when you are apprized that the appearance of a British squadron in the Mediterranean is a condition on which the fate of Europe may at this moment be stated to depend, you will not be surprised that we are disposed to strain every nerve, and incur considerable hazard in effecting it." This impressive, almost solemn, statement, of the weighty and anxious character of the intended step, emphasizes the significance of the choice, which the First Lord indicates as that of the Government, of the officer upon whom such a charge is to devolve. "If you determine to send a detachment into the Mediterranean [instead of going in person with the fleet], I think it almost unnecessary to suggest to you the propriety of putting it under the command of Sir H. Nelson, whose acquaintance with that part of the world, as well as his activity and disposition, seem to qualify him in a peculiar manner for that service."
Accompanying the public letter was a private one from the First Lord of the Admiralty, reflecting the views and concerns of the Government. "The situation we find ourselves in requires us to take a more decisive and risky action than we would normally consider appropriate; but when you understand that the presence of a British squadron in the Mediterranean is crucial to the fate of Europe right now, you won't be surprised that we are willing to stretch ourselves thin and take significant risks to make it happen." This impressive, almost grave statement highlights the seriousness and concern surrounding this decision, which the First Lord identifies as a choice made by the Government regarding the officer responsible for this mission. "If you decide to send a detachment into the Mediterranean [instead of going there yourself with the fleet], I think it's almost unnecessary to remind you that it would be appropriate to put it under the command of Sir H. Nelson, whose familiarity with that region, along with his energy and temperament, make him particularly suited for that assignment."
In concluding his letter, Earl Spencer summed up the reasons of the Government, and his own sense of the great risk attending the undertaking, for the conduct of which he designated Nelson. "I am as strongly impressed, as I have no doubt your Lordship will be, with the hazardous nature of the measure which we now have in contemplation; but I cannot at the same time help feeling how much depends upon its success, and how absolutely necessary it is at this time to run some risk, in order, if possible, to bring about a new system of affairs in Europe, which shall save us all from being overrun by the exorbitant power of France. In this view of the subject, it is impossible not to perceive how much depends on the exertions of the great Continental powers; and, without entering further into what relates more particularly to them, I can venture to assure you that no good will be obtained from them if some such measure as that now in contemplation is not immediately adopted. On the other hand, if, by our appearance in the Mediterranean, we can encourage Austria to come forward again, it is in the highest degree probable that the other powers will seize the opportunity of acting at the same time, and such a general concert be established as shall soon bring this great contest to a termination, on grounds less unfavorable by many degrees to the parties concerned than appeared likely a short time since." It may be added here, by way of comment, that the ups and downs of Nelson's pursuit, the brilliant victory at the Nile, and the important consequences flowing from it, not only fully justified this forecast, but illustrated aptly that in war, when a line of action has been rightly chosen, the following it up despite great risks, and with resolute perseverance through many disappointments, will more often than not give great success,—a result which may probably be attributed to the moral force which necessarily underlies determined daring and sustained energy.
In closing his letter, Earl Spencer outlined the government's reasons, as well as his own concerns about the significant risks involved in the mission he assigned to Nelson. "I feel just as strongly as I’m sure you do, your Lordship, about the risky nature of the plan we are considering; however, I can’t help but recognize how crucial its success is, and how necessary it is right now to take some risks to hopefully establish a new order in Europe that will protect us from being overwhelmed by France’s excessive power. From this perspective, it’s clear how much relies on the efforts of the major Continental powers; without going into more detail about them, I can assure you that we won't achieve anything with them if we don’t immediately adopt a measure like the one we are contemplating. On the flip side, if we can encourage Austria to step up by showing our presence in the Mediterranean, it’s highly likely that the other powers will take the opportunity to act simultaneously, leading to a united effort that could swiftly bring this major conflict to a close on terms significantly more favorable for those involved than seemed possible a short time ago." It’s worth noting that the ups and downs of Nelson’s mission, the remarkable victory at the Nile, and its significant consequences not only fully supported this prediction but also highlighted that in war, when the right course of action has been chosen, pursuing it resolutely despite great risks and through numerous setbacks often leads to great success—an outcome likely due to the moral strength that underlies bold determination and sustained effort.
As has appeared, the Government's recommendation had been ratified beforehand by St. Vincent, in sending Nelson with three ships to watch Toulon. Upon receiving the despatches, on the 10th of May, the admiral's first step was to order Nelson to return at once to the fleet, to take charge of the detachment from the beginning. "You, and you only, can command the important service in contemplation; therefore, make the best of your way down to me." More urgent letters arriving from England, with news that a heavy reinforcement had left there, he, on the 19th, hurried off a brig, "La Mutine," commanded by Hardy, Nelson's former lieutenant, to notify the rear-admiral that a squadron of ten ships would be sent to him shortly from before Cadiz; and on the 21st this detachment sailed, under the command of Captain Troubridge.
As has been noted, the Government's recommendation had been approved earlier by St. Vincent, by sending Nelson with three ships to observe Toulon. Upon receiving the messages on May 10th, the admiral's first action was to order Nelson to immediately return to the fleet to lead the detachment from the start. "You, and you alone, can command this important mission; so make your way to me as quickly as possible." With more urgent letters arriving from England, containing news that a significant reinforcement had departed, he quickly dispatched a brig, "La Mutine," commanded by Hardy, Nelson's former lieutenant, on the 19th to inform the rear-admiral that a squadron of ten ships would be sent to him soon from Cadiz; and on the 21st, this detachment set sail under Captain Troubridge's command.
The "Mutine" joined Nelson on the 5th of June. His little division had so far had more bad fortune than good. Leaving Gibraltar on the 8th of May, late in the evening, so that the easterly course taken should not be visible to either friend or enemy, he had gone to the Gulf of Lyons. There a small French corvette, just out of Toulon, was captured on the 17th, but, except in unimportant details, yielded no information additional to that already possessed. On the 19th Bonaparte sailed with all the vessels gathered in Toulon, directing his course to the eastward, to pass near Genoa, and afterwards between Corsica and the mainland of Italy. On the night of the 20th, in a violent gale of wind, the "Vanguard" rolled overboard her main and mizzen topmasts, and later on the foremast went, close to the deck. The succession of these mishaps points rather to spars badly secured and cared for than to unavoidable accident. Fortunately, the "Orion" and "Alexander" escaped injury, and the latter, on the following morning, took the "Vanguard" in tow, to go to Oristan Bay, in Sardinia. The situation became extremely dangerous on the evening of the 22d, for, the wind falling light, the sail-power of the "Alexander" was scarcely sufficient to drag both ships against a heavy westerly swell which was setting them bodily upon the Sardinian coast, then not far distant. Thinking the case hopeless, Nelson ordered the "Alexander" to let go the hawser; but Captain Ball begged permission to hold on, and finally succeeded in saving the flagship, which, on the 23d, anchored with her consorts under the Islands of San Pietro, at the southern extremity of Sardinia. The governor of the place sent word that they must not remain, Sardinia being allied to France, but added that, as he had no power to force them out, they would doubtless do as they pleased; and he supplied them with fresh provisions,—a line of conduct which illustrates at once the restrictions imposed upon British operations in the Mediterranean by French insistence, and at the same time the readiness of the weaker states to connive at the evasion of them, other instances of which occurred during this period. By the united efforts of the division, four days sufficed to refit the "Vanguard" with jury-masts, and the three ships again sailed, on the 27th, for an appointed rendezvous, to seek the frigates, which had separated during and after the gale.
The "Mutine" joined Nelson on June 5th. His small fleet had experienced more bad luck than good so far. Leaving Gibraltar on the evening of May 8th to keep their easterly course hidden from both allies and enemies, he headed to the Gulf of Lyons. There, a small French corvette that had just come from Toulon was captured on the 17th, but it didn't provide any new information beyond what they already knew. On the 19th, Bonaparte set sail with all the ships gathered at Toulon, heading east to pass near Genoa and then between Corsica and the Italian mainland. On the night of the 20th, during a violent storm, the "Vanguard" lost her main and mizzen topmasts, and later the foremast broke close to the deck. The series of these accidents suggests poorly secured and maintained spars rather than unavoidable incidents. Fortunately, the "Orion" and "Alexander" were undamaged, and the latter towed the "Vanguard" the next morning to Oristan Bay in Sardinia. The situation became extremely risky on the evening of the 22nd, as the light winds meant the "Alexander" barely had enough power to pull both ships against a strong westerly swell that was pushing them towards the nearby Sardinian coast. Thinking it was hopeless, Nelson ordered the "Alexander" to release the tow line, but Captain Ball asked to keep holding on and ultimately managed to save the flagship, which anchored with her companions under the Islands of San Pietro on the southern tip of Sardinia on the 23rd. The local governor informed them they couldn't stay since Sardinia was allied with France, but he added that he couldn't force them out and assumed they would do as they liked; he also provided them with fresh supplies—a decision that highlighted the limitations on British actions in the Mediterranean due to French pressure, while also showing how weaker states were willing to overlook these restrictions, as seen in other cases during this time. With joint efforts, the division managed to refit the "Vanguard" with jury-masts in just four days, and on the 27th, the three ships set sail again for a designated meeting point to find the frigates that had separated during and after the storm.
This severe check, occurring at so critical a moment,—more critical even than Nelson knew, for he remained ignorant of the French sailing for some days longer,—was in itself disheartening, and fell upon one whose native eagerness chafed painfully against enforced inaction and delay. His manner of bearing it illustrated both the religious characteristics, which the experience of grave emergencies tends to develop and strengthen in men of action, and the firmness of a really great man, never more signally displayed than under the pressure of calamity and suspense, such as he continually had to undergo. The exceptional brilliancy and decisiveness of his greater battles—the Nile, Copenhagen, and Trafalgar—obscure the fact that each of them was preceded by a weary period of strenuous uphill work, a steady hewing of his way through a tanglewood of obstacles, a patient endurance of disappointments, a display of sustained, undaunted resolution under discouragements, nobler far than even the moments of triumphant action, into which at last he joyfully emerges and freely exerts his extraordinary powers. "I trust," he wrote to St. Vincent, "my friends will think I bore my chastisement like a man. I hope it has made me a better officer, as I believe it has made me a better man. On the Sunday evening I thought myself in every respect one of the most fortunate men, to command such a squadron in such a place, and my pride was too great for man." To his wife he wrote in the same strain: "I ought not to call what has happened to the Vanguard by the cold name of accident; I believe firmly that it was the Almighty's goodness, to check my consummate vanity."
This tough setback, happening at such a critical time—more critical than even Nelson realized, since he didn’t find out about the French sailing for several more days—was disheartening in itself and hit someone whose natural eagerness struggled painfully against forced inactivity and delays. His way of handling it showed both the religious traits that serious emergencies tend to develop and strengthen in active people, and the resolve of a truly great individual, which shone most brightly under the strain of disaster and uncertainty that he constantly faced. The exceptional brilliance and decisiveness of his major battles—the Nile, Copenhagen, and Trafalgar—overshadow the fact that each was preceded by a long period of hard work, tirelessly forging his way through a tangled mess of obstacles, patiently enduring disappointments, and demonstrating sustained, fearless determination in the face of discouragement, much nobler than even the moments of victory, where he finally emerges joyfully and exercises his extraordinary skills. "I trust," he wrote to St. Vincent, "my friends will think I endured my punishment like a man. I hope it has made me a better officer, as I believe it has made me a better man. On Sunday evening, I considered myself in every way one of the luckiest men, to command such a squadron in such a place, and my pride was too great for any man." To his wife, he wrote similarly: "I shouldn’t refer to what happened to the Vanguard as just an accident; I firmly believe it was the Almighty's goodness, to check my overwhelming vanity."
Vanity was rather a hard name to call the natural elation of a young admiral, intrusted with an unusually important service, and proud of his command; but the providential interposition worked directly to his advantage. The delays caused by the repairs to the "Vanguard," and by the subsequent necessity of seeking the separated frigates at the rendezvous appointed for such a case, made possible the junction of Troubridge, of whose approach Nelson was totally ignorant. On the 2d of June Sir James Saumarez mentions speaking a ship, which a few days before had seen eleven sail-of-the-line, supposed to be English. "We are at a loss what conjectures to put on this intelligence." Five days before this, May 28, a vessel out of Marseilles had informed them of Bonaparte's sailing with all his transports. Nelson would doubtless have pursued them at once, in conformity with his instructions to ascertain the enemy's objects; but for such operations, essentially those of a scouting expedition, the frigates were too necessary to be left behind. On the 4th of June he reached the rendezvous, and, not finding the frigates, waited. The next morning, by the arrival of the "Mutine," he learned that he was to expect the reinforcement, which converted his division into a fleet, and enlarged his mission from one of mere reconnoissance to the duty of overtaking and destroying a great maritime expedition.
Vanity was a tough word to describe the natural excitement of a young admiral who was given a really important task and was proud of his leadership; however, the unexpected turn of events worked in his favor. The delays caused by the repairs to the "Vanguard" and the need to find the separated frigates at the designated meeting point allowed Troubridge to join him, of which Nelson was completely unaware. On June 2nd, Sir James Saumarez noted that he had spoken to a ship that, a few days earlier, had seen eleven battleships, believed to be British. "We are unsure about what to make of this information." Five days prior, on May 28th, a vessel from Marseilles had informed them about Bonaparte's departure with all his transports. Nelson would have definitely pursued them right away, following his orders to understand the enemy's intentions; but he couldn't leave the frigates behind, as they were crucial for such scouting operations. On June 4th, he arrived at the meeting point and, not finding the frigates, he waited. The next morning, with the arrival of the "Mutine," he learned that he was going to receive reinforcements, which turned his division into a fleet and expanded his mission from just reconnaissance to the task of chasing down and destroying a significant maritime expedition.
Besides this good news, the "Mutine" brought word of another misfortune, more irretrievable than the loss of spars. She had fallen in with the frigates three days before, and the senior captain had told Hardy that he was going with them to Gibraltar, persuaded that the condition of the flagship, which he had seen, would necessitate her return to an arsenal for repairs. "I thought Hope would have known me better," commented Nelson, when he became aware of a step which materially affected, in fact probably entirely changed, the course of events, and most seriously embarrassed all his subsequent movements. This untimely and precipitate action, and his remark, illustrate conspicuously the differences between men, and exemplify the peculiar energy and unrelaxing forward impulse which eminently fitted Nelson for his present high charge.
Besides this good news, the "Mutine" brought word of another misfortune, one that was more irreversible than the loss of spars. She had encountered the frigates three days earlier, and the senior captain had told Hardy that he was heading with them to Gibraltar, convinced that the condition of the flagship, which he had seen, would require her to return to a shipyard for repairs. "I thought Hope would have known me better," Nelson remarked when he realized a decision had been made that significantly impacted, and likely changed, the course of events, severely complicating all of his subsequent actions. This untimely and hasty move, along with his comment, clearly highlights the differences between people and demonstrates the unique drive and relentless forward motion that made Nelson exceptionally suited for his current high position.
The inconvenience and danger arising from the frigates' departure was instantly felt. "Nothing," wrote Saumarez, "can equal our anxiety to fall in with the reinforcement. Our squadron has been, these two days, detached in all directions, without falling in with them; and there is strong reason to fear they think us returned to Gibraltar"—from Hope's reports. Such were the risks springing from misplaced caution, more ruinous than the most daring venture, and which from beginning to end well-nigh wrecked the great attempt upon which the Admiralty, St. Vincent, and Nelson had staked so much. In further consequence, the line-of-battle ships became separated by stretching too far apart in their anxious care to find Troubridge, and when he joined the "Vanguard," on the 7th, the "Orion" and "Alexander" were not in sight. The French having so long a start, and there being now with him eleven seventy-fours, Nelson with characteristic promptness would not delay an instant. The fifty-gun ship "Leander," which had come with Troubridge, was directed to wait forty-eight hours for the two absentees, with a memorandum of the course about to be followed. Confident that single ships would be able to overtake a squadron whose route they knew, the admiral at once pushed on for Cape Corso, the north point of Corsica, intending to pass between the island and Italy, seeking information as he went. The "Mutine" was all he had to replace the missing frigates.
The trouble and danger from the frigates' departure were felt immediately. "Nothing," wrote Saumarez, "can match our worry about meeting up with the reinforcements. Our squadron has been sent in all directions for the past two days without finding them, and there’s strong reason to fear they think we’ve returned to Gibraltar," based on Hope's reports. Such were the risks from misplaced caution, which were more damaging than the boldest actions and nearly ruined the ambitious effort that the Admiralty, St. Vincent, and Nelson had invested so heavily in. As a result, the line-of-battle ships became scattered as they stretched too far apart in their eagerness to find Troubridge, and when he joined the "Vanguard" on the 7th, the "Orion" and "Alexander" were nowhere to be seen. With the French having such a head start and eleven seventy-fours now with him, Nelson, as usual, wouldn’t waste any time. The fifty-gun ship "Leander," which had come with Troubridge, was ordered to wait forty-eight hours for the two missing ships with a note on the course he was about to take. Confident that single ships could catch up to a squadron whose path they knew, the admiral immediately set off for Cape Corso, the northern tip of Corsica, planning to go between the island and Italy while seeking information along the way. The "Mutine" was all he had to replace the missing frigates.
June 7th thus marks the beginning of a chase, which ended only upon the 1st of August in the Battle of the Nile. During this miserable period of suspense and embarrassment, occasioned and prolonged beyond all reason or necessity by the want of lookout ships, the connecting and illuminating thread is the purpose of Nelson, at once clear and firm, to find the French fleet and to fight it the instant found. No other consideration draws his mind aside, except so far as it may facilitate the attainment and fulfilment of this one object. In this one light he sees all things. At the start he writes to St. Vincent: "You may be assured I will fight them the moment I can reach, be they at anchor or under sail." Three days later, he tells Sir William Hamilton: "If their fleet is not moored in as strong a port as Toulon, nothing shall hinder me from attacking them." "Be they bound to the Antipodes," he says to Earl Spencer, "your Lordship may rely that I will not lose a moment in bringing them to action, and endeavour to destroy their transports." Such expressions are repeated with a frequency which proves the absolute hold the resolution had upon his mind. When obstacles occur to him, or are mentioned, they do not make room for the thought of not fighting to be entertained; only Toulon suggests the idea of impossibility. He raises difficulties diligently enough, but it is only that they may be the better overcome, not that they may deter. All possible conditions are considered and discussed, but simply in order that the best fighting solution may be reached. The constant mental attitude is such that the man is unprepared to recede before any opposition; he fortifies his mind beforehand with the best means of meeting and vanquishing it, but the attempt at least shall be made. "Thank God," he wrote at this moment, "I do not feel difficulties;" yet the avowal itself accompanies so plain a statement of his embarrassments as to show that his meaning is that they do not discourage. This characteristic appeared most strongly at Copenhagen, partly because the difficulties there were greatest, partly from the close contrast with a man of very different temper.
June 7th marks the start of a pursuit that didn't end until August 1st during the Battle of the Nile. Throughout this frustrating time of uncertainty and tension, which dragged on unreasonably due to the lack of lookout ships, Nelson's clear and determined goal was to locate the French fleet and engage it as soon as he found it. Nothing else distracted him, except what could help him achieve this single aim. This is the lens through which he views everything. At the beginning, he writes to St. Vincent: "You can be sure I’ll fight them as soon as I reach them, whether they’re anchored or sailing." Three days later, he tells Sir William Hamilton: "If their fleet isn’t anchored in a strong port like Toulon, nothing will stop me from attacking them." "Even if they’re headed to the Antipodes," he says to Earl Spencer, "you can count on my bringing them to battle without delay, and I’ll try to destroy their transports." Such statements are repeated often enough to show how firmly this resolve took hold of his mind. When he faces obstacles, or they are brought up, he doesn’t entertain the idea of not fighting; only Toulon suggests impossibility. He raises challenges frequently, but only to find better ways to overcome them, not to be deterred. He considers and discusses all possible scenarios, but merely to reach the best plan for combat. His mindset is such that he is unwilling to back down from any resistance; he prepares himself mentally with the best strategies to confront and conquer it, but at the very least, he will make the attempt. "Thank God," he wrote during this time, "I don’t feel difficulties;" yet the statement itself reveals his challenges so plainly that it shows he means they don’t discourage him. This trait was most evident at Copenhagen, partly because the challenges there were the greatest, and partly due to the stark contrast with a man of a very different temperament.
Being entirely without intelligence as to the real object of the French, there was nothing to do but to follow upon their track, with eyes open for indications. They were known to have gone southerly, towards Naples and Sicily; and these two points, parts of the Kingdom of the Two Sicilies, had been mentioned by Jervis as probable destinations. The "Orion" and "Alexander" rejoined in two or three days, and on the 14th of June information, second-hand but probable, was obtained that on the 4th the French armament had been seen off the west end of Sicily, steering to the eastward. "If they pass Sicily," said Nelson in his letter to Spencer written the next day, "I shall believe they are going on their scheme of possessing Alexandria, and getting troops to India—a plan concerted with Tippoo Saib, by no means so difficult as might at first view be imagined." Troubridge was now sent ahead in the "Mutine" to communicate with Sir William Hamilton, the British minister at Naples, and with Acton, the prime minister of that Kingdom. He took with him letters from the admiral, who wished to know what co-operation he might hope from the Court of Naples, in the matters of supplies, of frigates to act as lookouts, and of pilots for Sicilian waters.
Being completely in the dark about the French's true intentions, the only option was to follow their trail, staying alert for any clues. It was known that they headed south toward Naples and Sicily, and these two locations, part of the Kingdom of the Two Sicilies, were mentioned by Jervis as likely targets. The "Orion" and "Alexander" regrouped in two or three days, and on June 14th, credible second-hand information came in that the French fleet had been spotted off the west coast of Sicily on the 4th, heading east. "If they pass Sicily," Nelson wrote in his letter to Spencer the next day, "I will think they are continuing their plan to take Alexandria and send troops to India—a strategy coordinated with Tippoo Saib, which is by no means as difficult as it might initially seem." Troubridge was then sent ahead on the "Mutine" to reach out to Sir William Hamilton, the British minister in Naples, and Acton, the prime minister of that Kingdom. He took letters from the admiral, who wanted to know what cooperation he could expect from the Court of Naples regarding supplies, frigates to act as lookouts, and pilots for Sicilian waters.
On the 17th the squadron hove-to ten miles off Naples, and Troubridge rejoined. The Neapolitan Government sent assurances of good wishes, and of hatred to the French; supplies would be given under the rose, and Acton sent a written order to that effect, addressed to the governors of ports in the name of the King. Naples being at peace with France, assistance with ships could not be given, nor, to use the words of Nelson, "the smallest information of what was, or was likely to be, the future destination of the French armament. With this comfortable account I pushed for the Faro of Messina." Troubridge brought word, however, that the French fleet was off Malta, about to attack it, which served to give direction for the squadron's next move.
On the 17th, the squadron anchored ten miles off Naples, and Troubridge rejoined. The Neapolitan Government sent messages of goodwill and expressed their dislike for the French; supplies would be provided discreetly, and Acton sent a written order to that effect, addressed to the port governors in the name of the King. Since Naples was at peace with France, they couldn't provide assistance with ships, nor could they, as Nelson put it, "offer the slightest information about what was or might be the future destination of the French fleet." With this reassuring information, I headed toward the Faro of Messina. However, Troubridge reported that the French fleet was off Malta, preparing to attack, which helped direct the squadron's next move.
After leaving Naples Nelson wrote strong and clear letters to Sir William Hamilton upon the existing conditions. Why should Naples stand in shivering hesitation about taking a decided step in support of Great Britain? She had looked and prayed for the arrival of the fleet, as the one force competent to check the designs of the French. Sicily could be approached only by water, and the distance of Naples from Northern Italy rendered the control of the sea most advantageous, if not absolutely essential, to a French army attempting to hold the boot of the peninsula. Now the British fleet had come, in force adequate to neutralize the French Navy, and, in Nelson's belief, to defeat and destroy it, if properly supported. Did Naples expect to escape by a timid adherence to half measures, when by her notorious preference for the British she had already gained the ill-will of the French? "The French know as well as you and I do, that their Sicilian Majesties called for our help to save them—even this is crime enough with the French." Safety—true safety—could be had only by strenuous and decisive action in support of Nelson's squadron. Did not the attack on Malta indicate a design upon Sicily? "Were I commanding a fleet attending an army which is to invade Sicily, I should say to the general, 'If you can take Malta, it secures the safety of your fleet, transports, stores, &c., and insures your safe retreat [from Sicily] should that be necessary; for if even a superior fleet of the enemy should arrive, before one week passes, they will be blown to leeward, and you may pass with safety.' This would be my opinion.... I repeat it, Malta is the direct road to Sicily." If the French are overtaken, he continues, and found in some anchorage, it can scarcely be so strong but that I can get at them, but there will be needed things which I have not, fire-ships, bomb-vessels, and gunboats, when one hour would either destroy or drive them out. Without such aid, the British may be crippled in their attempt, and forced to leave the Mediterranean. In case of blockade—or necessity to remain for any reason—the fleet must have supplies; which only Naples can furnish. Failing these it must retire, and then Sicily and Naples are lost. Since, then, so much assistance must be given in time, why postpone now, when one strong blow would give instant safety? Why should not his own motto, "I will not lose a moment in attacking them," apply as well to the policy of an endangered kingdom as of a British admiral?
After leaving Naples, Nelson wrote direct and clear letters to Sir William Hamilton about the current situation. Why should Naples hesitate to make a decisive move in support of Great Britain? They had been waiting and hoping for the fleet's arrival, as it was the only force capable of thwarting the French plans. Sicily could only be reached by sea, and Naples’ distance from Northern Italy made sea control incredibly important—if not absolutely necessary—for a French army trying to hold onto the Italian peninsula. Now that the British fleet had arrived, strong enough to neutralize the French Navy, Nelson believed it could defeat and destroy it if given the right support. Did Naples really expect to avoid consequences through timid half-measures, especially after already earning the French's ire due to its clear preference for the British? "The French know just as well as we do that their Sicilian Majesties called for our help to save them—even that is enough to make them resentful." True safety could only be achieved through strong and decisive action to support Nelson’s squadron. Didn't the attack on Malta suggest a plan for Sicily? "If I were leading a fleet accompanying an army set to invade Sicily, I would tell the general, 'If you can take Malta, it ensures the safety of your fleet, supplies, and safe retreat if needed; because if a stronger enemy fleet arrives, within a week they will be pushed away, and you can proceed safely.' This would be my viewpoint... I emphasize, Malta is the direct route to Sicily." If the French are caught and found in some harbor, it won't likely be so secure that I can't reach them, but I'll need resources I lack, like fire-ships, bomb vessels, and gunboats, where one hour could either destroy or drive them out. Without such support, the British might struggle and be forced to leave the Mediterranean. If there's a blockade or any reason to stay for a while, the fleet will need supplies, which only Naples can provide. Without them, it must withdraw, and then both Sicily and Naples would be lost. So, with so much help needed right now, why delay when one strong move could bring immediate safety? Why shouldn't Nelson's own motto, "I will not lose a moment in attacking them," apply to the strategy of a threatened kingdom just as it does for a British admiral?
If this reasoning and advice took more account of the exigencies of the British arms than of the difficulties of a weak state of the second order, dependent for action upon the support of other nations, they were at least perfectly consonant to the principles and practice of the writer, wherever he himself had to act. But Nelson could not expect his own spirit in the King of the Two Sicilies. Even if the course suggested were the best for Naples under the conditions, it is the property of ordinary men, in times of danger, to see difficulties more clearly than advantages, and to shrink from steps which involve risk, however promising of success. The Neapolitan Government, though cheered by the appearance of the British fleet, had to consider danger also on the land side, where it relied upon the protection of Austria, instead of trusting manfully to its own arms and the advantages of its position, remote from the centre of French power. Austria had pledged herself to support Naples, if invaded without just cause; but it was not certain that she would interfere if the cause of attack was the premature admission of British ships into the ports of the kingdom, beyond the number specified in the still recent treaties with France. The Emperor was meditating war, in which he expected to assist Naples and to be assisted by her; but he did not choose to be hurried, and might refuse aid if an outbreak were precipitated.
If this reasoning and advice took more into account the needs of the British military than the challenges faced by a weaker state that relied on support from other nations, they were still completely in line with the principles and practices of the writer whenever he had to take action. However, Nelson couldn't expect the same resolve from the King of the Two Sicilies. Even if the suggested course of action was the best for Naples under the circumstances, it's common for ordinary people, especially in times of danger, to see obstacles more clearly than opportunities, and to hesitate before taking risks, no matter how promising they might be. The Neapolitan Government, while encouraged by the presence of the British fleet, also had to consider threats from the land side, where it depended on Austria for protection instead of relying on its own military strength and the advantages of being far from the center of French power. Austria had promised to support Naples if it was invaded without justification; however, it wasn't certain that they would intervene if the cause for attack was the premature entry of British ships into the kingdom's ports, beyond the limits set in the recent treaties with France. The Emperor was preparing for war, expecting to support Naples and receive support in return, but he wasn't inclined to rush into action and might refuse assistance if conflict were provoked too quickly.
Actually, what Naples did mattered little. Under some contingencies, such as Nelson was contemplating when he wrote his letter, it might have mattered much whether he received the abundant support of small armed vessels which he indicated; but in the end supplies only were required, and those he had orders from Jervis to exact at the mouth of his cannon from all powers,—friends or neutrals,—Sardinia only excepted. The fleet passed the Straits of Messina on the 20th of June, and continued south, keeping close to the Sicilian shore in hope of information, until the 22d, when it was off Cape Passaro, the southeastern extremity of the island. There a Genoese brig was spoken, which had left Malta the previous day. From her Nelson learned that Malta had surrendered to the French on the 15th, a week before, which was correct; but the information further stated, that, after landing a garrison, the expedition had sailed again on the 16th—it was thought for Sicily. This last news was untrue, whether by intention or not, for Bonaparte remained in Malta till the 19th; but upon it Nelson had to act. Had he seen the captain of the stranger himself, he might have found out more, for he was a shrewd questioner, and his intellect was sharpened by anxiety, and by constant dwelling upon the elements of the intricate problem before him; but the vessel had been boarded by the "Mutine," three hours before, and was now beyond recall.
Actually, what Naples did didn’t matter much. Under certain circumstances, like the ones Nelson was considering when he wrote his letter, it might have been significant whether he received the support of small armed vessels he mentioned; but in the end, he only needed supplies, and he had orders from Jervis to extract those at gunpoint from all powers—friends or neutrals—except Sardinia. The fleet passed through the Straits of Messina on June 20th and continued south, staying close to the Sicilian shore in search of information until the 22nd when they reached Cape Passaro, the southeastern tip of the island. There, they spoke to a Genoese brig that had left Malta the day before. From her, Nelson learned that Malta had surrendered to the French on the 15th, a week earlier, which was true; but the additional information stated that after landing a garrison, the expedition had left again on the 16th, reportedly headed for Sicily. This last piece of news was false, whether intentionally or not, since Bonaparte stayed in Malta until the 19th; however, Nelson had to base his actions on that information. If he had been able to speak to the captain of the ship himself, he might have uncovered more, as he was a skilled interrogator, and his mind was sharpened by anxiety and by constantly focusing on the elements of the complex problem he faced; unfortunately, the vessel had been boarded by the "Mutine" three hours earlier and was now out of reach.
At this season the winds in the Mediterranean prevail from the westward; therefore, with the six days' start the enemy was believed now to have, no time could be lost. Six days sufficed to carry the British squadron from its present position to Alexandria, which Nelson was already inclined to think the destination of the French. Yet, being dependent upon a wind then practically constant in direction, it would not do to yield a mile of ground, except upon a mature, if rapid, deliberation. Nelson's own mind was, by constant preoccupation, familiar beforehand with the bearings of the different conditions of any situation likely to occur, and with the probable inferences to be drawn; his opinions were, so to say, in a constant state of formation and development, ready for instantaneous application to any emergency as it arose. But he had, besides, exercised the same habit in the captains of the ships, by the practice of summoning them on board the flagship, singly or in groups; the slow movement of sailing vessels, particularly in the light summer weather of the Mediterranean, permitting such intercourse without materially affecting the progress of the fleet. Invitations or commands so to visit the flagship were common. "I have passed the day on board the Vanguard," notes Saumarez on one occasion, "having breakfasted and stayed to dinner with the admiral." "It was his practice during the whole of his cruize," wrote Berry, the flag-captain, "whenever the weather and circumstances would permit, to have his captains on board the Vanguard, where he would fully develop to them his own ideas of the different and best modes of attack, in all possible positions." That such conversations were not confined to tactical questions, but extended to what would now be called the strategy of the situation, is evident from allusions by Saumarez to the various surmises concerning the probable movements of the enemy. Nelson never yielded a particle of his responsibility, nor of his credit, but it is clear that such discussion would not only broaden his own outlook, but prepare his subordinates to give readier and sounder views upon any new conjuncture that might arise.
At this time of year, the winds in the Mediterranean mainly blow from the west. Because the enemy was believed to have a six-day head start, there was no time to waste. Six days were enough for the British squadron to get from their current location to Alexandria, which Nelson suspected was the French’s target. However, with the wind being almost constant in direction, it was important not to give up any ground without careful and swift consideration. Nelson’s mind was constantly engaged, familiar with the different aspects of any situation that could arise and the likely conclusions that could be drawn. His thoughts were always evolving, ready to be applied immediately to any sudden circumstances. He also encouraged this same approach among the ship captains by frequently inviting them aboard the flagship, either individually or in groups. The slow movement of sailing vessels, especially in the light summer winds of the Mediterranean, allowed for this interaction without significantly disrupting the fleet's progress. Invitations or orders to visit the flagship were common. "I spent the day on board the Vanguard," Saumarez noted on one occasion, "having breakfast and staying for dinner with the admiral." "It was his practice throughout the whole of his cruise," stated Berry, the flag captain, "whenever the weather and circumstances allowed, to have his captains on board the Vanguard, where he would thoroughly explain his ideas about the different strategies and best modes of attack in every possible situation." It’s clear from Saumarez's mentions of various theories about the enemy’s likely movements that these discussions went beyond tactical matters to what we would now call strategic considerations. Nelson never relinquished any of his responsibility or credit, but it’s obvious that engaging in these conversations not only expanded his perspective but also prepared his subordinates to offer better and more informed insights on any new situations that might come up.
He now summoned on board four captains "in whom I place great confidence," Saumarez, Troubridge,—the two seniors,—Ball, and Darby, stated the case, and received their opinions. These seem to have been given in writing,[60] and from his letter to St. Vincent the results of the conference, as shown by his decision, may be summarized as follows. With the existing winds, it would be impossible for such a fleet as the enemy's to get to the westward. Had they aimed at Sicily, an object concerning which explicit disclaimers had been given by the French to the Neapolitan Government, some indication of their approach must have been known at Syracuse, the day before, when the British were off that city. Consequently, the expedition must have gone to the eastward. The size and nature of the armament must also be considered,—forty thousand troops, a dozen ships-of-the-line, besides a staff of scientific men,—all pointed to a great, distant, and permanent occupation. The object might be Corfu, or to overthrow the existing government of Turkey, or to settle a colony in Egypt. As between these, all equally possible, the last was the most direct and greatest menace to present British interests, and should determine his course. "If they have concerted a plan with Tippoo Saib, to have vessels at Suez, three weeks, at this season, is a common passage to the Malabar coast, where our India possessions would be in great danger."
He called on board four captains, "whom I trust greatly": Saumarez, Troubridge—the two most senior—Ball, and Darby. He explained the situation and got their opinions. These seemed to be provided in writing,[60], and from his letter to St. Vincent, the outcome of the meeting can be summarized as follows. Given the current winds, it would be impossible for an enemy fleet to head west. If they had aimed for Sicily—something the French had explicitly denied to the Neapolitan Government—there would have been some indication of their approach at Syracuse the day before, when the British were near that city. Therefore, the expedition must have gone east. The scale and type of the forces had to be considered—forty thousand troops, a dozen warships, and a team of scientists—all pointing to a significant, long-term, and substantial operation. The target could be Corfu, an attempt to destabilize the Turkish government, or setting up a colony in Egypt. Among these equally feasible possibilities, the last posed the most direct and serious threat to current British interests and should guide his actions. "If they have coordinated a plan with Tippoo Saib to have ships at Suez, three weeks is a typical journey to the Malabar coast, where our possessions in India would be at great risk."
Such was the conclusion—how momentous at the moment can only be realized by those who will be at the pains to consider a man still young, with reputation brilliant indeed, but not established; intrusted with a great chance, it is true, but also with a great responsibility, upon which rested all his future. On slight, though decisive, preponderance of evidence, he was about to risk throwing away an advantage a seaman must appreciate, that of being to windward of his enemy,—able to get at him,—the strategist's position of command. The tongues of envy and censure might well be—we now know that they were—busy in inquiring why so young an admiral had so high charge, and in sneering at his failure to find the enemy. "Knowing my attachment to you," wrote his old friend, Admiral Goodall, alongside whom he had fought under Hotham, "how often have I been questioned: 'What is your favourite hero about? The French fleet has passed under his nose,' &c., &c." Nelson was saved from fatal hesitation, primarily, by his singleness of purpose, which looked first to his country's service, to the thorough doing of the work given him to do, and only afterwards to the consequences of failure to his own fame and fortunes. At that moment the choice before him was either to follow out an indication, slight, but as far as it went clear, which, though confessedly precarious, promised to lead to a great and decisive result, such as he had lately urged upon the King of Naples; or to remain where he was, in an inglorious security, perfectly content, to use words of his own, that "each day passed without loss to our side." To the latter conclusion might very well have contributed the knowledge, that the interests which the Cabinet thought threatened were certainly for the present safe. Broadly as his instructions were drawn, no word of Egypt or the East was specifically in them. Naples, Sicily, Portugal, or Ireland, such were the dangers intimated by Spencer and St. Vincent in their letters, and he was distinctly cautioned against letting the enemy get to the westward of him. He might have consoled himself for indecisive action, which procrastinated disaster and covered failure with the veil of nullity, as did a former commander of his in a gazetted letter, by the reflection that, so far as the anticipations of the ministry went, the designs of the enemy were for the time frustrated, by the presence of his squadron between them and the points indicated to him.
That was the conclusion—how significant it was can only be understood by those who take the time to consider a young man, his reputation shining bright but not yet solidified; given a great opportunity, yes, but also a heavy responsibility, which determined his entire future. Based on slight but crucial evidence, he was about to risk losing an advantage that any sailor would value, the ability to sail into the wind of his enemy—having the upper hand as a strategist. The whispers of envy and criticism might well have been— and we now know they were—busy questioning why such a young admiral held such high command, sneering at his failure to locate the enemy. "Knowing how much I care for you," wrote his old friend, Admiral Goodall, alongside whom he had fought under Hotham, "I've been asked more times than I can count: 'What's your favorite hero up to? The French fleet has passed right under his nose,' and so on." Nelson was spared from fatal doubt mainly because of his singular focus, which prioritized his duty to his country and completing the task assigned to him, placing his own fame and fortunes second. At that moment, he faced a choice: either to follow a lead that was slight but, as far as it went, clear, which, although risky, promised a significant and decisive outcome as he had recently discussed with the King of Naples; or to stay put, in a safe but unremarkable position, perfectly content to quote his own words, saying "each day passed without loss to our side." The latter decision might have been influenced by the knowledge that the interests the Cabinet believed were threatened were definitely safe for the time being. Although his instructions were broadly outlined, there was no mention of Egypt or the East. Naples, Sicily, Portugal, or Ireland were the dangers hinted at by Spencer and St. Vincent in their letters, and he was firmly warned against allowing the enemy to move west of him. He could have reassured himself about his indecisive action, which delayed disaster and masked failure with a cloak of inactivity, like a former commander of his did in a published letter, by reflecting that, based on the ministry's expectations, the enemy's plans were effectively thwarted by the presence of his squadron between them and the locations outlined for him.
But the single eye of principle gained keener insight in this case by the practised habit of reflection, which came prepared, to the full extent of an acute intellect, to detect every glimmer of light, and to follow them to the point where they converged upon the true solution; and both principle and reflection were powerfully supported in their final action by a native temperament, impatient of hesitations, of half measures, certain that the annihilation of the French fleet, and nothing short of its annihilation, fulfilled that security of his country's interests in which consisted the spirit of his instructions. His own words in self-defence, when for a moment it seemed as if, after all, he had blundered in the great risk he took, though rough in form, rise to the eloquence that speaks out of the abundance of the heart. "The only objection I can fancy to be started is,'you should not have gone such a long voyage without more certain information of the enemy's destination:' my answer is ready—who was I to get it from? The governments of Naples and Sicily either knew not, or chose to keep me in ignorance. Was I to wait patiently till I heard certain accounts? If Egypt was their object, before I could hear of them they would have been in India. To do nothing, I felt, was disgraceful; therefore I made use of my understanding, and by it I ought to stand or fall."
But the single focus of principle gained sharper insight in this case through the practiced habit of reflection, which was fully equipped to detect every hint of light and to trace them to where they led to the true solution. Both principle and reflection were strongly backed in their final action by a natural temperament that couldn't stand hesitation or half measures, certain that the complete destruction of the French fleet, and nothing less, secured his country's interests, which was the essence of his orders. His own words in self-defense, when it briefly seemed he had made a mistake in the significant risk he took, though rough in style, carried the eloquence that comes from the depth of the heart. "The only objection I can think might be raised is, 'You shouldn't have gone such a long way without more reliable information about the enemy's destination:' my response is ready—who was I supposed to get it from? The governments of Naples
The destination of the enemy had been rightly divined, following out a course of reasoning outlined by Nelson a week before in his letter to Spencer; but successful pursuit was baffled for the moment by the wiliness of Bonaparte, who directed his vast armament to be steered for the south shore of Candia, instead of straight for Alexandria. Even this would scarcely have saved him, had Nelson's frigates been with the fleet. Immediately after the council, the admiral with his customary promptitude kept away for Egypt under all sail. "I am just returned from on board the Admiral," writes Saumarez, "and we are crowding sail for Alexandria; but the contrast to what we experienced yesterday is great indeed, having made sure of attacking them this morning. At present it is very doubtful whether we shall fall in with them at all, as we are proceeding upon the merest conjecture only, and not on any positive information. Some days must now elapse before we can be relieved from our cruel suspense; and if, at the end of our journey, we find we are upon a wrong scent, our embarrassment will be great indeed. Fortunately, I only act here en second; but did the chief responsibility rest with me, I fear it would be more than my too irritable nerves would bear." Such was the contemporary estimate of an eye-witness, an officer of tried and singular gallantry and ability, who shared the admiral's perplexities and ambitions, though not his responsibility. His words portray justly the immensity of the burden Nelson bore. That, indeed, is the inevitable penalty of command; but it must be conceded that, when adequately borne, it should convey also an equal measure of renown.
The enemy's destination had been accurately guessed, following the reasoning laid out by Nelson a week earlier in his letter to Spencer; however, the chase was temporarily hampered by Bonaparte's cleverness, as he ordered his large fleet to head toward the south shore of Crete instead of directly to Alexandria. Even this might not have saved him if Nelson's frigates had been with the fleet. Immediately after the meeting, the admiral, as usual, set sail for Egypt with full speed. "I just returned from on board the Admiral," writes Saumarez, "and we are racing toward Alexandria; but the difference from what we expected yesterday is huge, as we were sure we would attack them this morning. Right now it’s very uncertain whether we’ll even encounter them, as we’re only going on mere guesses and not on any solid information. A few days will have to pass before we can escape this awful suspense; and if, by the end of our journey, we discover we've been on the wrong track, it will be a huge embarrassment. Luckily, I’m only acting here en second; but if the main responsibility fell on me, I’m afraid it would be more than my overly sensitive nerves could handle." This was the view of a contemporary eyewitness, an officer of proven bravery and skill, who shared in the admiral's worries and aspirations, though not his burden. His words accurately reflect the enormous weight Nelson carried. That is indeed the unavoidable cost of command; but it must be acknowledged that when well-managed, it should also bring the same level of glory.
In the morning, before the consultation with the captains, three French frigates had been seen; but Nelson, warned by the parting of the "Orion" and "Alexander" a fortnight before, would not run the risk of scattering the squadron by chasing them. No time could now be lost, waiting for a separated ship to catch up. The circumstance of the fleet being seen by these frigates was quoted in a letter from Louis Bonaparte, who was with the expedition, to his brother Joseph, and was made the ground for comment upon the stupidity of the British admiral, who with this opportunity failed to find the armament. The criticism is unjust; had the frigates taken to flight, as of course they would, the British fleet, if not divided, would certainly not be led towards the main body of the enemy. Concentration of purpose, singleness of aim, was more than ever necessary, now that time pressed and a decision had been reached; but the sneer of the French officer reproduces the idle chatter of the day in London streets and drawing-rooms. These, in turn, but echoed and swelled the murmurs of insubordination and envy in the navy itself, at the departure from the routine methods of officialism, by passing over the claims of undistinguished seniors, in favor of one who as yet had nothing but brilliant achievement, and yet more brilliant promise, to justify committing to him the most momentous charge that in this war had devolved on a British admiral. A letter from one of the puisne lords of the Admiralty was read publicly on board the "Prince George," flagship of Sir William Parker,—the same who had the controversy with Nelson about the Battle of St. Vincent,—denouncing Lord St. Vincent in no very gentle terms for having sent so young a flag-officer.[61] "Sir William Parker and Sir John Orde have written strong remonstrances against your commanding the detached squadron instead of them," wrote St. Vincent to Nelson. "I did all I could to prevent it, consistently with my situation, but there is a faction, fraught with all manner of ill-will to you, that, unfortunately for the two Baronets, domined over any argument or influence I could use: they will both be ordered home the moment their letters arrive." It will be seen how much was at stake for Nelson personally in the issue of these weeks. Happy the man who, like him, has in such a case the clear light of duty to keep his steps from wavering!
In the morning, before the meeting with the captains, three French frigates were spotted; however, Nelson, having been alerted by the separation of the "Orion" and "Alexander" two weeks earlier, was not willing to risk scattering the squadron by pursuing them. There was no time to lose waiting for a ship that had fallen behind. The fact that the fleet was seen by these frigates was mentioned in a letter from Louis Bonaparte, who was part of the expedition, to his brother Joseph, criticizing the British admiral for missing this chance to find the armament. This criticism is unfair; had the frigates fled, as they likely would, the British fleet, if not split, would certainly not have been drawn toward the main enemy force. Focus and determination were more crucial than ever now that time was running short and a decision had been made; yet the French officer's mockery echoed the idle gossip of the day in the streets and drawing rooms of London. This, in turn, echoed and amplified the murmurs of discontent and jealousy within the navy itself, regarding the departure from traditional methods of officialdom, by sidelining the claims of unremarkable seniors in favor of someone who had only brilliant accomplishments and even more brilliant potential to justify giving him the most significant responsibility that had ever fallen on a British admiral in this war. A letter from one of the junior lords of the Admiralty was read publicly on board the "Prince George," flagship of Sir William Parker—the same man who had disputed with Nelson over the Battle of St. Vincent—criticizing Lord St. Vincent in a rather harsh manner for having appointed such a young flag officer.[61] "Sir William Parker and Sir John Orde have lodged strong objections against your commanding the detached squadron instead of them," wrote St. Vincent to Nelson. "I did everything I could to stop it, consistent with my position, but there is a faction, filled with hostility towards you, that, unfortunately for the two Barons, overwhelmed any argument or influence I could apply: they will both be sent home as soon as their letters arrive." It’s clear how much was personally at stake for Nelson in this matter. Blessed is the man who, like him, has in such a situation the clear guidance of duty to keep his resolve steady!
The night after Nelson made sail for Alexandria the two hostile bodies crossed the same tract of sea, on divergent courses; but a haze covered the face of the deep, and hid them from each other. When the day dawned, they were no longer within range of sight; but had the horizon of the British fleet been enlarged by flanking frigates, chasing on either side, the immunity of the French from detection could scarcely have continued. For some days not a hundred miles intervened between these two foes, proceeding for the same port. On the 26th, being two hundred and fifty miles from Alexandria, Nelson sent the "Mutine" ahead to communicate with the place and get information; a single vessel being able to outstrip the progress of a body of ships, which is bound to the speed of its slowest member. On the 28th the squadron itself was off the town, when the admiral to his dismay found that not only the French had not appeared, but that no certain news of their destination was to be had.
The night after Nelson set sail for Alexandria, the two opposing fleets crossed the same stretch of sea on different courses; however, a haze blanketed the water, keeping them hidden from each other. By dawn, they were no longer within sight of one another, but even if the British fleet had been expanded with flanking frigates chasing on both sides, the French would likely have remained undetected. For several days, there was less than a hundred miles between these two enemies heading for the same port. On the 26th, when they were two hundred and fifty miles from Alexandria, Nelson sent the "Mutine" ahead to communicate with the port and gather information; a single ship can move faster than a group of ships that must go at the pace of the slowest one. On the 28th, the squadron was off the town, and to his dismay, the admiral discovered that not only had the French not shown up, but there was also no reliable news about their destination.
Preoccupied as his mind had been with the fear that the enemy had so far the start that their army would be out of the transports before he overtook them, the idea that he might outstrip them does not seem to have entered his head. Only three vessels had been spoken since Sicily was left behind,—two from Alexandria and one from the Archipelago; but these knew nothing of the French, being doubtless, when met, ahead of the latter's advance. That Nelson again consulted with his captains seems probable—indeed almost certain, from casual mention; but if so, their opinion as to the future course does not appear. The unremitting eagerness of his temperament, the singleness of his purpose, which saw the whole situation concentrated in the French fleet, had worked together up to the present to bring him to the true strategic point just ahead of time; although, by no fault of his own, he had started near three weeks late.[62] These two high qualities now conspired to mislead him by their own excess. "His active and anxious mind," wrote Captain Berry, "would not permit him to rest a moment in the same place; he therefore shaped his course to the northward, for the coast of Caramania [in Asia Minor], to reach as quickly as possible some quarter where information could probably be obtained."
Preoccupied as he was with the fear that the enemy had such a head start that their army would be off the transports before he could catch up, the thought of overtaking them doesn't seem to have crossed his mind. Only three ships had been spotted since leaving Sicily—two from Alexandria and one from the Archipelago—but these ships had no information on the French, as they were likely ahead of the latter's movements when they were encountered. It seems likely that Nelson consulted with his captains—almost certain, based on casual references—yet their opinions on the future course are not apparent. The relentless eagerness of his character and his single-minded purpose, which focused the entire situation on the French fleet, had worked together until now to bring him to the crucial strategic point just in time, even though, through no fault of his own, he had started nearly three weeks late. These two high qualities now unintentionally misled him due to their intensity. "His active and anxious mind," wrote Captain Berry, "would not permit him to rest a moment in the same place; he therefore set his course to the north toward the coast of Caramania [in Asia Minor], to reach some location as quickly as possible where he could likely gather information."
To say that this was a mistake is perhaps to be wise only after the event. Had Nelson known that the French, when leaving Malta, had but three days' start of him, instead of six, as the Genoese had reported, he might have suspected the truth; it is not wonderful that he failed to believe that he could have gained six days. The actual gain was but three; for, departing practically at the same time from points equidistant from Alexandria, Bonaparte's armament appeared before that place on the third day after Nelson arrived. The troops were landed immediately, and the transports entered the port, thus making secure their escape from the British pursuit. The ships of war remained outside.
Saying this was a mistake might seem like hindsight wisdom. If Nelson had known that the French had only a three-day lead when they left Malta, instead of the six days reported by the Genoese, he might have guessed the truth; it’s not surprising that he found it hard to believe he could have gained six days. The actual gain was just three days; since both he and Bonaparte left from locations that were the same distance from Alexandria, Bonaparte's fleet showed up three days after Nelson arrived. The troops were landed right away, and the transports entered the port, ensuring their escape from British pursuit. The warships stayed outside.
Meanwhile Nelson, "distressed for the Kingdom of the Two Sicilies," was beating back to the westward against the wind which had carried him rapidly to the coast of Egypt. Rightly or wrongly, he had not chosen to wait at the point which mature reflection had indicated to him as the enemy's goal, and the best course that now occurred to him was to do with his fleet the exploring duty that frigates should have done. "No frigates," he wrote to Sir William Hamilton; "to which has been, and may again, be attributed the loss of the French fleet." On his return he kept along the northern shore of the Mediterranean, passing near Candia; but, though several vessels were spoken, he only gathered from them that the French were not west of Sicily, nor at Corfu. On the 19th of July, he anchored the fleet at Syracuse, having, to use his own words, "gone a round of six hundred leagues with an expedition incredible," and yet "as ignorant of the situation of the enemy as I was twenty-seven days ago."
Meanwhile, Nelson, "worried about the Kingdom of the Two Sicilies," was heading back to the west against the wind that had quickly brought him to the coast of Egypt. Right or wrong, he hadn’t chosen to wait at the point that serious consideration had indicated was the enemy's objective, and the best plan that came to mind was for his fleet to carry out the scouting duty that frigates should have performed. "No frigates," he wrote to Sir William Hamilton; "which has been, and may again, be blamed for the loss of the French fleet." On his way back, he traveled along the northern shore of the Mediterranean, passing near Candia; but, although he talked to several ships, he only found out that the French were not west of Sicily or at Corfu. On July 19th, he anchored the fleet at Syracuse, having, in his own words, "gone a round of six hundred leagues with an incredible expedition," and yet "as clueless about the enemy's situation as I was twenty-seven days ago."
At Syracuse fresh disappointments awaited him, which only the indomitable single-mindedness and perseverance of the man prevented from becoming discouragements. The minister at Naples had sent despatches to await him at Cape Passaro; when he sent for these, thirsty for news about the French, they had been returned to Naples. The governor of the port, despite Acton's assurances to Troubridge, made difficulties about the admission of so many ships, and about supplying water, which they absolutely required. This Nelson resented, with angry contempt for the halting policy of the weak kingdom. "I have had so much said about the King of Naples' orders only to admit three or four of the ships of our fleet into his ports, that I am astonished. I understood that private orders, at least, would have been given for our free admission. If we are to be refused supplies, pray send me by many vessels an account, that I may in good time take the King's fleet to Gibraltar. Our treatment is scandalous for a great nation to put up with, and the King's flag is insulted at every friendly port we look at." "I wish to know your and Sir William's plans for going down the Mediterranean," he wrote to Lady Hamilton, "for, if we are to be kicked in every port of the Sicilian dominions, the sooner we are gone the better. Good God! how sensibly I feel our treatment. I have only to pray I may find the French and throw all my vengeance on them."
At Syracuse, he faced new disappointments that only his strong determination and persistence kept from turning into discouragements. The minister in Naples had sent messages that were supposed to await him at Cape Passaro; however, when he requested them, eager for news about the French, they had been sent back to Naples. The port governor, despite Acton's reassurances to Troubridge, created obstacles regarding the admission of so many ships and the provision of water, which they desperately needed. Nelson was angered by this and looked down on the ineffective strategies of the weak kingdom. "I've heard so much about the King of Naples' orders limiting the admission of only three or four of our fleet's ships into his ports that I'm shocked. I thought private orders would have been issued for our unrestricted entry. If we're going to be denied supplies, please send me a detailed account via several vessels so I can promptly take the King's fleet to Gibraltar. Our treatment is disgraceful for a great nation to endure, and the King's flag is insulted at every friendly port we approach." "I want to know your and Sir William's plans for moving down the Mediterranean," he wrote to Lady Hamilton, "because if we're going to be treated badly in every Sicilian port, the sooner we leave, the better. Good God! I deeply feel our treatment. I just pray I can find the French and unleash all my anger on them."
These words show the nervous exasperation superinduced by the tremendous strain of official anxiety and mortified ambition; for the governor's objections were purely formal and perfunctory, as was the Court's submission to the French. "Our present wants," he admitted at the same writing, "have been most amply supplied, and every attention has been paid us." Years afterwards Nelson spoke feelingly of the bitter mental anguish of that protracted and oft-thwarted pursuit. "Do not fret at anything," he told his friend Troubridge; "I wish I never had, but my return to Syracuse in 1798, broke my heart, which on any extraordinary anxiety now shows itself, be that feeling pain or pleasure." "On the 18th I had near died, with the swelling of some of the vessels of the heart. More people, perhaps, die of broken hearts than we are aware of." But the firmness of his purpose, the clearness of his convictions, remained unslackened and unclouded. "What a situation am I placed in!" he writes, when he finds Hamilton's despatches returned. "As yet I can learn nothing of the enemy. You will, I am sure, and so will our country, easily conceive what has passed in my anxious mind; but I have this comfort, that I have no fault to accuse myself of. This bears me up, and this only." "Every moment I have to regret the frigates having left me," he tells St. Vincent. "Your lordship deprived yourself of frigates to make mine certainly the first squadron in the world, and I feel that I have zeal and activity to do credit to your appointment, and yet to be unsuccessful hurts me most sensibly. But if they are above water, I will find them out, and if possible bring them to battle. You have done your part in giving me so fine a fleet, and I hope to do mine in making use of them."
These words express the nervous frustration caused by the immense pressure of official stress and wounded ambition; the governor's objections were strictly formal and routine, just as the Court's compliance with the French was. "Our current needs," he acknowledged in the same correspondence, "have been completely met, and we have received every attention." Years later, Nelson spoke with deep emotion about the painful mental strain of that prolonged and frequently interrupted pursuit. "Don't worry about anything," he told his friend Troubridge; "I wish I had never worried, but my return to Syracuse in 1798 broke my heart, and now any extreme anxiety shows itself, whether it's due to pain or pleasure." "On the 18th, I nearly died from the swelling of some blood vessels in my heart. More people, perhaps, die from broken hearts than we realize." However, his determination and clarity of thought remained strong and unaffected. "What a situation I find myself in!" he writes when he sees Hamilton's dispatches returned. "So far, I have no information about the enemy. I'm sure you and our country can easily imagine what has been going through my worried mind; but I take comfort in knowing that I have nothing to blame myself for. This supports me, and only this." "I regret every moment that the frigates left me," he tells St. Vincent. "Your lordship gave up frigates to ensure that mine would be the best squadron in the world, and I believe I have the enthusiasm and drive to honor your trust, but being unsuccessful pains me deeply. However, if they are still afloat, I will track them down, and if possible, engage them in battle. You have done your part in providing me with such an excellent fleet, and I hope to do my part in making good use of them."
In five days the squadron had filled with water and again sailed. Satisfied that the enemy were somewhere in the Levant, Nelson now intended a deliberate search for them—or rather for their fleet, the destruction of which was the crucial object of all his movements. "It has been said," he wrote to Hamilton, "that to leeward of the two frigates I saw off Cape Passaro was a line-of-battle ship, with the riches of Malta on board, but it was the destruction of the enemy, not riches for myself, that I was seeking. These would have fallen to me if I had had frigates, but except the ship-of-the-line, I regard not all the riches in this world." A plaintive remonstrance against his second departure was penned by the Neapolitan prime minister, which depicts so plainly the commonplace view of a military situation,—the apprehensions of one to whom immediate security is the great object in war,—that it justifies quotation, and comparison with the clear intuitions, and firmly grasped principle, which placed Nelson always, in desire, alongside the enemy's fleet, and twice carried him, at every risk, to the end of the Mediterranean to seek it. "We are now in danger of a war, directly on Admiral Nelson's account; you see fairly our position; will Admiral Nelson run to the Levant again without knowing for certain the position of the French, and leave the Two Sicilies exposed in these moments? Buonaparte has absconded himself, but in any port he has taken securitys not to be forced. God knows where he is, and whether we shall not see him again in a few days, if we do not hear of what a course he has taken. I present all this to your consideration." To this letter, which oddly enough was written on the very day the Battle of the Nile was fought, Nelson might well have replied then, as he did in terms a year afterwards, "The best defence for His Sicilian Majesty's dominions is to place myself alongside the French fleet."
In five days, the squadron had taken on water and sailed again. Confident that the enemy was somewhere in the Levant, Nelson now planned a thorough search for them—or rather for their fleet, which was the main goal of all his actions. "It has been said," he wrote to Hamilton, "that to the leeward of the two frigates I saw off Cape Passaro was a line-of-battle ship, carrying the riches of Malta, but I was after the enemy's destruction, not wealth for myself. Those would have come to me if I had had frigates; but aside from the ship-of-the-line, I don’t care about all the riches in this world." The Neapolitan prime minister wrote a heartfelt complaint about his second departure, clearly illustrating the typical perspective on military situations—the fears of someone whose main goal in war is immediate safety. This contrasts sharply with the clear understanding and strong principle that always drove Nelson to seek out the enemy’s fleet, even risking everything to reach the Mediterranean's far end to find it. "We are now in danger of war, directly because of Admiral Nelson; you can see our situation; will Admiral Nelson head to the Levant again without knowing for sure the location of the French and leave the Two Sicilies vulnerable right now? Buonaparte has disappeared, but in any port, he has secured himself from being captured. God knows where he is, and whether we will see him again in a few days if we don’t learn about his plans. I bring all this to your attention." To this letter, curiously written on the same day as the Battle of the Nile was fought, Nelson might well have replied then, as he did a year later, "The best defense for His Sicilian Majesty's lands is to place myself alongside the French fleet."
The fleet left Syracuse on the 25th of July, just one week before the discovery of the enemy in Aboukir Bay put an end to Nelson's long suspense. The course was first shaped for the southern capes of the Morea, and on the 28th Troubridge was sent into the Gulf of Koron for information. He returned within three hours, with the news that the French had been seen four weeks before from the coast of Candia, and were then steering southeast. This intelligence was corroborated by a vessel spoken the same day. Southeast, being nearly dead before the prevailing wind, was an almost certain clew to the destination of an unwieldy body which could never regain ground lost to leeward; so, although Nelson now learned that some of his missing frigates had also been seen recently off Candia, he would waste no time looking for them. It may be mentioned that these frigates had appeared off the anchorage of the French fleet, and had been recognized by it as enemies; but, so far from taking warning from the incident, the French admiral was only confirmed by it in a blind belief that the British feared to attack. Immediately after Troubridge's return, the fleet bore up under all sail, and at 2.45 in the afternoon of the 1st of August, 1798, the masthead lookout of the "Zealous" discovered the long-sought-for enemy, lying in Aboukir Bay, on the coast of Egypt, fifteen miles east of Alexandria.
The fleet left Syracuse on July 25, just one week before the discovery of the enemy in Aboukir Bay ended Nelson's long wait. They initially headed toward the southern points of the Morea, and on the 28th, Troubridge was sent into the Gulf of Koron for information. He returned within three hours with news that the French had been spotted four weeks earlier from the coast of Candia, and were then heading southeast. This information was confirmed by a ship encountered the same day. Southeast, which was almost directly against the prevailing wind, was a clear indicator of the destination of a large fleet that could never regain any ground lost to leeward; so, even though Nelson learned that some of his missing frigates had also been seen recently off Candia, he decided not to waste time looking for them. It’s worth noting that these frigates had shown up near the anchorage of the French fleet and had been recognized by them as enemies; however, instead of taking this as a warning, the French admiral became even more convinced that the British were afraid to attack. Immediately after Troubridge returned, the fleet set sail with all its canvas, and at 2:45 in the afternoon on August 1, 1798, the lookout on the "Zealous" spotted the long-sought enemy, lying in Aboukir Bay, off the coast of Egypt, fifteen miles east of Alexandria.
Suspense was ended, but Nelson's weightiest responsibility had yet to be met. The enemy was still so far distant that he could not be reached till near nightfall, and it was possible that not only would the battle be fought in the dark, but that some at least of the ships would not have daylight to take their positions. The consequent difficulty and risk was in any event great; but in this case the more so, because the ground was unknown to every officer in the fleet. The only chart of it in possession of the British was a rude sketch lately taken out of a prize. There was no time now for calling captains together, nor for forming plans of action. Then appeared conspicuously the value of that preparedness of mind, as well as of purpose, which at bottom was the greatest of Nelson's claims to credit. Much had been received by him from Nature,—gifts which, if she bestows them not, man struggles in vain to acquire by his own efforts; but the care which he took in fitting himself to use those gifts to their utmost capacity is his own glory. The author of the first full narrative of these eventful weeks, Captain Berry, than whom no man had larger occasion to observe Nelson's moods, used his capitals well when he wrote, "The admiral viewed the obstacles with the eye of a seaman DETERMINED ON ATTACK." It was not for him, face to face with opportunity, to hesitate and debate whether he would be justified in using it at once. But this preparation of purpose might have led only to a great disaster, had it not received guidance from a richly stored intellect, which had pondered probable conditions so exhaustively that proper direction could be at once imparted and at once understood. The French admiral, indeed, by his mistaken dispositions had delivered himself into the hands of his enemy; but that might not have availed had that enemy hesitated and given time, or had he not instantly comprehended the possibilities of the situation with a trained glance which had contemplated them long before. "By attacking the enemy's van and centre, the wind blowing directly along their line, I was enabled to throw what force I pleased on a few ships. This plan my friends readily conceived by the signals."[63]
Suspense was over, but Nelson's biggest responsibility still lay ahead. The enemy was far enough away that they wouldn't be reached until near nightfall, and it was possible that not only would the battle happen in the dark, but some of the ships wouldn't have daylight to position themselves. The resulting difficulty and risk was significant in any case; but even more so here because no officer in the fleet knew the ground. The only map the British had was a rough sketch recently taken from a prize. There wasn't time to gather the captains or to develop action plans. It was in this moment that the true value of that mental and purposeful readiness, which was Nelson's greatest claim to credit, became clear. He had received much from Nature—gifts that, if not given, man struggles to acquire on his own; but the effort he put into preparing himself to use those gifts to their fullest was his own achievement. Captain Berry, who wrote the first comprehensive account of these eventful weeks and had ample opportunity to observe Nelson's moods, aptly noted, "The admiral viewed the obstacles with the eye of a seaman DETERMINED ON ATTACK." In the face of opportunity, he wouldn't hesitate or debate whether he should act immediately. However, this readiness could have led to disaster if it hadn’t been guided by a well-stored intellect that had thoroughly examined potential scenarios, allowing for quick and clear direction. The French admiral, by his poor decisions, had put himself at his enemy's mercy; but that wouldn't have mattered if the enemy had hesitated and given him time, or had he not instantly recognized the possibilities of the situation with a trained eye that had considered them long beforehand. "By attacking the enemy's van and center, with the wind blowing directly along their line, I was able to focus whatever force I wanted on a few ships. My friends quickly understood this plan through the signals."
It was, therefore, no fortuitous coincidence that the battle was fought on a plan preconcerted in general outline, though necessarily subject to particular variations in detail. Not only had many situations been discussed, as Berry tells us, but new signals had been inserted in the signal-book to enable the admiral's intentions to be quickly understood. To provide for the case of the enemy being met at sea, the force had been organized into three squadrons,—a subdivision of command which, while surrendering nothing of the admiral's initiative, much facilitated the application of his plans, by committing the execution of major details to the two senior captains, Saumarez and Troubridge, each wielding a group of four ships. Among the provisions for specific contingencies was one that evidently sprang from the report that the enemy's fleet numbered sixteen or seventeen of the line,—an impression which arose from there being in it four Venetian ships so rated, which were not, however, fit for a place in the line. In that case Nelson proposed to attack, ship for ship, the rear thirteen of the enemy. That he preferred, when possible, to throw two ships on one is evident enough—the approaching battle proves it; but when confronted with a force stronger, numerically, than his own, and under way, he provides what was certainly the better alternative. He engages at once the attention of as many ships as possible, confident that he brings against each a force superior to it, owing to the general greater efficiency of British ships over French of that date, and especially of those in his own squadron, called by St. Vincent the élite of the Navy.
It wasn’t just a lucky coincidence that the battle was fought based on a plan that had been generally outlined beforehand, even though it had to adapt to specific details. Not only had many situations been discussed, as Berry tells us, but new signals had been added to the signal book to quickly convey the admiral's intentions. To prepare for the possibility of encountering the enemy at sea, the force was organized into three squadrons—a setup that allowed the admiral to maintain his initiative while also making it easier to execute his plans by assigning the main details to the two senior captains, Saumarez and Troubridge, each leading a group of four ships. Among the preparations for specific situations was one that clearly stemmed from the belief that the enemy's fleet had sixteen or seventeen ships of the line—this assumption was based on the presence of four Venetian ships rated as such, which, however, were not actually fit for battle. In that scenario, Nelson planned to engage the rear thirteen ships of the enemy on a ship-for-ship basis. It is clear that he preferred, when possible, to send two ships against one opponent—evidence of this comes from the battle itself. But when faced with a stronger force numerically, he wisely chose a better alternative by immediately engaging as many enemy ships as possible, confident that he would have superior firepower against each, thanks to the overall greater efficiency of British ships compared to the French ones at that time, particularly those in his own squadron, which St. Vincent called the élite of the Navy.
The position of the French fleet, and the arrangements made by its commander, Admiral Brueys, must now be given, for they constitute the particular situation against which Nelson's general plan of attack was to be directed. Considering it impracticable for the ships-of-the-line to enter the port of Alexandria, Brueys had taken the fleet on the 8th of July to their present anchorage. Aboukir Bay begins at a promontory of the same name, and, after curving boldly south, extends eastward eighteen miles, terminating at the Rosetta mouth of the Nile. From the shore the depth increases very gradually, so that water enough for ships-of-the-line was not found till three miles from the coast. Two miles northeast of the promontory of Aboukir is Aboukir Island, since called Nelson's, linked with the point by a chain of rocks. Outside the island, similar rocks, with shoals, prolong this foul ground under water to seaward, constituting a reef dangerous to a stranger approaching the bay. This barrier, however, broke the waves from the northwest, and so made the western part of the bay a fairly convenient summer roadstead. The French fleet was anchored there, under the shelter of the island and rocks, in an order such that "the wind blew nearly along the line." Its situation offered no local protection against an enemy's approach, except that due to ignorance of the ground.
The position of the French fleet and the arrangements made by its commander, Admiral Brueys, need to be outlined, as they form the specific situation that Nelson's overall attack plan was aimed at. Believing it was impossible for the ships-of-the-line to enter the port of Alexandria, Brueys had brought the fleet to their current anchorage on July 8th. Aboukir Bay starts at a promontory of the same name and curves boldly south before extending eastward for eighteen miles, ending at the Rosetta mouth of the Nile. The water depth gradually increases from the shore, so it wasn't until three miles from the coast that there was enough water for ships-of-the-line. Two miles northeast of the Aboukir promontory is Aboukir Island, now known as Nelson's Island, connected to the point by a chain of rocks. Beyond the island, similar rocks and shoals extend this hazardous underwater area out to sea, creating a reef that’s dangerous for any unfamiliar vessel approaching the bay. However, this natural barrier broke the northwest waves, making the western part of the bay a relatively suitable summer anchorage. The French fleet was anchored there, protected by the island and rocks, organized in a way that "the wind blew nearly along the line." Its location provided no local defense against an enemy approach, aside from the enemy's lack of knowledge about the area.
It was therefore Brueys's business to meet this defect of protection by adequate dispositions; and this he failed to do. Numerically his force was the same as Nelson's; but, while the latter had only seventy-fours, there were in the French fleet one ship of one hundred and twenty guns, and three eighties. In a military sense, every line divides naturally into three parts,—the centre, and the two ends, or flanks; and it is essential that these should so far support one another that an enemy cannot attack any two in superior force, while the third is unable to assist. Shallow water, such as was found in Aboukir Bay, if properly utilized, will prevent a flank being turned, so that an enemy can get on both sides of the ships there, or otherwise concentrate upon them, as by enfilading; and if, in addition, the ships are anchored close to each other, it becomes impossible for two of the attacking force to direct their fire upon one of the defence, without being exposed to reprisals from those next astern and ahead. These evident precautions received no illustration in the arrangements of Admiral Brueys. The general direction of his line was that of the wind, from northwest to southeast, with a very slight bend, as shown in the diagram. The leading—northwestern—ship was brought close to the shoal in thirty feet of water, but not so close as to prevent the British passing round her, turning that flank; and there were between the successive ships intervals of five hundred feet, through any one of which an enemy could readily pass. Brueys had very properly accumulated his most powerful vessels at the centre. The flagship "Orient," of one hundred and twenty guns, was seventh in the order; next ahead and astern of her were, respectively, the "Franklin" and the "Tonnant," each of eighty. By a singular misconception, however, he had thought that any attack would fall upon the rear—the lee flank; and to this utter misapprehension of the exposed points it was owing that he there placed his next heaviest ships. Nelson's fore-determined onslaught upon the van accordingly fell on the weakest of the French vessels.
It was Brueys's responsibility to address this lack of protection with proper arrangements, which he did not accomplish. His force was the same size as Nelson's; however, while Nelson only had ships of seventy-four guns, the French fleet included one ship with one hundred and twenty guns and three ships with eighty guns. In military terms, every line is naturally divided into three parts: the center and two ends, or flanks. It's crucial that these parts support each other enough that an enemy can't attack two with superior numbers while the third one is unable to help. Shallow water, like that found in Aboukir Bay, if utilized correctly, can prevent an enemy from flanking the ships, ensuring that they can't attack from both sides or concentrate their fire on them, such as by enfilading; and if the ships are anchored close together, it becomes impossible for two attackers to fire at one defending ship without being vulnerable to counterattacks from the ships behind and in front. These clear precautions were not reflected in Admiral Brueys's arrangements. The general direction of his line followed the wind, running from northwest to southeast, with only a slight curve, as shown in the diagram. The leading ship to the northwest was positioned near the shoal in thirty feet of water, but not so close that the British couldn't maneuver around her, thereby turning that flank; and there were gaps of five hundred feet between the ships, through which an enemy could easily pass. Brueys had rightfully positioned his most powerful vessels at the center. The flagship "Orient," with one hundred and twenty guns, was the seventh in line; directly in front and behind her were the "Franklin" and the "Tonnant," each with eighty guns. However, due to a strange misunderstanding, he believed any attack would target the rear—the lee flank; and because of this complete misjudgment of the vulnerable points, he placed his next heaviest ships there. Nelson's planned attack on the front consequently targeted the weakest of the French vessels.
Such was the French order of battle. The proceedings of the British fleet, under its leader, show an instructive combination of rapidity and caution, of quick comprehension of the situation, with an absence of all precipitation; no haste incompatible with perfect carefulness, no time lost, either by hesitation or by preparations postponed. When the enemy were first discovered, two ships, the "Alexander" and "Swiftsure," were a dozen miles to leeward, having been sent ahead on frigates' duty to reconnoitre Alexandria. This circumstance prevented their joining till after the battle began and night had fallen. At the same moment the "Culloden" was seven miles to windward. She was signalled to drop the prize she was towing, and to join the fleet. To this separation was due that she went aground. The remaining ten ships, which had been steering about east, hauled sharp on the wind to enable them to weather with ample allowance the shoal off Aboukir Island. It was blowing a whole-sail breeze, too fresh for the lighter canvas; the royals were furled as soon as close-hauled. As the French situation and dispositions developed to the view, signals were made to prepare for battle, to get ready to anchor by the stern, and that it was the admiral's intention to attack the van and centre of the enemy. The captains had long been forewarned of each of these possibilities, and nothing more was needed to convey to them his general plan, which was intrusted to them individually to carry out as they successively came into action.
This was the French order of battle. The actions of the British fleet, led by their commander, demonstrate an effective mix of speed and caution, with a quick understanding of the situation and no rashness; there was no haste that compromised thoroughness, and no time wasted due to hesitation or delayed preparations. When the enemy was first spotted, two ships, the "Alexander" and "Swiftsure," were twelve miles downwind, having been sent ahead on scouting duties to survey Alexandria. This situation kept them from joining until after the battle started and night fell. At the same time, the "Culloden" was seven miles upwind. She was signaled to drop the prize she was towing and join the fleet. Because of this separation, she ended up going aground. The other ten ships, which had been heading east, turned sharply into the wind to safely navigate around the shallows near Aboukir Island. There was a strong breeze, too powerful for the lighter sails; the royals were taken down as soon as they were on a close haul. As the French situation and formations became clearer, signals were made to prepare for battle, to get ready to anchor by the stern, and to inform them that the admiral intended to attack the front and center of the enemy. The captains had been warned about these possibilities in advance, and nothing more was needed to communicate his overall plan, which was entrusted to them individually to execute as they engaged in action.
At about half-past five signal was given to form line of battle. This, for the ships of the day, was a single column, in which they were ranged ahead and astern of each other, leaving the broadside clear. As they came abreast the shoal, Nelson hailed Captain Hood, of the "Zealous," and asked if he thought they were yet far enough to the eastward to clear it, if they then headed for the enemy. Hood replied that he did not know the ground, but was in eleven fathoms, and would, if the admiral allowed, bear up and sound with the lead, and would not bring the fleet into danger. This was done, Hood leading all the fleet except the "Goliath," Captain Foley, which kept ahead, but outside, of the "Zealous." No close shaving was done, however, at this critical turn; and it is that steady deliberation, combined with such parsimony of time in other moments, which is most impressive in Nelson. So few realize that five minutes are at once the most important and the least important of considerations. Thus the British passed so much beyond the island and the shoal, before keeping away, that, as the long column swept round to head for the French van, the ships turned their port broadsides to the enemy, and were steering southwesterly when they finally ran down. "The English admiral," wrote the French second in command, "without doubt had experienced pilots on board; he hauled well round all dangers."
At around 5:30, a signal was given to form a battle line. For the ships of the day, this meant they arranged in a single column, lined up in front and behind each other, keeping the broadside clear. As they approached the shallow water, Nelson called out to Captain Hood of the "Zealous" and asked if he thought they were far enough east to avoid it if they then went towards the enemy. Hood replied that he wasn’t familiar with the area, but he was in eleven fathoms of water and, if the admiral agreed, he could head up and take soundings with the lead, ensuring the fleet wouldn’t be in danger. This was done, with Hood leading most of the fleet except for the "Goliath," Captain Foley, which stayed ahead but outside of the "Zealous." However, there was no risky maneuvering at this critical point; it’s that calm deliberation, combined with saving time in other moments, that’s most impressive about Nelson. So few realize that five minutes can be both the most crucial and the least crucial of factors. The British ended up passing well beyond the island and the shallow area before changing course, so when the long column turned to face the French front, the ships aimed their left broadsides at the enemy and were heading southwest when they finally charged down. “The English admiral,” wrote the French second in command, “undoubtedly had experienced pilots on board; he navigated carefully around all hazards.”
The "Goliath" still leading the fleet, followed closely by the "Zealous," the flagship was dropped to sixth in the order,—Nelson thus placing himself so that he could see what the first five ships accomplished, while retaining in his own hands the power to impart a new direction to the remaining five of those then with him, should he think it necessary. Captain Foley had formed the idea that the French would be less ready to fight on the inshore side, and had expressed his intention to get inside them, if practicable. Sounding as he went, he passed round the bows of the leading vessel, the "Guerrier," on the inner bow of which he intended to place himself; but the anchor hung, and the "Goliath" brought up on the inner quarter of the "Conquérant," the second ship. The "Zealous," following, anchored where Foley had purposed, on the bow of the "Guerrier;" and the next three ships, the "Orion," "Theseus," and "Audacious," also placed themselves on the inner side of the French line.
The "Goliath" was still leading the fleet, closely followed by the "Zealous." The flagship dropped to sixth in the order, allowing Nelson to see what the first five ships were doing while keeping the ability to direct the remaining five ships with him if he deemed it necessary. Captain Foley believed that the French would be less willing to fight on the inshore side and expressed his intention to get inside them if possible. As he moved forward, he passed around the bows of the leading ship, the "Guerrier," where he intended to position himself. However, the anchor got stuck, and the "Goliath" ended up on the inner quarter of the "Conquérant," the second ship. The "Zealous," following, anchored where Foley had planned, at the bow of the "Guerrier," and the next three ships, the "Orion," "Theseus," and "Audacious," also positioned themselves on the inner side of the French line.
The two leading French vessels were at once crushed. All the masts of the "Guerrier," although no sail was on them, went overboard within ten minutes after she was first attacked, while the "Conquérant" was receiving the united broadsides of the "Goliath" and the "Audacious,"—the latter raking. Nelson therefore placed the "Vanguard" on the outer side, and within pistol-shot, of the third French ship, the "Spartiate," which was already engaged on the other side by the "Theseus," but at much longer range. His example was of course followed by those succeeding him—the seventh and eighth of the British engaging the fourth and fifth of the French, which were already receiving part of the fire of the "Orion" and "Theseus" on the inner side—the latter having ceased to play upon the "Spartiate" for fear of hitting the "Vanguard." Thus five French ships were within half an hour in desperate conflict with eight British, while their consorts to leeward looked helplessly on.
The two main French ships were immediately overwhelmed. All the masts of the "Guerrier," even though there were no sails up, went overboard within ten minutes after it was attacked for the first time, while the "Conquérant" was taking fire from both the "Goliath" and the "Audacious," the latter hitting it broadside. Nelson then positioned the "Vanguard" on the outer side, close enough to shoot at, from the third French ship, the "Spartiate," which was already engaged on the other side by the "Theseus," but from much farther away. His move was naturally followed by the ships coming up behind him—the seventh and eighth British ships targeting the fourth and fifth French ships, which were already taking some of the fire from the "Orion" and "Theseus" on the inside—the latter having stopped firing at the "Spartiate" for fear of hitting the "Vanguard." In this way, five French ships were in intense battle with eight British ships within half an hour, while their fellow ships to the leeward watched helplessly.
The ninth and tenth of Nelson's fleet were less fortunate, owing to the envelope of smoke and the growing darkness, which now obscured the scene. The "Bellerophon," missing the sixth French vessel, the "Franklin," brought up abreast the "Orient," whose force was double her own, and which had no other antagonist. The "Majestic," groping her way, ran into the ninth French, the "Heureux," where for some moments she hung in a position of disadvantage and had her captain killed. Then swinging clear, she anchored on the bow of the next astern, the "Mercure," and there continued a deadly and solitary action. Owing to the circumstances mentioned, the loss of each of these ships was greater, by fifty per cent, than that of any other of the British fleet. The movements so far described, and the resultant fighting, may be styled the first stage of the battle. Concerning it may be remarked the unswerving steadiness, rapidity, and yet sound judgment, with which all the movements were executed; and further, that not only was the first direction of the attack that prescribed by Nelson's signal, but that the second, initiated by his own ship, was also imparted by him. The incident of passing round the "Guerrier," and inside of the line, is a detail only, although one which cannot be too highly praised. "The van ship of the enemy being in five fathom," wrote Captain Hood, "I expected the Goliath and Zealous to stick fast on the shoal every moment, and did not imagine we should attempt to pass within her." It is difficult to exaggerate the coolness, intrepidity, and seamanlike care of Captain Foley, to whom is to be attributed, perhaps, the whole conception, and certainly the entire merit of the execution; but they no more detract from Nelson's honors than does the distinguished conduct of the other captains.
The ninth and tenth ships in Nelson's fleet had worse luck because of the smoke and the growing darkness that obscured the scene. The "Bellerophon," missing the sixth French ship, the "Franklin," came up next to the "Orient," which was twice as powerful as her own and had no other opponent. The "Majestic," navigating carefully, collided with the ninth French ship, the "Heureux," where she found herself in a vulnerable position and lost her captain. After that, she managed to pull away and anchored alongside the next ship, the "Mercure," where she continued a fierce and isolated battle. Due to these circumstances, the losses for these ships were fifty percent greater than those of any other British ship in the fleet. The movements described so far and the resulting fights can be seen as the first stage of the battle. It’s worth noting the unwavering steadiness, speed, and sound decision-making with which all movements were carried out; furthermore, not only was the initial attack directed by Nelson's signal, but the following one, initiated by his own ship, was communicated by him as well. The detail of passing around the "Guerrier" and inside the line is noteworthy, even though it's just a minor point that deserves high praise. "With the enemy's lead ship in five fathoms," wrote Captain Hood, "I expected the Goliath and Zealous to get stuck on the shoal at any moment, and I didn’t think we would try to pass inside her." It's hard to overstate the coolness, bravery, and seafaring skill of Captain Foley, who is likely responsible for the entire concept and certainly deserves credit for the execution; however, this does not take away from Nelson's accolades any more than the distinguished actions of the other captains.
The battle had begun a little after half-past six, the "Guerrier's" masts falling at sundown, which was quarter before seven. It continued under the conditions already given until past eight o'clock—none of the ships engaged shifting her position for some time after that hour. It was, apparently, just before the second act of the drama opened with the arrival of the remaining ships—the "Alexander," "Swiftsure," and "Leander"—that Nelson was severely wounded; but the precise moment has not been recorded. He was struck upon the upper part of the forehead by a flying piece of iron, the skin, which was cut at right angles, hanging down over his face, covering the one good eye, and, with the profuse flow of blood, blinding him completely. He exclaimed, "I am killed! Remember me to my wife!" and was falling, but Captain Berry, who stood near, caught him in his arms. When carried below to the cockpit, the surgeon went immediately to him, but he refused to be attended before his turn arrived, in due succession to the injured lying around him.
The battle started a little after 6:30, with the "Guerrier's" masts falling at sunset, which was 6:45. It went on under the same conditions until after 8:00—none of the ships involved changed their positions for some time after that. Apparently, just before the second act of the drama began with the arrival of the remaining ships—the "Alexander," "Swiftsure," and "Leander"—Nelson was severely wounded; the exact moment hasn't been recorded. He was hit in the upper part of his forehead by a flying piece of iron, and the cut, which was at a right angle, hung down over his face, covering his one good eye and, with the heavy flow of blood, completely blinding him. He shouted, "I am killed! Remember me to my wife!" and started to fall, but Captain Berry, who was nearby, caught him in his arms. When he was carried below to the cockpit, the surgeon went to him right away, but he refused treatment until his turn came, after attending to the other injured men around him.
The pain was intense, and Nelson felt convinced that his hurt was mortal; nor could he for some time accept the surgeon's assurances to the contrary. Thus looking for his end, he renewed his farewell messages to Lady Nelson, and directed also that Captain Louis of the "Minotaur," which lay immediately ahead of the "Vanguard," should be hailed to come on board, that before dying he might express to him his sense of the admirable support given by her to the flagship. "Your support," said he, "has prevented me from being obliged to haul out of the line."[64] From the remark it may be inferred that the French "Aquilon," their fourth ship, which became the "Minotaur's" antagonist, had for a measurable time been able to combine her batteries with those of the "Spartiate" upon the "Vanguard," and to this was probably due that the loss of the latter was next in severity to that of the "Majestic" and of the "Bellerophon." The inference is further supported by the fact that the worst slaughter in the "Vanguard" was at the forward guns, those nearest the "Aquilon."
The pain was overwhelming, and Nelson believed that his injury was fatal; he couldn’t accept the surgeon's assurances to the contrary for a long time. Expecting his end, he sent more farewell messages to Lady Nelson and also asked Captain Louis of the "Minotaur," which was right in front of the "Vanguard," to come on board so that he could share his gratitude for the incredible support she provided to the flagship. "Your support," he said, "has kept me from having to pull out of the line." From this comment, it can be inferred that the French "Aquilon," their fourth ship, which faced off against the "Minotaur," had for some time been able to combine her firepower with that of the "Spartiate" against the "Vanguard," and this was likely the reason for the heavy losses on the "Vanguard," which were second only to those of the "Majestic" and the "Bellerophon." This conclusion is further backed by the fact that the worst casualties on the "Vanguard" occurred at the front guns, those closest to the "Aquilon."
After his wound was bound up, Nelson was requested by the surgeon to lie quiet; but his preoccupation with the events of the evening was too great, and his responsibility too immediate, to find relief in inactivity,—the physician's panacea. He remained below for a while, probably too much jarred for physical exertion; but his restlessness sought vent by beginning a despatch to the Admiralty. The secretary being too agitated to write, Nelson tried to do so himself, and it was characteristic that the few lines he was then able to trace, blinded, suffering, and confused, expressed that dependence upon the Almighty, habitual with him, which illustrated a temperament of so much native energy and self-reliance, and is more common, probably, among great warriors than in any other class of men of action. This first outburst of emotion, excited in him by the tremendous event wrought by his hands, was identical in spirit, and not improbably was clothed in the same words, as those with which began the despatch actually sent: "Almighty God has blessed His Majesty's arms."
After his wound was treated, the surgeon asked Nelson to rest, but he was too preoccupied with the events of the evening and felt too responsible to find comfort in inactivity—the physician's go-to solution. He stayed below decks for a while, perhaps too shaken for any physical effort, but his restlessness led him to start a message to the Admiralty. The secretary was too flustered to write, so Nelson attempted it himself. It was typical of him that the few lines he managed to write, despite feeling blind, in pain, and confused, reflected his reliance on God, which was a consistent aspect of his character—one of remarkable energy and self-sufficiency, more common among great warriors than other types of action-oriented individuals. This first surge of emotion, triggered by the immense event he had caused, likely echoed the same sentiment, and probably even used the same wording, as the message that was eventually sent: "Almighty God has blessed His Majesty's arms."
While Nelson lay thus momentarily disabled, important events were transpiring, over which, however, he could have exerted no control. It has been mentioned that the "Culloden" was seven miles to the northward and westward of the fleet, when the French were first discovered. Doing her best, it was impossible to reach the main body before it stood down into action, and the day had closed when the ship neared the shoal. Keeping the lead going, and proceeding with caution, though not with the extreme care which led Hood and Nelson to make so wide a sweep, Troubridge had the mishap to strike on the tail of the shoal, and there the ship stuck fast, pounding heavily until the next morning. The fifty-gun ship "Leander" went to her assistance, as did the brig "Mutine," but all efforts to float her proved vain. Meanwhile the "Alexander" and "Swiftsure" were coming up from the southwest, the wind being so scant that they could barely pass to windward of the reef, along whose northwestern edge they were standing. The "Alexander," in fact, was warned by the lead that she was running into danger, and had to tack. As they approached, Troubridge, by lantern and signal, warned them off the spot of his disaster, thus contributing to save these ships, and, by removing doubt, accelerating their entrance into action. As they rounded the stranded "Culloden," the "Leander" was also dismissed from a hopeless task, and followed them to the scene of battle.
While Nelson was temporarily incapacitated, important events were unfolding that he couldn't control. It was noted that the "Culloden" was seven miles northwest of the fleet when the French were first spotted. Despite her best efforts, it was impossible for her to reach the main fleet before they engaged in battle, and night had fallen by the time the ship approached the sandbank. Keeping the lead going and moving cautiously—though not with the extreme care that Hood and Nelson used to navigate so wide a path—Troubridge unfortunately ran aground at the edge of the shoal, where the ship remained stuck, taking heavy pounding until the next morning. The fifty-gun ship "Leander" and the brig "Mutine" came to help, but all attempts to free her were unsuccessful. Meanwhile, the "Alexander" and "Swiftsure" were making their way up from the southwest, with the wind so light that they could barely maneuver past the reef they were sailing along. The "Alexander" was actually warned by the lead that she was heading into danger, requiring her to change direction. As they got closer, Troubridge used lanterns and signals to warn them away from the site of his mishap, helping to protect these ships and speed up their entry into the battle. As they navigated around the stranded "Culloden," the "Leander" was also released from her futile task and followed them to the battlefield.
The delay of the two seventy-fours, though purely fortuitous, worked in furtherance of Nelson's plan, and resulted, practically, in constituting them a reserve, which was brought into play at a most auspicious moment. The "Bellerophon," crushed by the preponderating weight of the "Orient's" battery, had just cut her cable and worn out of action, with the loss of forty-nine killed and one hundred and forty-eight wounded, out of a total of five hundred and ninety men. Her foremast alone was then standing, and it fell immediately after. The firing, which had been animated from the French left towards the centre, now slackened around the latter, at the point where the "Orient" and her next ahead, the "Franklin," were lying. For this spot, therefore, the captains of the two fresh British ships steered. The "Swiftsure," Captain Hallowell, anchored outside the enemy's line, abreast the interval separating the "Orient" and the "Franklin," between which he divided his fire. The "Alexander," Captain Ball, passed through the line, astern of the "Orient," and anchored close on her inner quarter. Just at this time a shot cut the cable of the "Peuple Souverain," next ahead of the "Franklin," and she drifted out of her place to abreast the latter ship, ahead of which a wide gap of a thousand feet was thus left. Into this the "Leander" glided, fixing herself with great skill to rake at once the "Franklin" and the "Orient."
The delay of the two seventy-fours, though purely by chance, actually helped Nelson's plan and ended up acting as a reserve, which was utilized at a very favorable time. The "Bellerophon," overwhelmed by the heavy fire from the "Orient's" batteries, had just cut her cable and was knocked out of action, suffering forty-nine killed and one hundred and forty-eight wounded out of a total of five hundred and ninety men. At that point, only her foremast was still standing, and it fell immediately after. The firing, which had been intense from the French left toward the center, now eased around the center, where the "Orient" and the "Franklin" were situated. Because of this, the captains of the two new British ships steered for that area. The "Swiftsure," commanded by Captain Hallowell, anchored outside the enemy's line, positioned between the "Orient" and the "Franklin," splitting his fire between them. The "Alexander," under Captain Ball, passed through the line, behind the "Orient," and anchored right next to her inner quarter. Just then, a shot severed the cable of the "Peuple Souverain," which was ahead of the "Franklin," and she drifted out of her position next to the latter ship, creating a large gap of a thousand feet ahead. Into this gap, the "Leander" smoothly moved in, expertly positioning itself to rake fire at both the "Franklin" and the "Orient."
These two French ships had already been much battered, and the "Franklin" was still receiving part of the fire of the "Orion," Sir James Saumarez, on her inner bow, as well as that of the "Defence," hitherto engaged by the "Peuple Souverain." This accumulation upon them of three fresh ships would doubtless have proved irresistible, even if a yet more dire calamity had not supervened. The new-comers took their positions soon after eight, and a little before nine a fire was observed on the poop of the "Orient." The British captains, seeing the flames fighting on their behalf, redoubled their efforts, directing their aim especially upon the scene of the conflagration, and thereby thwarting all attempt to extinguish it. The blaze spread rapidly, upward through the tarred rigging and the masts, downward to the lower decks, where her heroic crew, still ignorant of the approaching doom, labored incessantly at their guns. As the sublime sight forced itself upon the eyes of all about, friends and enemies alike busied themselves with precautions for their own safety in the coming catastrophe. The ships to windward held on; those to leeward for the most part veered or slipped their cables, the "Alexander" fiercely refusing to do so till assured that the "Orient's" destruction was inevitable. Captain Berry went below to report to the admiral this appalling climax to the night's work, and to his own long-sustained efforts in chase and battle. Nelson demanded to be led on deck, where he gave orders that the only boat still in condition for use should be sent with the "Vanguard's" first lieutenant, to help save the unhappy crew. He then remained watching the progress of the fire. At quarter before ten the "Orient" blew up. At this time the moon rose, and from her tranquil path looked down, through the clear Egyptian air, upon the scene of devastation.
These two French ships had already taken quite a beating, and the "Franklin" was still getting some of the fire from the "Orion," commanded by Sir James Saumarez, on her inner bow, as well as from the "Defence," which had been engaged by the "Peuple Souverain." The addition of three new ships would likely have been overpowering, even without an even greater disaster that was about to unfold. The newcomers took their positions shortly after eight, and just before nine, flames were spotted on the stern of the "Orient." The British captains, seeing the fire working in their favor, intensified their efforts, focusing their fire on the area of the blaze, making it impossible to put it out. The flames quickly spread, climbing through the tarred rigging and masts and burning downward to the lower decks, where the brave crew, still unaware of the impending doom, tirelessly worked at their guns. As the awe-inspiring sight captivated everyone around, both friends and foes hurriedly took precautions for their safety in the coming disaster. The ships upwind held their positions; those downwind mostly changed course or let go of their anchors, with the "Alexander" fiercely refusing to do so until it was clear that the "Orient's" destruction was unavoidable. Captain Berry went below deck to inform the admiral of this horrifying turn of events, a grim conclusion to his sustained efforts in the chase and battle. Nelson asked to be taken on deck, where he ordered that the only boat still functional should be sent out with the "Vanguard's" first lieutenant to help rescue the unfortunate crew. He then stayed on deck to watch the fire's progression. At a quarter to ten, the "Orient" exploded. At that moment, the moon rose and looked down, serene in the clear Egyptian air, upon the scene of destruction.
Nelson was now persuaded to go to bed, but he neither got nor sought repose of mind. Throughout the night, and in the early morning, messages went from him to various ships to take this or that step, to garner in the fruits of the victory yet unculled. The fleet responded somewhat spasmodically, if not inadequately, to these calls. Men in truth were worn out with labor and excitement. "My people were so extremely jaded," wrote Captain Miller of the "Theseus," who obeyed a summons to move, "that as soon as they had hove our sheet anchor up they dropped under the capstan bars, and were asleep in a moment in every sort of posture, having been then working at their fullest exertion, or fighting, for near twelve hours." Nelson, in common with other great leaders, could not be satisfied with any but the utmost results. To quote again his words of years gone by: "Had ten ships been taken and the eleventh escaped, we being able to get at her, I should never consider it well done." His idea, Captain Berry tells us, was first to secure the victory, and then to make the most of it, as circumstances might permit. The expression is so luminous that it can scarcely be doubted that the words are substantially those of the admiral himself.[65] First, the great combination, which necessarily for the moment neglects a part of the enemy in order to disconcert and overwhelm the rest; afterwards, the unremitting pursuit, which completes the triumph.
Nelson was now convinced to go to bed, but he didn't find any peace of mind. Throughout the night and into the early morning, he sent messages to various ships to take different actions and make the most of the unclaimed victory. The fleet responded somewhat irregularly, if not inadequately, to these requests. The men were genuinely exhausted from their hard work and excitement. "My crew was so incredibly worn out," wrote Captain Miller of the "Theseus," who responded to a call to move, "that as soon as we pulled up our sheet anchor, they collapsed under the capstan bars and fell asleep instantly in every possible position, having been working at full tilt, or fighting, for nearly twelve hours." Nelson, like other great leaders, could only be satisfied with the absolute best outcomes. To quote his words from years past: "Had ten ships been captured and the eleventh escaped, while we had the chance to catch her, I would never consider it well done." His idea, as Captain Berry tells us, was to first secure the victory and then maximize it based on the circumstances. The phrase is so clear that it's hard to doubt that these words are essentially those of the admiral himself.[65] First, the great strategy, which necessarily for the moment overlooks part of the enemy in order to disrupt and overpower the rest; then, the relentless pursuit that completes the victory.
It was therefore perfectly characteristic of Nelson's habit of thought, and not merely an egotistic expression of baseless discontent with others, that he avowed his dissatisfaction with the results of the night's work, stupendous and wholly unparalleled as they were. But his own condition, prostrated and with disabled head, was doubly typical of the state of his fleet after the "Orient" blew up. Not only were men overcome with fatigue,—from weariness as great men have been aroused by the inspiring call of a trusted chief,—but the guiding head of the body was dazed and incapacitated; that was gone which alone could sustain energy and give unity to movement. Although Nelson indulged in no metaphorical allusions, he had this figure of the head clearly enough in his mind, when he wrote four weeks later to Lord Minto: "I regret that one escaped, and I think, if it had pleased God that I had not been wounded, not a boat would have escaped to have told the tale; but do not believe that any individual in the fleet is to blame. In my conscience, I believe greater exertions could not have been, and I only mean to say, that if my experience could in person have directed[66] those exertions of individuals, there was every appearance that Almighty God would have continued to bless my endeavours." This opinion he reiterated to Lord Howe, even more positively, after four months' longer reflection, in a letter dated January 8, 1799; and, whether the result would or would not have equalled his belief, the traces are clear that what was wanted, during the remainder of that eventful night, was just that concord of action which the head imparts to the members. Messages went from ship to ship, captains consulted together and proposed to move together, and did move separately; there was no lack of good-will, nor, as Nelson says, of exertion; but men were not quite sure of what the other man would do, and felt no authority to command him; and there was hesitation over risks, and cautious delays about soundings and shaky spars, which, the author is persuaded, would not have deterred Nelson in such conditions, where victory was decisive, though not yet complete. Illustrations would perhaps be invidious, as seeming to imply a blame upon individuals which Nelson expressly disavowed; blame that officers of exceptional professional capacity, concerning whom the measured professional opinion of Lord Howe affirmed that the Battle of the Nile "was unparalleled in this respect, that every captain distinguished himself," fell short of the peculiar excellence attained by Nelson only among the men of his day. Moreover, this work does not aim at a discussion of battles, except so far as they touch Nelson personally. It may, however, be permissible to remark, that the incident here under discussion suggests a doubt about the opinion, too easily current, that an admiral's powers of control cease when the battle joins. Under the circumstances, it is probable that Nelson, being so far incapacitated as he thought himself, should have transferred the direction of affairs, formally, to the next senior officer, with general orders to secure the best results attainable.
It was typical of Nelson's way of thinking—and not just a self-centered complaint about others—that he expressed his disappointment with the results of the night, no matter how impressive and unmatched they were. His own state, exhausted and with a wounded head, mirrored his fleet's condition after the "Orient" exploded. Not only were the men worn out—exhausted from the same determination that great leaders inspire in their followers—but the leader himself was bewildered and incapacitated; what was needed to maintain energy and unify their movements was lost. Although Nelson didn’t use any metaphors, he clearly had this image of a leader in mind when he wrote to Lord Minto four weeks later: "I regret that one got away, and I believe that if it had pleased God for me not to have been wounded, not a boat would have escaped to tell the story; but do not think that any individual in the fleet is to blame. I sincerely believe greater efforts couldn’t have been made, and all I mean to say is that if my experience could have personally guided those individual efforts, it seemed that Almighty God would have continued to bless my endeavors." He reaffirmed this belief to Lord Howe even more firmly, after reflecting for another four months, in a letter dated January 8, 1799. Regardless of whether the outcome would have matched his expectations, it’s clear that what was missing during the rest of that significant night was the coordination that a leader provides to their team. Messages were sent back and forth between ships, captains consulted each other and proposed acting together, but then moved separately; there was no shortage of goodwill, nor, as Nelson noted, of effort; however, the men weren’t entirely sure what their fellow sailors would do, and they felt no authority to direct one another; there was hesitation over risks and cautious delays concerning soundings and unstable spars, which, the author believes, wouldn’t have held Nelson back in such a situation, where victory was crucial, even if it wasn’t complete yet. Examples might seem unfair, suggesting blame on individuals which Nelson specifically denied; blame directed at officers of exceptional skill, regarding whom even Lord Howe stated that the Battle of the Nile "was unique in that every captain distinguished himself," fell short of the particular greatness that only Nelson achieved among his contemporaries. Furthermore, this work does not intend to analyze battles, except as they relate to Nelson personally. However, it may be worth noting that the incident under discussion raises doubts about the overly simplistic view that an admiral's authority vanishes once the battle starts. Given the situation, it's likely that Nelson, believing himself so incapacitated, should have formally handed over command to the next senior officer, with general instructions to achieve the best possible outcomes.
The following morning it was found that the leading six ships of the French had already struck their colors. The "Orient" having blown up, there were six survivors. Of these, one, the "Tonnant," next astern of the "Orient," though dismasted, was still afloat, a mile behind her former position, having dropped there to avoid the explosion. The "Heureux" and "Mercure," which had slipped their cables for the same reason, were ashore and helpless. The spars of the three rear ships, the "Guillaume Tell," "Généreux," and "Timoléon," were still standing, and they had received little injury. At about noon these vessels, commanded by Rear Admiral Villeneuve, got under way to go to sea; but the "Timoléon" cast with her head inshore, and, after an ineffectual attempt to wear, ran aground, bows on, her foremast going over the side as she struck. The crew escaped to the beach, and she was then set on fire by her captain, her colors flying as she burned. The two other ships escaped, with two frigates which accompanied them. Only one British ship, the "Zealous," was in condition to follow, and she did so; but Nelson, seeing that she could not be supported, recalled her from the unequal contest.
The next morning, it was discovered that the first six ships of the French had already lowered their flags. The "Orient" had exploded, leaving only six survivors. Among these, the "Tonnant," positioned just behind the "Orient," was dismasted but still floating about a mile away from where it had been, having moved there to avoid the explosion. The "Heureux" and "Mercure," which had cut their cables for the same reason, were stranded and defenseless. The mast of the three rear ships, the "Guillaume Tell," "Généreux," and "Timoléon," remained intact, and they had suffered little damage. Around noon, these vessels, led by Rear Admiral Villeneuve, set sail to head out to sea; however, the "Timoléon" turned with its bow facing the shore and, after unsuccessfully trying to turn around, ran aground, crashing in with its foremast collapsing as it struck. The crew made it to the beach, and the captain then set the ship on fire while its colors still flew. The two other ships managed to escape, along with two frigates that were with them. Only one British ship, the "Zealous," was in a state to pursue, and it did; however, Nelson, seeing that it couldn’t be supported, ordered it back from the uneven fight.
It is upon the chance that these sole survivors of the great catastrophe might have been secured, by action during the night, that the validity of Nelson's regrets turns. Concerning this, it is impossible to affirm positively one way or the other; therefore his regrets were well grounded. It is not certainties, but chances, that determine the propriety of military action. Had Villeneuve, conscious that he had done nothing as yet, and not fully aware how the fight had gone, hesitated about running away, and had several British ships dropped to leeward together, which was all they had to do, and what the dismasted French had done, it was quite within the bound of possibilities that the "Généreux" and the "Guillaume Tell" would have been crippled at their anchors. "If" and "but," it may be objected. Quite so; it is on if and but, not on yea and nay, that military criticism justly dwells. A flash of lightning and a crash of thunder may be seen and heard; it is the still small voice that leads the hero to success. As regards Villeneuve, indecision was his distinguishing trait; and Bonaparte wrote that if any error could be imputed to him, it was that he had not got under way as soon as the "Orient" blew up, for by that time the battle was lost beyond redemption.
It all depends on whether these sole survivors of the great disaster could have been secured by actions taken during the night, which is the basis of Nelson's regrets. It’s impossible to say for sure one way or another; hence, his regrets were understandable. It’s not certainties but possibilities that dictate the appropriateness of military action. If Villeneuve, realizing he hadn't done anything yet and not fully aware of how the battle had turned out, had hesitated about fleeing, and if a few British ships had dropped to leeward together—which is all they needed to do, just like the dismasted French ships did—it was very possible that the "Généreux" and "Guillaume Tell" could have been damaged at their moorings. You might say "if" and "but." That’s true; military analysis rightly focuses on if and but, not yes and no. A flash of lightning and thunder can be seen and heard, but it’s the quiet voice that guides the hero to success. In Villeneuve's case, indecision was his defining characteristic, and Bonaparte noted that if he made any mistake, it was not setting sail as soon as the "Orient" exploded, because by then the battle was irretrievably lost.
The extent of the victory was decided by this retreat, and Nelson, before devoting himself to the new duties entailed by his successes, paused an instant that he might first acknowledge his debt of gratitude to God and man. A memorandum was issued at once to the captains of the Squadron:
The level of victory was determined by this retreat, and Nelson, before getting involved in the new responsibilities that came with his successes, took a moment to express his gratitude to both God and others. A memo was quickly sent out to the Squadron's captains:
Vanguard off the mouth of the Nile, 2d August, 1798.
Vanguard at the mouth of the Nile, August 2, 1798.
Almighty God having blessed His Majesty's arms with victory, the Admiral intends returning Public Thanksgiving for the same at two o'clock this day; and he recommends every ship doing the same as soon as convenient.
Almighty God has blessed His Majesty's forces with victory, so the Admiral plans to hold a Public Thanksgiving for this at two o'clock today; he also suggests that every ship do the same as soon as possible.
HORATIO NELSON.
Horatio Nelson.
To those under his command he at the same time issued a general order, congratulating, by explicit mention of each class, the captains, officers, seamen, and marines, upon the event of the conflict. "The Admiral desires they will accept his most sincere and cordial thanks for their very gallant behaviour in this glorious battle." It was this habit of associating to himself, in full recognition and grateful remembrance, those who followed and fought with him, that enthroned Nelson in the affections of his men; nor will it escape observation that the warmth, though so genuine, breathes through words whose quietness might be thought studied, were they not so transparently spontaneous. There is in them no appeal to egotism, to the gratified passion for glory, although to that he was far from insensible; it is the simple speech of man to man, between those who have stood by one another in the hour of danger, and done their duty—the acknowledgment after the event, which is the complement of the famous signal before Trafalgar.
He gave a general order to everyone under his command, specifically thanking each group—captains, officers, seamen, and marines—for their actions during the battle. "The Admiral wants you to accept his heartfelt thanks for your brave behavior in this glorious fight." This practice of recognizing and appreciating those who fought alongside him is what earned Nelson a special place in the hearts of his men. It's noticeable that, although his words are warm and genuine, they have a quiet tone that might seem calculated if they weren't so obviously sincere. There’s no hint of self-importance or a need for personal glory, even though he certainly cared about that as well; it’s just straightforward communication between comrades who have supported each other in a moment of danger and fulfilled their duty—an acknowledgment after the event that complements the famous signal before Trafalgar.
The order closed with further words of commendation, which will not have the immortal response of the human heart to the other phrases; but which, uttered at such a moment, conveyed a salutary warning, justified as much by recent unhappy events in the British navy, as by the well-known disorganization and anarchy that had disgraced that of France. "It must strike forcibly every British seaman, how superior their conduct is, when in discipline and good order, to the riotous behaviour of lawless Frenchmen."[67] Captain Berry states that the assembling of the "Vanguard's" ship's company for the thanksgiving service strongly impressed the prisoners on board,—not from the religious point of view, which was alien from the then prevalent French temper,—but as evidence of an order and discipline which could render such a proceeding acceptable, after a victory so great, and at a moment of such seeming confusion. No small amount of self-possession, indeed, was needed thus to direct the attention of six hundred men, in the confined space of a ship, whose shattered sides and blood-stained decks bore witness to the hundred dead and wounded snatched from their number within the few hours before; yet, on the other hand, nothing could have been better calculated to compose the thoughts, or to facilitate the transition from the excitement of battle to the resumption of daily life.
The order concluded with more words of praise, which won’t have the timeless response of the human heart to the other phrases; however, spoken at such a moment, they provided a meaningful warning, justified as much by recent unfortunate events in the British navy as by the well-known disorganization and chaos that had tarnished that of France. "It must strongly resonate with every British sailor how much better their behavior is, when in discipline and good order, compared to the unruly actions of lawless Frenchmen."[67] Captain Berry mentions that gathering the "Vanguard's" ship's crew for the thanksgiving service left a strong impression on the prisoners onboard—not because of the religious aspects, which were foreign to the French mindset at the time—but as an example of order and discipline that could make such an event fitting after such a significant victory and amidst apparent chaos. A considerable amount of composure was indeed required to focus the attention of six hundred men in the tight confines of a ship, whose damaged sides and bloodstained decks were stark reminders of the hundred dead and wounded taken from their ranks just hours before; yet, on the other hand, nothing could have been better designed to calm their thoughts or to ease the shift from the intensity of battle back to everyday life.
If, by the escape of two ships-of-the-line, the British triumph lacked something in technical completeness, the disaster to the French was no less absolute. Victory, said Nelson truly, is not the name for such a scene as I have witnessed. There remained now to gather up the spoils of the field, and to realize the consequences of the battle, great and small, near and remote. The first was speedily done; battered as they were, "only two masts standing out of nine sail-of-the-line," within a fortnight six of the nine prizes were ready to start for Gibraltar. Little by little, yet with the rapidity of his now highly trained intuitions, Nelson saw the greatness of what he had effected, and with his full native energy struggled on, amid mental confusion and bodily suffering, and in the heat of an Egyptian August, to secure all the fruits of success. With splitting head and constantly sick, a significant indication of the rattling shock his brain had received, he was wonderfully helped, so far as the direction of his efforts was concerned, by the previous familiarity of his mind with the various elements of the problem. First of all, the home government must be informed of an event that would so profoundly affect the future. Berry's orders, as bearer of despatches to St. Vincent off Cadiz, were issued on the 2d of August; but there were no frigates, and the "Leander," appointed to carry him, could not sail till the 6th. For the same reason it was not until the 14th that the "Mutine" could be sent off with duplicates, to go direct to the Admiralty by way of Naples,—a wise precaution in all events, but doubly justified in this case; for the brig reached port, whereas the fifty-gun ship was captured by the "Généreux." The "Mutine's" account, though hastened forward without delay, reached London only on the 2d of October, two months after the action.
If, due to the escape of two ships-of-the-line, the British victory was lacking in technical completeness, the loss for the French was no less complete. Victory, as Nelson rightly said, is not the right word for such a scene as I have witnessed. Now it was time to collect the spoils of the battlefield and understand the consequences of the battle, both big and small, near and far. This was done quickly; even though they were damaged, "only two masts standing out of nine sail-of-the-line," within two weeks six of the nine captured ships were ready to head to Gibraltar. Bit by bit, yet with the speed of his well-trained instincts, Nelson recognized the significance of what he had accomplished, and with his full natural energy, he pushed through, despite mental confusion and physical pain, in the heat of an Egyptian August, to secure all the benefits of his success. With a splitting headache and feeling constantly ill, a clear sign of the violent shock his brain had taken, he was greatly aided, in terms of directing his efforts, by his prior understanding of the various aspects of the situation. First, the home government needed to be informed of an event that would greatly impact the future. Berry's orders, as the messenger to St. Vincent off Cadiz, were issued on August 2nd; however, there were no frigates available, and the "Leander," assigned to take him, couldn't sail until the 6th. For the same reason, it wasn't until the 14th that the "Mutine" could be sent off with duplicates, to go directly to the Admiralty via Naples—a prudent measure in any case, but especially justified in this instance; as the brig made it to port, while the fifty-gun ship was captured by the "Généreux." The "Mutine's" report, although sent off immediately, only reached London on October 2nd, two months after the battle.
The news was received at the first with an applause and a popular commotion commensurate to its greatness, and promised for the moment to overflow even the barriers of routine in one of the most conservative of nations. "Mr. Pitt told me the day after Captain Capel arrived," wrote his old admiral, Hood, to Nelson, "that you would certainly be a Viscount, which I made known to Lady Nelson. But it was objected to in a certain quarter, because your Lordship was not a commander-in-chief. In my humble opinion a more flimsy reason never was given." Official circles regained, or rather perhaps again lost, their senses, and the victory, unquestionably the most nearly complete and the most decisive ever gained by a British fleet, was rewarded, in the person of the commanding officer, with honors less than those bestowed for St. Vincent and Camperdown. Nelson was advanced to the lowest rank of the peerage, as Baron Nelson of the Nile. "In congratulating your Lordship on this high distinction," wrote the First Lord, "I have particular pleasure in remarking, that it is the highest honour that has ever been conferred on an officer of your standing,[68] in the Service, and who was not a commander-in-chief; and the addition [of the Nile] to the Title is meant more especially to mark the occasion on which it was granted, which, however, without any such precaution, is certainly of a nature never to be forgotten." His Lordship's sense of humor must a little have failed him, when he penned the platitude of the last few words.
The news was initially met with applause and widespread excitement that matched its significance, and for a moment, it seemed poised to break through the usual restraints of one of the most traditional nations. "Mr. Pitt told me the day after Captain Capel arrived," wrote his old admiral, Hood, to Nelson, "that you would definitely be made a Viscount, which I informed Lady Nelson about. However, there was an objection in certain circles because your Lordship wasn't a commander-in-chief. In my humble opinion, that was a pretty flimsy reason." The official circles either regained their composure or perhaps lost it again, and the victory, undeniably the most complete and decisive ever achieved by a British fleet, was recognized, through the commanding officer, with honors that were less than those given for St. Vincent and Camperdown. Nelson was elevated to the lowest rank of the peerage, as Baron Nelson of the Nile. "In congratulating your Lordship on this high distinction," wrote the First Lord, "I take particular pleasure in noting that this is the highest honor ever conferred on an officer of your rank in the Service, who was not a commander-in-chief; and the addition [of the Nile] to the Title is specifically meant to commemorate the occasion on which it was granted, which, without any such measures, is certainly something that will never be forgotten." His Lordship's sense of humor must have slightly failed him when he wrote the cliché of those last few words.
To the sharp criticism passed in the House of Commons on the smallness of the recognition, the Prime Minister replied that Nelson's glory did not depend upon the rank to which he might be raised in the peerage; a truism too palpable and inapplicable for serious utterance, the question before the House being, not the measure of Nelson's glory, but that of the national acknowledgment. As Hood justly said, "All remunerations should be proportionate to the service done to the public;" and if that cannot always be attained absolutely, without exhausting the powers of the State,[69] there should at least be some proportion between the rewards themselves, extended to individuals, and the particular services. But even were the defence of the Ministers technically perfect, it would have been pleasanter to see them a little blinded by such an achievement. Once in a way, under some provocations, it is refreshing to see men able even to make fools of themselves.
In response to the harsh criticism in the House of Commons about the limited recognition, the Prime Minister stated that Nelson's greatness didn't depend on the rank he might achieve in the peerage. This was an obvious truth that really shouldn't have been stated seriously; the issue at hand wasn't about how great Nelson was but how the nation acknowledged his contributions. As Hood rightly pointed out, "All rewards should be proportional to the service provided to the public." And while it's not always possible to achieve this perfectly without straining the resources of the State,[69] there should at least be some balance between the rewards given to individuals and the specific services they provided. But even if the Ministers' defense was technically flawless, it would have been more enjoyable to see them a bit overwhelmed by such an achievement. Occasionally, in the face of provocation, it's refreshing to witness people who can even make fools of themselves.
Nelson made to the First Lord's letter a reply that was dignified and yet measured, to a degree unusual to him, contrasting singularly with his vehement reclamations for others after Copenhagen. Without semblance of complaint, he allowed plainly to appear between the lines his own sense that the reward was not proportionate to the service done. "I have received your Lordship's letter communicating to me the Title his Majesty has been graciously pleased to confer upon me—an Honour, your Lordship is pleased to say, the highest that has ever been conferred on an officer of my standing who was not a Commander-in-Chief. I receive as I ought what the goodness of our Sovereign, and not my deserts, is pleased to bestow; but great and unexampled as this honour may be to one of my standing, yet I own I feel a higher one in the unbounded confidence of the King, your Lordship, and the whole World, in my exertions. Even at the bitter moment of my return to Syracuse, your Lordship is not insensible of the great difficulties I had to encounter in not being a Commander-in-Chief. The only happy moment I felt was in the view of the French; then I knew that all my sufferings would soon be at an end." To Berry he wrote: "As to both our Honours, it is a proof how much a battle fought near England is prized to one fought at a great distance."
Nelson replied to the First Lord's letter in a way that was dignified yet unusually measured for him, standing in stark contrast to his passionate demands for others after Copenhagen. Without any overt complaints, he subtly conveyed his sense that the reward did not match the service he had provided. "I have received your Lordship's letter informing me of the title his Majesty has graciously chosen to confer upon me—an honor, as you say, the highest ever given to an officer of my rank who is not a Commander-in-Chief. I accept what our Sovereign offers, which is due to his kindness, not my own merit; however, as great and unprecedented as this honor may be for someone of my position, I must admit I feel a greater one in the unbounded confidence of the King, your Lordship, and the entire world in my efforts. Even during the difficult moment of my return to Syracuse, you know well the significant challenges I faced by not being a Commander-in-Chief. The only truly happy moment I felt was when I saw the French; then I knew my hardships would soon be over." To Berry he wrote: "Regarding both our honors, it shows how much a battle fought near England is valued compared to one fought far away."
Whatever was defective in the formal recognition of his own government was abundantly supplied by the tributes which flowed from other quarters, so various, that his own phrase, "the whole world," is scarcely an exaggeration to apply to them. The Czar, the Sultan, the Kings of Sardinia and of the Two Sicilies, sent messages of congratulation and rich presents; the Czar accompanying his with an autograph letter. The Houses of Parliament voted their thanks and a pension of £2,000 a year. The East India Company acknowledged the security gained for their Indian possessions by a gift of £10,000, £2,000 of which he, with his wonted generosity, divided at once among his father and family, most of whom were not in prosperous circumstances. Other corporations took appropriate notice of the great event; instances so far apart as the cities of London and Palermo, and the Island of Zante, showing how wide-spread was the sense of relief. Not least gratifying to him, with his sensitive appreciation of friendship and susceptibility to flattery, must have been the numerous letters of congratulation he received from friends in and out of the service. The three great admirals,—Lords Howe, Hood, and St. Vincent,—the leaders of the Navy in rank and distinguished service, wrote to him in the strongest terms of admiration. The two last styled the battle the greatest achievement that History could produce; while Howe's language, if more measured, was so only because, like himself, it was more precise in characterizing the special merits of the action, and was therefore acknowledged by Nelson with particular expressions of pleasure.
Whatever was lacking in the official acknowledgment of his own government was more than made up for by the praises coming in from various sources, so diverse that his own phrase, "the whole world," hardly seems like an exaggeration. The Czar, the Sultan, and the Kings of Sardinia and the Two Sicilies sent messages of congratulations along with generous gifts; the Czar even included a personal letter. The House of Parliament expressed their gratitude and granted a pension of £2,000 a year. The East India Company recognized the security achieved for their Indian holdings with a donation of £10,000, £2,000 of which he promptly shared with his father and family, most of whom were not doing well financially. Other organizations acknowledged the significant event; cities like London and Palermo, as well as the Island of Zante, illustrated the widespread sense of relief. He must have found it especially rewarding, given his keen appreciation for friendship and sensitivity to flattery, to receive numerous letters of congratulations from friends both in and out of the military. The three prominent admirals—Lords Howe, Hood, and St. Vincent—leaders of the Navy in terms of rank and distinguished service, wrote to him in the strongest terms of admiration. The latter two called the battle the greatest accomplishment that History could offer, while Howe's remarks, though more measured, were still precise in highlighting the specific merits of the action, which Nelson acknowledged with particular pleasure.
Besides the honors bestowed upon the commander of the squadron, and the comprehensive vote of thanks usual on such occasions, a gold medal commemorative of the battle was given to the admiral and to each of the captains present. The First Lord also wrote that the first-lieutenants of the ships engaged would be promoted at once. The word "engaged" caught Nelson's attention, as apparently intended to exclude the lieutenant of the "Culloden," Troubridge's unlucky ship. "For Heaven's sake, for my sake," he wrote to St. Vincent, "if this is so, get it altered. Our dear friend Troubridge has suffered enough. His sufferings were in every respect more than any of us. He deserves every reward which a grateful Country can bestow on the most meritorious sea-officer of his standing in the service. I have felt his worth every hour of my command." "I well know, he is my superior," he said on another occasion; "and I so often want his advice and assistance. I have experienced the ability and activity of his mind and body: it was Troubridge that equipped the squadron so soon at Syracuse—it was he that exerted himself for me after the action—it was Troubridge who saved the "Culloden," when none that I know in the service would have attempted it—it was Troubridge whom I left as myself at Naples to watch movements—he is, as a friend and an officer, a nonpareil!" His entreaties prevailed so far that the officer in question received his promotion, not with the others, but immediately after them; a distinction which Troubridge bewailed bitterly, as a reflection upon himself and his ship.
Besides the honors given to the squadron commander and the usual comprehensive vote of thanks on such occasions, a gold medal commemorating the battle was awarded to the admiral and to each of the captains present. The First Lord also stated that the first lieutenants of the ships involved would be promoted immediately. The word "involved" caught Nelson's attention, as it seemed to exclude the lieutenant of the "Culloden," Troubridge's unfortunate ship. "For Heaven's sake, for my sake," he wrote to St. Vincent, "if this is the case, get it changed. Our dear friend Troubridge has suffered enough. His hardships have been more significant than any of ours. He deserves every reward that a grateful country can give to the most deserving sea officer of his rank in the service. I have recognized his value every hour of my command." "I know well he is my superior," he said on another occasion; "I often need his advice and help. I have experienced his skill and energy: it was Troubridge who quickly equipped the squadron at Syracuse—he was the one who worked hard for me after the battle—it was Troubridge who saved the "Culloden," when no one I know in the service would have attempted it—it was Troubridge whom I left, like myself, in Naples to keep an eye on movements—he is, both as a friend and an officer, a nonpareil!" His appeals were successful enough that the officer in question received his promotion, not with the others, but right after them; a distinction that Troubridge lamented bitterly, viewing it as a reflection on himself and his ship.
On the 9th of August, Nelson sent a lieutenant to Alexandretta, on the northern coast of Syria, to make his way overland, by way of Aleppo, to India, with despatches to the Governor of Bombay. Resuming briefly the events of the past months, and the numbers and character of the French army in Egypt, he expresses the hope that special care will be exercised against the departure of ships from India, to convey this huge force thither by the Red Sea. On the side of the Mediterranean, their fate is settled by the recent victory. They can receive nothing from France; they cannot advance freely into Syria, as water transport is essential for much of their equipment; even in Egypt itself they are hampered by the difficulties of communication—on land by the guerilla hostility of the natives, and now on the water through his own presence and control. The Nile, through its Rosetta mouth, had been heretofore the easiest communication between Cairo and Alexandria. The garrison of the latter depended largely for daily bread upon this route, now closed by the fleet in Aboukir Bay. By land, nothing short of a regiment could pass over ground where, even before the battle, the French watering-parties from the ships had to be protected by heavy armed bodies. He intended, therefore, to remain where he was as long as possible. "If my letter is not so correct as might be expected," he concludes, "I trust for your excuse, when I tell you that my brain is so shook with the wounds in my head, that I am sensible I am not always so clear as could be wished; but whilst a ray of reason remains, my heart and my head shall ever be exerted for the benefit of our King and Country."
On August 9th, Nelson sent a lieutenant to Alexandretta, on the northern coast of Syria, to travel overland, through Aleppo, to India, with dispatches to the Governor of Bombay. Summarizing the events of the past few months, along with the size and nature of the French army in Egypt, he hopes that there will be extra precautions against ships leaving India to transport this large force via the Red Sea. Regarding the Mediterranean, their fate is determined by the recent victory. They can’t receive anything from France; they can't move freely into Syria, as water transport is vital for much of their equipment; even in Egypt, they face challenges in communication—on land due to the guerrilla attacks from the locals, and now at sea because of his own presence and control. The Nile, through its Rosetta mouth, had previously been the easiest route between Cairo and Alexandria. The garrison at the latter relied heavily on this route for supplies, which is now blocked by the fleet in Aboukir Bay. Overland, it would take nothing less than a regiment to navigate areas where, even before the battle, water parties from the French ships needed protection from heavily armed groups. He intended to stay where he was for as long as he could. "If my letter isn’t as polished as you'd expect," he concludes, "I hope you'll forgive me when I say that my head is so rattled from my injuries that I realize I’m not always as clear as I’d like to be; but as long as I have a glimmer of reason left, my heart and my mind will always be focused on the well-being of our King and Country."
It may be added here, that the scar left by this wound seems to have been the cause of Nelson's hair being trained down upon his forehead, during the later years of his life. Prior to that it was brushed well off and up, as may be seen in the portrait by Abbott, painted during his stay in England, while recovering from the loss of his arm. After his death, a young officer of the "Victory," who had cut off some locks for those who wished such a remembrance of their friend, speaks of "the hair that used to hang over his forehead, near the wound that he received at the Battle of the Nile."
It can be noted that the scar from this wound seems to have caused Nelson's hair to be styled down over his forehead in the later years of his life. Before that, it was styled neatly away and up, as shown in the portrait by Abbott, painted during his time in England while he was recovering from the loss of his arm. After his death, a young officer from the "Victory," who had cut off some locks for those wanting a keepsake of their friend, describes "the hair that used to hang over his forehead, near the wound he received at the Battle of the Nile."
The perception of his control over the communications from Rosetta to Alexandria dawned rather late upon Nelson, for on the 5th of August he had announced his purpose of starting down the Mediterranean on the 19th. This he postponed afterwards to the first part of September, and again for as long as possible. While in this intention, most secret and urgent orders came on the 15th from St. Vincent, to return to the westward with his command, and to co-operate with an expedition planned against Minorca. Six prizes, with seven of the British ships-of-the-line, had started on the 14th for Gibraltar, under the command of Sir James Saumarez. The three remaining prizes were burned, and hasty temporary repairs, adequate only for a summer voyage, were put upon the "Vanguard," "Culloden," and "Alexander," the three most defective ships of his fleet. On the 19th he sailed with these three for Naples, which he had from the first intended to visit, in order to give them the complete overhauling they imperatively needed. On and after the 13th of August several frigates had joined him. Three of these, with three ships-of-the-line, were left with Captain Hood, to conduct the blockade of Alexandria, and to suppress the enemy's communications by water along the coasts of Egypt and Syria.
The realization of his control over the communications from Rosetta to Alexandria came to Nelson a bit late, as on August 5th he had announced his plan to head down the Mediterranean on the 19th. He later postponed this to early September, and again pushed it back as long as possible. While he was still considering this, he received urgent and secret orders from St. Vincent on the 15th to return west with his fleet and to support an expedition planned against Minorca. Six prizes, along with seven British ships of the line, had set out for Gibraltar on the 14th under Sir James Saumarez's command. The three remaining prizes were burned, and quick, temporary repairs—sufficient only for summer travel—were made on the "Vanguard," "Culloden," and "Alexander," which were the three most damaged ships in his fleet. On the 19th, he set sail with these three ships for Naples, which he had intended to visit from the start, to give them the thorough repairs they urgently needed. Starting on August 13th, several frigates joined him. Three of these, along with three ships of the line, were left with Captain Hood to maintain the blockade of Alexandria and disrupt the enemy's communications by sea along the coasts of Egypt and Syria.
FOOTNOTES:
[60] The author is indebted to the present Lord De Saumarez for a copy of the opinion of Sir James Saumarez, written on board the "Vanguard" at this meeting:—
[60] The author is grateful to the current Lord De Saumarez for providing a copy of the opinion of Sir James Saumarez, which was written on board the "Vanguard" during this meeting:—
"The French fleet having left Malta six days ago, had their destination been the Island of Sicily there is reason to presume we should have obtained information of it yesterday off Syracuse, or the day before in coming through the Pharo of Messina—under all circumstances I think it most conducive to the good of His Majesty's service to make the best of our way for Alexandria, as the only means of saving our possessions in India, should the French armament be destined for that country.
"The French fleet left Malta six days ago. If their destination had been the Island of Sicily, we would have likely received news of it yesterday near Syracuse or the day before while passing through the Strait of Messina. In any case, I believe it’s best for His Majesty's service to head straight to Alexandria, as this is the only way to protect our interests in India, if the French forces are headed there."
"Vanguard, at sea, 22d June 1798. JAMES SAUMAREZ."
"Vanguard, at sea, June 22, 1798. JAMES SAUMAREZ."
[63] Nelson to Lord Howe.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Nelson to Lord Howe.
[65] An interesting example of the illuminating effect of a sound maxim upon different phases of a man's life and actions, and one illustrative of the many-sidedness of this motto of Nelson's, occurs later in his career, and not long before his death. When the frigates "Phoebe" and "Amazon" were ordered to cruise before Toulon in October, 1804, "Lord Nelson gave Captains Capel and Parker several injunctions, in case they should get an opportunity of attacking two of the French frigates, which now got under way more frequently. The principal one was, that they should not each single out and attack an opponent, but 'that both should endeavour together to take one frigate; if successful, chase the other; but if you do not take the second, still you have won a victory, and your country will gain a frigate.'" (Phillimore's Last of Nelson's Captains, p. 122.) When summarized, this again is—Victory first; afterwards the results, as circumstances may permit.
[65] An interesting example of how a powerful principle can impact different aspects of a person's life and actions, and one that highlights the versatility of Nelson's motto, comes later in his life, shortly before his death. When the frigates "Phoebe" and "Amazon" were sent to cruise off Toulon in October 1804, "Lord Nelson instructed Captains Capel and Parker on several points, in case they had the chance to attack two French frigates that were now moving more frequently. The main instruction was that they shouldn’t each target a separate enemy ship, but rather both should work together to take down one frigate; if they succeeded, they should pursue the other one; but if they couldn’t capture the second, they would still have achieved a victory, and their country would gain a frigate." (Phillimore's Last of Nelson's Captains, p. 122.) In summary, this boils down to—Victory first; the outcomes can follow as circumstances allow.
[66] Author's italics.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Author's italics.
[67] Author's italics.
[69] As General Sherman justly asked, "What reward adequate to the service, could the United States have given Grant for the Vicksburg campaign?"
[69] As General Sherman rightly asked, "What reward could the United States possibly give Grant that would match his contribution for the Vicksburg campaign?"
CHAPTER XI.
NELSON'S RETURN FROM EGYPT TO NAPLES.—MEETING WITH LADY HAMILTON.—ASSOCIATION WITH THE COURT OF NAPLES.—WAR BETWEEN NAPLES AND FRANCE.—DEFEAT OF THE NEAPOLITANS.—FLIGHT OF THE COURT TO PALERMO.
NELSON'S RETURN FROM EGYPT TO NAPLES.—MEETING WITH LADY HAMILTON.—CONNECTION WITH THE COURT OF NAPLES.—WAR BETWEEN NAPLES AND FRANCE.—DEFEAT OF THE NEAPOLITANS.—FLIGHT OF THE COURT TO PALERMO.
SEPTEMBER-DECEMBER, 1798. AGE, 40.
SEPTEMBER-DECEMBER, 1798. AGE, 40.
The voyage of Nelson's small division from Aboukir Bay to Naples occupied between four and five weeks, owing partly to light and contrary winds, and partly to the dull sailing of the "Culloden," which had a sail secured under her bottom to lessen the dangerous leak caused by her grounding on the night of the battle. This otherwise unwelcome delay procured for Nelson a period of salutary, though enforced, repose, which the nature of his injuries made especially desirable. His mind, indeed, did not cease to work, but it was free from harassment; and the obvious impossibility of doing anything, save accept the present easy-going situation, contributed strongly to the quietness upon which restoration depended. Nor were there wanting matters of daily interest to prevent an excess of monotony. Now that frigates were no longer so vitally necessary, they and other light cruisers turned up with amusing frequency, bringing information, and being again despatched hither and yonder with letters from the admiral, which reflected instinctively his personal moods, and his active concern in the future military operations.
The journey of Nelson's small group from Aboukir Bay to Naples took about four to five weeks, partly due to light and opposing winds, and partly because the "Culloden" was sailing slowly due to a sail strapped beneath her hull to fix a serious leak caused by running aground the night of the battle. This otherwise inconvenient delay gave Nelson a much-needed, though forced, break, which was particularly important given the nature of his injuries. Although his mind was still engaged, it was free from stress; the clear impossibility of doing anything other than accepting the current laid-back situation greatly contributed to the calmness essential for his recovery. There were also enough daily events to keep things from becoming too monotonous. Now that frigates were not as crucial, they and other light cruisers appeared with amusing regularity, bringing news and being sent back and forth with letters from the admiral, which naturally reflected his personal feelings and active interest in future military operations.
The distress from his head continued for some time with little abatement, and naturally much affected his tone of mind. At the first he spoke of his speedy return to England as inevitable, nor did the prospect occasion the discouragement which he had experienced after the loss of his arm; a symptom which had shown the moral effect of failure upon a sensitive and ambitious temperament. "My head is ready to split," he had written to St. Vincent before starting, "and I am always so sick; in short, if there be no fracture, my head is severely shaken." A fortnight after leaving the bay, he writes him again: "I know I ought to give up for a little while; my head is splitting at this moment;" and Nicolas remarks that the letter bears evident marks of suffering, three attempts being made to spell the word "splitting." Yet by this time the pain had become at least intermittent, for Saumarez, whose squadron fell in with the admiral's division several times, notes that on the 26th of August he spent half an hour on board the flagship, and found him in perfect health; and on the 7th of September Nelson himself writes to the British minister at Florence that he felt so much recovered, it was probable he would not go home for the present. A few days later he wrote to Hood, off Alexandria, that he relied upon the thoroughness of the blockade to complete the destruction of the French army. "I shall not go home," he added, "until this is effected, and the islands of Malta, Corfu, &c., retaken."
The pain in his head lasted for a while with little relief, which clearly affected his mood. Initially, he talked about returning to England as an inevitability, and surprisingly, he didn’t feel as discouraged as he had after losing his arm; this showed how failure impacted a sensitive and ambitious person like him. "My head is about to explode," he had written to St. Vincent before leaving, "and I'm constantly feeling sick; in short, if there's no fracture, my head is seriously shaken." Two weeks after leaving the bay, he wrote again: "I know I should take a break for a bit; my head is pounding right now;" and Nicolas noted that the letter showed clear signs of suffering, with three failed attempts to spell the word "splitting." However, by this time the pain was at least coming and going, as Saumarez, whose squadron met up with the admiral's division several times, noted that on August 26th he spent half an hour on board the flagship and found him in great health; and on September 7th Nelson himself wrote to the British minister in Florence that he felt so much better that he probably wouldn’t go home for a while. A few days later, he wrote to Hood, stationed off Alexandria, that he was counting on the completeness of the blockade to finish off the French army. "I won’t go home," he added, "until this is done, and the islands of Malta, Corfu, etc., are retaken."
It is to the furtherance of these objects, all closely allied, and in his apprehension mutually dependent, that his occasional letters are directed. His sphere of operations he plainly conceives to be from Malta, eastward, to Syria inclusive. "I detest this voyage to Naples," he wrote to St. Vincent, two days before reaching the port. "Nothing but absolute necessity could force me to the measure. Syracuse in future, whilst my operations lie on the eastern side of Sicily, is my port, where every refreshment may be had for a fleet." The present necessity was that of refit and repair, to which Syracuse was inadequate. "For myself," he sent word to Sir William Hamilton, "I hope not to be more than four or five days at Naples, for these times are not for idleness." Not long after his arrival this conviction as to the movements requiring his personal presence underwent an entire change; and thenceforth, till he left for England two years later, it was only the presence of clear emergency, appealing to his martial instincts and calling forth the sense of duty which lay at the root of his character, that could persuade him his proper place was elsewhere than at the Court of Naples. It is only fair to add that, upon the receipt of the news of his great victory, the Admiralty designated to St. Vincent, as first in order among the cares of the squadron within the Mediterranean, "the protection of the coasts of Sicily, Naples, and the Adriatic, and, in the event of war being renewed in Italy, an active co-operation with the Austrian and Neapolitan armies." Long before these instructions were received, the very day indeed that they were written, Nelson had become urgently instrumental in precipitating Naples into war. Next in order of interest, by the Admiralty's letters, were, successively, the isolation of Egypt and of Malta, and co-operation with the Russian and Turkish squadrons which, it was expected, would be sent into the Archipelago, and which actually did attack and capture Corfu. The letter thus summarized may be taken to indicate the general extent of Nelson's charge during the two following years.
It’s to advance these goals, which are closely related and, in his view, mutually dependent, that his occasional letters are addressed. He clearly envisions his area of operation extending from Malta, eastward, to include Syria. “I really dislike this trip to Naples,” he wrote to St. Vincent two days before arriving at the port. “Only absolute necessity could force me to do this. In the future, while my operations are on the eastern side of Sicily, Syracuse will be my port, where the fleet can find everything it needs.” The current need was for refitting and repairs, which Syracuse couldn’t provide. “As for me,” he informed Sir William Hamilton, “I hope to be at Naples no more than four or five days, because these are not times for idleness.” Shortly after he arrived, his belief about the necessity for his personal presence changed completely; from then on, until he left for England two years later, only an obvious emergency that appealed to his martial instincts and triggered the sense of duty at the core of his character could convince him that he should be anywhere but at the Court of Naples. It’s worth noting that upon receiving news of his significant victory, the Admiralty directed St. Vincent, as the first priority for the squadron in the Mediterranean, to “protect the coasts of Sicily, Naples, and the Adriatic, and, if war breaks out in Italy again, to actively cooperate with the Austrian and Neapolitan armies.” Long before these instructions arrived, on the very day they were written, Nelson had become crucial in pushing Naples toward war. Next in order of importance, according to the Admiralty’s letters, were, successively, isolating Egypt and Malta, and cooperating with the Russian and Turkish squadrons that were expected to be sent into the Archipelago, which did indeed attack and capture Corfu. This summarized letter gives a clear indication of the general scope of Nelson’s responsibilities over the next two years.
It may be said, then, without error, that Nelson's opinion as to the direction of his personal supervision underwent a decisive change after his arrival in Naples. Before it, he is urgent with that Court to support with active naval assistance the operations against Malta, and to send bomb-vessels, the absence of which he continually deplores, to shell the transports in the harbor of Alexandria. He hopes, indeed, to find on his arrival that the Emperor and many other powers are at war with the French, but his attention is concentrated upon Bonaparte's army. To the British minister in Turkey he is yet more insistent as to what the Sultan should undertake. If he will but send a few ships-of-the-line, and some bombs, he will destroy all their transports in Alexandria; and an army of ten thousand men may retake Alexandria immediately, as the French have only four thousand men in it. Subsequent events showed this forecast of Nelson's to be as erroneous as those of Napoleon were at times in regard to naval prospects. "General Bonaparte," he continues, "only wants a communication opened by sea, to march into Syria, that the transports with stores, &c., for the army, may go alongshore with him." This he had learned from French officers who were prisoners on board, and we know it corresponded with the facts. "If the Sultan will not send anything, he will lose Syria." "Naples," he tells St Vincent, "is saved in spite of herself. They have evidently broken their treaty with France, and yet are afraid to assist in finishing the vast armament of the French. Four hours with bomb vessels, would set all in a blaze, and we know what an army is without stores." This anticipation also proved deceptive; but the expressions quoted are fair examples of the general tenor of his letters between Aboukir and Naples, and show his feeling that the important points of his command lay to the east of Sicily.
It can be said, without a doubt, that Nelson's view on the focus of his personal oversight changed significantly after he arrived in Naples. Before that, he pressed the Court to actively support the operations against Malta with naval assistance and to send bomb vessels, the lack of which he constantly lamented, to attack the transports in the harbor of Alexandria. He actually hoped that when he arrived, he would find that the Emperor and many other powers were at war with the French, but his focus was primarily on Bonaparte's army. To the British minister in Turkey, he was even more insistent on what the Sultan should do. If only he would send a few ships-of-the-line and some bombs, he could destroy all their transports in Alexandria, and an army of ten thousand could retake the city immediately since the French only had four thousand men there. Events that followed revealed that Nelson's expectations were as misguided as Napoleon's could sometimes be regarding naval situations. "General Bonaparte," he added, "only needs a sea route opened to march into Syria so that the transports with supplies for the army can go along the coast with him." He had learned this from French officers who were prisoners on board, and we know it matched the reality. "If the Sultan doesn’t send anything, he will lose Syria." "Naples," he told St Vincent, "is saved despite itself. They have clearly broken their treaty with France, yet they are afraid to help finish off the vast French armament. Four hours with bomb vessels would set everything ablaze, and we know what an army is without supplies." This expectation also turned out to be misleading; however, the quoted phrases are solid examples of the general tone of his letters between Aboukir and Naples and reveal his belief that the crucial areas of his command were east of Sicily.
The same tendency was shown upon the appearance of a Portuguese squadron of four ships-of-the-line, which entered the Mediterranean in July with orders to place themselves under his command. He first learned the fact upon this passage, and at once sent a frigate to Alexandria to beg the Portuguese admiral, the Marquis de Niza, to assume the blockade, as the most important service to be rendered the common cause. When the frigate reached its destination, Niza had come and gone, and Nelson then headed him off at the Strait of Messina, on his way to Naples, and sent him to blockade Malta. It may be added that this squadron remained under his command until December, 1799, and was of substantial utility in the various operations. Nelson professed no great confidence in its efficiency, which was not subjected to the severest tests; but he made a handsome acknowledgment to its commander when it was recalled to Lisbon.
The same trend appeared when a Portuguese squadron of four battleships entered the Mediterranean in July with orders to report to him. He first learned about this on their way, and immediately sent a frigate to Alexandria asking the Portuguese admiral, the Marquis de Niza, to take over the blockade, as it was the most crucial service for their shared cause. By the time the frigate arrived, Niza had already come and gone, so Nelson intercepted him at the Strait of Messina as he headed to Naples and redirected him to blockade Malta. It’s worth noting that this squadron stayed under his command until December 1799 and was quite useful in various operations. Nelson didn't have much faith in its efficiency, which wasn't put to the toughest tests; however, he graciously acknowledged its commander when the squadron was recalled to Lisbon.
On the 22d of September the flagship anchored at Naples. On the 15th her foremast had been carried away in a squall, and the "poor wretched Vanguard," as Nelson called her, having to be towed by a frigate, her two crippled consorts preceded her arrival by six days. The news of the victory had been brought three weeks before by the "Mutine," on the 1st of September. The Court party had gone wild with joy, in which the populace, naturally hostile to the French, had joined with southern vivacity of expression. Captain Capel, who commanded the brig, with Lieutenant Hoste, who was to succeed him when he departed with the despatches for England, had been at once taken to Court and presented. When they left the palace they were met by Lady Hamilton, who made them get into her carriage, and with characteristic bad taste and love of notoriety paraded them until dark through the streets of this neutral capital, she wearing a bandeau round her forehead with the words, "Nelson and Victory." "The populace saw and understood what it meant," wrote Hoste, "and 'Viva Nelson!' resounded through the streets. You can have no idea of the rejoicings that were made throughout Naples. Bonfires and illuminations all over the town; indeed, it would require an abler pen than I am master of to give you any account but what will fall infinitely short of what was the case."
On September 22, the flagship dropped anchor at Naples. On the 15th, her foremast had been lost in a storm, and the "poor wretched Vanguard," as Nelson called her, had to be towed by a frigate, with her two damaged companions arriving six days ahead of her. The news of the victory had come three weeks earlier from the "Mutine" on September 1. The Court party had gone wild with joy, and the local people, who were naturally opposed to the French, joined in with their typical enthusiasm. Captain Capel, who commanded the brig, along with Lieutenant Hoste, who was set to replace him when he left with the dispatches for England, were immediately taken to the Court and presented. After leaving the palace, they were greeted by Lady Hamilton, who insisted they get into her carriage and, in her usual flashy style, paraded them around until dark through the streets of this neutral city, wearing a headband that read "Nelson and Victory." "The people saw and understood what it meant," Hoste wrote, "and 'Viva Nelson!' echoed through the streets. You can’t imagine the celebrations that erupted all over Naples. Bonfires and lights adorned the entire town; honestly, it would take a more talented writer than me to capture just how extraordinary it was."
By Nelson's orders the "Mutine" sailed in a few days to meet him with despatches, and on the 14th of September joined the division off Stromboli. With more important information, and letters from persons of greater consequence, she had brought also one from Lady Hamilton, giving a vivid picture of the general joy, and in particular an account of the Queen's state of mind, so highly colored and detailed that Nelson could only hope he might not be witness to a renewal of it, but which so impressed him that he quoted it at length to Lady Nelson. When the "Vanguard" approached the town, crowds of boats went out to meet her, and His Sicilian Majesty himself came on board when she was still a league from the anchorage. He had been preceded by the British ambassador with Lady Hamilton. The latter, having had only three weeks to recover from the first shock of the news, was greatly overcome, and dropped her lovely face and by no means slender figure into the arms of the admiral, who, on his part, could scarcely fail to be struck with the pose of one whose attitudes compelled the admiration of the most exacting critics. "The scene in the boat was terribly affecting," he wrote to his wife. "Up flew her ladyship, and exclaiming, 'O God, is it possible?' she fell into my arm more dead than alive. Tears, however, soon set matters to rights."
By Nelson's orders, the "Mutine" set sail in a few days to meet him with dispatches, and on September 14th, she joined the division off Stromboli. Along with more important information and letters from notable people, she also brought one from Lady Hamilton, that vividly described the general joy and included a detailed account of the Queen's state of mind. It was so dramatic that Nelson could only hope he wouldn’t have to witness it again, but it impressed him so much that he quoted it at length to Lady Nelson. When the "Vanguard" approached the town, crowds of boats came out to greet her, and His Sicilian Majesty himself came aboard while she was still a league away from anchoring. He was preceded by the British ambassador and Lady Hamilton. Having had only three weeks to recover from the initial shock of the news, she was very emotional and collapsed into the admiral's arms, who couldn't help but be struck by her dramatic presence, which would impress even the toughest critics. "The scene in the boat was incredibly moving," he wrote to his wife. "Lady Hamilton jumped up, exclaiming, 'O God, is it possible?' and fell into my arms more dead than alive. However, tears soon set everything right."
This was the beginning of an intimacy destined, in the end, to affect profoundly and unhappily the future of Nelson. Although Sir William Hamilton, in his own congratulatory letter by the "Mutine," called him "our bosom friend," they do not seem to have met since the summer of 1793, when the young captain carried Hood's despatches from Toulon to Naples; and Nelson, while acknowledging on the present occasion the kindness of an invitation to take up his quarters at the embassy, had expressed a preference for rooms at a hotel, on account of the business to be transacted. This reluctance, however, was easily and properly overruled, and immediately after anchoring he went to live at the ambassador's house, which, under the management of the celebrated woman who presided there, became the social centre of the welcomes lavished not only upon himself, but upon all the officers of the ships.
This was the start of a closeness that would ultimately have a deep and unfortunate impact on Nelson's future. Even though Sir William Hamilton, in his congratulatory letter via the "Mutine," referred to him as "our close friend," it seems they hadn’t seen each other since the summer of 1793, when the young captain delivered Hood's dispatches from Toulon to Naples. Nelson, while acknowledging the kind invitation to stay at the embassy, expressed a preference for a hotel due to the business at hand. However, this reluctance was easily and appropriately overcome, and right after anchoring, he moved into the ambassador's house, which, under the leadership of the renowned woman in charge, became the social hub for welcoming not only him but all the officers of the ships.
Emma, Lady Hamilton, the second wife of Sir William, was at this time thirty-three years old, her husband being sixty-eight. Her name, when first entering the world, was Amy Lyon. Born in Cheshire of extremely poor parents, in the humblest walk of life, she had found her way up to London, while yet little more than a child, and there, having a beautiful face, much natural charm of manner and disposition, utterly inexperienced, and with scarcely any moral standards,—of which her life throughout shows but little trace,—she was speedily ruined, fell so far, in fact, that even with all her attractions it seemed doubtful whether any man would own himself responsible for her condition, or befriend her. In these circumstances, when not yet seventeen, she was taken up by a nephew of Sir William Hamilton, Mr. Charles Greville, who recognized not merely her superficial loveliness, but something of the mental and moral traits underlying it, which promised a capacity for development into an interesting and affectionate household companion. Upon her promises of amendment, in the matter of future relations with men, and of submission to his guidance and wishes in the general conduct of her life, he took her in charge, and the two lived together for nearly four years.
Emma, Lady Hamilton, the second wife of Sir William, was thirty-three years old at this time, while her husband was sixty-eight. When she first entered society, her name was Amy Lyon. Born in Cheshire to very poor parents and raised in a humble environment, she made her way to London while still just a child. With her beautiful face, a natural charm, and a lack of experience or strong moral standards—of which her life shows little evidence—she quickly found herself in a precarious situation. In fact, even with all her attractions, it seemed uncertain whether any man would take responsibility for her situation or support her. In these circumstances, when she was not yet seventeen, she was taken in by a nephew of Sir William Hamilton, Mr. Charles Greville, who recognized not only her outer beauty but also glimpsed some mental and moral qualities that suggested she could develop into an interesting and loving companion. After her promises to change her future relationships with men and to follow his guidance in her life, he took her under his wing, and the two lived together for nearly four years.
Greville bestowed a good deal of pains upon her training, and was rewarded, not only by gratitude and careful compliance with his directions, but by her sincere and devoted affection. The girl became heartily and fondly in love with him, finding both contentment and happiness in the simply ordered home provided for her. Her education, which hitherto was of the smallest, received attention,—her letters showing a very great improvement both in spelling and mode of expression by the end of their association. On the moral side, of course, there was not much development to be expected from one whose standards, with less excuse, were in no way better than her own. On this side Greville's teaching was purely utilitarian. Her position was considered as a calling,—success in which demanded certain proprieties and accomplishments, only to be attained by the practice of habitual self-control, alike in doing and in not doing.
Greville put a lot of effort into her training and was rewarded not just with gratitude and careful adherence to his guidance, but also with her genuine and devoted affection. The girl fell deeply in love with him, finding both contentment and happiness in the simple home he provided for her. Her education, which had been very minimal before, received attention, with her letters showing significant improvement in both spelling and expression by the end of their time together. On the moral side, there wasn't much growth to be expected from someone whose standards were no better than her own, despite having less justification. In this area, Greville's teaching was strictly practical. Her position was viewed as a profession, success in which required certain proprieties and skills, only achievable through consistent self-control, both in actions and omissions.
The future Lady Hamilton was affectionate and impulsive, good-humored, with generous instincts and a quick temper; but she was also ambitious and exceptionally clever. She loved Greville warmly; but she took to heart the hard truths of his teachings, and they sank deep in a congenial soil. Under the influence of the two motives, she applied herself to gain, and did gain, a certain degree of external niceness and self-control. Her affection for Greville made her willing, for his sake, because he was not rich, to live quietly, to accept modest surroundings, and to discard whatever was coarse in associates, or unbecoming in her own person or conduct. He, while relaxing none of his requirements, repaid her with courtesy and increasing admiration, than which nothing was dearer to her; for, if not appreciative of the satisfaction of self-respect, she was keenly alive to the delights of homage from others, though extorted by purely adventitious qualities. Glory was to her more than honor. This love of admiration, fostered, yet pruned, by Greville's shrewd precepts, was her dominant trait. To its gratification her singular personal advantages contributed, and they were powerfully supported by an unusual faculty for assuming a part, for entering into a character and representing its external traits. Thus gifted by nature, and swayed by vanity, her development was for the time regulated and chastened by the disinterestedness of her passion for her lover. Her worse qualities were momentarily kept in abeyance. Naturally lovable, not only in exterior but in temperament, she became more and more attractive. "Consider," wrote Greville, referring to her surroundings before she passed into his hands, "what a charming creature she would have been, if she had been blessed with the advantages of an early education, and had not been spoilt by the indulgence of every caprice."
The future Lady Hamilton was warm and spontaneous, cheerful, generous, and had a quick temper; but she was also ambitious and exceptionally smart. She loved Greville deeply; however, she took to heart the tough truths of his lessons, which resonated deeply with her. Motivated by these two forces, she worked hard to achieve a certain level of refinement and self-discipline. Her love for Greville made her willing, for his sake, to live simply, accept modest circumstances, and distance herself from anything coarse in her friends or unbecoming in her own behavior. Despite keeping all his standards, he rewarded her with kindness and growing admiration, which were invaluable to her. Even if she didn't fully appreciate the fulfillment of self-respect, she was very much aware of the joy that came from receiving admiration from others, even if it stemmed from purely superficial traits. For her, glory mattered more than honor. This desire for admiration, nurtured yet tempered by Greville's wise lessons, was her defining characteristic. Her unique looks contributed to this desire, which was further enhanced by her unusual talent for playing a role, immersing herself in different characters, and showcasing their outward traits. Gifted by nature and driven by vanity, her growth was at that time guided and restrained by her selfless passion for her lover. Her less favorable traits were put on hold. Naturally likable, not just in appearance but also in personality, she became increasingly appealing. "Consider," Greville wrote, referring to her situation before she came under his influence, "what a charming person she would have been if she had benefited from the advantages of a good education and had not been spoiled by everyone indulging her every whim."
Unfortunately the restraining influence, probably ephemeral in any event, was about to be rudely removed, permitting to flourish in unrestrained vigor the natural tendency to compel admiration and secure advantage by the spell of physical beauty, and by the exertion of natural aptitudes for pleasing in the only path to success open to her. In 1782 Hamilton's first wife died, and in 1784 he came to England on leave. There he met Amy Lyon, now known as Emma Hart, in the house provided for her by Greville. His admiration of her was extreme, and its tendency was not misunderstood by her. He returned to his post at Naples at the end of the year. In the course of 1785 Greville, who was now in his thirty-sixth year, decided that the condition of his fortune made it imperative for him to marry, and that as a first step thereto he must break with Emma Hart. Hamilton's inclination for her provided a ready means for so doing, so far as the two men were concerned; but her concurrence was not sure. After some correspondence, it was arranged that she should go to Naples in the spring of 1786, to live there under Hamilton's care, with the expectation on her part that Greville would join her a few months later. Placed as she then would be, it was probable that she would eventually accept the offers made her; though it would be less than just to either Greville or Hamilton, to allow the impression that they did not intend to provide sufficiently for her needs, whatever her decision.
Unfortunately, the restraining influence, likely temporary anyway, was about to be abruptly lifted, allowing the natural tendency to seek admiration and gain advantage through physical beauty and natural talents to thrive without limit, which was the only way available for her to achieve success. In 1782, Hamilton's first wife passed away, and in 1784, he went to England on leave. There he met Amy Lyon, now known as Emma Hart, in the house provided for her by Greville. His admiration for her was intense, and she clearly understood its implications. He returned to his post in Naples at the end of the year. In 1785, Greville, now thirty-six years old, decided that his financial situation required him to marry, and that as a first step, he needed to end his relationship with Emma Hart. Hamilton’s feelings for her made this easier for both men; however, her agreement was uncertain. After some correspondence, it was arranged that she would go to Naples in the spring of 1786 to live under Hamilton's care, with the expectation that Greville would join her a few months later. Given her situation, it was likely she would eventually accept the offers made to her; although it would be unfair to either Greville or Hamilton to imply that they did not intend to adequately provide for her needs, regardless of her decision.
In this way she left England in the spring of 1786, reaching Naples on the 26th of April. When the poor girl, after many of her letters to her lover remained unanswered, fully realized, that the separation was final, her grief was extreme, and found utterance in words of tenderness and desolation, which, however undisciplined in expression, are marked by genuine pathos. But anger struggled with sorrow for the mastery in her soul. She was too keen-witted not to have had an inkling of the possible outcome of her departure from England, and of the doubtful position she was occupying at Naples; but her wishes had made her willingly deaf to any false ring in the assurances given her by Greville, and she resented not only the abandonment, but the deceit which she, justly or unjustly, conceived to have been practised, while her womanliness revolted from the cold-blooded advice given by him to accept the situation. The conflict was so sharp that for a time both he and Hamilton expected she would return to England; but Greville had not labored in vain at what he was pleased to consider her education. By the end of the year she was addressing Hamilton in words of very fairly assumed affection, but not until she had written to Greville, with a certain haughty desperation, "If you affront me, I will make him marry me." The threat was two-edged, for Hamilton intended Greville to be his heir; but the latter probably gave little heed to a contingency he must have thought very unlikely for a man of fifty-six, who had passed his life in the world, and held Hamilton's public position.
In this way, she left England in the spring of 1786, arriving in Naples on April 26th. When the poor girl, after many of her letters to her lover went unanswered, fully realized that the separation was final, her grief was overwhelming, expressed in words of tenderness and despair that, despite being somewhat unrefined, were filled with genuine emotion. But anger struggled with sorrow for control in her heart. She was too sharp not to sense the possible outcome of her leaving England and the uncertain position she was in at Naples; yet her desires made her willingly ignore any insincerity in the reassurances given to her by Greville. She felt hurt not only by the abandonment but also by the deception she believed had been practiced, whether justly or unjustly. At the same time, her femininity recoiled from the cold-hearted advice he gave her to accept the situation. The struggle was so intense that for a while both he and Hamilton expected she would return to England; but Greville had not wasted his efforts on what he saw as her education. By the end of the year, she was addressing Hamilton with a tone of reasonably feigned affection, but not before she had written to Greville, with a certain arrogant urgency, "If you insult me, I will make him marry me." The threat was two-edged because Hamilton intended for Greville to be his heir; however, Greville probably paid little attention to a scenario he must have thought very unlikely for a fifty-six-year-old man, who had spent his life in society and held Hamilton's public position.
To effect this, however, Emma Hart now bent her personal charms, strong purpose, and the worldly wisdom with which Greville had taught her to assure her hold upon a man. Love, in its unselfishness, passed out of her life with Greville. Other men might find her pliant, pleasing, seductive; he alone knew her as disinterested. She followed out her design with a patience, astuteness, and consistency which attest the strength of her resolution, and her acute intellectual perception of the advantages at her disposal. Ambition, a natural trait with her, had been trained to self-control, in order to compass a lowly, colorless success. Unlooked-for opportunity now held before her eyes, distant and difficult of attainment, but not impossible, a position of assured safety, luxury, and prominence, which appealed powerfully to the love of pleasure, still dormant, and to the love of conspicuousness, which became the two most noticeable features of her character.
To make this happen, Emma Hart now focused her charms, strong determination, and the life lessons Greville had taught her to secure her influence over a man. Love, in its selflessness, left her life with Greville. Other men might find her adaptable, charming, and alluring; he alone saw her as selfless. She pursued her goal with patience, sharpness, and consistency that showed the strength of her resolve and her keen understanding of the advantages she had. Ambition, a natural part of her, had been honed into self-control to achieve a humble, unremarkable success. An unexpected opportunity now lay before her—distant and difficult to reach but not impossible—a position of guaranteed safety, luxury, and prominence, which strongly appealed to her dormant love of pleasure and her desire for attention, the two most prominent aspects of her character.
With all her natural advantages, however, the way was hard and long. She had to become indispensable to Hamilton, and at the same time, and by the same methods, an object the more desirable to him because of her evident attractiveness to others. Above all, she had to contend with her own temper, naturally lively and prone to bursts of anger, which the prolonged suspense of the struggle, acting upon a woman's nerves, tended peculiarly to exasperate. Hamilton was of an age when he might be enslaved by fondness, but not constrained by strength of passion to endure indefinitely household tempests, much less to perpetuate them upon himself by lasting bonds. In all this Emma Hart showed herself fully equal to the task. Tenderly affectionate to him, except when carried away by the fits of irritability which both he and Greville had occasion to observe, she complied readily with all his wishes, and followed out with extraordinary assiduity his plans for her improvement in education and in accomplishments. The society which gathered round them was, of course, almost wholly of men, who one and all prostrated themselves before her beauty and cleverness, with the same unanimity of submission as did the officers of Nelson's division after the Battle of the Nile. But, while giving free rein to coquetry, and revelling in admiration, she afforded no ground for scandal to the world, or dissatisfaction to Hamilton. In the attitude of outsiders towards her, he had reason to see only the general testimony to her charms and to his own good fortune. At the end of 1787 he wrote to Greville: "I can assure you her behaviour is such as has acquired her many sensible admirers, and we have a good man society, and all the female nobility, with the queen at their head, show her every distant civility."
With all her natural advantages, the path was tough and lengthy. She needed to become essential to Hamilton, while also making herself more appealing to him because of her obvious charm to others. Most importantly, she had to manage her own temper, which was naturally lively and prone to outbursts, especially during the stress of the situation, which tended to irritate her more. Hamilton was at an age where he could be captivated by affection, but not strong enough to tolerate constant household storms, let alone commit to them long-term. In all of this, Emma Hart proved she was more than capable. She was lovingly devoted to him, except when overwhelmed by irritability, which both he and Greville noticed. She readily complied with all his requests and diligently pursued his plans for her education and skills improvement. The circle around them was mostly men, all of whom bowing to her beauty and intelligence, much like the officers of Nelson's fleet after the Battle of the Nile. However, while she embraced flirtation and enjoyed the admiration, she didn't give anyone anything to gossip about or cause Hamilton any dissatisfaction. From how outsiders regarded her, he had every reason to see it as evidence of her allure and his own good luck. By the end of 1787, he wrote to Greville: "I assure you her behavior has attracted many genuine admirers, and we have a good society here, with all the female nobility, the queen leading them, showing her every courtesy."
Thus she persisted, keeping her beauty, and growing in mental acquirements and accomplishments, but making little apparent headway towards the great object of her ambition. "I fear," wrote Hamilton towards the middle of 1789, when she had been three years with him, "her views are beyond what I can bring myself to execute; and that when her hopes on that point are over, she will make herself and me unhappy. Hitherto her behaviour is irreproachable, but her temper, as you must know, unequal." He underrated her perseverance, and exaggerated his own strength of reluctance, innate and acquired. Impossible as it would seem, with his antecedents and with hers, his friends and acquaintances became alarmed for the result, and not without cause. "Her influence over him exceeds all belief," wrote a mutual friend to Greville in March, 1791. "His attachment exceeds admiration, it is perfect dotage." Shortly after this letter was written the two went to England, and there they were married on the 6th of September, 1791. By the end of the year they were back in Naples, and did not again leave Italy up to the time of Nelson's arrival in 1798.
Thus she kept going, maintaining her beauty while advancing in her mental skills and achievements, but making little visible progress toward her main goal. "I worry," Hamilton wrote in mid-1789, after she'd been with him for three years, "her ambitions are more than I can handle; and when her hopes for that are dashed, she'll make both of us unhappy. So far, her behavior is impeccable, but her temper, as you know, is unpredictable." He underestimated her determination and overestimated his own reluctance, both natural and learned. Despite how unlikely it seemed, given their backgrounds, his friends and acquaintances became worried about the outcome, and rightly so. "Her influence over him is unbelievable," a mutual friend wrote to Greville in March 1791. "His attachment goes beyond admiration; it's pure obsession." Shortly after this letter, they went to England and got married on September 6, 1791. By the end of the year, they were back in Naples and didn't leave Italy again until Nelson's arrival in 1798.
Lady Hamilton did not abuse the security of the place she had won with so much pains, nor on the other hand did her ambition and love of prominence permit her to settle down to inert enjoyment of it. The careful self-restraint with which she had observed the proprieties of her former false position facilitated the disappearance of prejudices naturally arising from it. Many English ladies of rank, passing through Naples, visited her, and those who refused to ignore the past of the woman, in the position of the British minister's wife, were by some sharply criticised. "She has had a difficult part to act," wrote Hamilton, six months after their return, "and has succeeded wonderfully, having gained, by having no pretensions, the thorough approbation of all the English ladies. The Queen of Naples was very kind to her on our return, and treats her like any other travelling lady of distinction; in short, we are very comfortably situated here." "We dined yesterday with Sir William and Lady Hamilton," wrote Lady Malmesbury, whose husband was among the most distinguished diplomatists of the day. "She really behaves as well as possible, and quite wonderfully, considering her origin and education."
Lady Hamilton didn’t take advantage of the security she had worked so hard to achieve, nor did her ambition and desire for recognition let her just relax and enjoy it. The careful self-control she maintained in her previous difficult situation helped diminish the prejudice that naturally came with it. Many English ladies of high status, passing through Naples, visited her, and those who refused to overlook her past, given her role as the British minister’s wife, faced sharp criticism. "She has had a tough role to play," wrote Hamilton, six months after their return, "and she has done amazingly well, gaining the complete approval of all the English ladies by having no airs about her. The Queen of Naples was very kind to her upon our return and treats her like any other traveling lady of distinction; in short, we are very comfortable here." "We dined yesterday with Sir William and Lady Hamilton," wrote Lady Malmesbury, whose husband was one of the most prominent diplomats of the time. "She really behaves as well as possible, and quite impressively, considering her background and upbringing."
This last phrase, used at the culmination of Lady Hamilton's good fortune and personal advance, was wholly good-natured; but it sums up the best of the not very good that can be said of her during the height of her prosperity, and in later years. Although, as has been remarked, she did not at this time abuse the security which as a wife she had attained,—for policy too clearly dictated the continuance of her previous circumspection,—the necessity for strenuous watchfulness, exertion, and self-restraint, in order to reach a distant goal, no longer existed; and, although a woman of many amiable and generous impulses, she had not a shred of principle to take the place of the motive of self-interest, which hitherto had been so peremptory in its exactions. What she was in delicacy in 1791, that she remained in 1796,—five years after the disappearance of her social disabilities; a pretty fair proof that what she possessed of it was but skin deep, the result of a diligent observance of Greville's proprieties, for her personal advantage, not the token of a noble inner spirit struggling from excusable defilement to the light. "She does the honours of the house with great attention and desire to please," wrote Greville's correspondent of 1791, before quoted, "but wants a little refinement of manners, in which, in the course of six years, I wonder she has not made greater progress." "She is all Nature and yet all Art," said Sir Gilbert Elliot, in 1796; "that is to say, her manners are perfectly unpolished, of course very easy, though not with the ease of good breeding, but of a barmaid; excessively good humoured, and wishing to please and be admired by all ages and sorts of persons that come in her way; but besides considerable natural understanding, she has acquired, since her marriage, some knowledge of history and of the arts, and one wonders at the application and pains she has taken to make herself what she is. With men her language and conversation are exaggerations of anything I ever heard anywhere; and I was wonderfully struck with these inveterate remains of her origin, though the impression was very much weakened by seeing the other ladies of Naples." "I thought her a very handsome, vulgar woman," curtly commented the lieutenant of a frigate which visited Naples in the summer of 1798, while hunting for Nelson in the game of cross-purposes that preceded the Nile.[70] Allowing for difference of observers, it is plain that the Lady Hamilton whom Nelson now met, had not improved in essentials over the Emma Hart of a half-dozen years before.
This last phrase, used at the peak of Lady Hamilton's good fortune and personal success, was completely well-meaning; but it summarizes the best of the not-so-great things that can be said about her during her prime and in later years. Although, as noted, she didn't misuse the security that she had gained as a wife at this time—since strategy clearly dictated that she maintain her previous caution—the need for intense vigilance, effort, and self-restraint to achieve a distant goal no longer existed; and, even though she was a woman with many kind and generous impulses, she lacked any real principle to replace the self-interest that had previously driven her actions so forcefully. Whatever delicacy she had in 1791 remained unchanged in 1796—five years after her social disabilities had vanished; a good indication that what she had was only superficial, the result of carefully observing Greville's standards for her personal gain, rather than a sign of a noble inner spirit trying to rise from moral corruption to the light. "She hosts the house with great care and a desire to please," wrote Greville's correspondent in 1791, as noted earlier, "but lacks a bit of refinement in her manners, in which, over the course of six years, I’m surprised she hasn’t improved more." "She is all Nature and yet all Art," said Sir Gilbert Elliot in 1796; "in other words, her manners are completely unrefined, very casual, though not with the ease of good breeding, but more like a barmaid; extremely good-humored, and eager to please and be admired by people of all ages and backgrounds who come her way; but besides having some natural intelligence, she has learned, since her marriage, some history and arts, and one can’t help but admire the effort and dedication she has put in to become who she is. With men, her speech and conversations are over-the-top compared to anything I’ve ever heard; and I was really struck by these stubborn remnants of her background, though the impact was considerably lessened by seeing the other ladies of Naples." "I thought she was a very attractive, vulgar woman," bluntly commented the lieutenant of a frigate that visited Naples in the summer of 1798, while searching for Nelson in the complex situation preceding the Nile.[70] Given the different perspectives of observers, it's clear that the Lady Hamilton whom Nelson met had not fundamentally improved since Emma Hart from six years earlier.
Two years afterwards, the verdict of these men was confirmed by Mrs. St. George,[71] a lady in London society, who viewed her possibly with something of the repugnant prejudice of a refined and cultivated woman, yet evidently measured her words calmly, even in her private journal. "I think her bold, daring, vain even to folly, and stamped with the manners of her first situation much more strongly than one would suppose, after having represented Majesty, and lived in good company fifteen years. Her dress is frightful. Her waist is absolutely between her shoulders." Nelson measured her by a different standard. "In every point of view," he tells herself, "from Ambassatrice to the duties of domestic life, I never saw your equal. That elegance of manners, accomplishments, and, above all, your goodness of heart, is unparalleled." The same lady describes her personal appearance, at the time when his devotion had reached the height from which it never declined. "Her figure is colossal, but, excepting her feet, which are hideous, well shaped. Her bones are large, and she is exceedingly embonpoint. The shape of all her features is fine, as is the form of her head, and particularly her ears; her teeth are a little irregular, but tolerably white; her eyes light blue, with a brown spot in one, which, though a defect, takes nothing away from her beauty or expression. Her eyebrows and hair (which, by the bye, is never clean) are dark, and her complexion coarse. Her expression is strongly marked, variable, and interesting; her movements in common life ungraceful; her voice loud, yet not disagreeable." Elliot's briefer mention of her appearance is at once confirmatory and complementary of that of Mrs. St. George: "Her person is nothing short of monstrous for its enormity, and is growing every day. Her face is beautiful."
Two years later, Mrs. St. George,[71] a prominent woman in London society, confirmed the opinions of these men. While she likely harbored some bias typical of a refined and educated woman, she still managed to express her thoughts thoughtfully, even in her private journal. "I find her bold, daring, and even vain to the point of folly, and her demeanor reflects her humble beginnings far more than one would expect after having represented royalty and mingled with high society for fifteen years. Her outfit is terrible. Her waist seems almost completely between her shoulders." Nelson evaluated her differently. "In every respect," he tells himself, "whether as an ambassador or in fulfilling domestic duties, I've never seen anyone like you. Your elegance in manners, your skills, and, most importantly, your kind heart are unmatched." The same woman describes her physical appearance at the time when Nelson's devotion had peaked. "Her figure is massive, but aside from her feet, which are ugly, she’s well-proportioned. She has a large bone structure and is quite overweight. The outline of her features is lovely, as is the shape of her head, especially her ears; her teeth are a bit uneven but fairly white; her eyes are light blue, with a brown spot in one, which, though a flaw, doesn't diminish her beauty or expression. Her eyebrows and hair (which, by the way, are never clean) are dark, and her complexion is rough. Her expression is distinct, changeable, and captivating; her everyday movements are lacking in grace; her voice is loud but not unpleasant." Elliot's brief mention of her looks both confirms and complements Mrs. St. George's assessment: "Her figure is extremely large and continues to grow every day. Her face is beautiful."
To these opinions it may be not uninteresting to add the critical estimate of William Beckford, uttered many years later. Beckford was not an admirable character, far from it; but he had known good society, and he had cultivated tastes. Nelson accepted his hospitality, and, with the Hamiltons, spent several days under his roof, about Christmas time, 1800. In reply to the question, "Was the second Lady Hamilton a fascinating woman?" he said, "I never thought her so. She was somewhat masculine, but symmetrical in figure, so that Sir William called her his Grecian. She was full in person, not fat, but embonpoint. Her carriage often majestic, rather than feminine. Not at all delicate, ill-bred, often very affected, a devil in temper when set on edge. She had beautiful hair and displayed it. Her countenance was agreeable,—fine, hardly beautiful, but the outline excellent. She affected sensibility, but felt none—was artful; and no wonder, she had been trained in the Court of Naples—a fine school for an English woman of any stamp. Nelson was infatuated. She could make him believe anything, that the profligate queen was a Madonna. He was her dupe. She never had a child in her life."[72] As to this last assertion, Beckford was not in a position to have personal knowledge.
To these opinions, it might be interesting to include the critical view of William Beckford, expressed many years later. Beckford wasn’t a great guy, far from it; but he had experienced good company and had refined tastes. Nelson accepted his hospitality and, along with the Hamiltons, spent several days at his place around Christmas time in 1800. When asked, "Was the second Lady Hamilton a captivating woman?" he replied, "I never thought so. She was a bit masculine but had a symmetrical body, which is why Sir William called her his Grecian. She was full-figured, not fat, but had a nice shape. Her posture was often more majestic than feminine. Not delicate at all, poorly mannered, and very affected, she had a quick temper when provoked. She had beautiful hair and showed it off. Her face was pleasant—nice, not quite beautiful, but with an excellent shape. She pretended to be sensitive but wasn't really—she was crafty; and it's no surprise, as she was trained in the Court of Naples—a fine place for any English woman. Nelson was infatuated. She could make him believe anything, even that the scandalous queen was a Madonna. He was her gull. She never had a child in her life."[72] As for this last statement, Beckford had no way of knowing personally.
But along with this native coarseness, which, if not ineradicable, was never eradicated, she possessed an intuitive and perfect sense, amounting to genius, for what propriety and good taste demanded in the presentation of an ideal part,—the gift of the born actress. Of her powers in this way the celebrated "Attitudes" were the chief example, and there is no disagreement among the witnesses, either as to their charm or as to the entire disappearance of the every-day woman in the assumed character. "We had the attitudes a night or two ago by candle light," wrote Sir Gilbert Elliot in 1796. "They come up to my expectations fully, which is saying everything. They set Lady Hamilton in a very different light from any I had seen her in before; nothing about her, neither her conversation, her manners, nor figure, announce the very refined taste which she discovers in this performance, besides the extraordinary talent which is needed for the execution." "You never saw anything so charming as Lady Hamilton's attitudes," wrote Lady Malmesbury in 1791. "The most graceful statues or pictures do not give you an idea of them." "It is a beautiful performance," wrote Mrs. St. George, who saw her in 1800, when the Hamiltons and Nelson were travelling on the Continent, "amusing to the most ignorant, and highly interesting to the lovers of art. It is remarkable that although coarse and ungraceful in common life, she becomes highly graceful, and even beautiful, during this performance. It is also singular that, in spite of the accuracy of her imitation of the finest ancient draperies, her usual dress is tasteless, vulgar, loaded and unbecoming."
But along with this natural roughness, which, if not completely unchangeable, was never changed, she had an intuitive and perfect sense, almost genius, for what propriety and good taste required in presenting an ideal role—the talent of a born actress. Her abilities in this regard are best exemplified by the famous "Attitudes," and there is complete agreement among those who observed them, both about their charm and about the total disappearance of the everyday woman in the assumed character. "We saw the attitudes a night or two ago by candlelight," wrote Sir Gilbert Elliot in 1796. "They fully met my expectations, which is saying a lot. They placed Lady Hamilton in a very different light than I had seen her in before; nothing about her—neither her conversation, her manners, nor her figure—suggests the refined taste that she shows in this performance, along with the extraordinary talent required for it." "You never saw anything as charming as Lady Hamilton's attitudes," wrote Lady Malmesbury in 1791. "The most graceful statues or paintings can’t compare to them." "It's a beautiful performance," wrote Mrs. St. George, who saw her in 1800 when the Hamiltons and Nelson were traveling on the Continent, "entertaining for the most uneducated, and incredibly interesting for art lovers. It's remarkable that although she appears coarse and ungraceful in everyday life, she becomes highly graceful, even beautiful, during this performance. It's also strange that, despite her precise imitation of the finest ancient draperies, her usual clothing is tasteless, vulgar, heavy, and unflattering."
The stormy period of the French Revolution, which was about to burst into universal war at the time she was married, gave Lady Hamilton another opportunity to come yet more conspicuously before men's eyes than she had hitherto done. It is not easy to say what degree of influence she really attained, or what particular results she may have effected; but she certainly managed to give herself so much the air of a person of importance, in the political intrigues of the day in Naples, as at the least to impose successfully upon a great many, and to be accepted very much at her own valuation. The French ambassador, writing to Bonaparte in 1798, says: "If the preponderance which the French Republic ought to take here, removed hence Acton and the wife of Hamilton, this country, without other changes, would be extremely useful for the execution of all your projects in the Mediterranean;" and Sir William himself, who should have known, speaks of her activity and utility,—"for several years the real and only confidential friend of the Queen of Naples." Nelson, writing to the Queen of Naples in 1804, after Hamilton's death, said: "Your Majesty well knows that it was her capacity and conduct which sustained his diplomatic character during the last years in which he was at Naples."[73] Certainly, Nelson believed, with all the blindness of love, whatever his mistress chose to tell him, but he was not without close personal knowledge of the inside history of at least two of those last years; for, in 1801, addressing Mr. Addington, then Prime Minister, he used these words: "Having for a length of time seen the correspondence both public and private, from all the Neapolitan ministers to their Government and to the Queen of Naples, I am perfectly acquainted with the views of the several Powers." For her success Lady Hamilton was indebted, partly to her personal advantages, and partly to her position as wife of the British minister and chosen friend to the Queen. Great Britain played a leading part everywhere in the gigantic struggle throughout the Continent, but to a remote peninsular kingdom like Naples, protected by its distance from the centres of strife, yet not wholly inaccessible by land, the chief maritime state was the one and only sufficient ally. A rude reminder of his exposure to naval attack had been given to the King of the Two Sicilies, in 1792, by the appearance of a French fleet, which extorted satisfaction for an alleged insult, by threatening instant bombardment of his capital.
The turbulent time of the French Revolution, which was on the verge of escalating into a full-scale war when she got married, provided Lady Hamilton another chance to step even more into the spotlight than she had before. It's hard to determine the exact level of influence she achieved or what specific outcomes she may have caused; however, she certainly managed to present herself as a significant figure in the political intrigues of Naples, effectively convincing many people of her importance and being regarded largely at her own valuation. The French ambassador, writing to Bonaparte in 1798, noted: "If the French Republic were to establish dominance here and remove Acton and Hamilton's wife, this country, without any other changes, would be extremely useful for the execution of all your plans in the Mediterranean." Sir William himself, who should have known, mentioned her activity and usefulness—"for several years the real and only confidential friend of the Queen of Naples." Nelson, writing to the Queen of Naples in 1804 after Hamilton's death, stated: "Your Majesty knows well that it was her capability and actions that upheld his diplomatic role during the final years he spent in Naples." Certainly, Nelson believed, with all the blindness of love, whatever his partner chose to tell him, but he also had firsthand knowledge of at least two of those last years; for in 1801, addressing Mr. Addington, then Prime Minister, he said: "Having seen the correspondence, both public and private, from all the Neapolitan ministers to their Government and to the Queen of Naples for some time, I'm completely familiar with the perspectives of the various Powers." Lady Hamilton's success was due in part to her personal charms and in part to her status as the wife of the British minister and close friend to the Queen. Great Britain played a major role throughout the massive struggle across the continent, but for a remote peninsular kingdom like Naples, shielded by its distance from the centers of conflict yet not entirely inaccessible by land, the dominant maritime power was the one essential ally. A stark reminder of his vulnerability to naval attacks had been given to the King of the Two Sicilies in 1792 when a French fleet appeared, demanding redress for an alleged insult while threatening to bombard his capital.
Sir William Hamilton, who had been minister since 1765, thus found himself suddenly converted from a dilettante and sportsman, lounging through life, into a busy diplomat, at the centre of affairs of critical moment. At sixty-two the change could scarcely have been welcome to him, but to his beautiful and ambitious wife the access of importance was sweet, for it led to a close friendship with the Queen, already disposed to affect her, even in the notorious position she had held before her marriage; and the Queen, a daughter of Maria Theresa and sister to Marie Antoinette, was much more of a man than the King. The intimacy became the talk of Naples, and the report spread, easily believed, because in the nature of things very likely, that the personal relations between the two women cloaked a great deal of underhand work, such as often accompanies diplomatic difficulties. Nor did Lady Hamilton lack natural qualifications for the position into which she undoubtedly wished to thrust herself. She was a brave, capable, full-blooded, efficient woman, not to be daunted by fears or scruples; a woman who, if only nerve and intelligence were required, and if distinction for herself was at stake, could be fairly depended upon. There was in her make-up a good deal of pagan virtue. She could appreciate and admire heroism, and, under the stimulus of excitement, of self-conscious magnanimity, for the glitter of effective performance and the applause of onlookers, she was quite capable of heroic action. It was this daring spirit, coarsely akin to much that was best in himself, and of which she made proof under his own eyes, that Nelson recognized; and this, in the thought of the writer, was the body of truth, from which his enthusiasm, enkindled by her charms and by her tenderness towards himself, projected such a singular phantasm of romantic perfections.
Sir William Hamilton, who had been a minister since 1765, suddenly found himself transformed from a carefree socialite and athlete into a busy diplomat at the center of critical affairs. At sixty-two, he probably didn't welcome this change, but for his beautiful and ambitious wife, the newfound importance was exciting, as it led to a close friendship with the Queen, who had already shown a fondness for her, even during her notorious past before marriage. The Queen, a daughter of Maria Theresa and sister to Marie Antoinette, was much stronger than the King. Their closeness became the talk of Naples, and rumors circulated, easily believed and likely true, that their personal relationship masked a lot of behind-the-scenes maneuvering typical of diplomatic challenges. Lady Hamilton also had the natural qualities for the role she clearly wanted to play. She was brave, capable, passionate, and efficient, unafraid of fears or moral dilemmas; a woman who could be relied upon if only nerve and intelligence were needed, especially if her own reputation was at stake. Her personality contained a good deal of bold virtue. She could appreciate and admire heroism, and when driven by excitement or a sense of noble ambition, she was fully capable of heroic acts for the thrill of it and the applause of observers. It was this daring spirit, closely related to much of what was best in him, that Nelson recognized; and this, in the writer's view, was the core truth from which his enthusiasm, ignited by her charms and her affection for him, projected a remarkable illusion of romantic ideals.
Such was the woman, and such the position in the public eye that she had gained for herself, when to Naples, first in the European continent, came the news which made Nelson for the moment the most conspicuous man of the day. He had achieved a triumph the most startlingly dazzling that had yet been gained, and over one who up to that time had excelled all other warriors in the brilliancy and extent of his victories. Bonaparte was not yet the Napoleon whom history knows, but thus far he had been the most distinguished child of the Revolution. That Lady Hamilton then and there formed the purpose of attaching Nelson to her, by the bonds which have sullied his memory, is most improbable; but it is in entire keeping with the career and the self-revelations of the woman that she should, instinctively, if not with deliberation, have resolved to parade herself in the glare of his renown, and appear in the foreground upon the stage of his triumph, the chief dispenser of his praises, the patroness and proprietor of the hero. The great occasion should shed a glamour round her, together with him. "Emma's passion is admiration," Greville had written soon after they parted, "and it is capable of aspiring to any line which would be celebrated, and it would be indifferent, when on that key, whether she was Lucretia or Sappho, or Scævola or Regulus; anything grand, masculine or feminine, she could take up."
Such was the woman and the public image she had created for herself when news reached Naples, the first in Europe, that made Nelson the most talked-about man of the day. He had achieved a stunning triumph that was the most extraordinary one yet, defeating someone who, until that moment, had surpassed all other warriors in the brilliance and scope of his victories. Bonaparte wasn't yet the Napoleon we know from history, but up until then, he had been the most notable product of the Revolution. It’s highly unlikely that Lady Hamilton, at that moment, intended to tie herself to Nelson in a way that would tarnish his legacy, but it does align perfectly with her character and the way she presented herself that she would instinctively, if not intentionally, choose to showcase herself in the spotlight of his glory, stepping into the foreground of his triumph, being the main one to sing his praises, and acting as his patron and champion. This grand occasion was bound to cast a glamorous light around her alongside him. "Emma's passion is admiration," Greville had written soon after they separated, "and it is capable of aspiring to any celebrated line, and it wouldn’t matter whether she was Lucretia or Sappho, or Scævola or Regulus; she could embrace anything grand, whether masculine or feminine."
Unhappily, Nelson was not able to stand the heady dose of flattery administered by a woman of such conspicuous beauty and consummate art; nor was his taste discriminating enough to experience any wholesome revolt against the rankness of the draught she offered him. The quick appreciation of the born actress, which enabled her when on the stage to clothe herself with a grace and refinement that dropped away when she left it, conspired with his simplicity of confidence in others, and his strong tendency to idealize, to invest her with a character very different from the true. Not that the Lady Hamilton of reality was utterly different from the Lady Hamilton of his imagination. That she ever loved him is doubtful; but there were in her spirit impulses capable of sympathetic response to his own in his bravest acts, though not in his noblest motives. It is inconceivable that duty ever appealed, to her as it did to him, nor could a woman of innate nobility of character have dragged a man of Nelson's masculine renown about England and the Continent, till he was the mock of all beholders; but on the other hand it never could have occurred to the energetic, courageous, brilliant Lady Hamilton, after the lofty deeds and stirring dramatic scenes of St. Vincent, to beg him, as Lady Nelson did, "to leave boarding to captains." Sympathy, not good taste, would have withheld her. In Lady Nelson's letters there is evidence enough of a somewhat colorless womanly affection, but not a thrill of response to the greatness of her husband's daring, even when surrounded herself by the acclamations it called forth.
Unfortunately, Nelson couldn't handle the overwhelming flattery from a woman of such striking beauty and exceptional skill; nor did his taste allow him to feel any strong repulsion against the depth of the charm she offered him. The natural talent of the born actress allowed her to project an elegance and sophistication that faded away when she stepped off the stage. This, combined with his naive trust in others and his tendency to idealize, led him to perceive her in a way that was quite different from reality. It's not that the real Lady Hamilton was completely unlike the Lady Hamilton he imagined. Whether she truly loved him is questionable; however, there were elements in her spirit that could resonate with him during his boldest moments, even if not in his noblest intentions. It's hard to believe that duty ever meant to her what it did to him, nor could a woman of true noble character have dragged a man of Nelson's considerable fame around England and the Continent, making him the subject of mockery. On the flip side, it would never have crossed the energetic, courageous, and talented Lady Hamilton's mind to ask him, as Lady Nelson did, "to leave boarding to captains." Sympathy, not a sense of decorum, would have restrained her. In Lady Nelson's letters, there's plenty of evidence of a somewhat bland, womanly affection, but no hint of excitement in response to her husband's bravery, even when in the midst of the acclaim it received.
What Nelson had never yet found in woman Lady Hamilton gave him,—admiration and appreciation, undisguised and unmeasured, yet bestowed by one who had the power, by the admission of even unfriendly critics, of giving a reality and grace to the part she was performing. He was soon at her feet. The playful gallantry with which Ball, Elliot, and even old St. Vincent[74] himself, paid court to a handsome woman, greedy of homage, became in Nelson a serious matter. Romantic in temperament, he was all day in flattering contact with her. Worn out and ill from that "fever of anxiety," to use his own words, which he had endured since the middle of June, she attended and nursed him. "Lady Hamilton," he exclaimed to Lady Nelson, with enthusiasm undiscriminating in more ways than one, "is one of the very best women in this world; she is an honour to her sex." A week later he tells her, with an odd collocation of persons: "My pride is being your husband, the son of my dear father, and in having Sir William and Lady Hamilton for my friends. While these approve my conduct, I shall not feel or regard the envy of thousands." The matter was passing rapidly into the platonic stage, in which Sir William was also erelong assigned an appropriate, if not wholly flattering, position. "What can I say of hers and Sir William's attention to me? They are in fact, with the exception of you and my good father, the dearest friends I have in this world. I live as Sir William's son in the house, and my glory is as dear to them as their own; in short, I am under such obligations as I can never repay but with my eternal gratitude." "Naples is a dangerous place," he sagely tells Lord St. Vincent, "and we must keep clear of it. I am writing opposite Lady Hamilton, therefore you will not be surprised at the glorious jumble of this letter. Were your Lordship in my place, I much doubt if you could write so well; our hearts and our hands must be all in a flutter." Matters progressed; within ten days the veteran seaman learned, among other concerns of more or less official importance, that "Lady Hamilton is an Angel. She has honoured me by being my ambassadress to the queen: therefore she has my implicit confidence and is worthy of it."
What Nelson had never found in a woman, Lady Hamilton gave him—admiration and appreciation, openly and without measure, yet given by someone who had the ability, as even critical observers admitted, to bring reality and grace to the role she was playing. He soon found himself at her feet. The playful flirtation with which Ball, Elliot, and even old St. Vincent himself paid attention to a beautiful woman, eager for admiration, turned into something serious for Nelson. Romantic by nature, he spent all day in flattering contact with her. Exhausted and ill from that "fever of anxiety," as he put it, which he had endured since mid-June, she cared for and nursed him. "Lady Hamilton," he exclaimed to Lady Nelson, with unfiltered enthusiasm, "is one of the very best women in the world; she is an honor to her gender." A week later, he told her, oddly mixing people together: "My pride is being your husband, my dear father's son, and having Sir William and Lady Hamilton as my friends. While they approve of my actions, I won't feel or care about the envy of thousands." The situation was quickly transitioning into a platonic phase, with Sir William soon assigned an appropriate, if not entirely flattering, role. "What can I say about their attention to me? They are, except for you and my good father, my closest friends in this world. I live in Sir William's house, and my honor is as important to them as it is to me; in short, I owe them a debt of gratitude I can never repay except with my eternal thanks." "Naples is a dangerous place," he wisely told Lord St. Vincent, "and we need to stay away from it. I'm writing this across from Lady Hamilton, so you won’t be surprised by the messy nature of this letter. If you were in my position, I doubt you could write this well; our hearts and hands are all in a flurry." Things moved forward; within ten days, the seasoned sailor learned, among other more or less official matters, that "Lady Hamilton is an Angel. She has honored me by being my ambassador to the queen: therefore, she has my complete trust and deserves it."
That such intimacy and such relations resulted in no influence upon the admiral's public action is not to be believed. That he consciously perverted his views is improbable, but that he saw duty under other than normal lights is not only probable, but evident. His whole emotional nature was stirred as it never had been. Incipient love and universal admiration had created in him a tone of mind, and brought to birth feelings, which he had, seemingly, scarcely known. "I cannot write a stiff formal public letter," he tells St. Vincent effusively. "You must make one or both so. I feel you are my friend, and my heart yearns to you." Such extravagance of expression and relaxation of official tone has no pertinent cause, and is at least noteworthy. The Court, or rather the Queen through Lady Hamilton, took possession of him. He became immediately one of the little coterie centring round Her Majesty, and he reflected its tone and partisanship, which, fostered probably in the intimate conversations of the two women, were readily transmitted to the minister by the wife whom he adored. The Queen, impetuous, enterprising, and headstrong, like her mother and sister, moved more by feminine feelings of hatred and revenge against the French than by well-balanced considerations of policy, not only favored war, but wished to precipitate the action of the Emperor by immediately attacking the French in the Roman territory. The decision and daring of such a course was so consonant to Nelson's own temperament that he readily sympathized; but it is impossible to admit its wisdom, from either a political or military standpoint. It was an excessively bad combination, substituting isolated attacks for co-operation, and risking results upon the chance of prompt support, by a state which would be offended and embarrassed by the step taken.
That such closeness and those relationships had no impact on the admiral's public actions is hard to believe. While it's unlikely he deliberately twisted his views, it's clear he viewed his duty in a way that wasn't normal. His entire emotional being was stirred like never before. A budding love and widespread admiration created a mindset in him and awakened feelings he had seemingly hardly experienced. "I can’t write a stiff, formal public letter," he tells St. Vincent passionately. "You have to make one or both of us so. I feel like you’re my friend, and my heart longs for you." Such extreme expression and loosening of official tone have no clear reason and are certainly notable. The Court, or specifically the Queen through Lady Hamilton, took him under her influence. He quickly became part of the small group surrounding Her Majesty, reflecting its mood and bias, which were likely nurtured in the close conversations between the two women and passed on to the minister by the wife he adored. The Queen, impulsive, bold, and stubborn, like her mother and sister, was driven more by personal feelings of hatred and revenge against the French than by careful political considerations. She not only supported war but wanted to force the Emperor's hand by immediately attacking the French in Roman territory. Such a decision and boldness aligned well with Nelson’s own temperament, making him readily sympathetic to the idea. However, it's impossible to argue its wisdom from either a political or military perspective. It was an extremely poor strategy, replacing coordinated efforts with isolated attacks and risking outcomes based on the hope of quick support from a nation that would be offended and put in a difficult position by the actions taken.
Under ordinary conditions Nelson might have seen this, but he was well handled. Within three days he had been persuaded that upon his personal presence depended the salvation of Italy. "My head is quite healed, and, if it were necessary, I could not at present leave Italy, who looks up to me as, under God, its Protector." He continually, by devout recollection of his indebtedness to God, seeks to keep himself in hand. "I am placed by Providence in that situation, that all my caution will be necessary to prevent vanity from showing itself superior to my gratitude and thankfulness,"—but the current was too strong for him, and was swollen to a torrent by the streams of adulation, which from all quarters flowed in upon a temperament only too disposed to accept them. "Could I, my dearest Fanny," he writes to Lady Nelson, "tell you half the honours which are shown me here, not a ream of paper would hold it." A grand ball was given on his birthday, September 29; and a rostral column was "erected under a magnificent canopy, never, Lady Hamilton says, to come down while they remain at Naples." Within a week the conviction of his own importance led him to write to Lady Hamilton, evidently for transmission to the Queen, an opinion, or rather an urgent expression of advice, that Naples should at once begin war. It is only conjectural to say that this opinion, which rested on no adequate knowledge of the strength of the Neapolitan Kingdom, was elicited by the Queen through Lady Hamilton; but the inference derives support from the words, "I have read with admiration the queen's dignified and incomparable letter of September, 1796,"—two years before. That his views were not the simple outcome of his own unbiassed study of the situation is evident enough. "This country, by its system of procrastination, will ruin itself," he writes to St. Vincent, the very day after drawing up the letter in question; "the queen sees it and thinks"—not as I do, but—"as we do." That Lady Hamilton was one of the "we" is plain, for in the postscript to the letter he says: "Your Ladyship will, I beg, receive this letter as a preparative for Sir William Hamilton, to whom I am writing, with all respect, the firm and unalterable opinion of a British admiral," etc. Certainly these words—taken with those already quoted, and written just a week afterwards, "Lady Hamilton has been my ambassadress to the queen"—indicate that she was the intermediary between Nelson and the Court, as well as between him and her husband.
Under normal circumstances, Nelson might have realized this, but he was being well managed. Within three days, he had been convinced that the salvation of Italy depended on his presence. "My head is completely healed, and if necessary, I couldn’t leave Italy right now, as it looks up to me as, under God, its Protector." He constantly tries to keep himself grounded through his deep sense of gratitude to God. "I am placed by Providence in a position where I must be careful to ensure that vanity doesn't overpower my gratitude and thankfulness,"—but the pressure was too strong for him, and it was intensified by the waves of flattery coming his way, which he was all too eager to accept. "If I could, my dearest Fanny," he writes to Lady Nelson, "tell you half of the honors being shown to me here, not even a ream of paper would be enough." A grand ball was held on his birthday, September 29; and a rostral column was "erected under a magnificent canopy, never, Lady Hamilton says, to come down while they remain in Naples." Within a week, his sense of his own significance led him to write to Lady Hamilton, clearly intending it for the Queen, expressing an urgent recommendation that Naples should immediately start a war. It's purely speculation to suggest that this opinion, which was based on an incomplete understanding of the Neapolitan Kingdom's strength, was prompted by the Queen through Lady Hamilton; however, this idea is supported by the words, "I have read with admiration the queen's dignified and incomparable letter from September, 1796,"—two years prior. It's clear that his views were not simply the result of his unbiased examination of the situation. "This country, through its system of procrastination, will ruin itself," he wrote to St. Vincent, the very day after drafting the letter in question; "the queen sees it and thinks"—not as I do, but—"as we do." That Lady Hamilton was part of the "we" is evident, as in the postscript to the letter he states: "Your Ladyship will, I beg, accept this letter as a preparative for Sir William Hamilton, to whom I am writing, with all respect, the firm and unalterable opinion of a British admiral," etc. Certainly, these words—taken along with the ones already quoted, and written just a week later, "Lady Hamilton has been my ambassadress to the queen"—suggest that she was the intermediary between Nelson and the Court, as well as between him and her husband.
There is no record of any official request for this unofficial and irregular communication of the opinion of a British admiral; and, of course, when a man has allowed himself, unasked, though not unprompted, to press such a line of action, he has bound himself personally, and embarrassed himself officially, in case it turns out badly. Nelson very soon, within a fortnight, had to realize this, in the urgent entreaties of the Court not to forsake them; and to see reason for thinking "that a strong wish for our squadron's being on the Coast of Naples is, that in case of any mishap, that their Majesties think their persons much safer under the protection of the British flag than under any other;" that is—than under their own. They could not trust their own people; they could not, as the event proved, trust their army in the field; and the veteran Neapolitan naval officer, Caracciolo, whether he deserved confidence or not, was stung to the quick when, in the event, they sought refuge with a foreign admiral instead of with himself. That Nelson should not have known all this, ten days after reaching Naples, was pardonable enough, and, if formally asked for advice without such facts being placed before him, he could not be responsible for an error thus arising; but the case is very different when advice is volunteered. He is more peremptory than the minister himself. "You will not believe I have said or done anything, without the approbation of Sir William Hamilton. His Excellency is too good to them, and the strong language of an English Admiral telling them plain truths of their miserable system may do good."
There’s no record of any official request regarding this unofficial and irregular communication from a British admiral. Obviously, when someone pushes for a course of action unasked, though not without prompting, they tie themselves personally and create official complications if things go badly. Nelson quickly realized this, within a fortnight, as he received urgent pleas from the Court not to abandon them. He came to understand that their strong desire for our squadron to be off the Coast of Naples stemmed from the belief that their Majesties felt much safer under the British flag than their own. They couldn’t trust their own people; and, as events showed, they couldn’t trust their army in the field either. The seasoned Neapolitan naval officer, Caracciolo, whether he was trustworthy or not, felt deeply insulted when they sought help from a foreign admiral instead of turning to him. It’s understandable that Nelson, ten days after arriving in Naples, wasn’t aware of all this. If he had been formally asked for advice without these facts, he wouldn’t be accountable for any mistakes made. However, the situation is quite different when advice is given unsolicited. He is more forceful than the minister himself: “You won’t believe I’ve said or done anything without Sir William Hamilton’s approval. His Excellency is too lenient with them, and the blunt words of an English Admiral stating clear truths about their terrible system might actually do some good.”
The particular position of Naples relatively to France was this. French troops had for a year past occupied the Roman Republic, which had been established by them upon the overthrow of the Papal Government. Their presence there was regarded by Nelson as a constant threat to the Two Sicilies, and this to an extent was true; but rather because of the contagion of revolutionary ideas than from the military point of view. From the latter, it should have been obvious to a man like Nelson that the French must be deterred, under existing conditions, from entering Naples unprovoked; because the farther they advanced the more exposed was their army, in case war, which was darkly threatening, should be renewed in Upper Italy. They dared not, unless by folly, or because first attacked, prolong their already too extended ex-centric movement into Lower Italy. This was true, taking account of Austria only; but now that the British fleet was released by the entire destruction of the French at the Nile, and could operate anywhere on the coast, it would be doubly imprudent; and when the news that it had been done reached Egypt, Bonaparte, who had himself felt the weight of Naples as a possible enemy, remote and feeble as she was, exclaimed, "Italy is lost!" That Naples should co-operate in the general movement against France was right, although, as Nelson well knew, she had never dared do so under much more favorable conditions,—a fact which by itself should have suggested to him caution; but that she should act alone, with the idea of precipitating war, refusing to await the moment fixed by the principal states, was folly. This, however, was the course determined, under the combined impulse of the Queen, Lady Hamilton, and Nelson; and it was arranged that, after visiting the blockade off Malta, he should return to Naples to co-operate in the intended movement.
The situation of Naples in relation to France was this: French troops had been occupying the Roman Republic for the past year, which they had established after overthrowing the Papal Government. Nelson viewed their presence as a constant threat to the Two Sicilies, and to some extent, this was true; however, it was more due to the spread of revolutionary ideas than any military threat. From a military perspective, it should have been obvious to someone like Nelson that the French would be deterred from entering Naples unprovoked under the current circumstances. The further they advanced, the more vulnerable their army would be if war, which was looming in Upper Italy, reignited. They would not dare to extend their already overreaching movement into Lower Italy unless they were foolish or were attacked first. This was accurate if only considering Austria; but now that the British fleet had been fully freed by the complete destruction of the French at the Nile and could operate anywhere along the coast, it would be even more reckless. When news of this reached Egypt, Bonaparte, who had felt Naples as a potential enemy—even if it was distant and weak—exclaimed, "Italy is lost!" It was right for Naples to participate in the wider movement against France, although, as Nelson well understood, she had never dared to do so even under much more favorable conditions. This fact alone should have indicated to him to be cautious. However, for Naples to act alone in hopes of sparking war, without waiting for the timing set by the major states, was reckless. Nevertheless, this was the course decided upon, driven by the combined influence of the Queen, Lady Hamilton, and Nelson; it was arranged that after he visited the blockade off Malta, he would return to Naples to participate in the planned movement.
On the 15th of October Nelson sailed from Naples for Malta in the "Vanguard," with three ships-of-the-line which had lately joined him. He still felt, with accurate instinct, that Egypt and the Ionian Islands, with Malta, constituted the more purely maritime interests, in dealing with which the fleet would most further the general cause, and he alludes frequently to his wish to attend to them; but he promised the King that he would be back in Naples in the first week of November, to support the projected movement against the French. He remained off Malta, therefore, only one week, during which adequate arrangements were made for the blockade of the island, which had been formally proclaimed on the 12th of October, and was conducted for most of the following year by the Portuguese squadron; the senior British officer, Captain Ball, acting ashore with the insurgent Maltese. These had risen against the French during the summer, and now held them shut up in La Valetta. The adjacent island of Gozo surrendered to the British on the 28th. Hood continued in charge off Alexandria with three ships-of-the-line; while the Ionian Islands were left to themselves, until a combined Russian and Turkish squadron entered the Mediterranean a few weeks later.
On October 15th, Nelson set sail from Naples to Malta on the "Vanguard," accompanied by three ships-of-the-line that had recently joined him. He instinctively understood that Egypt and the Ionian Islands, along with Malta, were the key maritime interests that the fleet should focus on to effectively support the overall cause. He often expressed his desire to address these areas; however, he had promised the King he would return to Naples in the first week of November to help with the planned operation against the French. Therefore, he stayed off Malta for just one week, during which time necessary arrangements were made for the blockade of the island, officially declared on October 12th, and which was mostly carried out over the next year by the Portuguese squadron, with Captain Ball serving as the senior British officer working with the Maltese insurgents. The Maltese had revolted against the French during the summer and had them trapped in La Valetta. The nearby island of Gozo surrendered to the British on the 28th. Hood remained in charge off Alexandria with three ships-of-the-line while the Ionian Islands were left to themselves until a joint Russian and Turkish squadron entered the Mediterranean a few weeks later.
On the 5th of November Nelson returned to Naples. "I am, I fear, drawn into a promise that Naples Bay shall never be left without an English man-of-war. I never intended leaving the coast of Naples without one; but if I had, who could resist the request of such a queen?" He could ground much upon the Admiralty's orders, given when he was first sent into the Mediterranean, to protect the Kingdom of the Two Sicilies, and he had understood that the Emperor also would give his aid, if Naples attacked. This impression received strength from an Austrian general, Mack,—then of high reputation, but afterwards better known by his surrender to Napoleon at Ulm, in 1805,—being sent to command the Neapolitan army. Sir William Hamilton, however, writing on the 26th of October, was more accurate in saying that the Emperor only advised the King "to act openly against the French at Malta, as he would certainly support him;" for, Naples having a feudal claim upon the island, action there could be represented as merely resistance to aggression. In consequence of this misunderstanding, great confusion ensued in the royal councils when a courier from Vienna brought word, on the 13th of November, that that Court wished it left to the French to begin hostilities; otherwise, it would give no assurance of help. Nelson was now formally one of the Council which deliberated upon military operations. In virtue of this position he spoke out, roughly enough. "I ventured to tell their Majesties that one of the following things must happen to the King, and he had his choice,—'Either to advance, trusting to God for his blessing on a just cause, to die with l'épée à la main, or remain quiet and be kicked out of your Kingdoms.'" Thus rudely adjured, the King decided to be a hero after the pattern of Nelson.
On November 5th, Nelson returned to Naples. "I’m afraid I’ve committed to a promise that Naples Bay will never be without an English warship. I never meant to leave the coast of Naples without one; but if I had, who could refuse the request of such a queen?" He could rely heavily on the Admiralty’s orders from when he was first sent to the Mediterranean to protect the Kingdom of the Two Sicilies, and he believed that the Emperor would also come to help if Naples was attacked. This belief was reinforced by the appointment of an Austrian general, Mack—who was highly regarded at the time but later became better known for surrendering to Napoleon at Ulm in 1805—to command the Neapolitan army. However, Sir William Hamilton, writing on October 26th, was more accurate in stating that the Emperor only advised the King "to act openly against the French at Malta, as he would certainly support him;" since Naples had a feudal claim on the island, any action there could be framed as mere resistance to aggression. Due to this misunderstanding, significant confusion arose in the royal councils when a courier from Vienna delivered the news on November 13th that the Court wanted the French to initiate hostilities; otherwise, they could not guarantee assistance. Nelson was now officially part of the Council that discussed military operations. In this role, he spoke straightforwardly. "I took the liberty to tell their Majesties that one of two things must happen to the King, and it was his choice—'Either to advance, trusting God for His blessing on a just cause, to die with l'épée à la main, or stay quiet and be kicked out of your Kingdoms.'" Faced with this blunt advice, the King chose to be a hero in the mold of Nelson.
On the 22d of November a summons was sent to the French to evacuate the Papal States and Malta, and a Neapolitan army marched upon Rome, commanded by Mack in person. At the same time Nelson took on board his squadron a corps of five thousand, to seize Leghorn, the possession of which, with control of the sea, was not unjustly considered threatening to the communications between the centre of French power, in Northern Italy, and the exposed corps at the foot of the peninsula. After landing this body, Nelson again went to Naples, leaving Troubridge in charge at Leghorn, with several ships; directing him also to keep vessels cruising along the Riviera, and before Genoa, to break up the coastwise traffic, which had resumed great proportions since the absence of the British from the Mediterranean, and upon which the French army in Piedmont and Lombardy now greatly depended.
On November 22, a notice was sent to the French to evacuate the Papal States and Malta, and a Neapolitan army marched toward Rome, led by Mack himself. At the same time, Nelson took a force of five thousand aboard his squadron to capture Leghorn, the control of which was rightly seen as a threat to the communication lines between the French stronghold in Northern Italy and the exposed troops at the southern tip of the peninsula. After landing this group, Nelson returned to Naples, leaving Troubridge in charge at Leghorn with several ships. He also instructed him to keep ships patrolling along the Riviera and in front of Genoa to disrupt the coastal trade, which had grown significantly since the British left the Mediterranean and on which the French army in Piedmont and Lombardy now heavily relied.
On the 5th of December the "Vanguard" once more anchored at Naples. Nelson's estimate of affairs as he now found them, is best told in his own words. "The state of this Country is briefly this: The army is at Rome, Civita Vecchia taken, but in the Castle of St. Angelo are five hundred French troops. The French have thirteen thousand troops at a strong post in the Roman State, called Castellana. General Mack is gone against them with twenty thousand: the event in my opinion is doubtful, and on it hangs the immediate fate of Naples. If Mack is defeated, this country, in fourteen days, is lost; for the Emperor has not yet moved his army, and if the Emperor will not march, this country has not the power of resisting the French. But it was not a case of choice, but necessity, which forced the King of Naples to march out of his country, and not to wait till the French had collected a force sufficient to drive him, in a week, out of his kingdom." It is by no means so sure that no other course of action had been open, though Nelson naturally clung to his first opinion. By advancing, the King gave the French occasion, if they were seeking one; and the Neapolitan army, which might well have deterred them, as it had embarrassed even Bonaparte in his time, had its rottenness revealed as only trial can reveal. When reviewed, it had appeared to Mack and Nelson a well-equipped force of thirty thousand of the "finest troops in Europe." Brought face to face with fifteen thousand French, in a month it ceased to exist.
On December 5th, the "Vanguard" anchored again at Naples. Nelson's assessment of the situation as he found it is best expressed in his own words. "The situation in this country is simple: The army is in Rome, Civita Vecchia has been taken, but there are five hundred French troops in the Castle of St. Angelo. The French have thirteen thousand troops at a strong position in the Roman State called Castellana. General Mack has gone against them with twenty thousand: the outcome, in my opinion, is uncertain, and its result will determine the immediate fate of Naples. If Mack is defeated, this country will be lost in fourteen days; for the Emperor has not yet mobilized his army, and if the Emperor doesn't march, this country won't be able to resist the French. However, it was not a matter of choice but necessity that forced the King of Naples to leave his country instead of waiting for the French to gather a force strong enough to drive him out of his kingdom in a week." It’s not entirely certain that no other options were available, though Nelson understandably held onto his initial view. By advancing, the King gave the French an opportunity if they were looking for one; and the Neapolitan army, which might have deterred them—just as it had troubled even Bonaparte in his time—had its weaknesses exposed in a way that only actual conflict can reveal. When reviewed, it had appeared to Mack and Nelson as a well-equipped force of thirty thousand of the "finest troops in Europe." In a month, faced with fifteen thousand French, it ceased to exist.
Upon Mack's advance, the French general Championnet had evacuated Rome, into which the King made a vainglorious triumphal entry. The French retired to Castellana, followed by the Neapolitans; but in the campaign that ensued the latter behaved with disgraceful cowardice. Flying in every direction, with scarcely any loss in killed, and preceded in their flight by the King, the whole force retreated in confusion upon the capital. There revolutionary ideas had spread widely among the upper classes; and, although the populace both in city and country remained fanatically loyal, and hostile to the French, the King and Queen feared to trust their persons to the issue of events. Powerless through suspicions of those around them, apparently well founded, and through lack of any instrument with which to act, now that their army was destroyed, their one wish was to escape to Palermo.
Upon Mack's approach, the French general Championnet had evacuated Rome, where the King made a boastful triumphant entry. The French fell back to Castellana, closely followed by the Neapolitans; however, in the resulting campaign, the latter acted with shameful cowardice. Dispersing in every direction, with barely any casualties, and led in their flight by the King, the entire force retreated in chaos back to the capital. There, revolutionary ideas had spread widely among the upper classes; and, although the people in both the city and countryside remained fiercely loyal and hostile to the French, the King and Queen were afraid to risk their safety based on the outcomes. Helpless due to suspicions of those around them—suspicions that seemed well-founded—and lacking any means to take action now that their army was gone, their only desire was to escape to Palermo.
To do this involved some difficulty, as the mob, like that of Paris, was bitterly opposed to their sovereign leaving the capital; but by the management and determination of Nelson, who was greatly helped by the courage and presence of mind of Lady Hamilton, the royal family was embarked on board the "Vanguard" on the evening of December 21st. During several previous days treasure to the amount of two and a half millions sterling was being conveyed secretly to the ship. "The whole correspondence relative to this important business," wrote Nelson to St. Vincent, "was carried on with the greatest address by Lady Hamilton and the Queen, who being constantly in the habits of correspondence, no one could suspect." On the evening of the 23d the "Vanguard" sailed, and after a most tempestuous passage reached Palermo on the 26th. The youngest of the princes, six years old, taken suddenly with convulsions, died on the way in the arms of Lady Hamilton, whose womanly helpfulness, as well as her courage, came out strongly in this trying time. Nelson wrote to St. Vincent: "It is my duty to tell your Lordship the obligations which the whole royal family as well as myself are under on this trying occasion to her Ladyship." These scenes inevitably deepened the impression she had already made upon him, which was not to be lessened by her lapse into feminine weakness when the strain was over. To use her own words, in a letter to her old lover, Greville, "My dear, adorable queen and I weep together, and now that is our onely comfort." "Our dear Lady Hamilton," Nelson wrote again a few days later, "whom to see is to admire, but, to know, are to be added honour and respect; her head and heart surpass her beauty, which cannot be equalled by anything I have seen." Upon himself the brief emergency and its sharp call to action had had the usual reviving effect. "Thank God," he wrote to Spencer, "my health is better, my mind never firmer, and my heart in the right trim to comfort, relieve, and protect those who it is my duty to afford assistance to."
To do this was quite challenging, as the crowd, similar to that of Paris, strongly opposed their king leaving the capital; however, through the skill and determination of Nelson, who was greatly assisted by the bravery and quick thinking of Lady Hamilton, the royal family boarded the "Vanguard" on the evening of December 21st. In the days leading up to this, treasure amounting to two and a half million pounds was secretly transported to the ship. "The entire communication regarding this important matter," Nelson wrote to St. Vincent, "was handled with the utmost skill by Lady Hamilton and the Queen, who, being in constant touch, no one could suspect." On the evening of the 23rd, the "Vanguard" set sail, and after a very rough journey, it arrived in Palermo on the 26th. The youngest prince, just six years old, suddenly fell into convulsions and died on the way in Lady Hamilton's arms, where her compassion, alongside her bravery, shone through during this difficult time. Nelson wrote to St. Vincent: "I must inform your Lordship of the gratitude that the entire royal family, as well as myself, have for her Ladyship during this challenging moment." These events only strengthened the impression she had already made on him, which wasn’t diminished by her emotional breakdown once the pressure was lifted. To quote her own words in a letter to her former lover, Greville, "My dear, adorable queen and I weep together, and now that is our only comfort." "Our dear Lady Hamilton," Nelson wrote again a few days later, "who, to see, is to admire, but to know, brings honor and respect; her intelligence and kindness surpass her beauty, which I have never seen matched." The sudden emergency and its urgent demands had the usual revitalizing effect on him. "Thank God," he wrote to Spencer, "my health is better, my mind is clearer than ever, and my heart is ready to comfort, support, and protect those I am supposed to help."
In Palermo Nelson again lived in the minister's house, bearing a large, if not a disproportionate, share of the expenses. When they returned to England in 1800, Hamilton was £2,000 in his debt. The intimacy and the manner of life, in the midst of the Neapolitan court, whose corruptness of manners both Nelson and Troubridge openly condemned, was already causing scandal, rumors of which were not long in reaching home. "I am quite concerned," wrote Captain Ball to Saumarez, when Nelson was about to quit the station, "at the many severe paragraphs which have been put in the newspapers respecting him and Lady Hamilton. I am convinced that there has not been anything improper between them—his Lordship could not fail being delighted with her accomplishments and manners, which are very fascinating." Lady Nelson, uneasy as a wife could not fail to be at reports affecting her husband's honor, and threatening her own happiness, quickly formed, and for a time entertained, the thought of joining him on the station; but, if she broached the idea to Nelson, he certainly discouraged it. Writing to her on the 10th of April, 1799, he said: "You would by February have seen how unpleasant it would have been had you followed any advice, which carried you from England to a wandering sailor. I could, if you had come, only have struck my flag, and carried you back again, for it would have been impossible to have set up an establishment at either Naples or Palermo."[75]
In Palermo, Nelson stayed at the minister's house again, taking on a significant share of the expenses. When they returned to England in 1800, Hamilton owed him £2,000. The close friendship and lifestyle amidst the Neapolitan court, which both Nelson and Troubridge openly criticized for its corruption, was already creating scandal, and rumors soon reached home. "I'm quite worried," Captain Ball wrote to Saumarez when Nelson was about to leave the station, "about the many harsh articles that have appeared in the newspapers regarding him and Lady Hamilton. I'm convinced there’s nothing inappropriate between them—his Lordship must be charmed by her talents and personality, which are very captivating." Lady Nelson, understandably anxious about rumors affecting her husband's reputation and her own happiness, quickly considered and for a while entertained the idea of joining him at the station. However, if she mentioned it to Nelson, he certainly discouraged her. In a letter to her dated April 10, 1799, he said: "By February, you would have seen how uncomfortable it would have been had you followed any advice that took you from England to a wandering sailor. If you had come, I could only have lowered my flag and taken you back again, as it would have been impossible to set up a home in either Naples or Palermo."
The scandal increased apace after his headquarters were fixed at Palermo. Lady Minto, writing from Vienna to her sister, in July, 1800, says: "Mr. Rushout and Colonel Rooke,[76] whom I knew in Italy, are here. Mr. Rushout is at last going home. He escaped from Naples at the same time as the King did in Nelson's ship, and remained six months at Palermo; so I had a great deal of intelligence concerning the Hero and his Lady ... Nelson and the Hamiltons all lived together in a house of which he bore the expense, which was enormous, and every sort of gaming went on half the night. Nelson used to sit with large parcels of gold before him, and generally go to sleep, Lady Hamilton taking from the heap without counting, and playing with his money to the amount of £500 a night. Her rage is play, and Sir William says when he is dead she will be a beggar. However, she has about £30,000 worth of diamonds from the royal family in presents. She sits at the Councils, and rules everything and everybody." Some of these statements are probably beyond the personal knowledge of the narrator, and can only be accepted as current talk; but others are within the observation of an eye-witness, evidently thought credible by Lady Minto, who was a friend to Nelson. Mr. Paget, who succeeded Hamilton as British minister, mentions the same reports, in his private letter to Lord Grenville, the Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs. Hamilton had asked to see his instructions. "I decided at once not to do so, for he would certainly have been obliged to show them to Lady Hamilton, who would have conveyed them next moment to the queen ... Lord Nelson's health is, I fear, sadly impaired, and I am assured that his fortune is fallen into the same state, in consequence of great losses which both his Lordship and Lady Hamilton have sustained at Faro and other games of hazard."[77]
The scandal gained momentum after his headquarters were established in Palermo. Lady Minto, writing from Vienna to her sister in July 1800, shares: "Mr. Rushout and Colonel Rooke, whom I knew in Italy, are here. Mr. Rushout is finally going home. He escaped from Naples at the same time as the King did on Nelson's ship and spent six months in Palermo, so I had a lot of information about the Hero and his Lady... Nelson and the Hamiltons all lived together in a house that Nelson footed the bill for, which was enormous, and all sorts of gambling went on half the night. Nelson used to sit with big piles of gold in front of him and often fell asleep, while Lady Hamilton took from the heap without counting and gambled with his money, racking up about £500 a night. She's obsessed with playing, and Sir William says when he dies, she'll be a beggar. However, she has around £30,000 worth of diamonds from the royal family as gifts. She sits in on the Councils and controls everything and everyone." Some of these claims are likely beyond the narrator's personal knowledge and should be seen as common gossip, but others are from an eyewitness account, clearly deemed credible by Lady Minto, who was a friend of Nelson. Mr. Paget, who succeeded Hamilton as British minister, mentions the same rumors in his private letter to Lord Grenville, the Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs. Hamilton had requested to see his instructions. "I decided right away not to do so, as he would definitely have had to show them to Lady Hamilton, who would have passed them on to the queen... Lord Nelson's health is, I fear, significantly deteriorating, and I've been informed that his finances are in the same condition due to significant losses that both he and Lady Hamilton have suffered at Faro and other gambling games."
The impressions made upon Lord Elgin, who touched at Palermo on his way to the embassy at Constantinople, are worth quoting; for there has been much assertion and denial as to what did go on in that out-of-the-way corner of the world, Lady Hamilton ascribing the falsehoods, as she claimed they were, to the Jacobinical tendencies of those who spread them. "During a week's stay at Palermo, on my passage here," wrote Elgin, "the necessity of a change in our representative, and in our conduct there, appeared to me most urgent. You may perhaps know from Lord Grenville how strong my impression on that subject was."[78] Troubridge, a pattern of that most faithful friendship which dares to risk alienation, if it may but save, wrote urgently to his chief: "Pardon me, my Lord, it is my sincere esteem for you that makes me mention it. I know you can have no pleasure sitting up all night at cards; why, then, sacrifice your health, comfort, purse, ease, everything, to the customs of a country, where your stay cannot be long? I would not, my Lord, reside in this country for all Sicily. I trust the war will soon be over, and deliver us from a nest of everything that is infamous, and that we may enjoy the smiles of our countrywomen. Your Lordship is a stranger to half that happens, or the talk it occasions; if you knew what your friends feel for you, I am sure you would cut all the nocturnal parties. The gambling of the people at Palermo is publicly talked of everywhere. I beseech your Lordship leave off. I wish my pen could tell you my feelings, I am sure you would oblige me. I trust your Lordship will pardon me; it is the sincere esteem I have for you that makes me risk your displeasure."[79] To this manly appeal Nelson seems to have made no reply; none at least is quoted.
The impressions made on Lord Elgin, who stopped in Palermo on his way to the embassy in Constantinople, are noteworthy; there has been a lot of debate about what actually happened in that remote part of the world, with Lady Hamilton claiming the untruths were due to the Jacobin leanings of those who spread them. "During a week's stay at Palermo, on my journey here," Elgin wrote, "I felt it was urgent that we change our representative and our approach there. You might know from Lord Grenville how strong my feelings were about this."[78] Troubridge, an example of true friendship that dares to risk discord to help, urgently wrote to his superior: "Forgive me, my Lord, but it is my genuine respect for you that prompts me to say this. I know you can't enjoy staying up all night playing cards; why then sacrifice your health, comfort, finances, and ease to the customs of a place where your stay is short? I wouldn't, my Lord, live in this country for all of Sicily. I hope the war will end soon and free us from all that's disgraceful, so we can enjoy the company of our countrywomen. Your Lordship is unaware of half that happens or the gossip it creates; if you knew how your friends feel about you, I’m sure you’d skip all the late-night gatherings. The gambling in Palermo is talked about everywhere. I urge you to stop. I wish my pen could express my feelings; I know you would help me. I trust you will forgive me; it’s my genuine respect for you that makes me risk your displeasure."[79] Nelson seems to have not responded to this earnest appeal; at least, no response is recorded.
FOOTNOTES:
[75] Pettigrew, vol. i. p. 220.
[76] Lord Minto was at this time ambassador to Vienna. Rushout and Rooke were men well known on the Continent. Both are mentioned with some particularity in the Memoirs of Pryse Lockhart Gordon, another continental rambler.
[76] Lord Minto was the ambassador to Vienna at that time. Rushout and Rooke were prominent figures on the Continent. Both are specifically noted in the Memoirs of Pryse Lockhart Gordon, another traveler in Europe.
CHAPTER XII.
NELSON'S CAREER, AND GENERAL EVENTS IN THE MEDITERRANEAN AND ITALY, FROM THE OVERTHROW OF THE ROYAL GOVERNMENT IN NAPLES TO THE INCURSION OF THE FRENCH FLEET UNDER ADMIRAL BRUIX.
ネルソンのキャリアと、ナポリの王政崩壊からアドミラル・ブリュイのフランス艦隊の侵攻までの地中海とイタリアの出来事。
JANUARY-MAY, 1799. AGE, 40.
JAN-MAY 1799. AGE 40.
The four and a half months of unbroken residence in Palermo, which followed the flight of the Court from Naples, were full of annoyance and distress to Nelson, independent of, and additional to, the disquieting struggle between his passion and his conscience, which had not yet been silenced. The disasters in Naples continued. The Neapolitan Navy had been left in charge of one of the Portuguese officers, who soon found himself compelled to burn the ships-of-the-line, to prevent their falling into the hands of the revolutionists,—a step for which he was severely, but apparently unjustly, censured by Nelson. The peasantry and the lower orders of the city took up arms, under the guidance of their priests, and for some time sought, with rude but undisciplined fury, to oppose the advance of the enemy; but such untrained resistance was futile before the veterans of France, and on the 23d of January, 1799, Championnet's troops entered the city. This was followed by the establishment of the Parthenopeian Republic, a name which reflected the prevailing French affectation of antiquity. For all this Nelson blamed the Emperor, and formed gloomy forebodings. "Had the war commenced in September or October," he had written amid the December disasters, "all Italy would at this moment have been liberated. Six months hence, when the Neapolitan Republic will be organized, armed, and with its numerous resources called forth, I will suffer to have my head cut off, if the Emperor is not only defeated in Italy, but that he totters on his throne in Vienna." To this text he stuck. Three months later, when the preparations of Austria and Russia were complete, he wrote: "The French have made war upon the Emperor, and have surprised some of his troops. Serve him right! why did he not go to war before?" But the rapid, continuous, and overwhelming successes of the Coalition, between April and August, showed how untimely had been the step he had urged upon the King of the Sicilies, disregardful of the needed preparations and of the most favorable season—February to August—for operations in Italy. Naples never recovered such political equilibrium as she had possessed before that ill-advised advance. In Nelson's career it, and its reverses, were to the Battle of the Nile what Teneriffe was to St. Vincent; and it illustrates the inadequacy to success of merely "going ahead," unless both time and method are dictated by that martial intelligence which Nelson so abundantly possessed, but in this case failed to use.
The four and a half months of continuous stay in Palermo that followed the Court's escape from Naples were filled with annoyance and distress for Nelson, in addition to the troubling conflict between his passion and his conscience, which remained unresolved. The situation in Naples worsened. The Neapolitan Navy was left under the command of a Portuguese officer, who soon found himself forced to burn the warships to prevent them from falling into the hands of the revolutionaries—a move for which he was harshly, but seemingly unjustly, criticized by Nelson. The locals and the working-class residents of the city took up arms, guided by their priests, and for a while, they fiercely but chaotically tried to resist the enemy’s advance; however, such untrained resistance was futile against the seasoned French troops, and on January 23, 1799, Championnet's forces entered the city. This led to the establishment of the Parthenopeian Republic, a name reflecting the then-fashionable French obsession with ancient history. Nelson blamed the Emperor for all of this and harbored dark premonitions. "If the war had started in September or October," he wrote during the December disasters, "all of Italy would be liberated by now. In six months, when the Neapolitan Republic is organized, armed, and has its many resources mobilized, I would be willing to have my head chopped off if the Emperor is not only defeated in Italy but also wobbles on his throne in Vienna." He stood by this assertion. Three months later, when Austria and Russia's preparations were complete, he wrote: "The French have declared war on the Emperor and have caught some of his troops off guard. Serves him right! Why didn't he go to war sooner?" But the rapid, continuous, and overwhelming victories of the Coalition from April to August showed how ill-timed the action he had pushed the King of the Sicilies to take was, ignoring the necessary preparations and the most suitable timeframe—February to August—for military operations in Italy. Naples never regained the political stability it had before that poorly judged advance. In Nelson's career, it and its setbacks were to the Battle of the Nile what Teneriffe was to St. Vincent; and it illustrates that merely "pushing forward" isn’t enough for success unless both timing and strategy are guided by the military intelligence that Nelson had in abundance but failed to apply in this case.
Not in Naples only did fortune now administer to him rebuffs, which seemed singularly to rebuke the change of direction and of base which he had been persuaded to give to his personal efforts. Immediately upon his arrival in Palermo, he heard from St. Vincent that a comparatively junior captain, Sir Sidney Smith, had been sent out by the Cabinet, bearing, besides his naval commission from the Admiralty, one from the Foreign Office as envoy to Turkey, conjointly with his brother, Spencer Smith. This unusual and somewhat cumbrous arrangement was adopted with the design that Smith should be senior naval officer in the Levant, where it was thought his hands would be strengthened by the diplomatic functions; but the Government's explanation of its intentions was so obscure, that St. Vincent understood the new-comer was to be independent of both himself and Nelson. This impression was confirmed by a letter from Smith to Hamilton, in which occurred the words, "Hood naturally falls under my orders when we meet, as being my junior," while the general tone was that of one who had a right, by virtue of his commission alone, to take charge of such vessels, and to direct such operations, as he found in the Levant. This impression was fairly deducible from a letter of the Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs, that Smith forwarded to Nelson; after which, without seeking an interview, he at once went on for Constantinople.
Not just in Naples did fortune throw obstacles in his way, which seemed to mock the change in direction and focus he had been convinced to adopt in his pursuits. As soon as he arrived in Palermo, he heard from St. Vincent that a relatively junior captain, Sir Sidney Smith, had been sent out by the Cabinet, bringing with him not only his naval commission from the Admiralty but also one from the Foreign Office as an envoy to Turkey, along with his brother, Spencer Smith. This unusual and somewhat clumsy arrangement was made so that Smith could be the senior naval officer in the Levant, where it was believed his diplomatic role would strengthen his position. However, the Government’s explanation of its intentions was so unclear that St. Vincent believed the newcomer would operate independently of both him and Nelson. This belief was confirmed by a letter from Smith to Hamilton, which included the phrase, "Hood naturally falls under my orders when we meet, as being my junior," suggesting that he felt entitled, based on his commission alone, to take command of any vessels and direct any operations he encountered in the Levant. This was further supported by a letter from the Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs that Smith shared with Nelson; after that, without seeking a meeting, he immediately proceeded to Constantinople.
Nelson immediately asked to be relieved. "I do feel, for I am a man," he wrote to St. Vincent, "that it is impossible for me to serve in these seas, with the squadron under a junior officer. Never, never was I so astonished." With this private letter he sent an official application for leave. "The great anxiety I have undergone during the whole time I have been honoured with this important command, has much impaired a weak constitution. And now, finding that much abler officers are arrived within the district which I had thought under my command, ... and, I flatter myself, having made the British nation and our gracious Sovereign more beloved and respected than heretofore; under these circumstances I entreat, that if my health and uneasiness of mind should not be mended, that I may have your Lordship's permission to leave this command to my gallant and most excellent second in command, Captain Troubridge." In similar terms, though more guarded, he wrote to Earl Spencer. At the same time he took proper steps to prevent the official impropriety, not to say rudeness, which Smith was about to commit by taking from Hood his charge, without either the latter or Nelson receiving personal instructions to surrender it. He sent Troubridge hastily to Alexandria to take command there, with orders that, upon Smith's arrival, he should deliver up the blockade to him, and return to the westward. "I should hope," he wrote to Spencer, "that Sir Sidney Smith will not take any ship from under my command, without my orders;" but he evidently expected that he would, and was determined to forestall the possibility of such an affront.
Nelson immediately asked to be relieved. "I do feel, for I am a man," he wrote to St. Vincent, "that it is impossible for me to serve in these seas with the squadron under a junior officer. Never, never was I so astonished." With this private letter, he sent an official request for leave. "The great anxiety I have experienced during the whole time I've been honored with this important command has significantly weakened my fragile health. Now that much more capable officers have arrived in the area I thought was under my command, ... and, I hope, having made the British nation and our gracious Sovereign more loved and respected than before; under these circumstances, I request that if my health and peace of mind do not improve, I may have your Lordship's permission to leave this command to my brave and most excellent second-in-command, Captain Troubridge." He wrote to Earl Spencer in similar, but more cautious terms. At the same time, he took the necessary steps to prevent the official mistake, not to mention rudeness, that Smith was about to make by taking charge from Hood without either Hood or Nelson receiving personal instructions to do so. He quickly sent Troubridge to Alexandria to take command there, with orders that, upon Smith's arrival, he should hand over the blockade to him and then return west. "I hope," he wrote to Spencer, "that Sir Sidney Smith will not take any ship from under my command without my orders;" but he clearly expected that he would and was determined to prevent the possibility of such an insult.
Nelson's services had been so eminent, and were at this time so indispensable, and his exceptions to the manner in which Smith had been intruded into his command were so well founded, that the matter was rectified as rapidly as the slow round of communications in that day would permit. The Admiralty disclaimed any intention of circumscribing his control in the Mediterranean, and Smith received peremptory orders from St. Vincent to report himself to Nelson by letter for orders. The latter of course carried out the Admiralty's wishes, by intrusting to Smith the immediate direction of operations in the Levant, while retaining in his own hands the general outlines of naval policy. He kept a very tight rein on Smith, however, and introduced into the situation some dry humor, unusual with him. The two brothers, envoys, he addressed jointly, in his official letters, by the collective term "Your Excellency." "I beg of your Excellency," he says in such a letter, "to forward my letter to Sir Sidney Smith, Captain of the Tigre. I have this day received letters from Sir Sidney Smith, in his Ministerial capacity, I believe. I wish that all Ministerial letters should be written in your joint names; for it may be difficult for me to distinguish the Captain of the man-of-war from the Joint Minister, and the propriety of language in one might be very proper to what it is in the other." To the naval captain he writes: "I must direct you, whenever you have Ministerial affairs to communicate, that it is done jointly with your respectable brother, and not mix naval business with the other. I have sent you my orders, which your abilities as a sea-officer will lead you to punctually execute."
Nelson's services had been so outstanding, and were at this time so essential, and his complaints about how Smith had been forced into his command were so justified, that the issue was resolved as quickly as the slow communications of that time would allow. The Admiralty denied any intention of limiting his control in the Mediterranean, and Smith received strict orders from St. Vincent to report to Nelson by letter for instructions. Nelson naturally followed the Admiralty's wishes by giving Smith the immediate direction of operations in the Levant, while keeping the overall naval policy under his control. He maintained a tight grip on Smith, however, and added some dry humor to the situation, which was uncommon for him. In his official letters, he addressed the two brothers, who were envoys, collectively as "Your Excellency." "I ask for your Excellency," he stated in one letter, "to forward my letter to Sir Sidney Smith, Captain of the Tigre. I have received letters today from Sir Sidney Smith, in his Ministerial capacity, I believe. I wish that all Ministerial letters should be written in your joint names; as it may be hard for me to tell the Captain of the warship apart from the Joint Minister, and the language suited for one might not suit the other." To the naval captain, he wrote: "I must direct you that whenever you have Ministerial matters to communicate, it should be done together with your respected brother, and not mix naval business with other matters. I have sent you my orders, which your skills as a sea officer will help you to follow precisely."
Nelson resented to the end this giving to a junior naval officer, by a side-wind, an authoritative position in diplomatic affairs, which, on the naval side, properly belonged to him. "Sir Sidney should recollect," he told Earl Spencer, meaning doubtless that the latter also should recollect, "how I must feel in seeing him placed in the situation which I thought naturally would fall to me." It was a singular step on the part of the Government, justified neither by general practice, nor by particular ability on the part of the person chosen; and all Nelson's care and decision were insufficient to prevent the consequent evil, although he was perfectly clear in his intimation to "Your Excellency," the joint ministers, that they should "upon all occasions, arrange plans of operations with me," and not with Captain Sir Sidney Smith. Smith was active and fought well; but, as far as he dared, he did as he pleased in virtue of his diplomatic commission, looked only to the interests of his own small part of the field, and, as will appear later, flatly disobeyed both the spirit and the letter of Nelson's orders, as well as the Government's purpose, concerning the French army in Egypt. The general sound judgment and diplomatic ability of Nelson, who was thus superseded, had on the other hand been fully recognized—formally by the Government, explicitly by St. Vincent and Minto, both of whom had personal experience of his conduct in such matters. "What relates to co-operation with the armies of the allied powers cannot be in better hands than yours," wrote the former. "You are as great in the cabinet as on the ocean, and your whole conduct fills me with admiration and confidence." "There is one other point of excellence," said Minto in the House of Peers, "to which I must say a single word, because I am, perhaps, the man in the world who has had the best opportunity of being acquainted with it. The world knows that Lord Nelson can fight the battles of his country: but a constant and confidential correspondence with this great man, for a considerable portion of time, has taught me, that he is not less capable of providing for its political interests and honour, on occasions of great delicacy and embarrassment. In that new capacity I have witnessed a degree of ability, judgment, temper, and conciliation, not always allied to the sort of spirit which without an instant's hesitation can attack the whole Spanish line with his single ship." Of Nelson's superior fitness in this respect, the unfortunate choice of Sidney Smith for his anomalous position was to furnish the Government an additional proof.
Nelson resented until the end the fact that a junior naval officer was given an authoritative role in diplomatic affairs that, on the naval side, rightly belonged to him. "Sir Sidney should remember," he told Earl Spencer, likely implying that the latter should also remember, "how I must feel seeing him in the role I expected would naturally go to me." It was a strange decision by the Government, justified neither by common practice nor by the specific abilities of the person chosen. Despite Nelson's careful efforts and strong determination, he could not prevent the resulting issues, even though he clearly communicated to "Your Excellency," the joint ministers, that they should "coordinate plans of operations with me" and not with Captain Sir Sidney Smith. Smith was active and fought well; however, he often acted on his own according to his diplomatic commission, focusing only on the interests of his small part of the operation. As will become evident later, he outright disobeyed both the intent and the letters of Nelson's orders, as well as the Government's strategy regarding the French army in Egypt. Meanwhile, the general judgment and diplomatic skills of Nelson, who was thus pushed aside, had been fully acknowledged—formally by the Government and explicitly by St. Vincent and Minto, both of whom had personally experienced his handling of such matters. "No one could handle cooperation with the armies of the allied powers better than you," wrote the former. "You excel in the cabinet as much as on the ocean, and your entire conduct fills me with admiration and confidence." "There is one more point of excellence," Minto said in the House of Peers, "that I must mention, as I might very well be the person who has had the best opportunity to know it. The world knows that Lord Nelson can fight for his country, but my ongoing and confidential correspondence with this great man over a significant time has shown me that he is equally capable of managing its political interests and honor in very delicate and challenging situations. In that new role, I have observed a level of skill, judgment, temperament, and diplomacy that is not always paired with the kind of spirit that can attack the whole Spanish line with just one ship." The unfortunate choice of Sidney Smith for his unusual role would provide the Government with additional proof of Nelson's superior suitability in this regard.
It was not in this matter only that maritime affairs in the East took a turn contrary to Nelson's wishes. Since he had persuaded himself that to bolster up the corrupt and tottering throne of Naples was the most important of his functions, he had become desirous that the isolation and blockade of the French army in Egypt,—a factor so decisive by its numbers, its brilliant efficiency, and the singular genius and renown of its general and his lieutenants,—should be assumed by some of the allies of Great Britain, although he was never slow to express his want of confidence in their navies. He was urgent, both with the joint ministers and with the representatives of Russia and Turkey, that the fleets of these two powers should relieve Hood off Alexandria, in order to strengthen his own hands on the coast of Italy and off Malta. Neither Russia nor Turkey was easily to be convinced. Egypt was no affair of the former's, except as it concerned the general cause; and from that point of view it was as much the business of Great Britain, already on the spot, as it was hers. With twenty thousand troops about to enter into a campaign in Northern Italy, as allies of Austria, Russia had undeniable interests there, as well as in the Ionian Islands, which commanded the entrance to the Adriatic, a sea important to communications between Austria and Lombardy. The islands also were, in the hands of France, a threat to the Turkish mainland. It was against these, therefore, that the Russo-Turkish forces directed their efforts, greatly to Nelson's disgust, and there they remained, chained by the obstinate resistance of Corfu, until the 1st of March, 1799, when it surrendered. The fifty-gun ship "Leander," which had been taken by the French seventy-four "Généreux," when carrying Nelson's despatches after the Nile, was here recaptured and restored to Great Britain.
It wasn't just in this situation that maritime affairs in the East went against Nelson's wishes. He convinced himself that supporting the corrupt and shaky throne of Naples was his most crucial job, and he wanted the isolation and blockade of the French army in Egypt—a key player because of its size, effectiveness, and the unique genius and reputation of its general and lieutenants—to be handled by some of Great Britain's allies, despite his lack of faith in their navies. He pressed both the joint ministers and representatives from Russia and Turkey that their fleets should assist Hood off Alexandria to strengthen his position along the coast of Italy and Malta. Neither Russia nor Turkey was easily persuaded. Egypt wasn’t really Russia's concern except as it related to the overall cause, and from that perspective, it was just as much Britain's responsibility, given they were already there. With twenty thousand troops about to launch a campaign in Northern Italy alongside Austria, Russia had clear interests in the region, as well as in the Ionian Islands that controlled access to the Adriatic—a sea vital for communication between Austria and Lombardy. Those islands, in French hands, posed a threat to the Turkish mainland. Consequently, the Russo-Turkish forces focused their efforts there, much to Nelson's frustration, and remained stuck due to Corfu's stubborn defense until it surrendered on March 1, 1799. The fifty-gun ship "Leander," which had been captured by the French seventy-four "Généreux" while carrying Nelson's dispatches after the Nile, was recaptured here and returned to Great Britain.
Nelson viewed the progress and policy of Russia with a mind fully imbued with the distrust, which, for the last quarter of a century, had been supplanting gradually the previous friendly feeling of Great Britain toward that country. As soon as he heard of the intention to attack the islands, in November, 1798, he hurried off Troubridge to anticipate a seizure which he expected to be more easy than it proved. "You will proceed to sea without a moment's loss of time," his instructions ran, "and make the best of your way to the Island of Zante; and if the Russians have not taken possession of that island and Cephalonia, you will send on shore by the Priest I shall desire to accompany you, my Declaration. If you can get possession of the islands before named, you will send my Declaration into the Island of Corfu, and use your utmost endeavours to get possession of it.... Should the Russians have taken possession of these Islands and be cruizing near with the Turkish fleet, you will pay a visit to the Turkish admiral, and by saluting him (if he consents to return gun for gun) and every other mark of respect and attention, gain his confidence. You will judge whether he is of a sufficient rank to hold a confidential conversation with." It is evident that Nelson's action was precipitated by the news of the Russian movement, and its tenor dictated by a wish to sow distrust between Turkey and Russia. The omission of any mention of a Russian admiral is most significant. "Captain Troubridge was absolutely under sail," he wrote to Spencer Smith, "when I heard with sorrow that the Russians were there." His eagerness in the matter is the more evident, in that he thus detached Troubridge at the moment when he was about to start for Leghorn, where his trusted subordinate and his ship would be greatly needed.
Nelson saw Russia's progress and policies with a mindset filled with distrust, which had slowly replaced Britain's previous friendly attitude towards the country over the last twenty-five years. As soon as he heard about the plan to attack the islands in November 1798, he quickly sent Troubridge to preempt what he thought would be an easier seizure than it turned out to be. "You will head out to sea without wasting a moment," his instructions stated, "and make your way to the Island of Zante; if the Russians haven't taken control of that island and Cephalonia, you will send my Declaration ashore with the Priest I will request to accompany you. If you can secure the stated islands, you will send my Declaration to the Island of Corfu and strive to take possession of it... If the Russians have taken these Islands and are cruising nearby with the Turkish fleet, you will visit the Turkish admiral, and by saluting him (if he agrees to return the salute) and showing every other form of respect and attention, earn his trust. You will decide if he is of a suitable rank to have a private conversation with." It's clear that Nelson's actions were prompted by the news of the Russian movements, and his intentions were aimed at creating distrust between Turkey and Russia. The lack of any reference to a Russian admiral is quite significant. "Captain Troubridge was just setting sail," he wrote to Spencer Smith, "when I sadly learned that the Russians were there." His eagerness is further emphasized by the fact that he sent Troubridge away at the very moment he was about to head to Leghorn, where his trusted subordinate and ship would be much needed.
"I was in hopes that a part of the united Turkish and Russian squadron would have gone to Egypt—the first object of the Ottoman arms," he tells the Turkish admiral. "Corfu is a secondary consideration." To Spencer Smith he writes: "I have had a long and friendly conference with Kelim Effendi on the conduct likely to be pursued by the Russian Court towards the unsuspicious (I fear) and upright Turk. The Porte ought to be aware of the very great danger at a future day of allowing the Russians to get footing at Corfu, and I hope they will keep them in the East. Our ideas have exactly been the same about Russia.... Surely I had a right to expect that the united fleets would have taken care of the things east of Candia. I never wished to have them west of it." "The Russians seem to me to be more intent on taking ports in the Mediterranean than destroying Bonaparte in Egypt."
"I was hoping that part of the united Turkish and Russian fleet would head to Egypt—the main goal of the Ottoman forces," he tells the Turkish admiral. "Corfu is a lesser priority." To Spencer Smith, he writes: "I had a long and friendly discussion with Kelim Effendi about how the Russian Court is likely to treat the unsuspecting (I fear) and honorable Turk. The Porte should be aware of the significant danger in the future of letting the Russians establish a presence in Corfu, and I hope they keep them in the East. Our views have been exactly aligned regarding Russia... Surely, I had reason to believe that the united fleets would handle matters east of Candia. I never wanted them to go west of it." "The Russians seem more focused on capturing ports in the Mediterranean than on defeating Bonaparte in Egypt."
It was well known at this time that the Czar was looking towards Malta and the restoration of the Order of the Knights, of which he had been elected Grand Master the previous October, immediately after Bonaparte's seizure of the island became known. Nelson held that the King of Naples was the legitimate sovereign, and he directed Captain Ball, his own representative there, to have all the Maltese posts and forces fly the Neapolitan flag; but he, with Hamilton, got a note from the King, promising that Malta should never be transferred to any other Power without the consent of England. "Should any Russian ships, or admiral, arrive off Malta," he instructed Ball, "you will convince him of the very unhandsome manner of treating the legitimate sovereign of Malta, by wishing to see the Russian flag fly in Malta, and also of me, who command the forces of a Power in such close alliance with the Russian Emperor, which have been blockading and attacking Malta for near six months. The Russians shall never take the lead."
It was widely known at this time that the Czar was interested in Malta and the restoration of the Order of the Knights, having been elected Grand Master the previous October, right after Bonaparte's takeover of the island became known. Nelson believed that the King of Naples was the rightful ruler, and he instructed Captain Ball, his representative there, to have all Maltese posts and forces display the Neapolitan flag. However, he, along with Hamilton, received a note from the King promising that Malta would never be transferred to any other power without England's consent. "If any Russian ships or admirals arrive off Malta," he instructed Ball, "you will make it clear how inappropriate it is to treat the legitimate sovereign of Malta by wanting to see the Russian flag flying there, and also to me, who commands the forces of a nation so closely allied with the Russian Emperor, which has been blockading and attacking Malta for nearly six months. The Russians will never take the lead."
Three weeks later he authorized Ball, with the consent of the King, to preside over the meetings of the Maltese chiefs, and, by the desire of his Sicilian Majesty, the British flag was to be hoisted alongside the Sicilian in every place where the latter was flown, "side by side, that of England being on the right hand," to show that the island was under the special protection of Great Britain during the war. On the 23d of March he cordially congratulates the Russian admiral upon the fall of Corfu, news of which he has just received, and he mentions, meaningly, "The flag of his Sicilian Majesty, with that of Great Britain, is flying on all parts of Malta, except the town of Valetta, the inhabitants of which have, with his Sicilian Majesty's consent, put themselves under the protection of Great Britain." "I attach no value to it for us," he said explicitly to the First Lord, meaning, no doubt, for the purposes of the existing war. This opinion was perfectly consonant to the secondary importance he had latterly attributed to the presence of the British in the Levant, as compared to their duties towards Naples, but though he reiterated it in the later war, it was with the express qualification that, for the security of communication with India, not then in question, the value of the island was indisputable.
Three weeks later, he gave Ball the green light, with the King's approval, to lead the meetings of the Maltese chiefs. By the request of the Sicilian King, the British flag was to be raised next to the Sicilian flag wherever it was displayed, “side by side, with England's flag on the right,” to indicate that the island was under Great Britain's special protection during the war. On March 23, he warmly congratulated the Russian admiral on the fall of Corfu, news that had just reached him, and he pointed out, "The flag of the Sicilian King, along with that of Great Britain, is flying across all parts of Malta, except for the town of Valletta, where the residents, with the Sicilian King's consent, have put themselves under British protection." "I don’t see it as valuable for us," he said clearly to the First Lord, meaning, undoubtedly, in terms of the ongoing war. This view aligned perfectly with the lesser importance he had recently assigned to the British presence in the Levant compared to their obligations toward Naples, but although he reiterated this during the later war, he specifically added that for the sake of maintaining communication with India, which was not a concern at the time, the value of the island was undeniable.
But if, positively, Malta was of little use to England,—"a useless and enormous expense," to use his own words,—yet, negatively, the consequences of its passing into the hands of a powerful rival were too serious to be permitted. "Any expense should be incurred rather than let it remain in the hands of the French." The same distrust of the Russians was suggested by his keen political insight. "You will observe what is said in the despatches of the Consul at Corfu," he writes to St. Vincent, "respecting the Russians being ordered to Malta. I know this is a favourite object of the Emperor's, and is a prelude to a future war with the good Turk, when Constantinople will change masters. This is so clear, that a man must be blind not to see it." "I have just received the Emperor of Russia's picture in a box magnificently set with diamonds; it has done him honour and me a pleasure to have my conduct approved;" "but," he tells Ball, significantly, "this shall not prevent my keeping a sharp lookout on his movements against the good Turk." As regards Paul I., ferocious and half crazy as he was, this imputation of merely interested foresight scarcely did justice to the quixotic passions which often impelled him to the most unselfish acts, but the general tendency was undeniable; and Nelson's watchful attitude exemplifies the numerous diplomatic, as well as military, responsibilities that weighed upon him. He was, practically, commander-in-chief in the Mediterranean, even if Government refused to recognize the fact by reward, or by proper staff appointments; for St. Vincent, autocratic as he was towards others, could roll off upon Nelson all his responsibilities there,—"the uncontrolled direction of the naval part," were his own words,—and sleep quietly. Despite his objections to the island itself, and his enthusiastic fidelity to the Neapolitan royal house, Nelson had evidently the presentiment that Malta must come to Great Britain, a solution which Ball and the Maltese themselves were urging upon him. "A Neapolitan garrison would betray it to the first man who would bribe him," he wrote; which, if true, left to Great Britain no other alternative than to take it herself. Neither he, Troubridge, nor the sovereigns, had confidence in the fidelity of Neapolitan officers.
But if Malta was, in reality, not very beneficial to England—"a useless and enormous expense," as he put it—still, the implications of it falling into the hands of a powerful rival were too serious to ignore. "Any expense should be incurred rather than let it remain in the hands of the French." His sharp political insight also revealed a distrust of the Russians. "You will see what's mentioned in the reports from the Consul at Corfu," he wrote to St. Vincent, "about the Russians being ordered to Malta. I know this is a favorite goal of the Emperor's and is a precursor to a future war with the good Turk, when Constantinople will change hands. This is so obvious that one must be blind not to see it." "I've just received a picture of the Emperor of Russia in a box beautifully adorned with diamonds; it has honored him and given me pleasure to know my actions are approved;" "but," he notably tells Ball, "this won’t stop me from keeping a close eye on his actions against the good Turk." Regarding Paul I., as brutal and somewhat unhinged as he was, this suggestion of purely selfish foresight did little to acknowledge the chivalrous emotions that often drove him to perform unselfish deeds, but the overall trend was undeniable; Nelson's vigilant stance highlights the many diplomatic and military responsibilities he carried. He was, in effect, the commander-in-chief in the Mediterranean, even if the Government wouldn’t recognize that with rewards or appropriate staff appointments; for St. Vincent, as authoritative as he was with others, could delegate all his responsibilities there to Nelson—"the uncontrolled direction of the naval part," were his own words—and sleep soundly. Despite his objections to the island itself and his enthusiastic loyalty to the Neapolitan royal house, Nelson clearly felt that Malta had to come under British control, a solution that Ball and the Maltese themselves were pushing for. "A Neapolitan garrison would betray it to the first person who would bribe them," he wrote; which, if true, left Britain with no choice but to take it over. Neither he, Troubridge, nor the sovereigns trusted the loyalty of Neapolitan officers.
The blockade of Malta was maintained with great tenacity, and, coupled with the maritime prostration of France in the Mediterranean, resulted in a complete isolation of the French garrison in La Valetta by sea, the Maltese people hemming it in by land. By the 1st of May Ball had erected a battery at the head of the harbor, sweeping it to the entrance, so that the French ships, one of which was the "Guillaume Tell," eighty, that had escaped from Aboukir, had to be kept in the coves. These affairs of Malta brought Nelson into difficult diplomatic relations with the Barbary States, Tunis and Tripoli. The island not affording sufficient food, strenuous efforts had to be made by him and Ball to get grain from Sicily and elsewhere, a matter very difficult of accomplishment even were the transit unmolested; but these petty Mussulman states, for the purposes of piracy, kept themselves in formal war with Naples and Portugal, and frequently captured vessels under the Sicilian flag carrying corn to Malta. The British had too much on hand now to spare readily the force necessary to put down these depredators, at whose misdeeds they had winked in quieter days; and it required all Nelson's tact, combining threats with compliments, and with appeals to the prejudices of believers in God against those who denied Him, to keep the marauding within bounds. The irrepressible activity of Bonaparte's emissaries also stirred the Beys up to measures friendly to France. "The infamous conduct of the French during the whole war, has at last called down the vengeance of all true Mussulmen," he writes to the Bey of Tunis; "and your Highness, I am sure, will agree with me that Divine Providence will never permit these infidels to God to go unpunished. The conduct of your Highness reflects upon you the very highest honour. Although I have a squadron of Portuguese ships under my orders, I have prevented their cruizing against the vessels of war of your Highness. For at this moment all wars should cease, and all the world should join in endeavouring to extirpate from off the face of the earth this race of murderers, oppressors, and unbelievers."
The blockade of Malta was maintained with great determination, and, combined with the defeat of France at sea in the Mediterranean, led to the complete isolation of the French garrison in La Valetta by sea, while the Maltese people surrounded it by land. By May 1st, Ball had set up a battery at the harbor's entrance, allowing him to control the area, so that the French ships, including the "Guillaume Tell," which had escaped from Aboukir, had to remain in the coves. These events in Malta put Nelson in a tough position diplomatically with the Barbary States, Tunis and Tripoli. Since the island didn't have enough food, Nelson and Ball had to work hard to secure grain from Sicily and elsewhere, a task that was very challenging even without interference; however, these small Muslim states, engaged in piracy, kept themselves at war with Naples and Portugal and often captured vessels under the Sicilian flag bringing corn to Malta. The British had too much on their plate to spare the forces needed to deal with these raiders, whom they had previously ignored in calmer times; it took all of Nelson's skill—mixing threats with compliments and appealing to the beliefs of those who followed God against those who did not—to keep the looting at bay. The relentless efforts of Bonaparte's agents also prompted the Beys to support France. "The disgraceful actions of the French throughout this war have finally brought the wrath of all true Muslims upon them," he wrote to the Bey of Tunis; "and your Highness, I’m sure, will agree with me that Divine Providence will never allow these infidels to go unpunished. Your Highness’s actions reflect the utmost honor. Even though I command a squadron of Portuguese ships, I have prevented them from attacking your war vessels. For right now, all wars should stop, and everyone should work together to get rid of this race of murderers, oppressors, and unbelievers from the earth."
After these preliminary compliments, Nelson presents his grievances. He has given the passports of a British admiral to Sicilian vessels bonâ fide employed in carrying grain to the besiegers of the French, and to such only; and he must insist upon those passports being respected, as the vessels bearing them are serving the great common cause. He demands, also, that aid be not given to the common enemy. "I was rejoiced," he writes the Bashaw of Tripoli, "to find that you had renounced the treaty you had so imprudently entered into with some emissaries of General Bonaparte—that man of blood, that despoiler of the weak, that enemy of all true Musselmen; for, like Satan, he only flatters that he may the more easily destroy; and it is true, that since the year 1789, all Frenchmen are exactly of the same disposition." His Highness, however, has relapsed into his former errors. "It is now my duty to speak out, and not to be misunderstood. That Nelson who has hitherto kept your powerful enemies from destroying you, can, and will, let them loose upon you, unless the following terms are, in two hours, complied with.... If these proper terms are not complied with, I can no longer prevent the Portuguese ships from acting with vigour against your Highness. Your Highness will, without difficulty, write me a letter, the substance of which will be dictated by the British consul."
After these initial compliments, Nelson lays out his complaints. He has given the passports of a British admiral to Sicilian ships genuinely involved in transporting grain to the besiegers of the French, and only to them; he insists that these passports be honored, as the ships carrying them are contributing to the greater good. He also demands that no support be given to the common enemy. "I was pleased," he writes to the Bashaw of Tripoli, "to hear that you have rejected the treaty you foolishly entered into with some agents of General Bonaparte—that man of violence, that oppressor of the weak, that foe of all true Muslims; for, like Satan, he only flatters to make it easier to destroy; and it's true that since 1789, all Frenchmen have shown the same mindset." However, His Highness has fallen back into his previous mistakes. "It is now my duty to speak plainly, and not to be misunderstood. That Nelson who has kept your powerful enemies from destroying you can, and will, unleash them upon you unless the following terms are met within two hours.... If these appropriate terms are not met, I can no longer stop the Portuguese ships from acting decisively against you. Your Highness will easily write me a letter, the content of which will be dictated by the British consul."
The vehemence with which the French are here denounced, though pitched in a key deemed harmonious to the ears for which it was immediately intended, was entirely consonant to the feelings which had lately taken possession of Nelson. They were the result, probably, in part, of the anxious rancor bred by the uncertainties and worry of the pursuit of Bonaparte; in part, also, of more direct contact than before with the unbridled license which the French Government and its generals, impelled by dire necessity and by an unquestionable lack of principle, had given to the system of making war support war. The feebleness and corruption of the Directory had relaxed the reins of discipline from top to bottom, and a practice which finds its justification only when executed with the strictest method and accountability, had degenerated into little better than disorganized pillage. "'Down, down with the French!' is my constant prayer." "'Down, down with the French!' ought to be placed in the council-room of every country in the world." "To serve my King, and to destroy the French, I consider as the great order of all, from which little ones spring; and if one of these little ones militate against it, I go back to obey the great order and object, to down, down with the damned French villains. Excuse my warmth; but my blood boils at the name of a Frenchman. I hate them all—Royalists and Republicans." Infidels, robbers, and murderers are the characteristic terms. This detestation of the legitimate enemy spread, intensified, to those who supported them in Naples,—the Jacobins, as they were called. "Send me word some proper heads are taken off," he wrote to Troubridge, "this alone will comfort me." "Our friend Troubridge had a present made him the other day, of the head of a Jacobin," he tells St. Vincent, "and makes an apology to me, the weather being very hot, for not sending it here!" Upon the copy of the letter accompanying this ghastly gift to him, Troubridge had written, "A jolly fellow. T. Troubridge." The exasperation to which political animosities had given rise may be gauged by the brutal levity shown in this incident, by men of the masculine and generous characters of Troubridge and Nelson, and should not be forgotten in estimating the actions that in due consequence followed.
The intensity with which the French are criticized here, while conveyed in a way that might sound pleasing to the intended audience, perfectly matched the emotions that had recently consumed Nelson. These feelings likely stemmed, in part, from the anxious resentment fueled by the uncertainties and stress of chasing Bonaparte; and, in part, from more direct exposure than before to the unchecked behavior that the French Government and its generals, driven by urgent necessity and a clear lack of principles, had allowed with their way of waging war. The weakness and corruption of the Directory had loosened the reins of discipline up and down the ranks, leading to a practice that can only be justified when carried out with the utmost method and accountability, which had degraded into little more than chaotic looting. "'Down, down with the French!' is my constant prayer." "'Down, down with the French!' should be displayed in the council room of every nation in the world." "To serve my King and to destroy the French is my main mission, from which all other duties follow; and if any of these lesser duties conflict with it, I return to obey this primary order and goal, to down, down with the damned French villains. Sorry for my passion; but my blood boils at the mention of a Frenchman. I hate them all—Royalists and Republicans." Infidels, thieves, and murderers are the typical terms used. This hatred for the legitimate enemy grew, especially against those who supported them in Naples—the Jacobins, as they were called. "Let me know when some proper heads are chopped off," he wrote to Troubridge, "that alone will comfort me." "Our friend Troubridge received a gift the other day—a Jacobin's head," he told St. Vincent, "and he apologized for not sending it here, claiming the weather was too hot!" On the copy of the letter that accompanied this gruesome gift, Troubridge had written, "A jolly fellow. T. Troubridge." The frustration that political animosities sparked can be seen in the brutal lightheartedness displayed in this incident by the strong and generous characters of Troubridge and Nelson, which should be remembered when evaluating the actions that followed.
The duties as well as the anxieties of his situation bore heavily upon Nelson, and may help to account, in combination with the tide of adverse fortune now running strongly, for the depression that weighed upon him. "My public correspondence, besides the business of sixteen sail-of-the-line, and all our commerce, is with Petersburg, Constantinople, the Consul at Smyrna, Egypt, the Turkish and Russian admirals, Trieste, Vienna, Tuscany, Minorca, Earl St. Vincent, and Lord Spencer. This over, what time can I have for any private correspondence?" Yet, admitting freely that there is a limit beyond which activity may cease to please, what has become of the joyous spirit, which wrote, not four years before: "This I like, active service or none!" Occupying one of the most distinguished posts open to the Navy; practically, and almost formally, independent; at the very head and centre of the greatest interests,—his zeal, while preserving all its intensity, has lost all its buoyancy. "My dear Lord," he tells St. Vincent, alluding at the moment to his stepson Nisbet, "there is no true happiness in this life, and in my present state I could quit it with a smile." "My spirits have received such a shock," he writes some days after, to the wife of his early patron, Sir Peter Parker, "that I think they cannot recover it. You who remember me always laughing and gay, would hardly believe the change; but who can see what I have and be well in health? Kingdoms lost and a royal family in distress." "Believe me," he confides to his intimate friend Davison a month later, "my only wish is to sink with honour into the grave, and when that shall please God, I shall meet death with a smile. Not that I am insensible to the honours and riches my King and Country have heaped upon me, so much more than any officer could deserve; yet I am ready to quit this world of trouble, and envy none but those of the estate six feet by two." "I am at times ill at ease, but it is my duty to submit, and you may be sure I will not quit my post without absolute necessity." "What a state I am in!" he writes of one of those perplexities inevitable to an officer in his position. "If I go, I risk Sicily; as I stay, my heart is breaking." This is not the natural temper of a man to whom difficulties and perplexities had been, and were yet again to be, a trumpet call that stirred to animation, a stimulant that steadied the nerves, and sent the blood coursing with new life through heart and brain. Mingled as these expressions were with despondent broodings over his health, even if the latter were well founded, they are the voice of a mind which has lost the spring of self-content. The sense of duty abides, but dogged, cheerless; respondent rather to the force of habit than to the generous ardor of former days.
The responsibilities and worries of his situation weighed heavily on Nelson, which, combined with the strong current of bad luck he was experiencing, may explain the depression he felt. "My public correspondence, along with managing sixteen battleships and overseeing all our trade, involves communication with Petersburg, Constantinople, the Consul in Smyrna, Egypt, the Turkish and Russian admirals, Trieste, Vienna, Tuscany, Minorca, Earl St. Vincent, and Lord Spencer. Once I finish all this, how could I have time for personal correspondence?" Yet, while he openly acknowledges that there's a point where too much activity can be overwhelming, where has the cheerful spirit gone that just four years earlier declared, "I like active service or none!" He held one of the top positions in the Navy; practically independent and at the heart of major interests—yet his passion, while still intense, had lost its buoyancy. "My dear Lord," he wrote to St. Vincent, referencing his stepson Nisbet, "there’s no real happiness in this life, and in my current state, I could leave it with a smile." "My spirits have taken such a hit," he wrote days later to the wife of his early mentor, Sir Peter Parker, "that I don’t think they can recover. You who remember me always laughing and cheerful would hardly recognize the change; but how can anyone see what I have and still feel healthy? Kingdoms lost and a royal family in distress." "Believe me," he confided to his close friend Davison a month later, "my only wish is to go to my grave with honor, and when that day comes, I’ll face death with a smile. It’s not that I’m unaware of the honors and wealth my King and Country have bestowed upon me—far more than any officer could deserve; still, I’m ready to leave this world of trouble, envying only those who lie six feet by two." "At times I feel uneasy, but it’s my duty to endure, and you can be sure I won’t leave my post unless absolutely necessary." "What a state I’m in!" he wrote about one of those complexities that an officer in his position inevitably faces. "If I leave, I risk Sicily; if I stay, my heart is breaking." This is not the usual demeanor of a man to whom challenges and uncertainties had, and would again become, motivating factors that invigorated him, steadied his nerves, and fired his spirit. While these remarks are mixed with gloomy reflections on his health, even if those were reasonable, they reflect a mind that has lost its sense of self-contentment. The sense of duty remains, but it feels grim and joyless, responding more to habit than to the passionate drive of earlier days.
For over two months after the flight to Palermo, the condition of affairs for the Kingdom of the Two Sicilies was seemingly critical to the verge of desperation; for neither the preparations of the Coalition, nor the hollowness of the French successes, were understood, and news was slow to reach the remote city where the Court now dwelt. The republican movement extended, though superficially, to the toe of Italy, many of the towns in Calabria planting the tree of liberty, and the new flag flying on the islands along the coast. Sicily, though hostile to the French, was discontented with the existing government, and disaffection there was feared. In that, Nelson truly observed, lay the danger. "Respecting an invasion of the French, I have no alarms; if this island is true to itself no harm can happen." Nevertheless, "it is proper to be prepared for defence, and," if Calabria is occupied by the French, "the first object is the preservation of Messina."
For more than two months after the flight to Palermo, the situation for the Kingdom of the Two Sicilies seemed critical, almost desperate. Neither the Coalition's preparations nor the emptiness of the French victories were fully understood, and news was slow to arrive at the remote city where the Court was now located. The republican movement, though mostly superficial, reached the toe of Italy, with many towns in Calabria raising the tree of liberty and the new flag flying on the islands along the coast. Sicily, while opposed to the French, was unhappy with the current government, and there were concerns about discontent. Nelson accurately noted that this was where the danger lay. "Regarding a French invasion, I have no worries; if this island is true to itself, nothing bad can happen." Still, "it's wise to be ready for defense, and," if Calabria is taken by the French, "the top priority is to protect Messina."
For this purpose he ordered the Portuguese squadron there, immediately after he reached Palermo; and, when the outlook grew more threatening, appealed to the Turkish and Russian admirals to send a detachment to the Straits. General Stuart, commanding the troops in Minorca, which had passed into the hands of Great Britain the previous November, was entreated to detail a garrison for the citadel of Messina, as no dependence was placed upon the Neapolitan troops. Stuart complied, and the citadel was occupied by two English regiments about the 10th of March. The danger, however, was considered sufficiently imminent to withdraw to Palermo the transports lying at Syracuse; a step which could not have been necessary had Nelson made Syracuse, as he at first intended, the base of operations for the British fleet, and suggests the idea, which he himself avows, that his own presence with the Court was rather political than military[80] in its utility, dependent upon the fears of their own subjects felt by the sovereigns. While these measures were being taken he endeavored, though fruitlessly, to bring matters to a conclusion at Alexandria and Malta, in order to release the ships there employed and fetch them to the coast of Naples. "The moment the Emperor moves," he wrote to St. Vincent, "I shall go with all the ships I can collect into the Bay of Naples, to create a diversion." Nothing certain can be said as yet, "whether all is lost or may yet be saved; that must depend upon the movements of the Emperor." Yet it was the hand of the emperor which he had advised the King of Naples to force, by his ill-timed advance.
For this purpose, he ordered the Portuguese squadron there right after he got to Palermo. As the situation became more precarious, he reached out to the Turkish and Russian admirals to send a detachment to the Straits. General Stuart, who was in charge of the troops in Minorca, which had been handed over to Great Britain the previous November, was asked to send a garrison for the citadel of Messina since no one trusted the Neapolitan troops. Stuart agreed, and two English regiments occupied the citadel around March 10. However, the danger was deemed serious enough to pull the transports from Syracuse to Palermo; this action wouldn't have been necessary if Nelson had made Syracuse, as he initially planned, the base of operations for the British fleet, suggesting that his presence with the Court was more about politics than military effectiveness, relying on the fears of their own subjects felt by the sovereigns. While these efforts were underway, he tried, although unsuccessfully, to resolve issues at Alexandria and Malta to free up the ships stationed there and bring them to the coast of Naples. "The moment the Emperor moves," he wrote to St. Vincent, "I will take all the ships I can gather into the Bay of Naples to create a diversion." Nothing certain can be said yet, "whether all is lost or may yet be saved; that must depend on the movements of the Emperor." Yet it was the Emperor's intervention that he had advised the King of Naples to provoke with his poorly timed advance.
Troubridge rejoined the Flag at Palermo on the 17th of March, having turned over the command in the Levant to Sir Sidney Smith, after an ineffectual attempt to destroy the French shipping in Alexandria. By this time matters had begun to mend. Calabria had returned to its loyalty, and the insurrection of the peasantry against the French was general throughout the country, and in the Roman State. The Directory, taking umbrage at the advance of Russian troops to the frontiers of Austria, demanded explanations from the latter, and when these proved unsatisfactory directed its armies to take the offensive. The French advanced into Germany on the first of March, and in Italy towards the end of the month. But the action of the French Government, though audacious and imposing, rested upon no solid foundation of efficiency in the armies, or skill in the plan of campaign. Serious reverses soon followed, and the fatally ex-centric position of the corps in Naples was then immediately apparent.
Troubridge rejoined the Flag in Palermo on March 17, having handed over command in the Levant to Sir Sidney Smith, after an unsuccessful attempt to destroy the French shipping in Alexandria. By this time, things had started to improve. Calabria had returned to loyalty, and the peasant uprising against the French was widespread throughout the country and in the Roman State. The Directory, annoyed by the advance of Russian troops towards the Austrian borders, demanded explanations from Austria, and when those were unsatisfactory, instructed its armies to go on the offensive. The French pushed into Germany on March 1, and into Italy towards the end of the month. However, the actions of the French Government, though bold and impressive, were not based on a solid foundation of efficiency in the armies or skill in the campaign plan. Serious setbacks soon followed, and the dangerously unstable position of the corps in Naples quickly became apparent.
Before this news could reach Palermo, however, Nelson had sent Troubridge with four ships-of-the-line and some smaller vessels to the Bay of Naples, to blockade it, and to enter into communication, if possible, with the loyalists in the city. As the extreme reluctance of the King and Queen prevented his going in person,—a reason the sufficiency of which it is difficult to admit,—Nelson hoisted his flag on board a transport in the bay, and sent the flagship, in order not to diminish the force detailed for such important duties. Within a week the islands in the immediate neighborhood of Naples—Procida, Ischia, Capri, and the Ponzas—had again hoisted the royal ensign. On the 22d of April the French evacuated the city, with the exception of the Castle of St. Elmo, in which they left a garrison of five hundred men. In Upper Italy their armies were in full retreat, having been forced back from the Adige to the Adda, whence an urgent message was sent to Macdonald, Championnet's successor at Naples, to fall back to the northward and effect a junction with the main body, soon to be sorely pressed by an overwhelming force of the Austro-Russians, at whose head was the famous Suwarrow. On the 29th the Allies entered Milan, and on the 7th of May the northern French, now under the command of Moreau, had retired as far as Alessandria, in Piedmont. On this same day, Macdonald, having thrown garrisons into Capua and Gaeta, evacuated the kingdom of Naples, and hastened northward to join Moreau. With the exception of these fortified posts and the city of Naples, the country was now overrun by the Christian army, the name applied to the numerous but utterly undisciplined bands of rude peasantry, attached to the royal cause, and led by Cardinal Ruffo. The Jacobins in the city still held out, and had in the bay a small naval force under the command of Commodore Caracciolo.
Before this news could reach Palermo, Nelson had already sent Troubridge with four battleships and some smaller vessels to the Bay of Naples to blockade it and, if possible, communicate with the loyalists in the city. The King and Queen's extreme reluctance kept him from going in person—a reason that's hard to believe—so Nelson raised his flag on a transport ship in the bay and sent the flagship to avoid weakening the force assigned to such crucial duties. Within a week, the islands near Naples—Procida, Ischia, Capri, and the Ponzas—had once again raised the royal flag. On April 22nd, the French evacuated the city, except for the Castle of St. Elmo, where they left a garrison of five hundred men. In northern Italy, their armies were in full retreat, having been pushed back from the Adige to the Adda, from where an urgent message was sent to Macdonald, Championnet's successor in Naples, to withdraw north and join the main force, which was about to face an overwhelming Austro-Russian army led by the famous Suwarrow. On the 29th, the Allies entered Milan, and on May 7th, the northern French, now commanded by Moreau, had retreated as far as Alessandria in Piedmont. On that same day, Macdonald, having stationed garrisons in Capua and Gaeta, evacuated the kingdom of Naples and rushed north to join Moreau. Except for these fortified locations and the city of Naples, the country was now overrun by the Christian army, a term used for the numerous but completely undisciplined groups of rough peasants loyal to the royal cause, led by Cardinal Ruffo. The Jacobins in the city still held out and had a small naval force in the bay under Commodore Caracciolo's command.
Troubridge's successes continued. A week later Salerno had been taken, and the royal colors were flying at Castellamare, on the opposite side of the Bay from Naples, and distant from it only twelve miles by land. Nelson questioned Troubridge about the return of the King, whose most evident political conviction was that the success of the royal cause was vitally connected with the safety of the royal person. "What are your ideas of the King's going into the Bay of Naples, without foreign troops? If it should cause insurrection [of the royalists] in Naples which did not succeed, would it not be worse? The King, if a rising of loyal people took place, ought to be amongst them; and that he will never consent to." "The King, God bless him! is a philosopher," he had said, repeating an expression of Lady Hamilton's, referring to the disasters which caused the headlong flight from Rome, through Naples, to Palermo; "but the great Queen feels sensibly all that has happened." The Queen also was extremely fearful, and Nelson intimated to St. Vincent that a request would be made for British troops to protect the sovereigns. "Their Majesties are ready to cross the water whenever Naples is entirely cleansed. When that happy event arrives, and not till then, a desire will be expressed for the British troops to be removed from Messina into Naples to guard the persons of their Majesties." That Nelson should have considered it essential to maintain in power, by any means, sovereigns devoted to Great Britain, is perfectly comprehensible. What is difficult to understand is the esteem he continued to profess, for those whose unheroic bearing so belied the words he had written six months before: "His Majesty is determined to conquer or die at the head of his army." Under other conditions and influences, none would have been more forward to express dissatisfaction and contempt.
Troubridge's successes kept coming. A week later, Salerno was captured, and the royal flag was flying at Castellamare, across the bay from Naples, just twelve miles away by land. Nelson asked Troubridge about the King's return, knowing that the King's main political belief was that the success of the royal cause was crucial to the safety of the royal person. "What do you think about the King going into the Bay of Naples without foreign troops? If it leads to an uprising by royalists in Naples that fails, wouldn’t that be even worse? The King, if loyal people rise up, should be among them; and he will never agree to that." "The King, bless him! is a philosopher," he said, echoing something Lady Hamilton once remarked about the disasters that forced a rapid escape from Rome through Naples to Palermo; "but the great Queen feels deeply about everything that has happened." The Queen was also extremely anxious, and Nelson hinted to St. Vincent that a request for British troops to protect the sovereigns would be forthcoming. "Their Majesties are ready to cross the water as soon as Naples is completely secure. When that happy event happens, and not before, a request will be made for British troops to move from Messina to Naples to protect their Majesties." It's entirely understandable that Nelson considered it essential to support, by any means, sovereigns loyal to Great Britain. What is hard to grasp is the respect he continued to show for those whose unheroic conduct sharply contradicted the words he wrote six months earlier: "His Majesty is determined to conquer or die at the head of his army." Under different circumstances and influences, no one would have been quicker to express dissatisfaction and contempt.
Withal, despite the favorable outlook of affairs and the most joyous season of the year, his depression of spirits continued. "I am far from well," he writes on the 3d of May, "and the good news of the success of the Austrian arms in Italy does not even cheer me." But in the midst of the full current of success, and of his own gloom, an incident suddenly occurred which threw everything again into confusion and doubt, and roused him for the time from his apathy. On the 12th of May a brig arrived at Palermo, with news that a French fleet of nineteen ships-of-the-line had escaped from Brest, and had been seen less than a fortnight before off Oporto, steering for the Mediterranean.
Despite the positive situation and the happiest time of year, he still felt down. "I'm not doing well," he writes on May 3rd, "and the good news about the success of the Austrian forces in Italy doesn’t even lift my spirits." But in the midst of all the success and his own sadness, an incident suddenly happened that threw everything back into chaos and uncertainty, pulling him out of his numbness. On May 12th, a ship arrived in Palermo with news that a French fleet of nineteen battleships had escaped from Brest and had been spotted less than two weeks earlier off Oporto, heading for the Mediterranean.
FOOTNOTES:
[80] Palermo possessed a strategic advantage over Syracuse, in that, with westerly winds, it was to windward, especially as regards Naples; and it was also nearer the narrowest part of the passage between Sicily and Africa, the highway to the Levant and Egypt. With easterly winds, the enemy of course could not proceed thither; and at this time there was no enemy's force in the Mediterranean, so that westward movements had not to be apprehended. All dangers must come from the westward. These considerations were doubtless present to Nelson; but the author has not found any mention of them by him at this period.
[80] Palermo had a strategic edge over Syracuse because, with westerly winds, it was upwind, especially concerning Naples; plus, it was closer to the narrowest part of the passage between Sicily and Africa, which was the main route to the Levant and Egypt. With easterly winds, the enemy couldn't get there, and at that time, there was no enemy force in the Mediterranean, so there was no threat from westward movements. All threats had to come from the west. Nelson likely understood these factors, but the author hasn't found any mention of them by him during this time.
CHAPTER XIII.
FROM THE INCURSION OF THE FRENCH FLEET UNDER BRUIX TO THE RESTORATION OF THE ROYAL AUTHORITY AT NAPLES.—THE CARACCIOLO EXECUTION.—NELSON'S DISOBEDIENCE TO ADMIRAL LORD KEITH.
FROM THE INCURSION OF THE FRENCH FLEET UNDER BRUIX TO THE RESTORATION OF THE ROYAL AUTHORITY AT NAPLES.—THE CARACCIOLO EXECUTION.—NELSON'S DISOBEDIENCE TO ADMIRAL LORD KEITH.
MAY-JULY, 1799. AGE, 40.
MAY-JULY, 1799. AGE, 40.
The intention of the French to send a fleet into the Mediterranean had transpired some time before, and the motive—to retrieve the destruction of their naval power in that sea by the Battle of the Nile—was so obvious that the attempt was regarded as probable. As far back as the 7th of January, Nelson had written to Commodore Duckworth, commanding the detachment of four ships-of-the-line at Minorca, that he had received notification of the force expected from Brest. If they got into the Mediterranean, he was confident they would go first to Toulon, and he wished to concert beforehand with Duckworth, who was not under his orders, the steps necessary to be taken at once, if the case arose. He did not think, so he wrote to Ball, that they would venture a squadron to Malta or Alexandria, in view of the certain destruction which in the end must befall it, even if successful in reaching the port.
The French plan to send a fleet into the Mediterranean had become known some time ago, and their motive—to regain their naval strength in that sea after the defeat at the Battle of the Nile—was so clear that people believed the attempt was likely. As early as January 7th, Nelson had written to Commodore Duckworth, who was in charge of four ships-of-the-line stationed at Minorca, that he had received word about the force expected from Brest. If they made it into the Mediterranean, he was sure they would head to Toulon first, and he wanted to coordinate in advance with Duckworth, who was not under his command, the necessary steps to take immediately if it became necessary. He mentioned in a letter to Ball that he didn’t think they would send a squadron to Malta or Alexandria, considering the inevitable destruction that would follow, even if they were successful in reaching those ports.
Both remarks show that he did not look for the number of ships that were sent—nineteen, as the first news said, twenty-five, as was actually the case. An emergency so great and so imminent drew out all his latent strength, acute judgment, and promptitude. The brig that brought the news was sent off the same night to Naples, with orders to proceed from there to Minorca and Gibraltar, and to notify Duckworth and St. Vincent what Nelson intended to do. A cutter sailed at the same time for Malta. Troubridge and Ball were both directed to send or bring all their ships-of-the-line, save one each, to Minorca, there to unite with Duckworth. Troubridge's ships were to call off Palermo for further instructions, but not to lose time by coming to anchor there. Expresses were sent to the different ports of Sicily, in case any Russian or Turkish ships had arrived, to put them on their guard, and to request co-operation by joining the force assembling off Minorca, where Nelson reasoned Lord St. Vincent also would repair. To the latter he wrote: "Eight, nine, or ten sail of the line shall, in a few days, be off Mahon, ready to obey your orders (not in the port);" for his intention was that they should remain outside under sail. "You may depend upon my exertion, and I am only sorry that I cannot move[81] to your help, but this island appears to hang on my stay. Nothing could console the Queen this night, but my promise not to leave them unless the battle was to be fought off Sardinia."
Both comments show that he didn’t look for the actual number of ships sent—nineteen, as the first report said, twenty-five, as it turned out to be. Such a significant and immediate emergency drew out all his latent strength, sharp judgment, and quick action. The brig that brought the news was sent off the same night to Naples, with orders to go from there to Minorca and Gibraltar, and to inform Duckworth and St. Vincent of Nelson’s plans. A cutter set sail at the same time for Malta. Troubridge and Ball were both instructed to send or bring all their ships-of-the-line, except one each, to Minorca to join Duckworth. Troubridge’s ships were to stop off Palermo for further instructions but not to waste time anchoring there. Messages were sent to different ports in Sicily, in case any Russian or Turkish ships had arrived, to warn them and request cooperation by joining the force gathering off Minorca, where Nelson believed Lord St. Vincent would also arrive. To the latter, he wrote: “Eight, nine, or ten sail of the line will, in a few days, be off Mahon, ready to follow your orders (not in the port);” for he intended for them to remain outside under sail. “You can count on my efforts, and I’m only sorry that I can’t move[81] to help you, but this island seems to depend on my presence. Nothing could comfort the Queen tonight except my promise not to leave them unless the battle was to take place off Sardinia.”
The next day he wrote again in similar terms, seeking to reconcile his promise to the Queen with his impulses, and, it may be said safely, with his duty. "Should you come upwards without a battle, I hope in that case you will afford me an opportunity of joining you; for my heart would break to be near my commander-in-chief, and not assisting him at such a time. What a state I am in! If I go, I risk, and more than risk, Sicily, and what is now safe on the Continent; for we know, from experience, that more depends on opinion than on acts themselves. As I stay, my heart is breaking; and, to mend the matter, I am seriously unwell."
The next day he wrote again in similar terms, trying to reconcile his promise to the Queen with his feelings and, it can be safely said, with his duty. "If you come back without a fight, I hope you'll give me a chance to join you; because my heart would break if I'm near my commander-in-chief and not helping him at such a crucial time. What a situation I'm in! If I go, I put Sicily and what’s safe on the Continent at risk, and we know from experience that more relies on opinion than on actions themselves. If I stay, my heart is breaking; and to make matters worse, I'm really unwell."
That evening, the 13th, at nine o'clock, a lieutenant arrived, who had been landed to the westward of Palermo by a sloop-of-war, the "Peterel," she not being able to beat up to the city against the east wind prevailing. From him Nelson learned that the French fleet had passed the Straits, and had been seen off Minorca. The next day, the "Peterel" having come off the port, he went alongside, and sent her on at once to Malta, with orders to Ball to abandon the blockade, bringing with him all his ships, and to proceed off Maritimo, a small island twenty miles west of Sicily, where he now proposed to concentrate his squadron and to go himself. Troubridge, having already orders to come to Palermo, needed no further instructions, except to bring all his ships, instead of leaving one at Naples. Every ship-of-the-line in the squadron, including the Portuguese, was thus summoned to join the Flag, in a position to cover Palermo and the approaches to the eastern Mediterranean. To these necessary dispositions was owing that the senior officer left at Naples was Captain Foote, who afterwards signed the articles of capitulation with the insurgents, which gave such offence to Nelson, and have occasioned much controversy in connection with his subsequent action.
That evening, the 13th, at nine o'clock, a lieutenant arrived, who had been brought in west of Palermo by a sloop-of-war, the "Peterel," since it couldn't beat its way to the city against the prevailing east wind. From him, Nelson learned that the French fleet had passed the Straits and had been seen off Minorca. The next day, the "Peterel" came to port, and he sent her out immediately to Malta, with orders for Ball to abandon the blockade, bring all his ships, and head for Maritimo, a small island twenty miles west of Sicily, where he now planned to concentrate his squadron and go himself. Troubridge, already ordered to come to Palermo, didn't need further instructions except to bring all his ships, instead of leaving one at Naples. Every ship-of-the-line in the squadron, including the Portuguese, was called to join the Flag, positioned to cover Palermo and the approaches to the eastern Mediterranean. This necessary arrangement meant that the senior officer left at Naples was Captain Foote, who later signed the articles of capitulation with the insurgents, which deeply offended Nelson and sparked much debate regarding his later actions.
Troubridge, having sailed at once on receipt of his first orders, arrived on the 17th with three British ships and one Portuguese. A heavy gale prevented Nelson getting to sea till the 20th, when he sailed, and was joined the next morning by the fourth ship from Naples. The same day came a Portuguese corvette from Gibraltar and Mahon, with letters from St. Vincent and Duckworth. The former announced that the French had passed the Straits, and that he was about to start in pursuit. Duckworth, who also was asked to join off Maritimo, declined to do so, saying that he must await the commander-in-chief. Nelson had of course immediately communicated to the latter his change of plan. He hoped to collect ten sail-of-the-line, which, "if Duckworth reinforce me, will enable me to look the enemy in the face"—fourteen ships to nineteen; "but should any of the Russians or Turks be off Malta, I hope to get a force of different nations equal to the enemy, when not a moment shall be lost in bringing them to battle."
Troubridge, having set sail immediately upon receiving his first orders, arrived on the 17th with three British ships and one Portuguese ship. A strong storm kept Nelson from going to sea until the 20th, when he departed and was joined the next morning by the fourth ship from Naples. On the same day, a Portuguese corvette arrived from Gibraltar and Mahon, carrying letters from St. Vincent and Duckworth. The former reported that the French had crossed the Straits and that he was preparing to pursue them. Duckworth, who was also asked to join off Maritimo, refused, stating that he needed to wait for the commander-in-chief. Nelson promptly informed the latter of his change in plans. He aimed to gather ten ships of the line, which, "if Duckworth reinforces me, will enable me to confront the enemy"—fourteen ships against nineteen; "but if any of the Russians or Turks are off Malta, I hope to assemble a coalition of different nations equal to the enemy, and we won't waste any time in engaging them in battle."
On the 23d of May he was off Maritimo with seven ships, Ball not having joined yet. His spirits were fast rising, as in thought he drew near the enemy. "Duckworth means to leave me to my fate," he wrote to Lady Hamilton. "Never mind; if I can get eleven sail together, they shall not hurt me." "I am under no apprehension for the safety of his Majesty's squadron," he said in a circular letter to his scattered vessels, designed to heighten their ardor; "on the contrary, from the very high state of discipline of the ships, I am confident, should the enemy force us to battle, that we shall cut a very respectable figure; and if Admiral Duckworth joins, not one moment shall be lost in my attacking the enemy." It must be mentioned that St. Vincent had expressed his opinion that the French were bound for Malta and Alexandria, and Nelson, when he wrote these words, was hourly expecting to see their sails appear on the horizon. He did not know yet, however, that they were twenty-five, instead of nineteen, of the line. To St. Vincent he expressed himself with the sober, dauntless resolution of a consummate warrior, who recognized that opportunities must be seized, and detachments, if need be, sacrificed, for the furtherance of a great common object. "Your Lordship may depend that the squadron under my command shall never fall into the hands of the enemy; and before we are destroyed, I have little doubt but the enemy will have their wings so completely clipped that they may be easily overtaken"—by you. In this temper he waited. It is this clear perception of the utility of his contemplated grapple with superior numbers, and not the headlong valor and instinct for fighting that unquestionably distinguished him, which constitutes the excellence of Nelson's genius. This it was which guided him in the great Trafalgar campaign, and the lack of which betrayed Villeneuve at the same period to his wretched shortcomings. Yet, as has before been remarked, mere insight, however accurate and penetrating, ends only in itself, or at best falls far short of the mark, unless accompanied by Nelson's great power of disregarding contingencies—an inspired blindness, which at the moment of decisive action sees, not the risks, but the one only road to possible victory.
On May 23rd, he was off Maritimo with seven ships, as Ball had not joined him yet. His spirits were rising as he thought he was getting closer to the enemy. "Duckworth intends to leave me to my fate," he wrote to Lady Hamilton. "No worries; if I can gather eleven ships, they won't be able to harm me." "I’m not worried about the safety of His Majesty's squadron," he said in a circular letter to his scattered vessels, designed to boost their enthusiasm; "on the contrary, given the excellent discipline of the ships, I’m confident that if the enemy forces us into battle, we’ll hold our own quite well; and if Admiral Duckworth joins, I won’t waste a moment in attacking the enemy." It's worth mentioning that St. Vincent had expressed his belief that the French were heading for Malta and Alexandria, and when Nelson wrote these words, he was expecting to see their sails appear on the horizon. He didn’t know yet that there were twenty-five ships instead of nineteen. To St. Vincent, he stated with the calm determination of a seasoned warrior, who understood that opportunities should be taken, and detachments, if necessary, sacrificed for the greater good. "Your Lordship can trust that the squadron under my command will never fall into enemy hands; and before we’re destroyed, I have little doubt that the enemy will be so thoroughly weakened that they can be easily overtaken"—by you. In this mindset, he waited. This clear understanding of the usefulness of his planned confrontation with superior numbers, and not just reckless bravery and a fighting instinct that definitely set him apart, defines Nelson's genius. This was what guided him in the great Trafalgar campaign, and the absence of it is what led Villeneuve to his dismal failures at the same time. Yet, as previously mentioned, mere insight, no matter how accurate and profound, ultimately ends with itself, or at best falls short, unless accompanied by Nelson's remarkable ability to ignore uncertainties—an almost inspired blindness that at the moment of critical action sees not the risks, but the single path to possible victory.
Whilst thus expecting an engagement which, from the disparity of numbers, could be nothing short of desperate, he drew up a codicil to his will, making to Lady Hamilton a bequest, in terms that show how complete were the infatuation and idealization now in possession of his mind: "I give and bequeath to my dear friend, Emma Hamilton, wife of the Right Hon. Sir William Hamilton, a nearly round box set with diamonds, said to have been sent me by the mother of the Grand Signor, which I request she will accept (and never part from) as token of regard and respect for her very eminent virtues (for she, the said Emma Hamilton, possesses them all to such a degree that it would be doing her injustice was any particular one to be mentioned) from her faithful and affectionate friend." During this short cruise he wrote her almost daily, and at some length, in addition to the more official communications addressed to Hamilton. At this same period he was excusing himself to his wife for the shortness and infrequency of his letters: "Pray attribute it to the true cause—viz., that in truth my poor hand cannot execute what my head tells me I ought to do."
While waiting for a battle that, given the difference in numbers, was sure to be desperate, he wrote an addition to his will, leaving a gift to Lady Hamilton that shows just how infatuated and idealized he had become in his thoughts: "I give and bequeath to my dear friend, Emma Hamilton, wife of the Right Hon. Sir William Hamilton, a nearly round box set with diamonds, which I’m told was sent to me by the mother of the Grand Signor, and I ask her to accept it (and never part with it) as a sign of my regard and respect for her remarkable virtues (as she, the said Emma Hamilton, possesses them all to such an extent that it would be unfair to highlight just one) from her faithful and affectionate friend." During this brief voyage, he wrote to her almost every day, often at length, in addition to the more formal letters sent to Hamilton. At the same time, he was explaining to his wife why his letters were short and infrequent: "Please understand it's for the real reason—that honestly, my poor hand can’t express what my mind tells me I should do."
On the 28th of May Nelson received letters from St. Vincent, dated the 21st, off Minorca, which put him in possession of the movements of the enemy up to that date. The French fleet, under the command of Admiral Bruix, had appeared on the 4th of the month off Cadiz. It was then blowing a half-gale of wind, and the French admiral did not care, under that condition, to engage the fifteen British ships-of-the-line which were cruising off the harbor, under Lord Keith, who had come out from England the previous autumn to be St. Vincent's second in command. The intended junction with the Spanish squadron in Cadiz being thus thwarted, Bruix passed the Straits on the 5th, and Lord St. Vincent, having recalled Keith, followed on the 12th with sixteen ships. On the 20th he joined Duckworth, and learned that the enemy, when last seen, were heading for Toulon. Keith's removal had uncovered Cadiz, and St. Vincent fully expected that the Spanish fleet would leave there for the Mediterranean, which it did, and on the 20th entered Cartagena, to the number of seventeen of the line, but much crippled from a stormy passage. This Nelson did not yet know, nor that Bruix had reached Toulon on the 14th of May, and sailed again on the 26th for the eastward.
On May 28th, Nelson received letters from St. Vincent, dated the 21st, off Minorca, which informed him of the enemy's movements up to that date. The French fleet, led by Admiral Bruix, had appeared on the 4th of the month off Cadiz. It was blowing a half-gale, and the French admiral didn't want to engage the fifteen British ships-of-the-line that were cruising off the harbor, under Lord Keith, who had come from England the previous autumn to serve as St. Vincent's second in command. With the planned meeting with the Spanish squadron in Cadiz thwarted, Bruix passed through the Straits on the 5th. Lord St. Vincent, having recalled Keith, followed on the 12th with sixteen ships. On the 20th, he joined Duckworth and learned that the enemy, when last seen, was heading for Toulon. Keith's removal had left Cadiz exposed, and St. Vincent fully expected that the Spanish fleet would leave for the Mediterranean, which it did, entering Cartagena on the 20th with seventeen ships of the line, but they were severely damaged from a rough passage. Nelson was not yet aware of this, nor that Bruix had reached Toulon on May 14th and had sailed again on the 26th towards the east.
Satisfied that the enemy would not at once come his way, and knowing that a vessel had passed up the Mediterranean from St. Vincent to put Sidney Smith on his guard, Nelson ordered Ball to resume the blockade of Malta with two ships-of-the-line. The rest of his squadron he kept massed, and took to Palermo, where he arrived May 29th. Lookout ships were stationed off the north end of Corsica and west of Sardinia. "My reason for remaining in Sicily," he wrote St. Vincent, "is the covering the blockade of Naples, and the certainty of preserving Sicily in case of an attack, for if we were to withdraw our ships, it would throw such a damp on the people that I am sure there would be no resistance."
Satisfied that the enemy wouldn’t come his way immediately, and knowing a ship had passed up the Mediterranean from St. Vincent to alert Sidney Smith, Nelson ordered Ball to resume the blockade of Malta with two ships of the line. He kept the rest of his squadron gathered and headed to Palermo, arriving on May 29th. Lookout ships were positioned at the north end of Corsica and west of Sardinia. "My reason for staying in Sicily," he wrote to St. Vincent, "is to support the blockade of Naples and to ensure the safety of Sicily in case of an attack, because if we were to pull back our ships, it would demoralize the people to the point where I’m sure there would be no resistance."
On the 6th of June Duckworth arrived at Palermo from the main fleet, with four ships-of-the-line, among them the "Foudroyant," eighty. This ship had been designated originally for Nelson's flag, and he shifted to her from the "Vanguard" on the 8th. Duckworth brought a report that St. Vincent was about to give up the command and go home, on account of ill-health. This at once aroused Nelson's anxiety, for he had long felt that few superiors would have the greatness of mind to trust him as implicitly, and humor him as tenderly, as the great admiral had done. It is not every one that can handle an instrument of such trenchant power, yet delicate temper, as Nelson's sensitive genius. The combination in St. Vincent of perfect professional capacity with masterful strength of character, had made the tactful respect he showed to Nelson's ability peculiarly grateful to the latter; and had won from him a subordination of the will, and an affection, which no subsequent commander-in-chief could elicit. He wrote to him:—
On June 6th, Duckworth arrived in Palermo from the main fleet, bringing four ships of the line, including the "Foudroyant," which carried eighty guns. This ship was originally assigned to Nelson, who transferred to it from the "Vanguard" on the 8th. Duckworth reported that St. Vincent was planning to step down from command and return home due to health issues. This news immediately worried Nelson, as he had always felt that few superiors would trust him as completely and support him as thoughtfully as the great admiral had. Not everyone can manage a force as powerful yet sensitive as Nelson's unique talent. St. Vincent's perfect professional skills combined with his strong character made the way he respected Nelson's abilities especially appreciated by Nelson, winning him a level of submission and affection that no later commander-in-chief could inspire. He wrote to him:—
MY DEAR LORD,—We have a report that you are going home. This distresses us most exceedingly, and myself in particular; so much so, that I have serious thoughts of returning, if that event should take place. But for the sake of our Country, do not quit us at this serious moment. I wish not to detract from the merit of whoever may be your successor; but it must take a length of time, which I hope the war will not give, to be in any manner a St. Vincent. We look up to you, as we have always found you, as to our Father, under whose fostering care we have been led to fame.... Give not up a particle of your authority to any one; be again our St. Vincent, and we shall be happy.
MY DEAR LORD,—We’ve heard that you’re planning to go home. This really upsets us, especially me; I’m even thinking seriously about going back if that happens. But for the sake of our country, please don’t leave us in this critical moment. I don’t want to belittle whoever your successor might be, but it will take a long time, which I hope the war won’t allow, for anyone to be even close to a St. Vincent. We look up to you, as we always have, as our Father, under whose care we’ve achieved fame... Don’t give up any of your authority to anyone; be our St. Vincent again, and we will be happy.
Your affectionate NELSON.
Your loving NELSON.
This letter did not reach St. Vincent before he carried his purpose into effect; but Nelson never quite forgave the abandonment of the command at such a moment. In after years he spoke bitterly of it, as a thing he himself could not have done; failing, perhaps, to realize the difference in staying power between forty-five and sixty-five.
This letter didn’t reach St. Vincent before he acted on his plans, but Nelson never fully forgave him for abandoning his command at such a critical time. Years later, he spoke resentfully about it, as something he could never have done; maybe not fully understanding the difference in endurance between someone who is forty-five and someone who is sixty-five.
On the 2d of June, being then seventy miles southwest of Toulon, St. Vincent turned over to Keith the command of the twenty ships-of-the-line then with him, and went to Port Mahon. For the moment he retained in his own hands the charge of the station,—continued Commander-in-chief,—with headquarters at Minorca, and two divisions cruising: one of twenty ships, with Keith, between Toulon and Minorca, and one of sixteen, including three Portuguese, under Nelson in the waters of Sicily. Friction between these two began at once. Lord Keith was an accomplished and gallant officer, methodical, attentive, and correct; but otherwise he rose little above the commonplace, and, while he could not ignore Nelson's great achievements, he does not seem to have had the insight which could appreciate the rare merit underlying them, nor the sympathetic temperament which could allow for his foibles. Nelson, exasperated at the mere fact of the other's succession to the command, speedily conceived for him an antipathy which Keith would have been more than mortal not to return; but it is to the honor of the latter's self-command that, while insisting upon obedience from his brilliant junior, he bore his refractoriness with dignified patience.
On June 2nd, being seventy miles southwest of Toulon, St. Vincent handed over command of the twenty ships-of-the-line with him to Keith and went to Port Mahon. For now, he kept the responsibility of the station in his own hands—remained Commander-in-chief—with headquarters in Minorca, and two divisions out at sea: one with twenty ships, under Keith, between Toulon and Minorca, and another with sixteen ships, including three Portuguese, under Nelson in the waters of Sicily. Tension between the two started right away. Lord Keith was a skilled and brave officer, methodical, attentive, and precise; however, he was rather ordinary otherwise. While he couldn't overlook Nelson's significant achievements, he didn't seem to recognize the unique qualities behind them, nor did he have the understanding needed to accommodate his quirks. Nelson, frustrated by Keith's rise to command, quickly developed a dislike for him, which Keith would have had to be superhuman not to share. Nevertheless, it speaks well of Keith’s self-control that, while insisting on obedience from his brilliant junior, he handled Nelson’s defiance with dignified patience.
After St. Vincent left him, Keith continued to stand to the northward and eastward. On the 5th of June he received certain information that the French fleet, now twenty-two ships-of-the-line, was in Vado Bay. This word he at once sent on to Nelson. Next day his division was so close in with the Riviera, off Antibes, that it was fired upon by the shore batteries; but the wind coming to the eastward, when off Monaco, did not permit it to pass east of Corsica, and, fearing that the French would take that route and fall upon Nelson, Keith detached to him two seventy-fours, which joined him on the 13th of June.
After St. Vincent left him, Keith continued to stand to the north and east. On June 5th, he got reliable information that the French fleet, now consisting of twenty-two battleships, was in Vado Bay. He immediately sent this information to Nelson. The next day, his division was so close to the Riviera, off Antibes, that it was fired upon by the shore batteries; however, when they were off Monaco, the wind shifted to the east, preventing them from passing east of Corsica. Worried that the French would take that route and launch an attack on Nelson, Keith sent two seventy-fours to join him, which arrived on June 13th.
At the moment of their arrival Nelson had just quitted Palermo for Naples, taking with him the whole squadron. The King of Naples had formally requested him to afford to the royal cause at the capital the assistance of the fleet, because the successes of the royalists elsewhere in the kingdom rendered imminent an insurrection in the city against the republican party and the French, which held the castles; and such insurrection, unless adequately supported, might either fail or lead to deplorable excesses. Lady Hamilton, whose irregular interference in State concerns receives here singular illustration, strongly urged this measure in a letter, written to the admiral after an interview with the Queen. Nelson consented, took on board seventeen hundred troops, with the Hereditary Prince, who was to represent the King,—the latter not wishing to go,—and was already clear of Palermo Bay when the two ships from Keith appeared. Gathering from their information that the French were bound for Naples or Sicily, in which his own judgment coincided, he returned at once into port, landed the Prince and the troops, and then took the squadron again off Maritimo, where he expected Ball and the two ships off Malta to join him without delay. "The French force being twenty-two sail of the line," he wrote in suppressed reproach to Keith, "four of which are first rates, the force with me being only sixteen of the line, not one of which was of three decks, three being Portuguese, and one of the English being a sixty-four, very short of men, I had no choice left but to return to Palermo."
At the time they arrived, Nelson had just left Palermo for Naples, bringing along the entire squadron. The King of Naples had officially asked him to provide support for the royal cause in the capital, as the royalists' successes elsewhere in the kingdom made a revolt in the city against the republicans and the French, who held the castles, likely. If the uprising didn’t have enough backing, it could either fail or result in terrible consequences. Lady Hamilton, whose unconventional involvement in political matters is notably illustrated here, strongly advocated for this action in a letter addressed to the admiral after meeting with the Queen. Nelson agreed, loaded seventeen hundred troops on board, with the Hereditary Prince representing the King—who preferred not to go—and was already outside Palermo Bay when the two ships from Keith showed up. After learning from their reports that the French were headed for Naples or Sicily, which matched his own assessment, he quickly returned to port, unloaded the Prince and the troops, and then took the squadron back off Maritimo, where he anticipated Ball and the two ships from Malta would join him without delay. "The French force being twenty-two ships of the line," he wrote in barely concealed frustration to Keith, "four of which are first rates, and my force being only sixteen, none of which had three decks, three of them being Portuguese, and one English being a sixty-four, severely understaffed, I had no choice but to return to Palermo."
With this incident of the insufficient reinforcement sent, began the friction with Keith which appears more openly in his correspondence with others. To St. Vincent, still commander-in-chief, he wrote: "I send a copy of my letter to Lord Keith, and I have only stated my regret that his Lordship could not have sent me a force fit to face the enemy: but, as we are, I shall not get out of their way; although, as I am, I cannot think myself justified in exposing the world (I may almost say) to be plundered by these miscreants. I trust your Lordship will not think me wrong in the painful determination I conceived myself forced to make," that is, to go back to Palermo, "for agonized indeed was the mind of your Lordship's faithful and affectionate servant."
With this incident of the insufficient reinforcements sent, the conflict with Keith began, which is more evident in his correspondence with others. To St. Vincent, still commander-in-chief, he wrote: "I’m sending a copy of my letter to Lord Keith, and I’ve only expressed my regret that his Lordship couldn’t have sent me a force capable of facing the enemy: but, as things stand, I won’t be able to avoid them; although, under these circumstances, I can't justify exposing the world (I might as well say) to be looted by these marauders. I hope your Lordship won’t think I’m wrong in the painful decision I felt forced to make," that is, to go back to Palermo, "for indeed, your Lordship's faithful and affectionate servant was in great distress."
Nelson appears to have felt that the return to Palermo, though imperative, in view of the relative forces of himself and the French, would not only postpone and imperil the restoration of the royal family, but would bring discredit upon himself for not seeking and fighting the enemy's fleet. "I shall wait off Maritimo," he wrote Keith, "anxiously expecting such a reinforcement as may enable me to go in search of the enemy's fleet, when not one moment shall be lost in bringing them to battle; for," he continues, with one of those flashes of genius which from time to time, unconsciously to himself, illuminate his writings, "I consider the best defence for his Sicilian Majesty's dominions is to place myself alongside the French." "My situation is a cruel one," he wrote to Hamilton, "and I am sure Lord Keith has lowered me in the eyes of Europe, for they will only know of 18 sail, [Ball having joined], and not of the description of them; it has truly made me ill." But, although not justified in seeking them, he had off Maritimo taken a strategic position which would enable him to intercept their approach to either Naples or Sicily, "and I was firmly resolved," he wrote with another of his clear intuitions, "they should not pass me without a battle, which would so cripple them that they might be unable to proceed on any distant service." "On this you may depend," he had written to Lady Hamilton, on the first cruise off Maritimo, three weeks before, "that if my little squadron obeys my signal, not a ship shall fall into the hands of the enemy; and I will so cut them up, that they will not be fit even for a summer's cruise."
Nelson seemed to believe that returning to Palermo, although necessary given his and the French forces' strength, would not only delay and jeopardize the restoration of the royal family but would also tarnish his reputation for not actively pursuing the enemy's fleet. "I will wait off Maritimo," he wrote to Keith, "anxiously expecting a reinforcement that will allow me to search for the enemy's fleet, and I won’t waste a moment in bringing them to battle; for," he added, with one of those moments of brilliance that occasionally shine through his writings, "I believe the best defense for his Sicilian Majesty's territories is to place myself alongside the French." "My situation is a tough one," he wrote to Hamilton, "and I’m sure Lord Keith has diminished my standing in the eyes of Europe, as they will only be aware of 18 ships, [with Ball having joined], and not their types; it has truly made me feel unwell." However, even though he wasn't justified in actively seeking them, he had taken a strategic position off Maritimo that would allow him to intercept their approach to either Naples or Sicily, "and I was determined," he wrote with another insight, "that they would not pass by me without a battle, which would weaken them enough that they might be unable to undertake any distant service." "You can count on this," he had written to Lady Hamilton during his first cruise off Maritimo, three weeks earlier, "that if my small squadron follows my signal, not a single ship will fall into the enemy's hands; and I will so damage them that they won’t be fit even for a summer's cruise."
On the 20th of June, off Maritimo, he received a despatch from St. Vincent that a reinforcement of twelve ships-of-the-line from the Channel was then approaching Port Mahon, and that Keith, having returned thither, had left again in search of Bruix, whose whereabouts remained unknown. He was also notified that St. Vincent had resigned all his command, leaving Keith commander-in-chief. Nelson was convinced—"I knew," was his expression—that the French intended going to Naples. He determined now to resume his enterprise against the republicans in the city; a decision which caused him great and unexplained mental conflict. "I am agitated," he wrote Hamilton the same day, in a note headed "Most Secret," "but my resolution is fixed. For Heaven's sake suffer not any one to oppose it. I shall not be gone eight days. No harm can come to Sicily. I send my Lady and you Lord St. Vincent's letter. I am full of grief and anxiety. I must go. It will finish the war. It will give a sprig of laurel to your affectionate friend, Nelson." The cause of this distress can only be surmised, but is probably to be found in the fears of the Queen, and in the differences existing at the time between herself and the King. Possibly, too, Lady Hamilton's sympathy with the Queen, in a present fear for Sicily, may have led her, contrary to the request so lately made for the admiral to go to Naples, to second an entreaty that the island should not now be exposed; and to refuse her may have caused him pain. On the 21st he was at Palermo, and after two hours' consultation with their Majesties and Acton, the Prime Minister, he sailed again, accompanied in the "Foudroyant" on this occasion by Sir William and Lady Hamilton, but not by the Hereditary Prince, nor the Sicilian troops. On the 24th, at 9 P.M., he anchored in the Bay of Naples. Flags of truce were at that moment flying on the castles of Uovo and Nuovo, which were in the hands of the Neapolitan republicans, and upon the frigate "Seahorse," whose commander had been the senior British officer present, before Nelson's own appearance.
On June 20th, off Maritimo, he received a message from St. Vincent stating that a reinforcement of twelve ships-of-the-line from the Channel was approaching Port Mahon, and that Keith, having returned there, had left again in search of Bruix, whose location was still unknown. He was also informed that St. Vincent had resigned all his command, leaving Keith as commander-in-chief. Nelson was convinced—"I knew," he said—that the French intended to go to Naples. He decided to continue his mission against the republicans in the city, a choice that caused him great and unexplained mental turmoil. "I am agitated," he wrote to Hamilton the same day in a note marked "Most Secret," "but my decision is firm. For Heaven's sake, don't let anyone oppose it. I won't be gone for more than eight days. No harm can come to Sicily. I’m sending you and my Lady Lord St. Vincent's letter. I am filled with grief and anxiety. I must go. It will end the war. It will bring a sprig of laurel to your affectionate friend, Nelson." The reason for this distress can only be guessed, but it likely relates to the Queen's fears and the existing tensions between her and the King. It's also possible that Lady Hamilton's sympathy for the Queen, amid worries for Sicily, may have led her, contrary to the recent request for the admiral to go to Naples, to support a plea that the island shouldn’t be exposed now; refusing her may have caused him pain. On the 21st, he was in Palermo, and after a two-hour meeting with their Majesties and Acton, the Prime Minister, he sailed again, this time on the "Foudroyant," accompanied by Sir William and Lady Hamilton, but not by the Hereditary Prince or the Sicilian troops. On the 24th, at 9 P.M., he anchored in the Bay of Naples. Flags of truce were flying at that moment on the castles of Uovo and Nuovo, which were held by the Neapolitan republicans, and on the frigate "Seahorse," whose commander had been the highest-ranking British officer present before Nelson's arrival.
On the passage from Palermo, Nelson had received information that the royalists,—with whom were co-operating some detachments of Russians and Turks, as well as the British naval forces, under Captain Foote, of the "Seahorse,"—had concluded an armistice with the French and their Neapolitan allies, who were in possession of the castles. The terms of the armistice, thus rumored, were that the castles, if not relieved within twenty-one days, should then be surrendered; the garrisons to march out with the honors of war, and to be transported to Toulon in vessels to be furnished by the King of Naples. This report was erroneous in important particulars, especially as to the period of twenty-one days. What really had happened was, that a capitulation had been concluded, which provided that the Neapolitan insurgents should evacuate the two castles held by them—Uovo and Nuovo—as soon as the transports were ready to take them to Toulon, but not before. The French, in the castle of St. Elmo, were not included in the arrangement, their only part being that it required the ratification of their commander before becoming operative. This ratification was given, and, when Nelson's squadron came in sight,[82] the treaty had received the signature of all the parties interested; the flags of truce indicating a cessation of hostilities until the terms of the capitulation were carried into effect.
On the journey from Palermo, Nelson learned that the royalists—along with some detachments of Russians and Turks, as well as British naval forces led by Captain Foote of the "Seahorse"—had reached an armistice with the French and their Neapolitan allies, who were in control of the castles. The rumored terms of the armistice stated that the castles would be surrendered if not relieved within twenty-one days, with the garrisons allowed to leave with honors and transported to Toulon on ships provided by the King of Naples. This report was incorrect in significant ways, particularly regarding the twenty-one-day period. What actually occurred was that a capitulation was agreed upon, which stipulated that the Neapolitan insurgents would leave the two castles they held—Uovo and Nuovo—as soon as the transports were ready to take them to Toulon, but not before. The French in the castle of St. Elmo were not included in this arrangement, as it required their commander's approval before it could take effect. This approval was granted, and when Nelson's squadron appeared, the treaty had been signed by all parties involved, with flags of truce signaling a stop to hostilities until the terms of the capitulation were implemented.
Nelson had been given full power by the King of the Two Sicilies to act as his representative. He was also, as commander of the fleet, the representative of the King of Great Britain among the allied forces, which were acting in support of the royalist cause. The double function introduces great confusion into the subsequent transactions, especially as there are on record no formal credentials investing him with the authority he claimed to have from the King of Naples. The omission probably arose from the extreme shortness of his stay in Palermo on the 21st—only two hours and a half elapsing, by the "Foudroyant's" log, between the entering of the ship and her sailing again; a time sufficient for an interview and a clear understanding, but scarcely for drawing up a regular commission. The fact rests upon his own statement, adequately supported, however, by inferences reasonably to be drawn from expressions in letters to him, both from the King and from Acton, the Prime Minister. That his power went so far as to authorize him to remove Cardinal Ruffo, up to that time the King's representative, would alone confirm the assertion of a man habitually truthful. Sir William Hamilton also, writing to Greville, and alluding to his official despatch by the same mail, says, "We had full powers." It may be accepted that Nelson himself was entirely satisfied that he was authorized at the time to act for the King, when emergency required; and it is certain that letters were speedily sent, empowering him to appoint a new government, as well as to arrest Ruffo and to send him to Palermo in a British ship.
Nelson had been given full authority by the King of the Two Sicilies to act as his representative. As the commander of the fleet, he also represented the King of Great Britain among the allied forces supporting the royalist cause. This dual role created significant confusion in the following events, especially since there are no official documents proving the authority he claimed to have from the King of Naples. This omission likely occurred because he spent only a brief time in Palermo on the 21st—just two and a half hours, according to the "Foudroyant's" log, between the ship's arrival and departure; enough time for a meeting and a clear understanding, but hardly enough for drafting a formal commission. The basis of his authority rests on his own assertion, which is adequately supported by reasonable inferences from letters he received from both the King and Acton, the Prime Minister. The fact that his authority included the power to remove Cardinal Ruffo, who had been the King's representative until then, would further back up the claim of a man known for his honesty. Sir William Hamilton also mentioned in a letter to Greville, referring to his official dispatch sent in the same mail, that "We had full powers." It can be assumed that Nelson was fully convinced he had the authority to act for the King when the situation called for it, and it is clear that letters were quickly sent giving him the power to appoint a new government, as well as to arrest Ruffo and send him to Palermo on a British ship.
Seeing the flags of truce flying, from the two castles and the "Seahorse," and being under the impression that has been stated as to the terms of an armistice, which he called "infamous," Nelson immediately made a signal annulling the truce, "being determined," he wrote to Keith, "never to give my approbation to any terms with Rebels, but that of unconditional submission." As the execution of the capitulation depended upon the embarkation of the garrisons in the transports which were to be provided, Nelson was entirely master of the situation, so far as force went. Next morning, June 25th, he moved his fleet of eighteen sail nearer in, mooring it in a close line of battle before the city, and at the same time sent for twenty-two gun and mortar vessels, then lying at the islands, with which he flanked the ships-of-the-line. In this imposing array, significant at once of inexorable purpose and irresistible power, he sent to Ruffo his "opinion of the infamous terms entered into with the rebels," and also two papers, to be by him forwarded to the insurgents and to the French. From the latter, who had not treated, was required simply an unconditional surrender; but the message to the insurgents, sent, singularly enough, not from the representative of the King of Naples but from the British admiral, ran as follows:—
Seeing the truce flags flying from the two castles and the "Seahorse," and believing the previously stated terms of an armistice, which he deemed "infamous," Nelson immediately signaled to cancel the truce, writing to Keith that he was "determined never to approve any terms with Rebels other than unconditional surrender." Since the implementation of the surrender depended on the evacuation of the garrisons in the transports that were supposed to be provided, Nelson was completely in control of the situation regarding military strength. The next morning, June 25th, he moved his fleet of eighteen ships closer, positioning it in a tight battle line before the city, and simultaneously requested twenty-two gun and mortar vessels that were stationed at the islands to flank the battleships. In this impressive formation, showcasing both an unyielding intent and unmatched power, he sent Ruffo his "opinion of the infamous terms entered into with the rebels," along with two documents to be forwarded to the insurgents and the French. From the French, who had not negotiated, he demanded simply an unconditional surrender; however, the message to the insurgents, curiously sent not from the representative of the King of Naples but from the British admiral, read as follows:—
His Britannic Majesty's Ship Foudroyant, Naples Bay, 25th June, 1799.
His Britannic Majesty's Ship Foudroyant, Naples Bay, June 25, 1799.
Rear Admiral Lord Nelson, K.B., Commander of His Britannic Majesty's Fleet in the Bay of Naples, acquaints the Rebellious Subjects of His Sicilian Majesty in the Castles of Uovo and Nuovo, that he will not permit them to embark or quit those places. They must surrender themselves to His Majesty's royal mercy.
Rear Admiral Lord Nelson, K.B., Commander of His Britannic Majesty's Fleet in the Bay of Naples, informs the rebellious subjects of His Sicilian Majesty at the Castles of Uovo and Nuovo that he will not allow them to leave or escape those locations. They must submit to His Majesty's royal mercy.
NELSON.
NELSON.
Ruffo refused to send the papers in, and said decisively that, if Nelson saw fit to break the armistice then existing, between the signature of the capitulation and its execution, he would aid neither with men nor guns. Finally, he went on board the "Foudroyant;" but after an animated discussion, which rose nearly to an altercation, neither party yielded his ground. "I used every argument in my power," wrote Nelson, "to convince him that the Treaty and Armistice was at an end by the arrival of the fleet", and this therefore may be taken to summarize his own position. He then gave the Cardinal a written opinion that the treaty was one that "ought not to be carried out without the approbation of His Sicilian Majesty." Neither his powers nor Ruffo's, he argued, extended to granting such a capitulation. Ruffo, indeed, had been expressly forbidden to do so; a fact which rendered the paper void from the first. "Under this opinion," reported Nelson to Keith, "the Rebels came out of the Castles;" "as they ought," he wrote to his friend Davison, "and as I hope all those who are false to their King and Country will, to be hanged, or otherwise disposed of, as their sovereign thought proper." They were then placed in transports, which were anchored under the guns of the fleet; and in the end many of them were put to death.
Ruffo refused to submit the papers and firmly stated that if Nelson decided to break the existing armistice between the signing of the capitulation and its execution, he would provide no support with men or weapons. Ultimately, he boarded the "Foudroyant," but after a heated debate that almost led to a confrontation, neither side backed down. "I used every argument I could," Nelson wrote, "to persuade him that the Treaty and Armistice were over with the arrival of the fleet," which effectively summarizes his stance. He then gave the Cardinal a written opinion saying that the treaty "should not be executed without the approval of His Sicilian Majesty." He argued that neither his authority nor Ruffo's allowed for such a capitulation. Ruffo had actually been specifically instructed not to do so, making the document invalid from the beginning. "Based on this opinion," Nelson reported to Keith, "the Rebels came out of the Castles;" "as they should," he wrote to his friend Davison, "and as I hope all those who betray their King and Country will, to be hanged, or dealt with as their sovereign sees fit." They were then placed on transports, which were anchored under the fleet's guns; in the end, many of them were executed.
For his action in this case Nelson has been severely blamed. The point at issue is perfectly simple, however it may be decided. Disregarding subordinate considerations, of which there are many, such as the motives which induced Ruffo and Foote to grant terms, and the question whether they would have been justified, which Nelson denied, in conceding them under any conditions, the matter reduces itself to this: When an agreement has been made, one of the parties to which is acting only as a representative, not as a principal, nor accredited for the specific purpose, has the principal, in person or by proxy, a right to annul the agreement, provided, as in this case, it has not passed into execution, either total or partial? Nelson admitted that the persons of the insurgents would have been entitled to the immunity stipulated, if they had already delivered up the castles. They had not done so; the flags of truce marked only a cessation of hostilities, not the completion of the transaction. By the terms, the evacuation and embarkation were to be simultaneous: "The evacuation shall not take place until the moment of embarkation." The status of the opponents was in no wise altered by a paper which had not begun to receive execution. The one important circumstance which had happened was the arrival of the British squadron, instead of Bruix's fleet which all were expecting. It was perfectly within Nelson's competence to stop the proceedings at the point they had then reached.
Nelson has faced heavy criticism for his actions in this situation. The issue at hand is quite straightforward, regardless of how it is resolved. Ignoring smaller factors, such as the motivations behind Ruffo and Foote agreeing to terms and whether they were justified in doing so—which Nelson disputed under any circumstances— the core question is: When an agreement has been made, and one party is acting solely as a representative, not as a principal or authorized for that specific purpose, does the principal, either personally or through a representative, have the right to void the agreement, as long as it hasn't been executed, either fully or partially? Nelson acknowledged that the insurgents would have been entitled to the agreed immunity if they had already surrendered the castles. They had not; the flags of truce only signified a halt in fighting, not the completion of the deal. According to the terms, evacuation and embarkation were to happen simultaneously: "The evacuation shall not take place until the moment of embarkation." The situation of the opposing forces was not changed by a document that had not begun to be executed. The key event that occurred was the arrival of the British squadron instead of Bruix's fleet, which everyone had expected. It was entirely within Nelson's authority to halt the proceedings at that stage.
[After writing the above, the author, by the courtesy of the Foreign Office, received a copy of Sir William Hamilton's despatch of July 14, 1799, giving his account of the events happening after June 20th, the date when Nelson left Palermo for Naples. In this occurs a statement which would seriously modify, if not altogether destroy, the justification of Nelson's conduct in annulling the capitulation, which rests upon the condition that it had not received any substantial execution. Hamilton says: "When we anchored in this Bay the 24th of June the capitulation of the castles had in some measure taken place.[83] Fourteen large Polacks or transport vessels had taken on board out of the castles the most conspicuous and criminal of the Neapolitan Rebels, that had chosen to go to Toulon, the others had already been permitted with their property to return to their own homes in this kingdom, and hostages selected from the first royalist nobility of Naples had been sent into the castle of St. Elmo that commands the city of Naples, and where a French garrison and the flag of the French Republic was to remain until the news of the arrival of the Neapolitan Rebels at Toulon.... There was no time to be lost, for the transport vessels were on the point of sailing for Toulon, when Lord Nelson ordered all the boats of his squadron to be manned and armed, and to bring those vessels, with all the Rebels on board, directly under the sterns of his ships, and there they remain, having taken out and secured on board His Majesty's ships the most guilty chiefs of the rebellion."
[After writing the above, the author, thanks to the Foreign Office, received a copy of Sir William Hamilton's dispatch from July 14, 1799, giving his account of the events that occurred after June 20, when Nelson left Palermo for Naples. In this account, there's a statement that would significantly change, if not completely undermine, the justification for Nelson's actions in canceling the capitulation, which is based on the idea that it hadn't been effectively carried out. Hamilton states: "When we anchored in this Bay on the 24th of June, the capitulation of the castles had somewhat taken place.[83] Fourteen large Polacks or transport vessels had taken on board the most prominent and culpable of the Neapolitan Rebels, who chose to go to Toulon; the others had already been allowed to return to their homes in this kingdom with their belongings, and hostages selected from the top royalist nobility of Naples had been sent into the castle of St. Elmo, which oversees the city of Naples, where a French garrison and the flag of the French Republic were meant to stay until news arrived of the Neapolitan Rebels in Toulon.... There was no time to waste, for the transport vessels were about to sail for Toulon, when Lord Nelson ordered all the boats of his squadron to be manned and armed, and to bring those vessels, with all the Rebels on board, directly to the sterns of his ships, where they remained, having taken out and secured on board His Majesty's ships the most guilty leaders of the rebellion."
Occurring in an official despatch, from a minister of Nelson's sovereign, his own warm personal friend and admirer, closely associated with him throughout the proceedings, and his colleague and adviser in much that was done, the words quoted, if they could stand accepted as an accurate statement of occurrences, would establish that Nelson had secured the persons of men who had surrendered on the faith of a treaty, and had held them, subject to the tender mercies of the King of the Two Sicilies. They were in his power (accepting Hamilton's statement), only because the King's Vicar-General, his representative so far as they knew, had guaranteed their safety if they came out of the castles. The least they were entitled to, in such case, was to be restored to the castles—not yet evacuated—to be placed as they were before surrendering. It is true that, as the terms of the treaty made embarkation and evacuation coincident, and as the latter had certainly not taken place, it may be argued that they had no claim to immunity when they had precipitated their action, and left the castle of their own motion before the formal evacuation and embarkation; but one would prefer not to rest on such a technical plea the justification of a character generally so upright in his public acts as Lord Nelson.
Occurring in an official dispatch from a minister of Nelson's sovereign, who was also his close personal friend and admirer, closely involved with him throughout the events, and his colleague and adviser in much of the actions taken, the quoted words, if accepted as an accurate account of what happened, would establish that Nelson had taken control of individuals who had surrendered based on a treaty and held them at the mercy of the King of the Two Sicilies. They were in his power (according to Hamilton's statement), only because the King’s Vicar-General, his representative as far as they knew, had guaranteed their safety if they came out of the castles. At the very least, they were entitled to be returned to the castles—not yet evacuated—to be placed back in their original position before surrendering. It is true that, since the terms of the treaty made embarkation and evacuation simultaneous, and since the latter had certainly not occurred, one could argue that they had no claim to immunity when they acted prematurely and left the castle of their own accord before the formal evacuation and embarkation; however, it would be better not to rely on such a technical argument to justify the actions of someone as generally honorable in his public dealings as Lord Nelson.
Fortunately for his fame, there is adequate reason to believe—to be assured—that Hamilton's despatch is very inaccurate in details, and specifically in this one, so damaging as it stands. The incident of arming the boats and bringing out the vessels took place, according to the log of the "Foudroyant," not when the fleet moored, on the morning of June 25th, or even shortly afterwards, but on the morning of the 28th; two days after the castles, as shown by the logs of both the "Foudroyant" and "Seahorse," surrendered and were taken possession of. Miss Helen Maria Williams, whose account of the affair was strongly tinged with sympathy for the revolutionists, says: "While the two garrisons, to the number of fifteen hundred, were waiting for the preparing and, provisioning of the vessels which were to convey them to France, Lord Nelson arrived with his whole fleet in the Bay of Naples [June 24-25]. On the evening of the twenty-sixth of June, the patriots evacuated their forts, and embarked on board the transports prepared for their conveyance to France. The next day [June 27], the transports were moored alongside the English fleet, each under the cannon of an English vessel."[84] These several witnesses may be confidently accepted, and prove that the embarkation and removal of the garrisons took place after Nelson's declaration to them, dated June 25th, in which he said "he would not permit them to embark or quit those places. They must surrender themselves to His Majesty's Royal mercy." Captain Foote, who had signed the capitulation that Nelson condemned, affords evidence which, though not conclusive, is corroborative of the above. Writing to Nelson at 7 A.M. of the 24th of June, fourteen hours before the fleet anchored, but only eight before he knew of its approach, he says: "the Republicans are about to embark," and again, "when the Capitulation is put into effect;" both which expressions show that up to that moment the agreement had not begun to receive execution. On the 22d of June Ruffo wrote to Foote that there were no vessels in Naples on which to embark the revolutionists, and requested him to furnish them; a request that Foote referred to Count Thurn, the senior Neapolitan naval officer, for compliance. It is therefore antecedently probable that the vessels could not have been collected from other ports, and prepared for an unexpected voyage of at least a week's duration, before Nelson arrived, forty-eight hours later.
Fortunately for his reputation, there is good reason to believe—indeed, to be certain—that Hamilton's report is quite inaccurate in its details, particularly in this damaging aspect. The incident of arming the boats and bringing out the vessels occurred, according to the log of the "Foudroyant," not when the fleet anchored on the morning of June 25th, or shortly after, but on the morning of the 28th; two days after the castles surrendered and were taken over, as shown by the logs of both the "Foudroyant" and "Seahorse." Miss Helen Maria Williams, whose account of the event showed notable sympathy for the revolutionaries, states: "While the two garrisons, numbering fifteen hundred, were waiting for the preparing and provisioning of the vessels that were to take them to France, Lord Nelson arrived with his entire fleet in the Bay of Naples [June 24-25]. On the evening of June 26th, the patriots evacuated their forts and boarded the transports prepared for their journey to France. The next day [June 27], the transports were moored alongside the English fleet, each under the guns of an English vessel."[84] These multiple witnesses can be confidently accepted, proving that the embarkation and removal of the garrisons took place after Nelson's declaration to them, dated June 25th, in which he stated "he would not allow them to embark or leave those places. They must surrender themselves to His Majesty's Royal mercy." Captain Foote, who signed the capitulation that Nelson condemned, provides evidence that, while not conclusive, supports the above. Writing to Nelson at 7 A.M. on June 24th, fourteen hours before the fleet anchored, but only eight before he was aware of its approach, he states: "the Republicans are about to embark," and again, "when the Capitulation is put into effect;" both expressions indicate that up to that moment the agreement had not started to be carried out. On June 22nd, Ruffo wrote to Foote that there were no vessels in Naples to embark the revolutionists and asked him to provide some; a request that Foote forwarded to Count Thurn, the senior Neapolitan naval officer, for action. It is therefore likely that the vessels could not have been gathered from other ports and prepared for an unexpected voyage of at least a week's duration before Nelson arrived, forty-eight hours later.
Hamilton's despatch contains another mistake, affecting the order of events, so circumstantial that, taken with the one just discussed, it shows his accuracy on such points was more than doubtful. "Admiral Caracciolo," he says, was hanged, "the day after the King's squadron came to Naples;" the fact being that the squadron arrived on the night of June 24-25, and that Caracciolo was executed on the evening of the 29th. This error was not a slip of the pen, for he characterizes the alleged fact as "so speedy an act of justice" as to elicit loud applause from the concourse of spectators surrounding the ship in boats.
Hamilton's report contains another mistake that affects the order of events so significantly that, combined with the previous error we just discussed, it casts doubt on his accuracy regarding these matters. He states that "Admiral Caracciolo" was hanged "the day after the King's squadron came to Naples," when in fact the squadron arrived on the night of June 24-25, and Caracciolo was executed on the evening of the 29th. This isn't just a slip of the pen; he describes the supposed event as "so speedy an act of justice" that it drew loud applause from the crowd of spectators in boats around the ship.
Hamilton was not only nearly seventy, but he was worn out in health and constitution. Writing a fortnight after the events, and having passed that time in the turmoil and confusion attending the re-establishment of order in Naples, it is not wonderful that he ran together incidents that happened in rapid succession, and failed to realize the importance which might afterwards attach to the date of their occurrence. "I am so worn out," he tells Greville, "by the long despatch I have been obliged to write to-day to Lord Grenville that I can scarcely hold my pen;" and again, "My head is so confused with long writing on this subject that I must refer you to my letter to Lord Grenville.... You will find me much worn and am little more than skin and bone, as I have very little stomach."
Hamilton was nearly seventy and completely worn out in both health and spirit. Writing two weeks after the events, and having spent that time dealing with the chaos of restoring order in Naples, it’s not surprising that he mixed up incidents that happened in quick succession and didn’t grasp the significance that the date of these events might later hold. "I am so exhausted," he tells Greville, "from the long dispatch I had to write today to Lord Grenville that I can barely hold my pen;" and again, "My head is so confused from all the writing on this topic that I have to point you to my letter to Lord Grenville.... You’ll find me very worn down and barely more than skin and bones, as I have very little appetite."
Although they were on board ship together, Nelson cannot have seen Hamilton's despatch, or he must have corrected a misstatement which directly contradicted his own account of June 27 to Lord Keith, as well as that he was sending by the same messenger, in a private letter to Earl Spencer. The latter ran thus: "Your Lordship will observe my Note (No. 1), and opinion to the Cardinal (No. 2). The Rebels came out of the Castles with this knowledge, without any honours, and the principal Rebels were seized and conducted on board the ships of the squadron. The others, embarked in fourteen polacres, were anchored under the care of our ships."
Although they were on the same ship, Nelson probably didn’t see Hamilton’s message; otherwise, he would have corrected a mistake that directly contradicted his own account from June 27 to Lord Keith, as well as in a private letter to Earl Spencer that he was sending with the same messenger. The private letter said: "Your Lordship will note my Note (No. 1) and my opinion to the Cardinal (No. 2). The Rebels came out of the Castles with this knowledge, without any honors, and the main Rebels were captured and taken on board the ships of the squadron. The others, who were on fourteen polacres, were anchored under the protection of our ships."
Hamilton's statement remaining uncorrected, and being so circumstantial, though erroneous, has made necessary a fuller discussion of the evidence on this point than otherwise might have been required.
Hamilton's statement, which has not been corrected and is so detailed, even though it's incorrect, has made it necessary to have a more in-depth discussion of the evidence on this point than would have otherwise been needed.
Although, in the author's judgment, Nelson acted within his right in disallowing the capitulation, it is essential to note that a fortnight later, when fully cognizant of all the circumstances, he characterized it in a letter to Lord Spencer as "infamous." "On my fortunate arrival here I found a most infamous treaty entered into with the Rebels, in direct disobedience of His Sicilian Majesty's orders."[85] Such an adjective, deliberately applied after the heat of the first moment had passed, is, in its injustice, a clear indication of the frame of mind under the domination of which he was. Captain Foote with his feeble squadron, and the commanders of the undisciplined mob ashore known as the Christian army, expected, as did Nelson himself, the appearance of the French fleet at Naples. In view of that possibility, it was at the least a pardonable error of judgment to concede terms which promised to transfer the castles speedily into their own hands. The most censurable part of the agreement was in the failure to exact the surrender of St. Elmo, which dominates the others. It is to be regretted that Captain Foote, who naturally and bitterly resented the word "infamous," did not, in his "Vindication," confine himself to this military argument, instead of mixing it up with talk about mercy to culprits and Nelson's infatuation for Lady Hamilton.]
Although, in the author's opinion, Nelson had the right to reject the surrender, it’s important to point out that two weeks later, when he fully understood all the details, he called it “infamous” in a letter to Lord Spencer. “When I arrived here, I found a most infamous treaty made with the Rebels, in direct disobedience of His Sicilian Majesty’s orders.”[85] Using such a strong word, especially after the initial emotions had settled, shows the mindset he was in. Captain Foote, with his weak squadron, and the leaders of the untrained group on land known as the Christian army, expected the French fleet to show up in Naples, just like Nelson did. Given that possibility, it was at least an understandable mistake to agree to terms that would quickly hand over the castles to them. The most blameworthy part of the deal was not demanding the surrender of St. Elmo, which oversees the others. It’s unfortunate that Captain Foote, who understandably and bitterly disliked the term “infamous,” didn’t stick to this military point in his “Vindication,” instead of mixing it with discussions about mercy for wrongdoers and Nelson's infatuation with Lady Hamilton.
On the 27th of June, the day following the surrender of Uovo and Nuovo, Troubridge landed with thirteen hundred men to besiege the French in St. Elmo, an undertaking in which he was joined by five hundred Russians and some royalists. Forty-eight hours later Nelson felt called upon, as representative of the King of the Two Sicilies, to take action more peremptory and extreme than anything he had hitherto done.
On June 27th, the day after Uovo and Nuovo surrendered, Troubridge arrived with 1,300 men to lay siege to the French in St. Elmo, supported by 500 Russians and some loyalists. Forty-eight hours later, Nelson felt compelled, as the representative of the King of the Two Sicilies, to take more forceful and drastic action than he had ever taken before.
On the 29th of June, Commodore Francesco Caracciolo, lately head of the Republican Navy, was brought on board the "Foudroyant," having been captured in the country, in disguise. This man had accompanied the royal family in their flight to Palermo; but after arrival there had obtained leave to return to Naples, in order to avert the confiscation of his property by the Republican government. He subsequently joined the Republicans, or Jacobins, as they were called by Nelson and the Court. His reasons for so doing are immaterial; they were doubtless perfectly sound from the point of view of apparent self-interest; the substantial fact remains that he commanded the insurgent vessels in action with the British and Royal Neapolitan navies, firing impartially upon both. In one of these engagements the Neapolitan frigate "Minerva" was struck several times, losing two men killed and four wounded. Caracciolo, therefore, had fully committed himself to armed insurrection, in company with foreign invaders, against what had hitherto been, and still claimed to be, the lawful government of the country. He had afterwards, as the republican cause declined, taken refuge with the other insurgents in the castles. When he left them is uncertain, but on the 23d of June he is known to have been outside of Naples, and so remained till captured.
On June 29th, Commodore Francesco Caracciolo, the former head of the Republican Navy, was taken aboard the "Foudroyant" after being captured while disguised and hiding in the countryside. He had fled with the royal family to Palermo, but after arriving, he got permission to return to Naples to avoid his property being seized by the Republican government. He later joined the Republicans, or Jacobins, as they were referred to by Nelson and the Court. His reasons for this decision don’t really matter; they were likely justified from a perspective of self-interest. The key point is that he commanded the rebel ships in battles against the British and Royal Neapolitan navies, firing equally on both sides. In one of these confrontations, the Neapolitan frigate "Minerva" was hit several times, resulting in two deaths and four injuries. Caracciolo had therefore fully committed himself to armed rebellion alongside foreign invaders against what was still considered the legitimate government of the country. As the republican cause weakened, he sought refuge with other insurgents in the castles. It’s unclear when he left them, but on June 23rd, he was known to be outside Naples and stayed there until his capture.
It is not easy to understand in what respect his case differed from that of other rebels who surrendered unconditionally, and whom Nelson did not try himself, but simply placed in safe keeping until the King's instructions should be received, except that, as a naval officer, he was liable to trial by court-martial, even though martial law had not been proclaimed. It was to such a tribunal that Nelson decided instantly to bring him. A court-martial of Neapolitan officers was immediately ordered to convene on board the "Foudroyant," the precept for the Court being sent to Count Thurn, captain of the "Minerva," who, because senior officer in the bay, was indicated by custom as the proper president. The charges, as worded by Nelson, were two in number, tersely and clearly stated. "Francisco Caracciolo, a commodore in the service of His Sicilian Majesty, stands accused of rebellion against his lawful sovereign, and for firing at his colours hoisted on board his Frigate, the Minerva." The court assembled at once, sitting from 10 A.M. to noon. The charges being found proved, sentence of death was pronounced; and Caracciolo, who had been brought on board at 9 A.M., was at 5 P.M., by Nelson's orders, hanged at the foreyard-arm of the "Minerva." He was forty-seven years old at the time of his death.
It’s not easy to see how his case was different from those of other rebels who surrendered without conditions and whom Nelson didn’t try himself, but just kept safe until the King’s instructions were given. The only difference was that, as a naval officer, he was subject to a court-martial, even though martial law hadn’t been declared. Nelson quickly decided to bring him to such a tribunal. A court-martial of Neapolitan officers was ordered to meet on board the "Foudroyant," with the notice for the court sent to Count Thurn, captain of the "Minerva," who, being the senior officer in the bay, was customarily chosen as the president. The charges, as stated by Nelson, were two, clearly and briefly put. "Francisco Caracciolo, a commodore in the service of His Sicilian Majesty, is accused of rebellion against his lawful sovereign and for firing at his colors displayed on board his frigate, the Minerva." The court met immediately, sitting from 10 A.M. to noon. The charges were found to be proven, and the death sentence was handed down; Caracciolo, who was brought on board at 9 A.M., was at 5 P.M., by Nelson’s orders, hanged at the foreyard-arm of the "Minerva." He was forty-seven years old at the time of his death.
The proceedings of the court-martial were open, but the record, if any was drawn up, has not been preserved. It is impossible, therefore, now to say whether the evidence sustained the charges; but the acts alleged were so simple and so notorious, that there can be little doubt Caracciolo had fairly incurred his fate. Even in our milder age, no officer of an army or navy would expect to escape the like punishment for the same offence; if he did, it would be because mercy prevailed over justice. As regards the technicalities of the procedure, it would seem probable that Nelson's full powers, especially when committed to a military man, included by fair inference, if not expressly, the right of ordering courts-martial; whereas he had not at hand the machinery of judges and civil courts, for proceeding against the civilians who had joined in the insurrection. Despite his fearlessness of responsibility, he was always careful not to overpass the legal limits of his authority, except when able to justify his action by what at least appeared to himself adequate reasons. The Portuguese squadron, for instance, was absolutely under his orders, so far as its movements went; but, when a case of flagrant misconduct occurred, he confined himself to regretting that he had not power to order a court. Anomalous as his position was in the Bay of Naples, before the arrival of the King, and regrettably uncertain as is the commission under which he acted, there is no ground for disputing that he had authority to order a court-martial, and to carry its sentence into execution, nor that Caracciolo came within the jurisdiction of a court-martial properly constituted. Having regard, therefore, to the unsettled conditions of things prevailing, no fatal irregularity can be shown either in the trial or execution of this prisoner.
The court-martial proceedings were public, but any record that might have been created has not been kept. Therefore, it's impossible to determine whether the evidence supported the charges; however, the actions accused were so straightforward and well-known that there's little doubt Caracciolo faced the consequences he deserved. Even in today's more lenient times, no military officer would expect to escape similar punishment for the same offense; if they did, it would be due to mercy outweighing justice. Regarding the legalities of the process, it's likely that Nelson's full powers, especially when given to a military figure, included the implicit right to order courts-martial; on the other hand, he did not have the resources of judges and civil courts to act against the civilians who participated in the uprising. Despite his willingness to take on responsibility, he was always cautious not to exceed the legal bounds of his authority, except when he could justify his actions with what he believed to be sufficient reasons. For example, the Portuguese squadron was completely under his command regarding its movements; however, when a serious misconduct issue arose, he could only express regret for not having the authority to convene a court. As unusual as his position was in the Bay of Naples before the King's arrival, and despite the regrettable ambiguity of the commission he operated under, there's no reason to dispute that he had the authority to order a court-martial and to enforce its verdict, nor that Caracciolo fell under the jurisdiction of a properly formed court-martial. Considering the unstable circumstances at the time, no significant irregularity can be proven in either the trial or execution of this prisoner.
But, while all this is true, the instinctive aversion with which this act of Nelson's has been regarded generally is well founded. It was not decent, for it was not necessary, that capture should be followed so rapidly by trial, and condemnation by execution. Neither time nor circumstances pressed. The insurrection was over. Except the siege of St. Elmo, hostilities near Naples were at an end. That Caracciolo's judges were naval officers who had recently been in action with him would be, with average military men, rather in the prisoner's favor than otherwise; but it was very far from being in his favor that they were men in whom the angry passions engendered by civil warfare, and licentious spoliation, had not yet had time to cool. Neither the judges nor the revising power allowed themselves space for reflection. Nelson himself failed to sustain the dispassionate and magnanimous attitude that befitted the admiral of a great squadron, so placed as to have the happy chance to moderate the excesses which commonly follow the triumph of parties in intestine strife. But, however he then or afterwards may have justified his course to his own conscience, his great offence was against his own people. To his secondary and factitious position of delegate from the King of Naples, he virtually sacrificed the consideration due to his inalienable character of representative of the King and State of Great Britain. He should have remembered that the act would appear to the world, not as that of the Neapolitan plenipotentiary, but of the British officer, and that his nation, while liable like others to bursts of unreasoning savagery, in its normal moods delights to see justice clothed in orderly forms, unstained by precipitation or suspicion of perversion, advancing to its ends with the majesty of law, without unseemly haste, providing things honest in the sight of all men. That he did not do so, when he could have done so, has been intuitively felt; and to the instinctive resentment thus aroused among his countrymen has been due the facility with which the worst has been too easily believed.
But while all this is true, the strong dislike with which Nelson's actions have generally been viewed is justified. It wasn’t appropriate, especially since it wasn’t necessary, for capture to be quickly followed by trial, and then by execution. There was no pressure of time or circumstances. The uprising was over. Except for the siege of St. Elmo, fighting near Naples had come to an end. The fact that Caracciolo's judges were naval officers who had recently engaged in battle with him might have seemed advantageous for the prisoner among average military personnel; however, it did not help his case that they were men who had not yet had the chance to cool down from the anger and chaos of civil war. Neither the judges nor the reviewing authority took the time to reflect. Nelson, too, failed to maintain the calm and noble stance that was expected of him as the admiral of a large squadron—especially one that had the fortunate opportunity to temper the excesses that typically follow the victory of factions in civil conflict. But no matter how he justified his actions to his own conscience then or later, his major wrongdoing was against his own people. By taking on the secondary and artificial role of delegate from the King of Naples, he essentially sacrificed the respect that was due to him as a representative of the King and State of Great Britain. He should have remembered that his actions would be seen globally, not as those of the Neapolitan plenipotentiary, but of the British officer. His nation, while being prone like others to moments of irrational savagery, generally prefers to see justice administered in orderly ways, free from haste or any hint of corruption, and proceeding with the dignity of the law, ensuring things are done fairly in everyone’s view. The fact that he did not do this when he had the chance has been deeply felt, and the instinctive anger that arose among his fellow countrymen made it easy for the worst interpretations to take hold.
Commander Jeaffreson Miles of the British Navy, writing in 1843, was one of the first, if not the very first, to clear effectually Nelson's reputation from the stigma of treachery, and of submission to unworthy influences, at this time. He has sought also to vindicate his hasty action in Caracciolo's case, by citing the swift execution of two seamen by Lord St. Vincent, at a time when mutiny was threatening. It cannot be denied that, for deterrent effect, punishment at times must be sudden as well as sharp; but the justification in each case rests upon attendant circumstances. In the instances here compared, we have in the one a fleet in which many ships were seething with mutiny, and the preservation of order rested solely upon the firmness of one man,—the commander-in-chief,—and upon the awe inspired by him. In the other, we see rebellion subdued, the chief rebels in confinement, the foreign enemy, except three small isolated garrisons, expelled beyond the borders of the kingdom six weeks before, and a great British fleet in possession of the anchorage. Punishment in such case, however just, is not deterrent, but avenging. True, Nelson was expecting the appearance of Bruix's fleet; but he himself characterized as "infamous" the capitulation granted by Ruffo and Foote, to which they were largely moved by the same expectation, when wielding a much smaller force than he did. The possible approach of the French fleet did not necessitate the hasty execution of a prisoner.
Commander Jeaffreson Miles of the British Navy, writing in 1843, was one of the first, if not the very first, to effectively clear Nelson's name from the stigma of treachery and submission to unworthy influences at that time. He also aimed to defend Nelson's quick decision in Caracciolo's case by referencing the swift execution of two sailors by Lord St. Vincent when mutiny was looming. It cannot be denied that, for preventive reasons, punishment must sometimes be swift and severe; however, the justification in each case relies on the surrounding circumstances. In the examples being compared, one shows a fleet where many ships were rife with mutiny, and maintaining order depended solely on the resolve of one man—the commander-in-chief—and the respect he commanded. In the other case, rebellion was quelled, the main rebels were imprisoned, the foreign enemy, apart from three small isolated garrisons, had been pushed out of the kingdom six weeks prior, and a large British fleet controlled the anchorage. Punishment in such a situation, no matter how justified, is not deterrent but vengeful. Indeed, Nelson was anticipating the arrival of Bruix's fleet, but he labeled the surrender granted by Ruffo and Foote as "infamous," a choice they made largely due to the same expectation while commanding a much smaller force than he did. The potential arrival of the French fleet did not justify the rushed execution of a prisoner.
That Nelson yielded his convictions of right and wrong, and consciously abused his power, at the solicitation of Lady Hamilton, as has been so freely alleged, is not probably true,—there is no proof of it; on the contrary, as though to guard against such suspicion, he was careful to see none but his own officers during Caracciolo's confinement. But it is true that he was saturated with the prevalent Court feeling against the insurgents and the French, which found frequent expression in his letters. After living in the Hamiltons' house for four months, during which, to use his own expression, "I have never but three times put my foot to the ground, since December, 1798," in daily close contact with the woman who had won his passionate love, who was the ardent personal friend of the Queen, sharing her antipathies, and expressing her hatred of enemies in terms which showed the coarseness of her fibre,[86] Nelson was steeped in the atmosphere of the Court of Naples, and separated from that of the British fleet, none of whose strongest captains were long with him during that period. The attitude more natural to men of his blood is shown in a letter signed by the officers of the "Leviathan," Duckworth's flagship. Coming from Minorca, they were out of touch with Neapolitan fury, and they addressed Lady Hamilton, interceding for a family engaged in the rebellion; a fact which shows the prevailing impression—whether well founded or not—of the influence in her power to exert. "We all feel ourselves deeply impressed with the horrid crime of disaffection to one's lawful sovereign, ... but when we consider the frailty of human nature," &c. "Advise those Neapolitans not to be too sanguinary," wrote Keith to Nelson, apparently immediately after receiving the news of Caracciolo's hanging.
That Nelson gave up his beliefs about right and wrong and abused his power at the request of Lady Hamilton, as has been widely claimed, is probably not true—there's no evidence to support it; on the flip side, to guard against such suspicion, he was careful to only see his own officers while Caracciolo was held. However, it’s true that he was deeply influenced by the Court's widespread animosity towards the insurgents and the French, which often showed up in his letters. After living in the Hamiltons' house for four months, during which he said, "I have barely touched the ground since December 1798," he was in daily close contact with the woman he loved passionately, who was a close personal friend of the Queen, sharing her dislikes and voicing her hatred for enemies in ways that revealed her coarse nature. Nelson was immersed in the atmosphere of the Court of Naples and disconnected from that of the British fleet, which lacked many of its strongest captains during that time. The more natural attitude of men like him is reflected in a letter signed by the officers of the "Leviathan," Duckworth's flagship. Coming from Minorca, they were out of touch with the Neapolitan rage and wrote to Lady Hamilton, asking her to intercede for a family involved in the rebellion; this shows the common belief—whether accurate or not—of her ability to influence things. "We are all deeply troubled by the horrid crime of disloyalty to one's rightful sovereign... but when we consider the frailty of human nature," etc. "Advise those Neapolitans not to be too bloodthirsty," Keith wrote to Nelson, seemingly right after hearing about Caracciolo's execution.
The abrupt execution of Caracciolo was an explosion of fierce animosity long cherished, pardonable perhaps in a Neapolitan royalist, but not in a foreign officer only indirectly interested in the issues at stake; and hence it is that the fate of that one sufferer has aroused more attention and more sympathy than that of the numerous other victims, put to death by the King's command after ordinary processes of law. It stands conspicuous as the act of an English officer imbued with the spirit of a Neapolitan Bourbon official. "Could it ever happen," he wrote to Acton, some months after this, "that any English minister wanted to make me an instrument of hurting the feelings of His Sicilian Majesty, I would give up my commission sooner than do it.... I am placed in such a situation—a subject of one King by birth, and, as far as is consistent with my allegiance to that King, a voluntary subject of His Sicilian Majesty—that if any man attempted to separate my two Kings, by all that is sacred, I should consider even putting that man to death as a meritorious act."[87] On the other hand, it must be considered that Nelson, though humane, tended even in his calmest moments to severity towards military offenders. Writing with reference to a captain convicted of misbehavior before the enemy, he said, "If a man does not do his utmost in time of action, I think but one punishment ought to be inflicted;" and it may be inferred that he would have approved Byng's execution, where cowardice was not proved, but grave military dereliction was.
The sudden execution of Caracciolo was a burst of intense resentment that had been building for a long time, which might be excused in a Neapolitan royalist, but not in a foreign officer who had only a slight interest in the matters at hand. Because of this, the fate of that one victim has drawn more attention and sympathy than the many other victims executed by the King's orders after regular legal processes. It stands out as the action of an English officer shaped by the mindset of a Neapolitan Bourbon official. "If it were ever the case," he wrote to Acton a few months later, "that any English minister wanted to make me an instrument of offending His Sicilian Majesty, I would resign my commission rather than do it.... I find myself in a situation—a subject of one King by birth, and, as much as my loyalty to that King allows, a voluntary subject of His Sicilian Majesty—that if anyone tried to separate my two Kings, by everything that is sacred, I would consider even killing that man a commendable act."[87] On the other hand, it should be noted that Nelson, while compassionate, tended to be harsh towards military offenders even during his calmest moments. Referring to a captain found guilty of misbehavior in front of the enemy, he stated, "If a man does not give his all in battle, I believe only one punishment should be given;" and it could be inferred that he would have supported Byng's execution, where cowardice was not proven, but serious military negligence was.
On the 10th of July the King of the Two Sicilies arrived from Palermo in the Bay of Naples, and went on board the "Foudroyant," which, for the whole time he remained,—about four weeks,—became practically his seat of government. There the royal standard was hoisted, there the King held his levees, and there business of State was transacted. In and through all moved the figures of Sir William and Lady Hamilton, the latter considering herself, and not without cause, the representative of the Queen. The latter had remained in Palermo, being out of favor with the Neapolitans, and with her husband, who attributed to her precipitancy the disasters of the previous December. The two women corresponded daily; and, if the minister's wife deceived herself as to the amount and importance of what she effected, there is no doubt that she was very busy, that she was commonly believed to exert much influence, and that great admiration for one another was expressed by herself, Hamilton, and Nelson, the "Tria juncta in uno" as the latter was pleased to style them. "I never saw such zeal and activity in any one as in this wonderful man [Nelson]," wrote she to Greville. "My dearest Sir William, thank God! is well, and of the greatest use now to the King." "Emma has been of infinite use in our late very critical business," said Hamilton to the same correspondent. "Ld. Nelson and I cou'd not have done without her. It will be a heart-breaking to the Queen of N. when we go"—back to England, as was then expected. "Sir William and Lady Hamilton are, to my great comfort, with me," wrote Nelson to Spencer; "for without them it would have been impossible I could have rendered half the service to his Majesty which I have now done: their heads and their hearts are equally great and good."
On July 10, the King of the Two Sicilies arrived from Palermo in the Bay of Naples and boarded the "Foudroyant," which became his de facto seat of government for about four weeks. The royal standard was raised there, the King held his receptions there, and state business was conducted there. Moving in and out of this setting were Sir William and Lady Hamilton, the latter believing herself—justifiably so—to be the representative of the Queen. The Queen stayed behind in Palermo, having fallen out of favor with the Neapolitans and her husband, who blamed her impulsiveness for the disasters of the previous December. The two women wrote to each other daily; even if the minister's wife misjudged the significance of her efforts, it was clear she was very active, widely believed to have considerable influence, and that great admiration between her, Hamilton, and Nelson—whom she referred to as the "Tria juncta in uno"—was expressed. "I’ve never seen such zeal and activity in anyone as in this amazing man [Nelson]," she wrote to Greville. "My dearest Sir William is well and of great help to the King." "Emma has been incredibly useful in our recent critical matters," Hamilton shared with the same correspondent. "Lord Nelson and I couldn't have managed without her. It will break the Queen's heart when we leave"—back to England, as was expected at the time. "Sir William and Lady Hamilton are, to my great comfort, with me," Nelson wrote to Spencer; "without them, I wouldn't have been able to provide half the service to His Majesty that I have now done: their minds and hearts are equally remarkable and commendable."
The execution of Caracciolo was shortly followed by another very singular incident, which showed how biassed Nelson had become towards the interests of the Neapolitan Court, and how exclusively he identified them—confused them, would scarcely be too strong a word—with the essential interests of the Allied cause and the duties of the British Navy. On the 13th of July the castle of St. Elmo was surrendered by the French, the whole city of Naples thus returning under the royal authority. On the same day, or the next, Troubridge, with a thousand of the best men that could be sent from the squadron, marched against Capua, accompanied by four thousand troops. A letter had already been received from the Commander-in-chief, Keith, to Nelson, intimating that it might be necessary to draw down his vessels from Naples to the defence of Minorca. "Should such an order come at this moment," wrote Nelson to the First Lord, forecasting his probable disobedience, "it would be a cause for some consideration whether Minorca is to be risked, or the two Kingdoms of Naples and Sicily? I rather think my decision would be to risk the former;" and he started Troubridge off with a detachment that seriously crippled the squadron. Capua is fifteen to twenty miles inland from Naples.
The execution of Caracciolo was soon followed by another unusual event that showed how biased Nelson had become towards the interests of the Neapolitan Court and how completely he identified—almost confused—their interests with the core interests of the Allied cause and the responsibilities of the British Navy. On July 13th, the French surrendered the castle of St. Elmo, resulting in the entire city of Naples returning to royal authority. On the same day, or the following one, Troubridge, with a thousand of the best men he could gather from the squadron, marched against Capua, supported by four thousand troops. A letter had already arrived from the Commander-in-chief, Keith, to Nelson, indicating that it might be necessary to pull his ships from Naples to defend Minorca. "If such an order arrives at this moment," Nelson wrote to the First Lord, anticipating his likely disobedience, "it would require some thought about whether to risk Minorca or the two Kingdoms of Naples and Sicily. I think I would lean towards risking the former;" and he sent Troubridge off with a detachment that significantly weakened the squadron. Capua is fifteen to twenty miles inland from Naples.
On the 13th—it is to be presumed after closing his letter to Spencer just quoted—an order reached him from Keith, in these words: "Events which have recently occurred render it necessary that as great a force as can be collected should be assembled near the island of Minorca; therefore, if your Lordship has no detachment of the French squadron in the neighbourhood of Sicily, nor information of their having sent any force towards Egypt or Syria, you are hereby required and directed to send such ships as you can possibly spare off the island of Minorca to wait my orders." The wording was so elastic, as regards the numbers to be sent, as to leave much to Nelson's judgment, and he replied guardedly the same day: "As soon as the safety of His Sicilian Majesty's Kingdoms is secured, I shall not lose one moment in making the detachment you are pleased to order. At present, under God's Providence, the safety of His Sicilian Majesty, and his speedy restoration to his kingdom, depends on this fleet, and the confidence inspired even by the appearance of our ships before the city is beyond all belief; and I have no scruple in declaring my opinion that should any event draw us from the kingdom, that if the French remain in any part of it, disturbances will again arise, for all order having been completely overturned, it must take a thorough cleansing, and some little time, to restore tranquillity."
On the 13th—it can be assumed after finishing his letter to Spencer just mentioned—he received an order from Keith, stating: "Recent events make it necessary for us to gather as large a force as possible near the island of Minorca; therefore, if you don’t have a detachment of the French squadron nearby in Sicily, or any information about them sending forces to Egypt or Syria, you are required to send any ships you can spare off the island of Minorca to await my orders." The wording was flexible regarding the number of ships to be sent, leaving a lot to Nelson's discretion, and he responded cautiously the same day: "As soon as the safety of His Sicilian Majesty’s Kingdoms is assured, I won't hesitate to comply with your order. Right now, under God’s Providence, the safety of His Sicilian Majesty and his quick return to his kingdom relies on this fleet, and the confidence inspired by the mere presence of our ships in front of the city is incredible; I firmly believe that if any situation arises that takes us away from the kingdom, and if the French remain anywhere within it, disturbances will start again. With all order completely disrupted, it will take a thorough cleansing and some time to restore peace."
When Keith wrote this first order, June 27, he was at sea somewhere between Minorca and Toulon, trying to find Bruix's fleet, of which he had lost touch three weeks before, at the time he sent to Nelson the two seventy-fours, whose arrival caused the latter's second cruise of Maritimo. He had lost touch through a false step, the discussion of which has no place in a life of Nelson, beyond the remark that it was Keith's own error, not that of Lord St. Vincent, as Nelson afterwards mistakenly alleged; querulously justifying his own disobedience on the ground that Keith, by obeying against his judgment, had lost the French fleet. What is to be specially noted in the order is that Keith gave no account of his reasons, nor of the events which dictated them, nor of his own intended action. No room is afforded by his words for any discretion, except as to the number of ships to be sent by Nelson, and, though the language of the latter was evasive, the failure to move even a single vessel was an act of unjustifiable disobedience. To Keith he wrote privately, and in a conciliatory spirit, but nothing that made his act less flagrant. "To all your wishes, depend on it, I shall pay the very strictest attention."
When Keith wrote this first order on June 27, he was at sea somewhere between Minorca and Toulon, trying to locate Bruix's fleet, which he had lost track of three weeks earlier, when he had sent the two seventy-fours to Nelson. Their arrival had prompted Nelson's second cruise of Maritimo. He had lost contact due to a misstep, the discussion of which doesn't belong in a biography of Nelson, except to note that it was Keith's mistake, not Lord St. Vincent's, as Nelson later wrongly claimed; he defensively justified his own disobedience by arguing that Keith's compliance against his better judgment resulted in the loss of the French fleet. What is especially noteworthy in the order is that Keith didn't explain his reasons, the events that led to them, or his intended actions. His words left no room for discretion, except regarding the number of ships Nelson should send, and although Nelson's language was vague, not sending even a single vessel was an act of unacceptable disobedience. Keith wrote to him privately and in a conciliatory tone, but nothing made his actions less egregious. "To all your wishes, depend on it, I shall pay the very strictest attention."
Conscious of the dangerous step he was taking, Nelson wrote on the same day, by private letter,[88] to the First Lord of the Admiralty. "You will easily conceive my feelings," he said, "but my mind, your Lordship will know, was perfectly prepared for this order; and more than ever is my mind made up, that, at this moment, I will not part with a single ship, as I cannot do that without drawing a hundred and twenty men from each ship now at the siege of Capua, where an army is gone this day. I am fully aware of the act I have committed; but, sensible of my loyal intentions, I am prepared for any fate which may await my disobedience. Do not think that my opinion is formed from the arrangements of any one," an expression which shows that he was aware how talk was running. "No; be it good, or be it bad, it is all my own. It is natural I should wish the decision of the Admiralty and my Commander-in-chief as speedily as possible. To obtain the former, I beg your Lordship's interest with the Board. You know me enough, my dear Lord, to be convinced I want no screen to my conduct."
Aware of the risky move he was making, Nelson wrote the same day, in a private letter,[88] to the First Lord of the Admiralty. "You can easily imagine how I feel," he said, "but you know, my Lord, that I was completely ready for this order; and more than ever, I am determined that, right now, I will not give up a single ship, as doing so would mean pulling a hundred and twenty men from each ship currently at the siege of Capua, where an army has just set out today. I’m fully aware of the action I’ve taken; however, knowing my loyal intentions, I'm prepared for any consequences that may come from my disobedience. Don't think my opinion is influenced by anyone else," which indicates that he was conscious of the gossip circulating. "No; whether it’s good or bad, it’s entirely my own. Naturally, I want the decision of the Admiralty and my Commander-in-chief as soon as possible. To get the former, I ask for your Lordship's support with the Board. You know me well enough, my dear Lord, to be confident that I don't need to hide my actions."
On the 9th of July, Keith wrote again, from Port Mahon, a letter which Nelson received on the 19th. He said that he was satisfied that the enemy's intentions were directed neither against the Two Sicilies, nor to the reinforcement of their army in Egypt; that, on the contrary, there was reason to believe they were bound out of the Straits. "I judge it necessary that all, or the greatest part of the force under your Lordship's orders, should quit the Island of Sicily, and repair to Minorca, for the purpose of protecting that Island during the necessary absence of His Majesty's squadron under my command, or for the purpose of co-operating with me against the combined force of the enemy, wherever it may be necessary." The commander-in-chief, in short, wished to mass his forces, for the necessities of the general campaign, as he considered them. Nelson now flatly refused obedience, on the ground of the local requirements in his part of the field. "Your Lordship, at the time of sending me the order, was not informed of the change of affairs in the Kingdom of Naples, and that all our marines and a body of seamen are landed, in order to drive the French scoundrels out of the Kingdom, which, with God's blessing will very soon be effected, when a part of this squadron shall be immediately sent to Minorca; but unless the French are at least drove from Capua, I think it right not to obey your Lordship's order for sending down any part of the squadron under my orders. I am perfectly aware of the consequences of disobeying the orders of my commander-in-chief." It cannot be said that the offensiveness of the act of disobedience is tempered by any very conciliatory tone in the words used. The reason for disobedience makes matters rather worse. "As I believe the safety of the Kingdom of Naples depends at the present moment on my detaining the squadron, I have no scruple in deciding that it is better to save the Kingdom of Naples and risk Minorca, than to risk the Kingdom of Naples to save Minorca." When he thus wrote, Nelson knew that Bruix had joined the Spanish fleet in Cartagena, making a combined force of forty ships, to which Keith, after stripping Minorca, could oppose thirty-one.
On July 9th, Keith wrote again from Port Mahon, and Nelson received the letter on the 19th. He expressed that he was convinced the enemy's intentions were not aimed at the Two Sicilies or aimed at reinforcing their army in Egypt; rather, there was reason to believe they were leaving the Straits. "I think it essential that all, or most of the force under your Lordship's orders, should leave the Island of Sicily and go to Minorca to protect that Island during the necessary absence of His Majesty's squadron under my command, or to work with me against the combined force of the enemy, wherever necessary." The commander-in-chief, in summary, wanted to consolidate his forces for the overall campaign as he saw fit. Nelson now outright refused to obey, citing local needs in his area. "Your Lordship, when sending me the order, was unaware of the changes in the Kingdom of Naples, and that all our marines and a group of seamen have landed to drive the French scoundrels out of the Kingdom, which, with God's blessing, will soon be accomplished when part of this squadron is immediately sent to Minorca; but unless the French are at least driven from Capua, I believe it is right not to follow your Lordship's order to send down any part of the squadron under my command. I fully understand the consequences of disobeying my commander-in-chief's orders." It can't be said that the offensive nature of his disobedience is softened by any conciliatory tone in his words. The justification for disobedience makes things even worse. "Since I believe the safety of the Kingdom of Naples relies on my holding the squadron, I have no hesitation in deciding that it is better to protect the Kingdom of Naples and risk Minorca, than to endanger the Kingdom of Naples to save Minorca." When he wrote this, Nelson knew that Bruix had joined the Spanish fleet in Cartagena, forming a combined force of forty ships, against which Keith, after depleting Minorca, could only oppose thirty-one.
None of Nelson's letters reached Keith until long after he had left the Mediterranean, which probably prevented the matter being brought to a direct issue between the two, such as would have compelled the Admiralty to take some decisive action. On the 10th of July the commander-in-chief sailed from Port Mahon for Cartagena, following on the tracks of the allied fleets, which he pursued into the Atlantic and to Brest, where they succeeded in entering on the 13th of August, just twenty-four hours before the British came up. The narrow margin of this escape inevitably suggests the thought, of how much consequence might have been the co-operation of the dozen ships Nelson could have brought. It is true, certainly, as matters turned out, that even had he obeyed, they could not have accompanied Keith, nor in the event did any harm come to Minorca; but there was no knowledge in Nelson's possession that made an encounter between the two great fleets impossible, nor was it till three days after his former refusal to obey, that he knew certainly that Keith had given up all expectation of a junction with himself. Then, on the 22d of July, he received two letters dated the 14th, and couched in tones so peremptory as to suggest a suspicion that no milder words would enforce obedience—that his Commander-in-chief feared that nothing short of cast-iron orders would drag him away from the Neapolitan Court. "Your Lordship is hereby required and directed to repair to Minorca, with the whole, or the greater part, of the force under your Lordship's command, for the protection of that island, as I shall, in all probability, have left the Mediterranean before your Lordship will receive this. Keith." The second letter of the same date ended with the words: "I therefore trust the defence of Minorca to your Lordship, and repeat my directions that the ships be sent for its protection." On the receipt of these, though Capua had not yet surrendered, Nelson at once sent Duckworth with four ships-of-the-line to Minorca, detaining only their marines for the land operations.
None of Nelson's letters reached Keith until well after he had left the Mediterranean, which probably prevented the issue from being directly addressed between the two, an action that would have forced the Admiralty to take decisive steps. On July 10, the commander-in-chief set sail from Port Mahon to Cartagena, following the allied fleets, which he chased into the Atlantic and to Brest, where they successfully arrived on August 13, just twenty-four hours before the British ships appeared. The narrow margin of this escape inevitably raises the question of how significant the cooperation of the dozen ships Nelson could have provided might have been. It is certainly true that, as events turned out, even if he had complied, they could not have joined Keith, and in the end, no harm came to Minorca; however, Nelson had no knowledge that made an encounter between the two powerful fleets impossible, and it wasn’t until three days after his earlier refusal to comply that he learned for sure that Keith had given up all hope of joining forces with him. Then, on July 22, he received two letters dated the 14th, written in such urgent tones that they suggested a suspicion that no gentler words would ensure compliance—that his Commander-in-chief worried that only strict orders would pull him away from the Neapolitan Court. "Your Lordship is hereby required and directed to repair to Minorca, with the whole, or the greater part, of the force under your Lordship's command, for the protection of that island, as I shall, in all probability, have left the Mediterranean before your Lordship receives this. Keith." The second letter of the same date concluded with the words: "I therefore trust the defence of Minorca to your Lordship, and repeat my directions that the ships be sent for its protection." Upon receiving these letters, although Capua had not yet surrendered, Nelson immediately sent Duckworth with four ships-of-the-line to Minorca, keeping only their marines for land operations.
It seems scarcely necessary to say that, while an officer in subordinate command should have the moral courage to transcend or override his orders in particular instances—each of which rests upon its own merits, and not upon any general rule that can be formulated—it would be impossible for military operations to be carried on at all, if the commander-in-chief were liable to be deliberately defied and thwarted in his combinations, as Keith was in this case. It does not appear that Nelson knew the circumstances which Keith was considering; he only knew what the conditions were about Naples, and he thought that the settlement of the kingdom might be prevented by the departure of several of his ships. In this opinion, in the author's judgment, his views were exaggerated, and colored by the absorbing interest he had come to take in the royal family and their fortunes, linked as these were with the affections of a particular woman; but, even granting that his apprehensions were well founded, he was taking upon himself to determine, not merely what was best for the Kingdom of the Two Sicilies, but what was best for the whole Mediterranean command. It was not within his province to decide whether Minorca or Naples was the more important. That was the function of the commander-in-chief. Had the latter, while leaving Nelson's force unchanged, directed him to follow a particular line of operations in the district committed to him, it is conceivable that circumstances, unknown to his superior, might have justified him in choosing another; but there was nothing in the conditions that authorized his assumption that he could decide for the whole command. And this is not the less true, because Nelson was in the general a man of far sounder judgment and keener insight than Keith, or because his intuitions in the particular instance were more accurate, as they possibly were. He defended his course on the ground, so frequently and so erroneously taken, that his intentions were right. "I am so confident," he wrote to the Admiralty, "of the uprightness of my intentions for his Majesty's service, and for that of his Sicilian Majesty, which I consider as the same, that, with all respect, I submit myself to the judgment of my superiors." Four years later, in 1803, he used the following singular expressions concerning his conduct at this period: "I paid more attention to another sovereign than my own; therefore the King of Naples' gift of Bronté to me, if it is not now settled to my advantage, and to be permanent, has cost me a fortune, and a great deal of favour which I might have enjoyed, and jealousy which I should have avoided. I repine not on those accounts. I did my duty, to the Sicilifying my own conscience, and I am easy."[89] "As I have often before risked my life for the good cause," he told his old friend the Duke of Clarence, "so I with cheerfulness did my commission: for although a military tribunal may think me criminal, the world will approve my conduct." With such convictions, he might, if condemned, as he almost inevitably must have been, have met his fate with the cheerfulness of a clear conscience; but no military tribunal can possibly accept a man's conscience as the test of obedience.
It hardly needs stating that, while a junior officer should have the moral courage to go beyond or ignore his orders in specific situations—each case having its own merits and not fitting into a general rule—it would be impossible for military operations to succeed if the commander-in-chief could be openly challenged and disrupted in his strategies, as happened with Keith in this instance. It seems Nelson did not fully understand the circumstances Keith was considering; he was only aware of the situation around Naples and believed that the departure of several of his ships could prevent a resolution of the kingdom. In the author’s view, Nelson’s concerns were exaggerated and influenced by his deep interest in the royal family and their fates, which were tied to a specific woman’s affections. Even if his worries were valid, he was assuming the responsibility to determine not just what was best for the Kingdom of the Two Sicilies, but for the entire Mediterranean command. It wasn’t his place to decide whether Minorca or Naples was more crucial; that was the commander-in-chief’s role. Had the latter instructed Nelson to pursue a specific course of action in his assigned area while keeping Nelson's force unchanged, it’s conceivable that unknown circumstances might have justified Nelson in choosing differently; however, there was nothing in the conditions that allowed him to assume he could make decisions for the entire command. This holds true even if Nelson was generally a man of much better judgment and insight than Keith, or if his intuitions in this case were indeed more accurate. He defended his actions on the frequently mistaken grounds that his intentions were right. "I am so confident," he wrote to the Admiralty, "of the righteousness of my intentions for His Majesty's service, and for that of His Sicilian Majesty, which I see as the same, that, with all due respect, I submit myself to the judgment of my superiors." Four years later, in 1803, he expressed this unique sentiment regarding his actions at that time: "I paid more attention to another sovereign than my own; thus, the King of Naples’ gift of Bronté to me, if it’s not now resolved to my advantage and made permanent, has cost me a fortune and a significant amount of favor I might have enjoyed, along with jealousy I could have avoided. I don’t regret those things. I did my duty to satisfy my own conscience, and I am at peace." "As I have often before risked my life for the right cause," he told his old friend the Duke of Clarence, "I gladly carried out my mission: for while a military tribunal may see me as guilty, the world will support my actions." With such beliefs, he might have faced a guilty verdict, which he almost certainly would have received, with the calmness of a clear conscience; but no military tribunal could ever accept a man’s conscience as proof of obedience.
The Admiralty, who had sent Keith out knowing that St. Vincent, after three arduous years, meant soon to retire, could not of course acquiesce in Nelson's thus overriding the man they had chosen to be his commander-in-chief. "Their Lordships do not, from any information now before them, see sufficient reason to justify your having disobeyed the orders you had received from your Commanding Officer, or having left Minorca exposed to the risk of being attacked, without having any naval force to protect it." To this measured rebuke was added some common-sense counsel upon the pernicious practice of jeopardizing the personnel of a fleet, the peculiar trained force so vitally necessary, and so hard to replace, in petty operations on shore. "Although in operations on the sea-coast, it may frequently be highly expedient to land a part of the seamen of the squadron, to co-operate with and to assist the army, when the situation will admit of their being immediately re-embarked, if the squadron should be called away to act elsewhere [as Keith had called it], or if information of the approach of an enemy's fleet should be received,—yet their Lordships by no means approve of the seamen being landed to form a part of an army to be employed in operations at a distance from the coast, where, if they should have the misfortune to be defeated, they might be prevented from returning to the ships, and the squadron be thereby rendered so defective, as to be no longer capable of performing the services required of it; and I have their Lordships' commands to signify their directions to your Lordship not to employ the seamen in like manner in future."
The Admiralty, who had sent Keith out knowing that St. Vincent, after three tough years, was about to retire, couldn't agree with Nelson disregarding the man they had chosen to be his commander-in-chief. "Their Lordships do not, based on the information currently available to them, see sufficient reason to justify your disobeying the orders you received from your Commanding Officer, or leaving Minorca vulnerable to the risk of attack without any naval force to protect it." To this measured reprimand was added some sensible advice regarding the harmful practice of endangering the personnel of a fleet, the specially trained force that is crucial and hard to replace for minor operations on land. "While it may often be necessary to land some of the squadron's sailors to support the army during operations along the coast, particularly when they can be immediately brought back if called to act elsewhere [as Keith had done], or if news comes in about an enemy fleet approaching—however, their Lordships do not approve of sailors being landed to become part of an army engaged in operations far from the coast, where, if they happen to face defeat, they might struggle to return to the ships, ultimately leaving the squadron unable to fulfill the services required of it; and I have their Lordships' instructions to convey their direction to you not to employ the sailors in this manner in the future."
It was evident that the Admiralty did not fully share Nelson's attachment to the royal house of Naples, nor consider the service of the King of the Two Sicilies the same as that of the King of Great Britain. Earl Spencer's private letter, while careful of Nelson's feelings, left no room to doubt that he was entirely at one with his colleagues in their official opinion. Nelson winced and chafed under the double rebuke, but he was not in a condition to see clearly any beams in his own eye. "I observe with great pain that their Lordships see no cause which could justify my disobeying the orders of my commanding officer, Lord Keith;" but the motives he again alleges are but the repetition of those already quoted. He fails wholly to realize that convictions which would justify a man in going to a martyr's fate may be wholly inadequate to sap the fundamental military obligation of obedience. "My conduct is measured by the Admiralty, by the narrow rule of law, when I think it should have been done by that of common sense. I restored a faithful ally by breach of orders; Lord Keith lost a fleet by obedience against his own sense. Yet as one is censured the other must be approved. Such things are." As a matter of fact, as before said, it was by departing from St. Vincent's orders that Keith lost the French fleet. Nor did Nelson's mind work clearly on the subject. Thwarted and fretted as he continually was by the too common, almost universal, weakness, which deters men from a bold initiative, from assuming responsibility, from embracing opportunity, he could not draw the line between that and an independence of action which would convert unity of command into anarchy. "Much as I approve of strict obedience to orders, yet to say that an officer is never, for any object, to alter his orders, is what I cannot comprehend." But what rational man ever said such a thing? "I find few think as I do,—but to obey orders is all perfection! What would my superiors direct, did they know what is passing under my nose? To serve my King and to destroy the French I consider as the great order of all, from which little ones spring, and if one of these little ones militate against it, I go back to obey the great order." There is so much that is sound in these words, and yet so much confusion might arise in applying them, that scarcely any stronger evidence could be given that each case must rest on its own merits; and that no general rule can supplant the one general principle of obedience, by which alone unity and concentration of effort, the great goal of all military movement, can be obtained.
It was clear that the Admiralty did not entirely share Nelson's loyalty to the royal family of Naples, nor did they view the service of the King of the Two Sicilies as equal to that of the King of Great Britain. Earl Spencer's private letter, while considerate of Nelson's feelings, left no doubt that he fully agreed with his colleagues in their official stance. Nelson felt hurt and frustrated by the double criticism, but he was not in a position to see the flaws in his own perspective. "I regret to see that their Lordships find no reason to justify my disobedience to the orders of my commanding officer, Lord Keith;" however, the reasons he again cites are merely a repeat of those previously mentioned. He completely fails to understand that beliefs which might justify someone in accepting a martyr's fate may be entirely insufficient to undermine the core military duty of obedience. "My actions are judged by the Admiralty, by the strict standards of law, when I believe they should be assessed based on common sense. I restored a loyal ally by breaking orders; Lord Keith lost a fleet by following orders against his better judgment. Yet while one is criticized, the other must be praised. Such is life." In reality, as mentioned earlier, it was by deviating from St. Vincent's orders that Keith lost the French fleet. Nelson's thinking on the issue was not clear. Constantly thwarted and irritated by the common, almost universal weakness that prevents men from taking bold initiatives, assuming responsibility, and seizing opportunities, he struggled to distinguish between that and an independence of action that would turn unity of command into chaos. "While I greatly support strict obedience to orders, I cannot comprehend the idea that an officer should never, for any reason, alter his orders." But what reasonable person has ever said such a thing? "I find few who think like I do—but to obey orders is the highest form of perfection! What would my superiors direct if they knew what was happening right in front of me? To serve my King and to defeat the French is the ultimate command, from which smaller orders arise, and if one of these smaller orders conflicts with it, I revert to obeying the main command." There is much wisdom in these words, yet applying them could lead to considerable confusion, which strongly suggests that each situation must be judged on its own merits; and that no general rule can replace the fundamental principle of obedience, which alone can ensure unity and concentration of effort, the ultimate aim of all military operations.
During this period of agitation and excitement, Nelson's health did not show the favorable symptoms that usually attended a call to exertion. Much may be attributed to a Mediterranean summer, especially after the many seasons he had passed in that sea; but it can readily be believed that such exceptional responsibilities as he had just assumed could not but tell, even upon his resolute and fearless temper. "I am really sorry," wrote Troubridge to him, from the siege of St. Elmo, "to see your Lordship so low-spirited, all will go well;" and a few days later, "Your Lordship must endeavour to fret as little as possible—we shall succeed. His Majesty's arrival will relieve your Lordship; and if he punishes the guilty, the people will be happy." The day after he had refused to obey Keith's order, he wrote to him, "I am truly so very unwell that I have not the power of writing so much as I could wish;" and the next day, to the Admiralty, he makes the same excuse, adding, "I am writing in a fever, and barely possible to keep out of bed." "My dear friend," he tells Locker, "I am so ill that I can scarcely sit up; yet I will not let the courier go off without assuring you that all your kindnesses to me are fresh in my memory.... May God Almighty grant you, my revered friend, that health and happiness which has never yet been attained by your affectionate, grateful friend, Nelson." It cannot but be surmised that he did not feel that profound conviction of right, which had sustained him on previous occasions. The disquiet indicated resembles rather that attending the uncertainties of the Nile campaign. As Colonel Stewart noticed, two years later, "With him mind and health invariably sympathized."
During this time of unrest and excitement, Nelson's health didn't show the usual signs of strength that come with a challenge. A lot could be due to a Mediterranean summer, especially after spending so many seasons in that sea; but it's easy to believe that the heavy responsibilities he just took on must have affected even his determined and fearless spirit. “I’m really sorry,” Troubridge wrote to him from the siege of St. Elmo, “to see you feeling so down; everything will be okay,” and a few days later, “You need to try not to worry too much—we will succeed. His Majesty’s arrival will lift your spirits; and if he punishes those responsible, the people will be happy.” The day after he declined to follow Keith's order, he wrote to him, “I’m truly feeling so unwell that I can’t write as much as I’d like;” and the next day, to the Admiralty, he used the same excuse, adding, “I’m writing with a fever, and it’s barely possible to stay out of bed.” “My dear friend,” he told Locker, “I’m so sick that I can hardly sit up; yet I won’t let the courier leave without letting you know that I still remember all your kindnesses to me…. May God Almighty grant you, my respected friend, the health and happiness that you have yet to find, from your affectionate and grateful friend, Nelson.” It’s clear that he didn't feel that strong sense of rightness that had supported him in earlier times. The anxiety he showed was more like what he felt during the uncertainties of the Nile campaign. As Colonel Stewart pointed out two years later, “With him, mind and health were always linked.”
FOOTNOTES:
[81] That is, in person.
That is, face to face.
[82] The commandant of St. Elmo signed on the 3d Messidor, June 21. Ruffo, with the Russian and Turkish representatives, had already signed. The paper was then sent to Foote, who signed and returned to Ruffo on the 23d of June. The "Foudroyant" came in sight on the afternoon of the 24th.
[82] The commandant of St. Elmo signed on the 3rd of Messidor, June 21. Ruffo, along with the Russian and Turkish representatives, had already signed. The document was then sent to Foote, who signed and returned it to Ruffo on June 23. The "Foudroyant" appeared in sight on the afternoon of June 24.
[85] Nicolas, vol. iii p. 406.
[86] Mr. Pryse Lockhart Gordon, who was in Palermo in January, 1799, tells the following anecdote of Lady Hamilton. He had been dining at the ambassador's, and after dinner a Turkish officer was introduced. In the course of the evening he boasted that he had put to death with his own sword a number of French prisoners. "'Look, there is their blood remaining on it!' The speech being translated, her Ladyship's eye beamed with delight, and she said, 'Oh, let me see the sword that did the glorious deed!' It was presented to her; she took it into her fair hands, covered with rings, and, looking at the encrusted Jacobin blood, kissed it, and handed it to the hero of the Nile. Had I not been an eye-witness to this disgraceful act, I would not have ventured to relate it." (Gordon's Memoirs, vol. i. p, 210.) The author, also, would not have ventured to adduce it, without first satisfying himself, by inquiry, as to the probable credibility of Mr. Gordon, and likewise testing his narrative. It bears marks of the inaccuracy in details to which memory is subject, but the indications of general correctness are satisfactory.
[86] Mr. Pryse Lockhart Gordon, who was in Palermo in January 1799, shares the following story about Lady Hamilton. He had dinner at the ambassador's residence, and after the meal, a Turkish officer was introduced. During the evening, he boasted that he had killed several French prisoners with his own sword. "'Look, there's their blood still on it!' When this was translated, Lady Hamilton's eyes lit up with joy, and she said, 'Oh, let me see the sword that achieved this glorious act!' It was handed to her; she took it in her beautiful hands, adorned with rings, and, looking at the congealed blood, kissed it before passing it to the hero of the Nile. If I hadn't witnessed this disgraceful act myself, I wouldn't have dared to share it." (Gordon's Memoirs, vol. i. p, 210.) The author also wouldn't have mentioned it without first ensuring the credibility of Mr. Gordon through inquiry, along with evaluating the story itself. While it shows signs of the inaccuracies that memory can bring, the overall indications of correctness are reassuring.
[88] Much confusion has been introduced into the times, when Keith's several orders were received by Nelson, by the fact that the original of this private letter to Earl Spencer is dated the 19th (Nicolas, vol. vii. p. clxxxv); while the secretary, copying it into the letter-book, wrote July 13th. (Nicolas, vol. iii. p. 408.) Nicolas considered the former correct, probably because it came last into his hands. The author considers the 13th correct, because the official letter to Keith bears that date, and reads, "I have to acknowledge the receipt of your Lordship's letter of June 27." (Nicolas, vol. iii. p. 408.)
[88] A lot of confusion has come about during this time when Keith's various orders were received by Nelson due to the fact that the original private letter to Earl Spencer is dated the 19th (Nicolas, vol. vii. p. clxxxv); while the secretary, when copying it into the letter-book, wrote July 13th. (Nicolas, vol. iii. p. 408.) Nicolas believed the former date was correct, likely because it was the last one he received. The author believes the 13th is correct because the official letter to Keith has that date and states, "I have to acknowledge the receipt of your Lordship's letter of June 27." (Nicolas, vol. iii. p. 408.)
The date of Troubridge's marching against Capua is similarly brought into doubt by these letters. The author believes it to have been July 13 or 14, from another official letter to Keith of the 13th. (Nicolas, vol. iii. p. 404.) "Captains Troubridge and Hallowell ... march against Capua to-morrow morning." The odd Sea-Time of that day, by which July 13 began at noon, July 12, of Civil Time, also causes confusion; writers using them indiscriminatingly. The capitulation of St. Elmo was certainly signed on July 12. (Clarke and M'Arthur, vol. ii. p. 294.)
The date when Troubridge marched against Capua is also called into question by these letters. The author thinks it was on July 13 or 14, based on another official letter to Keith dated the 13th. (Nicolas, vol. iii. p. 404.) "Captains Troubridge and Hallowell ... march against Capua tomorrow morning." The unusual Sea-Time of that day, where July 13 started at noon on July 12 in Civil Time, also creates confusion, with writers using them interchangeably. The surrender of St. Elmo was definitely signed on July 12. (Clarke and M'Arthur, vol. ii. p. 294.)
[89] Nicolas, vol. v. p. 160.
END OF VOL. I.
[Transcriber's note: Volume I doesn't have an index. The combined index from Volume II is provided below.]
INDEX.
Aboukir, Bay, Island, Promontory,
and Castle,
i. 342, 343, 345-347, 365;
ii. 16, 17,
32.
Aboukir, Battle of, ii. 17.
Acton, Sir John, Prime Minister of the Kingdom of the Two
Sicilies,
i. 328, 329, 340, 342, 383, 428, 430, 443;
ii. 8, 190, 191, 193, 194,
219, 264, 274, 275.
Addington (afterwards Lord Sidmouth), Prime Minister of Great
Britain, 1801-1804,
Nelson's intercourse with,
i. 383;
ii. 101, 103, 120, 136,
162-164, 166, 167, 172, 174, 189, 193, 205, 211,
352.
Adriatic,
importance to the communications
of the Austrians in Italy, i. 247,
405;
British concern in, 369, ii. 192, 195, 243;
Napoleon's interest in, 188, 195,
266;
resort of privateers, 241,
242.
"Agamemnon," British ship-of-the-line,
Nelson ordered to command her,
i. 95;
relation to his career, 97-99;
action with four French frigates,
113, 115;
engages the batteries at Bastia,
120, 121;
action with the "Ça Ira,"
French 80-gun ship, 163-166;
engagement of March 14, 1795,
168;
engagement of July 13, 178-180;
services at Genoa, 200-202;
on the opening of Bonaparte's
campaign, 1796, 220-223;
Nelson leaves her for the
"Captain," seventy-four, 229, 230;
she sails for England, 230;
subsequent history, 230;
misfortune at the Battle of
Copenhagen, ii. 87;
joins the fleet shortly before
Trafalgar, 361.
"Albemarle," British frigate commanded by Nelson, i.
31-41.
Alexandria,
Nelson's first voyage to,
i. 332-339;
second voyage, 342, 343;
blockaded, 366;
Nelson's third voyage to,
ii. 276, 277.
Algiers, Bonaparte's designs upon, ii. 184;
Nelson's difficulties with,
230-232.
"Amazon," British frigate,
services at Copenhagen,
ii. 82, 86, 89, 91;
subsequent mention, 217, 261-263,
289, 295, 315.
Amiens, Peace of, signature of, ii. 146;
Nelson's home life during,
150-178;
rupture of, 175.
"Amphion," British frigate,
Nelson's passage to Mediterranean
in, ii. 189-196;
leaves her for the "Victory,"
222.
Archduke Charles, Nelson's meeting with, at Prague, ii.
43.
Austria and Austrians,
result of campaign of 1794 in
Holland and Germany, i. 155;
in Italy, 156;
delay in opening campaign of 1795
in Italy, 177;
their advance to Vado Bay, on the
Riviera, 178;
Nelson ordered to co-operate
with, 178, 184;
their disregard of Genoese
neutrality, 184;
position of, in summer of 1795,
186;
inability, or unwillingness to
advance, 188, 189, 194;
their attitude towards the
British, 197, 202, 213;
growing insecurity of their
position, 196, 200, 201, 212;
attacked and defeated by French
at Battle of Loano, 201;
retreat across the Apennines,
202;
urged by Nelson to reoccupy Vado
in 1796, 218, 219;
their advance under Beaulieu,
220-223;
Nelson's assurances to, 221;
defeat by Bonaparte, 220, 223;
driven into the Tyrol, and behind
the Adige, 232;
besieged in Mantua, 232;
advance under Wurmser to relieve
Mantua, 238;
Nelson's hopes therefrom,
238-241;
hears of their defeat again,
241, 244;
the peace of Campo Formio between
Austria and France, 317, 318;
dissatisfaction of Austria with
France, 319, 322;
effect of their position in upper
Italy upon French operations, 391;
attitude towards France and
Naples, 1798, 392;
Nelson's judgment on, 399, 400;
alliance with Russia, 1799,
400;
successes in 1799, 400, 415, 416; ii. 1, 14, 15;
reverses, 15;
capture of Genoa, 1800,
37;
defeat at Marengo,
37;
abandon Northern Italy,
37;
Nelson's visit to,
40-43;
peace with France, 1801, 63,
119;
exhaustion of, 1801-1805,
180;
Nelson's remonstrance with, on
failure to enforce her neutrality, 242.
Ball, Sir Alexander J., British captain,
letter to Nelson, i.
211;
joins Nelson's division at
Gibraltar, 316;
services in saving the flagship,
324;
advice asked by Nelson, 333;
at the Battle of the Nile,
347, 352-354;
accompanies Nelson to Naples,
366;
gallantry towards Lady Hamilton,
386;
serves ashore at Malta, 392, 406-409, ii. 7, 9, 11, 12, 13;
mentions with unbelief reports
about Nelson and Lady Hamilton, i. 396;
summoned to join Nelson upon the
incursion of Admiral Bruix, 419-421, 426;
ordered to resume duties at
Malta, 423;
mention of Nelson in letters to
Lady Hamilton, ii. 23, 30;
visits Nelson at Merton,
158;
anecdote of Nelson told by him,
158;
letters from Nelson to, 211, 213,
242-244, 270, 274, 278, 280, 286, 292;
opinion as to French objects in
1804, 212;
Nelson's testy vexation with,
238;
opinion as to the management of
coast lookout stations, 318, note.
Barbary States. See Algiers, Tripoli, Tunis.
Barham, Lord,
Nelson's interview with, as
Comptroller of the Navy, i. 85;
First Lord of the Admiralty,
ii. 291 and note, 317, 320, 321;
Nelson's interviews with, 320,
333;
Nelson's letters to, 324, 353,
355, 358.
Bastia, town in Corsica,
in possession of French,
i. 116;
blockade of, by Nelson, 120, 122;
engagement with batteries of,
120;
description of, 121;
Nelson's opinion as to besieging,
121-124, 126;
siege of, 127-131;
capitulation of, 129;
Nelson's estimate as to his own
services at, 132, 133, 152;
Nelson directed to superintend
evacuation of, by British, 247;
evacuation of, 251-253.
Battles, land, mentioned:
Aboukir, ii.
17;
Castiglione, i. 241, 244;
Hohenlinden, ii.
63;
Loano, i. 201;
Marengo, ii.
37;
Novi, 15.
Battles, naval, mentioned:
Calder's action, ii. 307,
313, 318, 323;
Camperdown, i. 309;
Copenhagen, ii. 79-97, 98,
161-167;
First of June (Lord Howe's),
i. 150, 176;
July 13, 1795, i. 178-182;
March 14, 1795, i.
166-173;
the Nile, i. 343-358;
St. Vincent, i. 268-277;
Trafalgar, ii.
377-397.
Beatty, Dr., surgeon of the "Victory,"
account of Nelson's habits and
health, ii. 225-228 and note;
present at Nelson's death, 388,
389, 392, 393, 396.
Beaulieu, Austrian general,
commands the army in Italy, 1796,
i. 219;
defeated by Bonaparte, and driven
into the Tyrol, 220-223, 232.
Beckford, William,
opinion of Lady Hamilton,
i. 381;
visited by Nelson at Fonthill,
ii. 51-53;
anecdote of Nelson,
52.
Berry, Sir Edward, British captain,
accompanies Nelson in boarding
the "San Nicolas" and "San Josef," i. 273-275, 279;
commands Nelson's flagship, the
"Vanguard," 309;
account of the campaign of the
Nile (quoted), 332, 339, 344, 355, 359;
at the Battle of the Nile,
351, 354,
363;
sent to England with despatches,
360;
commands the "Foudroyant" at the
capture of the "Généreux," ii.
24-27;
at the capture of the "Guillaume
Tell," 31, 32;
commands the "Agamemnon" at
Trafalgar, 361;
numerous services of,
362.
Bickerton, Sir Richard, British admiral,
commands in the "Mediterranean"
when war with France begins, 1803, ii. 194;
second in command to Nelson,
1803-1805, 202, 215, 219, 246, 248, 259, 263, 278;
left in command by Nelson, upon
his departure for the West Indies, 294, 314, 317;
joins Collingwood before Cadiz,
334;
returns to England, ill, just
before Trafalgar, 338.
Blackwood, Sir Henry, British captain,
distinguished part taken in the
capture of the "Guillaume Tell," ii. 31, 328;
arrives in London with news that
the combined fleets are in Cadiz, 328;
interviews with Nelson,
328;
commands advanced squadron of
frigates off Cadiz, 339, 357, 361, 364-369;
last day spent with Nelson,
372-379, 382-385;
witnesses the "Codicil" to
Nelson's will, 374, 375;
special mark of confidence shown
him by Nelson, 377;
Nelson's farewell to him,
385.
Bolton, Susannah, Nelson's sister,
relations of, with Lady Nelson
and Lady Hamilton, ii. 55, 178.
Bonaparte, Napoleon,
decisive influence of Nelson upon
the career of, i. 96, 97, 220, ii. 63,
64, 119, 120, 267-270, 283, 284, 301, 310, 314;
indicates the key of the defences
of Toulon, i. 117;
opinions upon operations in
Italy, 186, 187,
193, 194,
197, 208,
214-216, 219, 391, 394;
command of Army of Italy,
220;
defeats Beaulieu, advances to the
Adige, and establishes the French position in Northern Italy,
220-223, 228, 229, 232;
fortifies the coastline of the
Riviera, 223, 224, 227;
seizes Leghorn, 231-233, 236;
contrasted with Nelson, 234-236, 258, ii. 129, 130, 172;
overthrows Wurmser, i.
238, 240,
241;
effect of his campaign in Italy
upon the career of Nelson, 242, 243, 318;
forces Genoa to close her ports
to Great Britain, 245;
sails on the Egyptian Expedition,
323, 325,
328, 329,
331-334, 336-339;
landing in Egypt, 339;
Nelson's appreciation of the
effect upon, by the Battle of the Nile, 366, 369, 370, 406, ii.
18-22;
expedition into Syria,
17;
escape from Egypt to France, 16,
17,
after defeating a Turkish army in
Aboukir Bay, 17;
defeats Austrians at Marengo,
37;
influence upon the formation of
the Baltic Coalition, 63, 64;
threats of invading England,
1801, 119-122;
his dominant situation on the
Continent in 1803, 179-187;
firmness of intention to invade
England, 1803-1805, 184-188, 191, 204, 213;
his policy and Nelson's counter
projects, 182-187;
Nelson's singularly accurate
prediction of future of, 188, 265;
Nelson's intuitive recognition of
probable action of, 265, 270;
vast combinations for invasion of
England, 267-272, 283, 284;
his understanding of the value of
sea-power evidenced, 282.
"Boreas," British frigate,
commanded by Nelson, 1784-1787,
i. 44-80.
Brereton, British general,
erroneous information sent to
Nelson, ii. 298-300;
Nelson's expressions of
annoyance, 300, 309, 311, 318;
comment upon his mistake, 318,
note.
Bronté, Duke of,
Sicilian title and estate
conferred upon Nelson, ii. 2;
his form of signature afterwards,
2 and note.
Brueys, French admiral,
commander-in-chief at the Battle
of the Nile, i. 345;
his dispositions for action,
345-347.
Bruix, French admiral,
commander-in-chief of a French
fleet entering the Mediterranean from Brest, i. 417, 422, 425, 428, 432;
effect of his approach upon
proceedings in Naples, 432, 437, 441;
his return to Brest, 446, 448;
Nelson's comment upon his
conduct, ii. 213.
"Bucentaure," French flagship at Trafalgar,
Nelson's encounter with,
ii. 384-387;
surrender of, 391.
Cadiz, Nelson's visit to, i. 103-104;
his operations before, under
Jervis, 286-288,
289-294;
his watch before, prior to
Trafalgar, ii. 339, 356-361;
effect of position of, upon the
Battle of Trafalgar, 369, 371, 372, 380.
"Ça Ira," French ship-of-the-line,
Nelson's action with, in the
"Agamemnon," i. 163-166;
his credit for, 172.
Calder, Sir Robert, British admiral,
captain of the fleet at the
Battle of St. Vincent, i. 281,
282;
his indecisive action with the
allied fleets, in 1805, ii. 307, 313;
popular outcry against, 308, 315,
323, 353;
Nelson's relations with, 318,
319, 323, 327, 353-356;
recalled to England for trial,
353.
Calvi, town in Corsica,
Nelson at the siege of, i.
136-148;
loses there his right eye,
139, 140.
Canary Islands. See Teneriffe.
Capel, Thomas B., British captain,
bearer of despatches after the
Battle of the Nile, i. 361,
371;
mentioned, 355, note, ii. 217.
"Captain," British ship-of-the-line,
carries Nelson's broad pendant as
commodore, i. 230;
at the Battle of St. Vincent,
270-276;
injuries received there, 285;
Nelson quits her for the
"Theseus," 285, 289.
Caracciolo, Francesco, commodore in the Neapolitan navy,
wounded feelings at the distrust
of his Court, i. 390;
accompanies the flight to
Palermo, obtains leave to return to Naples, and joins the
insurgents there, 437;
apprehension, trial, and
execution of, 438;
comments upon Nelson's part in
this transaction, 439-443.
Castlereagh, Lord, British Minister,
Nelson's shrewd prediction to him
of the results of the Orders in Council affecting neutral flags,
and of the License System, ii. 330.
Clarence, Duke of. See William Henry.
Codrington, Edward, British captain, expressions quoted:
about Nelson's seamanship,
i. 15;
his family ties and love of
glory, 72, ii. 175;
appearance of Nelson's ships,
288;
graciousness of Nelson's bearing,
340.
Collingwood, Cuthbert, British admiral,
close connection between his
career and that of Nelson, i. 21,
22;
strong expression of regard for
Nelson, 24;
association with Nelson in the
West Indies, 54 and note, 55, 63;
at the Battle of Cape St.
Vincent, 269, 273, 276, 281, 282;
strong expression upon the credit
due to Nelson, 272;
his account of Nelson's cold
reception at Court, in 1800, ii. 49;
sent from England to West Indies
in 1805, 310;
hearing that Nelson is gone
thither, takes position off Cadiz instead, 311;
correspondence with Nelson on his
return, 311-313;
left by Nelson in charge off
Cadiz, 316, 317;
force collected under, when
allies enter Cadiz, 334;
characteristics,
340;
part assigned to, by Nelson, for
Trafalgar, 350-352;
his part at Trafalgar, 370-372,
377, 380, 383, 384;
Nelson's praise of,
384;
his sympathy with Nelson,
384;
notified of Nelson's fatal wound,
394.
Convoys,
Nelson's comments on the behavior
of, i. 33;
gives one to American merchant
ships against French privateers, 289;
difficulty of providing in the
Mediterranean, ii. 241-244.
Copenhagen, defences of,
in 1801, ii. 72, 80, 81,
84, 85;
Battle of, Nelson's plans for,
84-87;
the battle, 87-97;
importance and difficulty of the
achievement, 98, 99;
failure of the British Government
to reward, 99, 162;
silence of the city of London,
161;
Nelson's action,
161-167.
Corfu,
transferred, with the other
Ionian Islands, from Venice to France, i. 318;
Nelson's concern for, after the
Battle of the Nile, 368, 405, 406;
taken by Russo-Turkish forces,
405;
British precautions against
re-occupation by French, ii. 184;
concern of Nelson for, while
commander-in-chief in the Mediterranean, 1803-1805, 187, 190,
195, 266;
resort of privateers,
241;
Napoleon's estimate of,
206.
Cornwallis, William, British admiral,
kindness to Nelson in early life,
i. 30 and note, 45;
Nelson directed to communicate
with, off Brest in 1803, ii. 188, 189;
orders seizure of Spanish
treasure-ships, 251;
Nelson directs that the order be
disobeyed, 251;
services of, off Brest,
269;
Nelson joins, off Brest, on
return from West Indies, 314, 317;
authorizes Nelson to return to
England, 317.
Correspondence, Nelson's extensive,
while in the Mediterranean,
ii. 190;
his manner of conducting,
232-236.
Corsica, Island of,
Nelson ordered to coast of,
i. 115, 116;
Nelson's connection with
operations there in 1794, 118-148;
strategic value of, to British,
155-159;
government as a British
dependency, 159;
dissatisfaction of natives with
British rule, 231;
tenure of, dependent on support
of the natives, 234;
abandonment of, by the British,
247, 251-254;
threatened invasion of Sardinia
from, ii. 204.
"Curieux," British brig of war,
sent by Nelson to England from
West Indies with news of his movements, ii.
301;
falls in with combined fleets,
313;
Nelson's comment on hearing the
fact, 313, 315.
Davison, Alexander, intimate friend of Nelson,
Nelson expresses despondency to,
i. 412;
tells him circumstances of
surrender of castles at Naples, 431,
432;
the "Lady of the Admiralty's"
coolness, ii. 49;
account given by, of George III.
speaking of Nelson, 49, 50;
Nelson's mention of Sir Hyde
Parker to, 67, 68, 71, 164;
aids Nelson pecuniarily,
144;
charged by Nelson with a final
message to Lady Nelson, 148;
Nelson's expressions to, about
St. Vincent, 163;
about treatment of himself by the
government, 170;
"Salt beef and the French fleet,"
296;
about General Brereton,
318.
De Vins, Austrian general,
commands on the Riviera in 1795,
i. 187;
Nelson's association with,
187, 193-197, and opinion of, 197.
Dresden, Nelson's visit to, in 1800, ii. 43-45.
Drinkwater, Colonel,
returns from Elba in frigate with
Nelson, 1797, i. 262;
incidents narrated of the voyage,
266-268;
witnesses the Battle of St.
Vincent, 281;
interview with Nelson after the
battle, 283;
characteristic anecdote of
Nelson, 309.
Duckworth, Sir J.T., British admiral,
association with Nelson during
operations in the Mediterranean, 1799, i. 418, 419, 420, 421, 423, 442, ii. 1,
6.
Dundas, British general,
commanding troops in Corsica,
i. 121;
controversy with Lord Hood,
121, 122;
Nelson's opinion, 121.
Egypt,
Bonaparte's expedition to, in
1798, i. 323-339;
Nelson's pursuit, 327-329, 331-338;
Nelson's constant attention to,
369, 404,
406, ii. 182, 185, 201, 203, 211,
212, 213, 255, 270, 277, 280-282, 287, 302;
his urgency that the French army
be not permitted to leave, 18-22.
El Arish, Convention of, signed, ii. 19.
Elba, island of,
Nelson's opinion of importance
of, i. 237;
his seizure of, 237;
evacuation of, 259-263, 287, 288.
"Elephant," British ship-of-the-line,
Nelson's flagship at Copenhagen,
ii. 78, 83, 88-97.
Elgin, Earl of, British ambassador to Turkey,
opinion upon the state of things
at Palermo during Nelson's residence there, i. 397;
Nelson's divergence of opinion
from, concerning the French quitting Egypt, ii.
19-21.
Elliot, Sir Gilbert, afterwards Lord Minto,
British representative in
Corsica, 1794, i. 119;
Viceroy of Corsica, 154;
friendship between him and
Nelson, 154, 275,
281, 283,
284, ii. 153, 250,
325;
Nelson's correspondence with,
i. 172, 203, 237, 239, 275, 281, 356, ii. 3,
27, 36, 210, 250;
directs the seizure of Elba by
Nelson, i. 237;
present at the evacuation of
Corsica, 252, 253, and of Elba. 262;
passage with Nelson to Gibraltar,
262-268;
witnesses the Battle of St.
Vincent, 275, 281;
advocacy of Nelson's claims to
distinction, 284, 403;
incidental mention of Nelson by,
i. 308, ii. 34, 44, 92,
154, 172, 174, 308, 326, 332, 335;
mention of Lady Hamilton by,
i. 379-382, ii. 44, 154, 320, 335;
ambassador to Vienna, i.
396 note.
Elliot, Hugh,
British minister at Dresden
during Nelson's visit in 1800, ii. 43, 44;
minister to the two Sicilies
during Nelson's Mediterranean command, 1803-1805,
189-310;
takes passage out with Nelson,
189;
correspondence between Nelson
and, quoted, 191, 192, 194, 211, 212, 215, 218, 235, 246, 258,
263, 264, 286, 304, 310, 330.
Este, Lambton, association with Nelson mentioned, ii.
254-257.
Fischer, Commodore,
commander-in-chief of Danish
fleet at the Battle of Copenhagen, ii. 94;
Nelson's controversy with, on
account of his official report of the battle,
107-109.
Fitzharris, Lord,
British attaché at Vienna
during Nelson's visit, 1800, anecdotes of Nelson and of Lady
Hamilton, ii. 41, 42.
Flag of Truce, incident of the, at Copenhagen, ii.
94-98.
"Fleet in Being,"
indications of Nelson's probable
opinion of its deterrent effect, i. 135-137, 160, 182, 183, 196, 198, 213, 214, 216, 217, 218, 227;
ii. 301-306.
Freemantle, British captain,
with Nelson, at Teneriffe,
i. 301-304;
at Copenhagen, ii.
83;
letter from Nelson to, concerning
Calder, 318.
Frigates,
Nelson's sense of the importance
of, and of small cruisers generally, i. 338, 340, 341; ii. 242-245, 274, 294, 334, 357,
358.
"Généreux," French ship-of-the-line,
escape of, after the Battle of
the Nile, i. 357, 358;
capture of the "Leander" by,
361, 405;
captured by Nelson's squadron off
Malta, ii. 24-29.
Genoa,
importance of, to the South of
France, i. 105, 106, 107;
difficult neutrality of, 157, 158, 184-192, 199-201, 218, 223, 226-228, 233, 393;
closes her ports against Great
Britain, 1796, 244-246;
siege of city, in 1800,
ii. 28;
surrender of, by Masséna,
37;
identified with France as the
Ligurian Republic, 181, 182;
ports of, blockaded by Nelson,
219, 229, 230.
George III., King of Great Britain,
prejudice of, against Nelson in
early life, i. 88, 89, 284;
subsequent approbation, 177, 284, 308;
interest in Nelson manifested by,
ii. 49, 50;
subsequent coldness of, toward
Nelson, apparently in consequence of his relations to Lady
Hamilton, 49.
Gillespie, Dr.,
account of life on board Nelson's
flagship by, ii. 223-225, 238, 248.
Goodall, Admiral,
at the partial fleet action of
March 14, 1795, i. 168, 169;
his support of Nelson when under
public censure for failure to find the French fleet, 334.
Gore, British captain,
commands squadron of frigates
under Nelson's orders, outside Straits of Gibraltar, ii.
244;
letter of Nelson to, concerning
three frigates attacking a ship-of-the-line, 245;
ordered by Nelson to disobey
orders of Admiral Cornwallis to seize Spanish treasure-ships,
250, 251.
Graves, Rear Admiral,
second to Nelson at the Battle of
Copenhagen, ii. 83, 90;
made Knight of the Bath in reward
for the action, 99.
Gravina, Spanish admiral,
commander of the Spanish
contingent, and second in command of the combined fleet, at
Trafalgar, ii. 363, 369, 372, 396.
Greville, Charles, nephew to Sir William Hamilton,
relations of, to Emma Hart,
afterwards Lady Hamilton, i. 373-379.
Hallowell, British captain,
under Nelson at the siege of
Calvi, i. 139;
commands the "Swiftsure" at the
Battle of the Nile, 353.
Hamilton, Emma, Lady,
Nelson's first meeting with,
i. 110, 111;
letter of Nelson to. 340;
conduct of, in Naples, upon
receipt of news of the Battle of the Nile, 371;
Nelson's second meeting with,
372;
previous history of, 373-379;
married to Sir William Hamilton,
378;
personal appearance and
characteristics, 379-382, 384-386, ii. 43-45, 150, 154, 223, 326,
335;
influence at Court of Naples,
i. 383, 426, 442;
influence upon Nelson, 385-388, 441, 442, 444, ii. 23, 28-30, 38, 39, 41, 78,
330-332;
intermediary between the Court
and Nelson, i. 389, 426, 428;
efficiency during the flight of
the Court from Naples, 395;
scandal concerning her relations
to Nelson, 396-398, ii. 30, 34, 35, 48-51, 154, 177,
178;
love of play, i. 397, ii. 41;
Nelson's infatuation for,
i. 380, 422, 441, ii. 29,
30, 34, 35, 38, 39, 41, 43, 51, 53, 78, 110, 154,
326;
with Sir William Hamilton
accompanies Nelson to Naples in flagship, i. 428;
usefulness there, 444;
Nelson asks of the Czar insignia
of the Order of Malta for, ii. 10;
accompanies Nelson, with her
husband, on a trip to Malta, 35, and on the return journey to
England, 36-45;
her reception by the London
world, 48-50, 154;
Lady Nelson's attitude towards,
46-48, 51, 53;
attitude of Nelson's father
towards, 55, 176;
of other members of Nelson's
family, 55, 178, 326;
believed by Nelson to be the
mother of Horatia, 56-58;
Nelson's letters to, during
Copenhagen expedition, 68, 69, 72, 79, 88, 104, 105, 106, 110,
111, 116, 149;
letters to, while commanding
preparations against invasion, 137, 139, 140-143, 149,
150;
purchases the Merton property for
Nelson, 149-151;
disturbed relations with her
husband, 151-153;
death of husband,
177;
Nelson's letters to, during his
command in the Mediterranean, 1803-1805, 194, 222, 223, 256, 258,
279, 339, 353, 354;
Nelson's anxiety about
confinement of, 210;
birth of a second child,
210;
allowance made by Nelson to,
248;
Nelson's last letter to,
365;
bequeathed by Nelson to his
Country, 376, 389, 395;
mentioned by Nelson, when dying,
392, 393, 395.
Hamilton, Sir William, British minister to Naples,
Nelson's first association with,
i. 110;
Nelson's correspondence with,
during the Nile campaign, 327, 329, 330, 340-342, 368, 372;
Nelson's association with, while
in command in Neapolitan waters, 1798-1800, 372, 387, 389, 390, 393, 395-398, 427, 428-444, ii. 21,
23, 27-30, 34, 35;
relations to Amy Lyon, otherwise
Emma Hart, prior to their marriage, 375-378;
marriage to Emma Hart, 378;
onerous increase of diplomatic
duties after the French Revolution began, 384;
influence of Lady Hamilton upon,
383, 389,
397, ii. 44;
apparent unfitness for his
position, i. 383, 397, 398, 435, 436;
accompanies Nelson to Naples in
flagship, 428;
assertion of Nelson's full powers
at this time by, 430;
official despatch of, relative to
transactions at Naples, June-July, 1799, quoted and discussed,
432-436;
share of, in these transactions,
444;
recalled to England, ii.
34;
accompanied by Nelson on return
to England, 36-45;
Nelson takes up his residence
with, 146;
with Lady Hamilton goes to live
with Nelson at Merton, 150;
disturbed relations of, with his
wife, 151-153;
death of, 177;
his professed confidence in
Nelson, 178.
Hardy, Captain Thomas M.,
captured in the prize "Sabina,"
i. 260;
exchanged, 264, 266;
narrow escape from recapture,
267;
commander of the brig "Mutine,"
323;
accompanies Nelson in Baltic
expedition, ii. 65, 83;
continuous association with
Nelson after St. Vincent, 392;
presence at Nelson's death-bed,
392-395;
incidentally mentioned,
ii. 224, 234, 245, 337, 368, 374, 378, 385-389,
391.
Hart, Emma,
name assumed by Lady Hamilton,
prior to marriage, i. 375.
Haslewood, anecdote of final breach between Lord and Lady Nelson,
ii. 53.
Hillyar, Captain James,
anecdotes of Nelson, ii.
175, note, 237-239.
"Hinchinbrook," British frigate,
commanded by Nelson in youth,
i. 21-30;
singular coincidence that both
Nelson and Collingwood were made post into this ship, 21.
Hood, Admiral, Lord,
opinion of Nelson in early life,
i. 34;
Nelson obtains transfer of his
ship to the fleet of, 36-39;
relations of Nelson with, prior
to French Revolution, 37, 39, 41, 45, 66, 87, 89, 108;
appointed to command the
Mediterranean fleet, 1793, 101;
services off Toulon, 103-117;
employs Nelson on detached
service, at Naples, 108,
at Tunis, 113,
around Corsica, 115-120;
reduction of Corsica, 118-148;
return to England, 148, 149;
removed from the Mediterranean
command, 175;
Nelson's opinion of, 119, 175, 176;
Nelson's relations with, during
his Mediterranean command, 112, 116, 119, 122, 124, 148;
at siege of Bastia, 130-132;
at siege of Calvi, 142, 143;
inadequate mention of Nelson's
services in Corsica by, 131-134, 152, 153;
differences with Colonel Moore,
143-145;
opinion of Nelson's merits at the
Battle of the Nile, 361-363;
presents Nelson in the House of
Peers, when taking his seat as a viscount, ii.
160.
Hood, Captain Sir Samuel,
pilots Nelson's fleet into
Aboukir Bay, i. 348;
share of, in the Battle of the
Nile, 349, 350,
358;
left to blockade Alexandria,
366, 392;
incidentally mentioned, 401, 404, ii.
158.
Horatia, Nelson's daughter,
birth of, ii.
56;
mentioned, 57, 223,
335;
Nelson's last letter to,
366;
desired by him to use the name of
"Nelson" only, 366;
bequeathed by Nelson to his
Country, 376, 389;
mentioned by Nelson in dying,
395.
Hoste, Captain William,
midshipman with Nelson from 1793
to 1797, i. 304;
describes Nelson's return on
board wounded, after the affair at Santa Cruz, 304;
lieutenant, and commander of the
"Mutine," 371;
reception at Naples by Lady
Hamilton, 371;
curious anecdote of, ii.
262, 263.
Hotham, Vice-Admiral, second in command to Lord Hood,
mistaken action of, i.
134, 135;
Nelson's comment on, 135, 150;
succeeds Hood as
commander-in-chief, 149;
encounter with French Toulon
fleet, 161-170;
Nelson's urgency with, 168,
and criticism of his action in
this case, 169-172;
inadequate military conceptions
of, 171, 182,
198;
difficulties of, recognized by
Nelson, 171;
second encounter with the French,
178-180;
incompetent action, and Nelson's
criticism, 179-182;
disastrous results of
inefficiency of, 182, 183, 198, 203, 210;
sends Nelson to co-operate with
Austrians on the Riviera, 184;
Nelson's opinion of his
"political courage," 189;
personal dislike to co-operation
of, 191, 197 and
note;
inadequate support given to
Nelson by, 197, 198, 202;
Nelson's opinion of the
consequent mishaps, 182, 199, 202;
relieved by Sir Hyde Parker,
199.
Hotham, Sir William,
criticism of Nelson's conduct
towards Lady Nelson, ii. 50;
mention of Lady Nelson's conduct
after the separation, 53;
Nelson's aptitude at forwarding
public service, 229.
Howe, Admiral, Lord,
appoints Nelson to the command of
the "Boreas," i. 44;
kind reception of Nelson in 1787,
82;
victory of June 1st, 1794,
Nelson's opinion of, 150;
Nelson's expression to, about the
Battle of the Nile, 356;
opinion of, concerning the Battle
of the Nile, 357, 363.
Hughes, Sir Richard,
commander-in-chief of the Leeward
Islands Station, 1784-1786, i. 45;
Nelson's difficulties with,
49-53, and 53-58;
his attitude towards Nelson in
the matter of enforcing the Navigation Act, 58, 60, 63;
Nelson's reconciliation with,
72.
Hughes, Lady, account of Nelson as a very young captain,
i. 46.
Ionian Islands, Corfu, etc.,
objects of Nelson's solicitude,
i. 368, 391, 405, 406, ii. 265. 266;
Russian occupation of, i.
405, ii. 14;
importance of, to Bonaparte,
ii. 187, 188, 195, 241;
temporary political name of
Republic of the Seven Islands, 190.
Ireland,
Nelson's speculations as to
Bonaparte's intentions against, ii. 211, 212, 288,
315;
Collingwood's, 311,
312.
Jervis, Admiral Sir John,
afterwards Earl of St. Vincent,
i. 34;
commander-in-chief in the West
Indies, 115;
commander-in-chief in the
Mediterranean, 204, 212;
Nelson's first meeting with,
215;
desire of, to have Nelson remain
under his command, 216, 229, 255;
his close blockade of Toulon,
230, 242;
Nelson's lofty opinion of,
244, 248;
forced to concentrate his fleet
owing to the attitude of Spain, 245,
246;
embarrassment caused to, by
conduct of Admiral Man, 246, 251;
ordered to evacuate the
Mediterranean, 247;
retires to Gibraltar, 254;
sends Nelson back to superintend
the evacuation of Elba, 259;
his opinions of Nelson, as
expressed, 261, 281, 282, 294, 299, 306, 323, 363, 403, ii. 67,
104, 116, 118, 120, 196, 198;
rejoined by Nelson, off Cape St.
Vincent, i. 268;
Battle of Cape St. Vincent,
268-277;
operations after the battle,
285-288;
blockade and bombardment of
Cadiz, 288-294;
sends Nelson to Teneriffe,
298, 299;
sympathy with Nelson in his
defeat and wound, 306;
created Earl of St. Vincent,
306;
rejoined by Nelson after
convalescence, 310;
expressions of satisfaction
thereat, 310;
aversion of, to extending the
operations of the fleet, 320;
sends Nelson to watch the Toulon
armament, 310, 323;
denounced for choosing so young a
flag-officer, 337;
opinion of the Battle of the
Nile, 363;
orders Nelson to return to the
western Mediterranean, 366;
the affair of Sir Sidney Smith,
401, 402;
absolute confidence of, in
Nelson, 408;
action upon the incursion of
Bruix's fleet, 420-423;
gives up the command of the
Mediterranean, 424;
Nelson's distress and vexation,
424, ii. 263;
succeeded in command by Lord
Keith, i. 425, 428;
takes command of Channel Fleet,
1800, ii. 56;
Nelson joins him as subordinate,
56;
stern resolution in face of the
Baltic Coalition, 64;
becomes First Lord of the
Admiralty, 67;
Nelson's gradual alienation from,
69, 140, 141, 142, 162, 163, 167, 170, 172;
full approval of Nelson's course
in the Baltic by, 73, 104;
indisposition to grant rewards
for services at Copenhagen, 99, 162, 163, 167;
reluctance to relieve Nelson,
116;
insists with Nelson that he must
accept and retain command of preparations against invasion, 120,
139, 145;
correspondence with Nelson on
this subject, 120-126, 134, 135, 136, 139, 143;
divergence of views from Nelson's
on the subject of a flotilla, 131, 132;
misunderstanding between Nelson
and, on the subject of medals for Copenhagen, 162, 163,
167;
sends Nelson to the Mediterranean
as commander-in-chief, 175;
injury to Navy from excessive
economy of, 172, 196;
correspondence of Nelson with,
while commander-in-chief in the Mediterranean, quoted, 188, 189,
196, 198, 213;
retires from the Admiralty, and
succeeded by Lord Melville, 221.
KEATS, Captain Richard G.,
favorite with Nelson, ii.
293;
letters from Nelson to, 293, 297,
298, 323.
Keith, Admiral, Lord,
second in command to St. Vincent
in the Mediterranean, i. 423;
St. Vincent relinquishes command
to, 425, 428;
characteristics of, 425;
friction between Nelson and,
425-427;
advice of, to Nelson, concerning
executions in Naples, 442;
Nelson's disobedience to orders
of, 445-454;
pursues combined fleets to
English Channel, 448, ii.
14;
inferiority of, to Nelson, in
military sagacity, i. 450,
ii. 38;
absence from Mediterranean
prolonged, ii. 4;
resumes command in the
Mediterranean, 22;
Nelson's resentment at his
return, 3, 23;
relations between the two, 23,
27-30, 32, 36-38;
orders Nelson to assume personal
charge of blockade of Malta, 28;
generous letter of, to Nelson,
35;
dissatisfaction of, with Nelson's
course, 36-38;
displeasure of Queen of Naples
with, 38, 39;
measures of, to prevent French
encroachments during Peace of Amiens, 184;
successful resistance of, to the
Admiralty's attempt to reduce his station, 249.
Kleber, French general,
succeeds Bonaparte in the command
in Egypt, ii. 17;
convinced of the hopelessness of
retaining Egypt, 18;
makes the Convention of El Arish
with the Turks, 18-20.
Knight, Miss,
friend and companion of the
Hamiltons, ii. 39;
accompanies them and Nelson on
journey to England in 1800, 39-48;
incidents mentioned by, relative
to this period, 39, 40, 48;
testimony to Nelson's love for
his wife, prior to meeting with Lady Hamilton, 55.
LATOUCHE-TRÉVILLE, French admiral,
in command off Boulogne, and
successful repulse of British boats, ii. 135-138,
214;
in command of Toulon fleet,
214;
Nelson's attempts to lure out of
port, 214-216, 219, 220;
reports that Nelson retreated
before him, and Nelson's wrath, 217-219;
death of, 257.
Layman, Lieutenant, and Commander,
serving with Nelson on board the
St. George, 1801, ii. 69;
anecdotes of Nelson by, 70, 72,
158, 356;
loses the brig "Raven" when
carrying despatches, 279;
characteristic letter of Nelson
in behalf of, 279, 280.
"Leander," British fifty-gun ship,
Campaign and Battle of the Nile,
i. 327, 352, 353;
sent with despatches to
Gibraltar, 360;
captured by the
"Généreux," 361;
recaptured by Russians, and
restored to Great Britain, 405.
Leghorn,
Nelson's visits to, i.
148, 151,
161, 208;
importance of, to the French,
157, 160,
and to the British fleet,
161, 231,
232;
occupation of, by Bonaparte, in
1796, 233;
blockade of, by Nelson, 236-238;
Nelson's project for an assault
of, 238-241;
occupation of, by Neapolitans, in
1798, 393, 406;
blockade of, recommended by
Nelson, in 1803, ii. 182.
Lindholm, Danish officer, aide-de-camp to Crown Prince at the
Battle of Copenhagen,
sent to Nelson with reply to the
message under flag of truce, ii. 96;
association with the
negotiations, 97, 101, 103;
testimony of, to Nelson's motives
in sending flag of truce, 97;
correspondence of, with Nelson,
relative to the conduct of Commodore Fischer, 108,
109.
Linzee, Commodore,
Nelson serves under, on mission
to Tunis, i. 113;
Nelson's causeless
dissatisfaction with conduct of, 114.
Lisbon,
headquarters of British fleet
after evacuation of the Mediterranean, i. 260, 285, 286, 310;
forbidden to British in 1803,
ii. 181.
Locker, Captain William,
Nelson's early commander and
life-long friend, i. 17-20, 21.
Louis, Captain Thomas,
Nelson's expressions of
obligation to, at the Battle of the Nile, i. 351.
"Lowestoffe," British frigate,
Nelson commissioned lieutenant
into, and incidents on board of, i. 16-20;
his place on board of, filled by
Collingwood, 21.
Lyon, Amy, maiden name of Lady Hamilton, i. 373.
Mack, Austrian general,
association with Nelson before
and after the disastrous Neapolitan campaign of 1798, i.
392-394.
Madalena Islands,
situation of, and importance to
Nelson's fleet, ii. 201-205, 207;
Nelson there receives news of
Villeneuve's first sailing, 266.
Malmesbury, Lady,
mention of Lady Hamilton by,
i. 379, 382;
of Nelson and Hyde Parker,
ii. 67.
Malta,
seizure of, by Bonaparte,
i. 329, 331;
Nelson's estimate of the
importance of, 330, 407, ii. 13, 195, 198;
his concern for, i.
368, 369,
414, ii. 5, 7-14, 243, 316,
317;
directs blockade of, i.
369,
by Portuguese squadron, 371;
blockade of, 391, 392, 409, 420, 423, ii. 1, 7-14, 23-34, 36,
37;
Nelson's jealousy of Russian
designs upon, i. 406-408;
capture near, of the
"Généreux," ii. 23-28,
and of the "Guillaume Tell,"
31;
Nelson ordered by Keith to take
personal charge of blockade of, 28;
Nelson quits blockade of, 30,
31;
takes ships off blockade,
contrary to Keith's wishes, 36-39;
surrender of, to the British,
62;
effect of surrender of, upon the
Czar, 62;
Nelson's views as to the ultimate
disposition of, 168;
Nelson's visit to, in 1803, 189,
194;
strategic importance of, 182,
195, 264.
Man, Admiral Robert,
in command under Hotham, at the
fleet action of July 13, 1795, i. 180;
Nelson's commendation of,
180;
subsequent mistakes of, in 1796,
240, 248,
249, 254;
Nelson's expressions concerning,
240, 248;
allusion to, ii.
19.
Marengo, Battle of,
Nelson in Leghorn at the time of,
ii. 37, 179.
Maritimo, Island of,
strategic centre for a
rendezvous, i. 420, 426, 427.
Masséna, French general,
defeats the combined Austrians
and Russians near Zurich, ii. 15;
Nelson likened to,
52.
Matcham, Mrs., Nelson's sister,
attitude towards Lady Hamilton,
ii. 55, 178;
towards Lady Nelson,
178;
anecdote of Nelson transmitted
by, 335.
Matcham, George, Nelson's nephew,
letter of, dated 1861, giving
recollections of Nelson, ii. 155-157.
Melville, Lord, First Lord of the Admiralty, in succession to St.
Vincent,
reply to Nelson's appeal to
reverse previous refusal of medals for Copenhagen, ii.
167;
Nelson's letter to, about his
missing the French fleet, 280-282.
Merton, Nelson's home in England,
purchase of, by him, ii.
144, 149, 150;
life at, during Peace of Amiens,
146-178;
final stay at,
320-336.
Messina,
importance of, to the security of
Sicily, Nelson's opinions, i. 413,
414, 417,
ii. 186, 191-193.
Middleton, Sir Charles, afterwards Lord Barham, i.
85. See Barham.
Miles, Commander Jeaffreson,
able defence of Lord Nelson's
action at Naples, in 1799, i. 441.
Miller, Captain Ralph W.,
commands Nelson's flagship at the
Battle of St. Vincent, i. 274,
279;
at Teneriffe, 302;
at the Battle of the Nile,
355;
Nelson's expressions of affection
for, and anxiety for a monument to, ii. 143.
Minorca,
Nelson ordered from Egypt for an
expedition against, i. 366;
Nelson directs his squadron upon,
on receiving news of Bruix's incursion, 418-420;
Nelson's difference with Keith,
as to the value and danger of, 445-451, ii. 3, 5,
6;
Nelson's visit to, in 1799,
ii. 6, 11, 12;
restored to Spain at Peace of
Amiens, 181.
Minto, Lord. See Elliot, Sir Gilbert.
Minto, Lady,
mention of Nelson at Palermo, in
letters of, i. 396, 397;
at Leghorn, ii. 38,
39;
at Vienna, 40-42.
Moore, Colonel,
afterwards Sir John, i.
119;
friction between Lord Hood and,
in Corsica, 140-145;
Nelson's agreement, in the main,
with Hood's views, 143, 144, 145.
Morea,
Nelson's anxieties about,
ii. 185, 187, 195, 203, 204, 213, 266, 276, 281,
287.
Moutray, Captain,
Nelson's refusal to recognize
pendant of, as commodore, i. 49-51;
undisturbed friendship between
Nelson and, 51.
Moutray, Mrs.,
Nelson's affection and admiration
for, i. 51, 52;
Collingwood writes to, after
Nelson's death, 52.
Moutray, Lieutenant James, son of the above,
dies before Calvi, while serving
under Nelson, i. 52, 148;
Nelson erects a monument to,
148.
Murray, Rear-Admiral George,
Nelson's pleasure at a visit
from, ii. 170;
captain of the fleet to Nelson,
1803-1805, 224, 228, 234, 237.
NAPLES, city of,
Nelson's first visit to,
i. 108-111;
second visit, 371, 372, 385-395;
flight of the Court from,
395;
the French enter, 399;
the French evacuate, after their
disasters in Upper Italy, 415;
the royal power re-established
in, 429-432,
444;
Nelson's action in the Bay of,
430-444;
Nelson leaves finally, for
Palermo, ii. 2;
Nelson's emotions upon distant
view of, in 1803, 194.
Naples, Kingdom of. See Two Sicilies.
Naples, King of,
Nelson's regrets for, upon the
evacuation of the Mediterranean, 1798, i. 248;
gives orders that supplies be
furnished Nelson's squadron before the Battle of the Nile,
329;
Nelson's appeal to, to take a
decided stand, 330;
Nelson's indignation against,
when difficulties about supplies are raised in Syracuse, 340;
congratulates Nelson on the issue
of the Battle of the Nile, 363;
visits Nelson's flagship,
372;
distrust of his own officers,
390, 416;
under Nelson's influence, decides
upon war with France, 391;
Nelson promises support to,
391, 392;
decides to advance against French
in Rome, 393;
defeat and precipitate flight of,
394;
takes refuge at Palermo, 395;
promises Nelson that Malta, being
legitimately his territory, should not be transferred to any
power without consent of England, 406;
authorizes British flag to be
hoisted in Malta alongside the Sicilian, 407;
Nelson's devotion to, 408, 443, 450;
personal timidity and apathy of,
416, 417,
ii. 5, 6;
requests Nelson to go to Naples
and support the royalists, i. 425;
gives Nelson full powers to act
as his representative in Naples, 429,
430;
goes himself to Bay of Naples,
but remains on board Nelson's flagship, 443;
alienation of, from the queen,
444, ii. 6;
returns to Palermo, ii.
2;
confers upon Nelson the dukedom
of Bronté, 2;
Nelson renews correspondence
with, in 1803, 190;
Nelson's apprehensions for, 191,
195;
Nelson keeps a ship-of-the-line
always in the Bay of Naples to receive royal family,
192;
application of, to the British
government, to send Nelson back to the Mediterranean, after
sick-leave, 246;
agitation of, at the prospect of
Nelson's departure, 246;
offers him a house at Naples or
at Palermo, 246.
Naples, Queen of,
agitation at hearing of the
Battle of the Nile, i. 372;
friendship with Lady Hamilton,
378, 383,
384, 426,
444;
characteristics of, 388, ii. 6;
association with Nelson,
i. 388-391;
Nelson's devotion to, 392;
distrust of her subjects,
394, 416, ii. 5;
flight to Palermo, i.
395;
apprehensions of, 419, 428;
alienation of the King from,
444, ii. 6;
wishes to visit Vienna, and is
carried to Leghorn by Nelson, with two ships-of-the-line,
ii. 36;
refused further assistance of the
same kind by Lord Keith, 38;
her distress of mind, and anger
with Keith, 39;
proceeds to Vienna by way of
Ancona, 40;
Nelson renews correspondence
with, in 1803-1805, 183, 190, 264.
Nelson, Rev. Edmund,
father of Lord Nelson, i.
4;
Nelson and his wife live with,
1788-1793, 91;
Mrs. Nelson continues to live
with, after Nelson goes to the Mediterranean, 207, 257, 308, ii. 48-48, 55;
his testimony to Lady Nelson's
character, ii. 55;
attitude towards Lady Hamilton,
55, 176;
persuaded of the absence of
criminality in her relations with Nelson, 55, 176;
refuses to be separated from Lady
Nelson, 55, 176, 177;
death of, 176;
character of, 176,
177.
NELSON, HORATIO, LORD.
Historical Sequence of
Career:
and birth, i. 4;
first going to sea, 5;
service in merchantman, 9;
cruise to the Arctic Seas,
12;
to the East Indies, 14;
acting lieutenant, 15;
lieutenant, 16;
cruise to West Indies, 17;
commander and post-captain,
21;
Nicaraguan expedition, 26;
invalided home, 30;
command of "Albemarle," 1781,
31;
paid off, and visits France,
41;
cruise of the "Boreas," 1784,
44;
refuses to obey orders of
commander-in-chief,
first, to recognize broad pendant
of a captain "not in commission," 49,
and, second, when directed not to
enforce the Navigation Act, 53-64;
engagement to Mrs. Nisbet,
69;
marriage, 75;
return to England, and "Boreas"
paid off. 1787, 75-80;
exposure of frauds in the West
Indies, 79, 82-86;
half-pay, 1788-1792, 90-94;
commissions the "Agamemnon,"
February, 1793, 99;
joins the Mediterranean fleet
under Lord Hood, 103;
constant detached service,
108-114;
blockade of Corsica, 116;
siege of Bastia, 120-133;
siege of Calvi, 136-146;
loss of right eye, 139;
refitting in Leghorn, 151-160;
action of "Agamemnon" with
"Ça Ira," 163;
partial fleet action of March 14,
1795, 166;
partial fleet action of July 13,
1795, 178;
command of a detached squadron on
the Riviera of Genoa,
under Hotham, 1795, 184-204,
and under Jervis, 1796, 215-229;
hoists broad pendant as
commodore, 220;
leaves "Agamemnon" for "Captain,"
230;
the blockade of Leghorn, 233;
seizure of Elba, 237,
and of Capraia, 245;
evacuation of Corsica, 247-254;
British fleet retires to
Gibraltar, 254;
mission to evacuate Elba,
259;
action with Spanish frigates,
259;
rejoins Jervis off Cape St.
Vincent, 268;
Battle of Cape St. Vincent, 1797,
268;
made a Knight of the Bath,
284;
promoted rear-admiral, 285;
mission into the Mediterranean,
288;
blockade and bombardment of
Cadiz, 289-294;
the Teneriffe expedition,
296;
loses his right arm, 303;
invalided home, 307;
rejoins Mediterranean fleet in
the "Vanguard," 1798, 310;
sent to watch the Toulon
armament, 316;
Campaign of the Nile, 323-366;
Battle of the Nile, 343-358;
severely wounded in the head,
351;
advanced to the peerage as Baron
Nelson of the Nile, 361;
arrives at Naples, 371;
meeting with Lady Hamilton,
372;
urges Naples to declare war
against France, 389;
war between Naples and France,
393;
Neapolitan court carried to
Palermo by, 395;
residence at Palermo and
contemporary events, 1799,—Sidney Smith and the Levant,
400;
Ionian Islands, 404;
Malta, 406;
Barbary States, 409;
about Naples, 413;
incursion of French fleet under
Admiral Bruix, 417-427;
proceeds to Naples, 428;
incident of the surrender of the
Neapolitan insurgents, 429-436;
the Caracciolo incident, 437;
refuses to obey an order of Lord
Keith, 445;
reiterated refusal, 448;
left temporarily
commander-in-chief by Keith's departure, ii.
1-22;
created Duke of Bronté by
King of Naples, 2;
dissatisfaction at not being
continued as commander-in-chief, 3;
Keith's return, 1800,
22;
superseded by Keith's return,
22;
capture of "Le
Généreux," 24;
capture of "Le Guillaume Tell,"
in Nelson's absence, 31;
returns to England through
Germany, 1800, 39-45;
breach with Lady Nelson,
45-57;
promoted vice-admiral,
56;
hoists flag on board "San Josef,"
in the Channel Fleet, under Lord St. Vincent, 1801,
56;
birth of the child Horatia,
56;
the Baltic expedition,
60-116;
Battle of Copenhagen,
80-97;
incident of disobeying the signal
to leave off action, 89;
incident of the flag of truce,
94;
created a viscount,
99;
negotiations, 100;
return to England,
107;
charged with defence of the coast
of England against invasion, 118-145;
retirement from active service
during the Peace of Amiens, 146-175;
interest in public questions,
168-174;
commissioned commander-in-chief
in the Mediterranean, 1803, 175;
death of his father,
176;
arrival in the Mediterranean,
189;
the long watch off Toulon,
196-261;
last promotion, Vice-Admiral of
the White, 1804, 221;
escape and pursuit of the French
Toulon fleet, 1805, 272-295;
follows it and its Spanish
auxiliaries to the West Indies, 296;
returns to Gibraltar,
309;
carries his squadron to
Cornwallis off Brest, 315-317;
returns himself to England,
August, 1805, 315;
last stay in England,
320-336;
resumes command in the
Mediterranean, 339;
the Battle of Trafalgar,
363;
mortally wounded,
388;
death of, 396.
Personal
Characteristics:
Appearance,
in boyhood, i. 15;
at twenty-one, 22;
at twenty-four, 38;
at twenty-seven, 66;
at thirty-six, 39;
at forty-two, ii. 40, 41,
43;
at forty-three, 112;
later years, 155-157, 228, 238,
321, 332;
expression, 158.
Health,
inherited delicacy of
constitution, i. 5;
invalided from East Indies,
15;
from West Indies, 29, 30, 31;
in Baltic, 33;
in Canada, 36;
mentioned, 44, 75, 78, 91, 119, 146, 147, 149, 207, 236, 294, 309, 368, 401, 413, 453, 454, ii. 29-33, 35, 56, 105, 106, 111,
115, 119, 139, 142 (sea-sickness), 209, 210, 221, 225-228, 245,
246, 292, 326, 332;
influence of active employment
upon,
i. 77, 78, 119, 130, 207, 236, 292, 294,
ii. 332.
Charm of manner and
considerateness of action,
i. 18, 24, 32, 46, 47, 51, 74, 93, 108, 166, 290, 291, 359;
ii. 4, 9, 10, 40, 41, 70,
71, 103, 115, 159, 165, 226, 229, 236-239, 298, 311, 318, 337,
339, 340, 353-356, 359, 374.
Vanity, and occasional
petulance,
i. 138, 152, 153, 255-257, 277-281, 295, 315, 385, 388-389, 452-453;
ii. 3, 23, 27-29, 30, 32,
34, 39, 44, 50, 69, 78, 104-105, 112, 138-142, 144, 236, 237,
300, 322.
Courage,
illustrated,
i. 8, 13, 19, 145, 274, 293, 302-304, 306;
ii. 90, 95, 101, 327, 359,
379.
Love of glory and
honor,
i. 8, 20, 22, 25, 29, 37, 39, 40, 64, 76, 119, 124, 126, 133, 138, 151, 152, 172, 173, 215, 241, 248, 255, 280, 283, 286, 293, 302, 309, 359, 419;
ii. 24, 52, 65, 90, 104,
105, 112, 134, 175, 250, 339.
Strength and tenacity of
convictions,
i. 18, 38, 52, 57, 62, 63, 73, 74, 125, 126, 127, 136, 137, 226, 241, 244, 312, 313, 335, 341, 344, 421, 427, 450, 451;
ii. 18-21, 71, 73, 74, 78,
82, 93, 137, 183, 271, 273, 281, 285, 287, 289, 294, 302, 303,
306, 314, 315, 319, 324.
Sensitiveness to anxiety,
perplexity, and censure,
i. 61, 62, 75, 79, 81, 92, 133, 204, 210-213, 302, 306, 307, 341, 401, 412, 419, 452-454;
ii. 3, 11, 12, 13, 29-34,
49, 50, 68, 105, 113, 116, 119, 141, 161-167, 170, 188, 209,
219-221, 247, 274, 280, 286, 287, 289, 292, 296, 300, 308, 309,
378.
Daily life, examples of, and
occupations,
i. 139-141, 146-147, 207, 289-294, 332-333, 367-369, 396-398;
ii. 115-116, 150-159,
223-228, 232-236, 275, 326-328, 330-335, 340.
Religious feelings, indications
of,
i. 173, 324, 325, 352, 358-360;
ii. 159, 160, 335, 381,
382, 384, 389, 395, 396.
Professional
Characteristics:
Duty, sense of,
i. 8, 70, 109, 133, 225, 257, 302, 419;
ii. 65, 101, 105, 119-120,
222-223, 263, 291, 296, 382, 384, 393-396.
Exclusiveness and constancy of
purpose,
i. 16, 27, 34, 37, 38, 40, 62, 64, 68, 74, 86, 99, 109, 111, 122, 126, 133, 147, 151, 169, 221, 222, 225, 236, 253, 255, 257, 284, 309, 315, 324, 325, 326, 327, 334, 337, 339, 344, 351, 355;
ii. 9, 42, 65, 74, 75, 88,
93, 107, 188, 222, 234-236, 271, 287, 291, 315, 324,
394.
Professional
courage,
i. 35, 73, 125, 127, 163-165, 166, 221, 240, 248, 263, 265, 266, 271-273, 292, 301, 328, 334, 344, 421, 427;
ii. 27, 72-77, 79, 88-93,
102, 107, 111, 132, 136, 215, 270, 280, 281, 294, 305-307, 323,
324, 334, 355.
Fearlessness of
responsibility,
i. 11, 19, 49-52, 52-59, 63, 64, 124-126, 188-191, 221, 268, 271, 282, 334-336, 445-453;
ii. 8, 73, 89-93, 193,
194, 205, 242, 250-253, 258, 259, 261-263, 270, 292-296, 302,
306, 316.
Diplomacy,
natural aptitude for, and tact in
dealing with men,
i. 31-33, 47, 65, 110, 140-143, 189-191, 206 and note,
403-404;
ii. 4-6, 8-10, 12-14,
69-70, 71, 72-73, 76, 94-97, 100-104, 114, 133-134, 194, 199,
216-217, 229, 231-232, 237-239, 255, 258, 264-266, 311, 337,
339-340;
extensive cares in,
i. 383, 405-408, 411-413;
ii. 10, 11, 181-188, 190,
199, 228-229, 233-236.
Fleet,
when commander-in-chief,
Administration of, ii. 4, 10, 11, 16, 115, 116, 134-136,
168-170, 197, 198-200, 209, 228, 229, 234-236, 237, 241-245, 277,
278, 283, 286, 292, 293, 295, 309, 314, 315.
Condition of, in the
Mediterranean, 1803-1805, ii. 171, 196, 205, 269, 288,
297, 310.
Preservation and management of,
ii. 195-198, 201-204, 205-207, 210, 211, 214-216, 219-220,
229, 230, 241-245, 253-254, 282, 283, 285, 287, 296-298, 310,
315, 316, 317, 329, 356-358, 361.
Health of,
i. 109, 110;
ii. 207-209, 310,
314.
Strategic ideas, indications
of,
i. 27, 28, 102, 105, 107, 115, 123, 135, 136, 150, 159, 160, 171, 174, 176, 182, 183, 191, 193-196, 199-200, 213-215, 216, 217-218, 231-232, 234, 239, 243-246, 247-250, 330, 332-336, 337, 342, 365, 366, 391, 407, 419-421, 427;
ii. 18-21, 42, 71-73,
74-77, 106, 111, 122, 123-133, 136, 182-184, 185-188, 198,
200-203, 204, 207, 211-213, 249, 250, 269-271, 276, 281, 282,
285-288, 293, 302, 305, 306, 314-317, 323, 324, 364.
Tactical ideas, indications
of,
i. 34, 105, 121, 126, 135, 163, 164, 166, 180-182, 217-218, 222, 226, 240, 244, 270-272, 301, 327, 344-345, 350, 355-357, 358, 421;
ii. 76, 79, 80-82, 84-87,
92, 100, 124-126, 137, 138, 215-217, 219, 220, 230, 306, 333,
341-353, 356, 357, 360, 361, 366-369, 370, 371, 373,
380.
Nelson, Frances, Lady, wife of Lord Nelson,
birth, parentage, and first
marriage to Dr. Josiah Nisbet, i. 65;
one son, Josiah Nisbet, 65;
widowhood, 65; lives with her uncle, at Nevis, 66;
characteristics, 67-69, 71, 149, 173, 386, ii. 46,
53, 54;
wooing of, by Nelson, i.
69-71;
marriage to Nelson, and departure
to England, 75;
no children by Nelson, 90;
resides with Nelson, in his
father's house, 91;
lives with father of Nelson,
during the latter's absences, 1793-1800, 207, 257, 308, ii. 46-48, 55;
letters of Nelson to, quoted,
i. 111, 133, 139, 147, 149, 172, 173, 207, 248, 255-258, 295, 307, 325, 372, 387, ii. 47, 146, 147;
continued attachment of Nelson
to, on returning home in 1797, i. 308, 309, 316;
Nelson's message to, when
thinking himself mortally wounded at the Nile, 351;
uneasiness of, at the reports of
Nelson's intimacy with Lady Hamilton, 396;
apparent purpose of, to go to the
Mediterranean, discouraged by Nelson, 396;
growing alienation of Nelson
from, 422, ii. 45-47, 48, 51,
53;
attitude of, towards Nelson,
ii. 46, 47, 50, 53, 54;
letters of, to Nelson, quoted,
47;
Nelson's bearing towards, 48,
50;
attitude of, towards Lady
Hamilton, 51;
final breach between Nelson and,
53, 55, 146-149;
later years of, 54,
55;
testimony to, of Nelson and of
his father, 55;
Nelson's "letter of dismissal"
to, and her endorsement thereon, 146, 147;
date of death, i. 65 note.
Nelson, Maurice, Nelson's eldest brother,
quoted by Lady Nelson, ii.
147 and note.
Niebuhr, the historian,
accounts of the Battle of
Copenhagen, quoted, ii. 81, 98, 112.
Nile, Battle of the, i. 343-358.
Nisbet, Captain Josiah, Nelson's stepson, birth and parentage,
i. 65;
goes to sea with Nelson in the
"Agamemnon," 100;
Lady Hamilton's kindness to,
111;
good conduct of, at Teneriffe,
302, 303;
Nelson attributes the saving of
his life to, 306, ii.
147;
St. Vincent promotes to commander
at Nelson's request, i. 306;
Nelson's disappointment in,
412;
estrangement between Nelson and,
ii. 146-148;
St. Vincent's assertion of
Nelson's high opinion of, in early life, 148 note.
Nisbet, Dr. Josiah, first husband of Lady Nelson, i.
65.
Nisbet, Mrs. Josiah, Lady Nelson's name by first marriage.
See Nelson, Lady.
Niza, Marquis de, Portuguese admiral,
commanding squadron under
Nelson's orders in the Mediterranean, 1798, 1799, i.
370;
conducts sea blockade of Malta,
370, 392,
ii. 1, 8, 9, 12, 14;
ordered temporarily to defence of
Messina, i. 413;
co-operates at sea with Nelson,
when expecting Bruix's fleet, 420,
425;
limitations to Nelson's authority
over, 439;
recalled by Portuguese
government, ii. 8;
Nelson forbids him to obey, 8,
9;
Nelson's expressions of esteem
for, 9;
final recall allowed by Nelson,
14.
Orde, Admiral Sir John,
governor of Dominica, i.
59;
difficulty with Lord St. Vincent
concerning Nelson's appointment to command a squadron, 337, 338;
assigned in 1804 to command part
of Nelson's station, from the Straits of Gibraltar to Cape
Finisterre, ii. 247;
relations between Nelson and,
247, 248, 256-263, 291;
driven from before Cadiz by
combined fleets, 285;
popular outcry against,
290;
Nelson's complaint against, for
not watching course of combined fleets, 290 note,
292-295;
relieved from duty at his own
request, 310.
"Orient," French flagship at the Battle of the Nile,
present as the "Sans Culottes,"
in Hotham's action of March 13, 1795, i. 162, 164, 166;
at the Battle of the Nile,
347, 349,
353, 354;
blows up, 354;
Nelson's coffin made from
mainmast of, ii. 327.
Otway, Captain,
commands Sir Hyde Parker's
flagship at the Battle of Copenhagen, ii. 77;
advises against the passage of
the Great Belt, 77, 78;
opposes the making signal to
Nelson to leave off action, 89;
message from Parker to Nelson by,
89, 91.
Paget, Sir Arthur,
succeeds Hamilton as British
minister to Naples, i. 397,
ii. 34, 35;
quotations from the "Paget
Papers," i. 397, 398, ii. 23, 37.
Pahlen,
Russian minister of state during
Nelson's command in the Baltic, ii. 107;
Nelson's correspondence with,
112-114.
Palermo, Nelson's residence in, i. 395-420; ii.
2-35.
Palmas, Gulf of, in Sardinia,
rendezvous of Nelson's fleet,
ii. 207, 277, 278, 282, 283;
Nelson learns there of
Villeneuve's second sailing, 283.
Parker, Commander Edward,
aide to Nelson, ii.
134;
description of Nelson's celerity
by, 134;
takes part in boat-attack on the
French vessels off Boulogne, 137;
mortally wounded,
138;
death of, and Nelson's distress,
143.
Parker, Admiral Sir Hyde,
succeeds Hotham in command in the
Mediterranean, i. 199, 200;
Nelson's dissatisfaction with,
202;
selected to command the Baltic
expedition, ii. 56;
Nelson joins, as second in
command, 65;
cool reception of Nelson by,
66-69;
growing influence of Nelson with,
70-74;
sluggish movements of, 71, 102,
106, 107;
Nelson's comprehensive letter to,
75-77;
authorizes Nelson's plan of
attack, 79;
the signal to leave off action,
89-93;
intrusts negotiations to Nelson,
100-104;
relieved from command,
110;
Nelson's opinion of his conduct
in the Baltic, 110, 164.
Parker, Admiral Sir Peter,
early patron of Nelson, and chief
mourner at his funeral, i. 20-22;
personal kindness to Nelson of,
20, 30;
Nelson's gratitude expressed to,
ii. 105, 240.
Parker, Vice-Admiral Sir William,
controversy with Nelson about the
latter's account of the Battle of Cape St. Vincent, i.
277-282;
remonstrates with Lord St.
Vincent for Nelson's appointment to command a detached squadron,
337, 338.
Parker, Captain William,
commander of the frigate
"Amazon," anecdote of Nelson, i. 337 note, ii. 217;
anecdote of Captain Hardy,
245;
special mission and singular
orders given by Nelson to, 261-263;
accompanies Nelson to the West
Indies, 289, 295, 297;
final letter from Nelson to, 315,
316.
Pasco, Lieutenant,
Nelson's signal officer at
Trafalgar, ii. 359;
anecdotes of Nelson by, 359, 360,
381, 882;
makes the signals "England
expects," etc., 383,
and for "close action,"
384;
wounded, 390;
replies to a query made by Nelson
while dying, 390.
Paul I., Emperor of Russia,
congratulations to Nelson on the
Battle of the Nile, i. 363;
coalition of, with Austria and
Naples, 400, 404-406;
becomes Grand Master of Knights
of Malta, and seeks the restoration of the Order, 406-408;
Nelson's compliments to,
ii. 10, 28;
successes of his general,
Suwarrow, 14;
subsequent reverses, and anger
of, against Austria and Great Britain, 15, 62;
indignation at the refusal of
Great Britain to surrender Malta to himself, 62;
renews the Armed Neutrality of
1780, with Sweden, Denmark, and Prussia, 63;
Bonaparte's management of,
64;
murder of, 100.
"Penelope," British frigate,
efficacious action of, in
compelling the surrender of the "Guillaume Tell," French
ship-of-the-line, ii. 31, 328.
Pitt, William, Prime Minister of Great Britain,
marked courtesy shown to Nelson
when last in England by, ii. 156;
intercourse of Nelson with, just
before Trafalgar, 323, 327.
Porto Ferrajo, Island of Elba,
seized by Nelson in 1796,
i. 237;
British forces retire from Bastia
to, 253;
naval evacuation of,
superintended by Nelson, 259-262.
RADSTOCK, Admiral, Lord,
quotations from letters of,
relating to Nelson, i. 152,
ii. 202 and note, 236, 239, 247, 289, 290, 291, 307, 308,
325.
"Redoutable," French ship-of-the-line,
Nelson mortally wounded by a shot
from, ii. 387-389.
Registration of seamen, Nelson's plans for, ii. 168.
169.
Revel,
Nelson's desire to attack the
Russian detachment of ships in, ii. 74, 77, 100, 102, 106,
107, 111;
Nelson's visit to,
112-114;
results of Nelson's visit,
114.
Riou, Captain,
commands the frigate "Amazon,"
and a light squadron in the Battle of Copenhagen, ii. 82,
83, 86, 89, 91;
obeys signal to retire, and is
killed, 91.
Riviera of Genoa,
operations of Nelson upon the,
1795, 1796, i. 184-236;
importance of, to the French,
184-190.
Rochefort, the part of the French squadron at,
in Napoleon's combinations,
ii. 269, 272, 312.
Rodney, Admiral, Lord,
effect of his victory upon
Nelson's plans for Trafalgar, ii. 352.
Rogers, Samuel, anecdote of Nelson, ii. 50.
Rose, George,
Nelson's interview with, in 1788,
i. 82-84;
accompanies Nelson on board ship
before Trafalgar, ii. 337;
Nelson's message to, when dying,
395.
Ruffo, Cardinal,
leader of the Neapolitan
"Christian Army" at Naples, 1799, i. 416;
concludes with the insurgents in
the castles a capitulation which Nelson annuls, 429 and note, 432;
stormy interview of, with Nelson,
431.
"Sabina," Spanish frigate,
captured by the "Minerve"
carrying Nelson's broad pendant, i. 259;
recaptured, 260.
"San Josef," Spanish three-decked ship,
taken possession of by Nelson at
Battle of St. Vincent, i. 273-276;
flagship to Nelson in the Channel
Fleet, ii. 56, 65.
"San Nicolas," Spanish eighty-gun ship,
boarded by Nelson at Battle of
St. Vincent, i. 273-276.
Santa Cruz, Canary Islands. See Teneriffe.
Sardinia, Island of,
importance of, in Nelson's
opinion, ii. 200-205.
Saumarez, Sir James,
commands the "Orion," at the
Battle of St. Vincent, i. 276,
277;
relieves Nelson in the blockade
of Cadiz, 288;
accompanies Nelson as second in
command in the Nile campaign, 316,
325, 332,
333 and note, 336, 345;
at Battle of the Nile, 349, 353;
sent to Gibraltar with the
prizes, 366, 368;
Nelson's eulogy of, in the House
of Lords, ii. 160.
Scott, Rev. A.J.,
private secretary to Sir Hyde
Parker, and afterwards to Nelson in the Mediterranean, ii.
80, 92;
testimony of, to Nelson's
religious feelings, 160;
Nelson's method of transacting
business with, 233-235;
mention of Nelson's kindliness
by, 236-238;
anecdote of Nelson, 293,
294;
remark of Nelson to,
368;
at Nelson's death-bed, 389, 395,
396.
Scott, John,
public secretary to Nelson,
ii. 232;
remarks on the quickness of
Nelson's intelligence, 236,
and on his kindliness,
238;
killed at Trafalgar,
385.
Sicily,
importance of Malta to, i.
330;
Nelson's anxiety for, in 1799,
413, 414,
419, 423,
426-428, 445, 447, ii.
5;
in 1803-5, ii. 185,
191-193, 196, 212, 282, 285-287;
Nelson's estate of Bronté
in, ii. 2, 110.
Sidmouth, Lord. See Addington.
Smith, Sir Sidney,
Nelson's indignation at the
mission of, to the Levant, i. 400-402;
Nelson's relations with, 402-404;
successful defence of Acre by,
ii. 17;
Nelson's peremptory orders to,
not to permit any Frenchman to quit Egypt, 18;
nevertheless, Convention of El
Arish countenanced by, 20-22;
Nelson's distrust of, 10,
194.
Smith, Spencer, brother to Sir Sidney,
minister and joint minister of
Great Britain to Constantinople, i. 400-403;
becomes secretary of embassy,
ii. 13.
Spain,
Nelson sees that Spain cannot be
a true ally to Great Britain, i. 104;
effect upon Nelson of declaration
of war by, 243-250;
political condition of, in 1803,
ii. 181;
Nelson's views concerning, 185,
199, 248, 251, 254, 258, 259, 265;
Nelson's letter of instructions
to a captain contingent upon action of, 252.
Spencer, Earl,
first Lord of the Admiralty,
i. 294;
letters to Nelson from, quoted,
285, 361,
452, ii. 32-34;
letters of Nelson to, quoted,
i. 294, 327, 362, 401, 402, 407, 444, 445, 447, ii. 5,
6, 11, 12, 16, 27, 32, 34, 65;
indicates to Jervis the
Government's wish that Nelson command the squadron in the
Mediterranean, i. 321, 322;
selects Sir Hyde Parker for
Baltic command, ii. 67.
St. George, Mrs.,
description of Lady Hamilton,
i. 380, 382;
account of meeting with Nelson
and the Hamiltons at Dresden in 1800, ii.
43-45;
remarks likeness of Nelson to the
Russian Marshal Suwarrow, 43.
"St. George," British ship-of-the-line,
Nelson's flagship in the Baltic
expedition, ii. 65;
Nelson quits, for the "Elephant,"
for the Battle of Copenhagen, 78.
St. Vincent, Battle of Cape, i. 268-277.
St. Vincent, Earl. See Jervis.
Stewart, Lieutenant-Colonel,
accompanies the Baltic expedition
on board Nelson's flagship, ii. 65;
narrative of the expedition, and
anecdotes of Nelson by, quoted, 65, 79, 82-84, 89-91, 94-96, 101,
113, 115.
Stuart, General,
in command of the British troops
at the siege of Calvi, i. 134,
136-146;
apparent friction between Lord
Hood and, 142-145;
Nelson's high opinion of,
140, 143.
Suckling, Catherine, maiden name of Nelson's mother, i.
4.
Suckling, Captain Maurice,
Nelson's maternal uncle,
i. 5;
receives Nelson on board his ship
the "Raisonnable," on entering the navy, 6;
care for Nelson during his early
years, 9-16;
made Comptroller of the Navy,
15;
procures Nelson's promotion to
lieutenant, 16;
death of, 21;
Nelson's care, when wounded at
Teneriffe, to save the sword of, 303;
successful naval engagement of,
on the date of Trafalgar, and expectation formed therefrom by
Nelson, ii. 368.
Suckling, William, Nelson's maternal uncle,
Nelson appeals to, for aid to
marry, i. 43, 69, 70;
makes an allowance to Nelson,
70;
letters of Nelson to, 43, 69, 133.
Suwarrow, Russian marshal,
commands the combined Russian and
Austrian troops in Italian campaign of 1799, i. 416, ii. 2, 6, 15;
personal resemblance of Nelson
to, ii. 43, 112.
Sweden,
joins Russia, Denmark, and
Prussia in the Armed Neutrality of 1800, ii.
60-63.
Syracuse,
Nelson refreshes his squadron in,
before the Battle of the Nile, i. 340-342;
Nelson's opinion of, as a base
for his operations after the battle, 368,
369;
insecurity of, with headquarters
at Palermo, 414;
Nelson ordered by Keith to make
his headquarters at, ii. 30.
"TÉMÉRAIRE," British ship-of-the-line,
Nelson's supporter at Trafalgar,
ii. 378, 391.
Teneriffe, Nelson's expedition against, i. 296-306.
Tetuan,
Nelson's visits to, for water and
fresh provisions, ii. 292-294, 314, 315;
sends a detachment to, before
Trafalgar, 360.
"Theseus," British ship-of-the-line,
Nelson's flagship before Cadiz
and at Teneriffe, 289-291, 300, 304.
Thomson,
name under which Nelson speaks of
himself in his correspondence with Lady Hamilton, ii.
149,
and borne by his daughter prior
to his own death, 366.
Toulon,
delivered by its inhabitants to
Lord Hood, i. 106, 107;
retaken by the French, 117;
Nelson reconnoitres, 198, 217;
Jervis's efficient blockade of,
230, 242;
Nelson's method of watching,
ii. 197-199, 202, 211-217.
Trafalgar, Battle of,
general plan of action, as
originally conceived, ii. 343-346;
discussed, 347-349;
contrasted with the tactics of
the battle as fought, 350-352;
anecdote concerning its
conception, 352;
narrative of,
363-397.
Trench, Mrs. See St. George.
Tripoli,
maintains formal war with Naples
and Portugal, for the purposes of piracy, i. 409, ii. 7;
Nelson's diplomatic difficulties
with, i. 409, 410.
Troubridge, Sir Thomas,
nobly supports Nelson in his
initiative at the Battle of St. Vincent, i. 271-273, 277-282;
advises and accompanies Nelson in
the Teneriffe expedition, 296-306;
limitations of, 300, 301,
and admirable qualities, 304-306, ii.
141;
sent with a detachment of ten
ships-of-the-line to join Nelson in the Nile campaign, i.
323, 325,
326;
mentioned, 328, 329, 333, 340, 341, 343;
his ship, the "Culloden,"
unfortunately grounds before getting into action at the Nile,
352;
Nelson's praise of, 364, ii. 10;
incidental services in the waters
of Italy and Malta, i. 393,
405, 414-416, 419, 420, 437, 444, ii. 6, 13, 29;
remonstrates with Nelson on his
life at Palermo, i. 398;
sent by Nelson on a special
mission to Alexandria, 401;
singular anecdote of, 411;
letters of, to Nelson, 453, ii. 29, 35;
Nelson's petulant reproach to,
ii. 28;
strong remonstrances of, to
Nelson, against quitting the blockade of Malta, 29, 30,
35;
return of, to England,
41;
impression of, that Nelson will
not serve again, 42;
advice to Miss Knight concerning
the Hamiltons, 48;
letter of Nelson to, concerning
the sailing of the Baltic fleet, 66;
beginning alienation of Nelson
from, 111, 140, 141, 142, 170;
St. Vincent's opinion of, 116,
140.
Tunis,
Nelson's mission to, in 1793,
i. 113-116;
maintains formal war with Naples
and Portugal, for the purposes of piracy, 409, ii. 7;
Nelson's diplomatic difficulties
with, i. 409, 410.
Turkey,
co-operates with Russia and Great
Britain in the Mediterranean, 1798, i. 392, 404-406, 419, 420, 429, ii.
16-18;
Nelson's sympathy with, against
Russia, i. 406, 408;
makes separate convention of El
Arish with French, regardless of her allies, ii. 19,
20;
interests of, threatened in the
Morea and in Egypt by the French in 1803-5, 185-188, 195,
211-213.
Tuscany, attitude of, towards France, in 1794, i. 156, 161;
importance of ports of, to
France, 157, 158;
difficult neutrality of, 185, 233;
Nelson imagines a French
enterprise against, by sea, 214, 217, 218, 219;
control of, obtained by the
French, 233;
Nelson's operations on the coast
of, 236;
blockade of Leghorn and seizure
of Elba, 237;
political condition of, in
1803-5, during Nelson's Mediterranean command, ii.
182.
Two Sicilies, the Kingdom of the, (Naples and Sicily,)
Nelson's successful mission to,
to obtain troops for the occupation of Toulon, i. 110;
attitude towards France, 1795,
158;
sends flotilla to aid Nelson, but
too late in the season, 192;
makes an armistice with France,
1796, 233;
Nelson's interest keenly excited
for, 247, 248;
makes peace with France, 1796,
251;
dissatisfaction with course of
France, in 1798, 319;
attitude of, towards France,
during the campaign of the Nile, 329-331, 340, 341, 342;
Nelson's anxieties for, 339;
Nelson's extreme interest in,
throughout his life, after his return from the Nile, 369, 388, 412, 417, 427, 442-446, 448, 450-452, ii. 4, 5,
6, 39, 183, 190-194, 264-266, 282, 285-287;
joy of, upon receipt of the news
of Battle of the Nile, i. 371,
372;
strategic weight of, in the
counsels of Bonaparte, 391;
Nelson persuades, to declare war
against France, 389-393;
overwhelming defeat of, and
flight of Court to Palermo, 394, 395;
restoration of the royal
authority in Naples, ii. 6;
refusal of the king to reside in
Naples, 5, 6;
occupation of Adriatic coast of,
by Bonaparte, 1803-5, 179.
Vado, Bay of,
occupied by Austrians in 1795,
i. 178;
best anchorage between Nice and
Genoa, 186;
importance of, to France,
187, 214,
215;
evacuated by Austrians after the
Battle of Loano, 201, 208;
held definitively by French,
223.
Valetta,
French in Malta shut in,
i. 392, 407, 409, ii. 7;
Nelson's difficulties in
maintaining the blockade, ii. 7-10, 12-14;
urgency of Spencer and Troubridge
upon Nelson to await the capitulation of, 28-30,
32-35.
"Vanguard," British ship-of-the-line,
Nelson's flagship at the Battle
of the Nile, commissioned, i. 310;
dismasted off Corsica, 323;
at the Battle of the Nile,
348, 349,
350;
arrives at Naples, 371;
Nelson's flag shifted from, to
the "Foudroyant," 423.
Vansittart,
British envoy to Copenhagen in
1801, ii. 71-73;
report of Danish defences,
73;
explanations conveyed from Nelson
to the Admiralty by, 73.
"Victory," British hundred-gun ship, Nelson's flagship at
Trafalgar,
Jervis's flagship at Battle of
St. Vincent, i. 275;
Nelson sails in, for the
Mediterranean, ii. 175;
his long stay on board of, 222,
313;
returns to England,
318;
again sails with Nelson,
338;
at Battle of Trafalgar, 370,
378-380, 384-389, 390-394, 397.
Villeneuve, French admiral,
commands the rear at the Battle
of the Nile, i. 357;
escapes with two
ships-of-the-line and two frigates, 357;
indecision of, 358, ii. 349;
commands the Toulon squadron,
after the death of Latouche Tréville, ii. 257,
271;
Napoleon's orders to, 271,
272;
first sailing of, and disasters
encountered by, 272, 275, 276, 277;
second sailing of, from Toulon,
284;
arrival at Cadiz and in the West
Indies, 285;
Nelson learns of his passing the
Straits, 287,
and of his destination to the
West Indies, 292-295;
leaves West Indies for Europe, on
learning Nelson's arrival, 301;
followed by Nelson,
302;
engagement of, with Calder's
fleet, 313;
arrives at Ferrol,
314;
sails from Ferrol,
323;
arrival in Cadiz,
328;
dispositions for battle, before
Trafalgar, 349, 369, 370, 379, 380;
commander-in-chief of the entire
combined fleet, 363;
encounter of his flagship and
Nelson's, 384-387;
surrender of, 391.
Villettes, British general, at the siege of Bastia, i.
130;
Nelson's criticism on, when
commander of the troops at Malta, 1803, ii.
193;
characteristic letters of Nelson
to, 200, 250.
Wellington, Nelson's one meeting with, ii. 321.
West Indies, Nelson's early service in, i. 17-30;
called by Nelson "the station for
honour," i. 37;
Nelson enforces Navigation Act
in, 53-65;
wishes to return to, in search of
more active service, 108, 115;
conjectures destination of French
Toulon fleet to, in 1804, ii. 249, 270;
importance of, to Great Britain,
270;
rendezvous fixed by Napoleon, for
the concentration of his fleets, in 1805, 271, 283;
Toulon squadron goes to, 284,
285;
Nelson pursues to, 296,
297;
Nelson's week in, in June, 1805,
298-303;
his estimate of his services
rendered by going there, 301, 305;
Nelson returns to Europe from,
302-310.
William Henry, Prince, son of George III., and captain in the
British navy,
first meeting of Nelson with,
i. 38, 39;
description of Nelson at
twenty-four, by, 39;
accompanied by Nelson in visit to
Havana, 41;
Nelson's association with, in
1786-87, 74, 75;
gives away the bride at Nelson's
wedding, 75;
intimacy of Nelson with, 86-88;
returns with his ship from
America, contrary to orders, 88;
at variance with the King,
88, 89;
made Duke of Clarence, 89;
effect of intimacy with, upon
Nelson, 89;
subsequent correspondence between
Nelson and, 239, 244, 256, 284, 451;
continues his friendship to Lady
Nelson, after her husband's alienation, ii.
55.
Woolward, Frances Herbert, maiden name of Lady Nelson, i.
65.
Wurmser, Austrian marshal, succeeds Beaulieu, after the latter's
defeat by Bonaparte, in 1796, i. 238;
raises the siege of Mantua,
238;
Nelson's enterprise against
Leghorn dependent on the success of, 240;
defeated by Bonaparte, at
Castiglione and Lonato, 241.
Wyndham, British minister to Tuscany, mention of Nelson and the
Hamiltons by, ii. 38, 39;
strained relations of, towards
Nelson and the Hamiltons, 39.
Aboukir, Bay, Island, Promontory,
and Castle,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__;
ii. 16, 17, 32.
Aboukir, Battle of, ii. 17.
Acton, Sir John, Prime Minister of the Kingdom of the Two
Sicilies,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__;
ii. 8, 190, 191, 193, 194, 219, 264, 274, 275.
Addington (later Lord Sidmouth), Prime Minister of Great
Britain, 1801-1804,
Nelson's interactions with, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
ii. 101, 103, 120, 136, 162-164, 166, 167, 172, 174, 189, 193, 205, 211, 352.
Adriatic,
importance of Austrian communications in Italy, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
British interests in __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, ii. 192, 195, 243;
Napoleon's interest in, 188, 195, 266;
resort for privateers, 241, 242.
"Agamemnon," British ship-of-the-line,
Nelson was ordered to command her, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
relation to his career, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
action with four French frigates, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
engages the batteries at Bastia, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
action with the "Ça Ira,"
French 80-gun ship, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
engagement on March 14, 1795, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
engagement on July 13, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
services at Genoa, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
At the beginning of Bonaparte's campaign in 1796, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
Nelson leaves her for the "Captain," who is seventy-four, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
she's sailing to England, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
subsequent history, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
misfortune at the Battle of Copenhagen, ii. 87;
joins the fleet just before
Trafalgar, 361.
"Albemarle," British frigate commanded by Nelson, i.
31-41.
Alexandria,
Nelson's first voyage to,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
second trip, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
blocked, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson's third voyage to,
ii. 276, 277.
Algiers, Bonaparte's plans for, ii. 184;
Nelson's issues with,
230-232.
"Amazon," British frigate,
services in Copenhagen,
ii. 82, 86, 89, 91;
subsequent reference, 217, 261-263, 289, 295, 315.
Amiens, Peace of, signature of, ii. 146;
Nelson's home life during,
150-178;
breakdown of 175.
"Amphion," British frigate,
Nelson's journey to the Mediterranean in, ii. 189-196;
leaves her for the "Victory,"
222.
Archduke Charles, Nelson's meeting with, at Prague, ii.
43.
Austria and Austrians,
result of the 1794 campaign in
Holland and Germany, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
in Italy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
delay in beginning the 1795 campaign
in Italy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
their move toward Vado Bay, on the Riviera, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson instructed to cooperate with __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
their disregard for Genoese neutrality, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
in the summer of 1795, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
inability or unwillingness to
progress, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
their attitude towards the British, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
growing insecurity in their position, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__;
attacked and defeated by the French at the Battle of Loano, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
retreat through the Apennines,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Encouraged by Nelson to take back Vado in 1796, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
their progress under Beaulieu,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
Nelson's promises to, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
defeated by Bonaparte, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
driven into the Tyrol, and behind the Adige, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
besieged in Mantua, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
advance under Wurmser to relieve
Mantua, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson's hopes from there,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
hears of their loss again,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
the peace agreement of Campo Formio between Austria and France, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
dissatisfaction of Austria with France, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
the impact of their location in northern Italy on French operations, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
attitudes towards France and Naples, 1798, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson's judgment on, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
alliance with Russia, 1799,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
successes in 1799, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__; ii. 1, 14, 15;
reverses, 15;
capture of Genoa, 1800,
37;
defeat at Marengo,
37;
leave Northern Italy,
37;
Nelson's visit to,
40-43;
peace with France, 1801, 63,
119;
exhaustion of, 1801-1805,
180;
Nelson's criticism of the failure to enforce its neutrality, 242.
Ball, Sir Alexander J., British captain,
letter to Nelson, i.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
joins Nelson's division at Gibraltar, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
services in saving the flagship,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson asked for advice,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
at the Battle of the Nile,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
takes Nelson to Naples,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
heroic gestures towards Lady Hamilton,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
serves on land in Malta, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, ii. 7, 9, 11, 12, 13;
expresses disbelief at reports about Nelson and Lady Hamilton, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
summoned to join Nelson during Admiral Bruix's invasion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
ordered to return to duties at
Malta, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
reference to Nelson in letters to Lady Hamilton, ii. 23, 30;
visits Nelson at Merton,
158;
anecdote of Nelson shared by him,
158;
letters from Nelson to, 211, 213,
242-244, 270, 274, 278, 280, 286, 292;
opinion on French goals in 1804, 212;
Nelson's frustration with,
238;
opinion on how coastal lookout stations are managed, 318, note.
Barbary States. See Algiers, Tripoli, Tunis.
Barham, Lord,
Nelson's interview with, as Comptroller of the Navy, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
First Lord of the Admiralty,
ii. 291 and note, 317, 320, 321;
Nelson's interviews with, 320,
333;
Nelson's letters to, 324, 353, 355, 358.
Bastia, town in Corsica,
held by the French,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
blockade by Nelson, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
engagement with battery packs,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
description of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson's view on besieging,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
siege of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
surrender of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson's assessment of his own contributions at __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
Nelson was instructed to oversee the evacuation of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ by the British.
evacuation of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Battles, land, mentioned:
Aboukir, ii.
17;
Castiglione, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
Hohenlinden, ii.
63;
Loano, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Marengo, II.
37;
Novi, Nov 15.
Battles, naval, mentioned:
Calder's action, ii. 307, 313, 318, 323;
Camperdown, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Copenhagen, ii. 79-97, 98,
161-167;
First of June (Lord Howe's),
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
July 13, 1795, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
March 14, 1795, i.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
the Nile, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
St. Vincent, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
Trafalgar, ii.
377-397.
Beatty, Dr., surgeon of the "Victory,"
account of Nelson's habits and health, ii. 225-228 and note;
present at Nelson's death, 388,
389, 392, 393, 396.
Beaulieu, Austrian general,
commands the army in Italy, 1796,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
defeated by Bonaparte and pushed into the Tyrol, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__.
Beckford, William,
opinion of Lady Hamilton,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
visited by Nelson at Fonthill,
ii. 51-53;
anecdote about Nelson,
52.
Berry, Sir Edward, British captain,
accompanies Nelson as he boards the "San Nicolas" and "San Josef," i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
commands Nelson's flagship, the "Vanguard," __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
account of the Nile campaign (quoted), __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__;
at the Battle of the Nile,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
sent to England with updates,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
commands the "Foudroyant" during the capture of the "Généreux," ii. 24-27;
at the capture of the "Guillaume Tell," 31, 32;
commands the "Agamemnon" at
Trafalgar, 361;
many services of,
362.
Bickerton, Sir Richard, British admiral,
commands in the "Mediterranean"
when the war with France starts, 1803, ii. 194;
second in command to Nelson,
1803-1805, 202, 215, 219, 246, 248, 259, 263, 278;
left in charge by Nelson when he left for the West Indies, 294, 314, 317;
joins Collingwood before Cádiz,
334;
returns to England, unwell, just before Trafalgar, 338.
Blackwood, Sir Henry, British captain,
distinctive role in the capture of the "Guillaume Tell," ii. 31, 328;
arrives in London with news that the combined fleets are in Cadiz, 328;
interviews with Nelson,
328;
commands advanced squadron of frigates off Cádiz, 339, 357, 361, 364-369;
last day spent with Nelson,
372-379, 382-385;
witnesses the "Codicil" to
Nelson's will, 374, 375;
special confidence shown
to him by Nelson, 377;
Nelson's goodbye to him,
385.
Bolton, Susannah, Nelson's sister,
relationships with Lady Nelson and Lady Hamilton, ii. 55, 178.
Bonaparte, Napoleon,
the significant impact of Nelson on
his career, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, ii. 63,
64, 119, 120, 267-270, 283, 284, 301, 310, 314;
indicates the key to the defenses of Toulon, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
opinions on operations in Italy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__;
command of Army of Italy,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
defeats Beaulieu, moves to the Adige, and secures the French position in Northern Italy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__;
strengthens the coastline of the Riviera, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
seizes Livorno, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
compare with Nelson, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, ii. 129, 130, 172;
overthrows Wurmser, i.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
impact of his campaign in Italy
on Nelson's career, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
forces Genoa to shut its ports
to Great Britain, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
sails on the Egyptian Expedition,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__;
landing in Egypt, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson's recognition of the impact that the Battle of the Nile had on him, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, ii.
18-22;
trip to Syria,
17;
escape from Egypt to France, 16, 17,
After defeating a Turkish army in Aboukir Bay, 17;
defeats Austrians at Marengo, 37;
influence on the development of the Baltic Coalition, 63, 64;
threats to invade England,
1801, 119-122;
his leading position on the Continent in 1803, 179-187;
strong plan to invade
England, 1803-1805, 184-188, 191, 204, 213;
his policies and Nelson's counter-projects, 182-187;
Nelson's surprisingly accurate prediction about his future, 188, 265;
Nelson's instinctive grasp of his probable actions, 265, 270;
huge plans for the invasion of
England, 267-272, 283, 284;
His understanding of the importance of sea power was clear, 282.
"Boreas," British frigate,
commanded by Nelson, 1784-1787,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Brereton, British general,
incorrect information sent to
Nelson, ii. 298-300;
Nelson's expressions of frustration, 300, 309, 311, 318;
Comment on his mistake, 318,
note.
Bronté, Duke of,
Sicilian title and estate
granted to Nelson, ii. 2;
his signature afterwards,
2 and note.
Brueys, French admiral,
commander at the Battle of the Nile, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
his action preparations,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Bruix, French admiral,
commander of a French fleet entering the Mediterranean from Brest, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__;
the impact of his approach on events in Naples, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
his comeback to Brest, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
Nelson's remarks about his actions, ii. 213.
"Bucentaure," French flagship at Trafalgar,
Nelson's meeting with,
ii. 384-387;
surrender of, 391.
Cadiz, Nelson's visit to, i. 103-104;
his operations before, under
Jervis, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__;
his watch before, before
Trafalgar, ii. 339, 356-361;
effect of position of, on the
Battle of Trafalgar, 369, 371, 372, 380.
"Ça Ira," French ship-of-the-line,
Nelson's actions in the "Agamemnon," i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
his credit for, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Calder, Sir Robert, British admiral,
Captain of the fleet at the Battle of St. Vincent, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
his uncertain actions with the allied fleets in 1805, ii. 307, 313;
public outrage against, 308, 315, 323, 353;
Nelson's relationships with, 318,
319, 323, 327, 353-356;
called back to England for trial,
353.
Calvi, town in Corsica,
Nelson at the siege of, i.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
loses his right eye there,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Canary Islands. See Teneriffe.
Capel, Thomas B., British captain,
messenger after the
Battle of the Nile, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
mentioned, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, note, ii. 217.
"Captain," British ship-of-the-line,
carries Nelson's large pendant as commodore, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
At the Battle of St. Vincent,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
injuries sustained there,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson leaves her for the "Theseus," __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Caracciolo, Francesco, commodore in the Neapolitan navy,
hurt feelings due to the lack of trust from his Court, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
accompanies the flight to Palermo, gets permission to go back to Naples, and joins the insurgents there, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
apprehension, trial, and execution of __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Comments on Nelson's role in this situation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Castlereagh, Lord, British Minister,
Nelson's clear prediction to him about the impact of the Orders in Council on neutral flags and the License System, ii. 330.
Clarence, Duke of. See William Henry.
Codrington, Edward, British captain, expressions quoted:
about Nelson's sailing skills,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
his family connections and passion for
fame, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, ii. 175;
appearance of Nelson's ships,
288;
grace of Nelson's demeanor,
340.
Collingwood, Cuthbert, British admiral,
There is a strong link between his career and that of Nelson, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
strong expression of respect for
Nelson, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
association with Nelson in the West Indies, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ and note, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
At the Battle of Cape St. Vincent, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__;
strong statement regarding the credit
attributed to Nelson, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
his account of Nelson's frosty welcome at Court in 1800, ii. 49;
sent from England to the West Indies in 1805, 310;
Upon finding out that Nelson is gone, he takes a position off Cadiz instead, 311;
correspondence with Nelson about his return, 311-313;
left by Nelson in charge of
Cadiz, 316, 317;
force gathered under him when
allies arrive in Cadiz, 334;
characteristics,
340;
part assigned to him by Nelson for
Trafalgar, 350-352;
his role at Trafalgar, 370-372,
377, 380, 383, 384;
Nelson's praise for him,
384;
his sympathy for Nelson,
384;
informed about Nelson's deadly injury,
394.
Convoys,
Nelson's comments on the actions of, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
provides support to American merchant ships against French privateers, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
difficulty in giving in the
Mediterranean, ii. 241-244.
Copenhagen, defenses of,
in 1801, ii. 72, 80, 81,
84, 85;
Battle of, Nelson's plans for,
84-87;
the battle, 87-97;
importance and difficulty of the achievement, 98, 99;
failure of the British Government to provide rewards, 99, 162;
silence of the city of London,
161;
Nelson's actions,
161-167.
Corfu,
transferred, along with the other Ionian Islands, from Venice to France, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson's concerns after the Battle of the Nile, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
captured by Russo-Turkish forces,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
British measures to prevent re-occupation by the French, ii. 184;
Nelson's concerns during his time as commander-in-chief in the Mediterranean from 1803 to 1805, 187, 190, 195, 266;
privateer hideout,
241;
Napoleon's evaluation of,
206.
Cornwallis, William, British admiral,
Be kind to Nelson in his early years,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ and take note, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
Nelson instructed to communicate
with, off Brest in 1803, ii. 188, 189;
orders capturing Spanish treasure ships, 251;
Nelson instructs that the order be
disregarded, 251;
services off Brest,
269;
Nelson meets him near Brest on his return from the West Indies, 314, 317;
authorizes Nelson to go back to England, 317.
Correspondence, Nelson's extensive,
while in the Med,
ii. 190;
his handling method,
232-236.
Corsica, Island of,
Nelson ordered to the coast of,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
Nelson's participation in the operations there in 1794, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
the strategic importance of, to the British,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
British dependency governance, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
natives' discontent with
British rule, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
tenure of, depending on support from the locals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
abandonment by the British,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
threatened invasion of Sardinia
from, ii. 204.
"Curieux," British brig of war,
sent by Nelson to England from the West Indies with updates on his movements, ii. 301;
encounters combined fleets,
313;
Nelson's response to hearing the news, 313, 315.
Davison, Alexander, close friend of Nelson,
Nelson feels down about,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
shares details about the surrender of castles in Naples, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
the "Lady of the Admiralty's"
composure, ii. 49;
account provided by George III.
discussing Nelson, 49, 50;
Nelson's reference to Sir Hyde
Parker to, 67, 68, 71, 164;
supports Nelson financially,
144;
charged by Nelson with a final message to Lady Nelson, 148;
Nelson's comments regarding St. Vincent, 163;
about how the government treated him,
170;
"Salted beef and the French navy,"
296;
about General Brereton,
318.
De Vins, Austrian general,
commands on the Riviera in 1795,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson's collaboration with __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, and view on __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
Dresden, Nelson's visit to, in 1800, ii. 43-45.
Drinkwater, Colonel,
returns from Elba on a frigate with
Nelson, 1797, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
voyage incidents recounted,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
witnesses the Battle of St. Vincent, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
interview with Nelson after the battle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
characteristic story of
Nelson, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Duckworth, Sir J.T., British admiral,
affiliation with Nelson during operations in the Mediterranean, 1799, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, ii. 1, 6.
Dundas, British general,
leading troops in Corsica,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
controversy with Lord Hood,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
Nelson's perspective, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Egypt,
Bonaparte's expedition to, in 1798, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
Nelson's quest, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__;
Nelson's ongoing focus on,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, ii. 182, 185, 201, 203, 211,
212, 213, 255, 270, 277, 280-282, 287, 302;
his insistence that the French army not be allowed to leave, 18-22.
El Arish, Convention of, signed, ii. 19.
Elba, island of,
Nelson's perspective on the significance of, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
his takeover of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
evacuation of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__.
"Elephant," British ship-of-the-line,
Nelson's main ship at Copenhagen,
ii. 78, 83, 88-97.
Elgin, Earl of, British ambassador to Turkey,
opinion on the situation in Palermo during Nelson's time there, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Nelson's disagreement with him about the French departing from Egypt, ii. 19-21.
Elliot, Sir Gilbert, later Lord Minto,
British rep in Corsica, 1794, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
Viceroy of Corsica, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
the friendship between him and Nelson, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, ii. 153, 250, 325;
Nelson's communications with,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, ii. 3,
27, 36, 210, 250;
directs the capture of Elba by
Nelson, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__;
present at the evacuation of
Corsica, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, and Elba. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
trip with Nelson to Gibraltar,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
witnesses the Battle of St. Vincent, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
support for Nelson's claims to recognition, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
casual mention of Nelson by,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, ii. 34, 44, 92,
154, 172, 174, 308, 326, 332, 335;
mention of Lady Hamilton by,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, ii. 44, 154, 320, 335;
ambassador to Vienna, I.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ note.
Elliot, Hugh,
British minister in Dresden during Nelson's visit in 1800, ii. 43, 44;
minister to the Two Sicilies
during Nelson's command in the Mediterranean, 1803-1805,
189-310;
takes passage with Nelson,
189;
correspondence between Nelson
and, quoted, 191, 192, 194, 211, 212, 215, 218, 235, 246, 258,
263, 264, 286, 304, 310, 330.
Este, Lambton, mention of association with Nelson, ii.
254-257.
Fischer, Commodore,
commander of the Danish fleet at the Battle of Copenhagen, ii. 94;
Nelson's disagreement with him about his official report on the battle, 107-109.
Fitzharris, Lord,
British attaché in Vienna
during Nelson's visit, stories about Nelson and Lady
Hamilton, ii. 41, 42.
Flag of Truce, incident regarding at Copenhagen, ii.
94-98.
"Fleet in Being,"
indications of Nelson's views on its deterrent effect, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__;
ii. 301-306.
Freemantle, British captain,
with Nelson at Tenerife,
i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
at Copenhagen, ii.
83;
Letter from Nelson to regarding
Calder, 318.
Frigates,
Nelson strongly believed in the significance of frigates and small cruisers, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__; ii. 242-245, 274, 294, 334, 357, 358.
"Généreux," French ship-of-the-line,
escape of, after the Battle of the Nile, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
capture of the "Leander" by,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
captured by Nelson's squadron near Malta, ii. 24-29.
Genoa,
importance of, to the south of
France, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
complicated neutrality of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__;
closes its ports to Great Britain, 1796, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
Siege of the city, in 1800,
ii. 28;
surrender by Masséna,
37;
identified with France as the Ligurian Republic, 181, 182;
ports of, blocked by Nelson,
219, 229, 230.
George III., King of Great Britain,
bias against Nelson in
his early life, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
subsequent approval, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__;
Interest in Nelson expressed by,
ii. 49, 50;
Afterward, there was a noticeable coldness towards Nelson, seemingly because of his connection with Lady Hamilton, 49.
Gillespie, Dr.,
account of life on board Nelson's flagship by, ii. 223-225, 238, 248.
Goodall, Admiral,
During the partial fleet action on March 14, 1795, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__;
his support of Nelson when facing public criticism for not locating the French fleet, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
Gore, British captain,
commands a squad of frigates
under Nelson's orders, outside the Straits of Gibraltar, ii.
244;
Letter from Nelson to regarding three frigates attacking a ship-of-the-line, 245;
ordered by Nelson to disregard
orders from Admiral Cornwallis to capture Spanish
treasure ships, 250, 251.
Graves, Rear Admiral,
second to Nelson at the Battle of Copenhagen, ii. 83, 90;
made Knight of the Bath as a reward for the action, 99.
Gravina, Spanish admiral,
commander of the Spanish contingent and second in command of the combined fleet at Trafalgar, ii. 363, 369, 372, 396.
Greville, Charles, nephew to Sir William Hamilton,
connections to Emma Hart, later Lady Hamilton, i. __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__.
Hallowell, British captain,
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!